summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--4944-0.txt10732
-rw-r--r--4944-0.zipbin0 -> 192152 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h.zipbin0 -> 1629718 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/4944-h.htm10702
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/fpb.jpgbin0 -> 329965 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/fps.jpgbin0 -> 40034 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/p156b.jpgbin0 -> 315457 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/p156s.jpgbin0 -> 39817 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/p247b.jpgbin0 -> 307232 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/p247s.jpgbin0 -> 40295 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/tpb.jpgbin0 -> 323062 bytes
-rw-r--r--4944-h/images/tps.jpgbin0 -> 40137 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/scch10.txt10967
-rw-r--r--old/scch10.zipbin0 -> 188928 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/scch10h.htm11096
-rw-r--r--old/scch10h.zipbin0 -> 193830 bytes
19 files changed, 43513 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/4944-0.txt b/4944-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..dc37ad6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,10732 @@
+The Project Gutenberg eBook, Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge,
+Illustrated by W. J. Hennessy
+
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
+other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
+whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
+the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
+www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
+to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
+
+
+
+
+Title: Scenes and Characters
+ or, Eighteen Months at Beechcroft
+
+
+Author: Charlotte M. Yonge
+
+
+
+Release Date: January 16, 2015 [eBook #4944]
+[This file was first posted on April 2, 2002]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+
+***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SCENES AND CHARACTERS***
+
+
+Transcribed from the 1889 Macmillan and Co. edition by David Price, email
+ccx074@pglaf.org
+
+ [Picture: She visited the village school.—p. 38]
+
+
+
+
+
+ SCENES AND CHARACTERS,
+ OR,
+ Eighteen Months at Beechcroft
+
+
+ BY
+ CHARLOTTE M. YOUNGE
+ AUTHOR OF ‘THE HEIR OF REDCLYFFE,’ ‘THE TWO GUARDIANS,’ ETC.
+
+ [Picture: ‘Yes, Miss, Dick Rood is a sad fellow.’—p. 41]
+
+ _FIFTH EDITION_
+
+ ILLUSTRATED BY W. J. HENNESSY
+
+ London
+ MACMILLAN AND CO.
+ AND NEW YORK
+ 1889
+
+ _All rights reserved_
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+
+OF those who are invited to pay a visit to Beechcroft, there are some
+who, honestly acknowledging that amusement is their object, will be
+content to feel with Lilias, conjecture with Jane, and get into scrapes
+with Phyllis, without troubling themselves to extract any moral from
+their proceedings; and to these the Mohun family would only apologise for
+having led a very humdrum life during the eighteen months spent in their
+company.
+
+There may, however, be more unreasonable visitors, who, professing only
+to come as parents and guardians, expect entertainment for themselves, as
+well as instruction for those who had rather it was out of sight,—look
+for antiques in carved cherry-stones,—and require plot, incident, and
+catastrophe in a chronicle of small beer.
+
+To these the Mohuns beg respectfully to observe, that they hope their
+examples may not be altogether devoid of indirect instruction; and lest
+it should be supposed that they lived without object, aim, or principle,
+they would observe that the maxim which has influenced the delineation of
+the different _Scenes and Characters_ is, that feeling, unguided and
+unrestrained, soon becomes mere selfishness; while the simple endeavour
+to fulfil each immediate claim of duty may lead to the highest acts of
+self-devotion.
+
+NEW COURT, BEECHCROFT,
+ 18th _January_.
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE (1886)
+
+
+PERHAPS this book is an instance to be adduced in support of the advice I
+have often given to young authors—not to print before they themselves are
+old enough to do justice to their freshest ideas.
+
+Not that I can lay claim to its being a production of tender and
+interesting youth. It was my second actual publication, and I believe I
+was of age before it appeared—but I see now the failures that more
+experience might have enabled me to avoid; and I would not again have
+given it to the world if the same characters recurring in another story
+had not excited a certain desire to see their first start.
+
+In fact they have been more or less my life-long companions. An almost
+solitary child, with periodical visits to the Elysium of a large family,
+it was natural to dream of other children and their ways and sports till
+they became almost realities. They took shape when my French master set
+me to write letters for him. The letters gradually became conversation
+and narrative, and the adventures of the family sweetened the toils of
+French composition. In the exigencies of village school building in
+those days gone by, before in every place
+
+ “It there behoved him to set up the standard of her Grace,”
+
+the tale was actually printed for private sale, as a link between
+translations of short stories.
+
+This process only stifled the family in my imagination for a time. They
+awoke once more with new names, but substantially the same, and were my
+companions in many a solitary walk, the results of which were scribbled
+down in leisure moments to be poured into my mother’s ever patient and
+sympathetic ears.
+
+And then came the impulse to literature for young people given by the
+example of that memorable book the _Fairy Bower_, and followed up by _Amy
+Herbert_. It was felt that elder children needed something of a deeper
+tone than the Edgeworthian style, yet less directly religious than the
+Sherwood class of books; and on that wave of opinion, my little craft
+floated out into the great sea of the public.
+
+Friends, whose kindness astonished me, and fills me with gratitude when I
+look back on it, gave me seasonable criticism and pruning, and finally
+launched me. My heroes and heroines had arranged themselves so as to
+work out a definite principle, and this was enough for us all.
+
+Children’s books had not been supposed to require a plot. Miss
+Edgeworth’s, which I still continue to think gems in their own line, are
+made chronicles, or, more truly, illustrations of various truths worked
+out upon the same personages. Moreover, the skill of a Jane Austen or a
+Mrs. Gaskell is required to produce a perfect plot without doing violence
+to the ordinary events of an every-day life. It is all a matter of
+arrangement. Mrs. Gaskell can make a perfect little plot out of a sick
+lad and a canary bird; and another can do nothing with half a dozen
+murders and an explosion; and of arranging my materials so as to build up
+a story, I was quite incapable. It is still my great deficiency; but in
+those days I did not even understand that the attempt was desirable.
+Criticism was a more thorough thing in those times than it has since
+become through the multiplicity of books to be hurried over, and it was
+often very useful, as when it taught that such arrangement of incident
+was the means of developing the leading idea.
+
+Yet, with all its faults, the children, who had been real to me, caught,
+chiefly by the youthful sense of fun and enjoyment, the attention of
+other children; and the curious semi-belief one has in the phantoms of
+one’s brain made me dwell on their after life and share my discoveries
+with my friends, not, however, writing them down till after the lapse of
+all these years the tenderness inspired by associations of early days led
+to taking up once more the old characters in _The Two Sides of the
+Shield_; and the kind welcome this has met with has led to the
+resuscitation of the crude and inexperienced tale which never pretended
+to be more than a mere family chronicle.
+
+ C. M. YONGE.
+
+6_th_ _October_ 1886.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+ PAGE
+ CHAPTER I
+THE ELDER SISTER 1
+ CHAPTER II
+THE NEW COURT 6
+ CHAPTER III
+THE NEW PRINCIPLE 15
+ CHAPTER IV
+HONEST PHYL 26
+ CHAPTER V
+VILLAGE GOSSIP 35
+ CHAPTER VI
+THE NEW FRIEND 52
+ CHAPTER VII
+SIR MAURICE 61
+ CHAPTER VIII
+THE BROTHERS 78
+ CHAPTER IX
+THE WASP 101
+ CHAPTER X
+COUSIN ROTHERWOOD 109
+ CHAPTER XI
+DANCING 123
+ CHAPTER XII
+THE FEVER 131
+ CHAPTER XIII
+A CURIOSITY MAP 143
+ CHAPTER XIV
+CHRISTMAS 155
+ CHAPTER XV
+MINOR MISFORTUNES 167
+ CHAPTER XVI
+VANITY AND VEXATION 186
+ CHAPTER XVII
+LITTLE AGNES 198
+ CHAPTER XVIII
+DOUBLE, DOUBLE TOIL AND TROUBLE 208
+ CHAPTER XIX
+THE RECTOR’S ILLNESS 222
+ CHAPTER XX
+THE LITTLE NEPHEW 227
+ CHAPTER XXI
+CHARITY BEGINS AT HOME 235
+ CHAPTER XXII
+THE BARONIAL COURT 249
+ CHAPTER XXIII
+JOYS AND SORROWS 256
+ CHAPTER XXIV
+LOVE’S LABOUR LOST 264
+ CHAPTER XXV
+THE THIRTIETH OF JULY 277
+ CHAPTER XXVI
+THE CRISIS 297
+ CHAPTER XXVII
+CONCLUSION 313
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+THE ELDER SISTER
+
+
+ ‘Return, and in the daily round
+ Of duty and of love,
+ Thou best wilt find that patient faith
+ That lifts the soul above.’
+
+ELEANOR MOHUN was the eldest child of a gentleman of old family, and good
+property, who had married the sister of his friend and neighbour, the
+Marquis of Rotherwood. The first years of her life were marked by few
+events. She was a quiet, steady, useful girl, finding her chief pleasure
+in nursing and teaching her brothers and sisters, and her chief annoyance
+in her mamma’s attempts to make her a fine lady; but before she had
+reached her nineteenth year she had learnt to know real anxiety and
+sorrow. Her mother, after suffering much from grief at the loss of her
+two brothers, fell into so alarming a state of health, that her husband
+was obliged immediately to hurry her away to Italy, leaving the younger
+children under the care of a governess, and the elder boys at school,
+while Eleanor alone accompanied them.
+
+Their absence lasted nearly three years, and during the last winter, an
+engagement commenced between Eleanor and Mr. Francis Hawkesworth, rather
+to the surprise of Lady Emily, who wondered that he had been able to
+discover the real worth veiled beneath a formal and retiring manner, and
+to admire features which, though regular, had a want of light and
+animation, which diminished their beauty even more than the thinness and
+compression of the lips, and the very pale gray of the eyes.
+
+The family were about to return to England, where the marriage was to
+take place, when Lady Emily was attacked with a sudden illness, which her
+weakened frame was unable to resist, and in a very few days she died,
+leaving the little Adeline, about eight months old, to accompany her
+father and sister on their melancholy journey homewards. This loss made
+a great change in the views of Eleanor, who, as she considered the cares
+and annoyances which would fall on her father, when left to bear the
+whole burthen of the management of the children and household, felt it
+was her duty to give up her own prospects of happiness, and to remain at
+home. How could she leave the tender little ones to the care of
+servants—trust her sisters to a governess, and make her brothers’ home
+yet more dreary? She knew her father to be strong in sense and firm in
+judgment, but indolent, indulgent, and inattentive to details, and she
+could not bear to leave him to be harassed by the petty cares of a
+numerous family, especially when broken in spirits and weighed down with
+sorrow. She thought her duty was plain, and, accordingly, she wrote to
+Mr. Hawkesworth, to beg him to allow her to withdraw her promise.
+
+Her brother Henry was the only person who knew what she had done, and he
+alone perceived something of tremulousness about her in the midst of the
+even cheerfulness with which she had from the first supported her
+father’s spirits. Mr. Mohun, however, did not long remain in ignorance,
+for Frank Hawkesworth himself arrived at Beechcroft to plead his cause
+with Eleanor. He knew her value too well to give her up, and Mr. Mohun
+would not hear of her making such a sacrifice for his sake. But Eleanor
+was also firm, and after weeks of unhappiness and uncertainty, it was at
+length arranged that she should remain at home till Emily was old enough
+to take her place, and that Frank should then return from India and claim
+his bride.
+
+Well did she discharge the duties which she had undertaken; she kept her
+father’s mind at ease, followed out his views, managed the boys with
+discretion and gentleness, and made her sisters well-informed and
+accomplished girls; but, for want of fully understanding the characters
+of her two next sisters, Emily and Lilias, she made some mistakes with
+regard to them. The clouds of sorrow, to her so dark and heavy, had been
+to them but morning mists, and the four years which had changed her from
+a happy girl into a thoughtful, anxious woman, had brought them to an age
+which, if it is full of the follies of childhood, also partakes of the
+earnestness of youth; an age when deep foundations of enduring confidence
+may be laid by one who can enter into and direct the deeper flow of mind
+and feeling which lurks hid beneath the freaks and fancies of the early
+years of girlhood. But Eleanor had little sympathy for freaks and
+fancies. She knew the realities of life too well to build airy castles
+with younger and gayer spirits; her sisters’ romance seemed to her
+dangerous folly, and their lively nonsense levity and frivolity. They
+were too childish to share in her confidence, and she was too busy and
+too much preoccupied to have ear or mind for visionary trifles, though to
+trifles of real life she paid no small degree of attention.
+
+It might have been otherwise had Henry Mohun lived; but in the midst of
+the affection of all who knew him, honour from those who could appreciate
+his noble character, and triumphs gained by his uncommon talents, he was
+cut off by a short illness, when not quite nineteen, a most grievous loss
+to his family, and above all, to Eleanor. Unlike her, as he was joyous,
+high-spirited, full of fun, and overflowing with imagination and poetry,
+there was a very close bond of union between them, in the strong sense of
+duty, the firmness of purpose, and energy of mind which both possessed,
+and which made Eleanor feel perfect reliance on him, and look up to him
+with earnest admiration. With him alone she was unreserved; he was the
+only person who could ever make her show a spark of liveliness, and on
+his death, it was only with the most painful efforts that she could
+maintain her composed demeanour and fulfil her daily duties. Years
+passed on, and still she felt the blank which Harry had left, almost as
+much as the first day that she heard of his death, but she never spoke of
+him, and to her sisters it seemed as if he was forgotten. The reserve
+which had begun to thaw under his influence, again returning, placed her
+a still greater distance from the younger girls, and unconsciously she
+became still more of a governess and less of a sister. Little did she
+know of the ‘blissful dreams in secret shared’ between Emily, Lilias, and
+their brother Claude, and little did she perceive the danger that Lilias
+would be run away with by a lively imagination, repressed and starved,
+but entirely untrained.
+
+Whatever influenced Lilias, had, through her, nearly the same effect upon
+Emily, a gentle girl, easily led, especially by Lilias, whom she regarded
+with the fondest affection and admiration. The perils of fancy and
+romance were not, however, to be dreaded for Jane, the fourth sister, a
+strong resemblance of Eleanor in her clear common sense, love of
+neatness, and active usefulness; but there were other dangers for her, in
+her tendency to faults, which, under wise training, had not yet developed
+themselves.
+
+Such were the three girls who were now left to assist each other in the
+management of the household, and who looked forward to their new offices
+with the various sensations of pleasure, anxiety, self-importance, and
+self-mistrust, suited to their differing characters, and to the ages of
+eighteen, sixteen, and fourteen.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+THE NEW COURT
+
+
+ ‘Just at the age ’twixt boy and youth,
+ When thought is speech, and speech is truth.’
+
+THE long-delayed wedding took place on the 13th of January, 1845, and the
+bride and bridegroom immediately departed for a year’s visit among Mr.
+Hawkesworth’s relations in Northumberland, whence they were to return to
+Beechcroft, merely for a farewell, before sailing for India.
+
+It was half-past nine in the evening, and the wedding over—Mr. and Mrs.
+Hawkesworth gone, and the guests departed, the drawing-room had returned
+to its usual state. It was a very large room, so spacious that it would
+have been waste and desolate, had it not been well filled with handsome,
+but heavy old-fashioned furniture, covered with crimson damask, and one
+side of the room fitted up with a bookcase, so high that there was a
+spiral flight of library steps to give access to the upper shelves.
+Opposite were four large windows, now hidden by their ample curtains; and
+near them was at one end of the room a piano, at the other a
+drawing-desk. The walls were wainscoted with polished black oak, the
+panels reflecting the red fire-light like mirrors. Over the
+chimney-piece hung a portrait, by Vandyke, of a pale, dark cavalier, of
+noble mien, and with arched eyebrows, called by Lilias, in defiance of
+dates, by the name of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the hero of the family, and
+allowed by every one to be a striking likeness of Claude, the youth who
+at that moment lay, extending a somewhat superfluous length of limb upon
+the sofa, which was placed commodiously at right angles to the fire.
+
+The other side of the fire was Mr. Mohun’s special domain, and there he
+sat at his writing-table, abstracted by deafness and letter writing, from
+the various sounds of mirth and nonsense, which proceeded from the party
+round the long narrow sofa table, which they had drawn across the front
+of the fire, leaving the large round centre table in darkness and
+oblivion.
+
+This party had within the last half hour been somewhat thinned; the three
+younger girls had gone to bed, the Rector of Beechcroft, Mr. Robert
+Devereux, had been called home to attend some parish business, and there
+remained Emily and Lilias—tall graceful girls, with soft hazel eyes,
+clear dark complexions, and a quantity of long brown curls. The latter
+was busily completing a guard for the watch, which Mr. Hawkesworth had
+presented to Reginald, a fine handsome boy of eleven, who, with his
+elbows on the table, sat contemplating her progress, and sometimes
+teasing his brother Maurice, who was earnestly engaged in constructing a
+model with some cards, which he had pilfered from the heap before Emily.
+She was putting her sister’s wedding cards into their shining envelopes,
+and directing them in readiness for the post the next morning, while they
+were sealed by a youth of the same age as Claude, a small slim figure,
+with light complexion and hair, and dark gray eyes full of brightness and
+vivacity.
+
+He was standing, so as to be more on a level with the high candle, and as
+Emily’s writing was not quite so rapid as his sealing, he amused himself
+in the intervals with burning his own fingers, by twisting the wax into
+odd shapes.
+
+‘Why do you not seal up his eyes?’ inquired Reginald, with an arch glance
+towards his brother on the sofa.
+
+‘Do it yourself, you rogue,’ was the answer, at the same time approaching
+with the hot sealing-wax in his hand—a demonstration which occasioned
+Claude to open his eyes very wide, without giving himself any further
+trouble about the matter.
+
+‘Eh?’ said he, ‘now they try to look innocent, as if no one could hear
+them plotting mischief.’
+
+‘Them! it was not!—Redgie there—young ladies—I appeal—was not I as
+innocent?’—was the very rapid, incoherent, and indistinct answer.
+
+‘After so lucid and connected a justification, no more can be said,’
+replied Claude, in a kind of ‘leave me, leave me to repose’ tone, which
+occasioned Lilias to say, ‘I am afraid you are very tired.’
+
+‘Tired! what has he done to tire him?’
+
+‘I am sure a wedding is a terrible wear of spirits!’ said Emily—‘such
+excitement.’
+
+‘Well—when I give a spectacle to the family next year, I mean to tire you
+to some purpose.’
+
+‘Eh?’ said Mr. Mohun, looking up, ‘is Rotherwood’s wedding to be the
+next?’
+
+‘You ought to understand, uncle,’ said Lord Rotherwood, making two stops
+towards him, and speaking a little more clearly, ‘I thought you longed to
+get rid of your nephew and his concerns.’
+
+‘You idle boy!’ returned Mr. Mohun, ‘you do not mean to have the
+impertinence to come of age next year.’
+
+‘As much as having been born on the 30th of July, 1825, can make me.’
+
+‘But what good will your coming of age do us?’ said Lilias, ‘you will be
+in London or Brighton, or some such stupid place.’
+
+‘Do not be senseless, Lily,’ returned her cousin. ‘Devereux Castle is to
+be in splendour—Hetherington in amazement—the county’s hair shall stand
+on end—illuminations, bonfires, feasts, balls, colours flying, bands
+playing, tenants dining, fireworks—’
+
+‘Hurrah! jolly! jolly!’ shouted Reginald, dancing on the ottoman, ‘and
+mind there are lots of squibs.’
+
+‘And that Master Reginald Mohun has a new cap and bells for the
+occasion,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Let me make some fireworks,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘You will begin like a noble baron of the hospitable olden time,’ said
+Lily.
+
+‘It will be like the old days, when every birthday of yours was a happy
+day for the people at Hetherington,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Ah! those were happy old days,’ said Lord Rotherwood, in a graver tone.
+
+‘These are happy days, are not they?’ said Lily, smiling.
+
+Her cousin answered with a sigh, ‘Yes, but you do not remember the old
+ones, Lily;’ then, after a pause, he added, ‘It was a grievous mistake to
+shut up the castle all these years. We have lost sight of everybody. I
+do not even know what has become of the Aylmers.’
+
+‘They went to live in London,’ said Emily, ‘Aunt Robert used to write to
+them there.’
+
+‘I know, I know, but where are they now?’
+
+‘In London, I should think,’ said Emily. ‘Some one said Miss Aylmer was
+gone out as a governess.’
+
+‘Indeed! I wish I could hear more! Poor Mr. Aylmer! He was the first
+man who tried to teach me Latin. I wonder what has become of that mad
+fellow Edward, and Devereux, my father’s godson! Was not Mrs. Aylmer
+badly off? I cannot bear that people should be forgotten!’
+
+‘It is not so very long that we have lost sight of them,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Eight years,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘He died six weeks after my father.
+Well! I have made my mother promise to come home.’
+
+‘Really?’ said Lilias, ‘she has been coming so often.’
+
+‘Aye—but she is coming this time. She is to spend the winter at the
+castle, and make acquaintance with all the neighbourhood.’
+
+‘His lordship is romancing,’ said Claude to Lily in a confidential tone.
+
+‘I’ll punish you for suspecting me of talking hyperborean
+language—hyperbolical, I mean,’ cried Lord Rotherwood; ‘I’ll make you
+dance the Polka with all the beauty and fashion.’
+
+‘Then I shall stay at Oxford till it is over,’ said Claude.
+
+‘You do not know what a treasure you will be,’ said the Marquis, ‘ladies
+like nothing so well as dancing with a fellow twice the height he should
+be.’
+
+‘Beware of putting me forward,’ said Claude, rising, and, as he leant
+against the chimney-piece, looking down from his height of six feet
+three, with a patronising air upon his cousin, ‘I shall be taken for the
+hero, and you for my little brother.’
+
+‘I wish I was,’ said Lord Rotherwood, ‘it would be much better fun. I
+should escape the speechifying, the worst part of it.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Claude, ‘for one whose speeches will be scraps of three words
+each, strung together with the burthen of the apprentices’ song, Radara
+tadara, tandore.’
+
+‘Radaratade,’ said the Marquis, laughing. ‘By the bye, if Eleanor and
+Frank Hawkesworth manage well, they may be here in time.’
+
+‘Because they are so devoted to gaiety?’ said Claude. ‘You will say next
+that William is coming from Canada, on purpose.’
+
+‘That tall captain!’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘He used to be a very awful
+person.’
+
+‘Ah! he used to keep the spoilt Marquis in order,’ said Claude.
+
+‘To say nothing of the spoilt Claude,’ returned Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Claude never was spoilt,’ said Lily.
+
+‘It was not Eleanor’s way,’ said Emily.
+
+‘At least she cannot be accused of spoiling me,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+‘I shall never dare to write at that round table again—her figure will
+occupy the chair like Banquo’s ghost, and wave me off with a knitting
+needle.’
+
+‘Ah! that stain of ink was a worse blot on your character than on the new
+table cover,’ said Claude.
+
+‘She was rigidly impartial,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘No,’ said Claude, ‘she made exceptions in favour of Ada and me. She
+left the spoiling of the rest to Emily.’
+
+‘And well Emily will perform it! A pretty state you will be in by the
+30th of July, 1846,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Why should not Emily make as good a duenna as Eleanor?’ said Lily.
+
+‘Why should she not? She will not—that is all,’ said the Marquis. ‘Such
+slow people you all are! You would all go to sleep if I did not
+sometimes rouse you up a little—grow stagnant.’
+
+‘Not an elegant comparison,’ said Lilias; ‘besides, you must remember
+that your hasty brawling streams do not reflect like tranquil lakes.’
+
+‘One of Lily’s poetical hits, I declare!’ said Lord Rotherwood, ‘but she
+need not have taken offence—I did not refer to her—only Claude and Emily,
+and perhaps—no, I will not say who else.’
+
+‘Then, Rotherwood, I will tell you what I am—the Lily that derives all
+its support from the calm lake.’
+
+‘Well done, Lily, worthy of yourself,’ cried Lord Rotherwood, laughing,
+‘but you know I am always off when you talk poetry.’
+
+‘I suspect it is time for us all to be off,’ said Claude, ‘did I not hear
+it strike the quarter?’
+
+‘And to-morrow I shall be off in earnest,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘Half
+way to London before Claude has given one turn to “his sides, and his
+shoulders, and his heavy head.”’
+
+‘Shall we see you at Easter?’ said Emily.
+
+‘No, I do not think you will. I am engaged to stay with somebody
+somewhere, I forget the name of place and man; besides, Grosvenor Square
+is more tolerable then than at any other time of the year, and I shall
+spend a fortnight with my mother and Florence. It is after Easter that
+you come to Oxford, is it not, Claude?’
+
+‘Yes, my year of idleness will be over. And there is the Baron looking
+at his watch.’
+
+The ‘Baron’ was the title by which the young people were wont to
+distinguish Mr. Mohun, who, as Lily believed, had a right to the title of
+Baron of Beechcroft. It was certain that he was the representative of a
+family which had been settled at Beechcroft ever since the Norman
+Conquest, and Lily was very proud of the name of Sir William de Moune in
+the battle roll, and of Sir John among the first Knights of the Garter.
+Her favourite was Sir Maurice, who had held out Beechcroft Court for six
+weeks against the Roundheads, and had seen the greater part of the walls
+battered down. Witnesses of the strength of the old castle yet remained
+in the massive walls and broad green ramparts, which enclosed what was
+now orchard and farm-yard, and was called the Old Court, while the
+dwelling-house, built by Sir Maurice after the Restoration, was named the
+New Court. Sir Maurice had lost many an acre in the cause of King
+Charles, and his new mansion was better suited to the honest squires who
+succeeded him, than to the mighty barons his ancestors. It was
+substantial and well built, with a square gravelled court in front, and
+great, solid, folding gates opening into a lane, bordered with very tall
+well-clipped holly hedges, forming a polished, green, prickly wall.
+There was a little door in one of these gates, which was scarcely ever
+shut, from whence a well-worn path led to the porch, where generally
+reposed a huge Newfoundland dog, guardian of the hoops and walkingsticks
+that occupied the corners. The front door was of heavy substantial oak,
+studded with nails, and never closed in the daytime, and the hall,
+wainscoted and floored with slippery oak, had a noble open fireplace,
+with a wood fire burning on the hearth.
+
+On the other side of the house was a terrace sloping down to a lawn and
+bowling-green, hedged in by a formal row of evergreens. A noble
+plane-tree was in the middle of the lawn, and beyond it a pond renowned
+for water-lilies. To the left was the kitchen garden, terminating in an
+orchard, planted on the ramparts and moat of the Old Court; then came the
+farm buildings, and beyond them a field, sloping upwards to an extensive
+wood called Beechcroft Park. In the wood was the cottage of Walter
+Greenwood, gamekeeper and woodman by hereditary succession, but able and
+willing to turn his hand to anything, and, in fact, as Adeline once
+elegantly termed him, the ‘family tee totum.’
+
+To the right of the house there was a field, called Long Acre, bounded on
+the other side by the turnpike road to Raynham, which led up the hill to
+the village green, surrounded by well-kept cottages and gardens. The
+principal part of the village was, however, at the foot of the hill,
+where the Court lane crossed the road, led to the old church, the school,
+and parsonage, in its little garden, shut in by thick yew hedges. Beyond
+was the blacksmith’s shop, more cottages, and Mrs. Appleton’s wondrous
+village warehouse; and the lane, after passing by the handsome old
+farmhouse of Mr. Harrington, Mr. Mohun’s principal tenant, led to a
+bridge across a clear trout stream, the boundary of the parish of
+Beechcroft.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+THE NEW PRINCIPLE
+
+
+ ‘And wilt thou show no more, quoth he,
+ Than doth thy duty bind?
+ I well perceive thy love is small.’
+
+ON the Sunday evening which followed Eleanor’s wedding, Lilias was
+sitting next to Emily, and talking in very earnest tones, which after a
+time occasioned Claude to look up and say, ‘What is all this about?
+Something remarkably absurd I suspect.’
+
+‘Only a new principle,’ said Emily.
+
+‘New!’ cried Lily, ‘only what must be the feeling of every person of any
+warmth of character?’
+
+‘Now for it then,’ said Claude.
+
+‘No, no, Claude, I really mean it (and Lily sincerely thought she did).
+I will not tell you if you are going to laugh.’
+
+‘That depends upon what your principle may chance to be,’ said Claude.
+‘What is it, Emily? She will be much obliged to you for telling.’
+
+‘She only says she cannot bear people to do their duty, and not to act
+from a feeling of love,’ said Emily.
+
+‘That is not fair,’ returned Lily, ‘all I say is, that it is better that
+people should act upon love for its own sake, than upon duty for its own
+sake.’
+
+‘What comes in rhyme with Lily?’ said Claude.
+
+‘Don’t be tiresome, Claude, I really want you to understand me.’
+
+‘Wait till you understand yourself,’ said the provoking brother, ‘and let
+me finish what I am reading.’
+
+For about a quarter of an hour he was left in peace, while Lily was
+busily employed with a pencil and paper, under the shadow of a book, and
+at length laid before him the following verses:—
+
+ ‘What is the source of gentleness,
+ The spring of human blessedness,
+ Bringing the wounded spirit healing,
+ The comforts high of heaven revealing,
+ The lightener of each daily care,
+ The wing of hope, the life of prayer,
+ The zest of joy, the balm of sorrow,
+ Bliss of to-day, hope of to-morrow,
+ The glory of the sun’s bright beam,
+ The softness of the pale moon stream,
+ The flow’ret’s grace, the river’s voice,
+ The tune to which the birds rejoice;
+ Without it, vain each learned page,
+ Cold and unfelt each council sage,
+ Heavy and dull each human feature,
+ Lifeless and wretched every creature;
+ In which alone the glory lies,
+ Which value gives to sacrifice?
+ ’Tis that which formed the whole creation,
+ Which rests on every generation.
+ Of Paradise the only token
+ Just left us, ’mid our treasures broken,
+ Which never can from us be riven,
+ Sure earnest of the joys of Heaven.
+ And which, when earth shall pass away,
+ Shall be our rest on the last day,
+ When tongues shall fail and knowledge cease,
+ And throbbing hearts be all at peace:
+ When faith is sight, and hope is sure,
+ That which alone shall still endure
+ Of earthly joys in heaven above,
+ ’Tis that best gift, eternal Love!’
+
+‘What have you there?’ said Mr. Mohun, who had come towards them while
+Claude was reading the lines. Taking the paper from Claude’s hand, he
+read it to himself, and then saying, ‘Tolerable, Lily; there are some
+things to alter, but you may easily make it passable,’ he went on to his
+own place, leaving Lilias triumphant.
+
+‘Well, Claude, you see I have the great Baron on my side.’
+
+‘I am of the Baron’s opinion,’ said Claude, ‘the only wonder is that you
+doubted it.’
+
+‘You seemed to say that love was good for nothing.’
+
+‘I said nothing but that Lily has a rhyme.’
+
+‘And saying that I was silly, was equivalent to saying that love was
+nothing,’ said Lily.
+
+‘O Lily, I hope not,’ said Claude, with a comical air.
+
+‘Well, I know I often am foolish, but not in this,’ said Lily; ‘I do say
+that mere duty is not lovable.’
+
+‘Say it if you will then,’ said Claude, yawning, ‘only let me finish this
+sermon.’
+
+Lily set herself to reconsider some of her lines: but presently Emily
+left the room, Claude looked up, and Lily exclaimed, ‘Now, Claude, let us
+make a trial of it.’
+
+‘Well,’ said Claude, yawning again, and looking resigned.
+
+‘Think how Eleanor went on telling us of duty, duty, duty—never making
+allowances—never relaxing her stiff rules about trifles—never unbending
+from her duenna-like dignity—never showing one spark of enthusiasm—making
+great sacrifices, but only because she thought them her duty—because it
+was right—good for herself—only a higher kind of selfishness—not because
+her feeling prompted her.’
+
+‘Certainly, feeling does not usually prompt people to give up their
+lovers for the sake of their brothers and sisters.’
+
+‘She did it because it was her duty,’ said Lily, ‘quite as if she did not
+care.’
+
+‘I wonder whether Frank thought so,’ said Claude.
+
+‘At any rate you will confess that Emily is a much more engaging person,’
+said Lily.
+
+‘Certainly, I had rather talk nonsense to her,’ said Claude.
+
+‘You feel it, though you will not allow it,’ said Lily. ‘Now think of
+Emily’s sympathy, and gentleness, and sweet smile, and tell me if she is
+not a complete personification of love. And then Eleanor,
+unpoetical—never thrown off her balance by grief or joy, with no ups and
+downs—no enthusiasm—no appreciation of the beautiful—her highest praise
+“very right,” and tell me if there can be a better image of duty.’
+
+Claude might have had some chance of bringing Lily to her senses, if he
+had allowed that there was some truth in what she had said; but he
+thought the accusation so unjust in general, that he would not agree to
+any part of it, and only answered, ‘You have very strange views of duty
+and of Eleanor.’
+
+‘Well!’ replied Lily, ‘I only ask you to watch; Emily and I are
+determined to act on the principle of love, and you will see if her
+government is not more successful than that of duty.’
+
+Such was the principle upon which Lily intended her sister to govern the
+household, and to which Emily listened without knowing what she meant
+much better than she did herself. Emily’s own views, as far as she
+possessed any, were to get on as smoothly as she could, and make
+everybody pleased and happy, without much trouble to herself, and also to
+make the establishment look a little more as if a Lady Emily had lately
+been its mistress, than had been the case in Eleanor’s time. Mr. Mohun’s
+property was good, but he wished to avoid unnecessary display and
+expense, and he expected his daughters to follow out these views, keeping
+a wise check upon Emily, by looking over her accounts every Saturday, and
+turning a deaf ear when she talked of the age of the drawing-room carpet,
+and the ugliness of the old chariot. Emily had a good deal on her hands,
+requiring sense and activity, but Lilias and Jane were now quite old
+enough to assist her. Lily however, thought fit to despise all household
+affairs, and bestowed the chief of her attention on her own
+department—the village school and poor people; and she was also much
+engrossed by her music and drawing, her German and Italian, and her verse
+writing.
+
+Claude had more power over her than any one else. He was a gentle,
+amiable boy, of high talent, but disposed to indolence by ill health. In
+most matters he was, however, victorious over this propensity, which was
+chiefly visible in his love of easy chairs, and his dislike of active
+sports, which made him the especial companion of his sisters. A
+dangerous illness had occasioned his removal from Eton, and he had since
+been at home, reading with his cousin Mr. Devereux, and sharing his
+sisters’ amusements.
+
+Jane was in her own estimation an important member of the administration,
+and in fact, was Emily’s chief assistant and deputy. She was very small
+and trimly made, everything fitted her precisely, and she had tiny
+dexterous fingers, and active little feet, on which she darted about
+noiselessly and swiftly as an arrow; an oval brown face, bright colour,
+straight features, and smooth dark hair, bright sparkling black eyes, a
+little mouth, wearing an arch subdued smile, very white teeth, and
+altogether the air of a woman in miniature. Brisk, bold, and blithe—ever
+busy and ever restless, she was generally known by the names of Brownie
+and Changeling, which were not inappropriate to her active and prying
+disposition.
+
+Excepting Claude and Emily, the young party were early risers, and Lily
+especially had generally despatched a good deal of business before the
+eight o’clock breakfast.
+
+At nine they went to church, Mr. Devereux having restored the custom of
+daily service, and after this, Mr. Mohun attended to his multitudinous
+affairs; Claude went to the parsonage,—Emily to the storeroom, Lily to
+the village, the younger girls to the schoolroom, where they were
+presently joined by Emily. Lily remained in her own room till one
+o’clock, when she joined the others in the schoolroom, and they read
+aloud some book of history till two, the hour of dinner for the younger,
+and of luncheon for the elder. They then went out, and on their return
+from evening service, which began at half-past four, the little ones had
+their lessons to learn, and the others were variously employed till
+dinner, the time of which was rather uncertain but always late. The
+evening passed pleasantly and quickly away in reading, work, music, and
+chatter.
+
+As Emily had expected, her first troubles were with Phyllis; called, not
+the neat handed, by her sisters; Master Phyl, by her brothers; and Miss
+Tomboy, by the maids. She seemed born to be a trial of patience to all
+concerned with her; yet without many actual faults, except giddiness,
+restlessness, and unrestrained spirits. In the drawing-room, schoolroom,
+and nursery she was continually in scrapes, and so often reproved and
+repentant, that her loud roaring fits of crying were amongst the ordinary
+noises of the New Court. She was terribly awkward when under constraint,
+or in learning any female accomplishment, but swift and ready when at her
+ease, and glorying in the boyish achievements of leaping ditches and
+climbing trees. Her voice was rather highly pitched, and she had an
+inveterate habit of saying, ‘I’ll tell you what,’ at the beginning of all
+her speeches. She was not tall, but strong, square, firm, and active;
+she had a round merry face, a broad forehead, and large bright laughing
+eyes, of a doubtful shade between gray and brown. Her mouth was wide,
+her nose turned up, her complexion healthy, but not rosy, and her stiff
+straight brown hair was more apt to hang over her eyes, than to remain in
+its proper place behind her ears.
+
+Adeline was very different; her fair and brilliant complexion, her deep
+blue eyes and golden ringlets, made her a very lovely little creature;
+her quietness was a relief after her sister’s boisterous merriment, and
+her dislike of dirt and brambles, continually contrasted with poor
+Phyllis’s recklessness of such impediments. Ada readily learnt lessons,
+which cost Phyllis and her teacher hours of toil; Ada worked deftly when
+Phyllis’s stiff fingers never willingly touched a needle; Ada played with
+a doll, drew on scraps of paper, or put up dissected maps, while Phyllis
+was in mischief or in the way. A book was the only chance of interesting
+her; but very few books took her fancy enough to occupy her long;—those
+few, however, she read over and over again, and when unusual tranquillity
+reigned in the drawing-room, she was sure to be found curled up at the
+top of the library steps, reading one of three books—_Robinson Crusoe_,
+_Little Jack_, or _German Popular Tales_. Then Emily blamed her
+ungraceful position, Jane laughed at her uniform taste, and Lily proposed
+some story about modern children, such as Phyllis never could like, and
+the constant speech was repeated, ‘Only look at Ada!’ till Phyllis
+considered her sister as a perfect model, and sighed over her own
+naughtiness.
+
+_German Popular Tales_ were a recent introduction of Claude’s, for
+Eleanor had carefully excluded all fairy tales from her sisters’ library;
+so great was her dread of works of fiction, that Emily and Lilias had
+never been allowed to read any of the Waverley Novels, excepting _Guy
+Mannering_, which their brother Henry had insisted upon reading aloud to
+them the last time he was at home, and that had taken so strong a hold on
+their imagination, that Eleanor was quite alarmed.
+
+One day Mr. Mohun chanced to refer to some passage in _Waverley_, and on
+finding that his daughters did not understand him, he expressed great
+surprise at their want of taste.
+
+Poor things,’ said Claude, ‘they cannot help it; do not you know that
+Eleanor thinks the Waverley Novels a sort of slow poison? They know no
+more of them than their outsides.’
+
+‘Well, the sooner they know the inside the better.’
+
+‘Then may we really read them, papa?’ cried Lily.
+
+‘And welcome,’ said her father.
+
+This permission once given, the young ladies had no idea of moderation;
+Lily’s heart and soul were wrapped up in whatever tale she chanced to be
+reading—she talked of little else, she neglected her daily occupations,
+and was in a kind of trance for about three weeks. At length she was
+recalled to her senses by her father’s asking her why she had shown him
+no drawings lately. Lily hesitated for a moment, and then said, ‘Papa, I
+am sorry I was so idle.’
+
+‘Take care,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘let us be able to give a good account of
+ourselves when Eleanor comes.’
+
+‘I am afraid, papa,’ said Lily, ‘the truth is, that my head has been so
+full of _Woodstock_ for the last few days, that I could do nothing.’
+
+‘And before that?’
+
+‘_The Bride of Lammermoor_.’
+
+‘And last week?’
+
+‘_Waverley_. Oh! papa, I am afraid you must be very angry with me.’
+
+‘No, no, Lily, not yet,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I do not think you quite knew
+what an intoxicating draught you had got hold of; I should have cautioned
+you. Your negligence has not yet been a serious fault, though remember,
+that it becomes so after warning.’
+
+‘Then,’ said Lily, ‘I will just finish _Peveril_ at once, and get it out
+of my head, and then read no more of the dear books,’ and she gave a deep
+sigh.
+
+‘Lily would take the temperance pledge, on condition that she might
+finish her bottle at a draught,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+Lily laughed, and looked down, feeling quite unable to offer to give up
+_Peveril_ before she had finished it, but her father relieved her, by
+saying in his kind voice, ‘No, no, Lily, take my advice, read those
+books, for most of them are very good reading, and very pretty reading,
+and very useful reading, and you can hardly be called a well-educated
+person if you do not know them; but read them only after the duties of
+the day are done—make them your pleasure, but do not make yourself their
+slave.’
+
+‘Lily,’ said Claude the next morning, as he saw her prepare her
+drawing-desk, ‘why are you not reading _Peveril_?’
+
+‘You know what papa said yesterday,’ was the answer.
+
+‘Oh! but I thought your feelings were with poor Julian in the Tower,’
+said Claude.
+
+‘My feelings prompt me to sacrifice my pleasure in reading about him to
+please papa, after he spoke so kindly.’
+
+‘If that is always the effect of your principle, I shall think better of
+it,’ said Claude.
+
+Lily, whether from her new principle, or her old habits of obedience,
+never ventured to touch one of her tempters till after five o’clock, but,
+as she was a very rapid reader, she generally contrived to devour more
+than a sufficient quantity every evening, so that she did not enjoy them
+as much as she would, had she been less voracious in her appetite, and
+they made her complain grievously of the dulness of the latter part of
+Russell’s _Modern Europe_, which was being read in the schoolroom, and
+yawn nearly as much as Phyllis over the ‘Pragmatic Sanction.’ However,
+when that book was concluded, and they began Palgrave’s _Anglo Saxons_,
+Lily was seized within a sudden historical fever. She could hardly wait
+till one o’clock, before she settled herself at the schoolroom table with
+her work, and summoned every one, however occupied, to listen to the
+reading.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+HONEST PHYL
+
+
+ ‘Multiplication
+ Is a vexation.’
+
+IT was a bright and beautiful afternoon in March, the song of the
+blackbird and thrush, and the loud chirp of the titmouse, came merrily
+through the schoolroom window, mixed with the sounds of happy voices in
+the garden; the western sun shone brightly in, and tinged the white
+wainscoted wall with yellow light; the cat sat in the window-seat,
+winking at the sun, and sleepily whisking her tail for the amusement of
+her kitten, which was darting to and fro, and patting her on the head, in
+the hope of rousing her to some more active sport.
+
+But in the midst of all these joyous sights and sounds, was heard a
+dolorous voice repeating, ‘three and four are—three and four are—oh dear!
+they are—seven, no, but I do not think it is a four after all, is it not
+a one? Oh dear!’ And on the floor lay Phyllis, her back to the window,
+kicking her feet slowly up and down, and yawning and groaning over her
+slate.
+
+Presently the door opened, and Claude looked in, and very nearly departed
+again instantly, for Phyllis at that moment made a horrible squeaking
+with her slate-pencil, the sound above all others that he disliked. He,
+however, stopped, and asked where Emily was.
+
+‘Out in the garden,’ answered Phyllis, with a tremendous yawn.
+
+‘What are you doing here, looking so piteous?’ said Claude.
+
+‘My sum,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Is this your time of day for arithmetic?’ asked he.
+
+‘No,’ said Phyllis, ‘only I had not done it by one o’clock to-day, and
+Lily said I must finish after learning my lessons for to-morrow, but I do
+not think I shall ever have done, it is so hard. Oh!’ (another stretch
+and a yawn, verging on a howl), ‘and Jane and Ada are sowing the
+flower-seeds. Oh dear! Oh dear!’ and Phyllis’s face contracted, in
+readiness to cry.
+
+‘And is that the best position for doing sums?’ said Claude.
+
+‘I was obliged to lie down here to get out of the way of Ada’s sum,’ said
+Phyllis, getting up.
+
+‘Get out of the way of Ada’s sum?’ repeated Claude.
+
+‘Yes, she left it on the table where I was sitting, where I could see it,
+and it is this very one, so I must not look at it; I wish I could do sums
+as fast as she can.’
+
+‘Could you not have turned the other side of the slate upwards?’ said
+Claude, smiling.
+
+‘So I could!’ said Phyllis, as if a new light had broken in upon her.
+‘But then I wanted to be out of sight of pussy, for I could not think a
+bit, while the kitten was at play so prettily, and I kicked my heels to
+keep from hearing the voices in the garden, for it does make me so
+unhappy!’
+
+Some good-natured brothers would have told the little girl not to mind,
+and sent her out to enjoy herself, but Claude respected Phyllis’s honesty
+too much to do so, and he said, ‘Well, Phyl, let me see the sum, and we
+will try if we cannot conquer it between us.’
+
+Phyllis’s face cleared up in an instant, as she brought the slate to her
+brother.
+
+‘What is this?’ said he; ‘I do not understand.’
+
+‘Compound Addition,’ said Phyllis, ‘I did one with Emily yesterday, and
+this is the second.’
+
+‘Oh! these are marks between the pounds, shillings, and pence,’ said
+Claude, ‘I took them for elevens; well, I do not wonder at your troubles,
+I could not do this sum as it is set.’
+
+‘Could not you, indeed?’ cried Phyllis, quite delighted.
+
+‘No, indeed,’ said Claude. ‘Suppose we set it again, more clearly; but
+how is this? When I was in the schoolroom we always had a sponge
+fastened to the slate.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Phyllis, ‘I had one before Eleanor went, but my string broke,
+and I lost it, and Emily always forgets to give me another. I will run
+and wash the slate in the nursery; but how shall we know what the sum
+is?’
+
+‘Why, I suppose I may look at Ada’s slate, though you must not,’ said
+Claude, laughing to himself at poor little honest simplicity, as he
+applied himself to cut a new point to her very stumpy slate-pencil, and
+she scampered away, and returned in a moment with her clean slate.
+
+‘Oh, how nice and fresh it all looks!’ said she as he set down the clear
+large figures. ‘I cannot think how you can do it so evenly.’
+
+‘Now, Phyl, do not let the pencil scream if you can help it.’
+
+Claude found that Phyllis’s great difficulty was with the farthings. She
+could not understand the fractional figures, and only knew thus far, that
+‘Emily said it never meant four.’
+
+Claude began explaining, but his first attempt was far too scientific.
+Phyllis gave a desponding sigh, looking so mystified, that he began to
+believe that she was hopelessly dull, and to repent of having offered to
+help her; but at last, by means of dividing a card into four pieces, he
+succeeded in making her comprehend him, and her eyes grew bright with the
+pleasure of understanding.
+
+Even then the difficulties were not conquered, her addition was very
+slow, and dividing by twelve and twenty seemed endless work; at length
+the last figure of the pounds was set down, the slate was compared with
+Adeline’s, and the sum pronounced to be right. Phyllis capered up to the
+kitten and tossed it up in the air in her joy, then coming slowly back to
+her brother, she said with a strange, awkward air, hanging down her head,
+‘Claude, I’ll tell you what—’
+
+‘Well, what?’ said Claude.
+
+‘I should like to kiss you.’
+
+Then away she bounded, clattered down stairs, and flew across the lawn to
+tell every one she met that Claude had helped her to do her sum, and that
+it was quite right.
+
+‘Did you expect that it would be too hard for him, Phyl?’ said Jane,
+laughing.
+
+‘No,’ said Phyllis, ‘but he said he could not do it as it was set.’
+
+‘And whose fault was that?’ said Jane.
+
+‘Oh! but he showed me how to set it better,’ said Phyllis, ‘and he said
+that when he learnt the beginning of fractions, he thought them as hard
+as I do.’
+
+‘Fractions!’ said Jane, ‘you do not fancy you have come to fractions yet!
+Fine work you will make of them when you do!’
+
+In the evening, as soon as the children were gone to bed, Jane took a
+paper out of her work-basket, saying, ‘There, Emily, is my account of
+Phyl’s scrapes through this whole week; I told you I should write them
+all down.’
+
+‘How kind!’ muttered Claude.
+
+Regardless of her brother, who had not looked up from his book, Jane
+began reading her list of poor Phyllis’s misadventures. ‘On Monday she
+tore her frock by climbing a laurel-tree, to look at a blackbird’s nest.’
+
+‘I gave her leave,’ said Emily. ‘Rachel had ordered her not to climb;
+and she was crying because she could not see the nest that Wat Greenwood
+had found.’
+
+‘On Tuesday she cried over her French grammar, and tore a leaf out of the
+old spelling-book.’
+
+‘That was nearly out before,’ said Emily, ‘Maurice and Redgie spoilt that
+long ago.’
+
+‘I do not know of anything on Wednesday, but on Thursday she threw Ada
+down the steps out of the nursery.’
+
+‘Oh! that accounts for the dreadful screaming that I heard,’ said Claude;
+‘I forgot to ask the meaning of it.’
+
+‘I am sure it was Phyl that was the most dismayed, and cried the
+loudest,’ said Lily.
+
+‘That she always does,’ said Jane. ‘On Friday we had an uproar in the
+schoolroom about her hemming, and on Saturday she tumbled into a wet
+ditch, and tore her bonnet in the brambles; on Sunday, she twisted her
+ancles together at church.’
+
+‘Well, there I did chance to observe her,’ said Lily, ‘there seemed to be
+a constant struggle between her ancles and herself, they were continually
+coming lovingly together, but were separated the next moment.’
+
+‘And to-day this sum,’ said Jane; ‘seven scrapes in one week! I really
+am of opinion, as Rachel says when she is angry, that school is the best
+place for her.’
+
+‘I think so too,’ said Claude.
+
+‘I do not know,’ said Emily, ‘she is very troublesome, but—’
+
+‘Oh, Claude!’ cried Lily, ‘you do not mean that you would have that poor
+dear merry Master Phyl sent to school, she would pine away like a wild
+bird in a cage; but papa will never think of such a thing.’
+
+‘If I thought of her being sent to school,’ said Claude, ‘it would be to
+shield her from—the rule of love.’
+
+‘Oh! you think we are too indulgent,’ said Emily; ‘perhaps we are, but
+you know we cannot torment a poor child all day long.’
+
+‘If you call the way you treat her indulgent, I should like to know what
+you call severe.’
+
+‘What do you mean, Claude?’ said Emily.
+
+‘I call your indulgence something like the tender mercies of the wicked,’
+said Claude. ‘On a fine day, when every one is taking their pleasure in
+the garden, to shut an unhappy child up in the schoolroom, with a hard
+sum that you have not taken the trouble to teach her how to do, and late
+in the day, when no one’s head is clear for difficult arithmetic—’
+
+‘Hard sum do you call it?’ said Jane.
+
+‘Indeed I explained it to her,’ said Emily.
+
+‘And well she understood you,’ said Claude.
+
+‘She might have learnt if she had attended,’ said Emily; ‘Ada understood
+clearly, with the same explanation.’
+
+‘And do not you be too proud of the effect of your instructions, Claude,’
+said Jane, ‘for when honest Phyl came into the garden, she did not know
+farthings from fractions.’
+
+‘And pray, Mrs. Senior Wrangler,’ said Claude, ‘will you tell me where is
+the difference between a half-penny and half a penny?’
+
+After a good laugh at Jane’s expense, Emily went on, ‘Now, Claude, I will
+tell you how it happened; Phyllis is so slow, and dawdles over her
+lessons so long, that it is quite a labour to hear her; Ada is quick
+enough, but if you were to hear Phyllis say one column of spelling, you
+would know what misery is. Then before she has half finished, the clock
+strikes one, it is time to read, and the lessons are put off till the
+afternoon. I certainly did not know that she was about her sum all that
+time, or I would have sent her out as I did on Saturday.’
+
+‘And the reading at one is as fixed as fate,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Oh, no!’ said Jane, ‘when we were about old “Russell,” we did not begin
+till nearly two, but since we have been reading this book, Lily will
+never let us rest till we begin; she walks up and down, and hurries and
+worries and—’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Emily, in a murmuring voice, ‘we should do better if Lily
+would not make such a point of that one thing; but she never minds what
+else is cut short, and she never thinks of helping me. It never seems to
+enter her head how much I have on my hands, and no one does anything to
+help me.’
+
+‘Oh, Emily! you never asked me,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I knew you would not like it,’ said Emily. ‘No, it is not my way to
+complain, people may see how to help me if they choose to do it.’
+
+‘Lily, Lily, take care,’ said Claude, in a low voice; ‘is not the rule
+you admire, the rule of love of yourself?’
+
+‘Oh, Claude!’ returned Lily, ‘do not say so, you know it was Emily that I
+called an example of it, not myself, and see how forbearing she has been.
+Now I see that I am really wanted, I will help. It must be love, not
+duty, that calls me to the schoolroom, for no one ever said that was my
+province.’
+
+‘Poor duty! you give it a very narrow boundary.’
+
+Lilias, who, to say the truth, had been made more careful of her own
+conduct, by the wish to establish her principle, really betook herself to
+the schoolroom for an hour every morning, with a desire to be useful.
+She thought she did great things in undertaking those tasks of Phyllis’s
+which Emily most disliked. But Lilias was neither patient nor humble
+enough to be a good teacher, though she could explain difficult rules in
+a sensible way. She could not, or would not, understand the difference
+between dulness and inattention; her sharp hasty manner would frighten
+away all her pupil’s powers of comprehension; she sometimes fell into the
+great error of scolding, when Phyllis was doing her best, and the poor
+child’s tears flowed more frequently than ever.
+
+Emily’s gentle manner made her instructions far more agreeable, though
+she was often neither clear nor correct in her explanations; she was
+contented if the lessons were droned through in any manner, so long as
+she could say they were done; she disliked a disturbance, and overlooked
+or half corrected mistakes rather than cause a cry. Phyllis naturally
+preferred being taught by her, and Lily was vexed and unwilling to
+persevere. She went to the schoolroom expecting to be annoyed, created
+vexation for herself, and taught in anything but a loving spirit. Still,
+however, the thought of Claude, and the wish to do more than her duty,
+kept her constant to her promise, and her love of seeing things well done
+was useful, though sadly counterbalanced by her deficiency in temper and
+patience.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+VILLAGE GOSSIP
+
+
+ ‘The deeds we do, the words we say,
+ Into still air they seem to fleet;
+ We count them past,
+ But they shall last.’
+
+SOON after Easter, Claude went to Oxford. He was much missed by his
+sisters, who wanted him to carve for them at luncheon, to escort them
+when they rode or walked, to hear their music, talk over their books,
+advise respecting their drawings, and criticise Lily’s verses. A new
+subject of interest was, however, arising for them in the neighbours who
+were shortly expected to arrive at Broom Hill, a house which had lately
+been built in a hamlet about a mile and a half from the New Court.
+
+These new comers were the family of a barrister of the name of Weston,
+who had taken the house for the sake of his wife, her health having been
+much injured by her grief at the loss of two daughters in the scarlet
+fever. Two still remained, a grown-up young lady, and a girl of eleven
+years old, and the Miss Mohuns learnt with great delight that they should
+have near neighbours of their own age. They had never had any young
+companions as young ladies were scarce among their acquaintance, and they
+had not seen their cousin, Lady Florence Devereux, since they were
+children.
+
+It was with great satisfaction that Emily and Lilias set out with their
+father to make the first visit, and they augured well from their first
+sight of Mrs. Weston and her daughters. Mrs. Weston was alone, her
+daughters being out walking, and Lily spent the greater part of the visit
+in silence, though her mind was made up in the first ten minutes, as she
+told Emily on leaving the house, ‘that Miss Weston’s tastes were in
+complete accordance with her own.’
+
+‘Rapid judgment,’ said Emily. ‘Love before first sight. But Mrs. Weston
+is a very sweet person.’
+
+‘And, Emily, did you see the music-book open at “Angels ever bright and
+fair?” If Miss Weston sings that as I imagine it!’
+
+‘How could you see what was in the music-book at the other end of the
+room? I only saw it was a beautiful piano. And what handsome furniture!
+it made me doubly ashamed of our faded carpet and chairs, almost as old
+as the house itself.’
+
+‘Emily!’ said Lily, in her most earnest tones, ‘I would not change one of
+those dear old chairs for a king’s ransom!’
+
+The visit was in a short time returned, and though it was but a formal
+morning call, Lilias found her bright expectations realised by the
+sweetness of Alethea Weston’s manners, and the next time they met it was
+a determined thing in her mind that, as Claude would have said, they had
+sworn an eternal friendship.
+
+She had the pleasure of lionising the two sisters over the Old Court,
+telling all she knew and all she imagined about the siege, Sir Maurice
+Mohun, and his faithful servant, Walter Greenwood. ‘Miss Weston,’ said
+she in conclusion, ‘have you read _Old Mortality_?’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Alethea, amused at the question.
+
+‘Because they say I am as bad as Lady Margaret about the king’s visit.’
+
+‘I have not heard the story often enough to think so,’ said Miss Weston,
+‘I will warn you if I do.’
+
+In the meantime Phyllis and Adeline were equally charmed with Marianne,
+though shocked at her ignorance of country manners, and, indeed, Alethea
+was quite diverted with Lily’s pity at the discovery that she had never
+before been in the country in the spring. ‘What,’ she cried, ‘have you
+never seen the tufts of red on the hazel, nor the fragrant golden palms,
+and never heard the blackbird rush twittering out of the hedge, nor the
+first nightingale’s note, nor the nightjar’s low chirr, nor the
+chattering of the rooks? O what a store of sweet memories you have lost!
+Why, how can you understand the beginning of the Allegro?’
+
+Both the Miss Westons had so much pleasure in making acquaintance with
+‘these delights,’ as quite to compensate for their former ignorance, and
+soon the New Court rang with their praises. Mr. Mohun thought very
+highly of the whole family, and rejoiced in such society for his
+daughters, and they speedily became so well acquainted, that it was the
+ordinary custom of the Westons to take luncheon at the New Court on
+Sunday. On her side, however, Alethea Weston felt some reluctance to
+become intimate with the young ladies of the New Court. She was pleased
+with Emily’s manners, interested by Lily’s earnestness and simplicity,
+and thought Jane a clever and amusing little creature, but even their
+engaging qualities gave her pain, by reminding her of the sisters she had
+lost, or by making her think how they would have liked them. A country
+house and neighbours like these had been the objects of many visions of
+their childhood, and now all the sweet sights and sounds around her only
+made her think how she should have enjoyed them a year ago. She felt
+almost jealous of Marianne’s liking for her new friends, lest they should
+steal her heart from Emma and Lucy; but knowing that these were morbid
+and unthankful feelings, she struggled against them, and though she
+missed her sisters even more than when her mother and Marianne were in
+greater need of her attention, she let no sign of her sorrowful feeling
+appear, and seeing that Marianne was benefited in health and spirits, by
+intercourse with young companions, she gave no hint of her disinclination
+to join in the walks and other amusements of the Miss Mohuns.
+
+She also began to take interest in the poor people. By Mrs. Weston’s
+request, Mr. Devereux had pointed out the families which were most in
+need of assistance, and Alethea made it her business to find out the best
+way of helping them. She visited the village school with Lilias, and
+when requested by her and by the Rector to give her aid in teaching, she
+did not like to refuse what might be a duty, though she felt very
+diffident of her powers of instruction. Marianne, like Phyllis and
+Adeline, became a Sunday scholar, and was catechised with the others in
+church. Both Mr. Mohun and his nephew thought very highly of the family,
+and the latter was particularly glad that Lily should have some older
+person to assist her in those parish matters which he left partly in her
+charge.
+
+Mr. Devereux had been Rector of Beechcroft about a year and a half, and
+had hitherto been much liked. His parishioners had known him from a boy,
+and were interested about him, and though very young, there was something
+about him that gained their respect. Almost all his plans were going on
+well, and things were, on the whole, in a satisfactory state, though no
+one but Lilias expected even Cousin Robert to make a Dreamland of
+Beechcroft, and there were days when he looked worn and anxious, and the
+girls suspected that some one was behaving ill.
+
+‘Have you a headache, Robert?’ asked Emily, a few evenings before
+Whit-Sunday, ‘you have not spoken three words this evening.’
+
+‘Not at all, thank you,’ said Mr. Devereux, smiling, ‘you need not think
+to make me your victim, now you have no Claude to nurse.’
+
+‘Then if it is not bodily, it is mental,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I am in a difficulty about the christening of Mrs. Naylor’s child.’
+
+‘Naylor the blacksmith?’ said Jane. ‘I thought it was high time for it
+to be christened. It must be six weeks old.’
+
+‘Is it not to be on Whit-Sunday?’ said Lily, disconsolately.
+
+‘Oh no! Mrs. Naylor will not hear of bringing the child on a Sunday, and
+I could hardly make her think it possible to bring it on Whit-Tuesday.’
+
+‘Why did you not insist?’ said Lily.
+
+‘Perhaps I might, if there was no other holy day at hand, or if there was
+not another difficulty, a point on which I cannot give way.’
+
+‘Oh! the godfathers and godmothers,’ said Lily, ‘does she want that
+charming brother of hers, Edward Gage?’
+
+‘Yes, and what is worse, Edward Gage’s dissenting wife, and Dick Rodd,
+who shows less sense of religion than any one in the parish, and has
+never been confirmed.’
+
+‘Could you make them hear reason?’
+
+‘They were inclined to be rather impertinent,’ said Mr. Devereux. ‘Old
+Mrs. Gage—’
+
+‘Oh!’ interrupted Jane, ‘there is no hope for you if the sour Gage is in
+the pie.’
+
+‘The sour Gage told me people were not so particular in her younger days,
+and perhaps they should not have the child christened at all, since I was
+such a _contrary_ gentleman. Tom Naylor was not at home, I am to see him
+to-morrow.’
+
+‘Well, I do not think Tom Naylor is as bad as the rest,’ said Lily; ‘he
+would have been tolerable, if he had married any one but Martha Gage.’
+
+‘Yes, he is an open good-natured fellow, and I have hopes of making an
+impression on him.’
+
+‘If not,’ said Lily, ‘I hope papa will take away his custom.’
+
+‘What?’ said Mr. Mohun, who always heard any mention of himself. Mr.
+Devereux repeated his history, and discussed the matter with his uncle,
+only once interrupted by an inquiry from Jane about the child’s name, a
+point on which she could gain no intelligence. His report the next day
+was not decidedly unfavourable, though he scarcely hoped the christening
+would be so soon as Tuesday. He had not seen the father, and suspected
+he had purposely kept out of the way.
+
+Jane, disappointed that the baby’s name remained a mystery, resolved to
+set out on a voyage of discovery. Accordingly, as soon as her cousin was
+gone, she asked Emily if she had not been saying that Ada wanted some
+more cotton for her sampler.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Emily, ‘but I am not going to walk all the way to Mrs.
+Appleton’s this afternoon.’
+
+‘Shall I go?’ said Jane. ‘Ada, run and fetch your pattern.’ Emily and
+Ada were much obliged by Jane’s disinterested offer, and in a quarter of
+an hour Ada’s thoughts and hands were busy in Mrs. Appleton’s drawer of
+many-coloured cotton.
+
+‘What a pity this is about Mrs. Naylor’s baby,’ began Jane.
+
+‘It is a sad story indeed, Miss Jane, I am sure it must be grievous to
+Mr. Devereux,’ said Mrs. Appleton. ‘Betsy Wall said he had been there
+three times about it.’
+
+‘Ah! we all know that Walls have ears,’ said Jane; ‘how that Betsy does
+run about gossiping!’
+
+‘Yes, Miss Jane, there she bides all day long at the stile gaping; not a
+stitch does she do for her mother; I cannot tell what is to be the end of
+it.’
+
+‘And do you know what the child’s name is to be, Mrs. Appleton?’
+
+‘No, Miss Jane,’ answered Mrs. Appleton. ‘Betsy did say they talked of
+naming him after his uncle, Edward Gage, only Mr. Devereux would not let
+him stand.’
+
+‘No,’ said Jane. ‘Since he married that dissenting wife he never comes
+near the church; he is too much like the sour Gage, as we call his
+mother, to be good for much. But, after all, he is not so bad as Dick
+Rodd, who has never been confirmed, and has never shown any sense of
+religion in his life.’
+
+‘Yes, Miss, Dick Rodd is a sad fellow: did you hear what a row there was
+at the Mohun Arms last week, Miss Jane?’
+
+‘Aye,’ said Jane, ‘and papa says he shall certainly turn Dick Rodd out of
+the house as soon as the lease is out, and it is only till next
+Michaelmas twelve-months.’
+
+‘Yes, Miss, as I said to Betsy Wall, it would be more for their interest
+to behave well.’
+
+‘Indeed it would,’ said Jane. ‘Robert and papa were talking of having
+their horses shod at Stoney Bridge, if Tom Naylor will be so obstinate,
+only papa does not like to give Tom up if he can help it, because his
+father was so good, and Tom would not be half so bad if he had not
+married one of the Gages.’
+
+‘Here is Cousin Robert coming down the lane,’ said Ada, who had chosen
+her cotton, and was gazing from the door. Jane gave a violent start,
+took a hurried leave of Mrs. Appleton, and set out towards home; she
+could not avoid meeting her cousin.
+
+‘Oh, Jenny! have you been enjoying a gossip with your great ally?’ said
+he.
+
+‘We have only been buying pink cotton,’ said Ada, whose conscience was
+clear.
+
+‘Ah!’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘Beechcroft affairs would soon stand still,
+without those useful people, Mrs. Appleton, Miss Wall, and Miss Jane
+Mohun,’ and he passed on. Jane felt her face colouring, his freedom from
+suspicion made her feel very guilty, but the matter soon passed out of
+her mind.
+
+Blithe Whit-Sunday came, the five Miss Mohuns appeared in white frocks,
+new bonnets were plenty, the white tippets of the children, and the
+bright shawls of the mothers, made the village look gay; Wat Greenwood
+stuck a pink between his lips, and the green boughs of hazel and birch
+decked the dark oak carvings in the church.
+
+And Whit-Monday came. At half-past ten the rude music of the band of the
+Friendly Society came pealing from the top of the hill, then appeared two
+tall flags, crowned with guelder roses and peonies, then the great blue
+drum, the clarionet blown by red-waist-coated and red-faced Mr. Appleton,
+the three flutes and the triangle, all at their loudest, causing some of
+the spectators to start, and others to dance. Then behold the whole
+procession of labourers, in white round frocks, blue ribbons in their
+hats, and tall blue staves in their hands. In the rear, the confused
+mob, women and children, cheerful faces and mirthful sounds everywhere.
+These were hushed as the flags were lowered to pass under the low-roofed
+gateway of the churchyard, and all was still, except the trampling of
+feet on the stone floor. Then the service began, the responses were made
+in full and hearty tones, almost running into a chant, the old 133rd
+Psalm was sung as loudly and as badly as usual, a very short but very
+earnest sermon was preached, and forth came the troop again.
+
+Mr. Devereux always dined with the club in a tent, at the top of the
+hill, but his uncle made him promise to come to a second dinner at the
+New Court in the evening.
+
+‘Robert looks anxious,’ said Lily, as she parted with him after the
+evening service; ‘I am afraid something is going wrong.’
+
+‘Trust me for finding out what it is,’ said Jane.
+
+‘No, no, Jenny, do not ask him,’ said Lily; ‘if he tells us to relieve
+his mind, I am very glad he should make friends of us, but do not ask.
+Let us talk of other things to put it out of his head, whatever it may
+be.’
+
+Jane soon heard more of the cause of the depression of her cousin’s
+spirits than even she had any desire to do. After dinner, the girls were
+walking in the garden, enjoying the warmth of the evening, when Mr.
+Devereux came up to her and drew her aside from the rest, telling her
+that he wished to speak to her.
+
+‘Oh!’ said Jane, ‘when am I to meet you at school again? You never told
+me which chapter I was to prepare; I cannot think what would become of
+your examinations if it was not for me, you could not get an answer to
+one question in three.’
+
+‘That was not what I wished to speak to you about,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+‘What had you been saying to Mrs. Appleton when I met you at her door on
+Saturday?’
+
+The colour rushed into Jane’s cheeks, but she replied without hesitation,
+‘Oh! different things, _La pluie et le beau temps_, just as usual.’
+
+‘Cannot you remember anything more distinctly?’
+
+‘I always make a point of forgetting what I talk about,’ said Jane,
+trying to laugh.
+
+‘Now, Jane, let me tell you what has happened in the village—as I came
+down the hill from the club-dinner—’
+
+‘Oh,’ said Jane, hoping to make a diversion, ‘Wat Greenwood came back
+about a quarter of an hour ago, and he—’
+
+Mr. Devereux proceeded without attending to her, ‘As I came down the hill
+from the club-dinner, old Mrs. Gage came out of Naylor’s house, and her
+daughter with her, in great anger, calling me to account for having
+spoken of her in a most unbecoming way, calling her the sour Gage, and
+trying to set the Squire against them.’
+
+‘Oh, that abominable chattering woman!’ Jane exclaimed; ‘and Betsy Wall
+too, I saw her all alive about something. What a nuisance such people
+are!’
+
+‘In short,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘I heard an exaggerated account of all
+that passed here on the subject the other day. Now, Jane, am I doing you
+any injustice in thinking that it must have been through you that this
+history went abroad into the village?’
+
+‘Well,’ said Jane, ‘I am sure you never told us that it was any secret.
+When a story is openly told to half a dozen people they cannot be
+expected to keep it to themselves.’
+
+‘I spoke uncharitably and incautiously,’ said he, ‘I am willing to
+confess, but it is nevertheless my duty to set before you the great
+matter that this little fire has kindled.’
+
+‘Why, it cannot have done any great harm, can it?’ asked Jane, the
+agitation of her voice and laugh betraying that she was not quite so
+careless as she wished to appear. ‘Only the sour Gage will ferment a
+little.’
+
+‘Oh, Jane! I did not expect that you would treat this matter so
+lightly.’
+
+‘But tell me, what harm has it done?’ asked she.
+
+‘Do you consider it nothing that the poor child should remain unbaptized,
+that discord should be brought into the parish, that anger should be on
+the conscience of your neighbour, that he should be driven from the
+church?’
+
+‘Is it as bad as that?’ said Jane.
+
+‘We do not yet see the full extent of the mischief our idle words may
+have done,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+
+‘But it is their own fault, if they will do wrong,’ said Jane; ‘they
+ought not to be in a rage, we said nothing but the truth.’
+
+‘I wish I was clear of the sin,’ said her cousin.
+
+‘And after all,’ said Jane, ‘I cannot see that I was much to blame; I
+only talked to Mrs. Appleton, as I have done scores of times, and no one
+minded it. You only laughed at me on Saturday, and papa and Eleanor
+never scolded me.’
+
+‘You cannot say that no one has ever tried to check you,’ said the
+Rector.
+
+‘And how was I to know that that mischief-maker would repeat it?’ said
+Jane.
+
+‘I do not mean to say,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘that you actually committed a
+greater sin than you may often have done, by talking in a way which you
+knew would displease your father. I know we are too apt to treat lightly
+the beginnings of evil, until some sudden sting makes us feel what a
+serpent we have been fostering. Think this a warning, pray that the evil
+we dread may be averted; but should it ensue, consider it as a punishment
+sent in mercy. It will be better for you not to come to school
+to-morrow; instead of the references you were to have looked out, I had
+rather you read over in a humble spirit the Epistle of St. James.’
+
+Jane’s tears by this time were flowing fast, and finding that she no
+longer attempted to defend herself, her cousin said no more. He joined
+the others, and Jane, escaping to her own room, gave way to a passionate
+fit of crying. Whether her tears were of true sorrow or of anger she
+could not have told herself; she was still sobbing on her bed when the
+darkness came on, and her two little sisters came in on their way to bed
+to wish her good-night.
+
+‘Oh, Jane, Jane! what is the matter? have you been naughty?’ asked the
+little girls in great amazement.
+
+‘Never mind,’ said Jane, shortly; ‘good-night,’ and she sat up and wiped
+away her tears. The children still lingered. ‘Go away, do,’ said she.
+‘Is Robert gone?’
+
+‘No,’ said Phyllis, ‘he is reading the newspaper.’
+
+Phyllis and Adeline left the room, and Jane walked up and down,
+considering whether she should venture to go down to tea; perhaps her
+cousin had waited till the little girls had gone before he spoke to Mr.
+Mohun, or perhaps her red eyes might cause questions on her troubles; she
+was still in doubt when Lily opened the door, a lamp in her hand.
+
+‘My dear Jenny, are you here? Ada told me you were crying, what is the
+matter?’
+
+‘Then you have not heard?’ said Jane.
+
+‘Only Robert began just now, “Poor Jenny, she has been the cause of
+getting us into a very awkward scrape,” but then Ada came to tell me
+about you, and I came away.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Jane, angrily, ‘he will throw all the blame upon me, when I
+am sure it was quite as much the fault of that horrible Mrs. Appleton,
+and papa will be as angry as possible.’
+
+‘But what has happened?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘Oh! that chatterer, that worst of gossipers, has gone and told the
+Naylors and Mrs. Gage all we said about them the other day.’
+
+‘So you told Mrs. Appleton?’ said Lily; ‘so that was the reason you were
+so obliging about the marking thread. Oh, Jane, you had better say no
+more about Mrs. Appleton! And has it done much mischief?’
+
+‘Oh! Mrs. Gage “pitched” into Robert, as Wat Greenwood would say, and
+the christening is off again.’
+
+‘Jane, this is frightful,’ said Lily; ‘I do not wonder that you are
+unhappy.’
+
+‘Well, I daresay it will all come right again,’ said Jane; ‘there will
+only be a little delay, papa and Robert will bring them to their senses
+in time.’
+
+‘Suppose the baby was to die,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Oh, it will not die,’ said Jane, ‘a great fat healthy thing like that
+likely to die indeed!’
+
+‘I cannot make you out, Jane,’ said Lily. ‘If I had done such a thing, I
+do not think I could have a happy minute till it was set right.’
+
+‘Well, I told you I was very sorry,’ said Jane, ‘only I wish they would
+not all be so hard upon me. Robert owns that he should not have said
+such things if he did not wish them to be repeated.’
+
+‘Does he?’ cried Lily. ‘How exactly like Robert that is, to own himself
+in fault when he is obliged to blame others. Jane, how could you hear
+him say such things and not be overcome with shame? And then to turn it
+against him! Oh, Jane, I do not think I can talk to you any more.’
+
+‘I do not mean to say it was not very good of him,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Good of him—what a word!’ cried Lily. ‘Well, good-night, I cannot bear
+to talk to you now. Shall I say anything for you downstairs?’
+
+‘Oh, tell papa and Robert I am very sorry,’ said Jane. ‘I shall not come
+down again, you may leave the lamp.’
+
+On her way downstairs in the dark Lilias was led, by the example of her
+cousin, to reflect that she was not without some share in the mischief
+that had been done; the words which report imputed to Mr. Devereux were
+mostly her own or Jane’s. There was no want of candour in Lily, and as
+soon as she entered the drawing-room she went straight up to her father
+and cousin, and began, ‘Poor Jenny is very unhappy; she desired me to
+tell you how sorry she is. But I really believe that I did the mischief,
+Robert. It was I who said those foolish things that were repeated as if
+you had said them. It is a grievous affair, but who could have thought
+that we were doing so much harm?’
+
+‘Perhaps it may not do any,’ said Emily. ‘The Naylors have a great deal
+of good about them.’
+
+‘They must have more than I suppose, if they can endure what Robert is
+reported to have said of them,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘What did you say, Robert,’ said Lily, ‘did you not tell them all was
+said by your foolish young cousins?’
+
+‘I agreed with you too much to venture on contradicting the report; you
+know I could not even deny having called Mrs. Gage by that name.’
+
+‘Oh, if I could do anything to mend it!’ cried Lily.
+
+But wishes had no effect. Lilias and Jane had to mourn over the full
+extent of harm done by hasty words. After the more respectable men had
+left the Mohun Arms on the evening of Whit-Monday, the rest gave way to
+unrestrained drunkenness, not so much out of reckless self-indulgence, as
+to defy the clergyman and the squire. They came to the front of the
+parsonage, yelled and groaned for some time, and ended by breaking down
+the gate.
+
+This conduct was repeated on Tuesday, and on many Saturdays following;
+some young trees in the churchyard were cut, and abuse of the parson
+written on the walls the idle young men taking this opportunity to
+revenge their own quarrels, caused by Mr. Devereux’s former efforts for
+their reformation.
+
+On Sunday several children were absent from school; all those belonging
+to Farmer Gage’s labourers were taken away, and one man was turned off by
+the farmers for refusing to remove his child.
+
+Now that the war was carried on so openly, Mr. Mohun considered it his
+duty to withdraw his custom from one who chose to set his pastor at
+defiance. He went to the forge, and had a long conversation with the
+blacksmith, but though he was listened to with respect, it was not easy
+to make much impression on an ignorant, hot-tempered man, who had been
+greatly offended, and prided himself on showing that he would support the
+quarrel of his wife and her relations against both squire and parson; and
+though Mr. Mohun did persuade him to own that it was wrong to be at war
+with the clergyman, the effect of his arguments was soon done away with
+by the Gages, and no ground was gained.
+
+Mr. Gage’s farm was unhappily at no great distance from a dissenting
+chapel and school, in the adjoining parish of Stoney Bridge, and thither
+the farmer and blacksmith betook themselves, with many of the cottagers
+of Broom Hill.
+
+One alone of the family of Tom Naylor refused to join him in his dissent,
+and that was his sister, Mrs. Eden, a widow, with one little girl about
+seven years old, who, though in great measure dependent upon him for
+subsistence, knew her duty too well to desert the church, or to take her
+child from school, and continued her even course, toiling hard for bread,
+and uncomplaining, though often munch distressed. All the rest of the
+parish who were not immediately under Mr. Mohun’s influence were in a sad
+state of confusion.
+
+Jane was grieved at heart, but would not confess it, and Lilias was so
+restless and unhappy, that Emily was quite weary of her lamentations.
+Her best comforter was Miss Weston, who patiently listened to her, sighed
+with her over the evident sorrow of the Rector, and the mischief in the
+parish, and proved herself a true friend, by never attempting to
+extenuate her fault.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+THE NEW FRIEND
+
+
+ ‘Maidens should be mild and meek,
+ Swift to hear, and slow to speak.’
+
+MISS WESTON had been much interested by what she heard respecting Mrs.
+Eden, and gladly discovered that she was just the person who could assist
+in some needlework which was required at Broom Hill. She asked Lilias to
+tell her where to find her cottage, and Lily replied by an offer to show
+her the way; Miss Weston hesitated, thinking that perhaps in the present
+state of things Lily had rather not see her; but her doubts were quickly
+removed by this speech, ‘I want to see her particularly. I have been
+there three times without finding her. I think I can set this terrible
+matter right by speaking to her.’
+
+Accordingly, Lilias and Phyllis set out with Alethea and Marianne one
+afternoon to Mrs. Eden’s cottage, which stood at the edge of a long field
+at the top of the hill. Very fast did Lily talk all the way, but she
+grew more silent as she came to the cottage, and knocked at the door; it
+was opened by Mrs. Eden herself, a pale, but rather pretty young woman,
+with a remarkable gentle and pleasing face, and a manner which was almost
+ladylike, although her hands were freshly taken out of the wash-tub. She
+curtsied low, and coloured at the sight of Lilias, set chairs for the
+visitors, and then returned to her work.
+
+‘Oh! Mrs. Eden,’ Lily began, intending to make her explanation, but
+feeling confused, thought it better to wait till her friend’s business
+was settled, and altered her speech into ‘Miss Weston is come to speak to
+you about some work.’
+
+Mrs. Eden looked quite relieved, and Alethea proceeded to appoint the day
+for her coming to Broom Hill, and arrange some small matters, during
+which Lily not only settled what to say, but worked herself into a fit of
+impatience at the length of Alethea’s instructions. When they were
+concluded, however, and there was a pause, her words failed her, and she
+wished that she was miles from the cottage, or that she had never
+mentioned her intentions. At last she stammered out, ‘Oh! Mrs. Eden—I
+wanted to speak to you about—about Mr. Devereux and your brother.’
+
+Mrs. Eden bent over her wash-tub, Miss Weston examined the shells on the
+chimney-piece, Marianne and Phyllis listened with all their ears, and
+poor Lily was exceedingly uncomfortable.
+
+‘I wished to tell you—I do not think—I do not mean—It was not his saying.
+Indeed, he did not say those things about the Gages.’
+
+‘I told my brother I did not think Mr. Devereux would go for to say such
+a thing,’ said Mrs. Eden, as much confused as Lily.
+
+‘Oh! that was right, Mrs. Eden. The mischief was all my making and
+Jane’s. We said those foolish things, and they were repeated as if it
+was he. Oh! do tell your brother so, Mrs. Eden. It was very good of you
+to think it was not Cousin Robert. Pray tell Tom Naylor. I cannot bear
+that things should go on in this dreadful way.’
+
+‘Indeed, Miss, I am very sorry,’ said Mrs. Eden.
+
+‘But, Mrs Eden, I am sure that would set it right again,’ said Lily, ‘are
+not you? I would do anything to have that poor baby christened.’
+
+Lily’s confidence melted away as she saw that Mrs. Eden’s tears were
+falling fast, and she ended with, ‘Only tell them, and we shall see what
+will happen.’
+
+‘Very well, Miss Lilias,’ said Mrs. Eden. ‘I am very sorry.’
+
+‘Let us hope that time and patience will set things right,’ said Miss
+Weston, to relieve the embarrassment of both parties. ‘Your brother must
+soon see that Mr. Devereux only wishes to do his duty.’
+
+Alethea skilfully covered Lily’s retreat, and the party took leave of
+Mrs. Eden, and turned into their homeward path.
+
+Lily at first seemed disposed to be silent, and Miss Weston therefore
+amused herself with listening to the chatter of the little girls as they
+walked on before them.
+
+‘There are only thirty-six days to the holidays,’ said Phyllis; ‘Ada and
+I keep a paper in the nursery with the account of the number of days. We
+shall be so glad when Claude, and Maurice, and Redgie come home.’
+
+‘Are they not very boisterous?’ said Marianne.
+
+‘Not Maurice,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘No, indeed,’ said Lily, ‘Maurice is like nobody else. He takes up some
+scientific pursuit each time he comes home, and cares for nothing else
+for some time, and then quite forgets it. He is an odd-looking boy too,
+thick and sturdy, with light flaxen hair, and dark, overhanging eyebrows,
+and he makes the most extraordinary grimaces.’
+
+‘And Reginald?’ said Alethea.
+
+‘Oh! Redgie is a noble-looking fellow. But just eleven, and taller than
+Jane. His complexion so fair, yet fresh and boyish, and his eyes that
+beautiful blue that Ada’s are—real blue. Then his hair, in dark brown
+waves, with a rich auburn shine. The old knights must have been just
+like Redgie. And Claude—Oh! Miss Weston, have you ever seen Claude?’
+
+‘No, but I have seen your eldest brother.’
+
+‘William? Why, he has been in Canada these three years. Where could you
+have seen him?’
+
+‘At Brighton, about four years ago.’
+
+‘Ah! the year before he went. I remember that his regiment was there.
+Well, it is curious that you should know him; and did you ever hear of
+Harry, the brother that we lost?’
+
+‘I remember Captain Mohun’s being called away to Oxford by his illness,’
+said Alethea.
+
+‘Ah, yes! William was the only one of us who was with him, even papa was
+not there. His illness was so short.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Alethea, ‘I think it was on a Tuesday that Captain Mohun left
+Brighton, and we saw his death in the paper on Saturday.’
+
+‘William only arrived the evening that he died. Papa was gone to Ireland
+to see about Cousin Rotherwood’s property. Robert, not knowing that,
+wrote to him at Beechcroft; Eleanor forwarded the letter without opening
+it, and so we knew nothing till Robert came to tell us that all was
+over.’
+
+‘Without any preparation?’
+
+‘With none. Harry had left home about ten days before, quite well, and
+looking so handsome. You know what a fine-looking person William is.
+Well, Harry was very like him, only not so tall and strong, with the same
+clear hazel eyes, and more pink in his cheeks—fairer altogether. Then
+Harry wrote, saying that he had caught one of his bad colds. We did not
+think much of it, for he was always having coughs. We heard no more for
+a week, and then one morning Eleanor was sent for out of the schoolroom,
+and there was Robert come to tell us. Oh! it was such a thunderbolt.
+This was what did the mischief. You know papa and mamma being from home
+so long, the elder boys had no settled place for the holidays; sometimes
+they stayed with one friend, sometimes with another, and so no one saw
+enough of them to find out how delicate poor Harry really was. I think
+papa had been anxious the only winter they were at home together, and
+Harry had been talked to and advised to take care; but in the summer and
+autumn he was well, and did not think about it. He went to Oxford by the
+coach—it was a bitterly cold frosty day—there was a poor woman outside,
+shivering and looking very ill, and Harry changed places with her. He
+was horribly chilled, but thinking he had only a common cold, he took no
+care. Robert, coming to Oxford about a week after, found him very ill,
+and wrote to papa and William, but William scarcely came in time. Harry
+just knew him, and that was all. He could not speak, and died that
+night. Then William stayed at Oxford to receive papa, and Robert came to
+tell us.’
+
+‘It must have been a terrible shock.’
+
+‘Such a loss—he was so very good and clever. Every one looked up to
+him—William almost as much as the younger ones. He never was in any
+scrape, had all sorts of prizes at Eton, besides getting his scholarship
+before he was seventeen.’
+
+Whenever Lily could get Miss Weston alone, it was her way to talk in this
+manner. She loved the sound of her own voice so well, that she was never
+better satisfied than when engrossing the whole conversation. Having
+nothing to talk of but her books, her poor people, and her family, she
+gave her friend the full benefit of all she could say on each subject,
+while Alethea had kindness enough to listen with real interest to her
+long rambling discourses, well pleased to see her happy.
+
+The next time they met, Lilias told her all she knew or imagined
+respecting Eleanor, and of her own debate with Claude, and ended, ‘Now,
+Miss Weston, tell me your opinion, which would you choose for a sister,
+Eleanor or Emily?’
+
+‘I have some experience of Miss Mohun’s delightful manners, and none of
+Mrs. Hawkesworth’s, so I am no fair judge,’ said Alethea.
+
+‘I really have done justice to Eleanor’s sterling goodness,’ said Lily.
+‘Now what should you think?’
+
+‘I can hardly imagine greater proofs of affection than Mrs. Hawkesworth
+has given you,’ said Miss Weston, smiling.
+
+‘It was because it was her duty,’ said Lilias. ‘You have only heard the
+facts, but you cannot judge of her ways and looks. Now only think, when
+Frank came home, after seven years of perils by field and flood—there she
+rose up to receive him as if he had been Mr. Nobody making a morning
+call. And all the time before they were married, I do believe she
+thought more of showing Emily how much tea we were to use in a week than
+anything else.’
+
+‘Perhaps some people might have admired her self-command,’ said Alethea.
+
+‘Self-command, the refuge of the insensible? And now, I told you about
+dear Harry the other day. He was Eleanor’s especial brother, yet his
+death never seemed to make any difference to her. She scarcely cried:
+she heard our lessons as usual, talked in her quiet voice—showed no
+tokens of feeling.’
+
+‘Was her health as good as before?’ asked Miss Weston.
+
+‘She was not ill,’ said Lily; ‘if she had, I should have been satisfied.
+She certainly could not take long walks that winter, but she never likes
+walking. People said she looked ill, but I do not know.’
+
+‘Shall I tell you what I gather from your history?’
+
+‘Pray do.’
+
+‘Then do not think me very perverse, if I say that perhaps the grief she
+then repressed may have weighed down her spirits ever since, so that you
+can hardly remember any alteration.’
+
+‘That I cannot,’ said Lily. ‘She is always the same, but then she ought
+to have been more cheerful before his death.’
+
+‘Did not you lose him soon after your mother?’ said Alethea.
+
+‘Two whole years,’ said Lily. ‘Oh! and aunt, Robert too, and Frank went
+to India the beginning of that year; yes, there was enough to depress
+her, but I never thought of grief going on in that quiet dull way for so
+many years.’
+
+‘You would prefer one violent burst, and then forgetfulness?’
+
+‘Not exactly,’ said Lily; ‘but I should like a little evidence of it. If
+it is really strong, it cannot be hid.’
+
+Little did Lily think of the grief that sat heavy upon the spirit of
+Alethea, who answered—‘Some people can do anything that they consider
+their duty.’
+
+‘Duty: what, are you a duty lover?’ exclaimed Lilias. ‘I never suspected
+it, because you are not disagreeable.’
+
+‘Thank you,’ said Alethea, laughing, ‘your compliment rather surprises
+me, for I thought you told me that your brother Claude was on the duty
+side of the question.’
+
+‘He thinks he is,’ said Lily, ‘but love is his real motive of action, as
+I can prove to you. Poor Claude had a very bad illness when he was about
+three years old; and ever since he has been liable to terrible headaches,
+and he is not at all strong. Of course he cannot always study hard, and
+when first he went to school, every one scolded him for being idle. I
+really believe he might have done more, but then he was so clever that he
+could keep up without any trouble, and, as Robert says, that was a great
+temptation; but still papa was not satisfied, because he said Claude
+could do better. So said Harry. Oh! you cannot think what a person
+Harry was, as high-spirited as William, and as gentle as Claude; and in
+his kind way he used to try hard to make Claude exert himself, but it
+never would do—he was never in mischief, but he never took pains. Then
+Harry died, and when Claude came home, and saw how changed things were,
+how gray papa’s hair had turned, and how silent and melancholy William
+had grown, he set himself with all his might to make up to papa as far as
+he could. He thought only of doing what Harry would have wished, and
+papa himself says that he has done wonders. I cannot see that Henry
+himself could have been more than Claude is now; he has not spared
+himself in the least, his tutor says, and he would have had the Newcastle
+Scholarship last year, if he had not worked so hard that he brought on
+one of his bad illnesses, and was obliged to come home. Now I am sure
+that he has acted from love, for it was as much his duty to take pains
+while Harry was alive as afterwards.’
+
+‘Certainly,’ said Miss Weston, ‘but what does he say himself?’
+
+‘Oh! he never will talk of himself,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Have you not overlooked one thing which may be the truth,’ said Alethea,
+as if she was asking for information, ‘that duty and love may be
+identical? Is not St. Paul’s description of charity very like the duty
+to our neighbour?’
+
+‘The practice is the same, but not the theory,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Now, what is called duty, seems to me to be love doing unpleasant work,’
+said Miss Weston; ‘love disguised under another name, when obliged to act
+in a way which seems, only seems, out of accordance with its real title.’
+
+‘That is all very well for those who have love,’ said Lily. ‘Some have
+not who do their duty conscientiously—another word which I hate, by the
+bye.’
+
+‘They have love in a rough coat, perhaps,’ said Alethea, ‘and I should
+expect it soon to put on a smoother one.’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+SIR MAURICE
+
+
+ ‘Shall thought was his, in after time,
+ Thus to be hitched into a rhyme;
+ The simple sire could only boast
+ That he was loyal to his cost,
+ The banished race of kings revered,
+ And lost his land.’
+
+THE holidays arrived, and with them the three brothers, for during the
+first few weeks of the Oxford vacation Claude accompanied Lord Rotherwood
+on visits to some college friends, and only came home the same day as the
+younger ones.
+
+Maurice did not long leave his sisters in doubt as to what was to be his
+reigning taste, for as soon as dinner was over, he made Jane find the
+volume of the Encyclopædia containing Entomology, and with his elbows on
+the table, proceeded to study it so intently, that the young ladies gave
+up all hopes of rousing him from it. Claude threw himself down on the
+sofa to enjoy the luxury of a desultory talk with his sisters; and
+Reginald, his head on the floor, and his heels on a chair, talked loud
+and fast enough for all three, with very little regard to what the
+damsels might be saying.
+
+‘Oh! Claude,’ said Lily, ‘you cannot think how much we like Miss Weston,
+she lets us call her Alethea, and—’
+
+Here came an interruption from Mr. Mohun, who perceiving the position of
+Reginald’s dusty shoes, gave a loud ‘Ah—h!’ as if he was scolding a dog,
+and ordered him to change them directly.
+
+‘Here, Phyl!’ said Reginald, kicking off his shoes, ‘just step up and
+bring my shippers, Rachel will give them to you.’
+
+Away went Phyllis, well pleased to be her brother’s fag.
+
+‘Ah! Redgie does not know the misfortune that hangs over him,’ said
+Emily.
+
+‘What?’ said Reginald, ‘will not the Baron let Viper come to the house?’
+
+‘Worse,’ said Emily, ‘Rachel is going away.’
+
+‘Rachel?’ cried Claude, starting up from the sofa.
+
+‘Rachel?’ said Maurice, without raising his eyes.
+
+‘Rachel! Rachel! botheration!’ roared Reginald, with a wondrous caper.
+
+‘Yes, Rachel,’ said Emily; ‘Rachel, who makes so much of you, for no
+reason that I could ever discover, but because you are the most
+troublesome.’
+
+‘You will never find any one to mend your jackets, and dress your wounds
+like Rachel,’ said Lily, ‘and make a baby of you instead of a great
+schoolboy. What will become of you, Redgie?’
+
+‘What will become of any of us?’ said Claude; ‘I thought Rachel was the
+mainspring of the house.’
+
+‘Have you quarrelled with her, Emily?’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Nonsense,’ said Emily, ‘it is only that her brother has lost his wife,
+and wants her to take care of his children.’
+
+‘Well,’ said Reginald, ‘her master has lost his wife, and wants her to
+take care of his children.’
+
+‘I cannot think what I shall do,’ said Ada; ‘I cry about it every night
+when I go to bed. What is to be done?’
+
+‘Send her brother a new wife,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘Send him Emily,’ said Reginald; ‘we could spare her much better.’
+
+‘Only I don’t wish him joy,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘Well, I hope you wish me joy of my substitute,’ said Emily; ‘I do not
+think you would ever guess, but Lily, after being in what Rachel calls
+quite a way, has persuaded every one to let us have Esther Bateman.’
+
+‘What, the Baron?’ said Claude, in surprise.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Lily, ‘is it not delightful? He said at first, Emily was too
+inexperienced to teach a young servant; but then we settled that Hannah
+should be upper servant, and Esther will only have to wait upon Phyl and
+Ada. Then he said Faith Longley was of a better set of people, but I am
+sure it would give one the nightmare to see her lumbering about the
+house, and then he talked it over with Robert and with Rachel.’
+
+‘And was not Rachel against it, or was she too kind to her young ladies?’
+
+‘Oh! she was cross when she talked it over with us,’ said Lily; ‘but we
+coaxed her over, and she told the Baron it would do very well.’
+
+‘And Robert?’
+
+‘He was quite with us, for he likes Esther as much as I do,’ said lily.
+
+‘Now, Lily,’ said Jane, ‘how can you say he was quite with you, when he
+said he thought it would be better if she was farther from home, and
+under some older person?’
+
+‘Yes, but he allowed that she would be much safer here than at home,’
+said Lily.
+
+‘But I thought she used to be the head of all the ill behaviour in
+school,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Oh! that was in Eleanor’s time,’ said Lily; ‘there was nothing to draw
+her out, she never was encouraged; but since she has been in my class,
+and has found that her wishes to do right are appreciated and met by
+affection, she has been quite a new creature.’
+
+‘Since she has been in MY class,’ Claude repeated.
+
+‘Well,’ said Lily, with a slight blush, ‘it is just what Robert says. He
+told her, when he gave her her prize Bible on Palm Sunday, that she had
+been going on very well, but she must take great care when removed from
+those whose influence now guided her, and who could he have meant but me?
+And now she is to go on with me always. She will be quite one of the old
+sort of faithful servants, who feel that they owe everything to their
+masters, and will it not be pleasant to have so sweet and expressive a
+face about the house?’
+
+‘Do I know her face?’ said Claude. ‘Oh yes! I do. She has black eyes,
+I think, and would be pretty if she did not look pert.’
+
+‘You provoking Claude!’ cried Lily, ‘you are as bad as Alethea, who never
+will say that Esther is the best person for us.’
+
+‘I was going to inquire for the all-for-love principle,’ said Claude,
+‘but I see it is in full force. And how are the verses, Lily? Have you
+made a poem upon Michael Moone, or Mohun, the actor, our uncle, whom I
+discovered for you in Pepys’s Memoirs?’
+
+‘Nonsense,’ said Lily; ‘but I have been writing something about Sir
+Maurice, which you shall hear whenever you are not in this horrid
+temper.’
+
+The next afternoon, as soon as luncheon was over, Lily drew Claude out to
+his favourite place under the plane-tree, where she proceeded to inflict
+her poem upon his patient ears, while he lay flat upon the grass looking
+up to the sky; Emily and Jane had promised to join them there in process
+of time, and the four younger ones were, as usual, diverting themselves
+among the farm buildings at the Old Court.
+
+Lily began: ‘I meant to have two parts about Sir Maurice going out to
+fight when he was very young, and then about his brothers being killed,
+and King Charles knighting him, and his betrothed, Phyllis Crossthwayte,
+embroidering his black engrailed cross on his banner, and then the taking
+the castle, and his being wounded, and escaping, and Phyllis not thinking
+it right to leave her father; but I have not finished that, so now you
+must hear about his return home.’
+
+ ‘A romaunt in six cantos, entitled Woe woe,
+ By Miss Fanny F. known more commonly so,’
+
+muttered Claude to himself; but as Lily did not understand or know whence
+his quotation came, it did not hurt her feelings, and she went merrily
+on:—
+
+ ‘’Tis the twenty-ninth of merry May;
+ Full cheerily shine the sunbeams to-day,
+ Their joyous light revealing
+ Full many a troop in garments gay,
+ With cheerful steps who take their way
+ By the green hill and shady lane,
+ While merry bells are pealing;
+ And soon in Beechcroft’s holy fane
+ The villagers are kneeling.
+ Dreary and mournful seems the shrine
+ Where sound their prayers and hymns divine;
+ For every mystic ornament
+ By the rude spoiler’s hand is rent;
+ Scarce is its ancient beauty traced
+ In wood-work broken and defaced,
+ Reft of each quaint device and rare,
+ Of foliage rich and mouldings fair;
+ Yet happy is each spirit there;
+ The simple peasantry rejoice
+ To see the altar decked with care,
+ To hear their ancient Pastor’s voice
+ Reciting o’er each well-known prayer,
+ To view again his robe of white,
+ And hear the services aright;
+ Once more to chant their glorious Creed,
+ And thankful own their nation freed
+ From those who cast her glories down,
+ And rent away her Cross and Crown.
+ A stranger knelt among the crowd,
+ And joined his voice in praises loud,
+ And when the holy rites had ceased,
+ Held converse with the aged Priest,
+ Then turned to join the village feast,
+ Where, raised on the hill’s summit green,
+ The Maypole’s flowery wreaths were seen;
+ Beneath the venerable yew
+ The stranger stood the sports to view,
+ Unmarked by all, for each was bent
+ On his own scheme of merriment,
+ On talking, laughing, dancing, playing—
+ There never was so blithe a Maying.
+ So thought each laughing maiden gay,
+ Whose head-gear bore the oaken spray;
+ So thought that hand of shouting boys,
+ Unchecked in their best joy—in noise;
+ But gray-haired men, whose deep-marked scars
+ Bore token of the civil wars,
+ And hooded dames in cloaks of red,
+ At the blithe youngsters shook the head,
+ Gathering in eager clusters told
+ How joyous were the days of old,
+ When Beechcroft’s lords, those Barons bold,
+ Came forth to join their vassals’ sport,
+ And here to hold their rustic court,
+ Throned in the ancient chair you see
+ Beneath our noble old yew tree.
+ Alas! all empty stands the throne,
+ Reserved for Mohun’s race alone,
+ And the old folks can only tell
+ Of the good lords who ruled so well.
+ “Ah! I bethink me of the time,
+ The last before those years of crime,
+ When with his open hearty cheer,
+ The good old squire was sitting here.”
+ “’Twas then,” another voice replied,
+ “That brave young Master Maurice tried
+ To pitch the ball with Andrew Grey—
+ We ne’er shall see so blithe a day—
+ All the young squires have long been dead.”
+ “No, Master Webb,” quoth Andrew Grey,
+ “Young Master Maurice safely fled,
+ At least so all the Greenwoods say,
+ And Walter Greenwood with him went
+ To share his master’s banishment;
+ And now King Charles is ruling here,
+ Our own good landlord may be near.”
+ “Small hope of that,” the old man said,
+ And sadly shook his hoary head,
+ “Sir Maurice died beyond the sea,
+ Last of his noble line was he.”
+ “Look, Master Webb!” he turned, and there
+ The stranger sat in Mohun’s chair;
+ At ease he sat, and smiled to scan
+ The face of each astonished man;
+ Then on the ground he laid aside
+ His plumed hat and mantle wide.
+ One moment, Andrew deemed he knew
+ Those glancing eyes of hazel hue,
+ But the sunk cheek, the figure spare,
+ The lines of white that streak the hair—
+ How can this he the stripling gay,
+ Erst, victor in the sports of May?
+ Full twenty years of cheerful toil,
+ And labour on his native soil,
+ On Andrew’s head had left no trace—
+ The summer’s sun, the winter’s storm,
+ They had but ruddier made his face,
+ More hard his hand, more strong his form.
+ Forth from the wandering, whispering crowd,
+ A farmer came, and spoke aloud,
+ With rustic bow and welcome fair,
+ But with a hesitating air—
+ He told how custom well preserved
+ The throne for Mohun’s race reserved;
+ The stranger laughed, “What, Harrington,
+ Hast thou forgot thy landlord’s son?”
+ Loud was the cry, and blithe the shout,
+ On Beechcroft hill that now rang out,
+ And still remembered is the day,
+ That merry twenty-ninth of May,
+ When to his father’s home returned
+ That knight, whose glory well was earned.
+ In poverty and banishment,
+ His prime of manhood had been spent,
+ A wanderer, scorned by Charles’s court,
+ One faithful servant his support.
+ And now, he seeks his home forlorn,
+ Broken in health, with sorrow worn.
+ And two short years just passed away,
+ Between that joyous meeting-day,
+ And the sad eve when Beechcroft’s bell
+ Tolled forth Sir Maurice’s funeral knell;
+ And Phyllis, whose love was so constant and tried,
+ Was a widow the year she was Maurice’s bride;
+ Yet the path of the noble and true-hearted knight,
+ Was brilliant with honour, and glory, and light,
+ And still his descendants shall sing of the fame
+ Of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the pride of his name.’
+
+‘It is a pity they should sing of it in such lines as those last four,’
+said Claude. ‘Let me see, I like your bringing in the real names, though
+I doubt whether any but Greenwood could have been found here.’
+
+‘Oh! here come Emily and Jane,’ said Lily, ‘let me put it away.’
+
+‘You are very much afraid of Jane,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Yes, Jane has no feeling for poetry,’ said Lily, with simplicity, which
+made her brother smile.
+
+Jane and Emily now came up, the former with her work, the latter with a
+camp-stool and a book. ‘I wonder,’ said she, ‘where those boys are! By
+the bye, what character did they bring home from school?’
+
+‘The same as usual,’ said Claude. ‘Maurice’s mind only half given to his
+work, and Redgie’s whole mind to his play.’
+
+‘Maurice’s talent does not lie in the direction of Latin and Greek,’ said
+Emily.
+
+‘No,’ said Jane, ‘it is nonsense to make him learn it, and so he says.’
+
+‘Perhaps he would say the same of mathematics and mechanics, if as great
+a point were made of them,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I think not,’ said Claude; ‘he has more notion of them than of Latin
+verses.’
+
+‘Then you are on my side,’ said Jane, triumphantly.
+
+‘Did I say so?’ said Claude.
+
+‘Why not?’ said Jane. ‘What is the use of his knowing those stupid
+languages? I am sure it is wasting time not to improve such a genius as
+he has for mechanics and natural history. Now, Claude, I wish you would
+answer.’
+
+‘I was waiting till you had done,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Why do you not think it nonsense?’ persisted Jane.
+
+‘Because I respect my father’s opinion,’ said Claude, letting himself
+fall on the grass, as if he had done with the subject.
+
+‘Pooh!’ said Jane, ‘that sounds like a good little boy of five years
+old!’
+
+‘Very likely,’ said Claude.
+
+‘But you have some opinion of your own,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Certainly.’
+
+‘Then I wish you would give it,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Come, Emily,’ said Claude, ‘have you brought anything to read?’
+
+‘But your opinion, Claude,’ said Jane. ‘I am sure you think with me,
+only you are too grand, and too correct to say so.’
+
+Claude made no answer, but Jane saw she was wrong by his countenance;
+before she could say anything more, however, they were interrupted by a
+great outcry from the Old Court regions.
+
+‘Oh,’ said Emily, ‘I thought it was a long time since we had heard
+anything of those uproarious mortals.’
+
+‘I hope there is nothing the matter,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Oh no,’ said Jane, ‘I hear Redgie’s laugh.’
+
+‘Aye, but among that party,’ said Emily, ‘Redgie’s laugh is not always a
+proof of peace: they are too much in the habit of acting the boys and the
+frogs.’
+
+‘We were better off,’ said Lily, ‘with the gentle Claude, as Miss
+Middleton used to call him.’
+
+‘Miss Molly, as William used to call him with more propriety,’ said
+Claude, ‘not half so well worth playing with as such a fellow as Redgie.’
+
+‘Not even for young ladies?’ said Emily.
+
+‘No, Phyllis and Ada are much the better for being teased,’ said Claude.
+‘I am convinced that I never did my duty by you in that respect.’
+
+‘There were others to do it for you,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Harry never teased,’ said Emily, ‘and William scorned us.’
+
+‘His teasing was all performed upon Claude,’ said Lily, ‘and a great
+shame it was.’
+
+‘Not at all,’ said Claude, ‘only an injudicious attempt to put a little
+life into a tortoise.’
+
+‘A bad comparison,’ said Lily; ‘but what is all this? Here come the
+children in dismay! What is the matter, my dear child?’
+
+This was addressed to Phyllis, who was the first to come up at full
+speed, sobbing, and out of breath, ‘Oh, the dragon-fly! Oh, do not let
+him kill it!’
+
+‘The dragon-fly, the poor dear blue dragon-fly!’ screamed Adeline, hiding
+her face in Emily’s lap, ‘Oh, do not let him kill it! he is holding it;
+he is hurting it! Oh, tell him not!’
+
+‘I caught it,’ said Phyllis, ‘but not to have it killed. Oh, take it
+away!’
+
+‘A fine rout, indeed, you chicken,’ said Reginald; ‘I know a fellow who
+ate up five horse-stingers one morning before breakfast.’
+
+‘Stingers!’ said Phyllis, ‘they do not sting anything, pretty creatures.’
+
+‘I told you I would catch the old pony and put it on him to try,’ said
+Reginald.
+
+In the meantime, Maurice came up at his leisure, holding his prize by the
+wings. ‘Look what a beautiful Libellulla Puella,’ said he to Jane.
+
+‘A demoiselle dragon-fly,’ said Lily; ‘what a beauty! what are you going
+to do with it?’
+
+‘Put it into my museum,’ said Maurice. ‘Here, Jane, put it under this
+flower-pot, and take care of it, while I fetch something to kill it
+with.’
+
+‘Oh, Maurice, do not!’ said Emily.
+
+‘One good squeeze,’ said Reginald. ‘I will do it.’
+
+‘How came you be so cruel?’ said Lily.
+
+‘No, a squeeze will not do,’ said Maurice; ‘it would spoil its beauty; I
+must put it ever the fumes of carbonic acid.’
+
+‘Maurice, you really must not,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Now do not, dear Maurice,’ said Ada, ‘there’s a dear boy; I will give
+you such a kiss.’
+
+‘Nonsense; get out of the way,’ said Maurice, turning away.
+
+‘Now, Maurice, this is most horrid cruelty,’ said Lily; ‘what right have
+you to shorten the brief, happy life which—’
+
+‘Well,’ interrupted Maurice, ‘if you make such a fuss about killing it, I
+will stick a pin through it into a cork, and let it shift for itself.’
+
+Poor Phyllis ran away to the other end of the garden, sat down and
+sobbed, Ada screamed and argued, Emily complained, Lily exhorted Claude
+to interfere, while Reginald stood laughing.
+
+‘Such useless cruelty,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Useless!’ said Maurice. ‘Pray how is any one to make a collection of
+natural objects without killing things?’
+
+‘I do not see the use of a collection,’ said Lily; ‘you can examine the
+creatures and let them go.’
+
+‘Such a young lady’s tender-hearted notion,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Who ever heard of a man of science managing in such a ridiculous way?’
+
+‘Man of science!’ exclaimed Lily, ‘when he will have forgotten by next
+Christmas that insects ever existed.’
+
+It was not convenient to hear this speech, so Maurice turned an empty
+flower-pot over his prisoner, and left it in Jane’s care while he went to
+fetch the means of destruction, probably choosing the lawn for the place
+of execution, in order to show his contempt for his sisters.
+
+‘Fair damsel in boddice blue,’ said Lily, peeping in at the hole at the
+top of the flower-pot, ‘I wish I could avert your melancholy fate. I am
+very sorry for you, but I cannot help it.’
+
+‘You might help it now, at any rate,’ muttered Claude.
+
+‘No,’ said Lily, ‘I know Monsieur Maurice too well to arouse his wrath so
+justly. If you choose to release the pretty creature, I shall be
+charmed.’
+
+‘You forget that I am in charge,’ said Jane.
+
+‘There is a carriage coming to the front gate,’ cried Ada. ‘Emily, may I
+go into the drawing-room? Oh, Jenny, will you undo my brown holland
+apron?’
+
+‘That is right, little mincing Miss,’ said Reginald, with a low bow; ‘how
+fine we are to-day.’
+
+‘How visitors break into the afternoon,’ said Emily, with a languid turn
+of her head.
+
+‘Jenny, brownie,’ called Maurice from his bedroom window, ‘I want the
+sulphuric acid.’
+
+Jane sprang up and ran into the house, though her sisters called after
+her, that she would come full upon the company in the hall.
+
+‘They shall not catch me here,’ cried Reginald, rushing off into the
+shrubbery.
+
+‘Are you coming in, Claude?’ said Emily.
+
+‘Send Ada to call me, if there is any one worth seeing,’ said Claude
+
+‘They will see you from the window,’ said Emily.
+
+‘No,’ said Claude, ‘no one ever found me out last summer, under these
+friendly branches.’
+
+The old butler, Joseph, now showed himself on the terrace; and the young
+ladies, knowing that he had no intention of crossing the lawn, hastened
+to learn from him who their visitors were, and entered the house. Just
+then Phyllis came running back from the kitchen garden, and without
+looking round, or perceiving Claude, she took up the flower-pot and
+released the captive, which, unconscious of its peril, rested on a blade
+of grass, vibrating its gauzy wings and rejoicing in the restored
+sunbeams.
+
+‘Fly away, fly away, you pretty creature,’ said Phyllis; ‘make haste, or
+Maurice will come and catch you again. I wish I had not given you such a
+fright. I thought you would have been killed, and a pin stuck all
+through that pretty blue and black body of yours. Oh! that would be
+dreadful. Make haste and go away! I would not have caught you, you
+beautiful thing, if I had known what he wanted to do. I thought he only
+wanted to look at your beautiful body, like a little bit of the sky come
+down to look at the flowers, and your delicate wings, and great shining
+eyes. Oh! I am very glad God made you so beautiful. Oh! there is
+Maurice coming. I must blow upon you to make you go. Oh, that is
+right—up quite high in the air—quite safe,’ and she clapped her hands as
+the dragon-fly rose in the air, and disappeared behind the laurels, just
+as Maurice and Reginald emerged from the shrubbery, the former with a
+bottle in his hand.
+
+‘Well, where is the Libellulla?’ said he.
+
+‘The dragon-fly?’ said Phyllis. ‘I let it out.’
+
+‘Sold, Maurice!’ cried Reginald, laughing at his brother’s disaster.
+
+‘Upon my word, Phyl, you are very kind!’ said Maurice, angrily. ‘If I
+had known you were such an ill-natured crab—’
+
+‘Oh! Maurice dear, don’t say so,’ exclaimed Phyllis. ‘I thought I might
+let it out because I caught it myself; and I told you I did not catch it
+for you to kill; Maurice, indeed, I am sorry I vexed you.’
+
+‘What else did you do it for?’ said Maurice. ‘It is horrid not to be
+able to leave one’s things a minute—’
+
+‘But I did not know the dragon-fly belonged to you, Maurice,’ said
+Phyllis.
+
+‘That is a puzzler, Mohun senior,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Now, Redgie, do get Maurice to leave off being angry with me,’ implored
+his sister.
+
+‘I will leave off being angry,’ said Maurice, seeing his advantage, ‘if
+you will promise never to let out my things again.’
+
+‘I do not think I can promise,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘O yes, you can,’ said Reginald, ‘you know they are not his.’
+
+‘Promise you will not let out any insects I may get,’ said Maurice, ‘or I
+shall say you are as cross as two sticks.’
+
+‘I’ll tell you what, Maurice,’ said Phyllis, ‘I do wish you would not
+make me promise, for I do not think I _can_ keep it, for I cannot bear to
+see the beautiful live things killed.’
+
+‘Nonsense,’ said Maurice, fiercely, ‘I am very angry indeed, you naughty
+child; promise—’
+
+‘I cannot,’ said Phyllis, beginning to cry.
+
+‘Then,’ said Maurice, ‘I will not speak to you all day.’
+
+‘No, no,’ shouted Reginald, ‘we will only treat her like the
+horse-stinger; you wanted a puella, Maurice—here is one for you, here,
+give her a dose of the turpentine.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Maurice, advancing with his bottle; ‘and do you take the
+poker down to Naylor’s to be sharpened, it will just do to stick through
+her back. Oh! no, not Naylor’s—the girls have made a hash there, as they
+do everything else; but we will settle her before they come out again.’
+
+Phyllis screamed and begged for mercy—her last ally had deserted her.
+
+‘Promise!’ cried the boys.
+
+‘Oh, don’t!’ was all her answer.
+
+Reginald caught her and held her fast, Maurice advanced upon her, she
+struggled, and gave a scream of real terror. The matter was no joke to
+any one but Reginald, for Maurice was very angry and really meant to
+frighten her.
+
+‘Hands off, boys, I will not have her bullied,’ said Claude, half rising.
+
+Maurice gave a violent start, Reginald looked round laughing, and
+exclaimed, ‘Who would have thought of Claude sneaking there?’ and Phyllis
+ran to the protecting arm, which he stretched out. To her great
+surprise, he drew her to him, and kissed her forehead, saying, ‘Well
+done, Phyl!’
+
+‘Oh, I knew he was not going to hurt me,’ said Phyllis, still panting
+from the struggle.
+
+‘To be sure not,’ said Maurice, ‘I only meant to have a little fun.’
+
+Claude, with his arm still round his sister’s waist, gave Maurice a look,
+expressing, ‘Is that the truth?’ and Reginald tumbled head over heels,
+exclaiming, ‘I would not have been Phyl just them.’
+
+Ada now came running up to them, saying, ‘Maurice and Redgie, you are to
+come in; Mr. and Mrs. Burnet heard your voices, and begged to see you,
+because they never saw you last holidays.’
+
+‘More’s the pity they should see us now,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘I shall not go,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Papa is there, and he sent for you,’ said Ada.
+
+‘Plague,’ was the answer.
+
+‘See what you get by making such a row,’ said Claude. ‘If you had been
+as orderly members of society as I am—’
+
+‘Oh, but Claude,’ said Ada, ‘papa told me to see if I could find you.
+Dear Claude, I wish,’ she proceeded, taking his hand, and looking
+engaging, ‘I wish you would put your arm round me as you do round Phyl.’
+
+‘You are not worth it, Ada,’ said Reginald, and Claude did not contradict
+him.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+THE BROTHERS
+
+
+ ‘But smiled to hear the creatures he had known
+ So long were now in class and order shown—
+ Genus and species. “Is it meet,” said he,
+ “This creature’s name should one so sounding be—
+ ’Tis but a fly, though first-born of the spring,
+ Bombylius Majus, dost thou call the thing?”
+
+IT was not till Sunday, that Lily’s eager wish was fulfilled, of
+introducing her friend and her brothers; but, as she might have foreseen,
+their first meeting did not make the perfections of either party very
+clear to the other. Claude never spoke to strangers more than he could
+help, Maurice and Reginald were in the room only a short time; so that
+the result of Miss Weston’s observations, when communicated in reply to
+Lily’s eager inquiries, was only that Claude was very like his father and
+eldest brother, Reginald very handsome, and Maurice looked like a very
+funny fellow.
+
+On Monday, Reginald and Maurice were required to learn what they had
+always refused to acknowledge, that the holidays were not intended to be
+spent in idleness. A portion of each morning was to be devoted to study,
+Claude having undertaken the task of tutor—and hard work he found it; and
+much did Lily pity him, when, as not unfrequently happened, the summons
+to the children’s dinner would bring him from the study, looking
+thoroughly fagged—Maurice in so sulky a mood that he would hardly deign
+to open his lips—Reginald talking fast enough, indeed, but only to murmur
+at his duties in terms, which, though they made every one laugh, were
+painful to hear. Then Claude would take his brothers back to the study,
+and not appear for an hour or more, and when he did come forth, it was
+with a bad headache. Sometimes, as if to show that it was only through
+their own fault that their tasks were wearisome, one or both boys would
+finish quite early, when Reginald would betake himself to the schoolroom
+and employ his idle time in making it nearly impossible for Ada and
+Phyllis to learn, by talking, laughing, teasing the canary, overturning
+everything in pursuing wasps, making Emily fretful by his disobedience,
+and then laughing at her, and, in short, proving his right to the title
+he had given himself at the end of the only letter he had written since
+he first went to school, and which he had subscribed, ‘Your affectionate
+bother, R. Mohun.’ So that, for their own sake, all would have preferred
+the inattentive mornings.
+
+Lily often tried to persuade Claude to allow her to tell her father how
+troublesome the boys were, but never with any effect. He once took up a
+book he had been using with them, and pointing to the name in the first
+page, in writing, which Lily knew full well, ‘Henry Mohun,’ she perceived
+that he meant to convince her that it was useless to try to dissuade him,
+as he thought the patience and forbearance his brother had shown to him
+must be repaid by his not shrinking from the task he had imposed upon
+himself with his young brothers, though he was often obliged to sit up
+part of the night to pursue his own studies.
+
+If Claude had rather injudiciously talked too much to Lilias of ‘her
+principle,’ and thus kept it alive in her mind, yet his example might
+have made its fallacy evident. She believed that what she called love
+had been the turning point in his character, that it had been his earnest
+desire to follow in Henry’s steps, and so try to comfort his father for
+his loss, that had roused him from his indolence; but she was beginning
+to see that nothing but a sense of duty could have kept up the power of
+that first impulse for six years. Lily began to enter a little into his
+principle, and many things that occurred during these holidays made her
+mistrust her former judgment. She saw that without the unvarying
+principle of right and wrong, fraternal love itself would fail in outward
+acts and words. Forbearance, though undeniably a branch of love, could
+not exist without constant remembrance of duty; and which of them did not
+sometimes fail in kindness, meekness, and patience? Did Emily show that
+softness, which was her most agreeable characteristic, in her whining
+reproofs—in her complaints that ‘no one listened to a word she said’—in
+her refusal to do justice even to those who had vainly been seeking for
+peace? Did Lily herself show any of her much valued love, by the sharp
+manner in which she scolded the boys for roughness towards herself? or
+for language often used by them on purpose to make her displeasure a
+matter of amusement? She saw that her want of command of temper was a
+failure both in love and duty, and when irritated, the thought of duty
+came sooner to her aid than the feeling of love.
+
+And Maurice and Reginald were really very provoking. Maurice loved no
+amusement better than teasing his sisters, and this was almost the only
+thing in which Reginald agreed with him. Reginald was affectionate, but
+too reckless and violent not to be very troublesome, and he too often
+flew into a passion if Maurice attempted to laugh at him; the little
+girls were often frightened and made unhappy; Phyllis would scream and
+roar, and Ada would come sobbing to Emily, to be comforted after some
+rudeness of Reginald’s. It was not very often that quarrels went so far,
+but many a time in thought, word, and deed was the rule of love
+transgressed, and more than once did Emily feel ready to give up all her
+dignity, to have Eleanor’s hand over the boys once more. Claude, finding
+that he could do much to prevent mischief, took care not to leave the two
+boys long together with the elder girls. They were far more inoffensive
+when separate, as Maurice never practised his tormenting tricks when no
+one was present to laugh with him, and Reginald was very kind to Phyllis
+and Ada, although somewhat rude.
+
+It was a day or two after they returned that Phyllis was leaning on the
+window-sill in the drawing-room, watching a passing shower, and admiring
+the soft bright tints of a rainbow upon the dark gray mass of cloud. ‘I
+do set my bow in the cloud,’ repeated she to herself over and over again,
+until Adeline entering the room, she eagerly exclaimed, ‘Oh Ada, come and
+look at this beautiful rainbow, green, and pink, and purple. A double
+one, with so many stripes, Ada. See, there is a little bit more green.’
+
+‘There is no green in a rainbow,’ said Ada.
+
+‘But look, Ada, that is green.’
+
+‘It is not real green. Blue, red, and yellow are the pragmatic colours,’
+said Ada, with a most triumphant air. ‘Now are not they, Maurice?’ said
+she, turning to her brother, who was, as usual, deep in entomology.
+
+‘Pragmatic, you foolish child,’ said he. ‘Prismatic you mean. I am glad
+you remember what I tell you, however; I think I might teach you some
+science in time. You are right in saying that blue, red, and yellow are
+the prismatic colours. Now do you know what causes a rainbow?’
+
+‘It is to show there is never to be another flood,’ said Phyllis,
+gravely.
+
+‘Oh, I did not mean that,’ said Maurice, addressing himself to Ada, whose
+love of hard words made him deem her a promising pupil, and whom he could
+lecture without interruption. ‘The rainbow is caused by—’
+
+‘But, Maurice!’ exclaimed Phyllis, remaining with mouth wide open.
+
+‘The rainbow is occasioned by the refraction of the rays of the sun in
+the drops of water of which a cloud is composed.’
+
+‘But, Maurice!’ again said Phyllis.
+
+‘Well, what do you keep on “but, Mauricing,” about?’
+
+‘But, Maurice, I thought it said, “I do set my bow in the cloud.” Is not
+that right? I will look.’
+
+‘I know that, but I know the iris, or rainbow, is a natural phenomenon
+occasioned by the refraction.’
+
+‘But, Maurice, I can’t bear you to say that;’ and poor Phyllis sat down
+and began to cry.
+
+Ada interfered. ‘Why, Maurice, you believe the Bible, don’t you?’
+
+This last speech was heard by Lilias, who just now entered the room, and
+greatly surprised her. ‘What can you be talking of?’ said she.
+
+‘Only some nonsense of the children’s,’ said Maurice, shortly.
+
+‘But only hear what he says,’ cried Ada. ‘He says the rainbow was not
+put there to show there is never to be another flood!’
+
+‘Now, Lily,’ said Maurice, ‘I do not think there is much use in talking
+to you, but I wish you to understand that all I said was, that the
+rainbow, or iris, is a natural phenomenon occasioned by the refraction of
+the solar—’
+
+‘You will certainly bewilder yourself into something dreadful with that
+horrid science,’ said Lily. ‘What is the matter with Phyl?’
+
+‘Only crying because of what I said,’ answered Maurice. ‘So childish,
+and you are just as bad.’
+
+‘But do you mean to say,’ exclaimed Lily, ‘that you set this human theory
+above the authority of the Bible?’
+
+‘It is common sense,’ said Maurice; ‘I could make a rainbow any day.’
+
+Whereupon Phyllis cried the more, and Lily looked infinitely shocked.
+‘This is philosophy and vain deceit,’ said she; ‘the very thing that
+tends to infidelity.’
+
+‘I can’t help it—it is universally allowed,’ said the boy doggedly.
+
+It was fortunate that the next person who entered the room was Claude,
+and all at once he was appealed to by the four disputants, Lily the
+loudest and most vehement. ‘Claude, listen to him, and tell him to throw
+away these hateful new lights, which lead to everything that is
+shocking!’
+
+‘Listen to him, with three ladies talking at once?’ said Claude. ‘No,
+not Phyl—her tears only are eloquent; but it is a mighty war about the
+token of peace and _love_, Lily.’
+
+‘The love would be in driving these horrible philosophical speculations
+out of Maurice’s mind,’ said Lily.
+
+‘No one can ever drive out the truth,’ said Maurice, with provoking
+coolness. ‘Don’t let her scratch out my eyes, Claude.’
+
+‘I am not so sure of that maxim,’ said Claude. ‘Truth is chiefly
+injured—I mean, her force weakened, by her own supporters.’
+
+‘Then you agree with me,’ said Maurice, ‘as, in fact, every rational
+person must.’
+
+‘Then you are with me,’ said Lily, in the same breath; ‘and you will
+convince Maurice of the danger of this nonsense.’
+
+‘Umph,’ sighed Claude, throwing himself into his father’s arm-chair,
+‘’tis a Herculean labour! It seems I agree with you both.’
+
+‘Why, every Christian must be with me, who has not lost his way in a mist
+of his own raising,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘Do you mean to say,’ said Maurice, ‘that these colours are not produced
+by refraction? Look at them on those prisms;’ and he pointed to an
+old-fashioned lustre on the chimney-piece. ‘I hope this is not a part of
+the Christian faith.’
+
+‘Take care, Maurice,’ and Claude’s eyes were bent upon him in a manner
+that made him shrink. And he added, ‘Of course I do believe that chapter
+about Noah. I only meant that the immediate cause of the rainbow is the
+refraction of light. I did not mean to be irreverent, only the girls
+took me up in such a way.’
+
+‘And I know well enough that you can make those colours by light on drops
+of water,’ said Lily.
+
+‘So you agreed all the time,’ said Claude.
+
+‘But,’ added Lily, ‘I never liked to know it; for it always seemed to be
+explaining away the Bible, and I cannot bear not to regard that lovely
+bow as a constant miracle.’
+
+‘You will remember,’ said Claude, ‘that some commentators say it should
+be, “I _have_ set my bow in the cloud,” which would make what already
+existed become a token for the future.
+
+‘I don’t like that explanation,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Others say,’ added Claude, ‘that there might have been no rain at all
+till the windows of heaven were opened at the flood, and, in that case,
+the first recurrence of rain must have greatly alarmed Noah’s family, if
+they had not been supported and cheered by the sight of the rainbow.’
+
+‘That is reasonable,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘I hate reason applied to revelation,’ said Lily.
+
+‘It is a happier state of mind which does not seek to apply it,’ said
+Claude, looking at Phyllis, who had dried her tears, and stood in the
+window gazing at him, in the happy certainty that he was setting all
+right. Maurice respected Claude for his science as much as his
+character, and did not make game of this observation as he would if it
+had been made by one of his sisters, but he looked at him with an odd
+expression of perplexity. ‘You do not think ignorant credulity better
+than reasonable belief?’ said he at length.
+
+‘It is not I only who think most highly of child-like unquestioning
+faith, Maurice,’ said Claude—‘faith, that is based upon love and
+reverence,’ added he to Lily. ‘But come, the shower is over, and
+philosophers, or no philosophers, I invite you to walk in the wood.’
+
+‘Aye,’ said Maurice, ‘I daresay I can find some of the Arachne species
+there. By the bye, Claude, do you think papa would let me have a piece
+of plate-glass, eighteen by twenty, to cover my case of insects?’
+
+‘Ask, and you will discover,’ said Claude.
+
+Accordingly, Maurice began the next morning at breakfast, ‘Papa, may I
+have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen by—?’
+
+But no one heard, for Emily was at the moment saying, ‘The Westons are to
+dine here to-day.’
+
+Claude and Maurice both looked blank.
+
+‘I persuaded papa to ask the Westons,’ said Lily, ‘because I am
+determined that Claude shall like Alethea.’
+
+‘You must expect that I shall not, you have given me so many orders on
+the subject,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Take care it has not the same effect as to tell Maurice to like a book,’
+said Emily; ‘nothing makes his aversion so certain.’
+
+‘Except when he takes it up by mistake, and forgets that it has been
+recommended to him,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Take care, Redgie, with your knife; don’t put out my eyes in your ardour
+against that wretched wasp. Wat Greenwood may well say “there is a
+terrible sight of waspses this year.”’
+
+‘I killed twenty-nine yesterday,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘And I will tell you what I saw,’ said Phyllis; ‘I was picking up apples,
+and the wasps were flying all round, and there came a hornet.’
+
+‘Vespa Crabro!’ cried Maurice; ‘oh, I must have one!’
+
+‘Well, what of the hornet?’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I’ll tell you what,’ resumed Phyllis, ‘he saw a wasp flying, and so he
+went up in the air, and pounced on the poor wasp as the hawk did on
+Jane’s bantam. So then he hung himself up to the branch of a tree by one
+of his legs, and held the wasp with the other five, and began to pack it
+up. First he bit off the yellow tail, then the legs, and threw them
+away, and then there was nothing left but the head, and so he flew away
+with it to his nest.’
+
+‘Which way did he go?’ said Maurice.
+
+‘To the Old Court,’ answered Phyllis; ‘I think the nest is in the roof of
+the old cow-house, for they were flying in and out there yesterday, and
+one was eating out the wood from the old rails.’
+
+‘Well,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘you must show me a hornet hawking for wasps
+before the nest is taken, Phyllis; I suppose you have seen the wasps
+catching flies?’
+
+‘Oh yes, papa! but they pack them up quite differently. They do not hang
+by one leg, but they sit down quite comfortably on a branch while they
+bite off the wings and legs.’
+
+‘There, Maurice,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I had rather hear of one such
+well-observed fact than of a dozen of your hard names and impaled
+insects.’
+
+Phyllis looked quite radiant with delight at his approbation.
+
+‘But, papa,’ said Maurice, ‘may I have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen
+by twenty?’
+
+‘When you observe facts in natural history, perhaps I may say something
+to your entomology,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘But, papa, all my insects will be spoilt if I may not have a piece of
+glass, eighteen by—’
+
+He was interrupted by the arrival of the post-bag, which Jane, as usual,
+opened. ‘A letter from Rotherwood,’ said she; ‘I hope he is coming at
+last.’
+
+‘He is,’ said Claude, reading the letter, ‘but only from Saturday till
+Wednesday.’
+
+‘He never gave us so little of his good company as he has this summer,’
+said Emily.
+
+‘You will have them all in the autumn, to comfort you,’ said Claude, ‘for
+he hereby announces the marvellous fact, that the Marchioness sends him
+to see if the castle is fit to receive her.’
+
+‘Are you sure he is not only believing what he wishes?’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I think he will gain his point at last,’ said Claude.
+
+‘How stupid of him to stay no longer!’ said Reginald.
+
+‘I think he has some scheme for this vacation,’ said Claude, ‘and I
+suppose he means to crowd all the Beechcroft diversions of a whole summer
+into those few days.’
+
+‘Emily,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I wish him to know the Carringtons; invite them
+and the Westons to dinner on Tuesday.’
+
+‘Oh don’t!’ cried Reginald. ‘It will be so jolly to have him to take
+wasps’ nests; and may I go out rabbit-shooting with him?’
+
+‘If he goes.’
+
+‘And may I carry a gun?’
+
+‘If it is not loaded,’ said his father.
+
+‘Indeed, I would do no mischief,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Let me give you one piece of advice, Reginald,’ said Mr. Mohun, with a
+mysterious air—‘never make rash promises.’
+
+Lilias was rather disappointed in her hopes that Miss Weston and Claude
+would become better acquainted. At dinner the conversation was almost
+entirely between the elder gentlemen; Claude scarcely spoke, except when
+referred to by his father or Mr. Devereux. Miss Weston never liked to
+incur the danger of having to repeat her insignificant speeches to a deaf
+ear, and being interested in the discussion that was going on, she by no
+means seconded Lily’s attempt to get up an under-current of talk. In
+general, Lily liked to listen to conversation in silence, but she was now
+in very high spirits, and could not be quiet; fortunately, she had no
+interest in the subject the gentlemen were discussing, so that she could
+not meddle with that, and finding Alethea silent and Claude out of reach,
+she turned to Reginald, and talked and tittered with him all dinner-time.
+
+In the drawing-room she had it all her own way, and talked enough for all
+the sisters.
+
+‘Have you heard that Cousin Rotherwood is coming?’
+
+‘Yes, you said so before dinner.’
+
+‘We hope,’ said Emily, ‘that you and Mr. Weston will dine here on
+Tuesday. The Carringtons are coming, and a few others.’
+
+‘Thank you,’ said Alethea; ‘I daresay papa will be very glad to come.’
+
+‘Have you ever seen Rotherwood?’ said Lilias.
+
+‘Never,’ was the reply.
+
+‘Do not expect much,’ said Lily, laughing, though she knew not why; ‘he
+is a very little fellow; no one would suppose him to be twenty, he has
+such a boyish look. Then he never sits down—’
+
+‘Literally?’ said Emily.
+
+‘Literally,’ persisted Lily; ‘such a quick person you never did see.’
+
+‘Is he at Oxford?’
+
+‘Oh yes! it was all papa’s doing that he was sent to Eton. Papa is his
+guardian. Aunt Rotherwood never would have parted with him.’
+
+‘He is the only son,’ interposed Emily.
+
+‘Uncle Rotherwood put him quite in papa’s power; Aunt Rotherwood wanted
+to keep him at home with a tutor, and what she would have made of him I
+cannot think,’ said Lily; and regardless of Emily’s warning frowns, and
+Alethea’s attempt to change the subject, she went on: ‘When he was quite
+a child he used to seem a realisation of all the naughty Dicks and Toms
+in story-books. Miss Middleton had a perfect horror of his coming here,
+for he would mind no one, and played tricks and drew Claude into
+mischief; but he is quite altered since papa had the management of
+him—Oh! such talks as papa has had with Aunt Rotherwood—do you know, papa
+says no one knows what it is to lose a father but those who have the care
+of his children, and Aunt Rotherwood is so provoking.’
+
+Here Alethea determined to put an end to this oration, and to Emily’s
+great relief, she cut short the detail of Lady Rotherwood’s offences by
+saying, ‘Do you think Faith Longley likely to suit us, if we took her to
+help the housemaid?’
+
+‘Are you thinking of taking her?’ cried Lily. ‘Yes, for steady, stupid
+household work, Faith would do very well; she is just the stuff to make a
+servant of—“for dulness ever must be regular”—I mean for those who like
+mere steadiness better than anything more lovable.’
+
+As Alethea said, laughing, ‘I must confess my respect for that quality,’
+Mr. Devereux and Claude entered the room.
+
+‘Oh, Robert!’ cried Lily, ‘Mrs. Weston is going to take Faith Longley to
+help the housemaid.’
+
+‘You are travelling too fast, Lily,’ said Alethea, ‘she is only going to
+think about it.’
+
+‘I should be very glad,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘that Faith should have a
+good place; the Longleys are very respectable people, and they behaved
+particularly well in refusing to let this girl go and live with some
+dissenters at Stoney Bridge.’
+
+‘I like what I have seen of the girl very much,’ said Miss Weston.
+
+‘In spite of her sad want of feeling,’ said Robert, smiling, as he looked
+at Lily.
+
+‘Oh! she is a good work-a-day sort of person,’ said Lily, ‘like all other
+poor people, hard and passive. Now, do not set up your eyebrows, Claude,
+I am quite serious, there is no warmth about any except—’
+
+‘So this is what Lily is come to!’ cried Emily; ‘the grand supporter of
+the poor on poetical principles.’
+
+‘The poor not affectionate!’ said Alethea.
+
+‘Not, compared within people whose minds and affections have been
+cultivated,’ said Lily. ‘Now just hear what Mrs. Wall said to me only
+yesterday; she asked for a black stuff gown out of the clothing club,
+“for,” said she, “I had a misfortune, Miss;” I thought it would be, “and
+tore my gown,” but it was, “I had a misfortune, Miss, and lost my
+brother.”’
+
+‘A very harsh conclusion on very slight grounds,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+
+‘Prove the contrary,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Facts would scarcely demonstrate it either way,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+‘They would only prove what was the case with individuals who chanced to
+come in our way, and if we are seldom able to judge of the depth of
+feeling of those with whom we are familiar, how much less of those who
+feel our presence a restraint.’
+
+‘Intense feeling mocks restraint,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Violent, not intense,’ said Mr. Devereux. ‘Besides, you talk of
+cultivating the affections. Now what do you mean? Exercising them, or
+talking about them?’
+
+‘Ah!’ said Emily, ‘the affection of a poor person is more tried; we blame
+a poor man for letting his old mother go to the workhouse, without
+considering how many of us would do the same, if we had as little to live
+upon.’
+
+‘Still,’ said Alethea, ‘the same man who would refuse to maintain her if
+poor, would not bear with her infirmities if rich.’
+
+‘Are the poor never infirm and peevish?’ said Mr. Devereux.
+
+‘Oh! how much worse it must be to bear with ill-temper in poverty,’ said
+Emily, ‘when we think it quite wonderful to see a young lady kind and
+patient with a cross old relation; what must it be when she is denying
+herself, not only her pleasure, but her food for her sake; not merely
+sitting quietly with her all day, and calling a servant to wait upon her,
+but toiling all day to maintain her, and keeping awake half the night to
+nurse her?’
+
+‘Those are realities, indeed,’ said Alethea; ‘our greatest efforts seem
+but child’s play in comparison.’
+
+Lilias could hardly have helped being sobered by this conversation if she
+had attended to it, but she had turned away to repeat the story of Mrs.
+Walls to Jane, and then, fancying that the others were still remarking
+upon it, she said in a light, laughing tone, ‘Well, so far I agree with
+you. I know of a person who may well be called one of ourselves, who I
+could quite fancy making such a speech.’
+
+‘Whom do you mean?’ said Mr. Devereux. Alethea wished she did not know.
+
+‘No very distant relation,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Do not talk nonsense, Jane,’ said Claude, gravely.
+
+‘No nonsense at all, Claude,’ cried Jane in her very very pertest tone,
+‘it is exactly like Eleanor; I am sure I can see her with her hands
+before her, saying in her prim voice, “I must turn my old black silk and
+trim it with crape, for I have had a misfortune, and lost my brother.”’
+
+‘Lilias,’ said Miss Weston, somewhat abruptly, ‘did you not wish to sing
+with me this evening?’
+
+And thus she kept Lilias from any further public mischief that evening.
+
+Claude, exceedingly vexed by what had passed, with great injustice, laid
+the blame upon Miss Weston, and instead of rendering her the honour which
+she really deserved for the tact with which she had put an end to the
+embarrassment of all parties, he fancied she was anxious to display her
+talents for music, and thus only felt fretted by the sounds.
+
+Mr. Weston and his daughter intended to walk home that evening, as it was
+a beautiful moonlight night.
+
+‘Oh, let us convoy you!’ exclaimed Lilias; ‘I do long to show Alethea a
+glow-worm. Will you come, Claude? May we, papa? Feel how still and
+warm it is. A perfect summer night, not a breath stirring.’
+
+Mr. Mohun consented, and Lily almost hurried Alethea upstairs, to put on
+her bonnet and shawl. When she came down she found that the walking
+party had increased. Jane and Reginald would both have been in despair
+to have missed such a frolic; Maurice hoped to fall in with the droning
+beetle, or to lay violent hands on a glow-worm; Emily did not like to be
+left behind, and even Mr. Mohun was going, being in the midst of an
+interesting conversation with Mr. Weston. Lily, with an absurd tragic
+gesture, told Alethea that amongst so many, such a crowd, all the grace
+and sweet influence of the walk was ruined. The ‘sweet influence’ was
+ruined as far as Lily was concerned, but not by the number of her
+companions. It was the uneasy feeling caused by her over-strained
+spirits and foolish chattering that prevented her from really entering
+into the charm of the soft air, the clear moon, the solemn deep blue sky,
+the few stars, the white lilies on the dark pond, the long shadows of the
+trees, the freshness of the dewy fields. Her simplicity, and her genuine
+delight in the loveliness of the scene, was gone for the time, and though
+she spoke much of her enjoyment, it was in a high-flown affected style.
+
+When the last good-night had been exchanged, and Lily had turned
+homeward, she felt the stillness which succeeded their farewells almost
+oppressive; she started at the dark shadow of a tree which lay across the
+path, and to shake off a sensation of fear which was coming over her, she
+put her arm within Claude’s, exclaiming, ‘You naughty boy, you will be
+stupid and silent, say what I will.’
+
+‘I heard enough to-night to strike me dumb,’ said Claude.
+
+For one moment Lily thought he was in jest, but the gravity of his manner
+showed her that he was both grieved and displeased, and she changed her
+tone as she said, ‘Oh! Claude, what do you mean?’
+
+‘Do you not know?’ said Claude.
+
+‘What, you mean about Eleanor?’ said Lily; ‘you must fall upon Miss Jenny
+there—it was her doing.’
+
+‘Jane’s tongue is a pest,’ said Claude; ‘but she was not the first to
+speak evil falsely of one to whom you owe everything. Oh! Lily, I
+cannot tell you how that allusion of yours sounded.’
+
+‘What allusion?’ asked Lily in alarm, for she had never seen her gentle
+brother so angry.
+
+‘You know,’ said he.
+
+‘Indeed, I do not,’ exclaimed Lily, munch frightened. ‘Claude, Claude,
+you must mistake, I never could have said anything so very shocking.’
+
+‘I hope I do,’ said Claude; ‘I could hardly believe that one of the
+little ones who cannot remember him, could have referred to him in that
+way—but for you!’
+
+‘Him?’ said Lilias.
+
+‘I do not like to mention his name to one who regards him so lightly,’
+said Claude. ‘Think over what passed, if you are sufficiently come to
+yourself to remember it.’
+
+After a little pause Lily said in a subdued voice, ‘Claude, I hope you do
+not believe that I was thinking of what really happened when I said
+that.’
+
+‘Pray what were you thinking of?’
+
+‘The abstract view of Eleanor’s character.’
+
+‘Abstract nonsense!’ said Claude. ‘A fine demonstration of the rule of
+love, to go about the world slandering your sister!’
+
+‘To go about the world! Oh! Claude, it was only Robert, one of
+ourselves, and Alethea, to whom I tell everything.’
+
+‘So much the worse. I always rejoiced that you had no foolish young lady
+friend to make missish confidences to.’
+
+‘She is no foolish young lady friend,’ said Lilias, indignant in her
+turn; ‘she is five years older than I am, and papa wishes us to be
+intimate with her.’
+
+‘Then the fault is in yourself,’ said Claude. ‘You ought not to have
+told such things if they were true, and being utterly false—’
+
+‘But, Claude, I cannot see that they are false.’
+
+‘Not false, that Eleanor cared not a farthing for Harry!’ cried Claude,
+shaking off Lily’s arm, and stopping short.
+
+‘Oh!—she cared, she really did care,’ said Lily, as fast as she could
+speak. ‘Oh! Claude, how could you think that? I told you I did not
+mean what really happened, only that—Eleanor is cold—not as warm as some
+people—she did care for him, of course she did—I know that—I believe she
+loved him with all her heart—but yet—I mean she did not—she went on as
+usual—said nothing—scarcely cried—looked the same—taught us—never—Oh! it
+did not make half the difference in her that it did in William.’
+
+‘I cannot tell how she behaved at the time,’ said Claude, ‘I only know I
+never had any idea what a loss Harry was till I came home and saw her
+face. I used never to trouble myself to think whether people looked ill
+or well, but the change in her did strike me. She was bearing up to
+comfort papa, and to cheer William, and to do her duty by all of us, and
+you could take such noble resignation for want of feeling!’
+
+Lilias looked down and tried to speak, but she was choked by her tears;
+she could not bear Claude’s displeasure, and she wept in silence. At
+last she said in a voice broken by sobs, ‘I was unjust—I know Eleanor was
+all kindness—all self-sacrifice—I have been very ungrateful—I wish I
+could help it—and you know well, Claude, how far I am from regarding dear
+Harry with indifference—how the thought of him is a star in my mind—how
+happy it makes me to think of him at the end of the Church Militant
+Prayer; do not believe I was dreaming of him.’
+
+‘And pray,’ said Claude, laughing in his own good-humoured way, ‘which of
+us is it that she is so willing to lose?’
+
+‘Oh! Claude, no such thing,’ said Lily, ‘you know what I meant, or did
+not mean. It was nonsense—I hope nothing worse.’ Lily felt that she
+might take his arm again. There was a little silence, and then Lily
+resumed in a timid voice, ‘I do not know whether you will be angry,
+Claude, but honestly, I do not think that if—that Eleanor would be so
+wretched about you as I should.’
+
+‘Eleanor knew Harry better than you did; no, Lily, I never could have
+been what Harry was, even if I had never wasted my time, and if my
+headaches had not interfered with my best efforts.’
+
+‘I do not believe that, say what you will,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Ask William, then,’ said Claude, sighing.
+
+‘I am sure papa does not think so,’ said Lily; ‘no, I cannot feel that
+Harry is such a loss when we still have you.’
+
+‘Oh! Lily, it is plain that you never knew Harry,’ said Claude. ‘I do
+not believe you ever did—that is one ting to be said for you.’
+
+‘Not as you did,’ said Lily; ‘remember, he was six years older. Then
+think how little we saw of him whilst they were abroad; he was always at
+school, or spending the holidays with Aunt Robert, and latterly even
+farther off, and only coming sometimes for an hour or two to see us.
+Then he used to kiss us all round, we went into the garden with him,
+looked at him, and were rather afraid of him; then he walked off to Wat
+Greenwood, came back, wished us good-bye, and away he went.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Claude, ‘but after they came home?’
+
+‘Then he was a tall youth, and we were silly girls,’ said Lilias; ‘he
+avoided Miss Middleton, and we were always with her. He was
+good-natured, but he could not get on with us; he did very well with the
+little ones, but we were of the wrong age. He and William and Eleanor
+were one faction, we were another, and you were between both—he was too
+old, too sublime, too good, too grave for us.’
+
+‘Too grave!’ said Claude; ‘I never heard a laugh so full of glee, except,
+perhaps, Phyllis’s.’
+
+‘The last time he was at home,’ continued Lily, ‘we began to know him
+better; there was no Miss Middleton in the way, and after you and William
+were gone, he used to walk with us, and read to us. He read _Guy
+Mannering_ to us, and told us the story of Sir Maurice de Mohun; but the
+loss was not the same to us as to you elder ones; and then sorrow was
+almost lost in admiration, and in pleasure at the terms in which every
+one spoke of him. Claude, I have no difficulty in not wishing it
+otherwise; he is still my brother, and I would not change the feeling
+which the thought of his death gives me—no, not for himself in life and
+health.’
+
+‘Ah!’ sighed Claude, ‘you have no cause for self-reproach—no reason to
+lament over “wasted hours and love misspent.”’
+
+‘You will always talk of your old indolence, as if it was a great crime,’
+said Lily.
+
+‘It was my chief temptation,’ said Claude. ‘As long as we know we are
+out of the path of duty it does not make much difference whether we have
+turned to the right hand or to the left.’
+
+‘Was it Harry’s death that made you look upon it in this light?’ said
+Lily.
+
+‘I knew it well enough before,’ said Claude, ‘it was what he had often
+set before me. Indeed, till I came home, and saw this place without him,
+I never really knew what a loss he was. At Eton I did not miss him more
+than when he went to Oxford, and I did not dwell on what he was to papa,
+or what I ought to be; and even when I saw what home was without him, I
+should have contented myself with miserable excuses about my health, if
+it had not been for my confirmation; then I awoke, I saw my duty, and the
+wretched way in which I had been spending my time. Thoughts of Harry and
+of my father came afterwards; I had not vigour enough for them before.’
+
+Here they reached the house, and parted—Claude, ashamed of having talked
+of himself for the first time in his life, and Lily divided between shame
+at her own folly and pleasure at Claude’s having thus opened his mind.
+
+Jane, who was most in fault, escaped censure. Her father was ignorant of
+her improper speech. Emily forgot it, and it was not Claude’s place to
+reprove his sisters, though to Lily he spoke as a friend. It passed away
+from her mind like other idle words, which, however, could not but leave
+an impression on those who heard her.
+
+An unlooked-for result of the folly of this evening was, that Claude was
+prevented from appreciating Miss Weston He could not learn to like her,
+nor shake off an idea, that she was prying into their family concerns; he
+thought her over-praised, and would not even give just admiration to her
+singing, because he had once fancied her eager to exhibit it. It was
+unreasonable to dislike his sister’s friend for his sister’s folly, but
+Claude’s wisdom was not yet arrived at its full growth, and he deserved
+credit for keeping his opinion to himself.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+THE WASP
+
+
+ ‘Whom He hath blessed and called His own,
+ He tries them early, look and tone,
+ Bent brow and throbbing heart,
+ Tries them with pain.’
+
+THE next week Lily had the pleasure of fitting out Faith Longley for her
+place at Mrs. Weston’s. She rejoiced at this opportunity of patronising
+her, because in her secret soul she felt that she might have done her a
+little injustice in choosing her own favourite Esther in her stead.
+Esther’s popularity at the New Court, however, made Lilias confident in
+her own judgment; the servants liked her because she was quick and
+obliging, Mr. Mohun said she looked very neat, Phyllis liked her because
+a mischance to her frock was not so brave an offence with her as with
+Rachel, and Ada was growing very fond of her, because she was in the
+habit of bestowing great admiration on her golden curls as she arranged
+them, and both little girls were glad not to be compelled to put away the
+playthings they took out.
+
+Maurice and Reginald had agreed to defer their onslaught on the wasps
+till Lord Rotherwood’s arrival, and the war was now limited to attacks on
+foraging parties. Reginald most carefully marked every nest about the
+garden and farm, and, on his cousin’s arrival on Saturday evening, began
+eagerly to give him a list of their localities. Lord Rotherwood was as
+ardent in the cause as even Reginald could desire, and would have
+instantly set out with him to reconnoitre had not the evening been rainy.
+
+Then turning to Claude, he said, ‘But I have not told you what brought me
+here; I came to persuade you to make an expedition with me up the Rhine;
+I set off next week; I would not write about it, because I knew you would
+only say you should like it very much, but—some but, that meant it was a
+great deal too much trouble.’
+
+‘How fast the plan has risen up,’ said Claude, ‘I heard nothing of it
+when I was with you.’
+
+‘Oh! it only came into my head last week, but I do not see what there is
+to wait for, second thoughts are never best.’
+
+‘Oh! Claude, how delightful,’ said Lily.
+
+Claude stirred his tea meditatively, and did not speak.
+
+‘It is too much trouble, I perceive,’ said Lord Rotherwood; ‘just as I
+told you.’
+
+‘Not exactly,’ said Claude.
+
+Lord Rotherwood now detailed his plan to his uncle, who said with a
+propitious smile, ‘Well, Claude, what do you think of it?
+
+‘Mind you catch a firefly for me,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘Why don’t you answer, Claude?’ said Lilias; ‘only imagine seeing
+Undine’s Castle!’
+
+‘Eh, Claude?’ said his father.
+
+‘It would be very pleasant,’ said Claude, slowly, ‘but—’
+
+‘What?’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘Only a but,’ said the Marquis. ‘I hope he will have disposed of it by
+the morning; I start next Tuesday week; I would not go later for the
+universe; we shall be just in time for the summer in its beauty, and to
+have a peep at Switzerland. We shall not have time for Mont Blanc,
+without rattling faster than any man in his senses would do. I do not
+mean to leave any place till I have thoroughly seen twice over everything
+worth seeing that it contains.’
+
+‘Then perhaps you will get as far as Antwerp, and spend the rest of the
+holidays between the Cathedral and Paul Potter’s bull. No, I shall have
+nothing to say to you at that rate,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Depend upon it, it will be you that will wish to stand still when I had
+rather be on the move,’ said the Marquis.
+
+‘Then you had better leave me behind. I have no intention of being
+hurried over the world, and never having my own way,’ said Claude, trying
+to look surly.
+
+‘I am sure I should not mind travelling twice over the world to see
+Cologne Cathedral, or the field of Waterloo,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Let me only show him my route,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘Redgie, look in
+my greatcoat pocket in the hall for Murray’s Handbook, will you?’
+
+‘Go and get it, Phyl,’ said Reginald, who was astride on the window-sill,
+peeling a stick.
+
+Away darted Lord Rotherwood to fetch it himself, but Phyllis was before
+him; her merry laugh was heard, as he chased her round the hall to get
+possession of his book, throwing down two or three cloaks to intercept
+her path. Mr. Mohun took the opportunity of his absence to tell Claude
+that he need not refuse on the score of expense.
+
+‘Thank you,’ was all Claude’s answer.
+
+Lord Rotherwood returned, and after punishing the discourteous Reginald
+by raising him up by his ears, he proceeded to give a full description of
+the delights of his expedition, the girls joining heartily with him in
+declaring it as well arranged as possible, and bringing all their
+knowledge of German travels to bear upon it. Claude sometimes put in a
+word, but never as if he cared much about the matter, and he was not to
+be persuaded to give any decided answer as to whether he would accompany
+the Marquis.
+
+The next morning at breakfast Lord Rotherwood returned to the charge, but
+Claude seemed even more inclined to refuse than the day before. Lilias
+could not divine what was the matter with him, and lingered long after
+her sisters had gone to school, to hear what answer he would make; and
+when Mr. Mohun looked at his watch, and asked her if she knew how late it
+was, she rose from the breakfast-table with a sigh, and thought while she
+was putting on her bonnet how much less agreeable the school had been
+since the schism in the parish. And besides, now that Faith and Esther,
+and one or two others of her best scholars, had gone away from school,
+there seemed to be no one of any intelligence or knowledge left in the
+class, except Marianne Weston, who knew too much for the others, and one
+or two clever inattentive little girls: Lily almost disliked teaching
+them.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline were in Miss Weston’s class, and much did they
+delight in her teaching. There was a quiet earnestness in her manner
+which attracted her pupils, and fixed their attention, so as scarcely to
+allow the careless room for irreverence, while mere cleverness seemed
+almost to lose its advantage in learning what can only truly be entered
+into by those whose conduct agrees with their knowledge.
+
+Phyllis never dreamt that she could be happy while standing still and
+learning, till Miss Weston began to teach at the Sunday school.
+Obedience at school taught her to acquire habits of reverent attention,
+which gradually conquered the idleness and weariness which had once
+possessed her at church. First, she learnt to be interested in the
+Historical Lessons, then never to lose her place in the Psalms, then to
+think about and follow some of the Prayers; by this time she was far from
+feeling any fatigue at all on week-days; she had succeeded in restraining
+any contortions to relieve herself from the irksomeness of sitting still,
+and had her thoughts in tolerable order through the greater part of the
+Sunday service, and now it was her great wish, unknown to any one, to
+abstain from a single yawn through the whole service, including the
+sermon!
+
+Her place (chosen for her by Eleanor when first she had begun to go to
+Church, as far as possible from Reginald) was at the end of the seat,
+between her papa and the wall. This morning, as she put her arm on the
+book-board, while rising from kneeling, she felt a sudden thrill of sharp
+pain smear her left elbow, which made her start violently, and would have
+caused a scream, had she not been in church. She saw a wasp fall on the
+ground, and was just about to put her foot on it, when she recollected
+where she was. She had never in her life intentionally killed anything,
+and this was no time to begin in that place, and when she was angry. The
+pain was severe—more so perhaps than any she had felt before—and very
+much frightened, she pulled her papa’s coat to draw his attention. But
+her first pull was so slight that he did not feel it, and before she gave
+a second she remembered that she could not make him hear what was the
+matter, without more noise than was proper. No, she must stay where she
+was, and try to bear the pain, and she knew that if she did try, help
+would be given her. She proceeded to find out the Psalm and join her
+voice with the others, though her heart was beating very fast, her
+forehead was contracted, and she could not help keeping her right hand
+clasped round her arm, and sometimes shifting from one foot to the other.
+The sharpness of the pain soon went off; she was able to attend to the
+Lessons, and hoped it would soon be quite well; but as soon as she began
+to think about it, it began to ache and throb, and seemed each moment to
+be growing hotter. The sermon especially tried her patience, her cheeks
+were burning, she felt sick and hardly able to hold up her head, yet she
+would not lean it against the wall, because she had often been told not
+to do so. She was exceedingly alarmed to find that her arm had swelled
+so much that she could hardly bend it, and it had received the impression
+of the gathers of her sleeve; she thought no sermon had ever been so
+long, but she sat quite still and upright, as she could not have done,
+had she not trained herself unconsciously by her efforts to leave off the
+trick of kicking her heels together. She did not speak till she was in
+the churchyard, and then she made Emily look at her arm.
+
+‘My poor child, it is frightful,’ said Emily, ‘what is the matter?’
+
+‘A wasp stung me just before the Psalms,’ said Phyllis, ‘and it goes on
+swelling and swelling, and it does pant!’
+
+‘What is the matter?’ asked Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘Papa, just look,’ said Emily, ‘a wasp stung this dear child quite early
+in the service, and she has been bearing it all this time in silence.
+Why did you not show me, Phyl?’
+
+‘Because it was in church,’ said the little girl.
+
+‘Why, Phyllis, you are a very Spartan,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Something better than a Spartan,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘Does it give you
+much pain now, my dear?’
+
+‘Not so bad as in church,’ said Phyllis, ‘only I am very tired, and it is
+so hot.’
+
+‘We will help you home, then,’ said Mr. Mohun. As he took her up in his
+arms, Phyllis laughed, thanked him, replied to various inquiries from her
+sisters and the Westons—laughed again at sundry jokes from her brothers,
+then became silent, and was almost asleep, with her head on her papa’s
+shoulder, by the time they reached the hall-door. She thought it very
+strange to be laid down on the sofa in the drawing-room, and to find
+every one attending to her. Mrs. Weston bathed her forehead with
+lavender-water, and Lily cut open the sleeve of her frock; Jane fetched
+all manner of remedies, and Emily pitied her. She was rather frightened:
+she thought such a fuss would not be made about her unless she was very
+ill; she was faint and tired, and was glad when Mrs. Weston proposed that
+they should all come away, and leave her to go to sleep quietly.
+
+Marianne was so absorbed in admiration of Phyllis that she did not speak
+one word all the way from church to the New Court, and stood in silence
+watching the operations upon her friend, till Mrs. Weston sent every one
+away.
+
+Adeline rather envied Phyllis; she would willingly have endured the pain
+to be made of so much importance, and said to be better than a Spartan,
+which must doubtless be something very fine indeed!
+
+Phyllis was waked by the bells ringing for the afternoon service; Mrs.
+Weston was sitting by her, reading, Claude came to inquire for her, and
+to tell her that as she had lost her early dinner, she was to join the
+rest of the party at six. To her great surprise she felt quite well and
+fresh, and her arm was much better; Mrs. Weston pinned up her sleeve, and
+she set off with her to church, wondering whether Ada would remember to
+tell her what she had missed that afternoon at school. Those whose
+approbation was valuable, honoured Phyllis for her conduct, but she did
+not perceive it, or seek for it; she did not look like a heroine while
+running about and playing with Reginald and the dogs in the evening, but
+her papa had told her she was a good child, Claude had given her one of
+his kindest smiles, and she was happy. Even when Esther was looking at
+the mark left by the sting, and telling her that she was sure Miss
+Marianne Weston would have not been half so good, her simple, humble
+spirit came to her aid, and she answered, ‘I’ll tell you what, Esther,
+Marianne would have behaved much better, for she is older, and never
+fidgets, and she would not have been angry like me, and just going to
+kill the wasp.’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+COUSIN ROTHERWOOD
+
+
+ ‘We care not who says
+ And intends it dispraise,
+ That an Angler to a fool is next neighbour.’
+
+IN the evening Lord Rotherwood renewed his entreaties to Claude to join
+him on his travels. He was very much bent on taking him, for his own
+pleasure depended not a little on his cousin’s company. Claude lay on
+the glassy slope of the terrace, while Lord Rotherwood paced rapidly up
+and down before him, persuading him with all the allurements he could
+think of, and looking the picture of impatience. Lily sat by, adding her
+weight to all his arguments. But Claude was almost contemptuous to all
+the beauties of Germany, and all the promised sights; he scarcely gave
+himself the trouble to answer his tormentors, only vouchsafing sometimes
+to open his lips to say that he never meant to go to a country where
+people spoke a language that sounded like cracking walnuts; that he hated
+steamers; had no fancy for tumble-down castles; that it was so common to
+travel; there was more distinction in staying at home; that the field of
+Waterloo had been spoilt, and was not worth seeing; his ideas of glaciers
+would be ruined by the reality; and he did not care to see Cologne
+Cathedral till it was finished.
+
+On this Lily set up an outcry of horror.
+
+‘One comfort is, Lily,’ said Lord Rotherwood, ‘he does not mean it; he
+did not say it from the bottom of his heart. Now, confess you did not,
+Claude.’
+
+Claude pretended to be asleep.
+
+‘I see plainly enough,’ said the Marquis to Lily, ‘it is as Wat Greenwood
+says, “Mr. Reynold and the grapes.”’
+
+‘But it is not,’ said Lily, ‘and that is what provokes me; papa says he
+is quite welcome to go if he likes, and that he thinks it will do him a
+great deal of good, but that foolish boy will say nothing but “I will
+think about it,” and “thank you”.’
+
+‘Then I give him up as regularly dense.’
+
+‘It is the most delightful plan ever thought of,’ said Lily, ‘so easily
+done, and just bringing within his compass all he ever wished to see.’
+
+‘Oh! his sole ambition is to stretch those long legs of his on the grass,
+like a great vegetable marrow,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘It is vegetating
+like a plant that makes him so much taller than any rational creature
+with a little animal life.’
+
+‘I think Jane has his share of curiosity,’ said Lily, ‘I am sure I had no
+idea that anything belonging to us could be so stupid.’
+
+‘Well,’ said the Marquis, ‘I shall not go.’
+
+‘No?’ said Lily.
+
+‘No, I shall certainly not go.’
+
+‘Nonsense,’ said Claude, waking from his pretended sleep, ‘why do you not
+ask Travers to go with you? He would like nothing better.’
+
+‘He is a botanist, and would bore me with looking for weeds. No, I will
+have you, or stay at home.’
+
+Claude proposed several others as companions, but Lord Rotherwood treated
+them all with as much disdain as Claude had shown for Germany, and ended
+with ‘Now, Claude, you know my determination, only tell me why you will
+not go?’
+
+‘Then I do tell you, Rotherwood, the truth is, that those boys, Maurice
+and Reginald, are perfectly unmanageable when they are left alone with
+the girls.’
+
+‘Have a tutor for them,’ said the Marquis.
+
+‘Very much obliged to you they would be for the suggestion,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Oh! but Claude,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I really cannot go. They mind no one but the Baron and me, and besides
+that, it would be no small annoyance to the house; ten tutors could not
+keep them from indescribable bits of mischief. I undertook them these
+holidays, and I mean to keep them.’
+
+Lilias was just flying off to her father, when Claude caught hold of her,
+saying, ‘I desire you will not,’ and she stood still, looking at her
+cousin in dismay.
+
+‘It is all right,’ cried the Marquis, joyfully, ‘it is only to set off
+three weeks later.’
+
+‘Oh! I thought you would not go a week later for the universe,’ said
+Claude, smiling.
+
+‘Not for the Universe, but for U—,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Worthy of a companion true, of the University of Gottingen,’ said
+Claude; ‘but, Rotherwood, do you really mean that it will make no
+difference to you?’
+
+‘None whatever; I meant to spend three weeks with my mother at the end of
+the tour, and I shall spend them now instead. I only talked of going
+immediately, because nothing is done at all that is not done quickly, and
+I hate delays, but it is all the same, and now it stands for Tuesday
+three weeks. Now we shall see what he says to Cologne, Lily.’
+
+Claude sprung up, and began talking over arrangements and possibilities
+with zest, which showed what his wishes had been from the first. All was
+quickly settled, and as soon as his father had given his cordial
+approbation to the scheme, it was amusing to see how animated and active
+Claude became, and in how different a style he talked of the once
+slighted Rhine.
+
+Lord Rotherwood told the boys that their brother was a great deal too
+good for them, but they never troubled themselves to ask in what respect;
+Lilias took very great delight in telling Emily of the sacrifice which he
+had been willing to make, and looked forward to talking it over with
+Alethea, but she refrained, as long as he was at home, as she knew it
+would greatly displease him, and she had heard enough about missish
+confidences.
+
+The Marquis of Rotherwood was certainly the very reverse of his chosen
+travelling companion, in the matter of activity. He made an appointment
+with the two boys to get up at half-past four on Monday morning for some
+fishing, before the sun was too high—Maurice not caring for the sport,
+but intending to make prize of any of the ‘insect youth’ which might
+prefer the sunrise for their gambols; and Reginald, in high delight at
+the prospect of real fishing, something beyond his own performances with
+a stick and a string, in pursuit of minnows in the ditches. Reginald was
+making contrivances for tying a string round his wrist and hanging the
+end of it from the window, that Andrew Grey might give it a pull as he
+went by to his work, to wake him, when Lord Rotherwood exclaimed, ‘What!
+cannot you wake yourself at any time you please?’
+
+‘No,’ said Reginald, ‘I never heard of any one that could.’
+
+‘Then I advise you to learn the art; in the meantime I will call you
+to-morrow.’
+
+Loud voices and laughter in the hall, and the front door creaking on its
+hinges at sunrise, convinced the household that this was no vain boast;
+before breakfast was quite over the fishermen were seen approaching the
+house. Lord Rotherwood was an extraordinary figure, in an old shooting
+jacket of his uncle’s, an enormous pair of fishing-boots of William’s,
+and the broad-brimmed straw hat, which always hung up in the hall, and
+was not claimed by any particular owner.
+
+Maurice displayed to Jane the contents of two phials, strange little
+creatures, with stranger names, of which he was as proud as Reginald of
+his three fine trout. Lord Rotherwood did not appear till he had made
+himself look like other people, which he did in a surprisingly short
+time. He began estimating the weight of the fish, and talking at his
+most rapid rate, till at last Claude said, ‘Phyllis told us just now that
+you were coming back, for that she heard Cousin Rotherwood talking, and
+it proved to be Jane’s old turkey cock gobbling.’
+
+‘No bad compliment,’ said Emily, ‘for Phyllis was once known to say, on
+hearing a turkey cock, “How melodiously that nightingale sings.”’
+
+‘No, no! that was Ada,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘I could answer for that,’ said Claude. ‘Phyllis is too familiar with
+both parties to mistake their notes. Besides, she never was known to use
+such a word as melodiously.’
+
+‘Do you remember,’ said the Marquis, ‘that there was some great lawyer
+who had three kinds of handwriting, one that the public could read, one
+that only his clerk could read, and one that nobody could read?’
+
+‘I suppose I am the clerk,’ said Claude, ‘unless I divide the honour with
+Florence.’
+
+‘I do not think I am unintelligible anywhere but here,’ said Lord
+Rotherwood. ‘There is nothing sufficiently exciting at home, if
+Grosvenor Square is to be called home.’
+
+‘Sometimes you do it without knowing it,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Claude, ‘when you do not exactly know what you are going to
+say.’
+
+‘Then it is no bad plan,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘People are satisfied,
+and you don’t commit yourself.’
+
+‘I’ll tell you what, Cousin Rotherwood,’ exclaimed Phyllis, ‘your hand is
+bleeding.’
+
+‘Is it? Thank you, Phyllis, I thought I had washed it off: now do find
+me some sealing-wax—India-rub her—sticking-plaster, I mean.’
+
+‘Oh! Rotherwood,’ said Emily, ‘what a bad cut, how did it happen?’
+
+‘Only, I am the victim to Maurice’s first essay in fishing.’
+
+‘Just fancy what an awkward fellow Maurice is,’ said Reginald, ‘he had
+but one throw, and he managed to stick the hook into Rotherwood’s hand.’
+
+‘One of those barbed hooks? Oh! Rotherwood, how horrid!’ said Emily.
+
+‘And he cut it out with his knife, and caught that great trout with it
+directly,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘And neither half drowned Maurice, nor sent him home again?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘I contented myself with taking away his weapon,’ said the Marquis; ‘and
+he wished for nothing better than to poke about in the gutters for
+insects; it was only Redgie that teased him into the nobler sport.’
+
+Emily was inclined to make a serious matter of the accident, but her
+cousin said ten words while she said one, and by the time her first
+sentence was uttered, she found him talking about his ride to Devereux
+Castle.
+
+He and Claude set out as soon as breakfast was over, and came back about
+three o’clock; Claude was tired with the heat, and betook himself to the
+sofa, where he fell asleep, under pretence of reading, but the
+indefatigable Marquis was ready and willing to set out with Reginald and
+Wat Greenwood to shoot rabbits.
+
+Dinner-time came, and Emily sat at the drawing-room window with Claude
+and Lilias, lamenting her cousin’s bad habits. ‘Nothing will ever make
+him punctual,’ said she.
+
+‘I am in duty bound to let you say nothing against him,’ said Claude.
+
+‘It is very good-natured in him to wait for you,’ said Lily, ‘but it
+would be horribly selfish to leave you behind.’
+
+‘Delay is his great horror,’ said Claude, ‘and the wonder of his
+character is, that he is not selfish. No one had ever better training
+for it.’
+
+‘He does like his own way very much,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘Who does not?’ said Claude.
+
+‘Nothing shows his sense so much,’ said Emily, ‘as his great attachment
+to papa—the only person who ever controlled him.’
+
+‘And to Claude—his opposite in everything,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘I think he will tire you to death in Germany,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Never fear,’ said Claude, ‘my _vis inertiæ_ is enough to counterbalance
+any amount of restlessness.’
+
+‘Here they come,’ said Lily; ‘how Wat Greenwood is grinning at
+Rotherwood’s jokes!’
+
+‘A happy day for Wat,’ said Emily. ‘He will be quite dejected if William
+is not at home next shooting season. He thinks you a degenerate Mohun,
+Claude.’
+
+‘He must comfort himself with Redgie,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Rotherwood is only eager about shooting in common with everything else,’
+said Lily, ‘but Redgie, I fear, will care for nothing else.’
+
+Lord Rotherwood came in, accounting for being late, as, in passing
+through a harvest field, he could not help attempting to reap. The
+Beechcroft farming operations had been his especial amusement from very
+early days, and his plans were numerous for farming on a grand scale as
+soon as he should be of age. His talk during dinner was of turnips and
+wheat, till at length Mr. Mohun asked him what he thought of the
+appearance of the castle. He said it was very forlorn; the rooms looked
+so dreary and deserted that he could not bear to be in them, and had been
+out of doors almost all the time. Indeed, he was afraid he had
+disappointed the housekeeper by not complimenting her as she deserved,
+for the freezing dismal order in which she kept everything. ‘And
+really,’ said he, ‘I must go again to-morrow and make up for it, and
+Emily, you must come with me and try to devise something to make the
+unhappy place less like the abode of the Prince of the Black Islands.’
+
+Emily willingly promised to go, and she went on talking to him, and
+telling him whom he was to meet on the next day, when an unusual silence
+making her look up, she beheld him more than half asleep.
+
+Reginald fidgeted and sighed, and Maurice grew graver and graver as they
+thought of the wasps. Maurice wanted to take a nest entire, and began
+explaining his plan to Claude.
+
+‘You see, Claude, burning some straw and then digging, spoils the combs,
+as Wat does it; now I have got some puff-balls and sulphur to put into
+the hole, and set fire to them with a lucifer match, so as to stifle the
+wasps, and then dig them out quietly to-morrow morning.’
+
+‘It is all of no use, if that Rotherwood will do nothing but sleep,’ said
+Reginald, in a disconsolate tone.
+
+‘You should not have made him get up at four,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Who! I?’ exclaimed the Marquis. ‘I never was wider awake. What are
+you waiting for, Reginald? I thought you were going to take wasps’
+nests.’
+
+‘You are much too tired, I am sure,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Tired! not in the least, I have done nothing to-day to tire me,’ said
+Lord Rotherwood, walking up and down the room to keep himself awake.
+
+The whole party went out, and found Wat Greenwood waiting for them with a
+bundle of straw, a spade, and a little gunpowder. Maurice carried a
+basket containing all his preparations, on which Wat looked with supreme
+contempt, telling him that his puffs were too green to make a smeech.
+Maurice, not condescending to argue the point, ran on to a nest which
+Reginald had marked on one of the green banks of the ancient moat.
+
+‘Take care that the wasps are all come in; mind what you are about,
+Maurice,’ called his father.
+
+‘Master Maurice,’ shouted Wat, ‘you had better take a green bough.’
+
+‘Never mind, Wat,’ said Lord Rotherwood, ‘he would not stay long enough
+to use it if he had it.’
+
+Reginald ran after Maurice, who had just reached the nest.
+
+‘There is one coming in, the evening is so warm they are not quiet yet.’
+
+‘I’ll quiet them,’ said Maurice, kneeling down, and putting his first
+puff-ball into the hole.
+
+Reginald stood by with a sly smile, as he pulled a branch off a
+neighbouring filbert-tree. The next moment Maurice gave a sudden yell,
+‘The wasps! the wasps!’ and jumping up, and tripping at his first step,
+rolled down the bank, and landed safely at Lord Rotherwood’s feet. The
+shouts of laughter were loud, but he regarded them not, and as soon as he
+recovered his feet, rushed past his sisters, and never stopped till he
+reached the house. Redgie stood alone, in the midst of a cloud of wasps,
+beating them off with a bough, roaring with laughter, and calling Wat to
+bring the straw to burn them.
+
+‘No, no, Redgie, come away, leave them for Maurice to try again,’ said
+his father.
+
+‘The brute, he stung me,’ cried Reginald, knocking down a wasp or two as
+he came down. ‘What is this?’ added he, as he stumbled over something at
+the bottom of the slope. ‘Oh! Maurice’s basket; look here—laudanum—did
+he mean to poison the wasps?’
+
+‘No,’ said Jane, ‘to cure their stings.’
+
+‘The poor unhappy quiz!’ cried Reginald.
+
+While the others were busy over a nest, Mr. Mohun asked Emily how the boy
+got at the medicine chest. Emily looked confused, and said she supposed
+Jane had given him a bottle.
+
+‘Jane is too young to be trusted there,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I thought you
+knew better; do not let the key be out of your possession again.’
+
+After a few more nests had been taken in the usual manner, they returned
+to the house. Maurice was lying on the sofa reading the _Penny
+Magazine_, from which he raised his eyes no more that evening, in spite
+of all the jokes which flew about respecting wounded knights, courage,
+and the balsam of Fierabras. He called Jane to teach her how flies were
+made, and as soon as tea was over he went to bed. Reginald, after many
+yawns, prepared to follow his example, and as he was wishing his sisters
+good-night, Emily said, ‘Now, Redgie, do not go out at such a
+preposterous hour to-morrow morning.’
+
+‘What is that to you?’ was Reginald’s courteous inquiry.
+
+‘I do not wish to see every one fast asleep to-morrow evening,’ said
+Emily, and she looked at her cousin, whose head was far back over his
+chair.
+
+‘He is a Trojan,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Is a Trojan better than a Spartan?’ asked Ada, meditatively.
+
+‘Helen thought so,’ said Claude.
+
+‘“When Greek meets Greek, then comes the tug of war,”’ muttered the
+Marquis.
+
+‘You are all talking Greek,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Arabic,’ said Claude.
+
+As far as it could be comprehended, Lord Rotherwood’s answer related to
+Maurice and the wasps.
+
+‘There,’ said Emily, ‘what is to be done if he is in that condition
+to-morrow?’
+
+‘I am not asleep; what makes you think I am?’
+
+‘I wish you would sit in that great chair,’ said Emily, ‘I am afraid you
+will break your neck; you look so uncomfortable, I cannot bear to see
+you.’
+
+‘I never was more comfortable in my life,’ said Lord Rotherwood, asleep
+while finishing the sentence; but this time, happily with his elbows on
+the table, and his head in a safer position.
+
+The next day was spent rather more rationally. Lord Rotherwood met with
+a book of Irish Tales, with which he became so engrossed that he did not
+like to leave it when Emily and Claude were ready to ride to Devereux
+Castle with him. When there he was equally eager and vehement about each
+matter that came under consideration, and so many presented themselves,
+that Emily began to be in agonies lest she should not be at home in time
+to dress and receive her guests. They did, however, reach the house
+before Lilias, who had been walking with Miss Weston, came in, and when
+she went upstairs, she found Emily full of complaints at the
+inconvenience of having no Rachel to assist her in dressing, and to see
+that everything was in order, and that Phyllis was fit to appear when she
+came down in the evening; but, by the assistance of Lily and Jane, she
+got over her troubles, and when she went into the drawing-room, she was
+much relieved to find her two gentlemen quite safe and dressed. She had
+been in great fear of Lord Rotherwood’s straying away to join in some of
+Reginald’s sports, and was grateful to the Irish book for keeping him out
+of mischief.
+
+Emily was in her glory; it was the first large dinner-party since Eleanor
+had gone, and though she pitied herself for having the trouble of
+entertaining the people, she really enjoyed the feeling that she now
+appeared as the mistress of New Court, with her cousin, the Marquis, by
+her side, to show how highly she was connected. And everything went off
+just as could be wished. Lord Rotherwood talked intelligibly and
+sensibly, and Mr. Mohun’s neighbour at dinner had a voice which he could
+hear. Lily’s pleasure was not less than her sister’s, though of a
+different kind. She delighted in thinking how well Emily did the
+honours, in watching the varied expression of Lord Rotherwood’s animated
+countenance, in imagining Claude’s forehead to be finer than that of any
+one else, and in thinking how people must admire Reginald’s tall, active
+figure, and very handsome face. She was asked to play, and did tolerably
+well, but was too shy to sing, nor, indeed, was Reginald encouraging.
+‘What is the use of your singing, Lily? If it was like Miss Weston’s,
+now—’
+
+Reginald had taken a great fancy to Miss Weston; he stood by her all the
+evening, and afterwards let her talk to him, and then began to chatter
+himself, at last becoming so confidential as to impart to her the grand
+object of his ambition, which was to be taller than Claude!
+
+The next morning Lord Rotherwood left Beechcroft, somewhat to Emily’s
+relief; for though she was very proud of him, and much enjoyed the
+dignity of being seen to talk familiarly with him, yet, when no strangers
+were present, and he became no more than an ordinary cousin, she was
+worried by his incessant activity, and desire to see, know, and do
+everything as fast and as thoroughly as possible. She could not see the
+use of such vehemence; she liked to take things in a moderate way, and as
+Claude said, much preferred the passive to the active voice. Claude, on
+the contrary, was ashamed of his constitutional indolence, looked on it
+as a temptation, and struggled against it, almost envying his cousin his
+unabated eagerness and untiring energy, and liking to be with him,
+because no one else so effectually roused him from his habitual languor.
+His indolence was, however, so much the effect of ill health, that
+exertion was sometimes scarcely in his power, especially in hot weather,
+and by the time his brothers’ studies were finished each day, he was
+unfit for anything but to lie on the grass under the plane-tree.
+
+The days glided on, and the holidays came to an end; Maurice spent them
+in adding to his collection of insects, which, with Jane’s assistance, he
+arranged very neatly; and Reginald and Phyllis performed several
+exploits, more agreeable to themselves than satisfactory to the more
+rational part of the New Court community. At the same time, Reginald’s
+devotion to Miss Weston increased; he never moved from her side when she
+sang, did not fail to be of the party when she walked with his sisters,
+offered her one of his own puppies, named his little ship ‘Alethea,’ and
+was even tolerably civil to Marianne.
+
+At length the day of departure came; the boys returned to school, Claude
+joined Lord Rotherwood, and the New Court was again in a state of
+tranquillity.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+DANCING
+
+
+ ‘Prescribe us not our duties.’
+
+‘WELL, Phyllis,’ said her father, as he passed through the hall to mount
+his horse, ‘how do you like the prospect of Monsieur le Roi’s
+instructions?’
+
+‘Not at all, papa,’ answered Phyllis, running out to the hall door to pat
+the horse, and give it a piece of bread.
+
+‘Take care you turn out your toes,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘You must learn to
+dance like a dragon before Cousin Rotherwood’s birthday next year.’
+
+‘Papa, how do dragons dance?’
+
+‘That is a question I must decide at my leisure,’ said Mr. Mohun,
+mounting. ‘Stand out of the way, Phyl, or you will feel how horses
+dance.’
+
+Away he rode, while Phyllis turned with unwilling steps to the nursery,
+to be dressed for her first dancing lesson; Marianne Weston was to learn
+with her, and this was some consolation, but Phyllis could not share in
+the satisfaction Adeline felt in the arrival of Monsieur le Roi. Jane
+was also a pupil, but Lily, whose recollections of her own dancing days
+were not agreeable, absented herself entirely from the dancing-room, even
+though Alethea Weston had come with her sister.
+
+Poor Phyllis danced as awkwardly as was expected, but Adeline seemed
+likely to be a pupil in whom a master might rejoice; Marianne was very
+attentive and not ungraceful, but Alethea soon saw reason to regret the
+arrangement that had been made, for she perceived that Jane considered
+the master a fair subject for derision, and her ‘nods and becks, and
+wreathed smiles,’ called up corresponding looks in Marianne’s face.
+
+‘Oh Brownie, you are a naughty thing!’ said Emily, as soon as M. le Roi
+had departed.
+
+‘He really was irresistible!’ said Jane.
+
+‘I suppose ridicule is one of the disagreeables to which a dancing-master
+makes up his mind,’ said Alethea.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Jane, ‘one can have no compunction in quizzing that species.’
+
+‘I do not think I can quite say that, Jane,’ said Miss Weston.
+
+‘This man especially lays himself open to ridicule,’ said Jane; ‘do you
+know, Alethea, that he is an Englishman, and his name is King, only he
+calls himself Le Roi, and speaks broken English!’
+
+Though Alethea joined in the general laugh, she did not feel quite
+satisfied; she feared that if not checked in time, Jane would proceed to
+actual impertinence, and that Marianne would be tempted to follow her
+example, but she did not like to interfere, and only advised Marianne to
+be on her guard, hoping that Emily would also speak seriously to her
+sister.
+
+On the next occasion, however, Jane ventured still farther; her grimaces
+were almost irresistible, and she had a most comical manner of imitating
+the master’s attitudes when his eye was not upon her, and putting on a
+demure countenance when he turned towards her, which sorely tried
+Marianne.
+
+‘What shall I do, Alethea?’ said the little girl, as the sisters walked
+home together; ‘I do not know how to help laughing, if Jane will be so
+very funny.’
+
+‘I am afraid we must ask mamma to let us give up the dancing,’ replied
+Alethea; ‘the temptation is almost too strong, and I do not think she
+would wish to expose you to it.’
+
+‘But, Alethea, why do not you speak to Jane?’ asked Marianne; ‘no one
+seems to tell her it is wrong; Miss Mohun was almost laughing.’
+
+‘I do not think Jane would consider that I ought to find fault with her,’
+said Alethea.
+
+‘But you would not scold her,’ urged Marianne; ‘only put her in mind that
+it is not right, not kind; that Monsieur le Roi is in authority over her
+for the time.’
+
+‘I will speak to mamma,’ said Alethea, ‘perhaps it will be better next
+time.’
+
+And it was better, for Mr. Mohun happening to be at home, was dragged
+into the dancing-room by Emily and Ada. Once, when she thought he was
+looking another way, Jane tried to raise a smile, but a stern ‘Jane, what
+are you thinking of?’ recalled her to order, and when the lesson was over
+her father spoke gravely to her, telling her that he thought few things
+more disgusting in a young lady than impertinence towards her teachers;
+and then added, ‘Miss Weston, I hope you keep strict watch over these
+giddy young things.’
+
+Awed by her father, Jane behaved tolerably well at that time and the
+next, and Miss Weston hoped her interference would not be needed, but as
+if to make up for this restraint, her conduct a fortnight after was quite
+beyond bearing. She used every means to make Marianne laugh, and at last
+went so far as to pretend to think that M. le Roi had not understood what
+she said in English, and to translate it into French. Poor Marianne
+looked imploringly at her sister, and Alethea hoped that Emily would
+interpose, but Emily was turning away her head to conceal a laugh, and
+Miss Weston was obliged to give Jane a very grave look, which she
+perfectly understood, though she pretended not to see it. When the
+exercise was over Miss Weston made her a sign to approach, and said,
+‘Jane, do you think your papa would have liked—’
+
+‘What do you mean?’ said Jane, ‘I have not been laughing.’
+
+‘You know what I mean,’ said Alethea, ‘and pray do not be displeased if I
+ask you not to make it difficult for Marianne to behave properly.’
+
+Jane drew up her head and went back to her place. She played no more
+tricks that day, but as soon as the guests were gone, began telling
+Lilias how Miss Weston had been meddling and scolding her.
+
+‘And well you must have deserved it,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I do not say that Jenny was right,’ said Emily, ‘but I think Miss Weston
+might allow me to correct my own sister in my own house.’
+
+‘You correct Jane!’ cried Lily, and Jane laughed.
+
+‘I only mean,’ said Emily, ‘that it was not very polite, and papa says
+the closest friendship is no reason for dispensing with the rules of
+politeness.’
+
+‘Certainly not,’ said Lily, ‘the rules of politeness are rules of love,
+and it was in love that Alethea spoke; she sees how sadly we are left to
+ourselves, and is kind enough to speak a word in season.’
+
+‘Perhaps,’ said Jane, ‘since it was in love that she spoke, you would
+like to have her for our reprover for ever, and I can assure you more
+unlikely things have happened. I have heard it from one who can judge.’
+
+‘Let me hear no more of this,’ said Emily, ‘it is preposterous and
+ridiculous, and very disrespectful to papa.’
+
+Jane for once, rather shocked at her own words, went back to what had
+been said just before.
+
+‘Then, perhaps, you would like to have Eleanor back again?’
+
+‘I am sure you want some one to put you in mind of your duty,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Eleanor and duty!’ cried Emily; ‘you who thought so much of the power of
+love!’
+
+‘Of Emily and love, she would say, if it sounded well,’ said Jane.
+
+‘I cannot see what true love you or Jane are showing now,’ said Lily, ‘it
+is no kindness to encourage her pertness, or to throw away a friendly
+reproof because it offends your pride.’
+
+‘Nobody reproved me,’ replied Emily; ‘besides, I know love will prevail;
+for my sake Jane will not expose herself and me to a stranger’s
+interference.’
+
+‘If you depend upon that, I wish you joy,’ said Lilias, as she left the
+room.
+
+‘What a weathercock Lily is!’ cried Jane, ‘she has fallen in love with
+Alethea Weston, and echoes all she says.’
+
+‘Not considering her own inconsistency,’ said Emily.
+
+‘That Alethea Weston,’ exclaimed Jane, in an angry tone;—but Emily,
+beginning to recover some sense of propriety, said, ‘Jenny, you know you
+were very ill-bred, and you made it difficult for the little ones to
+behave well.’
+
+‘Not our own little ones,’ said Jane; ‘honest Phyl did not understand the
+joke, and Ada was thinking of her attitudes; one comfort is, that I shall
+be confirmed in three weeks’ time, and then people cannot treat me as a
+mere child—little as I am.’
+
+‘Oh! Jane,’ said Emily, ‘I do not like to hear you talk of confirmation
+in that light way.’
+
+‘No, no,’ said Jane, ‘I do not mean it—of course I do not mean it—don’t
+look shocked—it was only by the bye—and another by the bye, Emily, you
+know I must have a cap and white ribbons, and I am afraid I must make it
+myself.’
+
+‘Ay, that is the worst of having Esther,’ said Emily, ‘she and Hannah
+have no notion of anything but the plainest work; I am sure if I had
+thought of all the trouble of that kind which having a young girl would
+entail, I would never have consented to Esther’s coming.’
+
+‘That was entirely Lily’s scheme,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Yes; it is impossible to resist Lily, she is so eager and anxious, and
+it would have vexed her very much if I had opposed her, and that I cannot
+bear; besides, Esther is a very nice girl, and will learn.’
+
+‘There is Robert talking to papa on the green,’ said Jane; ‘what a deep
+conference; what can it be about?’
+
+If Jane had heard that conversation she might have perceived that she
+could not wilfully offend, even in what she thought a trifling matter,
+without making it evident, even to others, that there was something very
+wrong about her. At that moment the Rector was saying to his uncle, ‘I
+am in doubt about Jane, I cannot but fear she is not in a satisfactory
+state for confirmation, and I wished to ask you what you think?’
+
+‘Act just as you would with any of the village girls,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I should be very sorry to do otherwise,’ said Mr. Devereux; ‘but I
+thought you might like, since every one knows that she is a candidate,
+that she should not be at home at the time of the confirmation, if it is
+necessary to refuse her.’
+
+‘No,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I should not wish to shield her from the disgrace.
+It may be useful to her, and besides, it will establish your character
+for impartiality. I have not been satisfied with all I saw of little
+Jane for some time past, and I am afraid that much passes amongst my poor
+girls which never comes to my knowledge. Her pertness especially is
+probably restrained in my presence.’
+
+‘It is not so much the pertness that I complain of,’ said Mr. Devereux,
+‘for that might be merely exuberance of spirits, but there is a sort of
+habitual irreverence, which makes one dread to bring her nearer to sacred
+tings.’
+
+‘I know what you mean,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘and I think the pertness is a
+branch of it, more noticed because more inconvenient to others.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘I think the fault I speak of is most evident;
+when there is occasion to reprove her, I am always baffled by a kind of
+levity which makes every warning glance aside.’
+
+‘Then I should decidedly say refuse her,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘It would be a
+warning that she could not disregard, and the best chance of improving
+her.’
+
+‘Yet,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘if she is eager for confirmation, and regards
+it in its proper light, it is hard to say whether it is right to deny it
+to her; it may give her the depth and earnestness which she needs.’
+
+‘Poor child,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘she has great disadvantages; I am quite
+sure our present system is not fit for her. Things shall be placed on a
+different footing, and in another year or two I hope she may be fitter
+for confirmation. However, before you finally decide, I should wish to
+have some conversation with her, and speak to you again.
+
+‘That is just what I wish,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+THE FEVER
+
+
+ ‘Jane borrowed maxims from a doubting school,
+ And took for truth the test of ridicule.’
+
+THE question of Jane’s confirmation was decided in an unexpected manner;
+for the day after Mr. Mohun’s conversation with his nephew she was
+attacked by a headache and sore throat, spent a feverish night, and in
+the morning was so unwell that a medical man was sent for from Raynham.
+On his arrival he pronounced that she was suffering from scarlet fever,
+and Emily began to feel the approach of the same complaint.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline were shut up in the drawing-room, and a system of
+quarantine established, which was happily brought to a conclusion by a
+note from Mrs. Weston, who kindly begged that they might be sent to her
+at Broomhill, and Mr. Mohun gladly availing himself of the offer, the
+little girls set off, so well pleased to make a visit alone, as almost to
+forget the occasion of it. Mrs. Weston had extended her invitation to
+Lilias, but she begged to be allowed to remain with her sisters, and Mr.
+Mohun thought that she had been already so much exposed to the infection
+that it was useless for her to take any precautions.
+
+She was therefore declared head nurse; and it was well that she had an
+energetic spirit, and so sweet a temper, that she was ready to sympathise
+with all Emily’s petulant complaints, and even to find fault with herself
+for not being in two places at once. Two of the maids were ill, and the
+whole care of Emily and Jane devolved upon her, with only the assistance
+of Esther.
+
+Emily was not very seriously ill, but Jane’s fever was very high, and
+Lily thought that her father was more anxious than he chose to appear.
+Of Jane’s own thoughts little could be guessed; she was often delirious,
+and at all times speaking was so painful that she said as little as
+possible.
+
+Lily’s troubles seemed at their height one Sunday afternoon, while her
+father was at church. She had been reading the Psalms and Lessons to
+Emily, and she then rose to return to Jane.
+
+‘Do not go,’ entreated Emily.
+
+‘I will send Esther.’
+
+‘Esther is of no use.’
+
+‘And therefore I do not like to leave her so long alone with Jane. Pray
+spare me a little smile.’
+
+‘Then come back soon.’
+
+Lily was glad to escape with no more objections. She found Jane
+complaining of thirst, but to swallow gave her great pain, and she
+required so much attendance for some little time, that Emily’s bell was
+twice rung before Esther could be spared to go to her.
+
+She soon came back, saying, ‘Miss Mohun wants you directly, Miss Lilias.’
+
+‘Tell her I will come presently,’ said Lily, who had one hand pressed on
+Jane’s burning temples, while the other was sprinkling her with ether.
+
+‘Stay,’ said Jane, faintly, and Esther left the room.
+
+Jane drew her breath with so much difficulty that a dreadful terror
+seized upon Lily, lest she should be suffocated. She raised her head,
+and supported her till Esther could bring more pillows. Esther brought a
+message from Emily to hasten her return; but Jane could not be left, and
+the grateful look she gave her as she arranged the pillows repaid her for
+all her toils. After a little time Jane became more comfortable, and
+said in a whisper, ‘Dear Lily, I wish I was not so troublesome.’
+
+Back came Esther at this moment, saying, ‘Miss Emily says she is worse,
+and wants you directly, Miss Lilias.’
+
+Lily hurried away to Emily’s room, and found what might well have tried
+her temper. Emily was flushed indeed, and feverish, but her breathing
+was smooth and even, and her hand and pulse cool and slow, compared with
+the parched burning hands, and throbbings, too quick to count, which Lily
+had just been watching.
+
+‘Well, my dear Emily, I am sorry you do not feel better; what can I do
+for you?’
+
+‘How can I be better while I am left so long, and Esther not coming when
+I ring? What would happen if I were to faint away?’
+
+‘Indeed, I am very sorry,’ said Lily; ‘but when you rang, poor Jenny
+could spare neither of us.’
+
+‘How is poor Jenny?’ said Emily.
+
+‘Her throat is very bad, but she is quite sensible now, and wishes to
+have me there. What did you want, Emily?’
+
+‘Oh! I wish you would draw the curtain, the light hurts me; that will
+do—no—now it is worse, pray put it as it was before. Oh! Lily, if you
+knew how ill I am you would not leave me.’
+
+‘Can I do anything for you—will you have some coffee?’
+
+‘Oh! no, it has a bad taste, I am sure it is carelessly made.’
+
+‘Shall I make you some fresh, with the spirit lamp?’
+
+‘No, I am tired of it. I wonder if I might have some tamarinds?’
+
+‘I will ask as soon as papa comes from church.’
+
+‘Is he gone to church? how could he go when we are all so ill?’
+
+‘Perhaps he was doing us more good at church than he could at home. You
+will be glad to hear, Emily, that he has sent for Rachel to come and help
+us.’
+
+‘Oh! has he? but she lives so far off, and gets her letters so seldom, I
+don’t reckon at all upon her coming. If she could come directly it would
+be a comfort.’
+
+‘It would, indeed,’ said Lily; ‘she would know what to do for Jane.’
+
+‘Lily, where is the ether? You are always taking it away.’
+
+‘In Jane’s room; I will fetch it.’
+
+‘No, no, if you once get into Jane’s room I shall never see you back
+again.’
+
+Now Emily knew that Jane was very ill, and Lily’s pale cheeks, heavy
+eyes, and failing voice, might have reminded her that two sick persons
+were a heavy charge upon a girl of seventeen, without the addition of her
+caprices and fretfulness. And how was it that the kind-hearted,
+affectionate Emily never thought of all this? It was because she had
+been giving way to selfishness for nineteen years; and now the
+contemplation of her own sufferings was quite enough to hide from her
+that others had much to bear; and illness, instead of teaching her
+patience and consideration, only made her more exacting and querulous.
+
+To Lily’s unspeakable relief, Miss Weston accompanied Mr. Mohun from
+church, and offered to share her attendance. No one knew what it cost
+Alethea to come into the midst of a scene which constantly reminded her
+of the sisters she had lost, but she did not shrink from it, and was glad
+that her parents saw no objection to her offering to share Lily’s toils.
+Her experience was most valuable, and relieved Lilias of the fear that
+was continually haunting her, lest her ignorance might lead to some fatal
+mistake. The next day brought Rachel, and both patients began to mend.
+Jane’s recovery was quicker than Emily’s, for her constitution was not so
+languid, and having no pleasure in the importance of being an invalid,
+she was willing to exert herself, and make the best of everything, while
+Emily did not much like to be told that she was better, and thought it
+cruel to hint that exertion would benefit her. Both were convalescent
+before the fever attacked Lily, who was severely ill, but not alarmingly
+so, and her gentleness and patience made Alethea delight in having the
+care of her. Lily was full of gratitude to her kind friend, and felt
+quite happy when Alethea chanced one day to call her by the name of Emma;
+she almost hoped she was taking the place of that sister, and the thought
+cheered her through many languid hours, and gave double value to all
+Alethea’s kindness. She did not feel disposed to repine at an illness
+which brought out such affection from her friend, and still more from her
+father, who, when he came to see her, would say things which gave her a
+thrill of pleasure whenever she thought of them.
+
+It happened one day that Jane, having finished her book, looked round for
+some other occupation; she knew that Miss Weston had walked to Broomhill;
+Rachael was with Lilias, and there was no amusement at hand. At last she
+recollected that her papa had said in the morning, that he hoped to see
+her and Emily in the schoolroom in the course of the day, and hoping to
+meet her sister, she resolved to try and get there. The room had been
+Mr. Mohun’s sitting-room since the beginning of their illness, and it
+looked so very comfortable that she was glad she had come, though she was
+so tired she wondered how she should get back again. Emily was not
+there, so she lay down on the sofa and took up a little book from the
+table. The title was _Susan Harvey_, _or Confirmation_, and she read it
+with more interest as she remembered with a pang that this was the day of
+the confirmation, to which she had been invited; she soon found herself
+shedding tears over the book, she who had never yet been known to cry at
+any story, however affecting. She had not finished when Mr. Devereux
+came in to look for Mr. Mohun, and finding her there, was going away as
+soon as he had congratulated her on having left her room, but she begged
+him to stay, and began asking questions about the confirmation.
+
+‘Were there many people?’
+
+‘Three hundred.’
+
+‘Did the Stoney Bridge people make a disturbance?’
+
+‘No.’
+
+‘How many of our people?’
+
+‘Twenty-seven.’
+
+‘Did all the girls wear caps?’
+
+‘Most of them.’
+
+Jane was rather surprised at the shortness of her cousin’s answers, but
+she went on, as he stood before the fire, apparently in deep thought.
+
+‘Was Miss Burnet confirmed? She is the dullest girl I ever knew, and she
+is older than I am. Was she confused?’
+
+‘She was.’
+
+‘Did you give Mary Wright a ticket?’
+
+‘No.’
+
+‘Then, of course, you did not give one to Ned Long. I thought you would
+never succeed in making him remember which is the ninth commandment.’
+
+‘I did not refuse him.’
+
+‘Indeed! did he improve in a portentous manner?’
+
+‘Not particularly.’
+
+‘Well, you must have been more merciful than I expected.’
+
+‘Indeed!’
+
+‘Robert, you must have lost the use of your tongue, for want of us to
+talk to. I shall be affronted if you go into a brown study the first day
+of seeing me.’
+
+He smiled in a constrained manner, and after a few minutes said, ‘I have
+been considering whether this is a fit time to tell you what will give
+you pain. You must tell me if you can bear it.’
+
+‘About Lily, or the little ones?’
+
+‘No, no! only about yourself. Your father wished me to speak to you, but
+I would not have done so on this first meeting, but what you have just
+been saying makes me think this is the best occasion.’
+
+‘Let me know; I do not like suspense,’ said Jane, sharply.
+
+‘I think it right to tell you, Jane, that neither your father nor I
+thought it would be desirable for you to be confirmed at this time.’
+
+‘Do you really mean it?’ said Jane.
+
+‘Look back on the past year, and say if you sincerely think you are fit
+for confirmation.’
+
+‘As to that,’ said Jane, ‘the best people are always saying that they are
+not fit for these things.’
+
+‘None can call themselves worthy of them; but I think the conscience of
+some would bear them witness that they had profited so far by their
+present means of grace as to give grounds for hoping that they would
+derive benefit from further assistance.’
+
+‘Well, I suppose I must be very bad, since you see it,’ said Jane, in a
+manner rather more subdued; ‘but I did not think myself worse than other
+people.’
+
+‘Is a Christian called, only to be no worse than others?’
+
+‘Oh no! I see, I mean—pray tell me my great fault. Pertness, I
+suppose—love of gossip?’
+
+‘There must be a deeper root of evil, of which these are but the visible
+effects, Jane.’
+
+‘What do you mean, Robert?’ said Jane, now seeming really impressed.
+
+‘I think, Jane, that the greatest and most dangerous fault of your
+character is want of reverence. I think it is want of reverence which
+makes you press forward to that for which you confess yourself unfit; it
+is want of reverence for holiness which makes you not care to attain it;
+want of reverence for the Holy Word that makes you treat it as a mere
+lesson; and in smaller matters your pertness is want of reverence for
+your superiors; you would not be ready to believe and to say the worst of
+others, if you reverenced what good there may be in them. Take care that
+your want of reverence is not in reality want of faith.’
+
+Jane’s spirits were weak and subdued. It was a great shock to her to
+hear that she was not thought worthy of confirmation; her faults had
+never been called by so hard a name; she was in part humbled, and in part
+grieved, and what she thought harshness in her cousin; she turned away
+her face, and did not speak. He continued, ‘Jane, you must not think me
+unkind, your father desired me to talk to you, and, indeed, the time of
+recovery from sickness is too precious to be trifled away.’
+
+Jane wept bitterly. Presently he said, ‘It grieves me to have been
+obliged to speak harshly to you, you must forgive me if I have talked too
+much to you, Jane.’
+
+Jane tried to speak, but sobs prevented her, and she gave way to a
+violent fit of crying. Her cousin feared he had been unwise in saying so
+much, and had weakened the effect of his own words. He would have been
+glad to see tears of repentance, but he was afraid that she was weeping
+over fancied unkindness, and that he might have done what might be
+hurtful to her in her weak state. He said a few kind words, and tried to
+console her, but this change of tone rather added to her distress, and
+she became hysterical. He was much vexed and alarmed, and, ringing the
+bell, hastened to call assistance. He found Esther, and sent her to
+Jane, and on returning to the schoolroom with some water, he found her
+lying exhausted on the sofa; he therefore went in search of his uncle,
+who was overlooking some farming work, and many were the apologies made,
+and many the assurances he received, that it would be better for her in
+the end, as the impression would be more lasting.
+
+Jane was scarcely conscious of her cousin’s departure, or of Esther’s
+arrival, but after drinking some water, and lying still for a few
+moments, she exclaimed, ‘Oh, Robert! oh, Esther! the confirmation!’ and
+gasped and sobbed again. Esther thought she had guessed the cause of her
+tears, and tried to comfort her.
+
+‘Ah! Miss Jane, there will be another confirmation some day; it was a sad
+thing you were too ill, to be sure, but—’
+
+‘Oh! if I had—if he would not say—if he had thought me fit.’
+
+Esther was amazed, and asked if she should call Miss Weston, who was now
+with Lilias.
+
+‘No, no!’ cried Jane, nearly relapsing into hysterics. ‘She shall not
+see me in this state.’
+
+Esther hardly knew what to do, but she tried to soothe and comfort her by
+following what was evidently the feeling predominating in Jane’s mind, as
+indicated by her broken sentences, and said, ‘It was a pity, to be sure,
+that Mr. Devereux came and talked so long, he could not know of your
+being so very weak, Miss Jane.’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Jane, faintly, ‘I could have borne it better if he had waited
+a few days.’
+
+‘Yes, Miss, when you had not been so very ill. Mr. Devereux is a very
+good gentleman, but they do say he is very sharp.’
+
+‘He means to be kind,’ said Jane, ‘but I do not think he has much
+consideration, always.’
+
+‘Yes, Miss Jane, that is just what Mrs. White said, when—’
+
+Esther’s speech was cut short by the entrance of Miss Weston. Jane
+started up, dashed off her tears, and tried to look as usual, but the
+paleness of her face, and the redness of her eyes, made this impossible,
+and she was obliged to lie down again. Esther left the room, and Miss
+Weston did not feel intimate enough with Jane to ask any questions; she
+gave her some _sal volatile_, talked kindly to her of her weakness, and
+offered to read to her; all the time leaving an opening for confidence,
+if Jane wished to relieve her mind. The book which lay near her
+accounted, as she thought, for her agitation, and she blamed herself for
+having judged her harshly as deficient in feeling, now that she found her
+so much distressed, because illness had prevented her confirmation.
+Under this impression she honoured her reserve, while she thought with
+more affection of Lily’s open heart. Jane, who never took, or expected
+others to take, the most favourable view of people’s motives, thought
+Alethea knew the cause of her distress, and disliked her the more, as
+having witnessed her humiliation.
+
+Such was Jane’s love of gossip that the next time she was alone with
+Esther she asked for the history of Mrs. White, thus teaching her maid
+disrespect to her pastor, indirectly complaining of his unkindness, and
+going far to annul the effect of what she had learnt at school. Perhaps
+during her hysterics Jane’s conduct was not under control, but subsequent
+silence was in her power, and could she be free from blame if Esther’s
+faults gained greater ascendency?
+
+The next day Mr. Mohun attempted to speak to Jane, but being both
+frightened and unhappy, she found it very easy and natural, as well as
+very convenient, to fall into hysterics again, and her father was obliged
+to desist, regretting that, at the only time she was subdued enough to
+listen to reproof, she was too weak to bear it without injury. Rachel,
+who was nearly as despotic among the young ladies as she had been in
+former times in the nursery, now insisted on Emily’s going into the
+schoolroom, and when there, she made rapid progress. Alethea was amused
+to see how Jane’s decided will and lively spirit would induce Emily to
+make exertions, which no persuasions of hers could make her think other
+than impossible.
+
+A few days more, and they were nearly well again; and Lilias so far
+recovered as to be able to spare her kind friend, who returned home with
+a double portion of Lily’s love, and of deep gratitude from Mr. Mohun;
+but these feelings were scarcely expressed in words. Emily gave her some
+graceful thanks, and Jane disliked her more than ever.
+
+It was rather a dreary time that now commenced with the young ladies;
+they were tired of seeing the same faces continually, and dispirited by
+hearing that the fever was spreading in the village. The autumn was far
+advanced, the weather was damp and gloomy, and the sisters sat round the
+fire shivering with cold, feeling the large room dreary and deserted,
+missing the merry voices of the children, and much tormented by want of
+occupation. They could not go out, their hands were not steady enough to
+draw, they felt every letter which they had to write a heavy burden;
+neither Emily nor Lily could like needlework; they could have no music,
+for the piano at the other end of the room seemed to be in an Arctic
+Region, and they did little but read novels and childish stories, and
+play at chess or backgammon. Jane was the best off. Mrs. Weston sent
+her a little sock, with a request that she would make out the way in
+which it was knit, in a complicated feathery pattern, and in puzzling
+over her cotton, taking stitches up and letting them down, she made the
+time pass a little less heavily with her than with her sisters.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+A CURIOSITY MAP
+
+
+ ‘Keek into the draw-well,
+ Janet, Janet,
+ There ye’ll see your bonny sell,
+ My jo Janet.’
+
+IT was at this time that Lady Rotherwood and her daughter arrived at
+Devereux Castle, and Mr. Mohun was obliged to go to meet her there,
+leaving his three daughters to spend a long winter evening by themselves,
+in their doleful and dismal way, as Lily called it.
+
+The evening had closed in, but they did not ring for candles, lest they
+should make it seem longer; and Jane was just beginning to laugh at Emily
+for the deplorable state of her frock and collar, tumbled with lying on
+the sofa, when the three girls all started at the unexpected sound of a
+ring at the front door.
+
+With a rapid and joyful suspicion who it might be, Emily and Lilias
+sprang to the door, Jane thrust the poker into the fire, in a desperate
+attempt to produce a flame, drove an arm-chair off the hearth-rug,
+whisked an old shawl out of sight, and flew after them into the hall,
+just as the deep tones of a well-known voice were heard greeting old
+Joseph.
+
+‘William!’ cried the girls. ‘Oh! is it you? Are you not afraid of the
+scarlet fever?’
+
+‘No, who has it?’
+
+‘We have had it, but we are quite well now. How cold you are!’
+
+‘But where is my father?’
+
+‘Gone to Hetherington with Robert, to meet Aunt Rotherwood. Come into
+the drawing-room.’
+
+Here Emily glided off to perform a hurried toilette.
+
+‘And the little ones?’
+
+‘At Broomhill. Mrs. Weston was so kind as to take them out of the way of
+the infection,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Oh! William, those Westons!’
+
+‘Westons, what Westons? Not those I knew at Brighton?’
+
+‘The very same,’ said Lily. ‘They have taken the house at Broomhill.
+Oh! they have been so very kind, I do not know what would have become of
+us without Alethea.’
+
+‘Why did you not tell me they were living here? And you like them?’
+
+‘Like them! No one can tell the comfort Alethea has been. She came to
+us and nursed us, and has been my great support.’
+
+‘And Phyllis and Ada are with them?’
+
+‘Yes, they have been at Broomhill these six weeks, and more.’
+
+Here Emily came in and told William that his room was ready, and Rachel
+on the stairs wishing to see the Captain.
+
+‘How well he looks!’ cried Lily, as he closed the door; ‘it is quite
+refreshing to see any one looking so strong and bright.’
+
+‘And more like Sir Maurice than ever,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Ah! but Claude is more like,’ said Lily, ‘because he is pale.’
+
+‘Well,’ said Jane, ‘do let us in the meantime make the room look more fit
+to be seen before he comes down.’
+
+The alacrity which had long been wanting to Lilias and Jane had suddenly
+returned, and they succeeded in making the room look surprisingly
+comfortable, compared with its former desolate aspect, before William
+came down, and renewed his inquiries after all the family.
+
+‘And how is my father’s deafness?’ was one of his questions.
+
+‘Worse,’ said Emily. ‘I am afraid all the younger ones will learn to
+vociferate. He hears no one well but ourselves.’
+
+‘Oh! and Alethea Weston,’ said Lily. ‘Her voice is so clear and
+distinct, that she hardly ever raises it to make him hear. And have you
+ever heard her sing?’
+
+‘Yes, she sings very well. I cannot think why you never told me they
+were living here.’
+
+‘Because you never honour us with your correspondence,’ said Emily; ‘if
+you had vouchsafed to write to your sisters you could not have escaped
+hearing of the Westons.’
+
+‘And has Mr. Weston given up the law?’
+
+‘No, he only came home in the vacation,’ said Emily. ‘Did you know they
+had lost two daughters?’
+
+‘I saw it in the paper. Emma and Lucy were nice girls, but not equal to
+Miss Weston. What a shock to Mrs. Weston!’
+
+‘Yes, she quite lost her health, and the doctors said she must move into
+the country directly. Mrs. Carrington, who is some distant connection,
+told them of this place, and they took it rather hastily.’
+
+‘Do they like it?’
+
+‘Oh yes, very much!’ said Emily. ‘Mrs. Weston is very fond of the
+garden, and drives about in the pony-carriage, and it is quite pleasant
+to see how she admires the views.’
+
+‘And,’ added Lily, ‘Alethea walks with us, and sings with me, and teaches
+at school, and knows all the poor people.’
+
+‘I must go and see those children to-morrow,’ said William.
+
+The evening passed very pleasantly; and perhaps, in truth, Captain Mohun
+and his sisters were surprised to find each other so agreeable; for, in
+the eyes of the young ladies, he was by far the most awful person in the
+family.
+
+When he had been last at home Harry’s recent death had thrown a gloom
+over the whole family, and he had especially missed him. Himself quick,
+sensible, clever, and active, he was intolerant of opposite qualities,
+and the principal effect of that visit to Beechcroft was to make all the
+younger ones afraid of him, to discourage poor Claude, and to give to
+himself a gloomy remembrance of that home which had lost its principal
+charms in his mother and Harry.
+
+He had now come home rather from a sense of duty than an expectation of
+pleasure, and he was quite surprised to find how much more attractive the
+New Court had become. Emily and Lilias were now conversible and
+intelligent companions, better suited to him than Eleanor had ever been,
+and he had himself in these four years acquired a degree of gentleness
+and consideration which prevented him from appearing so unapproachable as
+in days of old. This was especially the case with regard to Claude,
+whose sensitive and rather timid nature had in his childhood suffered
+much from William’s boyish attempts to make him manly, and as he grew
+older, had almost felt himself despised; but now William appreciated his
+noble qualities, and was anxious to make amends for his former
+unkindness.
+
+Claude came home from Oxford, not actually ill, but in the ailing
+condition in which he often was, just weak enough to give his sisters a
+fair excuse for waiting upon him, and petting him all day long. About
+the same time Phyllis and Adeline came back from Broomhill, and there was
+great joy at the New Court at the news that Mrs. Hawkesworth was the
+happy mother of a little boy.
+
+Claude was much pleased by being asked by Eleanor to be godfather to his
+little nephew, whose name was to be Henry. Perhaps he hoped, what Lilias
+was quite sure of, that Eleanor did not think him unworthy to stand in
+Harry’s place.
+
+The choice of the other sponsors did not meet with universal approbation.
+Emily thought it rather hard that Mr. Hawkesworth’s sister, Mrs. Ridley,
+should have been chosen before herself, and both she and Ada would have
+greatly preferred either Lord Rotherwood, Mr. Devereux, or William, to
+Mr. Ridley, while Phyllis had wanderings of her own how Claude could be
+godfather without being present at the christening.
+
+One evening Claude was writing his answer to Eleanor, sitting at the sofa
+table where a small lamp was burning. Jane, attracted by its bright and
+soft radiance, came and sat down opposite to him with her work.
+
+‘What a silence!’ said Lily, after about a quarter of an hour.
+
+‘What made you start, Jane?’ said William.
+
+‘Did I?’ said Jane.
+
+‘My speaking, I suppose,’ said Lily, ‘breaking the awful spell of
+silence.’
+
+‘How red you look, Jane. What is the matter?’ said William.
+
+‘Do I?’ asked Jane, becoming still redder.
+
+‘It is holding your face down over that baby’s hood,’ said Emily, ‘you
+will sacrifice the colour of your nose to your nephew.’
+
+Claude now asked Jane for the sealing-wax, folded up his letter, sealed
+it, put on a stamp, and as Jane was leaving the room at bedtime, said,
+‘Jenny, my dear, as you go by, just put that letter in the post-bag.’
+
+Jane obeyed, and left the room. Claude soon after took the letter out of
+the bag, went to Emily’s door, listened to ascertain that Jane was not
+there, and then knocked and was admitted.
+
+‘I could not help coming,’ said he, ‘to tell you of the trap in which
+Brownie has been caught.’
+
+‘Ah!’ said Lily, ‘I fancied I saw her peeping slyly at your letter.’
+
+‘Just so,’ said Claude, ‘and I hope she has experienced the truth of an
+old proverb.’
+
+‘Oh! tell us what you have said,’ cried the sisters.
+
+Claude read, ‘Jane desires me to say that a hood for the baby shall be
+sent in the course of a week, and she hopes that it may be worn at the
+christening. I should rather say I hope it may be lost in the transit,
+for assuredly the head that it covers must be infected with something far
+worse than the scarlet fever—the fever of curiosity, the last quality
+which I should like my godson to possess. My only consolation is, that
+he will see the full deformity of the vice, as, poor little fellow, he
+becomes acquainted with “that worst of plagues, a prying maiden aunt.”
+If Jane was simply curious, I should not complain, but her love of
+investigation is not directed to what ought to be known, but rather to
+find out some wretched subject for petty scandal, to blacken every
+action, and to add to the weight of every misdeed, and all for the sake
+of detailing her discoveries in exchange for similar information with
+Mrs. Appleton, or some equally suitable confidante.’
+
+‘Is that all?’ said Lily.
+
+‘And enough, too, I hope,’ said Claude.
+
+‘It ought to cure her!’ cried Emily.
+
+‘Cure her!’ said Claude, ‘no such thing; cures are not wrought in this
+way; this is only a joke, and to keep it up, I will tell you a piece of
+news, which Jane must have spied out in my letter, as I had just written
+it when I saw her eyes in a suspicious direction. It was settled that
+Messieurs Maurice and Redgie are to go for two hours a day, three times a
+week, to Mr. Stevens, during the holidays.’
+
+‘The new Stoney Bridge curate?’ said Emily.
+
+‘I am very glad you are not to be bored by them,’ said Lily, ‘but how
+they will dislike it!’
+
+‘It is very hard upon them,’ said Claude, ‘and I tried to prevent it, but
+the Baron was quite determined. Now I will begin to talk about this
+plan, and see whether Jenny betrays any knowledge of it.’
+
+‘Oh! it will be rare!’ cried Lily; ‘but do not speak of it before the
+Baron or William.’
+
+‘Let it be at luncheon,’ said Emily, ‘you know they never appear. Do you
+mean to send the letter?’
+
+‘Not that part of it,’ said Claude, ‘you see I can tear off the last
+page, and it is only to add a new conclusion. Good-night.’
+
+Jane had certainly not spent the evening in an agreeable manner; she had
+not taken her seat at Claude’s table with any evil designs towards his
+letter, but his writing was clear and legible, and her eye caught the
+word ‘Maurice;’ she wished to know what Claude could be saying about him,
+and having once begun, she could not leave off, especially when she saw
+her own name. When aware of the compliments he was paying her, she
+looked at him, but his eyes were fixed on his pen, and no smile, no
+significant expression betrayed that he was aware of her observations;
+and even when he gave her the letter to put into the post-bag he looked
+quite innocent and unconcerned. On the other hand, she did not like to
+think that he had been sending such a character of her to Eleanor in
+sober sadness; it was impossible to find out whether he had sent the
+letter; she could not venture to beg him to keep it back, she could only
+trust to his good-nature.
+
+At luncheon, as they had agreed, Lily began by asking where her papa and
+William were gone? Claude answered, ‘To Stoney Bridge, to call upon Mr.
+Stevens; they mean to ask him to dine one day next week, to be introduced
+to his pupils.’
+
+‘Is he an Oxford or Cambridge man?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘Oxford,’ exclaimed Jane, quite forgetting whence she had derived her
+information, ‘he is a fellow of—’
+
+‘Indeed?’ said Lily; ‘how do you know that?’
+
+‘Why, we have all been talking of him lately,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Not I,’ said Emily, ‘why should he interest us?’
+
+‘Because he is to tutor the boys,’ said Jane.
+
+‘When did you hear that he is to tutor the boys?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘When you did, I suppose,’ said Jane, blushing.
+
+‘You did, did you?’ said Claude. ‘I feel convinced, if so, that you must
+really be what you are so often called, a changeling. I heard it, or
+rather read it first at Oxford, where the Baron desired me to make
+inquiries about him. You were, doubtless, looking over my shoulder at
+the moment. This is quite a discovery. We shall have to perform a
+brewery of egg-shells this evening, and put the elf to flight with a
+red-hot poker, and what a different sister Jane we shall recover, instead
+of this little mischief-making sprite, so quiet, so reserved, never
+intruding her opinion, showing constant deference to all her
+superiors—yes, and to her inferiors, shutting her eyes to the faults of
+others, and when they come before her, trying to shield the offender from
+those who regard them as merely exciting news.’
+
+Claude’s speech had become much more serious than he intended, and he
+felt quite guilty when he had finished, so that it was not at all an
+undesirable interruption when Phyllis and Adeline asked for the story of
+the brewery of egg-shells.
+
+Emily and Lilias kindly avoided looking at Jane, who, after fidgeting on
+her chair and turning very red, succeeded in regaining outward composure.
+She resolved to let the matter die away, and think no more about it.
+
+When Mr. Mohun and William came home, they brought the news that Lady
+Rotherwood had invited the whole party to dinner.
+
+‘I am very glad we are allowed to see them,’ said Emily, ‘I am quite
+tired of being shut up.’
+
+‘If it was not for the Westons we might as well live in Nova Zembla,’
+said Jane.
+
+‘I am glad you damsels should know a little more of Florence,’ said Mrs.
+Mohun.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Claude, ‘cousins were made to be friends.’
+
+‘In that case one ought to be able to choose them,’ said William.
+
+‘And know them,’ said Emily. ‘We have not seen Florence since she was
+eleven years old.’
+
+‘Cousin or not,’ said Lilias, ‘Florence can hardly be so much my friend
+as Alethea.’
+
+‘Right, Lily,’ said William, ‘stand up for old friends against all the
+cousins in the universe.’
+
+‘Has Alethea a right to be called an old friend?’ said Emily; ‘does three
+quarters of a year make friendship venerable?’
+
+‘No one can deny that she is a tried friend,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘But pray, good people,’ said Claude, ‘what called forth those vows of
+eternal constancy? why was my innocent general observation construed into
+an attack upon Miss Weston?’
+
+‘Because there is something invidious in your tone,’ said Lily.
+
+‘What kind of girl is that Florence?’ asked William.
+
+‘Oh! a nice, lively, pleasant girl,’ said Claude.
+
+‘I cannot make out what her pursuits are,’ said Lily; ‘Rotherwood never
+talks of her reading anything.’
+
+‘She has been governessed and crammed till she is half sick of all
+reading,’ said Claude, ‘of all study—ay, and all accomplishments.’
+
+‘So that is the friend you recommend, Lily!’ said William.
+
+‘Well, Claude, that is what I call a great shame,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Stay,’ said Claude, ‘you have heard but half my story, I say that this
+is the reaction. Florence has no lack of sense, and if you young ladies
+are wise, you may help her to find the use of it.’
+
+Claude’s further opinion did not transpire, as dinner was announced, and
+nothing more was said about Lady Florence till the girls had an
+opportunity of judging for themselves. She had a good deal of her
+brother’s vivacity, with gentleness and grace, which made her very
+engaging, and her perfect recollection of the New Court, and of childish
+days, charmed her cousins. Lady Rotherwood was very kind and
+affectionate, and held out hopes of many future meetings. The next day
+Maurice and Reginald came home from school, bringing a better character
+for diligence than usual, on which they founded hopes that the holidays
+would be left to their own disposal. They were by no means pleased with
+the arrangement made with Mr. Stevens and most unwillingly did they
+undertake the expedition to Stony Bridge, performing the journey in a
+very unsociable manner. Maurice was no horseman, and chose to jog on
+foot through three miles of lane, while Reginald’s pony cantered merrily
+along, its master’s head being intent upon the various winter sports in
+which William and Lord Rotherwood allowed him to share. Little did
+Maurice care for such diversions; he was, as Adeline said, studying
+another ‘apology.’ This time it was phrenology, for which the cropped
+heads of Lilias and Jane afforded unusual facility. There was, however,
+but a limited supply of heads willing to be fingered, and Maurice
+returned to the most abiding of his tastes, and in an empty room at the
+Old Court laboured assiduously to find the secret of perpetual motion.
+
+A few days before Christmas Rachel Harvey again took leave of Beechcroft,
+with a promise that she would make them another visit when Eleanor came
+home. Before she went she gave Emily a useful caution, telling her it
+was not right to trust her keys out of her own possession. It was what
+Miss Mohun never would have done, she had never once committed them even
+to Rachel.
+
+‘With due deference to Eleanor,’ said Emily, with her winning smile, ‘we
+must allow that that was being over cautious.’
+
+Rachel smiled, but her lecture was not averted by the compliment.
+
+‘It might have been very well since you have known me, Miss Emily, but I
+do not know what would have come of it, if I had been too much trusted
+when I was a giddy young thing like Esther; that girl comes of a bad lot,
+and if anything is to be made of her, it is by keeping temptation out of
+her way, and not letting her be with that mother of hers.’
+
+Rachel had rather injured the effect of her advice by behaving too like a
+mistress during her visit; Emily had more than once wished that all
+servants were not privileged people, and she was more offended than
+convinced by the remonstrance.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+CHRISTMAS
+
+
+ ‘Slee, sla, slud,
+ Stuck in the mud,
+ O! it is pretty to wade through a flood,
+ Come, wheel round,
+ The dirt we have found,
+ Would he an estate at a farthing a pound.’
+
+LILY’S illness interrupted her teaching at the village school for many
+weeks, and she was in no great haste to resume it. Alethea Weston seemed
+to enjoy doing all that was required, and Lily left it in her hands, glad
+to shut her eyes as much as possible to the disheartening state the
+parish had been in ever since her former indiscretion.
+
+The approach of Christmas, however, made it necessary for her to exert
+herself a little more, and her interest in parish matters revived as she
+distributed the clothing-club goods, and in private conference with each
+good dame, learnt the wants of her family. But it was sad to miss
+several names struck out of the list for non-attendance at church; and
+when Mrs. Eden came for her child’s clothing, Lily remarked that the
+articles she chose were unlike those of former years, the cheapest and
+coarsest she could find.
+
+St. Thomas’s day was marked by the custom, called at Beechcroft
+‘gooding.’ Each mother of a family came to all the principal houses in
+the parish to receive sixpence, towards providing a Christmas dinner, and
+it was Lily’s business to dispense this dole at the New Court. With a
+long list of names and a heap of silver before her, she sat at the oaken
+table by the open chimney in the hall, returning a nod or a smiling
+greeting to the thanks of the women as they came, one by one, to receive
+the little silver coins, and warm themselves by the glowing wood fire.
+
+ [Picture: Dispensing the ‘Gooding.’—p. 156]
+
+Pleasant as the task was at first, it ended painfully. Agnes Eden
+appeared, in order to claim the double portion allotted to her mother, as
+a widow. This was the first time that Mrs. Eden had asked for the
+gooding-money, and Lily knew that it was a sign that she must be in great
+distress. Agnes made her a little courtesy, and crept away again as soon
+as she had received her shilling; but Mrs. Grey, who was Mrs. Eden’s
+neighbour, had not quite settled her penny-club affairs, and remained a
+little longer. An unassuming and lightly-principled person was Mrs.
+Grey, and Lily enjoyed a talk with her, while she was waiting for the
+purple stuff frock which Jane was measuring off for Kezia. They spoke of
+the children, and of a few other little matters, and presently something
+was said about Mrs. Eden; Lily asked if the blacksmith helped her.
+
+‘Oh! no, Miss Lilias, he will do nothing for her while she sends her
+child to school and to church. He will not speak to her even. Not a bit
+of butter, nor a morsel of bacon, has been in her house since Michaelmas,
+and what she would have done if it was not for Mr. Devereux and Mrs.
+Weston, I cannot think.’
+
+Lilias, much shocked by this account of the distress into which she and
+Jane had been the means of bringing the widow, reported it to her father
+and to the Rector; entreating the former to excuse her rent, which he
+willingly promised to do, and also desired his daughters to give her a
+blanket, and tell her to come to dine house whenever any broth was to be
+given away. Mr. Devereux, who already knew of her troubles, and allowed
+her a small sum weekly, now told his cousins how much the Greys had
+assisted her. Andrew Grey had dug up and housed her winter’s store of
+potatoes, he had sought work for her, and little Agnes often shared the
+meals of his children. The Greys had a large family, very young, so that
+all that they did for her was the fruit of self-denial. Innumerable were
+the kindnesses which they performed unknown to any but the widow and her
+child. More, by a hundred times, did they assist her, than the
+thoughtless girls who had occasioned her sufferings, though Lily was not
+the only one who felt that nothing was too much for them to do. Nothing,
+perhaps, would have been too much, except to bear her in mind and
+steadily aid her in little things; but Lily took no account of little
+things, talked away her feelings, and thus all her grand resolutions
+produced almost nothing. Lord Rotherwood sent Mrs. Eden a sovereign, the
+girls newly clothed little Agnes, Phyllis sometimes carried her the
+scraps of her dinner, Mrs. Eden once came to work at the New Court, and a
+few messes of broth were given to her, but in general she was forgotten,
+and when remembered, indolence or carelessness too often prevented the
+Miss Mohuns from helping her. In Emily’s favourite phrase, each
+individual thing was ‘not worth while.’
+
+When Lilias did think it ‘worth while,’ she would do a great deal upon
+impulse, sometimes with more zeal than discretion, as she proved by an
+expedition which she took on Christmas Eve. Mr. Mohun did not allow the
+poor of the village to depend entirely on the gooding for their Christmas
+dinner, but on the 24th of December a large mess of excellent beef broth
+was prepared at the New Court, and distributed to all his own labourers,
+and the most respectable of the other cottagers.
+
+In the course of the afternoon Lily found that one portion had not been
+given out. It was that which was intended for the Martins, a poor old
+rheumatic couple, who lived at South End, the most distant part of the
+parish. Neither of them could walk as far as the New Court, and most of
+their neighbours had followed Farmer Gage, and had therefore been
+excluded from the distribution, so that there was no one to send. Lily,
+therefore, resolved herself to carry the broth to them, if she could find
+an escort, which was not an easy matter, as the frost had that morning
+broken up, and a good deal of snow and rain had been falling in the
+course of the day. In the hall she met Reginald, just turned out of
+Maurice’s workshop, and much at a loss for employment.
+
+‘Redgie,’ said she, ‘you can do me a great kindness.’
+
+‘If it is not a bore,’ returned Reginald.
+
+‘I only want you to walk with me to South End.’
+
+‘Eh?’ said Reginald; ‘I thought the little Misses were too delicate to
+put their dear little proboscises outside the door.’
+
+‘That is the reason I ask you; I do not think Emily or Jane would like
+it, and it is too far for Claude. Those poor old Martins have not got
+their broth, and there is no one to fetch it for them.’
+
+‘Then do not be half an hour putting on your things.’
+
+‘Thank you; and do not run off, and make me spend an hour in hunting for
+you, and then say that I made you wait.’
+
+‘I will wait fast enough. You are not so bad as Emily,’ said Reginald,
+while Lily ran upstairs to equip herself. When she came down, she was
+glad to find her escort employed in singeing the end of the tail of the
+old rocking-horse at the fire in the hall, so that she was not obliged to
+seek him in the drawing-room, where her plans would probably have met
+with opposition. She had, however, objections to answer from an
+unexpected quarter. Reginald was much displeased when she took
+possession of the pitcher of broth.
+
+‘I will not walk with such a thing as that,’ said he, ‘it makes you look
+like one of the dirty girls in the village.’
+
+‘Then you ought, like the courteous Rinaldo, to carry it for me,’ said
+Lily.
+
+‘I touch the nasty thing! Faugh! Throw it into the gutter, Lily.’
+
+He made an attempt to dispose of it in that manner, which it required all
+Lily’s strength to withstand, as well as an imploring ‘Now, Redgie, think
+of the poor old people. Remember, you have promised.’
+
+‘Promised! I never promised to walk with a greasy old pitcher. What am
+I to do if we meet Miss Weston?’
+
+Lily contrived to overcome Reginald’s refined notions sufficiently to
+make him allow her to carry the pitcher; and when he had whistled up two
+of the dogs, they proceeded merrily along the road, dirty and wet though
+it was. Their walk was not entirely without adventures; first, they had
+to turn back in the path by the river side, which would have saved them
+half a mile, but was now flooded. Then, as they were passing through a
+long lane, which led them by Edward Gage’s farm, a great dog rushed out
+of the yard, and fell upon the little terrier, Viper. Old Neptune flew
+to the rescue, and to the great alarm of Lily, Reginald ran up with a
+stick; happily, however, a labourer at the same time came out with a
+pitchfork, and beat off the enemy. These two delays, together with
+Reginald’s propensity for cutting sticks, and for breaking ice, made it
+quite late when they arrived at South End. When there, they found that a
+kind neighbour had brought the old people their broth in the morning, and
+intended to go for her own when she came home from her work in the
+evening. It was not often that Lily went to South End; the old people
+were delighted to see her, and detained her for some time by a long story
+about their daughter at service, while Reginald looked the picture of
+impatience, drumming on his knee, switching the leg of the table, and
+tickling Neptune’s ears. When they left the cottage it was much later
+and darker than they had expected; but Lily was unwilling again to
+encounter the perils of the lane, and consulted her brother whether there
+was not some other way. He gave notice of a cut across some fields,
+which would take them into the turnpike road, and Lily agreeing, they
+climbed over a gate into a pathless turnip field. Reginald strode along
+first, calling to the dogs, while Lily followed, abstaining from dwelling
+on the awkward circumstance that every step she took led her farther from
+home, and rejoicing that it was so dark that she could not see the mud
+which plastered the edge of her petticoats. After plodding through three
+very long fields, they found themselves shut in by a high hedge and tall
+ditch.
+
+‘That fool of a farmer!’ cried Reginald.
+
+‘What is to be done?’ said Lily, disconsolately.
+
+‘There is the road,’ said Reginald. ‘How do you propose to get into it?’
+
+‘There was a gap here last summer,’ said the boy.
+
+‘Very likely! Come back; try the next field; it must have a gate
+somewhere.’
+
+Back they went, after seeing the carrier’s cart from Raynham pass by.
+
+‘Redgie, it must be half-past five! We shall never be in time. Aunt
+Rotherwood coming too!’
+
+After a desperate plunge through a swamp of ice, water, and mud, they
+found themselves at a gate, and safely entered the turnpike road.
+
+‘How it rains!’ said Lily. ‘One comfort is that it is too dark for any
+one to see us.’
+
+‘Not very dark, either,’ said Reginald; ‘I believe there is a moon if one
+could see it. Ha! here comes some one on horseback. It is a gray horse;
+it is William.’
+
+‘Come to look for us,’ said Lily. ‘Oh, Redgie!’
+
+‘Coming home from Raynham,’ said Reginald. ‘Do not fancy yourself so
+important, Lily. William, is that you?’
+
+‘Reginald!’ exclaimed William, suddenly checking his horse. ‘Lily, what
+is all this?’
+
+‘We set out to South End, to take the broth to the old Martins, and we
+found the meadows flooded, which made us late; but we shall soon be at
+home,’ said Lily, in a make-the-best-of-it tone.
+
+‘Soon? You are a mile and a half from home now, and do you know how late
+it is?’
+
+‘Half-past five,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Six, at least; how could you be so absurd?’ William rode quickly on;
+Reginald laughed, and they plodded on; at length a tall dark figure was
+seen coming towards them, and Lily started, as it addressed her, ‘Now
+what is the meaning of all this?’
+
+‘Oh, William, have you come to meet us? Thank you; I am sorry—’
+
+‘How were you to come through the village in the dark, without some one
+to take care of you?’
+
+‘I am taking care of her,’ said Reginald, affronted.
+
+‘Make haste; my aunt is come. How could you make the people at home so
+anxious?’
+
+William gave Lily his arm, and on finding she was both tired and wet,
+again scolded her, walked so fast that she was out of breath, then
+complained of her folly, and blamed Reginald. It was very unpleasant,
+and yet she was very much obliged to him, and exceedingly sorry he had
+taken so much trouble.
+
+They came home at about seven o’clock. Jane met them in the hall, full
+of her own and Lady Rotherwood’s wonderings; she hurried Lily upstairs,
+and—skilful, quick, and ready—she helped her to dress in a very short
+time. As they ran down Reginald overtook them, and they entered the
+drawing-room as the dinner-bell was ringing. William did not appear for
+some time, and his apologies were not such as to smooth matters for his
+sister.
+
+Perhaps it was for this very reason that Mr. Mohun allowed Lily to escape
+with no more than a jesting reproof. Lord Rotherwood wished to make his
+cousin’s hardihood and enterprise an example to his sister, and, in his
+droll exaggerating way, represented such walks as every-day occurrences.
+This was just the contrary to what Emily wished her aunt to believe, and
+Claude was much diverted with the struggle between her politeness to Lord
+Rotherwood and her desire to maintain the credit of the family.
+
+Lady Florence, though liking Lilias, thought this walk extravagant.
+Emily feared Lilias had lost her aunt’s good opinion, and prepared
+herself for some hints about a governess. It was untoward; but in the
+course of the evening she was a little comforted by a proposal from Lady
+Rotherwood to take her and Lilias to a ball at Raynham, which was to take
+place in January; and as soon as the gentlemen appeared, they submitted
+the invitation to their father, while Lady Rotherwood pressed William to
+accompany them, and he was refusing.
+
+‘What are soldiers intended for but to dance!’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘I never dance,’ said William, with a grave emphasis.
+
+‘I am out of the scrape,’ said the Marquis. ‘I shall be gone before it
+takes place; I reserve all my dancing for July 30th. Well, young ladies,
+is the Baron propitious?’
+
+‘He says he will consider of it,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Oh then, he will let you go,’ said Florence, ‘people never consider when
+they mean no.’
+
+‘No, Florence,’ said her brother, ‘Uncle Mohun’s “consider of it” is
+equivalent to Le Roi’s “avisera.”’
+
+‘What is he saying?’ asked Lily, turning to listen. ‘Oh, that my wig is
+in no ball-going condition.’
+
+‘A wreath would hide all deficiencies,’ said Florence; ‘I am determined
+to have you both.’
+
+‘I give small hopes of both,’ said Claude; ‘you will only have Emily.’
+
+‘Why do you think so, Claude?’ cried both Florence and Lilias.
+
+‘From my own observation,’ Claude answered, gravely.
+
+‘I am very angry with the Baron,’ said Lord Rotherwood; ‘he is grown
+inhospitable: he will not let me come here to-morrow—the first Christmas
+these five years that I have missed paying my respects to the New Court
+sirloin and turkey. It is too bad—and the Westons dining here too.’
+
+‘Cousin Turkey-cock, well may you be in a passion,’ muttered Claude, as
+if in soliloquy.
+
+Lord Rotherwood and Lilias both caught the sound, and laughed, but Emily,
+unwilling that Florence should see what liberties they took with her
+brother, asked quickly why he was not to come.
+
+‘I think we are much obliged to him,’ said Florence, ‘it would be too bad
+to leave mamma and me to spend our Christmas alone, when we came to the
+castle on purpose to oblige him.’
+
+‘Ay, and he says he will not let me come here, because I ought to give
+the Hetherington people ocular demonstration that I go to church,’ said
+Lord Rotherwood.
+
+‘Very right, as Eleanor would say,’ observed Claude.
+
+‘Very likely; but I don’t care for the Hetherington folks; they do not
+know how to make the holly in the church fit to be seen, and they will
+not sing the good old Christmas carols. Andrew Grey is worth all the
+Hetherington choir put together.’
+
+‘Possibly; but how are they to mend, if their Marquis contents himself
+with despising them?’ said Claude.
+
+‘That is too bad, Claude. When you heard how submissively I listened to
+the Baron, and know I mean to abide by what he said, you ought to condole
+with me a little, if you have not the grace to lament my absence on your
+own account. Why, I thought myself as regular a part of the feast as the
+mince-pies, and almost as necessary.’
+
+Here a request for some music put an end to his lamentations. Lilias was
+vexed by the uncertainty about the ball, and was, besides, too tired to
+play with spirit. She saw that Emily was annoyed, and she felt ready to
+cry before the evening was over; but still she was proud of her exploit,
+and when, after the party was gone, Emily began to represent to her the
+estimate that her aunt was likely to form of her character, she replied,
+‘If she thinks the worse of me for carrying the broth to those poor old
+people, I am sure I do not wish for her good opinion.’
+
+Mr. Mohun was not propitious when the question of Lily’s going to the
+ball was pressed upon him. He said that he thought her too young for
+gaieties, and, besides, that late hours never agreed with her, and he
+advised her to wait for the 30th of July.
+
+Lilias knew that it was useless to say any more. She was much
+disappointed, and at the same time provoked with herself for caring about
+such a matter. Her temper was out of order on Christmas Day; and while
+she wondered why she could not enjoy the festival as formerly, with
+thoughts fitted to the day, she did not examine herself sufficiently to
+find out the real cause of her uncomfortable feelings.
+
+The clear frost was only cold; the bright sunshine did not rejoice her;
+the holly and the mistletoe seemed ill arranged; and none of the pleasant
+sights of the day could give her such blitheness as once she had known.
+
+She was almost angry when she saw that the Westons had left off their
+mourning, declaring that they did not look like themselves; and her
+vexation came to a height when she found that Alethea actually intended
+to go to the ball with Mrs. Carrington. The excited manner in which she
+spoke of it convinced Mr. Mohun that he had acted wisely in not allowing
+her to go, since the very idea seemed to turn her head.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+MINOR MISFORTUNES
+
+
+ ‘Loving she is, and tractable though wild.’
+
+IN a day or two Lady Rotherwood and her daughter called at the New Court.
+On this occasion Lilias was employed in as rational and lady-like a
+manner as could be desired—in practising her music in the drawing-room;
+Emily was reading, and Ada threading beads.
+
+Lady Rotherwood greeted her nieces very affectionately, gave a double
+caress to Adeline, stroked her pretty curls, admired her beadwork, talked
+to her about her doll, and then proceeded to invite the whole family to a
+Twelfth-Day party, given for their especial benefit. The little
+Carringtons and the Weston girls were also to be asked. Emily and Lilias
+were eagerly expressing their delight when suddenly a trampling, like a
+charge of horse, was heard in the hall; the door was thrown back, and in
+rushed Reginald and Phyllis, shouting, ‘Such fun!—the pigs are in the
+garden!’
+
+At the sight of their aunt they stopped short, looking aghast, and
+certainly those who beheld them partook of their consternation. Reginald
+was hot and gloveless; his shoes far from clean; his brown curls hanging
+in great disorder from his Scotch cap; his handkerchief loose; his jacket
+dusty—but this was no great matter, since, as Emily said, he was ‘only a
+boy.’ His bright open smile, the rough, yet gentleman-like courtesy of
+his advance to the Marchioness, his comical roguish glance at Emily, to
+see if she was very angry, and to defy her if she were, and his speedy
+exit, all greatly amused Lady Florence, and made up for what there might
+have been of the wild schoolboy in his entrance.
+
+Poor Phyllis had neither the excuse of being a schoolboy nor the
+good-humoured fearlessness that freed her brother from embarrassment, and
+she stood stock-still, awkward and dismayed, not daring to advance;
+longing to join in the pig-chase, yet afraid to run away, her eyes
+stretched wide open, her hair streaming into them, her bonnet awry, her
+tippet powdered with seeds of hay, her gloves torn and soiled, the colour
+of her brown holland apron scarcely discernible through its various
+stains, her frock tucked up, her stockings covered with mud, and without
+shoes, which she had taken off at the door.
+
+‘Phyllis,’ said Emily, ‘what are you thinking of? What makes you such a
+figure? Come and speak to Aunt Rotherwood.’
+
+Phyllis drew off her left-hand glove, and held out her hand, making a few
+sidelong steps towards her aunt, who gave her a rather reluctant kiss.
+Lily bent her bonnet into shape, and pulled down her frock, while
+Florence laughed, patted her cheek, and asked what she had been doing.
+
+‘Helping Redgie to chop turnips,’ was the answer.
+
+Afraid of some further exposure, Emily hastily sent her away to be made
+fit to be seen, and Lady Rotherwood went on caressing Ada and talking of
+something else. Emily had no opportunity of explaining that this was not
+Phyllis’s usual condition, and she was afraid that Lady Rotherwood would
+never believe that it was accidental. She was much annoyed, especially
+as the catastrophe only served to divert Mr. Mohun and Claude. Of all
+the family William and Adeline alone took her view of the case. Ada
+lectured Phyllis on her ‘naughtiness,’ and plumed herself on her aunt’s
+evident preference, but William was not equally sympathetic. He was
+indeed as fastidious as Emily herself, and as much annoyed by such
+misadventures; but he maintained that she was to blame for them, saying
+that the state of things was not such as it should be, and that the
+exposure might be advantageous if it put her on her guard in future.
+
+It appeared as if poor Phyllis was to be punished for the vexation which
+she had caused, for in the course of her adventures with Reginald she
+caught a cold, which threatened to prevent her from being of the party on
+Twelfth-Day. She had a cough, which did not give her by any means as
+much inconvenience as the noise it occasioned did to other people. Every
+morning and every evening she anxiously asked her sisters whether they
+thought she would be allowed to go. Another of the party seemed likely
+to fail. On the 5th of January Claude came down to breakfast later even
+than usual; but he had no occasion to make excuses, for his heavy eyes,
+the dark lines under them, his pale cheeks, and the very sit of his hair,
+were sure signs that he had a violent headache. He soon betook himself
+to the sofa in the drawing-room, attended by Lily, with pillows,
+cushions, ether, and lavender. Late in the afternoon the pain diminished
+a little, and he fell asleep, to the great joy of his sister, who sat
+watching him, scarcely daring to move.
+
+Suddenly a frightful scream and loud crash was heard in the room above
+them. Claude started up, and Lily, exclaiming, ‘Those tiresome
+children!’ hurried to the room whence the noise had come.
+
+Reginald, Phyllis, and Ada, all stood there laughing. Reginald and
+Phyllis had been climbing to the top of a great wardrobe, by means of a
+ladder of chairs and tables. While Phyllis was descending her brother
+had made some demonstration that startled her, and she fell with all the
+chairs over her, but without hurting herself.
+
+‘You naughty troublesome child,’ cried Lily, in no gentle tone. ‘How
+often have you been told to leave off such boyish tricks! And you choose
+the very place for disturbing poor Claude, with his bad headache, making
+it worse than ever.’
+
+Phyllis tried to speak, but only succeeded in giving a dismal howl. She
+went on screaming, sobbing, and roaring so loud that she could not hear
+Lily’s attempts to quiet her. The next minute Claude appeared, looking
+half distracted. Reginald ran off, and as he dashed out of the room,
+came full against William, who caught hold of him, calling out to know
+what was the matter.
+
+‘Only Phyllis screaming,’ said Lily. ‘Oh, Claude, I am very sorry!’
+
+‘Is that all?’ said Claude. ‘I thought some one was half killed!’
+
+He sank into a chair, pressing his hand on his temples, and looking very
+faint. William supported him, and Lily stood by, repeating, ‘I am very
+sorry—it was all my fault—my scolding—’
+
+‘Hush,’ said William, ‘you have done mischief enough. Go away,
+children.’
+
+Phyllis had already gone, and the next moment thrust into Lily’s hand the
+first of the medicaments which she had found in the drawing-room. The
+faintness soon went off, but Claude thought he had better not struggle
+against the headache any longer, but go to bed, in hopes of being better
+the next day. William went with him to his room, and Lilias lingered on
+the stairs, very humble, and very wretched. William soon came forth
+again, and asked the meaning of the uproar.
+
+‘It was all my fault,’ said she; ‘I was vexed at Claude’s being waked,
+and that made me speak sharply to Phyllis, and set her roaring.’
+
+‘I do not know which is the most inconsiderate of you,’ said William.
+
+‘You cannot blame me more than I deserve,’ said Lily. ‘May I go to poor
+Claude?’
+
+‘I suppose so; but I do not see what good you are to do. Quiet is the
+only thing for him.’
+
+Lily, however, went, and Claude gave her to understand that he liked her
+to stay with him. She arranged his blinds and curtains comfortably, and
+then sat down to watch him. William went to the drawing-room to write a
+letter. Just as he had sat down he heard a strange noise, a sound of
+sobbing, which seemed to come from the corner where the library steps
+stood. Looking behind them, he beheld Phyllis curled up, her head on her
+knees, crying bitterly.
+
+‘You there! Come out. What is the matter now?’
+
+‘I am so very sorry,’ sighed she.
+
+‘Well, leave off crying.’ She would willingly have obeyed, but her sobs
+were beyond her own control; and he went on, ‘If you are sorry, there is
+no more to be said. I hope it will be a lesson to you another time. You
+are quite old enough to have more consideration for other people.’
+
+‘I am very sorry,’ again said Phyllis, in a mournful note.
+
+‘Be sorry, only do not roar. You make that noise from habit, I am
+convinced, and you may break yourself off it if you choose.’
+
+Phyllis crept out of the room, and in a few minutes more the door was
+softly opened by Emily, returning from her walk.
+
+‘I thought Claude was here. Is he gone to bed? Is his head worse?’
+
+‘Yes, the children have been doing their best to distract him. Emily, I
+want to know why it is that those children are for ever in mischief and
+yelling in all parts of the house.’
+
+‘I wish I could help it,’ said Emily, with a sigh; ‘they are very
+troublesome.’
+
+‘There must be great mismanagement,’ said her brother.
+
+‘Oh, William! Why do you think so?’
+
+‘Other children do not go on in this way, and it was not so in Eleanor’s
+time.’
+
+‘It is only Phyllis,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Phyllis or not, it ought not to be. What will that child grow up, if
+you let her be always running wild with the boys?’
+
+‘Consider, William, that you see us at a disadvantage; we are all
+unsettled by this illness, and the children have been from home.’
+
+‘As if they learnt all these wild tricks at Broomhill! That excuse will
+not do, Emily.’
+
+‘And then they are always worse in the holidays,’ pleaded Emily.
+
+‘Yes, there are reasons to be found for everything that goes wrong; but
+if you were wise you would look deeper. Now, Emily, I do not wish to be
+hard upon you, for I know you are in a very difficult position, and very
+young for such a charge, but I am sure you might manage better. I do not
+think you use your energies. There is no activity, nor regularity, nor
+method, about this household. I believe that my father sees that this is
+the case, but it is not his habit to find fault with little things. You
+may think that, therefore, I need not interfere, but—’
+
+‘Oh, William! I am glad—’
+
+‘But remember that comfort is made up of little things. And, Emily, when
+you consider how much my father has suffered, and how desolate his home
+must be at the best, I think you will be inclined to exert yourself to
+prevent him from being anxious about the children or harassed by your
+negligence.’
+
+‘Indeed, William,’ returned Emily, with many tears, ‘it is my most
+earnest wish to make him comfortable. Thank you for what you have said.
+Now that I am stronger, I hope to do more, and I will really do my best.’
+
+At this moment Emily was sincere; but the good impulse of one instant was
+not likely to endure against long cherished habits of selfish apathy.
+
+Claude did not appear again till the middle of the next day. His
+headache was nearly gone, but he was so languid that he gave up all
+thoughts of Devereux Castle that evening. Lord Rotherwood, who always
+seemed to know what was going on at Beechcroft, came to inquire for him,
+and very unwillingly allowed that it would be better for him to stay at
+home. Lilias wished to remain with him; but this her cousin would not
+permit, saying that he could not consent to lose three of the party, and
+Florence would be disappointed in all her plans. Neither would Claude
+hear of keeping her at home, and she was obliged to satisfy herself with
+putting his arm-chair in his favourite corner by the fire, with the
+little table before it, supplied with books, newspaper, inkstand,
+paper-knife, and all the new periodicals, and he declared that he should
+enjoy the height of luxury.
+
+Phyllis considered it to be entirely her fault that he could not go, and
+was too much grieved on that account to have many regrets to spare for
+herself. She enjoyed seeing Adeline dressed, and hearing Esther’s
+admiration of her. And having seen the party set off, she made her way
+into the drawing-room, opening the door as gently as possible, just wide
+enough to admit her little person, then shutting it as if she was afraid
+of hurting it, she crept across the room on tiptoe. She started when
+Claude looked up and said, ‘Why, Phyl, I have not seen you to-day.’
+
+‘Good morning,’ she mumbled, advancing in her sidelong way.
+
+Claude suspected that she had been more blamed the day before than the
+occasion called for, and wishing to make amends he kissed her, and said
+something good-natured about spending the evening together.
+
+Phyllis, a little reassured, went to her own occupations. She took out a
+large heavy volume, laid it on the window-seat, and began to read.
+Claude was interested in his own book, and did not look up till the light
+failed him. He then, closing his book, gave a long yawn, and looked
+round for his little companion, almost thinking, from the stillness of
+the room, that she must have gone to seek for amusement in the nursery.
+
+She was, however, still kneeling against the window-seat, her elbows
+planted on the great folio, and her head between her hands, reading
+intently.
+
+‘Little Madam,’ said he, ‘what great book have you got there?’
+
+‘_As You Like It_,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘What! are you promoted to reading Shakspeare?’
+
+‘I have not read any but this,’ said Phyllis. ‘Ada and I have often
+looked at the pictures, and I liked the poor wounded stag coming down to
+the water so much, that I read about it, and then I went on. Was it
+wrong, Claude? no one ever told me not.’
+
+‘You are welcome to read it,’ said Claude, ‘but not now—it is too dark.
+Come and sit in the great chair on the other side of the fire, and be
+sociable. And what do you think of ‘_As You Like It_?’’
+
+‘I like it very much,’ answered Phyllis, ‘only I cannot think why _Jacks_
+did not go to the poor stag, and try to cure it, when he saw its tears
+running into the water.’
+
+To save the character of _Jacks_, Claude gravely suggested the difficulty
+of catching the stag, and then asked Phyllis her opinion of the heroines.
+
+‘Oh! it was very funny about Rosalind dressing like a man, and then being
+ready to cry like a girl when she was tired, and then pretending to
+pretend to be herself; and Celia, it was very kind of her to go away with
+Rosalind; but I should have liked her better if she had stayed at home,
+and persuaded her father to let Rosalind stay too. I am sure she would
+if she had been like Ada. Then it is so nice about Old Adam and Orlando.
+Do not you think so, Claude? It is just what I am sure Wat Greenwood
+would do for Redgie, if he was to be turned out like Orlando.’
+
+‘It is just what Wat Greenwood’s ancestor did for Sir Maurice Mohun,’
+said Claude.
+
+‘Yes, Dame Greenwood tells us that story.’
+
+‘Well, Phyl, I think you show very good taste in liking the scene between
+Orlando and Adam.’
+
+‘I am glad you like it, too, Claude. But I will tell you what I like
+best,’ exclaimed the little girl, springing up, ‘I do like it, when
+Orlando killed the lioness and the snake,—and saved Oliver; how glad he
+must have been.’
+
+‘Glad to have done good to his enemy,’ said Claude; ‘yes, indeed.’
+
+‘His enemy! he was his brother, you know. I meant it must be so very
+nice to save anybody—don’t you think so, Claude?’
+
+‘Certainly.’
+
+‘Claude, do you know there is nothing I wish so much as to save
+somebody’s life. It was very nice to save the dragon-fly; and it is very
+nice to let flies out of spiders’ webs, only they always have their legs
+and wings torn, and look miserable; and it was very nice to put the poor
+little thrushes back into their nest when they tumbled out, and then to
+see their mother come to feed them; and it was very pleasant to help the
+poor goose that had put its head through the pales, and could not get it
+back. Mrs. Harrington said it would have been strangled if I had not
+helped it. That was very nice, but how delightful it would be to save
+some real human person’s life.’
+
+Claude did not laugh at the odd medley in her speech, but answered,
+‘Well, those little things train you in readiness and kindness.’
+
+‘Will they?’ said Phyllis, pressing on to express what had long been her
+earnest wish. ‘If I could but save some one, I should not mind being
+killed myself—I think not—I hope it is not naughty to say so. I believe
+there is something in the Bible about it, about laying down one’s life
+for one’s friend.’
+
+‘There is, Phyl, and I quite agree with you; it must be a great blessing
+to have saved some one.’
+
+‘And little girls have sometimes done it, Claude. I know a story of one
+who saved her little brother from drowning, and another waked the people
+when the house was on fire. And when I was at Broomhill, Marianne showed
+me a story of a young lady who helped to save the Prince, that Prince
+Charlie that Miss Weston sings about. I wish the Prince of Wales would
+get into some misfortune—I should like to save him.’
+
+‘I do not quite echo that loyal wish,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Well, but, Claude, Redgie wishes for a rebellion, like Sir Maurice’s,
+for he says all the boys at his school would be one regiment, in green
+velvet coats, and white feathers in their hats.’
+
+‘Indeed! and Redgie to be Field Marshal?’
+
+‘No, he is to be Sir Reginald Mohun, a Knight of the Garter, and to ask
+the Queen to give William back the title of Baron of Beechcroft, and make
+papa a Duke.’
+
+‘Well done! he is to take good care of the interests of the family.’
+
+‘But it is not that that I should care about,’ said Phyllis. ‘I should
+like it better for the feeling in one’s own self; I think all that fuss
+would rather spoil it—don’t you, Claude?’
+
+‘Indeed, I do; but Phyllis, if you only wish for that feeling, you need
+not look for dangers or rebellions to gain it.’
+
+‘Oh! you mean the feeling that very good people indeed have—people like
+Harry—but that I shall never be.’
+
+‘I hope you mean to try, though.’
+
+‘I do try; I wish I was as good as Ada, but I am so naughty and so noisy
+that I do not know what to do. Every day when I say my prayers I think
+about being quiet, and not idling at my lessons, and sometimes I do stop
+in time, and behave better, but sometimes I forget, and I do not mind
+what I am about, and my voice gets loud, and I let the things tumble down
+and make a noise, and so it was yesterday.’ Here she looked much
+disposed to cry.
+
+‘No, no, we will not have any crying this evening,’ said Claude. ‘I do
+not think you did me much mischief, my head ached just as much before.’
+
+‘That was a thing I wanted to ask you about: William says my crying loud
+is all habit, and that I must cure myself of it. How does he mean?
+Ought I to cry every day to practise doing it without roaring?’
+
+‘Do you like to begin,’ said Claude, laughing; ‘shall I beat you or pinch
+you?’
+
+‘Oh! it would make your head bad again,’ said Phyllis; ‘but I wish you
+would tell me what he means. When I cry I only think about what makes me
+unhappy.’
+
+‘Try never to cry,’ said Claude; ‘I assure you it is not pleasant to hear
+you, even when I have no headache. If you wish to do anything right, you
+must learn self-control, and it will be a good beginning to check
+yourself when you are going to cry. Do not look melancholy now. Here
+comes the tea. Let me see how you will perform as tea-maker.’
+
+‘I wish the evening would not go away so fast!’
+
+‘And what are we to do after tea? You are queen of the evening.’
+
+‘If you would but tell me a story, Claude.’
+
+They lingered long over the tea-table, talking and laughing, and when
+they had finished, Phyllis discovered with surprise that it was nearly
+bedtime. The promised story was not omitted, however, and Phyllis,
+sitting on a little footstool at her brother’s feet, looked up eagerly
+for it.
+
+‘Well, Phyl, I will tell you a true history that I heard from an officer
+who had served in the Peninsular War—the war in Spain, you know.’
+
+‘Yes, with the French, who killed their king. Lily told me.’
+
+‘And the Portuguese were helping us. Just after we had taken the town of
+Ciudad Rodrigo, some of the Portuguese soldiers went to find lodgings for
+themselves, and, entering a magazine of gunpowder, made a fire on the
+floor to dress their food. A most dangerous thing—do you know why?’
+
+‘The book would be burnt,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘What book, you wise child?’
+
+‘The Magazine; I thought a magazine was one of the paper books that
+Maurice is always reading.’
+
+‘Oh!’ said Claude, laughing, ‘a magazine is a store, and as many
+different things are stored in those books, they are called magazines. A
+powder magazine is a store of barrels of gunpowder. Now do you see why
+it was dangerous to light a fire?’
+
+‘It blows up,’ said Phyllis; ‘that was the reason why Robinson Crusoe was
+afraid of the lightning.’
+
+‘Right, Phyl, and therefore a candle is never allowed to be carried into
+a powder magazine, and even nailed shoes are never worn there, lest they
+should strike fire. One spark, lighting on a grain of gunpowder,
+scattered on the floor, might communicate with the rest, make it all
+explode, and spread destruction everywhere. Think in what fearful peril
+these reckless men had placed, not only themselves, but the whole town,
+and the army. An English officer chanced to discover them, and what do
+you think he did?’
+
+‘Told all the people to run away.’
+
+‘How could he have told every one, soldiers, inhabitants, and all? where
+could they have gone? No, he raised no alarm, but he ordered the
+Portuguese out of the building, and with the help of an English sergeant,
+he carried out, piece by piece, all the wood which they had set on fire.
+Now, imagine what that must have been. An explosion might happen at any
+moment, yet they had to walk steadily, slowly, and with the utmost
+caution, in and out of this place several times, lest one spark might fly
+back.’
+
+‘Then they were saved?’ cried Phyllis, breathlessly; ‘and what became of
+them afterwards?’
+
+‘They were both killed in battle, the officer, I believe, in Badajoz, and
+the sergeant sometime afterwards.’
+
+Phyllis gave a deep sigh, and sat silent for some minutes. Next, Claude
+began a droll Irish fairy-tale, which he told with spirit and humour,
+such as some people would have scorned to exert for the amusement of a
+mere child. Phyllis laughed, and was so happy, that when suddenly they
+heard the sound of wheels, she started up, wondering what brought the
+others home so soon, and was still more surprised when Claude told her it
+was past ten.
+
+‘Oh dear! what will papa and Emily say to me for being up still? But I
+will stay now, it would not be fair to pretend to be gone to bed.’
+
+‘Well said, honest Phyl; now for the news from the castle.’
+
+‘Why, Claude,’ said his eldest brother, entering, ‘you are alive again.’
+
+‘I doubt whether your evening could have been pleasanter than ours,’ said
+Claude.
+
+‘Phyl,’ cried Ada, ‘do you know, Mary Carrington’s governess thought I
+was Florence’s sister.’
+
+‘You look so bright, Claude,’ said Jane, ‘I think you must have taken
+Cinderella’s friend with the pumpkin to enliven you.’
+
+‘My fairy was certainly sister to a Brownie,’ said Claude, stroking
+Phyllis’s hair.
+
+‘Claude,’ again began Ada, ‘Miss Car—’
+
+‘I wish Cinderella’s fairy may be forthcoming the day of the ball,’ said
+Lily, disconsolately.
+
+‘And William is going after all,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Indeed! has the great Captain relented?’
+
+‘Yes. Is it not good of him? Aunt Rotherwood is so much pleased that he
+consents to go entirely to oblige her.’
+
+‘Sensible of his condescension,’ said Claude. ‘By the bye, what makes
+the Baron look so mischievous?’
+
+‘Mischievous!’ said Emily, looking round with a start, ‘he is looking
+very comical, and so he has been all the evening.’
+
+‘What? You thought mischievous was meant in Hannah’s sense, when she
+complains of Master Reginald being very mischie-vi-ous.’
+
+Ada now succeeded in saying, ‘The Carringtons’ governess called me Lady
+Ada.’
+
+‘How could she bring herself to utter so horrid a sound?’ said Claude.
+
+‘Ada is more cock-a-hoop than ever now,’ said Reginald; ‘she does not
+think Miss Weston good enough to speak to.’
+
+‘But, Claude, she really did, she thought I was Florence’s sister, and
+she said I was just like her.’
+
+‘I wish you would hold your tongue, or go to bed,’ said William, ‘I have
+heard nothing but this nonsense all the way home.’
+
+While William was sending off Ada to bed, and Phyllis was departing with
+her, Lily told Claude that the Captain had been most agreeable. ‘I
+feared,’ said she, ‘that he would be too grand for this party, but he was
+particularly entertaining; Rotherwood was quite eclipsed.’
+
+‘Rotherwood wants Claude to set him off,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘Now, young
+ladies, reserve the rest of your adventures for the morning.’
+
+Adeline had full satisfaction in recounting the governess’s mistake to
+the maids, and in hearing from Esther that it was no wonder, ‘for that
+she looked more like a born lady than Lady Florence herself!’
+
+Lilias’s fit of petulance about the ball had returned more strongly than
+ever; she partly excused herself to her own mind, by fancying she
+disliked the thought of the lonely evening she was to spend more than
+that of losing the pleasure of the ball. Mr. Mohun would be absent,
+conducting Maurice to a new school, and Claude and Reginald would also be
+gone.
+
+Her temper was affected in various ways; she wondered that William and
+Emily could like to go—she had thought that Miss Weston was wiser. Her
+daily occupations were irksome—she was cross to Phyllis.
+
+It made her very angry to be accused by the young brothers of making a
+fuss, and Claude’s silence was equally offensive. It was upon principle
+that he said nothing. He knew it was nothing but a transient attack of
+silliness, of which she was herself ashamed; but he was sorry to leave
+her in that condition, and feared Lady Rotherwood’s coming into the
+neighbourhood was doing her harm, as certainly as it was spoiling Ada.
+The ball day arrived, and it was marked by a great burst of fretfulness
+on the part of poor Lilias, occasioned by so small a matter as the being
+asked by Emily to write a letter to Eleanor. Emily was dressing to go to
+dine at Devereux Castle when she made the request.
+
+‘What have I to say? I never could write a letter in my life, at least
+not to the Duenna—there is no news.’
+
+‘About the boys going to school,’ Emily suggested.
+
+‘As if she did not know all about them as well as I can tell her. She
+does not care for my news, I see no one to hear gossip from. I thought
+you undertook all the formal correspondence, Emily?’
+
+‘Do you call a letter to your sister formal correspondence!’
+
+‘Everything is formal with her. All I can say is, that you and William
+are going to the ball, and she will say that is very silly.’
+
+‘Eleanor once went to this Raynham ball; it was her first and last,’ said
+Emily.
+
+‘Yes, not long before they went to Italy; it will only make her
+melancholy to speak of it—I declare I cannot write.’
+
+‘And I have no time,’ said Emily, ‘and you know how vexed she is if she
+does not get her letter every Saturday.’
+
+‘All for the sake of punctuality, nothing else,’ said Lily. ‘I rather
+like to disappoint fidgety people—don’t you, Emily?’
+
+‘Well,’ said Emily, ‘only papa does not like that she should be
+disappointed.’
+
+‘You might have written, if you had not dawdled away all the morning.’
+
+This was true, and it therefore stung Emily, who complained that Lily was
+very unkind. Lily defended herself sharply, and the dispute was growing
+vehement, when William happily cut it short by a summons to Emily to make
+haste.
+
+When they were gone Lily had time for reflection. Good-temper was so
+common a virtue, and generally cost her so little effort, that she took
+no pains to cultivate it, but she now felt she had lost all claim to be
+considered amiable under disappointment. It was too late to bear the
+privation with a good grace. She was heartily ashamed of having been so
+cross about a trifle, and ashamed of being discontented at Emily’s having
+a pleasure in which she could not share. Would this have been the case a
+year ago? She was afraid to ask herself the question, and without going
+deep enough into the history of her own mind to make her sorrow and shame
+profitable, she tried to satisfy herself with a superficial compensation,
+by making herself particularly agreeable to her three younger sisters,
+and by writing a very long and entertaining letter to Eleanor.
+
+She met Emily with a cheerful face the next day, and listened with
+pleasure to her history of the ball; and when Mr. Mohun returned home he
+saw that the cloud had passed away. But, alas! Lilias neglected to take
+the only means of preventing its recurrence.
+
+The next week William departed. Before he went he gave his sisters great
+pleasure by desiring them to write to him, and not to let him fall into
+his ancient state of ignorance respecting the affairs of Beechcroft.
+
+‘Mind,’ was his farewell speech, ‘I expect you to keep me _au courant du
+jour_. I will not be in the dark about your best friends and neighbours
+when I come home next July.’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+VANITY AND VEXATION
+
+
+ ‘And still I have to tell the same sad tale
+ Of wasted energies, and idle dreams.’
+
+DEVEREUX CASTLE now became the great resort of the Miss Mohuns. They
+were always sure of a welcome there. Lady Rotherwood liked to patronise
+them, and Florence was glad of their society.
+
+This was quite according to the wishes of Emily, who now had nothing left
+to desire, but that the style of dress suitable, in her opinion, to the
+granddaughter of the Marquis of Rotherwood, was more in accordance with
+the purse of the daughter of the Esquire of Beechcroft. It was no part
+of Emily’s character to care for dress. She was at once too indolent and
+too sensible; she saw the vulgarity of finery, and only aimed at
+simplicity and elegance. During their girlhood Emily and Lilias had had
+no more concern with their clothes than with their food; Eleanor had
+carefully taught them plain needlework, and they had assisted in making
+more than one set of shirts; but they had nothing to do with the choice
+or fashion of their own apparel. They were always dressed alike, and in
+as plain and childish a manner as they could be, consistently with their
+station. On Eleanor’s marriage a suitable allowance was given to each of
+them, in order that they might provide their own clothes, and until
+Rachel left them they easily kept themselves in very good trim. When
+Esther came Lily cheerfully took the trouble of her own small
+decorations, considering it as her payment for the pleasure of having
+Esther in the house. Emily, however, neglected the useful ‘stitch in
+time,’ till even ‘nine’ were unavailing. She soon found herself
+compelled to buy new ready-made articles, and expected Lilias to do the
+same. But Lilias demurred, for she was too wise to think it necessary to
+ruin herself in company with Emily, and thus the two sisters were no
+longer dressed alike. A constant fear tormented Emily lest she should
+disgrace Lady Rotherwood, or be considered by some stranger as merely a
+poor relation of the great people, and not as the daughter of the
+gentleman of the oldest family in the county. She was, therefore,
+anxious to be perfectly fashionable, and not to wear the same things too
+often, and in her disinterested desire to maintain the dignity of the
+family the allowance which she received at Christmas melted away in her
+hands.
+
+Lily, though exempt from this folly, was not in a satisfactory state of
+mind. She was drawn off from her duties by a kind of spell. It was not
+that she liked Florence’s society better than her home pursuits.
+
+Florence was indeed a very sweet-tempered and engaging creature; but her
+mind was not equal to that of Lilias, and there was none of the pleasure
+of relying upon her, and looking up to her, which Lilias had learnt to
+enjoy in the company of her brother Claude, and of Alethea Weston. It
+was only that Lily’s own mind had been turned away from her former
+occupations, and that she did not like to resume them. She had often
+promised herself to return to her really useful studies, and her positive
+duties, as soon as her brothers were gone; but day after day passed and
+nothing was done, though her visits to the cottages and her lessons to
+Phyllis were often neglected. Her calls at Devereux Castle took up many
+afternoons. Florence continually lent her amusing books, her aunt took
+great interest in her music, and she spent much time in practising. The
+mornings were cold and dark, and she could not rise early, and thus her
+time slipped away, she knew not how, uselessly and unsatisfactorily. The
+three younger ones were left more to themselves, and to the maids. Jane
+sought for amusement in village gossip, and the little ones, finding the
+nursery more agreeable than the deserted drawing-room, made Esther their
+companion.
+
+Mr. Mohun had, at this time, an unusual quantity of business on his
+hands; he saw that the girls were not going on well, but he had reasons
+for not interfering at present, and he looked forward to Eleanor’s visit
+as the conclusion of their trial.
+
+‘I cannot think,’ said Marianne Weston one day to her sister, ‘why Mr.
+Mohun comes here so often.’
+
+Alethea told her he had some business with their mamma, and she thought
+no more of the matter, till she was one day questioned by Jane. She was
+rather afraid of Jane, who, as she thought, disliked her, and wished to
+turn her into ridicule; so it was with no satisfaction that she found
+herself separated from the others in the course of a walk, and submitted
+to a cross-examination.
+
+Jane asked, in a mysterious manner, who had been at Broomhill that
+morning.
+
+‘Mr. Mohun,’ said Marianne.
+
+‘What did he go there for?’ said Jane.
+
+‘Alethea says he has some business with mamma.’
+
+‘Then you did not hear what it was?’
+
+‘I was not in the room.’
+
+‘Are you never there when he comes?’
+
+‘Sometimes.’
+
+‘And is Alethea there?’
+
+‘Oh yes!’
+
+‘His business must be with her too. Cannot you guess it?’
+
+‘No,’ said Marianne, looking amazed.
+
+‘How can you be so slow?’
+
+‘I am not sure that I would guess if I could,’ said Marianne, ‘for I do
+not think they wish me to know.’
+
+‘Oh! nonsense, it is fine fun to find out secrets,’ said Jane. ‘You will
+know it at last, you may be sure, so there can be no harm in making it
+out beforehand, so as to have the pleasure of triumph when the wise
+people vouchsafe to admit you into their confidence; I am sure I know it
+all.’
+
+‘Then please do not tell me, Jane, I ought not to hear it.’
+
+‘Little Mrs. Propriety,’ said Jane, ‘you are already assuming all the
+dignity of my Aunt Marianne, and William’s Aunt Marianne—oh! and of
+little Henry’s Great-aunt Marianne. Now,’ she added, laughing, ‘can you
+guess the secret?’
+
+Marianne stood still in amazement for a moment, and then exclaimed,
+‘Jane, Jane! you do not mean it, you are only trying to tease me.’
+
+‘I am quite serious,’ said Jane. ‘You will see that I am right.’
+
+Here they were interrupted, and as soon as she returned from her walk
+Marianne, perplexed and amazed, went to her mother, and told her all that
+Jane had said.
+
+‘How can she be so silly?’ said Mrs. Weston.
+
+‘Then it is all nonsense, as I thought,’ said Marianne, joyfully. ‘I
+should not like Alethea to marry an old man.’
+
+‘Mr. Mohun is very unlikely to make himself ridiculous,’ said Mrs.
+Weston. ‘Do not say anything of it to Alethea; it would only make her
+uncomfortable.’
+
+‘If it had been Captain Mohun, now—’ Marianne stopped, and blushed,
+finding her speech unanswered.
+
+A few days after, Mr. Mohun overtook Marianne and her mother, as he was
+riding home from Raynham, and dismounting, led his horse, and walked on
+with them. Either not perceiving Marianne, or not caring whether she
+heard him, he said,
+
+‘Has Miss Weston received the letter she expected?’
+
+‘No,’ said Mrs. Weston, ‘she thinks, as there is no answer, the family
+must be gone abroad, and very probably they have taken Miss Aylmer with
+them; but she has written to another friend to ask about them.’
+
+‘From all I hear,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I should prefer waiting to hear from
+her, before we make further inquiries; we shall not be ready before
+midsummer, as I should wish my eldest daughter to assist me in making
+this important decision.’
+
+‘In that case,’ said Mrs. Weston, ‘there will be plenty of time to
+communicate with her. I can see some of the friends of the family when I
+go to London, for we must not leave Mr. Weston in solitude another
+spring.’
+
+‘Perhaps I shall see you there,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘I have some business
+in London, and I think I shall meet the Hawkesworths there in May or
+June.’
+
+After a little more conversation Mr. Mohun took his leave, and as soon as
+he had ridden on, Marianne said, ‘Oh! mamma, I could not help hearing.’
+
+‘My dear,’ said Mrs. Weston, ‘I know you may be trusted; but I should not
+have told you, as you may find such a secret embarrassing when you are
+with your young friends.’
+
+‘And so they are to have a governess?’
+
+‘Yes; and we are trying to find Miss Aylmer for them.’
+
+‘Miss Aylmer! I am glad of it; how much Phyllis and Ada will like her!’
+
+‘Yes, it will be very good for them; I wish I knew the Grants’
+direction.’
+
+‘Well, I hope Jane will not question me any more; it will be very
+difficult to manage, now I know the truth.’
+
+But poor Marianne was not to escape. Jane was on the watch to find her
+alone, and as soon as an opportunity offered, she began:—
+
+‘Well, auntie, any discoveries?’
+
+‘Indeed, Jane, it is not right to fancy Mr. Mohun can do anything so
+absurd.’
+
+‘That is as people may think,’ said Jane.
+
+‘I wish you would not talk in that way,’ said Marianne.
+
+‘Now, Marianne,’ pursued the tormentor, ‘if you can explain the mystery I
+will believe you, otherwise I know what to think.’
+
+‘I am certain you are wrong, Jane; but I can tell you no more.’
+
+‘Very well, my good aunt, I am satisfied.’
+
+Jane really almost persuaded herself that she was right, as she perceived
+that her father was always promoting intercourse with the Westons, and
+took pleasure in conversing with Alethea. She twisted everything into a
+confirmation of her idea; while the prospect of having Miss Weston for a
+stepmother increased her former dislike; but she kept her suspicions to
+herself for the present, triumphing in the idea that, when the time came,
+she could bring Marianne as a witness of her penetration.
+
+The intercourse between the elder Miss Mohuns and Miss Weston was,
+however, not so frequent as formerly; and Alethea herself could not but
+remark that, while Mr. Mohun seemed to desire to become more intimate,
+his daughters were more backward in making appointments with her. This
+was chiefly remarkable in Emily and Jane. Lilias was the same in
+openness, earnestness, and affection; but there was either a languor
+about her spirits or they were too much excited, and her talk was more of
+novels, and less of poor children than formerly. The constant visits to
+Devereux Castle prevented Emily and Lilias from being as often as before
+at church, and thus they lost many walks and talks that they used to
+enjoy in the way home. Marianne began to grow indignant, especially on
+one occasion, when Emily and Lily went out for a drive with Lady
+Rotherwood, forgetting that they had engaged to take a walk with the
+Westons that afternoon.
+
+‘It is really a great deal too bad,’ said she to Alethea; ‘it is exactly
+what we have read of in books about grandeur making people cast off their
+old friends.’
+
+‘Do not be unfair, Marianne,’ said Alethea. ‘Lady Florence has a better
+right to—’
+
+‘Better right!’ exclaimed Marianne. ‘What, because she is a marquis’s
+daughter?’
+
+‘Because she is their cousin.’
+
+‘I do not believe Lilias really cares for her half as much as for you,’
+said Marianne. ‘It is all because they are fine people.’
+
+‘Nay, Marianne, if our cousins were to come into this neighbourhood, we
+should not be as dependent on the Mohuns as we now feel.’
+
+‘I hope we should not break our engagements with them.’
+
+‘Perhaps they could not help it. When their aunt came to fetch them,
+knowing how seldom they can have the carriage, it would have been
+scarcely civil to say that they had rather take a walk with people they
+can see any day.’
+
+‘Last year Lilias would have let Emily go by herself,’ said Marianne.
+‘Alethea, they are all different since that Lady Rotherwood came—all
+except Phyl. Ada is a great deal more conceited than she was when she
+was staying here; she pulls out her curls, and looks in the glass much
+more, and she is always talking about some one having taken her for Lady
+Florence’s sister. And, Alethea, just fancy, she does not like me to go
+through a gate before her, because she says she has precedence!’
+
+Alethea was much amused, but she would not let Marianne condemn the whole
+family for Ada’s folly. ‘It will all come right,’ said she, ‘let us be
+patient and good-humoured, and nothing can be really wrong.’
+
+Though Alethea made the best of it to her sister, she could not but feel
+hurt, and would have been much more so if her temper had been jealous or
+sentimental. Almost in spite of herself she had bestowed upon Lilias no
+small share of her affection, and she would have been more pained by her
+neglect if she had not partaken of that spirit which ‘thinketh no evil,
+but beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things, and
+endureth all things.’
+
+Lilias was not satisfied with either herself, her home, her sisters, or
+her school; she was far from being the fresh, happy creature that she had
+been the year before. She had seen the fallacy of her principle of love,
+but in her self-willed adherence to it she had lost the strong sense and
+habit of duty which had once ruled her; and in a vague and restless frame
+of mind, she merely sought from day to day for pleasure and idle
+occupation. Lent came, but she was not roused, she was only more
+uncomfortable when she saw the Rector, or Alethea, or went to church.
+Alethea’s unfailing gentleness she felt almost as a rebuke; and Mr.
+Devereux, though always kind and good-natured, had ceased to speak to her
+of those small village matters in which she used to be prime counsellor.
+
+The school became a burthen instead of a delight, and her attendance
+there a fatigue. On going in one Sunday morning, very late, she found
+Alethea teaching her class as well as her own. With a look of vexation
+she inquired, as she took her place, if it was so very late, and on the
+way to church she said again, ‘I thought I was quite in time; I do not
+like to hurry the children—the distant ones have not time to come. It
+was only half-past nine.’
+
+‘Oh, Lilias,’ said Marianne, ‘it was twenty minutes to ten, I know, for I
+had just looked at the clock.’
+
+‘That clock is always too fast,’ said Lily.
+
+The next Sunday was very cold, and Lilias did not feel at all disposed to
+leave the fire when the others prepared to go to the afternoon school.
+
+‘Is it time?’ said she. ‘I was chilled at church, and my feet are still
+like ice; I will follow you in five minutes.’
+
+Alethea went, and Lilias lingered by the fire. Mrs. Weston once asked
+her if she knew how late it was; but still she waited, until she was
+startled by the sound of the bell for evening service. As she went to
+church with Mrs. Weston and Emily she met Jane, who told her that her
+class had been unemployed all the afternoon.
+
+‘I would have taken them,’ said she, ‘but that Robert does not like me to
+teach the great girls, and I do think Alethea might have heard them.’
+
+‘It is very provoking,’ said Lily, pettishly; ‘I thought I might depend—’
+She turned and saw Miss Weston close to her. ‘Oh, Alethea!’ said she, ‘I
+thought you would have heard those girls.’
+
+‘I thought you were coming,’ said Alethea.
+
+‘So I was, but I am sure the bell rang too early. I do wish you had
+taken them, Alethea.’
+
+‘I am sorry you are vexed,’ said Alethea, simply.
+
+‘What makes you think I am vexed? I only thought you liked hearing my
+class.’
+
+They were by this time at the church door, and as they entered Alethea
+blamed herself for feeling grieved, and Lily awoke to a sense of her
+unreasonableness. She longed to tell Alethea how sorry she felt, but she
+had no opportunity, and she resolved to go to Broomhill the next day to
+make her confession. In the night, however, snow began to fall, and the
+morning showed the February scene of thawing snow and pouring rain.
+Going out was impossible, both on that day and the next. Wednesday
+dawned fair and bright; but just after breakfast Lily received a little
+note, with the intelligence that Mr. Weston had arrived at Broomhill on
+Monday evening, and with his wife and daughters was to set off that very
+day to make a visit to some friends on the way to London. Had not the
+weather been so bad, Alethea said she should have come to take leave of
+her New Court friends on Tuesday, but she could now only send this note
+to tell them how sorry she was to go without seeing them, and to beg
+Emily to send back a piece of music which she had lent to her. The
+messenger was Faith Longley, who was to accompany them, and who now was
+going home to take leave of her mother, and would call again for the
+music in a quarter of an hour. Lily ran to ask her when they were to go.
+‘At eleven,’ was the answer; and Lily telling her she need not call
+again, as she herself would bring the music, went to look for it. High
+and low did she seek, and so did Jane, but it was not to be found in any
+nook, likely or unlikely; and when at last Lily, in despair, gave up the
+attempt to find it, it was already a quarter to eleven. Emily sent many
+apologies and civil messages, and Lily set out at a rapid pace to walk to
+Broomhill by the road, for the thaw had rendered the fields impassable.
+Fast as she walked, she was too late. She had the mortification of
+seeing the carriage turn out at the gates, and take the Raynham road; she
+was not even seen, nor had she a wave of the hand, or a smile to comfort
+her.
+
+Almost crying with vexation, she walked home, and sat down to write to
+Alethea, but, alas! she did not know where to direct a letter. Bitterly
+did she repent of the burst of ill-temper which had stained her last
+meeting with her friend, and she was scarcely comforted even by the long
+and affectionate letter which she received a week after their departure.
+Kindness from her was now forgiveness; never did she so strongly feel
+Florence’s inferiority; and she wondered at herself for having sought her
+society so much as to neglect her patient and superior friend. She
+became careless and indifferent to Florence, and yet she went on in her
+former course, following Emily, and fancying that nothing at Beechcroft
+could interest her in the absence of her dear Alethea Weston.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+LITTLE AGNES
+
+
+ ‘O guide us when our faithless hearts
+ From Thee would start aloof,
+ Where patience her sweet skill imparts,
+ Beneath some cottage roof.’
+
+PALM SUNDAY brought Lily many regrets. It was the day of the school
+prize giving, and she reflected with shame, how much less she knew about
+the children than last year, and how little they owed to her; she feared
+to think of the approach of Easter Day, a dread which she had never felt
+before, and which she knew to be a very bad sign; but her regret was not
+repentance—she talked, and laughed, and tried to feel at ease. Agnes
+Eden’s happy face was the most pleasant sight on that day. The little
+girl received a Bible, and as it was given to her her pale face was
+coloured with bright pink, her blue eyes lighted up, her smile was
+radiant with the beauty of innocence, but Lily could not look at her
+without self-reproach. She resolved to make up for her former neglect by
+double kindness, and determined that, at any rate, Passion Week should be
+properly spent—she would not once miss going to church.
+
+But on Monday, when Emily proposed to ride to Devereux Castle, she
+assented, only saying that they would return for evening service. She
+took care to remind her sister when it was time to set out homewards; but
+Emily was, as usual, so long in taking her leave that it was too late to
+think of going to church when they set off.
+
+About two miles from Beechcroft Lily saw a little figure in a gray cloak
+trudging steadily along the road, and as she came nearer she recognised
+Kezia Grey. She stopped and asked the child what brought her so far from
+home.
+
+‘I am going for the doctor, Miss,’ said the child.
+
+‘Is your mother worse?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘Mother is pretty well,’ said Kezia; ‘but it is for Agnes Eden, Miss—she
+is terrible bad.’
+
+‘Poor little Agnes!’ exclaimed Lily. ‘Why, she was at school yesterday.’
+
+‘Yes, Miss, but she was taken bad last night.’
+
+After a moment’s consultation between the sisters, Kezia was told that
+she might return home, and the servant who accompanied the Miss Mohuns
+was sent to Raynham for the doctor. The next afternoon Lily was just
+setting out to inquire for Agnes when Lord Rotherwood arrived at the New
+Court with his sister. He wanted to show Florence some of his favourite
+haunts at Beechcroft, and had brought her to join his cousins in their
+walk. A very pleasant expedition they made, but it led them so far from
+home that the church bell was heard pealing over the woods far in the
+distance. Lily could not go to Mrs. Eden’s cottage, because she did not
+know the nature of Agnes’s complaint, and her aunt could not bear that
+Florence should go into any house where there was illness. In the course
+of the walk, however, she met Kezia, on her way to the New Court, to ask
+for a blister for Agnes, the doctor having advised Mrs. Eden to apply to
+the Miss Mohuns for one, as it was wanted quickly, and it was too far to
+send to Raynham. Lily promised to send the blister as soon as possible,
+and desired the little messenger to return home, where she was much
+wanted, to help her mother, who had a baby of less than a week old.
+
+Alas! in the mirth and amusement of the evening Lily entirely forgot the
+blister, until just as she went to bed, when she made one of her feeble
+resolutions to take it, or send it early in the morning. She only awoke
+just in time to be ready for breakfast, went downstairs without one
+thought of the sick child, and never recollected her, until at church,
+just before the Litany, she heard these words: ‘The prayers of the
+congregation are desired for Agnes Eden.’
+
+She felt as if she had been shot, and scarcely knew where she was for
+several moments. On coming out of church, she stood almost in a dream,
+while Emily and Jane were talking to the Rector, who told them how very
+ill the child was, and how little hope there was of her recovery. He
+took leave of them, and Lily walked home, scarcely hearing the soothing
+words with which Emily strove to comfort her. The meaning passed away
+mournfully; Lily sat over the fire without speaking, and without
+attempting to do anything. In the afternoon rain came on; but Lily, too
+unhappy not to be restless, put on her bonnet and cloak, and went out.
+
+She walked quickly up the hill, and entered the field where the cottage
+stood. There she paused. She did not dare to knock at the cottage door;
+she could not bear to speak to Mrs. Eden; she dreaded the sight of Mrs.
+Grey or Kezia, and she gazed wistfully at the house, longing, yet
+fearing, to know what was passing within it. She wandered up and down
+the field, and at last was trying to make up her mind to return home,
+when she heard footsteps behind her, and turning, saw Mr. Devereux
+advancing along the path at the other end of the field.
+
+‘Have you been to inquire for Agnes?’ said he.
+
+‘I could not. I long to know, but I cannot bear to ask, I cannot venture
+in.’
+
+‘Do you like to go in with me?’ said her cousin. ‘I do not think you
+will see anything dreadful.’
+
+‘Thank you,’ said Lily, ‘I would give anything to know about her.’
+
+‘How you tremble! but you need not be afraid.’
+
+He knocked at the door, but there was no answer; he opened it, and going
+to the foot of the stairs, gently called Mrs. Eden, who came down calm
+and quiet as ever, though very pale.
+
+‘How is she?’
+
+‘No better, sir, thank you, light-headed still.’
+
+‘Oh! Mrs. Eden, I am so sorry,’ sobbed Lily. ‘Oh! can you forgive me?’
+
+‘Pray do not take on so, Miss,’ said Mrs. Eden. ‘You have always been a
+very kind friend to her, Miss Lilias. Do not take on so, Miss. If it is
+His will, nothing could have made any difference.’
+
+Lily was going to speak again, but Mr. Devereux stopped her, saying, ‘We
+must not keep Mrs. Eden from her, Lily.’
+
+‘Thank you, sir, her aunt is with her,’ said Mrs. Eden, ‘and no one is
+any good there now, she does not know any one. Will you walk up and see
+her, sir? will you walk up, Miss Lilias?’
+
+Lily silently followed her cousin up the narrow stairs to the upper room,
+where, in the white-curtained bed, lay the little child, tossing about
+and moaning, her cheeks flushed with fever, and her blue eyes wide open,
+but unconscious. A woman, whom Lily did not at first perceive to be Mrs.
+Naylor, rose and courtsied on their entrance. Agnes’s new Bible was
+beside her, and her mother told them that she was not easy if it was out
+of sight for an instant.
+
+At this moment Agnes called out, ‘Mother,’ and Mrs. Eden bent down to
+her, but she only repeated, ‘Mother’ two or three times, and then began
+talking:
+
+‘Kissy, I want my bag—where is my thimble—no, not that I can’t
+remember—my catechism-book—my godfathers and godmothers in my baptism,
+wherein I was made a member—my Christian name—my name, it is my Christian
+name; no, that is not it—
+
+ “It is a name by which I am
+ Writ in the hook of life,
+ And here below a charm to keep,
+ Unharmed by sin and strife;
+ As often as my name I hear,
+ I hear my Saviour’s voice.”’
+
+Then she began the Creed, but, breaking off, exclaimed, ‘Where is my
+Bible, mother, I shall read it to-morrow—read that pretty verse about “I
+am the good Shepherd—the Lord is my Shepherd, therefore can I lack
+nothing—yea, though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I
+will fear no evil, for Thou art within me.”
+
+ “I now am of that little flock
+ Which Christ doth call His own,
+ For all His sheep He knows by name,
+ And He of them is known.”’
+
+‘Let us call upon your good Shepherd, Agnes,’ said the pastor, and the
+child turned her face towards him as if she understood him. Kneeling
+down, he repeated the Lord’s Prayer, and the feeble voice followed his.
+He then read the prayer for a sick child, and left the room, for he saw
+that Lily would be quite overcome if she remained there any longer. Mrs.
+Eden followed them downstairs, and again stung poor Lily to the heart by
+thanks for all her kindness.
+
+They then left the house of mourning; Lily trembled violently, and clung
+to her cousin’s arm for support. Her tears streamed fast, but her sobs
+were checked by awe at Mrs. Eden’s calmness. She felt as if she had been
+among the angels.
+
+‘How pale you are!’ said her cousin, ‘I would not have taken you there if
+I thought it would overset you so much. Come into Mrs. Grey’s, and sit
+down and recover a little.’
+
+‘No, no, do not let me see any one,’ said Lily. ‘Oh! that dear child!
+Robert, let me tell you the worst, for your kindness is more than I can
+bear. I promised Agnes a blister and forgot it!’
+
+She could say no more for some minutes, but her cousin did not speak.
+Recovering her voice, she added, ‘Only speak to me, Robert.’
+
+‘I am very sorry for you,’ answered he, in a kind tone.
+
+‘But tell me, what shall I do?’
+
+‘What to do, you ask,’ said the Rector; ‘I am not sure that I know what
+you mean. If your neglect has added to her sufferings, you cannot remove
+them; and I would not add to your sorrow unless you wished me to do so
+for your good.’
+
+‘I do not see how I could be more unhappy than I am now,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I think if you wish to turn your grief to good account you must go a
+little deeper than this omission.’
+
+‘You mean that it is a result of general carelessness,’ said Lily; ‘I
+know I have been in an odd idle way for some time; I have often resolved,
+but I seem to have no power over myself.’
+
+‘May I ask you one question, Lily? How have you been spending this
+Lent?’
+
+‘Robert, you are right,’ cried Lily; ‘you may well ask. I know I have
+not gone to church properly, but how could you guess the terrible way in
+which I have been indulging myself, and excusing myself every unpleasant
+duty that came in my way? That was the very reason of this dreadful
+neglect; well do I deserve to be miserable at Easter, the proper time for
+joy. Oh! how different it will be.’
+
+‘It will be, I hope, an Easter marked by repentance and amendment,’ said
+the Rector.
+
+‘No, Robert, do not begin to be kind to me yet, you do not know how very
+bad I have been,’ said Lily; ‘it all began from just after Eleanor’s
+wedding. A mad notion came into my head and laid hold of me. I fancied
+Eleanor stern, and cold, and unlovable; I was ingratitude itself. I made
+a foolish theory, that regard for duty makes people cold and stern, and
+that feeling, which I confused with Christian love, was all that was
+worth having, and the more Claude tried to cure me, the more obstinate I
+grew; I drew Emily over to my side, and we set our follies above
+everything. Justified ourselves for idling, neglecting the children,
+indulging ourselves, calling it love, and so it was, self-love. So my
+temper has been spoiling, and my mind getting worse and worse, ever since
+we lost Eleanor. At last different things showed me the fallacy of my
+principle, but then I do believe I was beyond my own management. I felt
+wrong, and could not mend, and went on recklessly. You know but too well
+what mischief I have done in the village, but you can never know what
+harm I have done at home. I have seen more and more that I was going on
+badly, but a sleep, a spell was upon me.’
+
+‘Perhaps the pain you now feel may be the means of breaking the spell.’
+
+‘But is it not enough to drive me mad to think that improvement in me
+should be bought at such a price—the widow’s only child?’
+
+‘You forget that the loss is a blessing to her.’
+
+‘Still I may pray that my punishment may not be through them,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Surely,’ was the answer, ‘it is grievous to see that dear child cut off;
+and her patient mother left desolate—yet how much more grievous it would
+be to see that spotless innocence defiled.’
+
+‘If it was to fall on any one,’ said Lilias, ‘I should be thankful that
+it is on one so fit to die.’
+
+The church bell began to ring, and they quickened their steps in silence.
+Presently Lily said, ‘Tell me of something to do, Robert, something that
+may be a pledge that my sorrow is not a passing shower, something
+unnecessary, but disagreeable, which may keep me in remembrance that my
+Lent was not one of self-denial.’
+
+‘You must be able to find more opportunities of self-denial than I can
+devise,’ said her cousin.
+
+‘Of course,’ said Lily; ‘but some one thing, some punishment.’
+
+‘I will answer you to-morrow,’ said Mr. Devereux.
+
+‘One thing more,’ said Lily, looking down; ‘after this great fall, ought
+I to come to next Sunday’s feast? I would turn away if you thought fit.’
+
+‘Lily, you can best judge,’ said the Rector, kindly. ‘I should think
+that you were now in a humble, contrite frame, and therefore better
+prepared than when self-confident.’
+
+‘How many times! how shall I think of them! but I will,’ said Lily; ‘and
+Robert, will you think of me when you say the Absolution now and next
+Sunday at the altar?’
+
+They were by this time at the church-porch. As Mr. Devereux uncovered
+his head, he turned to Lilias, and said in a low tone, ‘God bless you,
+Lilias, and grant you true repentance and pardon.’
+
+Early the next morning the toll of the passing-bell informed Lily that
+the little lamb had been gathered into the heavenly fold.
+
+When she took her place in church she found in her Prayer-book a slip of
+paper in the handwriting of her cousin. It was thus: ‘You had better
+find out in which duty you have most failed, and let the fulfilment of
+that be your proof of self-denial. R. D.’
+
+Afterwards Lily learnt that Agnes had been sensible for a short time
+before her peaceful death. She had spoken much of her baptism, had
+begged to be buried next to a little sister of Kezia’s, and asked her
+mother to give her new Bible to Kezia.
+
+It was not till Sunday that Lilias felt as if she could ever be
+comforted. Her heart was indeed ready to break as she walked at the head
+of the school children behind the white-covered coffin, and she felt as
+if she did not deserve to dwell upon the child’s present happiness; but
+afterwards she was relieved by joining in prayer for the pardon of our
+sins and negligences, and she felt as if she was forgiven, at least by
+man, when she joined with Mrs. Eden in the appointed feast of Easter Day.
+
+Mrs. Naylor was at church on that and several following Sundays; but
+though her husband now showed every kindness to his sister, he still
+obstinately refused to be reconciled to Mr. Devereux.
+
+For many weeks poor little Kezia looked very unhappy. Her blithe smiles
+were gone, her eyes filled with tears whenever she was reminded of her
+friend, she walked to school alone, she did not join the sports of the
+other children, but she kept close to the side of Mrs. Eden, and seemed
+to have no pleasure but with her, or in nursing her little sister, who,
+two Sundays after the funeral, was christened by the name of Agnes.
+
+It was agreed by Mr. Mohun and Lilias that the grave of the little girl
+should be marked by a stone cross, thus inscribed:—
+
+ ‘AGNES EDEN,
+
+ April 8th, 1846,
+
+ Aged 7 years.
+
+ “He shall gather the lambs in His arms.”’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+DOUBLE, DOUBLE TOIL AND TROUBLE
+
+
+ ‘Truly the tender mercies of the weak,
+ As of the wicked, are but cruel.’
+
+AND how did Lilias show that she had been truly benefited by her sorrows?
+Did she fall back into her habits of self-indulgence, or did she run into
+ill-directed activity, selfish as her indolence, because only gratifying
+the passion of the moment?
+
+Those who lived with her saw but little change; kind-hearted and generous
+she had ever been, and many had been her good impulses, so that while she
+daily became more steady in well-doing, and exerting herself on
+principle, no one remarked it, and no one entered into the struggles
+which it cost her to tame her impetuosity, or force herself to do what
+was disagreeable to herself, and might offend Emily.
+
+However, Emily could forgive a great deal when she found that Lily was
+ready to take any part of the business of the household and schoolroom,
+which she chose to impose upon her, without the least objection, yet to
+leave her to assume as much of the credit of managing as she chose—to
+have no will or way of her own, and to help her to keep her wardrobe in
+order.
+
+The schoolroom was just now more of a labour than had ever been the case,
+at least to one who, like Lilias, if she did a thing at all, would not be
+satisfied with half doing it. Phyllis was not altered, except that she
+cried less, and had in a great measure cured herself of dawdling habits
+and tricks, by her honest efforts to obey well-remembered orders of
+Eleanor’s; but still her slowness and dulness were trying to her
+teachers, and Lily had often to reproach herself for being angry with her
+‘when she was doing her best.’
+
+But Adeline was Lily’s principal trouble; there was a change in her, for
+which her sister could not account. Last year, when Eleanor left them,
+Ada was a sweet-tempered, affectionate child, docile, gentle, and,
+excepting a little occasional affectation and carelessness, very free
+from faults; but now her attention could hardly be commanded for five
+minutes together; she had lost the habit of ready and implicit obedience,
+was petulant when reproved, and was far more eager to attract notice from
+strangers—more conceited, and, therefore, more affected, and, worse than
+all, Lily sometimes thought she perceived a little slyness, though she
+was never able to prove any one instance completely to herself, much less
+to bring one before her father. Thus, if Ada had done any mischief, she
+would indeed confess it on being examined; but when asked why she had not
+told of it directly, would say she had forgotten; she would avail herself
+of Phyllis’s assistance in her lessons without acknowledging it, and
+Lilias found it was by no means safe to leave the Key to the French
+Exercises alone in the room with her.
+
+Emily’s mismanagement had fostered Ada’s carelessness and inattention.
+Lady Rotherwood’s injudicious caresses helped to make her more affected;
+other faults had grown up for want of sufficient control, but this last
+was principally Esther’s work. Esther had done well at school; she liked
+learning, was stimulated by notice, was really attached to Lilias, and
+tried to deserve her goodwill; but her training at school and at home
+were so different, that her conduct was, even at the best, far too much
+of eye-service, and she had very little idea of real truth and sincerity.
+
+On first coming to the New Court she flattered the children, because she
+did not know how to talk to them otherwise, and afterwards, because she
+found that Miss Ada’s affections were to be gained by praise. Then, in
+her ignorant good-nature, she had no scruples about concealing mischief
+which the children had done, or procuring for Ada little forbidden
+indulgences on her promise of secrecy, a promise which Phyllis would not
+give, thus putting a stop to all those in which she would have
+participated. It was no wonder that Ada, sometimes helping Esther to
+deceive, sometimes deceived by her, should have learnt the same kind of
+cunning, and ceased to think it a matter of course to be true and just in
+all her dealings.
+
+But how was it that Phyllis remained the same ‘honest Phyl’ that she had
+ever been, not one word savouring of aught but strict truth having ever
+crossed her lips, her thoughts and deeds full of guileless simplicity?
+She met with the same temptations, the same neglect, the same bad
+example, as her sister; why had they no effect upon her? In the first
+place, flattery could not touch her, it was like water on a duck’s back,
+she did not know that it was flattery, but so thoroughly humble was her
+mind that no words of Esther’s would make her believe herself beautiful,
+agreeable, or clever. Yet she never found out that Esther over-praised
+her sister; she admired Ada so much that she never suspected that any
+commendation of her was more than she deserved. Again, Phyllis never
+thought of making herself appear to advantage, and her humility saved her
+from the habit of concealing small faults, for which she expected no
+punishment; and, when seriously to blame, punishment seemed so natural a
+consequence, that she never thought of avoiding it, otherwise than by
+expressing sorrow for her fault. She was uninfected by Esther’s deceit,
+though she never suspected any want of truth; her singleness of mind was
+a shield from all evil; she knew she was no favourite in the nursery, but
+she never expected to be liked as much as Ada, her pride and glory. In
+the meantime Emily went on contriving opportunities and excuses for
+spending her time at Devereux Castle, letting everything fall into Lily’s
+hands, everything that she had so eagerly undertaken little more than a
+year ago. And now all was confusion; the excellent order in which
+Eleanor had left the household affairs was quite destroyed. Attention to
+the storeroom was one of the ways in which Lilias thought that she could
+best follow the advice of Mr. Devereux, since Eleanor had always taught
+that great exactness in this point was most necessary. Great disorder
+now, however, prevailed there, and she found that her only chance of
+rectifying it was to measure everything she found there, and to beg Emily
+to allow her to keep the key; for, when several persons went to the
+storeroom, no one ever knew what was given out, and she was sure that the
+sweet things diminished much faster than they ought to do; but her sister
+treated the proposal as an attempt to deprive her of her dignity, and she
+was silenced.
+
+She was up almost with the light, to despatch whatever household affairs
+could be settled without Emily, before the time came for the children’s
+lessons; many hours were spent on these, while she was continually
+harassed by Phyllis’s dulness, Ada’s inattention, and the interruption of
+work to do for Emily, and often was she baffled by interference from Jane
+or Emily. She was conscious of her unfitness to teach the children, and
+often saw that her impatience, ignorance, and inefficiency, were doing
+mischief; but much as this pained her, she could not speak to her father
+without compromising her sister, and to argue with Emily herself was
+quite in vain. Emily had taken up the principle of love, and defended
+herself with it on every occasion, so that poor Lily was continually
+punished by having her past follies quoted against herself.
+
+Each day Emily grew more selfish and indolent; now that Lily was willing
+to supply all that she neglected, and to do all that she asked, she
+proved how tyrannical the weak can be.
+
+The whole of her quarter’s allowance was spent in dress, and Lily soon
+found that the only chance of keeping her out of debt was to spend her
+own time and labour in her behalf; and what an exertion of patience and
+kindness this required can hardly be imagined. Emily did indeed reward
+her skill with affectionate thanks and kind praises, but she interfered
+with her sleep and exercise, by her want of consideration, and hardened
+herself more and more in her apathetic selfishness.
+
+Some weeks after Easter Lilias was arranging some books on a shelf in the
+schoolroom, when she met with a crumpled piece of music-paper, squeezed
+in behind the books. It proved to be Miss Weston’s lost song, creased,
+torn, dust-stained, and spoiled; she carried it to Emily, who decided
+that nothing could be done but to copy it for Alethea, and apologise for
+the disaster. Framing apologies was more in Emily’s way than copying
+music; and the former task, therefore, devolved upon Lily, and occupied
+her all one afternoon, when she ought to have been seeking a cure for the
+headache in the fresh air. It was no cure to find the name of Emma
+Weston in the corner, and to perceive how great and irreparable the loss
+of the paper was to her friend. The thought of all her wrongs towards
+Alethea, caused more than one large tear to fall, to blot the heads of
+her crotchets and quavers, and thus give her all her work to do over
+again.
+
+The letter that she wrote was so melancholy and repentant, that it gave
+great pain to her kind friend, who thought illness alone could account
+for the dejection apparent in the general tone of all her expressions.
+In answer, she sent a very affectionate consoling letter, begging Lily to
+think no more of the matter; and though she had too much regard for truth
+to say that she had not been grieved by the loss of Emma’s writing, she
+added that Lily’s distress gave her far more pain, and that her copy
+would have great value in her eyes.
+
+The beginning of June now arrived, and brought with it the time for the
+return of Claude and Lord Rotherwood.
+
+The Marquis’s carriage met him at Raynham, and he set down Claude at New
+Court, on his way to Hetherington, just coming in to exchange a hurried
+greeting with the young ladies.
+
+Their attention was principally taken up by their brother.
+
+‘Claude, how well you look! How fat you are!’ was their exclamation.
+
+‘Is not he?’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘I am quite proud of him. Not one
+headache since he went. He will have no excuse for not dancing the
+polka.’
+
+‘I do not return the compliment to you, Lily,’ said Claude, looking
+anxiously at his sister. ‘What is the matter with you? Have you been
+ill?’
+
+‘Oh, no! not at all!’ said Lily, smiling.
+
+‘I am sure there is enough to make any one ill,’ said Emily, in her
+deplorable tone; ‘I thought this poor parish had had its share of
+illness, with the scarlet fever, and now it has turned to a horrible
+typhus fever.’
+
+‘Indeed!’ said Claude. ‘Where? Who?’
+
+‘Oh! the Naylors, and the Rays, and the Walls. John Ray died this
+morning, and they do not think that Tom Naylor will live.’
+
+‘Well,’ interrupted Lord Rotherwood, ‘I shall not stop to hear any more
+of this chapter of accidents. I am off, but mind, remember the 30th, and
+do not any of you frighten yourselves into the fever.’
+
+He went, and Lily now spoke. ‘There is one thing in all this, Claude,
+that is matter of joy, Tom Naylor has sent for Robert.’
+
+‘Then, Lily, I do most heartily congratulate you.’
+
+‘I hope things may go better,’ said Lily, with tears in her eyes. ‘The
+poor baby is with its grandmother. Mrs. Naylor is ill too, and every one
+is so afraid of the fever that nobody goes near them but Robert, and Mrs.
+Eden, and old Dame Martin. Robert says Naylor is in a satisfactory
+frame—determined on having the baby christened—but, oh! I am afraid the
+christening is to be bought by something terrible.’
+
+‘I do not think those fevers are often very infectious,’ said Claude.
+
+‘So papa says,’ replied Emily; ‘but Robert looks very ill. He is wearing
+himself out with sitting up. Making himself nurse as well as everything
+else.’
+
+This was very distressing, but still Claude scarcely thought it accounted
+for the change that had taken place in Lilias. Her cheek was pale, her
+eye heavy, her voice had lost its merry tone; Claude knew that she had
+had much to grieve her, but he was as yet far from suspecting how she was
+overworked and harassed. He spoke of Eleanor’s return, and she did not
+brighten; she smiled sadly at his attempts to cheer her, and he became
+more and more anxious about her. He was not long in discovering what was
+the matter.
+
+The second day after his return Robert told them at the churchyard gate
+that Tom Naylor was beginning to mend, and this seemed to be a great
+comfort to Lily, who walked home with a blither step than usual. Claude
+betook himself to the study, and saw no more of his sisters till two
+o’clock, when Lily appeared, with the languid, dejected look which she
+had lately worn, and seemed to find it quite an effort to keep the tears
+out of her eyes. Ada and Phyllis were in very high spirits, because they
+were going to Raynham with Emily and Jane, and at every speech of Ada’s
+Lily looked more grieved. After the Raynham party were gone Claude began
+to look for Lily. He found her in her room, an evening dress spread on
+the bed, a roll of ribbon in one hand, and with the other supporting her
+forehead, while tears were slowly rolling down her cheeks.
+
+‘Lily, my dear, what is the matter?’
+
+‘Oh! nothing, nothing, Claude,’ said she, quickly.
+
+‘Nothing! no, that is not true. Tell me, Lily. You have been
+disconsolate ever since I came home, and I will not let it go on so. No
+answer? Then am I to suppose that these new pearlins are the cause of
+her sorrow? Come, Lily, be like yourself, and speak. More tears! Here,
+drink this water, be yourself again, or I shall be angry and vexed. Now
+then, that is right: make an effort, and tell me.’
+
+‘There is nothing to tell,’ said Lily; ‘only you are very kind—I do not
+know what is the matter with me—only I have been very foolish of late—and
+everything makes me cry.’
+
+‘My poor child, I knew you had not been well. They do not know how to
+take care of you, Lily, and I shall take you in hand. I am going to
+order the horses, and we will have a gallop over the Downs, and put a
+little colour into your cheeks.’
+
+‘No, no, thank you, Claude, I cannot come, indeed I cannot, I have this
+work, which must be done to-day.’
+
+‘At work at your finery instead of coming out! You must be altered,
+indeed, Lily.’
+
+‘It is not for myself,’ said Lily, ‘but I promised Emily she should have
+it ready to wear to-morrow.’
+
+‘Emily, oh? So she is making a slave of you?’
+
+‘No, no, it was a voluntary promise. She does not care about it, only
+she would be disappointed, and I have promised.’
+
+‘I hate promises!’ said Claude. ‘Well, what must be, must be, so I will
+resign myself to this promise of yours, only do not make such another.
+Well, but that was not all; you were not crying about that fine green
+thing, were you?’
+
+‘Oh, no!’ said Lily, smiling, as now she could smile again.
+
+‘What then? I will know, Lily.’
+
+‘I was only vexed at something about the children.’
+
+‘Then what was it?’
+
+‘It was only that Ada was idle at her lessons; I told her to learn a verb
+as a punishment, she went to Emily, and, somehow or other, Emily did not
+find out the exact facts, excused her, and took her to Raynham. I was
+vexed, because I am sure it does Ada harm, and Emily did not understand
+what I said afterwards; I am sure she thought me unjust.’
+
+‘How came she not to be present?’
+
+‘Emily does not often sit in the schoolroom in the morning, since she has
+been about that large drawing.’
+
+‘So you are governess as well as ladies’-maid, are you, Lily? What else?
+Housekeeper, I suppose, as I see you have all the weekly bills on your
+desk. Why, Lily, this is perfectly philanthropic of you. You are
+exemplifying the rule of love in a majestic manner. Crying again! Water
+lily once more?’
+
+Lily looked up, and smiled; ‘Claude, how can you talk of that old, silly,
+nay, wicked nonsense of my principle. I was wise above what was written,
+and I have my punishment in the wreck which my “frenzy of spirit and
+folly of tongue” have wrought. The unchristened child, Agnes’s death,
+the confusion of this house, all are owing to my hateful principle. I
+see the folly of it now, but Emily has taken it up, and acts upon it in
+everything. I do struggle against it a little; but I cannot blame any
+one, I can do no good, it is all owing to me. We have betrayed papa’s
+confidence; if he does not see it now it will all come upon him when
+Eleanor comes home, and what is to become of us? How it will grieve him
+to see that we cannot be trusted!’
+
+‘Poor Lily!’ said Claude. ‘It is a bad prospect, but I think you see the
+worst side of it. You are not well, and, therefore, doleful. This,
+Lily, I can tell you, that the Baron always considered Emily’s government
+as a kind of experiment, and so perhaps he will not be so grievously
+disappointed as you expect. Besides, I have a strong suspicion that
+Emily’s own nature has quite as much to do with her present conduct as
+your principle, which, after all, did not live very long.’
+
+‘Just long enough to unsettle me, and make it more difficult for me to
+get any way right,’ said Lily. ‘Oh! dear, what would I give to force
+backward the wheels of time!’
+
+‘But as you cannot, you had better try to brighten up your energies.
+Come, you know I cannot tell you not to look back, but I can tell you not
+to look forward. Nay, I do tell you literally, to look forward, out of
+the window, instead of back into this hot room. Do not you think the
+plane-tree there looks very inviting? Suppose we transport Emily’s
+drapery there, and I want to refresh my memory with Spenser; I do not
+think I have touched him since plane-tree time last year.’
+
+‘I believe Spenser and the plane-tree are inseparably woven together in
+your mind,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Yes, ever since the time when I first met with the book. I remember
+well roving over the bookcase, and meeting with it, and taking it out
+there, for fear Eleanor should see me and tell mama. Phyl, with _As You
+Like It_, put me much in mind of myself with that.’
+
+Claude talked in this manner, while Lily, listening with a smile,
+prepared her work. He read, and she listened. It was such a treat as
+she had not enjoyed for a long time, for she had begun to think that all
+her pleasant reading days were past. Her work prospered, and her face
+was bright when her sisters came home.
+
+But, alas! Emily was not pleased with her performance; she said that she
+intended something quite different, and by manner, rather than by words,
+indicated that she should not be satisfied unless Lily completely altered
+it. It was to be worn at the castle the next evening, and Lily knew she
+should have no time for it in the course of the day. Accordingly, at
+half-past twelve, as Claude was going up to bed, he saw a light under his
+sister’s door, and knocked to ask the cause. Lily was still at work upon
+the trimming, and very angry he was, particularly when she begged him to
+take care not to disturb Emily. At last, by threatening to awake her,
+for the express purpose of giving her a scolding, he made Lily promise to
+go to bed immediately, a promise which she, poor weary creature, was very
+glad to make.
+
+Claude now resolved to tell his father the state of things, for he well
+knew that though it was easy to obtain a general promise from Emily, it
+was likely to be of little effect in preventing her from spurring her
+willing horse to death.
+
+The next morning he rose in time to join his father in the survey which
+he usually took of his fields before breakfast, and immediately beginning
+on the subject on which he was anxious, he gave a full account of his
+sister’s proceedings. ‘In short,’ said he, ‘Emily and Ada torment poor
+Lily every hour of her life; she bears it all as a sort of penance, and
+how it is to end I cannot tell.’
+
+‘Unless,’ said Mr. Mohun, smiling, ‘as Rotherwood would say, Jupiter will
+interfere. Well, Jupiter has begun to take measures, and has asked Mrs.
+Weston to look out for a governess. Eh! Claude?’ he continued, after a
+pause, ‘you set up your eyebrows, do you? You think it will be a bore.
+Very likely, but there is nothing else to be done. Jane is under no
+control, Phyllis running wild, Ada worse managed than any child of my
+acquaintance—’
+
+‘And poor Lily wearing herself to a shadow, in vain attempts to mend
+matters,’ said Claude.
+
+‘If Lily was the eldest, things would be very different,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘Or even if she had been as wise last year as she is now,’ said Claude,
+‘she would have kept Emily in order then, but now it is too late.’
+
+‘This year is, on many accounts, much to be regretted,’ said Mr. Mohun,
+‘but I think it has brought out Lily’s character.’
+
+‘And a very fine character it is,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Very. She has been, and is, more childish than Eleanor ever was, but
+she is her superior in most points. She has been your pupil, Claude, and
+she does you credit.’
+
+‘Thereby hangs a tale which does me no credit,’ muttered Claude, as he
+remembered how foolishly he had roused her spirit of contradiction,
+besides the original mischief of naming Eleanor the duenna; ‘but we will
+not enter into that now. I see this governess is their best chance.
+Have you heard of one?’
+
+‘Of several; but the only one who seems likely to suit us is out of reach
+for the present, and I do not regret it, for I shall not decide till
+Eleanor comes.’
+
+‘Emily will not be much pleased,’ said Claude. ‘It has long been her
+great dread that Aunt Rotherwood should recommend one.’
+
+‘Ay, Emily’s objections and your aunt’s recommendations are what I would
+gladly avoid,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘But Lily!’ said Claude, returning to the subject on which he was most
+anxious. ‘She is already what Ada calls a monotony, and there will be
+nothing left of her by the time Eleanor comes, if matters go on in their
+present fashion.’
+
+‘I have a plan for her. A little change will set her to rights, and we
+will take her to London when we go next week to meet Eleanor. She
+deserves a little extra pleasure; you must take her under your
+protection, and lionise her well.’
+
+‘Trust me for that,’ said Claude. ‘It is the best news I have heard for
+a long time.’
+
+‘Well, I am glad that one of my remedies meets with your approbation,’
+said his father, smiling. ‘For the other, you are much inclined to
+pronounce the cure as bad as the disease.’
+
+‘Not for Lily,’ said Claude, laughing.
+
+‘And,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I think I can promise you that a remedy will be
+found for all the other grievances by Michaelmas.’
+
+Claude looked surprised, but as Mr. Mohun explained no further, only
+observing upon the potatoes, through which they were walking, he only
+said, ‘Then it is next week that you go to London.’
+
+‘There is much to do, both for Rotherwood and for Eleanor; I shall go as
+soon as I can, but I do not think it will be while this fever is so
+prevalent. I had rather not be from home—I do not like Robert’s looks.’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+THE RECTOR’S ILLNESS
+
+
+ ‘Thou drooping sick man, bless the guide
+ That checked, or turned thy headstrong youth.’
+
+THE thought of her brother’s kindness, and the effect of his consolation,
+made Lilias awake that morning in more cheerful spirits; but it was not
+long before grief and anxiety again took possession of her.
+
+The first sound that she heard on opening the schoolroom window was the
+tolling of the church bell, giving notice of the death of another of
+those to whom she felt bound by the ties of neighbourhood.
+
+At church she saw that Mr. Devereux was looking more ill than he yet had
+done, and it was plainly with very great exertion that he succeeded in
+finishing the service. The Mohun party waited, as usual, to speak to him
+afterwards, for since his attendance upon Naylor had begun he had not
+thought it safe to come to the New Court as usual, lest he should bring
+the infection to them. He was very pale, and walked wearily, but he
+spoke cheerfully, as he told them that Naylor was now quite out of
+danger.
+
+‘Then I hope you did not stay there all last night,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘No, I did not, I was so tired when I came back from poor John Ray’s
+funeral, that I thought I would take a holiday, and sleep at home.’
+
+‘I am afraid you have not profited by your night’s rest,’ said Emily,
+‘you look as if you had a horrible headache.’
+
+‘Now,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I prescribe for you that you go home and lie
+down. I am going to Raynham, and I will tell your friend there that you
+want help for the evening service. Do not think of moving again to-day.
+I shall send Claude home with you to see that you obey my prescription.’
+
+Claude went home with his cousin, and his sisters saw him no more till
+late in the day, when he came to tell them that Mr. Mohun had brought
+back Dr. Leslie from Raynham with him, that Dr. Leslie had seen Mr.
+Devereux, and had pronounced that he had certainly caught the fever.
+
+Lily had made up her mind to this for some time, but still it seemed
+almost as great a blow as if it had come without any preparation. The
+next day was the first Sunday that Mr. Devereux had not read the service
+since he had been Rector of Beechcroft. The villagers looked sadly at
+the stranger who appeared in his place, and many tears were shed when the
+prayers of the congregation were desired for Robert Devereux, and Thomas
+and Martha Naylor. It was announced that the daily service would be
+discontinued for the present, and Lily felt as if all the blessings which
+she had misused were to be taken from her.
+
+For some time Mr. Devereux continued very ill, and Dr. Leslie gave little
+hope of his improvement. Mr. Mohun and Claude were his constant
+attendants—an additional cause of anxiety to the Miss Mohuns. Emily was
+listless and melancholy, talking in a maundering, dismal way, not
+calculated to brace her spirits or those of her sisters. Jane was not
+without serious thoughts, but whether they would benefit her depended on
+herself; for, as we have seen by the events of the autumn, sorrow and
+suffering do not necessarily produce good effects, though some effects
+they always produce.
+
+Thus it was with Lilias. Grief and anxiety aided her in subduing her
+will and learning resignation. She did not neglect her daily duties, but
+was more exact in their fulfilment; and low as her spirits had been
+before, she now had an inward spring which enabled her to be the support
+of the rest. She was useful to her father, always ready to talk to
+Claude, or walk with him in the intervals when he was sent out of the
+sickroom to rest and breathe the fresh air. She was cheerful and patient
+with Emily, and devoid of petulance when annoyed by the spirits of the
+younger ones rising higher than accorded with the sad and anxious hearts
+of their elders. Her most painful feeling was, that it was possible that
+she might be punished through her cousin, as she had already been through
+Agnes; that her follies might have brought this distress upon every one,
+and that this was the price at which the child’s baptism was to be
+bought. Yet Lily would not have changed her present thoughts for any of
+her varying frames of mind since that fatal Whitsuntide. Better feelings
+were springing up within her than she had then known; the church service
+and Sunday were infinitely more to her, and she was beginning to obtain
+peace of mind independent of external things.
+
+She could not help rejoicing to see how many evidences of affection to
+the Rector were called forth by this illness; presents of fruit poured in
+from all quarters, from Lord Rotherwood’s choice hothouse grapes, to poor
+little Kezia Grey’s wood-strawberries; inquiries were continual, and the
+stillness of the village was wonderful. There was no cricket on the
+hill, no talking in the street, no hallooing in the hay-field, and no
+burst of noise when the children were let out of school. Many of the
+people were themselves in grief for the loss of their own relations; and
+when on Sunday the Miss Mohuns saw how many were dressed in black, they
+thought with a pang how soon they themselves might be mourning for one
+whose influence they had crippled, and whose plans they had thwarted
+during the three short years of his ministry.
+
+During this time it was hard to say whether Lord Rotherwood was more of a
+comfort or a torment. He was attached to his cousin with all the ardour
+of his affectionate disposition, and not one day passed without his
+appearing at Beechcroft. At first it was always in the parlour at the
+parsonage that he took up his station, and waited till he could find some
+means of getting at Claude or his uncle, to hear the last report from
+them, and if possible to make Claude come out for a walk or ride with
+him. And once Mr. Mohun caught him standing just outside Mr. Devereux’s
+door, waiting for an opportunity to make an entrance. He could not, or
+would not see why Mr. Mohun should allow Claude to run the risk of
+infection rather than himself, and thus he kept his mother in continual
+anxiety, and even his uncle could not feel by any means certain that he
+would not do something imprudent. At last a promise was extracted from
+him that he would not again enter the parsonage, but he would not gratify
+Lady Rotherwood so far as to abstain from going to Beechcroft, a place
+which she began to regard with horror. He now was almost constantly at
+the New Court, talking over the reports, and quite provoking Emily by
+never desponding, and never choosing to perceive how bad things really
+were. Every day which was worse than the last was supposed to be the
+crisis, and every restless sleep that they heard of he interpreted into
+the beginning of recovery. At last, however, after ten days of suspense,
+the report began to improve, and Claude came to the New Court with a more
+cheerful face, to say that his cousin was munch better. The world seemed
+immediately to grow brighter, people went about with joyful looks, Lord
+Rotherwood declared that from the first he had known all would be well,
+and Lily began to hope that now she had been spared so heavy a
+punishment, it was a kind of earnest that other things would mend, that
+she had suffered enough. The future no longer hung before her in such
+dark colours as before Mr. Devereux’s illness, though still the New Court
+was in no satisfactory state, and still she had reason to expect that her
+father and Eleanor would be disappointed and grieved. Thankfulness that
+Mr. Devereux was recovering, and that Claude had escaped the infection,
+made her once more hopeful and cheerful; she let the morrow take thought
+for the things of itself, rejoicing that it was not her business to make
+arrangements.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+THE LITTLE NEPHEW
+
+
+ ‘You must be father, mother, both,
+ And uncle, all in one.’
+
+MR. MOHUN had much business to transact in London which he could not
+leave undone, and as soon as his nephew began to recover he thought of
+setting off to meet Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, who had already been a week
+at Lady Rotherwood’s house in Grosvenor Square, which she had lent to
+them for the occasion. Claude had intended to stay at home, as his
+cousin was not yet well enough to leave the room; but just at this time a
+college friend of the Rector’s, hearing of his illness, wrote to propose
+to come and stay with him for a month or six weeks, and help him in
+serving his church. Mr. Devereux was particularly glad to accept this
+kind offer, as it left him no longer dependent on Mr. Stephens and the
+Raynham curates, and set Claude at liberty for the London expedition.
+All was settled in the short space of one day. The very next they were
+to set off, and in great haste; Lily did all she could for the regulation
+of the house, packed up her goods, and received the commissions of her
+sisters.
+
+Ada gave her six shillings, with orders to buy either a doll or a
+book—the former if Eleanor did not say it was silly; and Phyllis put into
+her hands a weighty crown piece, begging for as many things as it could
+buy. Jane’s wants and wishes were moderate and sensible, and she gave
+Lily the money for them. With Emily there was more difficulty. All
+Lily’s efforts had not availed to prevent her from contracting two debts
+at Raynham. More than four pounds she owed to Lily, and this she offered
+to pay her, giving her at the same time a list of commissions sufficient
+to swallow up double her quarter’s allowance. Lily, though really in
+want of the money for her own use, thought the debts at Raynham so
+serious, that she begged Emily to let her wait for payment till it was
+convenient, and to pay the shoemaker and dressmaker immediately.
+
+Emily thanked her, and promised to do so as soon as she could go to
+Raynham, and Lily next attempted to reduce her list of London commissions
+to something more reasonable. In part she succeeded, but it remained a
+matter of speculation how all the necessary articles which she had to buy
+for herself, and all Emily’s various orders, were to come out of her own
+means, reduced as they were by former loans.
+
+The next day Lilias was on her way to London; feeling, as she left
+Beechcroft, that it was a great relief that the schoolroom and storeroom
+could not follow her. She was sorry that she should miss seeing Alethea
+Weston, who was to come home the next day, but she left various messages
+for her, and an affectionate note, and had received a promise from her
+sisters that the copy of the music should be given to her the first day
+that they saw her. Her journey afforded her much amusement, and it was
+not till towards the end of the day that she had much time for thinking,
+when, her companions being sleepily inclined, she was left to her own
+meditations and to a dull country. She began to revolve her own feelings
+towards Eleanor, and as she remembered the contempt and ingratitude she
+had once expressed, she shrank from the meeting with shame and dread, and
+knew that she should feel reproached by Eleanor’s wonted calmness of
+manner. And as she mused upon all that Eleanor had endured, and all that
+she had done, such a reverence for suffering and sacrifice took
+possession of her mind that she was ready to look up to her sister with
+awe. She began to recollect old reproofs, and found herself sitting more
+upright, and examining the sit of the folds of her dress with some
+uneasiness at the thought of Eleanor’s preciseness. In the midst of her
+meditations her two companions were roused by the slackening speed of the
+train, and starting up, informed her that they were arriving at their
+journey’s end. The next minute she heard her father consigning her and
+the umbrellas to Mr. Hawkesworth’s care, and all was bewilderment till
+she found herself in the hall of her aunt’s house, receiving as warm and
+affectionate a greeting from Eleanor as Emily herself could have
+bestowed.
+
+‘And the baby, Eleanor?’
+
+‘Asleep, but you shall see him; and how is Ada? and all of them? why,
+Claude, how well you look! Papa, let me help you to take off your
+greatcoat—you are cold—will you have a fire?’
+
+Never had Lily heard Eleanor say so much in a breath, or seen her eye so
+bright, or her smile so ready, yet, when she entered the drawing-room,
+she saw that Mrs. Hawkesworth was still the Eleanor of old. In contrast
+with the splendid furniture of the apartments, a pile of shirts was on
+the table, Eleanor’s well-known work-basket on the floor, and the
+ceaseless knitting close at hand.
+
+Much news was exchanged in the few minutes that elapsed before Eleanor
+carried off her sister to her room, indulging her by the way with a peep
+at little Harry, and one kiss to his round red cheek as he lay asleep in
+his little bed. It was not Eleanor’s fault that she did not entirely
+dress Lily, and unpack her wardrobe; but Lilias liked to show that she
+could manage for herself; and Eleanor’s praise of her neat arrangements
+gave her as much pleasure as in days of yore.
+
+The evening passed very happily. Eleanor’s heart was open, she was full
+of enjoyment at meeting those she loved, and the two sisters sat long
+together in the twilight, talking over numerous subjects, all ending in
+Beechcroft or the baby.
+
+Yet when Lily awoke the next morning her awe of Eleanor began to return,
+and she felt like a child just returned to school. She was, however,
+mistaken; Eleanor assumed no authority, she treated Lily as her equal,
+and thus made her feel more like a woman than she had ever done before.
+Lily thought either that Eleanor was much altered, or that in her folly
+she must have fancied her far more cold and grave than she really was.
+She had, however, no time for studying her character; shopping and
+sight-seeing filled up most of her time, and the remainder was spent in
+resting, and in playing with little Henry.
+
+One evening, when Mr. Mohun and Claude were dining out, Lilias was left
+alone with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth. Lily was very tired, but she worked
+steadily at marking Eleanor’s pocket-handkerchiefs, until her sister,
+seeing how weary she was, made her lie down on the sofa.
+
+‘Here is a gentleman who is tired too,’ said Eleanor, dancing the baby;
+‘we will carry you off, sir, and leave Aunt Lily to go to sleep.’
+
+‘Aunt Lily is not so tired as that,’ said Lily; ‘pray keep him.’
+
+‘It is quite bedtime,’ said Eleanor, in her decided tone, and she carried
+him off.
+
+Lilias took up the knitting which she had laid down, and began to study
+the stitches. ‘I should like this feathery pattern,’ said she, ‘(if it
+did not remind me so much of the fever); but, by the bye, Frank, have you
+completed Master Henry’s outfit? I looked forward to helping to choose
+his pretty little things, but I see no preparation but of stockings.’
+
+‘Why, Lily, did not you know that he was to stay in England?’
+
+‘To stay in England? No, I never thought of that—how sorry you must be.’
+
+At this moment Eleanor returned, and Mr. Hawkesworth told her he had been
+surprised to find Lily did not know their intentions with regard to the
+baby.
+
+‘If we had any certain intentions we should have told her,’ said Eleanor;
+‘I did not wish to speak to her about it till we had made up our minds.’
+
+‘Well, I know no use in mysteries,’ said Mr. Hawkesworth, ‘especially
+when Lily may help us to decide.’
+
+‘On his going or staying?’ exclaimed Lily, eagerly looking to Mr.
+Hawkesworth, who was evidently more disposed to speak than his wife.
+
+‘Not on his going or staying—I am sorry to say that point was settled
+long ago—but where we shall leave him.’
+
+Lily’s heart beat high, but she did not speak.
+
+‘The truth is,’ proceeded Mr. Hawkesworth, ‘that this young gentleman
+has, as perhaps you know, a grandpapa, a grandmamma, and also six or
+seven aunts. With his grandmamma he cannot be left, for sundry reasons,
+unnecessary to mention. Now, one of his aunts is a staid matronly lady,
+and his godmother besides, and in all respects the person to take charge
+of him,—only she lives in a small house in a town, and has plenty of
+babies of her own, without being troubled with other people’s. Master
+Henry’s other five aunts live in one great house, in a delightful
+country, with nothing to do but make much of him all day long, yet it is
+averred that these said aunts are a parcel of giddy young colts, amongst
+whom, if Henry escapes being demolished as a baby he will infallibly be
+spoilt as he grows up. Now, how are we to decide?’
+
+‘You have heard the true state of the case, Lily,’ said Mrs. Hawkesworth.
+‘I did not wish to harass papa by speaking to him till something was
+settled; you are certainly old enough to have an opinion.’
+
+‘Yes, Lily,’ said Frank; ‘do you think that the hospitable New Court will
+open to receive our poor deserted child, and that these said aunts are
+not wild colts but discreet damsels?’
+
+Playful as Mr. Hawkesworth’s manner was, Lily saw the earnestness that
+was veiled under it: she felt the solemnity of Eleanor’s appeal, and knew
+that this was no time to let herself be swayed by her wishes. There was
+a silence. At last, after a great struggle, Lily’s better judgment
+gained the mastery, and raising her head, she said, ‘Oh! Frank, do not
+ask me—I wish—but, Eleanor, when you see how much harm we have done, how
+utterly we have failed—’
+
+Lily’s newly-acquired habits of self-command enabled her to subdue a
+violent fit of sobbing, which she felt impending, but her tears flowed
+quietly down her cheeks.
+
+‘Remember,’ said Frank, ‘those who mistrust themselves are the most
+trustworthy.’
+
+‘No, Frank, it is not only the feeling of the greatness of the charge, it
+is the knowledge that we are not fit for it—that our own faults have
+forfeited such happiness.’
+
+Again Lily was choked with tears.
+
+‘Well,’ said Frank, ‘we shall judge at Beechcroft. At all events, one of
+those aunts is to be respected.’
+
+Eleanor added her ‘Very right.’
+
+This kindness on the part of her brother-in-law, which Lily felt to be
+undeserved, caused her tears to flow faster, and Eleanor, seeing her
+quite overcome, led her out of the room, helped her to undress, and put
+her to bed, with tenderness such as Lily had never experienced from her,
+excepting in illness.
+
+In spite of bitter regrets, when she thought of the happiness it would
+have been to keep her little nephew, and of importunate and disappointing
+hopes that Mrs. Ridley would find it impossible to receive him, Lily felt
+that she had done right, and had made a real sacrifice for duty’s sake.
+No more was said on the subject, and Lily was very grateful to Eleanor
+for making no inquiries, which she could not have answered without
+blaming Emily.
+
+Sight-seeing prospered very well under Claude’s guidance, and Lily’s
+wonder and delight was a constant source of amusement to her friends.
+Her shopping was more of a care than a pleasure, for, in spite of the
+handsome equipments which Mr. Mohun presented to all his daughters, it
+was impossible to contract Emily’s requirements within the limits of what
+ought to be her expenditure, and the different views of her brother and
+sister were rather troublesome in this matter. Claude hated the search
+for ladies’ finery, and if drawn into it, insisted on always taking her
+to the grandest and most expensive shops; while, on the other hand,
+though Eleanor liked to hunt up cheap things and good bargains, she had
+such rigid ideas about plainness of dress, that there was little chance
+that what she approved would satisfy Emily.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+CHARITY BEGINS AT HOME
+
+
+ ‘Suddenly, a mighty jerk
+ A mighty mischief did.’
+
+IN the meantime Emily and Jane went on very prosperously at home, looking
+forward to the return of the rest of the party on Saturday, the 17th of
+July. In this, however, they were doomed to disappointment, for neither
+Mr. Mohun nor Mr. Hawkesworth could wind up their affairs so as to return
+before the 24th. Maurice’s holidays commenced on Monday the 19th, and
+Claude offered to go home on the same day, and meet him, but in a general
+council it was determined to the contrary. Claude was wanted to stay for
+a concert on Thursday, and both Mr. Mohun and Eleanor thought Maurice,
+without Reginald, would not be formidable for a few days.
+
+At first he seemed to justify this opinion. He did not appear to have
+any peculiar pursuit, unless such might be called a very earnest attempt
+to make Phyllis desist from her favourite preface of ‘I’ll tell you
+what,’ and to reform her habit of saying, ‘Please for,’ instead of ‘If
+you please.’ He walked with the sisters, carried messages for Mr.
+Devereux, performed some neat little bits of carpentry, and was very
+useful and agreeable.
+
+On Wednesday afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called, their heads
+the more full of the 30th because the Marquis had not once thought of it
+while Mr. Devereux was ill. Among the intended diversions fireworks were
+mentioned, and from that moment rockets, wheels, and serpents, commenced
+a wild career through Maurice’s brain. Through the whole evening he
+searched for books on what he was pleased to call the art of
+pyrotechnics, studied them all Wednesday, and the next morning announced
+his intention of making some fireworks on a new plan.
+
+‘No, you must not,’ said Emily, ‘you will be sure to do mischief.’
+
+‘I am going to ask Wat for some powder,’ was Maurice’s reply, and he
+walked off.
+
+‘Stop him, Jane, stop him,’ cried Emily. ‘Nothing can be so dangerous.
+Tell him how angry papa would be.’
+
+Though Jane highly esteemed her brother’s discretion, she did not much
+like the idea of his touching powder, and she ran after him to suggest
+that he had better wait till papa’s return.
+
+‘Then Redgie will be at home,’ said Maurice, ‘and I could not be
+answerable for the consequence of such a careless fellow touching
+powder.’
+
+This great proof of caution quite satisfied Jane, but not so Wat
+Greenwood, who proved himself a faithful servant by refusing to let
+Master Maurice have one grain of gunpowder without express leave from the
+squire. Maurice then had recourse to Jane, and his power over her was
+such as to triumph over strong sense and weak notions of obedience, so
+that she was prevailed upon to supply him with the means of making the
+dangerous and forbidden purchase.
+
+Emily was both annoyed and alarmed when she found that the gunpowder was
+actually in the house, and she even thought of sending a note to the
+parsonage to beg Mr. Devereux to speak to Maurice; but Jane had gone over
+to the enemy, and Emily never could do anything unsupported. Besides,
+she neither liked to affront Maurice nor to confess herself unable to
+keep him in order; and she, therefore, tried to put the whole matter out
+of her head, in the thoughts of an expedition to Raynham, which she was
+about to make in the manner she best liked, with Jane in the close
+carriage, and the horses reluctantly spared from their farm work.
+
+As they were turning the corner of the lane they overtook Phyllis and
+Adeline on their way to the school with some work, and Emily stopped the
+carriage, to desire them to send off a letter which she had left on the
+chimney-piece in the schoolroom. Then proceeding to Raynham, they made
+their visits, paid Emily’s debts, performed their commissions, and met
+the carriage again at the bookseller’s shop, at the end of about two
+hours.
+
+‘Look here, Emily!’ exclaimed Jane. ‘Read this! can it be Mrs. Aylmer?’
+
+‘The truly charitable,’ said Emily, contemptuously. ‘Mrs. Aylmer is
+above—’
+
+‘But read. It says “unbeneficed clergyman and deceased nobleman,” and
+who can that be but Uncle Rotherwood and Mr. Aylmer.’
+
+‘Well, let us see,’ said Emily, ‘those things are always amusing.’
+
+It was an appeal to the ‘truly charitable,’ from the friends of the widow
+of an unbeneficed clergyman of the diocese, one of whose sons had, it was
+said, by the kindness of a deceased nobleman, received the promise of an
+appointment in India, of which he was unable to avail himself for want of
+the funds needful for his outfit. This appeal was, it added, made
+without the knowledge of the afflicted lady, but further particulars
+might be learnt by application to E. F., No. 5 West Street, Raynham.
+
+‘E. F. is plainly that bustling, little, old Miss Fitchett, who wrote to
+papa for some subscription,’ said Emily. ‘You know she is a regular
+beggar, always doing these kind of things, but I can never believe that
+Mrs. Aylmer would consent to appear in this manner.’
+
+‘Ah! but it says without her knowledge,’ said Jane. ‘Don’t you remember
+Rotherwood’s lamenting that they were forgotten?’
+
+‘Yes, it is shocking,’ said Emily; ‘the clergyman that married papa and
+mamma!’
+
+‘Ask Mr. Adam what he knows,’ said Jane.
+
+Emily accordingly applied to the bookseller, and learnt that Mrs. Aylmer
+was indeed the person intended. ‘Something must be done,’ said she,
+returning to Jane. ‘Our name will be a help.’
+
+‘Speak to Aunt Rotherwood,’ said Jane. ‘Or suppose we apply to Miss
+Fitchett, we should have time to drive that way.’
+
+‘I am sure I shall not go to Miss Fitchett,’ said Emily, ‘she only longs
+for an excuse to visit us. What can you be thinking of? Lend me your
+pencil, Jenny, if you please.’
+
+And Emily wrote down, ‘Miss Mohun, £5,’ and handed to the bookseller all
+that she possessed towards paying her just debts to Lilias. While she
+was writing, Jane had turned towards the window, and suddenly exclaiming,
+‘There is Ben! Oh! that gunpowder!’ darted out of the shop. She had
+seen the groom on horseback, and the next moment she was asking
+breathlessly, ‘Is it Maurice?’
+
+‘No, Miss Jane; but Miss Ada is badly burnt, and Master Maurice sent me
+to fetch Mr. Saunders.’
+
+‘How did it happen?’
+
+‘I can’t say, Miss; the schoolroom has been on fire, and Master Maurice
+said the young ladies had got at the gunpowder.’
+
+Emily had just arrived at the door, looking dreadfully pale, and followed
+by numerous kind offers of salts and glasses of water; but Jane,
+perceiving that at least she had strength to get into the carriage,
+refused them all, helped her in, and with instant decision, desired to be
+driven to the surgeon’s. Emily obeyed like a child, and threw herself
+back in the carriage without a word; Jane trembled like an aspen leaf;
+but her higher spirit took the lead, and very sensibly she managed,
+stopping at Mr. Saunders’s door to offer to take him to Beechcroft, and
+getting a glass of sal-volatile for Emily while they were waiting for
+him. His presence was a great relief, for Emily’s natural courtesy made
+her exert herself, and thus warded off much that would have been very
+distressing.
+
+In the meantime we will return to Beechcroft, where Emily’s request
+respecting her letter had occasioned some discussion between the little
+girls, as they returned from a walk with Marianne. Phyllis thought that
+Emily meant them to wafer the letter, since they were under strict orders
+never to touch fire or candle; but Ada argued that they were to seal it,
+and that permission to light a candle was implied in the order. At last,
+Phyllis hoped the matter might be settled by asking Maurice to seal the
+letter, and meeting him at the front door, she began, in fortunately,
+with ‘Please, Maurice—’
+
+‘I never listen to anything beginning with please,’ said Maurice, who was
+in a great hurry, ‘only don’t touch my powder.’
+
+Away he went, deaf to all his sister’s shouts of ‘Maurice, Maurice,’ and
+they went in, Ada not sorry to be unheard, as she was bent on the grand
+exploit of lighting a lucifer match, but Phyllis still pleading for the
+wafer. They found the schoolroom strewed with Maurice’s preparations for
+fireworks, and Emily’s letter on the chimney-piece.
+
+‘Let us take the letter downstairs, and put on a wafer,’ said Phyllis.
+‘Won’t you come, Ada?’
+
+‘No, the stamps are here, and so are the matches, I can do it easily.’
+
+‘But Ada, Ada, it would be naughty. Only wait, and I will show you such
+a pretty wafer that I know of in the drawing-room. I will run and fetch
+it.’
+
+Phyllis went, and Ada stood a few moments in doubt, looking at the
+letter. The recollection of duty was not strong enough to balance the
+temptation, and she took up a match and drew it along the sandpaper. It
+did not light—a second pull, and the flame appeared more suddenly than
+she had expected, while at the same moment the lock of the door turned,
+and fancying it was Maurice, she started, and dropped the match. Phyllis
+opened the door, heard a loud explosion and a scream, saw a bright flash
+and a cloud of smoke. She started back, but the next moment again opened
+the door, and ran forward. Hannah rushed in at the same time, and caught
+up Ada, who had fallen to the ground. A light in the midst of the smoke
+made Phyllis turn, and she beheld the papers on the table on fire.
+Maurice’s powder-horn was in the midst, but the flames had not yet
+reached it, and, mindful of Claude’s story, she sprung forward, caught it
+up, and dashed it through the window; she felt the glow of the fire upon
+her cheek, and stood still as if stunned, till Hannah carried Ada out of
+the room, and screamed to her to come away, and call Joseph. The table
+was now one sheet of flame, and Phyllis flew to the pantry, where she
+gave the summons in almost inaudible tones. The servants hurried to the
+spot, and she was left alone and bewildered; she ran hither and thither
+in confusion, till she met Hannah, eagerly asking for Master Maurice, and
+saying that the surgeon must be instantly sent for, as Ada’s face and
+neck were badly burnt. Phyllis ran down, calling Maurice, and at length
+met him at the front door, looking much frightened, and asking for Ada.
+
+‘Oh! Maurice, her face and neck are burnt, and badly. She does scream?’
+
+‘Did I not tell you not to meddle with the powder?’ said Maurice.
+
+‘Indeed, I could not help it,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Stuff and nonsense! It is very well that you have not killed Ada, and I
+think that would have made you sorry.’
+
+Phyllis with difficulty mentioned Hannah’s desire that a surgeon should
+be sent for: Maurice went to look for Ben, and she followed him. Then he
+began asking how she had done the mischief.
+
+‘I do not know,’ said she, ‘I do not much think I did it.’
+
+‘Mind, you can’t humbug me. Did you not say that you touched the
+powder?’
+
+‘Yes, but—’
+
+‘No buts,’ said Maurice, making the most of his brief authority. ‘I hate
+false excuses. What were you doing when it exploded?’
+
+‘Coming into the room.’
+
+‘Oh! that accounts for it,’ said Maurice, ‘the slightest vibration causes
+an explosion of that sort of rocket, and of course it was your bouncing
+into the room! You have had a lesson against rushing about the house.
+Come, though, cheer up, Phyl, it is a bad business, but it might have
+been worse; you will know better next time. Don’t cry, Phyl, I will
+explain to you all about the patent rocket.’
+
+‘But do you really think that I blew up Ada?’
+
+‘Blew up Ada! caused the powder to ignite. The inflammable matter—’
+
+As he spoke he followed Phyllis to the nursery, and there was so much
+shocked, that he could no longer lord it over her, but shrinking back,
+shut himself up in his room, and bolted the door.
+
+Nearly an hour passed away before the arrival of Emily, Jane, and Mr.
+Saunders. Phyllis ran down, and meeting them at the door, exclaimed,
+‘Oh! Emily, poor Ada! I am so sorry.’
+
+The sisters hurried past her to the nursery, where Ada was lying on the
+bed, half undressed, and her face, neck, and arm such a spectacle that
+Emily turned away, ready to faint. Mr. Saunders was summoned, and
+Phyllis thrust out of the room. She sat down on the step of the stairs,
+resting her forehead on her knees, and trembling, listened to the sounds
+of voices, and the screams which now and then reached her ears. After a
+time she was startled by hearing herself called from the stairs _by
+below_ a voice which she had not heard for many weeks, and springing up,
+saw Mr. Devereux leaning on the banisters. The great change in his
+appearance frightened her almost as much as the accident itself, and she
+stood looking at him without speaking. ‘Phyllis,’ said he, in a voice
+hoarse with agitation, ‘what is it? tell me at once.’
+
+She could not speak, and her wild and frightened air might well give him
+great alarm. She pointed to the nursery, and put her finger to her lips,
+and he, beckoning to her to follow him, went downstairs, and turning into
+the drawing-room, said, as he sank down upon the sofa, ‘Now, Phyllis,
+what has happened?’
+
+‘The gunpowder—I made it go off, and it has burnt poor Ada’s face! Mr.
+Saunders is there, and she screams—’
+
+Phyllis finding herself ready to roar, left off speaking, and laying her
+head on the table, burst into an agony of crying, while Mr. Devereux was
+too much exhausted to address her; at last she exclaimed: ‘I hear the
+nursery door; he is going!’
+
+She flew to the door, and listened, and then called out, ‘Emily, Jane,
+here is Cousin Robert!’
+
+Jane came down, leaving Emily to finish hearing Mr. Saunders’s
+directions. She was even more shocked at her cousin’s looks than Phyllis
+had been, and though she tried to speak cheerfully, her manner scarcely
+agreed with her words. ‘It is all well, Robert, I am sorry you have been
+so frightened. It is but a slight affair, though it looks so shocking.
+There is no danger. But, oh, Robert! you ought not to be here. What
+shall we do for you? you are quite knocked up.’
+
+‘Oh! no,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘I am only a little out of breath. A
+terrible report came to me, and I set off to learn the truth. I should
+like to hear what Mr. Saunders says of her.’
+
+‘I will call him in here before he goes,’ said Jane; ‘how tired you are;
+you have not been out before.’
+
+‘Only to the gate to speak to Rotherwood yesterday, and prevent him from
+coming in,’ said Mr. Devereux, ‘but I have great designs for Sunday.
+They come home to-morrow, do not they?’
+
+Jane was much relieved by hearing her cousin talk in this manner, and
+answered, ‘Yes, and a dismal coming home it will be; it is too late to
+let them know.’
+
+Mr. Saunders now entered, and gave a very favourable account of the
+patient, saying that even the scars would probably disappear in a few
+weeks. His gig had come from Raynham, and he offered to set Mr. Devereux
+down at the parsonage, a proposal which the latter was very glad to
+accept. Emily and Jane had leisure, when they were gone, to inquire into
+the manner of the accident. Phyllis answered that Maurice said that her
+banging the door had made the powder go off. Jane then asked where
+Maurice was, and Phyllis reporting that he was in his own room, she
+repaired thither, and knocked twice without receiving an answer. On her
+call, however, he opened the door; she saw that he had been in tears, and
+hastened to tell him Mr. Saunders’s opinion. He fastened the door again
+as soon as she had entered. ‘If I could have thought it!’ sighed he.
+‘Fool that I was, not to lock the door!’
+
+‘Then you were not there? Phyllis says that she did it by banging the
+door. Is not that nonsense?’
+
+‘Not at all. Did I not read to you in the _Year Book of Facts_ about the
+patent signal rockets, which explode with the least vibration, even when
+a carriage goes by? Now, mine was on the same principle. I was making
+an experiment on the ingredients; I did not expect to succeed the first
+time, and so I took no precautions. Well! Pyrotechnics are a dangerous
+science! Next time I study them it shall be at the workshop at the Old
+Court.’
+
+Maurice was sincerely sorry for the consequence of his disobedience, and
+would have been much to be pitied had it not been for his secret
+satisfaction in the success of his art. He called his sister into the
+schoolroom to explain how it happened. The room was a dismal sight,
+blackened with smoke, and flooded with water, the table and part of the
+floor charred, a mass of burnt paper in the midst, and a stifling smell
+of fire. A pane of glass was shattered, and Maurice ran down to the lawn
+to see if he could find anything there to account for it. The next
+moment he returned, the powder-horn in his hand. ‘See, Jenny, how
+fortunate that this was driven through the window with the force of the
+explosion. The whole place might have been blown to atoms with such a
+quantity as this.’
+
+‘Then what was it that blew up?’ asked Jane.
+
+‘What I had put out for my rocket, about two ounces. If this half-pound
+had gone there is no saying what might have happened.’
+
+‘Now, Maurice,’ said Jane, ‘I must go back to Ada, and will you run down
+to the parsonage with a parcel, directed to Robert, that you will find in
+the hall?’
+
+This was a device to occupy Maurice, who, as Jane saw, was so restless
+and unhappy that she did not like to leave him, much as she was wanted
+elsewhere. He went, but afraid to see his cousin, only left the parcel
+at the door. As he was going back he heard a shout, and looking round
+saw Lord Rotherwood mounted on Cedric, his most spirited horse, galloping
+up the lane. ‘Maurice!’ cried he, ‘what is all this? they say the New
+Court is blown up, and you and half the girls killed, but I hope one part
+is as true as the other.’
+
+‘Nobody is hurt but Ada,’ said Maurice, ‘but her face is a good deal
+burnt.’
+
+‘Eh? then she won’t be fit for the 30th, poor child! tell me how it was,
+make haste. I heard it from Mr. Burnet as I came down to dinner. We
+have a dozen people at dinner. I told him not to mention it to my
+mother, and rode off to hear the truth. Make haste, half the people were
+come when I set off.’
+
+The horse’s caperings so discomposed Maurice that he could scarcely
+collect his wits enough to answer: ‘Some signal rocket on a new
+principle—detonating powder, composed of oxymuriate—Oh! Rotherwood, take
+care!’
+
+‘Speak sense, and go on.’
+
+‘Then Phyllis came in, banged the door, and the vibration caused the
+explosion,’ said Maurice, scared into finishing promptly.
+
+‘Eh! banging the door? You had better not tell that story at school.’
+
+‘But, Rotherwood, the deton—Oh! that horse—you will be off!’
+
+‘Not half so dangerous as patent rockets. Is Emily satisfied with such
+stuff?’
+
+‘Don’t you know that fulminating silver—’
+
+‘What does Robert Devereux say?’
+
+‘Really, Rotherwood, I could show you—’
+
+‘Show me? No; if rockets are so perilous I shall have nothing to do with
+them. Stand still, Cedric! Just tell me about Ada. Is there much harm
+done?’
+
+‘Her face is scorched a good deal, but they say it will soon be right.’
+
+‘I am glad—we will send to inquire to-morrow, but I cannot come—ha, ha! a
+new infernal machine. Good-bye, Friar Bacon.’
+
+Away he went, and Maurice stood looking after him with complacent
+disdain. ‘There they go, Cedric and Rotherwood, equally well provided
+with brains! What is the use of talking science to either?’
+
+It was late when he reached the house, and his two sisters shortly came
+down to tea, with news that Adeline was asleep and Phyllis was going to
+bed. The accident was again talked over.
+
+‘Well,’ said Emily, ‘I do not understand it, but I suppose papa will.’
+
+‘The telling papa is a bad part of the affair, with William and Eleanor
+there too,’ said Jane.
+
+‘I do not mean to speak to Phyllis about it again,’ said Emily, ‘it makes
+her cry so terribly.’
+
+‘It will come out fast enough,’ sighed Maurice. ‘Good-night.’
+
+More than once in the course of the night did poor Phyllis wake and cry,
+and the next day was the most wretched she had ever spent; she was not
+allowed to stay in the nursery, and the schoolroom was uninhabitable, so
+she wandered listlessly about the garden, sometimes creeping down to the
+churchyard, where she looked up at the old tower, or pondered over the
+graves, and sometimes forgetting her troubles in converse with the dogs,
+in counting the rings in the inside of a foxglove flower, or in rescuing
+tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a water-lily.
+
+ [Picture: Rescuing tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a
+ water-lily.—p. 247]
+
+Her sisters and brothers were not less forlorn. Emily sighed and
+lamented; Adeline was feverish and petulant; and Jane toiled in vain to
+please and soothe both, and to comfort Maurice; but with all her
+good-temper and good-nature she had not the spirit which alone could
+enable her to be a comfort to any one. Ada whined, fretted, and was
+disobedient, and from Maurice she met with nothing but rebuffs; he was
+silent and sullen, and spent most of the day in the workshop, slowly
+planing scraps of deal board, and watching with a careless eye the curled
+shavings float to the ground.
+
+In the course of the afternoon Alethea and Marianne came to inquire after
+the patient. Jane came down to them and talked very fast, but when they
+asked for a further explanation of the cause of the accident, Jane
+declared that Maurice said it was impossible that any one who did not
+understand chemistry should know how it happened, and Alethea went away
+strongly reminded that it was no affair of hers.
+
+Notes passed between the New Court and the vicarage, but Mr. Devereux was
+feeling the effect of his yesterday’s exertion too much to repeat it, and
+no persuasion of the sisters could induce Maurice to visit him.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+THE BARONIAL COURT
+
+
+ ‘Still in his eyes his soul revealing,
+ He dreams not, knows not of concealing,
+ Does all he does with single mind,
+ And thinks of others that are kind.’
+
+THE travellers were expected to arrive at about seven o’clock in the
+evening, and in accordance with a well-known taste of Eleanor’s, Emily
+had ordered no dinner, but a substantial meal under the name of tea.
+When the sound of carriage wheels was heard, Jane was with Adeline,
+Maurice was in his retreat at the Old Court, and it was with no cheerful
+alacrity that Emily went alone into the hall. Phyllis was already at the
+front door, and the instant Mr. Mohun set foot on the threshold, her hand
+grasped his coat, and her shrill voice cried in his ear, ‘Papa, I am very
+sorry I blew up the gunpowder and burnt Ada.’
+
+‘What, my dear? where is Ada?’
+
+‘In bed. I blew up the gunpowder and burnt her face,’ repeated Phyllis.
+
+‘We have had an accident,’ said Emily, ‘but I hope it is nothing very
+serious, only poor Ada is a sad figure.’
+
+In another moment Mr. Mohun and Eleanor were on the way to the nursery;
+Lilias was following, but she recollected that a general rush into a
+sickroom was not desirable, and therefore paused and came back to the
+hall. The worst was over with Phyllis when the confession had been made.
+She was in raptures at the sight of the baby, and was presently showing
+the nurse the way upstairs, but her brother William called her back:
+‘Phyllis, you have not spoken to any one.’
+
+Phyllis turned, and came down slowly in her most ungainly manner,
+believing herself in too great disgrace to be noticed by anybody, and she
+was quite surprised and comforted to be greeted by her brothers and Lily
+just as usual.
+
+‘And how did you meet with this misfortune?’ asked Mr. Hawkesworth.
+
+‘I banged the door, and made it go off,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘What can you mean?’ said William, in a tone of surprise, which Phyllis
+took for anger, and she hid her face to stifle her sobs.
+
+‘No, no, do not frighten her,’ said Claude’s kind voice.
+
+‘Run and make friends with your nephew, Phyllis,’ said Mr. Hawkesworth;
+‘do not greet us with crying.’
+
+‘First tell me what is become of Maurice,’ said Claude, ‘is he blown up
+too?’
+
+‘No, he is at the Old Court,’ said Phyllis. ‘Shall I tell him that you
+are come?’
+
+‘I will look for him,’ said Claude, and out he went.
+
+The others dispersed in different directions, and did not assemble again
+for nearly half an hour, when they all met in the drawing-room to drink
+tea; Claude and Maurice were the last to appear, and, on entering, the
+first thing the former said was, ‘Where is Phyllis?’
+
+‘In the nursery,’ said Jane; ‘she has had her supper, and chooses to stay
+with Ada.’
+
+‘Has any one found out the history of the accident?’ said William.
+
+‘I have vainly been trying to make sense of Maurice’s account,’ said
+Claude.
+
+‘Sense!’ said William, ‘there is none.’
+
+‘I am perfectly bewildered,’ said Lily; ‘every one has a different story,
+only consenting in making Phyllis the victim.’
+
+‘And,’ added Claude, ‘I strongly suspect she is not in fault.’
+
+‘Why should you doubt what she says herself?’ said Eleanor.
+
+‘What does she say herself?’ said William, ‘nothing but that she shut the
+door, and what does that amount to?—Nothing.’
+
+‘She says she touched the powder,’ interposed Jane.
+
+‘That is another matter,’ said William; ‘no one told me of her touching
+the powder. But why do you not ask her? She is publicly condemned
+without a hearing.’
+
+‘Who accuses her?’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I can hardly tell,’ said Emily; ‘she met us, saying she was very sorry.
+Yes, she accuses herself. Every one has believed it to be her.’
+
+‘And why?’
+
+There was a pause, but at last Emily said, ‘How would you account for it
+otherwise?’
+
+‘I have not yet heard the circumstances. Maurice, I wish to hear your
+account. I will not now ask how you procured the powder. Whoever was
+the immediate cause of the accident, you are chiefly to blame. Where was
+the powder?’
+
+Maurice gave his theory and his facts, ending with the powder-horn being
+driven out of the window upon the green.
+
+‘I hear,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘But, Maurice, did you not say that Phyllis
+touched the powder? How do you reconcile that with this incomprehensible
+statement?’
+
+‘She might have done that before,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘Now call Phyllis,’ said his father.
+
+‘Is it not very formidable for her to be examined before such an
+assembly?’ said Emily.
+
+‘The accusation has been public, and the investigation shall be the
+same,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘Then you do not think she did it, papa?’ cried Lily.
+
+‘Not by shutting the door,’ said William.
+
+Phyllis entered, and Mr. Mohun, holding out both hands to her, drew her
+towards him, and placing her with her back to the others, still retained
+her hands, while he said, ‘Phyllis, do not be frightened, but tell me
+where you were when the powder exploded?’
+
+‘Coming into the room,’ said Phyllis, in a trembling voice.
+
+‘Where had you been?’
+
+‘Fetching a wafer out of the drawing-room.’
+
+‘What was the wafer for?’
+
+‘To put on Emily’s letter, which she told us to send.’
+
+‘And where was Ada?’
+
+‘In the schoolroom, reading the direction of the letter.’
+
+‘Tell me exactly what happened when you came back.’
+
+‘I opened the door, and there was a flash, and a bang, and a smoke, and
+Ada tumbled down.’
+
+‘I have one more question to ask. When did you touch the powder?’
+
+‘Then,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘When it had exploded? Take care what you say.’
+
+‘Was it naughty? I am very sorry,’ said Phyllis, beginning to cry.
+
+‘What powder did you touch? I do not understand you, tell me quietly.’
+
+‘I touched the powder-horn. What went off was only a little in a paper
+on the table, and there was a great deal more. When the rocket blew up
+there was a great noise, and Ada and I both screamed, and Hannah ran in
+and took up Ada in her arms. Then I saw a great fire, and looked, and
+saw Emily’s music-book, and all the papers blazing. So I thought if it
+got to the powder it would blow up again, and I laid hold of the horn and
+threw it out of the window. That is all I know, papa, only I hope you
+are not very angry with me.’
+
+She looked into his face, not knowing how to interpret the unusual
+expression she saw there.
+
+‘Angry with you!’ said he. ‘No, my dear child, you have acted with great
+presence of mind. You have saved your sister and Hannah from great
+danger, and I am very sorry that you have been unjustly treated.’
+
+He then gave his little daughter a kiss, and putting his hand on her
+head, added, ‘Whoever caused the explosion, Phyllis is quite free from
+blame, and I wish every one to understand this, because she has been
+unjustly accused, without examination, and because she has borne it
+patiently, and without attempting to justify herself.’
+
+‘Very right,’ observed Eleanor.
+
+‘Shake hands, Phyllis,’ said William.
+
+The others said more with their eyes than with their lips. Phyllis stood
+like one in a dream, and fixing her bewildered looks upon Claude, said,
+‘Did not I do it?’
+
+‘No, Phyllis, you had nothing to do with it,’ was the general
+exclamation.
+
+‘Maurice said it was the door,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Maurice talked nonsense,’ said Claude; ‘you were only foolish in
+believing him.’
+
+Phyllis went up to Claude, and laid her head on his arm; Mr. Hawkesworth
+held out his hand to her, but she did not look up, and Claude withdrawing
+his arm, and raising her head, found that she was crying. Eleanor and
+Lilias both rose, and came towards her but Claude made them a sign, and
+led her away.
+
+‘What a fine story this will be for Reginald,’ said William.
+
+‘And for Rotherwood,’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I do not see how it happened,’ said Eleanor.
+
+‘Of course Ada did it herself,’ said William.
+
+‘Of course,’ said Maurice. ‘It was all from Emily’s setting them to seal
+her letter, that is plain now.’
+
+‘Would not Ada have said so?’ asked Eleanor.
+
+Lily sighed at the thought of what Eleanor had yet to learn.
+
+‘Did you tell them to seal your letter, Emily?’ said Mr. Mohun.
+
+‘I am sorry to say that I did tell them to send it,’ said Emily, ‘but I
+said nothing about sealing, as Jane remembers, and I forgot that
+Maurice’s gunpowder was in the room.’
+
+Eleanor shook her head sorrowfully, and looked down at her knitting, and
+Lily knew that her mind was made up respecting little Henry’s
+dwelling-place.
+
+It was some comfort to have raised no false expectations.
+
+‘Ada must not be frightened and agitated to-night,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘but
+I hope you will talk to her to-morrow, Eleanor. Well, Claude, have you
+made Phyllis understand that she is acquitted?’
+
+‘Scarcely,’ said Claude; ‘she is so overcome and worn out, that I thought
+she had better go to bed, and wake in her proper senses to-morrow.’
+
+‘A very unconscious heroine,’ said William. ‘She is a wonder—I never
+thought her anything but an honest sort of romp.’
+
+‘I have long thought her a wonderful specimen of obedience,’ said Mr.
+Mohun.
+
+William and Claude now walked to the parsonage, and the council broke up;
+but it must not be supposed that this was the last that Emily and Maurice
+heard on the subject.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+JOYS AND SORROWS
+
+
+ ‘Complaint was heard on every part
+ Of something disarranged.’
+
+THE next day, Sunday, was one of the most marked in Lily’s life. It was
+the first time she saw Mr. Devereux after his illness, and though Claude
+had told her he was going to church, it gave her a sudden thrill of joy
+to see him there once more, and perhaps she never felt more thankful than
+when his name was read before the Thanksgiving. After the service there
+was an exchange of greetings, but Lily spoke no word, she felt too happy
+and too awe-struck to say anything, and she walked back to the New Court
+in silence.
+
+In the afternoon she had hopes that a blessing would be granted to her,
+for which at one time she had scarcely dared to hope; and she felt
+convinced that so it would be when she saw that Mr. Devereux wore his
+surplice, although, as in the morning, his friend read the service.
+After the Second Lesson there was a pause, and then Mr. Devereux left the
+chair by the altar, walked along the aisle, and took his stand on the
+step of the font. Lily’s heart beat high as she saw who were gathering
+round him—Mrs. Eden, Andrew Grey, James Harrington, and Mrs. Naylor, who
+held in her arms a healthy, rosy-checked boy of a year old.
+
+She could not have described the feelings which made her eyes overflow
+with tears, as she saw Mr. Devereux’s thin hand sprinkle the drops over
+the brow of the child, and heard him say, ‘Robert, I baptize thee’—words
+which she had heard in dreams, and then awakened to remember that the
+parish was at enmity with the pastor, the child unbaptized, and herself,
+in part, the cause.
+
+The name of the little boy was an additional pledge of reconciliation,
+and at the same time it made her feel again what had been the price of
+his baptism. When she looked back upon the dreary feelings which she had
+so lately experienced, it seemed to her as if she might believe that this
+christening was, as it were, a pledge of pardon, and an earnest of better
+things.
+
+Naylor, who had recovered much more slowly than Mr. Devereux, was at
+church for the first time, and after the service Mr. Mohun sought him out
+in the churchyard, and heartily shook hands with him. Lily would gladly
+have followed his example, but she only stood by Eleanor and Mrs. Weston,
+who were speaking to Mrs. Eden and Mrs. Naylor, admiring the little boy,
+and praising him for his good behaviour in church.
+
+Love of babies was a strong bond between Mrs. Weston and Mrs.
+Hawkesworth, who seemed to become well acquainted from the first moment
+that little Henry was mentioned; and Lily was well pleased to see that in
+Jane’s phrase Eleanor ‘took to her friends so well.’
+
+And yet this day brought with it some annoyances, which once would have
+fretted her so much as to interfere even with such joy as she now felt.
+The song, with which she had taken so much pains, ought to have been sent
+home a week before, but owing to the delay caused by Emily’s
+carelessness, it had been burnt in the fire in the schoolroom, and Lily
+could not feel herself forgiven till she had talked the disaster over in
+private with her friend, and this was out of her power throughout the
+day, for something always prevented her from getting Alethea alone. In
+the morning Jane stuck close to her, and in the afternoon William walked
+to the school gate with them. But Alethea’s manner was kinder towards
+her than ever, and she was quite satisfied about her.
+
+It gave her more pain to perceive that Emily in every possible manner
+avoided being alone with her. It was by her desire that Phyllis came to
+sleep in their room; she would keep Jane talking there, give Esther some
+employment which kept her in their presence, linger in the drawing-room
+while Lilias was dressing, and at bedtime be too sleepy to say anything
+but good-night.
+
+That Sunday was a sorrowful one to Eleanor; for in the course of the
+conversation with Ada, which Mr. Mohun had desired her to hold, she
+became conscious of the little girl’s double-dealing ways. It was only
+by a very close cross-examination that she was able to extract from her a
+true account of the disaster, and though Ada never went so far as
+actually to tell a falsehood, it was evident that she was willing to
+conceal as much as possible, and to throw the blame on other people. And
+when the real facts were confessed she did not seem able to comprehend
+why she was regarded with displeasure; her instinct of truth and
+obedience was lost for the time, and Eleanor saw it with the utmost pain.
+Adeline had been her especial darling, and cold as her manner had often
+been towards the others, it ever was warm towards the motherless little
+one, whom she had tended and cherished with most anxious care from her
+earliest infancy. She had left her gentle, candid, and affectionate; a
+loving, engaging, little creature, and how did she find her now? Her
+fair bright face disfigured, her caresses affected, her mind turned to
+deceit and prevarication! Well might Eleanor feel it more than ever
+painful to leave her own little Henry to the care of others; and well it
+was for her that she had learned to find comfort in the consciousness
+that her duty was clear.
+
+The next morning Emily learned what was Henry’s destination.
+
+‘Oh! Eleanor,’ said she, ‘why do you not leave him here? We should be so
+rejoiced to have him.’
+
+‘Thank you, I am afraid it is out of the question,’ answered Eleanor,
+quietly.
+
+‘Why, dear Eleanor? You know how glad we should be. I should have
+thought,’ proceeded Emily, a little hurt, ‘that you would have wished him
+to live in your own home.’
+
+Eleanor did not speak, and Emily, who had the little boy in her arms,
+went on talking to him: ‘Come, baby, let us persuade mamma to let you
+stay with Aunt Emily. Ask papa, Henry, won’t you? Seriously, Eleanor,
+has Frank considered how much better it would be to have him in the
+country?’
+
+‘He has, Emily; he once wished much to leave him here.’
+
+‘I am sure grandpapa would like it,’ said Emily. ‘Do you observe,
+Eleanor, how fond he is of baby, always calling him Harry too, as if he
+liked the sound of the name?’
+
+‘It has all been talked over, Emily, and it cannot be.’
+
+‘With papa?’ asked Emily in surprise.
+
+‘No, with Lily.’
+
+‘With Lily!’ exclaimed Emily. ‘Did not Aunt Lily wish to keep you,
+Harry? I thought she was very fond of you.’
+
+‘You had better inquire no further,’ said Eleanor, ‘except of your own
+conscience.’
+
+‘Did Lily think us unfit to take care of him?’ asked Emily, in surprise.
+
+As she spoke Lily herself came in, the key of the storeroom in her hand,
+and looks of consternation on her face. She came to announce a terrible
+deficiency in the preserved quinces, which she herself had carefully put
+aside on a shelf in the storeroom, and which Emily said she had not
+touched in her absence.
+
+‘Let me see,’ said Eleanor, rising, and setting off to the storeroom;
+Emily and Lily followed, with a sad suspicion of the truth. On the way
+they looked into the nursery, to give little Henry to his nurse, and to
+ask Jane, who was sitting with Ada, what she remembered about it. Jane
+knew nothing, and they went on to the storeroom, where Eleanor, quite in
+her element, began rummaging, arranging, and sighing over the confusion,
+while Lily lent a helping hand, and Emily stood by, wishing that her
+sister would not trouble herself. Presently Jane came running up with a
+saucer in her hand, containing a quarter of a quince and some syrup,
+which she said she had found in the nursery cupboard, in searching for a
+puzzle which Ada wanted.
+
+‘And,’ said Jane, ‘I should guess that Miss Ada herself knew something
+about it, for when I could not find the puzzle in the right-hand
+cupboard, she was so very unwilling that I should look into that one; she
+said there was nothing there but the boys’ old playthings and Esther’s
+clothes. And I do not know whether you saw how she fidgeted when you
+were talking about the quinces, before you went up.’
+
+‘It is much too plain,’ sighed Lily. ‘Oh! Rachel, why did we not listen
+to you?’
+
+‘Do you suppose,’ said Eleanor, ‘that Ada has been in the habit of taking
+the key and helping herself?’
+
+‘No,’ said Emily, ‘but that Esther has helped her.’
+
+‘Ah!’ said Eleanor, ‘I never thought it wise to take her, but how could
+she get the key? You do not mean that you trusted it out of your own
+keeping.’
+
+‘It began while we were ill,’ faltered Emily, ‘and afterwards it was
+difficult to bring matters into their former order.’
+
+‘But oh, Eleanor, what is to be done?’ sighed Lily.
+
+‘Speak to papa, of course,’ said Eleanor. ‘He is gone to the castle, and
+in the meantime we had better take an exact account of everything here.’
+
+‘And Esther? And Ada?’ inquired the sisters.
+
+‘I think it will be better to speak to him before making so grave an
+accusation,’ said Eleanor.
+
+They now commenced that wearisome occupation—a complete
+setting-to-rights; Eleanor counted, weighed, and measured, and extended
+her cares from the stores to every other household matter. Emily made
+her escape, and went to sit with Ada; but Lily and Jane toiled for
+several hours with Eleanor, till Lily was so heated and wearied that she
+was obliged to give up a walk to Broomhill, and spend another day without
+a talk with Alethea. However, she was so patient, ready, and
+good-humoured, that Eleanor was well pleased with her. She could hardly
+think of the slight vexation, when her mind was full of sorrow and shame
+on Esther’s account. It was she who, contrary to the advice of her
+elders, had insisted on bringing her into the house; she had allowed
+temptation to be set in her way, and had not taken sufficient pains to
+strengthen her principles; and how could she do otherwise than feel
+guilty of all Esther’s faults, and of those into which she had led
+Adeline?
+
+On Mr. Mohun’s return Ada was interrogated. She pitied herself—said she
+did not think papa would be angry—prevaricated—and tried to coax away his
+inquiries, but all in vain; and at length, by slow degrees, the
+confession was drawn from her that she had been used to asking Esther for
+morsels of sweet things when she was sent to the storeroom; that
+afterwards she had seen her packing up some tea and sugar to take to her
+mother, and that Esther on that occasion, and several others, purchased
+her silence by giving her a share of pilfered sweetmeats. Telling her
+that he only spared her a very severe punishment for the present, on
+account of her illness, Mr. Mohun left her, and on his way downstairs met
+Phyllis.
+
+‘Phyl,’ said he, ‘did Esther ever give you sweet things out of the
+storeroom?’
+
+‘Once, papa, when she had been putting out some currant jam, she offered
+me what had been left in the spoon.’
+
+‘Did you take it?’
+
+‘No, papa, for Eleanor used to say it was a bad trick to lick out
+spoons.’
+
+‘Did you ever know that she took tea and sugar from the storeroom, for
+her mother?’
+
+‘Took home tea and sugar to her mother! She could not have done it,
+papa. It would be stealing!’
+
+Esther, who was next called for, cried a great deal, and begged for
+pardon, pleading again and again that—
+
+‘It was mother,’ an answer which made her young mistresses again sigh
+over the remembrance of Rachel’s disregarded advice. Her fate was left
+for consideration and consultation with Mr. Devereux, for Mr. Mohun,
+seeing himself to blame for having allowed her to be placed in a
+situation of so much trial, and thinking that there was much that was
+good about her, did not like to send her to her home, where she was
+likely to learn nothing but what was bad.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+LOVE’S LABOUR LOST
+
+
+ ‘And well, with ready hand and heart,
+ Each task of toilsome duty taking,
+ Did one dear inmate take her part,
+ The last asleep, the earliest waking.’
+
+IN the course of the afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called, to
+see Eleanor, inquire after Ada, and make the final arrangements for going
+to a morning concert at Raynham the next day. Lady Rotherwood was afraid
+of the fatigue, and Florence therefore wished to accompany her cousins,
+who, as Eleanor meant to stay at home, were to be under Mrs. Weston’s
+protection. Lady Florence and her brother, therefore, agreed to ride
+home by Broomhill, and mention the plan to Mrs. Weston, and took their
+leave, appointing Adam’s shop as the place of rendezvous.
+
+Next morning Emily, Lilias, and Jane happened to be together in the
+drawing-room, when Mr. Mohun and Claude came in, the former saying to
+Lily, ‘Here is the mason’s account for the gravestone which you wished to
+have put up to Agnes Eden; it comes to two pounds. You undertook half
+the expense, and as Claude is going to Raynham, he will pay for it if you
+will give him your sovereign.’
+
+‘I will,’ said Lily, ‘but first I must ask Emily to pay me for the London
+commissions.’
+
+Emily repented not having had a private conference with Lily.
+
+‘So you have not settled your accounts,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘I hope Lily
+has not ruined you, Emily.’
+
+‘I thought her a mirror of prudence,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Well, Emily, is the sovereign forthcoming? I am going directly, for
+Frank has something to do at Raynham, and William is going to try his
+gray in the phaeton.’
+
+‘I am afraid you will think me very silly,’ said Emily, after some
+deliberation, ‘but I hope Lily will not be very angry when I confess that
+seven shillings is the sum total of my property.’
+
+‘Oh, Emily,’ cried Lily, in dismay, ‘what has become of your five
+pounds?’
+
+‘I gave them as a subscription for a clergyman’s widow in distress,’ said
+Emily; ‘it was the impulse of a moment, I could not help it, and, dear
+Lily, I hope it will not inconvenience you.’
+
+‘If papa will be kind enough to wait for this pound till Michaelmas,’
+said Lily.
+
+‘I would wait willingly,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘but I will not see you
+cheated. How much does she owe you?’
+
+‘The commissions came to six pounds three,’ said Lily, looking down.
+
+‘But, Lily,’ said Jane, ‘you forget the old debt.’
+
+‘Never mind,’ whispered Lily; but Mr. Mohun asked what Jane had said, and
+Claude repeated her speech, upon which he inquired, ‘What old debt?’
+
+‘Papa,’ said Emily, in her most candid tone, ‘I do not know what I should
+have done but for Lily’s kindness. Really, I cannot get on with my
+present allowance; being the eldest, so many expenses come upon me.’
+
+‘Then am I to understand,’ replied Mr. Mohun, ‘that your foolish vanity
+has led you to encroach on your sister’s kindness, and to borrow of her
+what you had no reasonable hope of repaying? Again, Lily, what does she
+owe you?’
+
+Emily felt the difference between the sharp, curious eyes with which Jane
+regarded her, and the sorrowful downcast looks of Lily, who replied, ‘The
+old debt is four pounds, but that does not signify.’
+
+‘Well,’ resumed her father, ‘I cannot blame you for your good-nature,
+though an older person might have acted otherwise. You must have managed
+wonderfully well, to look always so well dressed with only half your
+proper income. Here is the amount of the debt. Is it right? And, Lily,
+one thing more; I wish to thank you for what you have done towards
+keeping this house in order. You have worked hard, and endured much, and
+from all I can gather, you have prevented much mischief. Much has
+unfairly been thrown upon you, and you have well and steadily done your
+duty. For you, Emily, I have more to say to you, but I shall not enter
+on it at present, for it is late. You had better get ready, or you will
+keep the others waiting.’
+
+‘I do not think I can go,’ sighed Emily.
+
+‘You are wanted,’ said Mr. Mohun. ‘I do not think your aunt would like
+Florence to go without you.’
+
+Lily had trembled as much under her father’s praise as Emily under his
+blame. She did not feel as if his commendation was merited, and longed
+to tell him of her faults and follies, but this was no fit time, and she
+hastened to prepare for her expedition, her spirits scarcely in time for
+a party of pleasure. Jane talked about the 30th, and asked questions
+about London, all the way to Raynham, and both Emily and Lily were glad
+to join in her chatter, in hopes of relieving their own embarrassment.
+
+On arriving at the place of meeting they found Lady Florence watching for
+them.
+
+‘I am glad you are come,’ said she, ‘Rotherwood will always set out
+either too soon or too late, and this time it was too soon, so here we
+have been full a quarter of an hour, but he does not care. There he is,
+quite engrossed with his book.’
+
+Lord Rotherwood was standing by the counter, reading so intently that he
+did not see his cousins’ arrival. When they entered he just looked up,
+shook hands, asked after Ada, and went on reading. Lily began looking
+for some books for the school, which she had long wished for, and was now
+able to purchase; Emily sat down in a melancholy, abstracted mood, and
+Florence and Jane stood together talking.
+
+‘You know you are all to come early,’ said the former, ‘I do not know how
+we should manage without you. Rotherwood insists on having everything
+the same day—poor people first, and gentry and farmers altogether. Mamma
+does not like it, and I expect we shall be dreadfully tired; but he says
+he will not have the honest poor men put out for the fashionables; and
+you know we are all to dance with everybody. But Jenny, who is this
+crossing the street? Look, you have an eye for oddities.’
+
+‘Miss Fitchett, the subscription-hunter,’ said Jane.
+
+‘She is actually coming to hunt us. I believe I have my purse. Oh!
+Emily is to be the first victim.’
+
+Miss Fitchett advanced to Emily, and saying that she believed she had the
+honour to address Miss Mohun, began to tell her that her friend having
+been prematurely informed of her small efforts, had with a noble spirit
+of independence begged that the subscription might not be continued, and
+that what had already been given might be returned, and she rejoiced in
+this opportunity of making the explanation. But Miss Fitchett could not
+bear to relinquish the five-pound note, and added, that perhaps Miss
+Mohun might not object to apply her subscription to some other object,
+the Dorcas Society for instance.
+
+‘Thank you, I have no interest in the Dorcas Society,’ said Emily; a
+reply which brought upon her a full account of all its aims and objects;
+and as still her polite looks spoke nothing of assent, Miss Fitchett went
+on with a string of other societies, speaking the louder and the more
+eagerly in the hope of attracting the attention of the young marquis and
+his sister. Emily was easily overwhelmed with words, and not thinking it
+lady-like to claim her money, yet feeling that none of these societies
+were fit objects for it, she stood confused and irresolute, unwilling
+either to consent or refuse. Jane, perceiving her difficulty, turned to
+Lord Rotherwood, and rousing him from his book, explained Emily’s
+distress in a few words, and sent him to her rescue. He stepped forward
+just as Miss Fitchett, taking silence for consent, was proceeding to
+thank Emily; ‘I think you misunderstand Miss Mohun,’ said he. ‘Since her
+subscription is not needed by the person for whom it was intended, she
+would be glad to have it restored. She does not wish to encourage any
+unauthorised societies.’
+
+Boy as he was, in appearance still more than in age, there was a dignity
+in his manner which, together with the principle on which he spoke,
+overawed Miss Fitchett even more than his rank. She only said, ‘Oh! my
+lord, I beg your pardon. Certainly, only—’
+
+The note was placed in Emily’s hands, and with a bow from Lord
+Rotherwood, she retreated, murmuring to herself the remonstrance which
+she had not courage to bestow upon the Marquis.
+
+‘Thank you, thank you, Rotherwood,’ said Emily; ‘you have done me a great
+service.’
+
+‘Well done, Rotherwood,’ said Florence; ‘you have given the old lady
+something to reflect upon.’
+
+‘Made a public announcement of principle,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I was determined to give her a reason,’ said the Marquis, laughing, ‘but
+I assure you I felt like the stork with its head in the wolf’s mouth, I
+thought she would give me a screed of doctrine. How came you to let your
+property get unto her clutches, Emily?’
+
+‘It was a subscription for Mrs. Aylmer,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Our curate’s wife!’ cried he with a start; ‘how was it? Florence, did
+you know anything? I thought she was in London. Why were we in the
+dark? Tell me all.’
+
+‘All I know is that she is living somewhere in Raynham, and last week
+there was a paper here to say that she was in want of the means of
+fitting out her son for India.’
+
+‘Yes, yes, Johnny, I know my father did get a promise for him—well!’
+
+‘That is all I know, except that she does not choose to be a beggar.’
+
+‘Poor Mrs. Aylmer! shameful neglect! she shall not be ill-used any
+longer, I will find her out this instant. Don’t wait for me.’
+
+And after a few words to Mr. Adams, off he went, walking as fast as he
+could, and leaving the young ladies not without fear of another invasion.
+Soon, however, the brothers came in, and presently after Mrs. Weston
+appeared. It was agreed that Lord Rotherwood should be left to his own
+devices, and they set out for the concert-room. Poor Florence lost much
+pleasure in disappointment at his non-appearance, but when the concert
+was over they found him sitting in the carriage, reading. As soon as
+they appeared he sprang out, and came to meet them, pouring rapidly out a
+history of his adventures.
+
+‘Then you have found them, and what can be done for them?’
+
+‘Everything ought to be done, but Mrs. Aylmer has a spirit of
+independence. That foolish woman’s advertisement was unknown to her till
+Emily’s five pounds came in, so fine a nest-egg that she could not help
+cackling, whereupon Mrs. Aylmer insisted on having every farthing
+returned.’
+
+‘Can she provide the boy’s outfit?’
+
+‘She says so, or rather that her daughter can, but I shall see about
+that. It is worth while to be of age. Imagine! That bank which failed
+was the end of my father’s legacy. They must have lived on a fraction of
+nothing! Edward went to sea. Miss Aylmer went out as a governess. Now
+she is at home.’
+
+‘Miss Aylmer!’ exclaimed Miss Weston, ‘I know she was a clergyman’s
+daughter. Do you know the name of the family she lived with?’
+
+‘Was it Grant?’ said William. ‘I remember hearing of her going to some
+Grants.’
+
+‘It was,’ said Alethea; ‘she must be the same. Is she at home?’
+
+‘Yes,’ said Lord Rotherwood, ‘and you may soon see her, for I mean to
+have them all to stay at the castle as soon as our present visitors are
+gone. My mother and Florence shall call upon them on Friday.’
+
+‘Now,’ said Claude, ‘I have not found out what brought them back to
+Raynham.’
+
+‘Have you lived at Beechcroft all your life, and never discovered that
+there is a grammar-school at Raynham, with special privileges for the
+sons of clergymen of the diocese?’
+
+A few more words, and the cousins parted; Emily by no means sorry that
+she had been obliged to go to Raynham. She tendered the five-pound note
+to her father, but he desired her to wait till Friday, and then to bring
+him a full account of her expenditure of the year. Her irregular ways
+made this almost impossible, especially as in the present state of
+affairs she wished to avoid a private conference with either Lily or
+Jane. She was glad that an invitation to dine and sleep at the castle on
+Wednesday would save her from the peril of having to talk to Lily in the
+evening. Reginald came home on Tuesday, to the great joy of all the
+party, and especially to that of Phyllis. This little maiden was more
+puzzled by the events that had taken place than conscious of the feeling
+which she had once thought must be so delightful. She could scarcely
+help perceiving that every one was much more kind to her than usual,
+especially Claude and Lily, and Lord Rotherwood said things which she
+could not at all understand. Her observation to Reginald was, ‘Was it
+not lucky I had a cough on Twelfth Day, or Claude would not have told me
+what to do about gunpowder?’
+
+Reginald troubled Phyllis much by declaring that nothing should induce
+him to kiss his nephew, and she was terribly shocked by the indifference
+with which Eleanor treated his neglect, even when it branched out into
+abuse of babies in general, and in particular of Henry’s bald head and
+turned-up nose.
+
+In the evening of Wednesday Phyllis was sitting with Ada in the nursery,
+when Reginald came up with the news that the party downstairs were going
+to practise country dances. Eleanor was to play, Claude was to dance
+with Lily, and Frank with Jane, and he himself wanted Phyllis for a
+partner.
+
+‘Oh!’ sighed Ada, ‘I wish I was there to dance with you, Redgie! What
+are the others doing?’
+
+‘Maurice is reading, and William went out as soon as dinner was over;
+make haste, Phyl.’
+
+‘Don’t go,’ said Ada, ‘I shall be alone all to-morrow, and I want you.’
+
+‘Nonsense,’ said Reginald, ‘do you think she is to sit poking here all
+day, playing with those foolish London things of yours?’
+
+‘But I am ill, Redgie. I wish you would not be cross. Everybody is
+cross to me now, I think.’
+
+‘I will stay, Ada,’ said Phyllis. ‘You know, Redgie, I dance like a
+cow.’
+
+‘You dance better than nothing,’ said Reginald, ‘I must have you.’
+
+‘But you are not ill, Redgie,’ said Phyllis.
+
+He went down in displeasure, and was forced to consider Sir Maurice’s
+picture as his partner, until presently the door opened, and Phyllis
+appeared. ‘So you have thought better of it,’ cried he.
+
+‘No,’ said Phyllis, ‘I cannot come to dance, but Ada wants you to leave
+off playing. She says the music makes her unhappy, for it makes her
+think about to-morrow.’
+
+‘Rather selfish, Miss Ada,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Stay here, Phyllis, now you are come,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘I will go and
+speak to Ada.’
+
+Phyllis was now captured, and made to take her place opposite to
+Reginald; but more than once she sighed under the apprehension that Ada
+was receiving a lecture. This was the case; and very little did poor Ada
+comprehend the change that had taken place in the conduct of almost every
+one towards her; she did not perceive that she was particularly naughty,
+and yet she had suddenly become an object of blame, instead of a spoiled
+pet. Formerly her little slynesses had been unnoticed, and her
+overbearing ways towards Phyllis scarcely remarked, but now they were
+continually mentioned as grievous faults. Esther, her especial friend
+and comforter, was scarcely allowed to come into the same room with her;
+Hannah treated her with a kind of grave, silent respect, far from the
+familiarity which she liked; little Henry’s nurse never would talk to
+her, and if it had not been for Phyllis, she would have been very
+miserable. On Phyllis, however, she repaid herself for all the
+mortifications that she received, while the sweet-tempered little girl
+took all her fretfulness and exactions as results of her illness, and
+went on pitying her, and striving to please her.
+
+When Phyllis came up to wish her good-night, she was received with an
+exclamation at her lateness in a peevish tone: ‘Yes, I am late,’ said
+Phyllis, merrily, ‘but we had not done dancing till tea-time, and then
+Eleanor was so kind as to say I might sit up to have some tea with them.’
+
+‘Ah! and you quite forgot how tiresome it is up here, with nobody to
+speak to,’ said Ada. ‘How cross they were not to stop the music when I
+said it made me miserable!’
+
+‘Claude said it was selfish to want to stop five people’s pleasure for
+one,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘But I am so ill,’ said Ada. ‘If Claude was as uncomfortable as I am, he
+would know how to be sorry for me. And only think—Phyl, what are you
+doing? Do not you know I do not like the moonlight to come on me. It is
+like a great face laughing at me.’
+
+‘Well, I like the moon so much!’ said Phyllis, creeping behind the
+curtain to look out, ‘there is something so white and bright in it; when
+it comes on the bed-clothes, it makes me go to sleep, thinking about
+white robes, oh! and all sorts of nice things.’
+
+‘I can’t bear the moon,’ said Ada; ‘do not you know, Maurice says that
+the moon makes the people go mad, and that is the reason it is called
+lunacy, after _la lune_?’
+
+‘I asked Miss Weston about that,’ said Phyllis, ‘because of the Psalm,
+and she said it was because it was dangerous to go to sleep in the open
+air in hot countries. Ada, I wish you could see now. There is the great
+round moon in the middle of the sky, and the sky such a beautiful colour,
+and a few such great bright stars, and the trees so dark, and the white
+lilies standing up on the black pond, and the lawn all white with dew!
+what a fine day it will be to-morrow!’
+
+‘A fine day for you!’ said Ada, ‘but only think of poor me all alone by
+myself.’
+
+‘You will have baby,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Baby—if he could talk it would be all very well. It is just like the
+cross people in books. Here I shall lie and cry all the time, while you
+are dancing about as merry as can be.’
+
+‘No, no, Ada, you will not do that,’ said Phyllis, with tears in her
+eyes. ‘There is baby with all his pretty ways, and you may teach him to
+say Aunt Ada, and I will bring you in numbers of flowers, and there is
+your new doll, and all the pretty things that came from London, and the
+new book of Fairy Tales, and all sorts—oh! no, do not cry, Ada.’
+
+‘But I shall, for I shall think of you dancing, and not caring for me.’
+
+‘I do care, Ada—why do you say that I do not? I cannot bear it, Ada,
+dear Ada.’
+
+‘You don’t, or you would not go and leave me alone.’
+
+‘Then, Ada, I will not go,’ said Phyllis; ‘I could not bear to leave you
+crying here all alone.’
+
+‘Thank you, dear good Phyl, but I think you will not have much loss. You
+know you do not like dancing, and you cannot do it well, and they will be
+sure to laugh at you.’
+
+‘And I daresay Redgie and Marianne will tell us all about it,’ said
+Phyllis, sighing. ‘I should rather like to have seen it, but they will
+tell us.’
+
+‘Then do you promise to stay?—there’s a dear,’ said Ada.
+
+‘Yes,’ said Phyllis. ‘Cousin Robert is coming in, and that will be very
+nice, and I hope he will not look as he did the day the gunpowder went
+off—oh, dear!’ She went back to the window to get rid of her tears
+unperceived. ‘Ah,’ cried she, ‘there is some one in the garden!’
+
+‘A man!’ screamed Ada—‘a thief, a robber—call somebody!’
+
+‘No, no,’ said Phyllis, laughing, ‘it is only William; he has been out
+all the evening, and now papa has come out to speak to him, and they are
+walking up and down together. I wonder whether he has been sitting with
+Cousin Robert or at Broomhill! Well, good-night, Ada. Here comes
+Hannah.’
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+THE THIRTIETH OF JULY
+
+
+ ‘The heir, with roses in his shoes,
+ That night might village partner choose.’
+
+THE 30th of July was bright and clear, and Phyllis was up early,
+gathering flowers, which, with the help of Jane’s nimble fingers, she
+made into elegant little bouquets for each of her sisters, and for
+Claude.
+
+‘How is this?’ said Mr. Hawkesworth, pretending to look disconsolate, ‘am
+I to sing “Fair Phyllida flouts me,” or why is my button-hole left
+destitute?’
+
+‘Perhaps that is for you on the side-table,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Oh! no,’ said Phyllis, ‘those are some Provence roses for Miss Weston
+and Marianne, because Miss Weston likes those, and they have none at
+Broomhill. Redgie is going to take care of them. I will get you a
+nosegay, Frank. I did not know you liked it.’
+
+She started up. ‘How prudent, Phyllis,’ said Eleanor, ‘not to have put
+on your muslin frock yet.’
+
+‘Oh! I am not going,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Not going!’ was the general outcry.
+
+‘No, poor Ada cries so about being left at home with only baby, that I
+cannot bear it, and so I promised to stay.’
+
+Away went Phyllis, and Reginald exclaimed, ‘Well, she shall not be served
+so. I will go and tell Ada so this instant.’
+
+Off he rushed, and putting in his head at the nursery door, shouted,
+‘Ada, I am come to tell you that Phyl is not to be made your black-a-moor
+slave! She shall go, that is settled.’
+
+Down he went with equal speed, without waiting for an answer, and arrived
+while Eleanor was saying that she thought Ada was provided with amusement
+with the baby, her playthings, and books, and that Mr. Devereux had
+promised to make her a visit.
+
+‘Anybody ought to stay at home rather than Phyllis,’ said Lily; ‘I think
+I had better stay.’
+
+‘No, no, Lily,’ said Jane, ‘you are more wanted than I am; you are really
+worth talking to and dancing with; I had much better be at home.’
+
+‘I forgot!’ exclaimed William. ‘Mrs. Weston desired me to say that she
+is not going, and she will take care of Ada. Mr. Weston will set her
+down at half-past ten, and take up one of us.’
+
+‘I will be that one,’ said Reginald, ‘I have not seen Miss Weston since I
+came home. I meant to walk to Broomhill after dinner yesterday, only the
+Baron stopped me about that country-dance. Last Christmas I made her
+promise to dance with me to-day.’
+
+Lily had hoped to be that one, but she did not oppose Reginald, and
+turned to listen to Eleanor, who was saying, ‘Let us clearly understand
+how every one is to go, it will save a great deal of confusion. You and
+Jane, and Maurice, go in the phaeton, do not you? And who drives you?’
+
+‘William, I believe,’ said Lily. ‘Claude goes earlier, so he rides the
+gray. Then there is the chariot for you and Frank, and papa and
+Phyllis.’
+
+So it was proposed, but matters turned out otherwise. The phaeton,
+which, with a promoted cart-horse, was rather a slow conveyance, was to
+set out first, but the whole of the freight was not ready in time. The
+ladies were in the hall as soon as it came to the door, but neither of
+the gentlemen were forthcoming. Reginald, who was wandering in the hall,
+was sent to summon them; but down he came in great wrath. Maurice had
+declared that he was not ready, and they must wait for him till he had
+tied his neckcloth, which Reginald opined would take three quarters of an
+hour, as he was doing it scientifically, and William had said that he was
+not going in the gig at all, that he had told Wat Greenwood to drive, and
+that Reginald must go instead of Maurice.
+
+In confirmation of the startling fact Wat, who had had a special
+invitation from the Marquis, was sitting in the phaeton in his best black
+velvet coat. Jane only hoped that Emily would not look out of the
+window, or she would certainly go into fits on seeing them arrive with
+the old phaeton, the thick-legged cart-horse, and Wat Greenwood for a
+driver; and Reginald, after much growling at Maurice, much bawling at
+William’s door, and, as Jane said, romping and roaring in all parts of
+the house, was forced to be resigned to his fate, and all the way to
+Hetherington held a very amusing conversation with his good-natured
+friend the keeper.
+
+They were overtaken, nodded to, and passed by the rest of their party.
+Maurice had been reduced to ride the pony, William came with the Westons,
+and the chariot load was just as had been before arranged.
+
+Claude came out to meet them at the door, saying, ‘I need not have gone
+so early. What do you think has become of the hero of the day? Guess, I
+will just give you this hint,
+
+ “Though on pleasure he was bent, he had no selfish mind.”’
+
+‘Oh! the Aylmers, I suppose,’ said Lilias.
+
+‘Right, Lily, he heard something at dinner yesterday about a school for
+clergymen’s sons, which struck him as likely to suit young Devereux
+Aylmer, and off he set at seven o’clock this morning to Raynham, to
+breakfast with Mrs. Aylmer, and talk to her about it. Never let me hear
+again that he is engrossed with his own affairs!’
+
+‘And why is he in such a hurry?’ asked Lily.
+
+‘’Tis his nature,’ said Claude, ‘besides Travers, who mentioned this
+school, goes away to-morrow. My aunt is in a fine fright lest he should
+not come back in time. Did not you hear her telling papa so in the
+drawing-room?’
+
+‘There he is, riding up to the door,’ said Phyllis, who had joined them
+in the hall. Lord Rotherwood stopped for a few moments at the door to
+give some directions to the servants, and then came quickly in. ‘Ah,
+there you are!—What time is it? It is all right, Claude—Devereux is just
+the right age. I asked him a few questions this morning, and he will
+stand a capital examination. Ha, Phyl, I am glad to see you.’
+
+‘I wish you many happy returns of the day, Cousin Rotherwood.’
+
+‘Thank you, Phyl, we had better see how we get through one such day
+before we wish it to return. Are the rest come?’
+
+He went on into the drawing-room, and hastily informing his mother that
+he had sent the carriage to fetch Miss Aylmer and her brothers to the
+feast, called Claude to come out on the lawn to look at the preparations.
+The bowling-green was to serve as drawing-room, and at one end was
+pitched an immense tent where the dinner was to be.
+
+‘I say, Claude,’ said he in his quickest and most confused way, ‘I depend
+upon you for one thing. Do not let the Baron be too near me.’
+
+‘The Baron of Beef?’ said Claude.
+
+‘No, the Baron of Beechcroft. If you wish my speech to be _radara
+tadara_, put him where I can imagine that he hears me.’
+
+‘Very well,’ said Claude, laughing; ‘have you any other commands?’
+
+‘No—yes, I have though. You know what we settled about the toasts. Hunt
+up old Farmer Elderfield as soon as he comes, and do not frighten him.
+If you could sit next to him and make him get up at the right time, it
+would be best. Tell him I will not let any one propose my health but my
+great-grandfather’s tenant. You will manage it best. And tell Frank
+Hawkesworth, and Mr. Weston, or some of them, to manage so that the
+gentry may not sit together in a herd, two or three together would be
+best. Mind, Claude, I depend on you for being attentive to all the
+damsels. I cannot be everywhere at once, and I see your great Captain
+will be of no use to me.’
+
+Here news was brought that the labourers had begun to arrive, and the
+party went to the walnut avenue, where the feast was spread. It was
+pleasant to see so many poor families enjoying their excellent dinner;
+but perhaps the pleasantest sight was the lord of the feast speaking to
+each poor man with all his bright good-natured cordiality. Mr. Mohun was
+surprised to see how well he knew them all, considering how short a time
+he had been among them, and Lilias found Florence rise in her estimation,
+when she perceived that the inside of the Hetherington cottages were not
+unknown to her.
+
+‘Do you know, Florence,’ said she, as they walked back to the house
+together, ‘I did you great injustice? I never expected you to know or
+care about poor people.’
+
+‘No more I did till this winter,’ said Florence; ‘I could not do
+anything, you know, before. Indeed, I do not do much now, only
+Rotherwood has made me go into the school now and then; and when first we
+came, he made it his especial request that whenever a poor woman came to
+ask for anything I would go and speak to her. And so I could not help
+being interested about those I knew.’
+
+‘How odd it is that we never talked about it,’ said Lily.
+
+‘I never talk of it,’ said Florence, ‘because mamma never likes to hear
+of my going into cottages with Rotherwood. Besides, somehow I thought
+you did it as a matter of duty, and not of pleasure. Oh! Rotherwood, is
+that you?’
+
+‘The Aylmers are come,’ said Lord Rotherwood, drawing her arm into his,
+‘and I want you to come and speak to them, Florence and Lily; I can’t
+find any one; all the great elders have vanished. You know them of old,
+do not you, Lily?’
+
+‘Of old? Yes; but of so old that I do not suppose they will know me.
+You must introduce me.’
+
+He hastened them to the drawing-room, where they found Miss Aylmer, a
+sensible, lady-like looking person, and two brothers, of about fifteen
+and thirteen.
+
+‘Well, Miss Aylmer, I have brought you two old friends; so old, that they
+think you have forgotten them—my cousin Lilias, and my sister Florence.’
+
+‘We have not forgotten you, Miss Aylmer,’ said Florence, warmly shaking
+hands with her. ‘You seem so entirely to belong to Hetherington that I
+scarcely knew the place without you.’
+
+There was something that particularly pleased Lily in the manner in which
+Miss Aylmer answered. Florence talked a little while, and then proposed
+to adjourn to the supplementary drawing-room—the lawn—where the company
+were already assembling.
+
+Florence was soon called off to receive some other guest, and Lilias
+spent a considerable time in sitting under a tree talking to Miss Aylmer,
+whom she found exceedingly pleasant and agreeable, remembering all that
+had happened during their former intercourse, and interested in
+everything that was going on. Lily was much amused when her companion
+asked her who that gentleman was—‘that tall, thin young man, with dark
+hair, whom she had seen once or twice speaking to Lord Rotherwood?’
+
+The tall gentleman advanced, spoke to Miss Aylmer, told Lily that the
+world was verging towards the tent, and giving one arm to her and the
+other to Miss Aylmer, took that direction. In the meantime Phyllis had
+been walking about with her eldest sister, and wondering what had become
+of all the others. In process of time she found herself seated on a high
+bench in the tent, with a most beautiful pink-and-white sugar temple on
+the table before her. She was between Eleanor and Frank. All along one
+side of the table was a row of faces which she had never seen before, and
+she gazed at them in search of some well-known countenance. At last Mr.
+Weston caught her eye, and nodded to her. Next to him she saw Marianne,
+then Reginald; on the other side Alethea and William. A little
+tranquillised by seeing that every one was not lost, she had courage to
+eat some cold chicken, to talk to Frank about the sugar temple, and to
+make an inventory in her mind of the smartest bonnets for Ada’s benefit.
+She was rather unhappy at not having found out when grace was said before
+dinner, and she made Eleanor promise to tell her in time to stand up
+after dinner. She could not, however, hear much, though warned in time,
+and by this time more at ease and rather enjoying herself than otherwise.
+Now Eleanor told her to listen, for Cousin Rotherwood was going to speak.
+She listened, but knew not what was said, until Mr. Hawkesworth told her
+it was Church and Queen. What Church and Queen had to do with Cousin
+Rotherwood’s birthday she could not imagine, and she laid it up in her
+mind to ask Claude. The next time she was told to listen she managed to
+hear more. By the help of Eleanor’s directions, she found out the
+speaker, an aged farmer, in a drab greatcoat, his head bald, excepting a
+little silky white hair, which fell over the collar of his coat. It was
+Mr. Elderfield, the oldest tenant on the estate, and he was saying in a
+slow deliberate tone that he was told he was to propose his lordship’s
+health. It was a great honour for the like of him, and his lordship must
+excuse him if he did not make a fine speech. All he could say was, that
+he had lived eighty-three years on the estate, and held his farm nearly
+sixty years; he had seen three marquises of Rotherwood besides his
+present lordship, and he had always found them very good landlords. He
+hoped and believed his lordship was like his fathers, and he was sure he
+could do no better than tread in their steps. He proposed the health of
+Lord Rotherwood, and many happy returns of the day to him.
+
+The simplicity and earnestness of the old man’s tones were appreciated by
+all, and the tremendous cheer, which almost terrified Phyllis, was a fit
+assent to the hearty good wishes of the old farmer.
+
+‘Now comes the trial!’ whispered Claude to Lilias, after he had
+vehemently contributed his proportion to the noise. Lilias saw that his
+colour had risen, as much as if he had to make a speech himself, and he
+earnestly examined the coronet on his fork, while every other eye was
+fixed on the Marquis. Eloquence was not to be expected; but, at least,
+Lord Rotherwood spoke clearly and distinctly.
+
+‘My friends,’ said he, ‘you must not expect much of a speech from me; I
+can only thank you for your kindness, say how glad I am to see you here,
+and tell you of my earnest desire that I may not prove myself unworthy to
+be compared with my forefathers.’ Here was a pause. Claude’s hand
+shook, and Lily saw how anxious he was, but in another moment the Marquis
+went on smoothly. ‘Now, I must ask you to drink the health of a
+gentleman who has done his utmost to compensate for the loss which we
+sustained nine years ago, and to whom I owe any good intentions which I
+may bring to the management of this property. I beg leave to propose the
+health of my uncle, Mr. Mohun, of Beechcroft.’
+
+Claude was much surprised, for his cousin had never given him a hint of
+his intention. It was a moment of great delight to all the young Mohuns
+when the cheer rose as loud and hearty as for the young lord himself, and
+Phyllis smiled, and wondered, when she saw her papa rise to make answer.
+He said that he could not attempt to answer Lord Rotherwood, as he had
+not heard what he said, but that he was much gratified by his having
+thought of him on this occasion, and by the goodwill which all had
+expressed. This was the last speech that was interesting; Lady
+Rotherwood’s health and a few more toasts followed, and the party then
+left the tent for the lawn, where the cool air was most refreshing, and
+the last beams of the evening sun were lighting the tops of the trees.
+
+The dancing was now to begin, and this was the time for Claude to be
+useful. He had spent so much time at home, and had accompanied his
+father so often in his rides, that he knew every one, and he was inclined
+to make every exertion in the cause of his cousin, and on this occasion
+seemed to have laid aside his indolence and disinclination to speak to
+strangers.
+
+Lady Florence was also indefatigable, darting about, with a wonderful
+perception who everybody was, and with whom each would like to dance.
+She seized upon little Devereux Aylmer for her own partner before any one
+else had time to ask her, and carried him about the lawn, hunting up and
+pairing other shy people.
+
+‘Why, Reginald, what are you about? You can manage a country-dance.
+Make haste; where is your partner?’
+
+‘I meant to dance with Miss Weston,’ said Reginald, piteously.
+
+‘Miss Weston? Here she is.’
+
+‘That is only Marianne,’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Oh! Miss Weston is dancing with William. Marianne, will you accept my
+apologies for this discourteous cousin of mine? I am perfectly
+horror-struck. There, Redgie, take her with a good grace; you will never
+have a better partner.’
+
+Marianne was only too glad to have Reginald presented to her, ungracious
+as he was, but the poor little couple met with numerous disasters. They
+neither of them knew the way through a country-dance, and were almost run
+over every time they went down the middle; Reginald’s heels were very
+inconvenient to his neighbours; so much so, that once Claude thought it
+expedient to admonish him, that dancing was not merely an elegant name
+for football without a ball. Every now and then some of their friends
+gave them a hasty intimation that they were all wrong, but that they knew
+already but too well. At last, just when Marianne had turned scarlet
+with vexation, and Reginald was growing so desperate that he had thoughts
+of running a way, the dance came to an end, and Reginald, with very
+scanty politeness to his partner, rushed away to her sister, saying, in
+rather a reproachful tone, ‘Miss Weston, you promised to dance with me.’
+
+‘I have not forgotten my promise,’ said Alethea, smiling.
+
+At the same moment Claude hurried up, saying, ‘William, I want a partner
+for Miss Wilkins, of the Wold Farm. Miss Wilkins, let me introduce
+Captain Mohun.’
+
+‘You see I have made the Captain available,’ said Claude, presently after
+meeting Lord Rotherwood, as he speeded across the lawn.
+
+‘Have you? I did not think him fair game,’ said the Marquis. ‘Where is
+your heroine, Claude? I have not seen her dancing.’
+
+‘What heroine? What do you mean?’
+
+‘Honest Phyl, of course. Did you think I meant Miss Weston?’
+
+‘With Eleanor, somewhere. Is the next dance a quadrille?’
+
+Lord Rotherwood ran up the bank to the terraced walks, where the
+undancing part of the company sat or walked about. Soon he spied Phyllis
+standing by Eleanor, looking rather wearied. ‘Phyllis, can you dance a
+quadrille?’
+
+Phyllis opened her eyes, and Eleanor desired her to answer.
+
+‘Come, Phyllis, let me see what M. Le Roi has done for you.’
+
+He led her away, wondering greatly, and thinking how very good-natured
+Cousin Rotherwood was.
+
+Emily was much surprised to find Phyllis her _vis à vis_. Emily was very
+generally known and liked, and had no lack of grand partners, but she
+would have liked to dance with the Marquis. When the quadrille was over,
+she was glad to put herself in his way, by coming up to take charge of
+Phyllis.
+
+‘Well done, Phyl,’ said he; ‘no mistakes. You must have another dance.
+Whom shall we find for you?’
+
+‘Oh! Rotherwood,’ said Emily, ‘you cannot think how you gratified us all
+with your speech.’
+
+‘Ah! I always set my heart on saying something of the kind; but I wished
+I could have dared to add the bride’s health.’
+
+‘The bride!’
+
+‘Do not pretend to have no eyes,’ said Lord Rotherwood, with a
+significant glance, which directed Emily’s eyes to the terrace, where Mr.
+Mohun and Alethea were walking together in eager conversation.
+
+Emily was ready to sink into the earth. Jane’s surmises, and the
+mysterious words of her father, left her no further doubt. At this
+moment some one asked her to dance, and scarcely knowing what she did or
+said, she walked to her place. Lord Rotherwood now found a partner for
+Phyllis, and a farmer’s daughter for himself.
+
+This dance over, Phyllis’s partner did not well know how to dispose of
+her, and she grew rather frightened on finding that none of her sisters
+were in sight. At last she perceived Reginald standing on the bank, and
+made her escape to him.
+
+‘Redgie, did you see who I have been dancing with? Cousin Rotherwood and
+Claude’s grand Oxford friend—Mr. Travers.’
+
+‘It is all nonsense,’ said Reginald. ‘Come out of this mob of people.’
+
+‘But where is Eleanor?’
+
+‘Somewhere in the midst. They are all absurd together.’
+
+‘What is the matter, Redgie?’ asked Phyllis, unable to account for this
+extraordinary fit of misanthropy.
+
+‘Papa and William both driving me about like a dog,’ said Reginald;
+‘first I danced with Miss Weston—then she saw that woman—that Miss
+Aylmer—shook hands—talked—and then nothing would serve her but to find
+papa. As soon as the Baron sees me he cries out, “Why are not you
+dancing, Redgie? We do not want you!” Up and down they walk, ever so
+long, and presently papa turns off, and begins talking to Miss Aylmer.
+Then, of course, I went back to Miss Weston, but then up comes William,
+as savage as one of his Canadian bears; he orders me off too, and so here
+I am! I am sure I am not going to ask any one else to dance. Come and
+walk with me in peace, Phyl. Do you see them?—Miss Weston and Marianne
+under that tulip-tree, and the Captain helping them to ice.’
+
+‘Redgie, did you give Miss Weston her nosegay? Some one put such
+beautiful flowers in it, such as I never saw before.’
+
+‘How could I? They sent me off with Lily and Jane. I told William I had
+the flowers in charge, and he said he would take care of them. By the
+bye, Phyl,’ and Reginald gave a wondrous spring, ‘I have it! I have it!
+I have it! If he is not in love with Miss Weston you may call me an ass
+for the rest of my life.’
+
+‘I should not like to call you an ass, Redgie,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Very likely; but do not make me call you one. Hurrah! Now ask Marianne
+if it is not so. Marianne must know. How jolly! I say, Phyl, stay
+there, and I will fetch Marianne.’
+
+Away ran Reginald, and presently returned with Marianne, who was very
+glad to be invited to join Phyllis. She little knew what an examination
+awaited her.
+
+‘Marianne,’ began Phyllis, ‘I’ll tell you what—’
+
+‘No, I will do it right,’ said Reginald; ‘you know nothing about it,
+Phyl. Marianne, is not something going on there?’
+
+‘Going on?’ said Marianne, ‘Alethea is speaking to Mrs. Hawkesworth.’
+
+‘Nonsense, I know better, Marianne. I have a suspicion that I could tell
+what the Captain was about yesterday when he walked off after dinner.’
+
+‘How very wise you think you look, Reginald!’ said Marianne, laughing
+heartily.
+
+‘But tell us; do tell us, Marianne,’ said Phyllis.
+
+‘Tell you whet?’
+
+‘Whether William is going to marry Miss Weston,’ said the straightforward
+Phyllis. ‘Redgie says so—only tell us. Oh! it would be so nice!’
+
+‘How you blurt it out, Phyl,’ said Reginald. ‘You do not know how those
+things are managed. Mind, I found it out all myself. Just say,
+Marianne. Am not I right?’
+
+‘I do not know whether I ought to tell,’ said Marianne.
+
+‘Oh! then it is all right,’ said Reginald, ‘and I found it out. Now,
+Marianne, there is a good girl, tell us all about it.’
+
+‘You know I could not say “No” when you asked me,’ said Marianne; ‘I
+could not help it really; but pray do not tell anybody, or Captain Mohun
+will not like it.’
+
+‘Does any one know?’ said Reginald.
+
+‘Only ourselves and Mr. Mohun; and I think Lord Rotherwood guesses, from
+something I heard him say to Jane.’
+
+‘To Jane?’ said Reginald. ‘That is provoking; she will think she found
+it out all herself, and be so conceited!’
+
+‘You need not be afraid,’ said Marianne, laughing; ‘Jane is on a wrong
+scent.’
+
+‘Jane? Oh! I should like to see her out in her reckonings! I should
+like to have a laugh against her. What does she think, Marianne?’
+
+‘Oh! I cannot tell you; it is too bad.’
+
+‘Oh! do; do, pray. You may whisper it if it is too bad for Phyllis to
+hear.’
+
+‘No, no,’ said Marianne; ‘it is nothing but nonsense. If you hear it,
+Phyllis shall too; but mind, you must promise not to say anything to
+anybody, or I do not know what will become of me.’
+
+‘Well, we will not,’ said Reginald; ‘boys can always keep secrets, and
+I’ll engage for Phyl. Now for it.’
+
+‘She is in a terrible fright lest it should be Mr. Mohun. She got it
+into her head last autumn, and all I could say would not persuade her out
+of it. Why, she always calls me Aunt Marianne when we are alone. Now,
+Reginald, here comes Maurice. Do not say anything, I beg and entreat.
+It is my secret, you know. I daresay you will all be told
+to-morrow,—indeed, mamma said so,—but pray say nothing about me or Jane.
+It was only settled yesterday evening.’
+
+At this moment Maurice came up, with a message that Miss Weston and
+Eleanor were going away, and wanted the little girls. They followed him
+to the tent, which had been cleared of the tables, and lighted up, in
+order that the dancing might continue there. Most of their own party
+were collected at the entrance, watching for them. Lilias came up just
+as they did, and exclaimed in a tone of disappointment, on finding them
+preparing to depart. She had enjoyed herself exceedingly, found plenty
+of partners, and was not in the least tired.
+
+‘Why should she not stay?’ said William. ‘Claude has engaged to stay to
+the end of everything, and he may as well drive her as ride the gray.’
+
+‘And you, Jenny,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘do you like to stay or go? Alethea
+will make room for you in the pony-carriage, or you may go with Eleanor.
+
+‘With Eleanor, if you please,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Already, Jane?’ said Lily. ‘Are you tired?’
+
+Jane drew her aside. ‘Tired of hearing that I was right about what you
+would not believe. Did you not hear what he called her? And Rotherwood
+has found it out.’
+
+‘It is all gossip and mistake,’ said Lily.
+
+Here Jane was called away by Eleanor, and departed with her; Lilias went
+to look for her aunt or Florence, but on the way was asked to dance by
+Mr. Carrington.
+
+‘I suppose I may congratulate you,’ said he in one of the pauses in the
+quadrille.
+
+Lily thought it best to misunderstand, and answered, ‘Everything has gone
+off very well.’
+
+‘Very. Lord Rotherwood will be a popular man; but my congratulations
+refer to something nearer home. I think you owe us some thanks for
+having brought them into the neighbourhood.’
+
+‘Report is very kind in making arrangements,’ said Lily, with something
+of Emily’s haughty courtesy.
+
+‘I hope this is something more than report,’ said her partner.
+
+‘Indeed, I believe not. I think I may safely say that it is at present
+quite unfounded,’ said Lily.
+
+Mr. Carrington, much surprised, said no more.
+
+Lily did not believe the report sufficiently to be annoyed by it during
+the excitement and pleasure of the evening, and at present her principal
+vexation was caused by the rapid diminution of the company. She and her
+brother were the very last to depart, even Florence had gone to bed, and
+Lady Rotherwood, looking exceedingly tired, kissed Lily at the foot of
+the stairs, pitied her for going home in an open carriage, and wished her
+good-night in a very weary tone.
+
+‘I should think you were the fiftieth lady I have handed across the
+hall,’ said Lord Rotherwood, as he gave Lily his arm.
+
+‘But where were the fireworks, Rotherwood?’
+
+‘Countermanded long ago. We have had enough of them. Well, I am sorry
+it is over.’
+
+‘I am very glad it is so well over,’ said Claude.
+
+‘Thanks to your exertions, Claude,’ said the Marquis. ‘You acted like a
+hero.’
+
+‘Like a dancing dervish you mean,’ said Claude. ‘It will suffice for my
+whole life.’
+
+‘I hope you are not quite exhausted.’
+
+‘No, thank you. I have turned over a new leaf.’
+
+‘Talking of new leaves,’ said the Marquis, ‘I always had a presentiment
+that Emily’s government would come to a crisis to-day.’
+
+‘Do you think it has?’ said Claude.
+
+‘Trust my word, you will hear great news to-morrow. And that reminds
+me—can you come here to-morrow morning? Travers is going—I drive him to
+meet the coach at the town, and you were talking of wanting to see the
+new windows in the cathedral: it will be a good opportunity. And dine
+here afterwards to talk over the adventures.’
+
+‘Thank you—that last I cannot do. The Baron was saying it would be the
+first time of having us all together.’
+
+‘Very well, besides the great news. I wish I was going back with you; it
+is a tame conclusion, only to go to bed. If I was but to be on the scene
+of action to-morrow. Tell the Baron that—no, use your influence to get
+me invited to dinner on Saturday—I really want to speak to him.’
+
+‘Very well,’ said Claude, ‘I’ll do my best. Good-night.’
+
+‘Good-night,’ said the Marquis. ‘You have both done wonders. Still, I
+wish it was to come over again.’
+
+‘Few people would say so,’ said Lily, as they drove off.
+
+‘Few would say so if they thought so,’ said Claude. ‘I have been quite
+admiring the way Rotherwood has gone on—enjoying the fun as if he was
+nobody—just as Reginald might, making other people happy, and making no
+secret of his satisfaction in it all.’
+
+‘Very free from affectation and nonsense,’ said Lily, ‘as William said of
+him last Christmas. You were in a fine fright about his speech, Claude.’
+
+‘More than I ought to have been. I should have known that he is too
+simple-minded and straightforward to say anything but just what he ought.
+What a nice person that Miss Aylmer is.’
+
+‘Is not she, Claude? I was very glad you had her for a neighbour. Happy
+the children who have her for a governess. How sensible and gentle she
+seems. The Westons—But oh! Claude, tell me one thing, did you hear—’
+
+‘Well, what?’
+
+‘I am ashamed to say. That preposterous report about papa. Why,
+Rotherwood himself seems to believe it, and Mr. Carrington began to
+congratulate—’
+
+‘The public has bestowed so many ladies on the Baron, that I wonder it is
+not tired,’ said Claude. ‘It is time it should patronise William
+instead.’
+
+‘Rotherwood is not the public,’ said Lily, ‘and he is the last person to
+say anything impertinent of papa. And I myself heard papa call her
+Alethea, which he never used to do. Claude, what do you think?’
+
+After a long pause Claude slowly replied, ‘Think? Why, I think Miss
+Weston must be a person of great courage. She begins the world as a
+grandmother, to say nothing of her eldest daughter and son being
+considerably her seniors.’
+
+‘I do not believe it,’ said Lily. ‘Do you, Claude?’
+
+‘I cannot make up my mind—it is too amazing. My hair is still standing
+on end. When it comes down I may be able to tell you something.’
+
+Such were the only answers that Lily could extract from him. He did not
+sufficiently disbelieve the report to treat it with scorn, yet he did not
+sufficiently credit it to resign himself to such a state of things.
+
+On coming home Lily found Emily and Jane in her room, eagerly discussing
+the circumstances which, to their prejudiced eyes, seemed strong
+confirmation. While their tongues were in full career the door opened
+and Eleanor appeared. She told them it was twelve o’clock, turned Jane
+out of the room, and made Emily and Lily promise not to utter another
+syllable that night.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI
+THE CRISIS
+
+
+ ‘“Is this your care of the nest?” cried he,
+ “It comes of your gadding abroad,” said she.’
+
+TO the consternation of the disconsolate damsels, the first news they
+heard the next morning was that Mr. Mohun was gone to breakfast at
+Broomhill, and the intelligence was received by Frank Hawkesworth with a
+smile which they thought perfectly malicious. Frank, William, and
+Reginald talked a little at breakfast about the _fête_, but no one joined
+them, and Claude looked so grave that Eleanor was convinced that he had a
+headache, and vainly tried to persuade him to stay at home, instead of
+setting off to Devereux Castle immediately after breakfast.
+
+The past day had not been spent in vain by Ada. Mrs. Weston had led her
+by degrees to open her heart to her, had made her perceive the real cause
+of her father’s displeasure, see her faults, and promise to confess them,
+a promise which she performed with many tears, as soon as she saw Eleanor
+in the morning.
+
+On telling this to Emily Eleanor was surprised to find that she was not
+listened to with much satisfaction. Emily seemed to think it a piece of
+interference on the part of Mrs. Weston, and would not allow that it was
+likely to be the beginning of improvement in Ada.
+
+‘The words were put into her mouth,’ said she; ‘and they were an easy way
+of escaping from her present state of disgrace.’
+
+‘On the contrary,’ said Eleanor, ‘she seemed to think that she justly
+deserved to be in disgrace.’
+
+‘Did you think so?’ said Emily, in a careless tone.
+
+‘You are in a strange mood to-day, Emily,’ said Eleanor.
+
+‘Am I? I did not know it. I wonder where Lily is.’
+
+Lily was in her own room, teaching Phyllis. Phyllis was rather wild and
+flighty that morning, scarcely able to command her attention, and every
+now and then bursting into an irrepressible fit of laughter. Reginald
+and Phyllis found it most difficult to avoid betraying Marianne, and as
+soon as luncheon was over, they agreed to set out on a long expedition
+into the woods, where they might enjoy their wonderful secret together.
+Just at this time Mr. Mohun returned. He came into the drawing-room, and
+Lilias, perceiving that the threatened conversation with Emily was about
+to take place, made her escape to her own room, whither she was presently
+followed by Jane, who could not help running after her to report the
+great news that Emily was to be deposed.
+
+‘I am sure of it,’ said she. ‘They sent me out of the room, but not
+before I had seen certain symptoms.’
+
+‘It is very hard that poor Emily should bear all the blame,’ said Lily.
+
+‘You have managed to escape it very well,’ said Jane, laughing. ‘You
+have all the thanks and praise. I suppose it is because the intimacy
+with Miss Weston was your work.’
+
+‘I will not believe that nonsense,’ said Lily.
+
+‘Seeing is believing, they say,’ said Jane. ‘Remember, it is not only
+me. Think of Rotherwood. And Maurice guesses it too, and Redgie told
+him great things were going on.’
+
+While Jane was speaking they heard the drawing-room door open, and in
+another moment Emily came in.
+
+It was true that, as Jane said, she had been deposed. Mr. Mohun had
+begun by saying, ‘Emily, can you bring me such an account of your
+expenditure as I desired?’
+
+‘I scarcely think I can, papa,’ said Emily. ‘I am sorry to say that my
+accounts are rather in confusion.’
+
+‘That is to say, that you have been as irregular in the management of
+your own affairs as you have in mine. Well, I have paid your debt to
+Lilias, and from this time forward I require of you to reduce your
+expenses to the sum which I consider suitable, and which both Eleanor and
+Lilias have found perfectly sufficient. And now, Emily, what have you to
+say for the management of my affairs? Can you offer any excuse for your
+utter failure?’
+
+‘Indeed, papa, I am very sorry I vexed you,’ said Emily. ‘Our illness
+last autumn—different things—I know all has not been quite as it should
+be; but I hope that in future I shall profit by past experience.’
+
+‘I hope so,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘but I am afraid to trust the management of
+the family to you any longer. Your trial is over, and you have failed,
+merely because you would not exert yourself from wilful indolence and
+negligence. You have not attended to any one thing committed to your
+charge—you have placed temptation in Esther’s way—and allowed Ada to take
+up habits which will not be easily corrected. I should not think myself
+justified in leaving you in charge any longer, lest worse mischief should
+ensue. I wish you to give up the keys to Eleanor for the present.’
+
+Mr. Mohun would perhaps have added something if Emily had shown signs of
+repentance, or even of sorrow. The moment was at least as painful to him
+as to her, and he had prepared himself to expect either hysterical tears,
+with vows of amendment, or else an argument on her side that she was
+right and everybody else wrong. But there was nothing of the kind; Emily
+neither spoke nor looked; she only carried the tokens of her authority to
+Eleanor, and left the room. She thought she knew well enough the cause
+of her deposition, considered it quite as a matter of course, and
+departed on purpose to avoid hearing the announcement which she expected
+to follow.
+
+She was annoyed by finding her sisters in her room, and especially
+irritated by Jane’s tone, as she eagerly asked, ‘Well, what did he say?’
+
+‘Never mind,’ replied Emily, pettishly.
+
+‘Was it about Miss Weston?’ persisted Jane.
+
+‘Not actually, but I saw it was coming,’ said Emily.
+
+‘Ah!’ said Jane, ‘I was just telling Lily that she owes all her present
+favour to her having been Alethea’s bosom friend.’
+
+‘I confess I thought Miss Weston was assuming authority long ago,’ said
+Emily.
+
+‘Emily, how can you say so?’ cried Lily. ‘How can you be so unjust and
+ungrateful? I do not believe this report; but if it should be true, are
+not these foolish expressions of dislike so many attempts to make
+yourself undutiful?’
+
+‘I have rather more sincerity, more dignity, more attachment to my own
+mother, than to try to gain favour by affecting what I do not feel,’ said
+Emily.
+
+‘Rather cutting, Emily,’ said Jane.
+
+‘Do not give that speech an application which Emily did not intend,’ said
+Lily, sadly.
+
+‘What makes you think I did not intend it?’ said Emily, coldly.
+
+‘Emily!’ exclaimed Lily, starting up, and colouring violently, ‘are you
+thinking what you are saying?’
+
+‘I do not know what you mean,’ replied Emily quietly, in her soft,
+unchanging voice; ‘I only mean that if you can feel satisfied with the
+new arrangement you are more easily pleased than I am.’
+
+‘Only tell me, Emily, do you accuse me of attempting to gain favour in an
+unworthy manner?’
+
+‘I only congratulate you on standing so well with every one.’
+
+Lily hid her face in her hands. At this moment Eleanor opened the door,
+saying, ‘Can you come down? Mrs. Burnet is here.’ Eleanor went without
+observing Lily, and Emily was obliged to follow. Jane lingered in order
+to comfort Lily.
+
+‘You know she did not quite mean it,’ said she; ‘she is only very much
+provoked.’
+
+‘I know, I know,’ said Lily; ‘she is very sorry herself by this time. Of
+course she did not mean it, but it is the first unkind thing she ever
+said to me. It is very silly, and very unjust to take it seriously, but
+I cannot help it.’
+
+‘It is a very abominable shame,’ said Jane, ‘and so I shall tell Emily.’
+
+‘No, do not, Jenny, I beg. I know she thinks so herself, and grieves too
+much over it. No wonder she is vexed. All my faults have come upon her.
+You had better go down, Jane; Mrs. Burnet is always vexed if she does not
+see a good many of us, and I am sure I cannot go. Besides, Emily
+dislikes having that girl to entertain.’
+
+‘Lily, you are so very gentle and forgiving, that I wonder how any one
+can say what grieves you,’ said Jane, for once struck with admiration.
+
+She went, and Lily remained, weeping over the injustice which she had
+forgiven, and feeling as if, all the time, it was fair that the rule of
+‘love’ should, as it were, recoil upon her. Her tears flowed fast, as
+she went over the long line of faults and follies which lay heavy on her
+conscience. And Emily against her! That sister who, from her infancy,
+had soothed her in every trouble, of whose sympathy she had always felt
+sure, whose gentleness had been her admiration in her days of sharp
+answers and violent temper, who had seemed her own beyond all the others;
+this wound from her gave Lily a bitter feeling of desertion and
+loneliness. It was like a completion of her punishment—the broken reed
+on which she leant had pierced her deeply.
+
+She was still sitting on the side of her bed, weeping, when a slight tap
+at the door made her start—a gentle tap, the sound of which she had
+learned to love in her illness. The next moment Alethea stood before
+her, with outstretched arms. This was a time to feel the value of such a
+friend, and every suspicion passing from her mind, she flew to Alethea,
+kissed her again and again, and laid her head on her shoulder. Her
+caress was returned with equal warmth.
+
+‘But how is this?’ said Alethea, now perceiving that her face was pale,
+and marked by tears. ‘How is this, my dear Lily?’
+
+‘Oh, Alethea! I cannot tell you, but it is all misery. The full effect
+of my baneful principle has appeared!’
+
+‘Has anything happened?’ exclaimed Alethea.
+
+‘No,’ said Lily. ‘There is nothing new, except the—Oh! I cannot tell
+you.’
+
+‘I wish I could do anything for you, my poor Lily,’ said Alethea.
+
+‘You can look kind,’ said Lily, ‘and that is a great comfort. Oh!
+Alethea, it was very kind of you to come and speak to me. I shall do
+now—I can bear it all better. You have a comforting face and voice like
+nobody else. When did you come? Have you been in the drawing-room?’
+
+‘No,’ said Alethea. ‘I walked here with Marianne, and finding there were
+visitors in the drawing-room we went to Ada, and she told me where to
+find you. I had something to tell you—but perhaps you know already.’
+
+The colour on her cheek recalled all Lily’s fears, and to hear the news
+from herself was an unexpected trial. She felt as if what she had said
+justified Emily’s reproach, and turning away her head, replied, ‘Yes, I
+know.’
+
+Alethea was a little hurt by her coldness, but she ascribed it to
+dejection and embarrassment, and blamed herself for hurrying on what she
+had to tell without sufficient regard for Lily’s distress. There was an
+awkward pause, which Alethea broke, by saying, ‘Your brother thought you
+would like to hear it from me.’
+
+‘My brother!’ cried Lily, with a most sudden change of tone. ‘William?
+Oh, Alethea! dearest Alethea; I beg your pardon. They almost made me
+believe it was papa. Oh! I am so very glad!’
+
+Alethea could not help laughing, and Lily joined her heartily. It was
+one of the brightest hours of her life, as she sat with her hand in her
+friend’s, pouring out her eager expressions of delight and affection.
+All her troubles were forgotten—how should they not, when Alethea was to
+be her sister! It seemed as if but a few minutes had passed, when the
+sound of the great clock warned Alethea that it was time to return to
+Broomhill, and she asked Lilias to walk back with her. After summoning
+Marianne, they set out through the garden, where, on being joined by
+William, Lily thought it expedient to betake herself to Marianne, who was
+but too glad to be able freely to communicate many interesting
+particulars. At Broomhill she had a very enjoyable talk with Mrs.
+Weston, but her chief delight was in her walk home with her brother. She
+was high in his favour, as Alethea’s chief friend. Though usually
+reserved, he was now open, and Lily wondered to find herself honoured
+with confidence. His attachment had begun in very early days, when first
+he knew the Westons in Brighton. Harry’s death had suddenly called him
+away, and a few guarded expressions of his wishes in the course of the
+next winter had been cut short by his father. He then went to Canada,
+and had had no opportunity of renewing his acquaintance till the last
+winter, when, on coming home, to his great joy and surprise he found the
+Westons on the most intimate terms with his family.
+
+He then spoke to his father, who wished him to take a little more time
+for consideration, and he had accordingly waited till the summer. Lily
+longed to know his plans for the future, and presently he went on to say
+that his father wished him to leave the army, live at home, and let
+Alethea be the head of the household.
+
+‘Oh, William! it is perfect. There is an end of all our troubles. It is
+as if a great black curtain was drawn up.’
+
+‘They say such plans never succeed,’ said William; ‘but we mean to prove
+the contrary.’
+
+‘How good it will be for the children!’ said Lily.
+
+‘Oh! why had we not such a guide at first?’
+
+‘She has all that Eleanor wants,’ said William.
+
+‘My follies were not Eleanor’s fault,’ said Lily; ‘but I do think I
+should not have been quite so silly if I had known Alethea from the
+first.’
+
+It was not in the power of William himself to say more in her praise than
+Lily. In the eagerness of their conversation they walked slowly, and as
+they were crossing the last field the dinner-bell rang. As they
+quickened their steps they saw Mr. Mohun looking at his wheat. Lily told
+him how late it was.
+
+‘There,’ said he, ‘I am always looking after other people’s affairs.
+Between Rotherwood and William I have not a moment for my own crops.
+However, my turn is coming. William will have it all on his hands, and
+the old deaf useless Baron will sit in his great chair and take his
+ease.’
+
+‘Not a bit, papa,’ said Lily, ‘the Baron will grow young, and take to
+dancing. He is talking nonsense already.’
+
+‘Eh! Miss Lily turned saucy? Mrs. William Mohun must take her in hand.
+Well, Lily, has he your consent and approbation?’
+
+‘I only wish this was eighteen months ago, papa.’
+
+‘We shall soon come into order, Lily. With Miss Aylmer for the little
+ones, and Mrs. Mohun for the great ones, I have little fear.’
+
+‘Miss Aylmer, papa!’
+
+‘Yes, if all turns out well. We propose to find a house for her mother
+in the village, and let her come every day to teach the little ones.’
+
+‘Oh! I am very glad. We liked her so much.’
+
+‘I hope,’ said Mr. Mohun, ‘that this plan will please Claude better than
+my proposal of a governess last month. He looked as if he expected
+Minerva with helmet, and Ægis and all. Now make haste and dress. Do not
+let us shock Eleanor by keeping dinner waiting longer than we can help.’
+
+Lilias found that her sisters had long been dressed and gone down. She
+dressed alone, every now and then smiling at her own happy looks
+reflected in the glass. Just as she had finished, Claude knocked at the
+door, and putting in his head, said, ‘Well, Lily, has the wonderful news
+come forth? I see it has, by your face.’
+
+‘And do you know what it is, Claude?’ said Lily.
+
+‘I know what Rotherwood meant, and I cannot think where all our senses
+were.’
+
+‘And, Claude, only say that you like her.’
+
+‘I think it is a very good thing indeed.’
+
+‘Only say that you cordially like her.’
+
+‘I do. I admire her sense and her gentleness very much, and I think you
+owe a great deal to her.’
+
+‘Then you allow that you were unjust last summer?’
+
+‘I do; but it was owing to you. You were somewhat foolish, and I thought
+it was her fault. Besides, I was quite tired of hearing that
+extraordinary name of hers for ever repeated.’
+
+Here they were summoned to dinner, and hurried down. The dinner passed
+very strangely; some were in very high spirits, others in a very
+melancholy mood; Eleanor and Maurice alone preserved the golden mean; and
+the behaviour of the merry ones was perfectly unintelligible to the rest.
+Reginald, still bound by his promise to Marianne, was wild to make his
+discovery known, and behaved in such a strange and comical manner as to
+call forth various reproofs from Eleanor, which provoked double mirth
+from the others. The cause of their amusement was ostensibly the talking
+over of yesterday’s _fête_, but the laughing was more than adequate, even
+to the wonderful collection of odd speeches and adventures which were
+detailed. Emily and Jane could not guess what had come to Lily, and
+thought her merriment very ill-placed. Yet, in justice to Lily, it must
+be said that her joy no longer made her wild and thoughtless. There was
+something guarded and subdued about her, which made Claude reflect how
+different she was from the untamed girl of last summer, who could not be
+happy without a sort of intoxication.
+
+The ladies returned to the drawing-room, where Ada now appeared for the
+first time, and while they were congratulating her Mr. Mohun summoned
+Eleanor away. Jane followed at a safe distance to see where they went.
+They shut themselves into the study, and Jane, now meeting Maurice, went
+into the garden with him. ‘It must be coming now,’ said she; ‘oh! there
+are William and Claude talking under the plane-tree.’
+
+‘Claude has his cunning smile on,’ said Maurice.
+
+‘No wonder,’ said Jane, ‘it is very absurd. I daresay William will
+hardly ever come home now. One comfort is, they will see I was right
+from the first.’
+
+Jane and Maurice remained in the garden till teatime, and thus missed
+hearing the whole affair discussed in the drawing-room between Emily,
+Lilias, and Frank. This was the first news that Emily heard of it, and a
+very great relief it was, for she could imagine liking, and even loving,
+Alethea as a sister-in-law. Her chief annoyance was at present from the
+perception of the difference between her own position and that of Lilias.
+Last year how was Lily regarded in the family, and what was her opinion
+worth? Almost nothing; she was only a clever, romantic, silly girl,
+while Emily had credit at least for discretion. Now Lily was consulted
+and sought out by father, brothers, Eleanor—no longer treated as a child.
+And what was Emily? Blamed or pitied on every side, and left to hear
+this important news from the chance mention of her brother-in-law,
+himself not fully informed. She had become nobody, and had even lost the
+satisfaction, such as it was, of fancying that her father only made her
+bad management an excuse for his marriage. She heard many particulars
+from Lily in the course of the evening, as they were going to bed; and
+the sisters talked with all their wonted affection, although Emily had
+not thought it worth while to revive an old grievance, by asking Lily’s
+pardon for her unkind speech, and rested satisfied with the knowledge
+that her sister knew her heart too well to care for what she said in a
+moment of irritation. On the other hand, Lily did not think that she had
+a right to mention the plan of Alethea’s government, and the next day she
+was glad of her reserve, for her father called her to share his early
+walk for the purpose of talking over the scheme, telling her that he
+thought she understood the state of things better than Eleanor could, and
+that he considered that she had sufficient influence with Emily to
+prevent her from making Alethea uncomfortable. The conclusion of the
+conversation was, that they thought they might depend upon Emily’s
+amiability, her courtesy, and her dislike of trouble, to balance her love
+of importance and dignity. And that Alethea would do nothing to hurt her
+feelings, and would assume no authority that she could help, they felt
+convinced.
+
+After breakfast Mr. Mohun called Emily into his study, informed her of
+his resolution, to which she listened with her usual submissive manner,
+and told her that he trusted to her good sense and right feeling to
+obviate any collisions of authority which might be unpleasant to Alethea
+and hurtful to the younger ones. She promised all that was desired, and
+though at the moment she felt hurt and grieved, she almost immediately
+recovered her usual spirits, never high, but always serene, and only
+seeking for easy amusement and comfort in whatever happened. There was
+no public disgrace in her deposition; it would not seem unnatural to the
+neighbours that her brother’s wife should be at the head of the house.
+She would gain credit for her amiability, and she would no longer be
+responsible or obliged to exert herself; and as to Alethea herself, she
+could not help respecting and almost loving her. It was very well it was
+no worse.
+
+In the meantime Lily, struck by a sudden thought, had hastened to her
+mother’s little deserted morning-room, to see if it could not be made a
+delightful abode for Alethea; and she was considering of its capabilities
+when she started at the sound of an approaching step. It was the rapid
+and measured tread of the Captain, and in a few moments he entered.
+‘Thank you,’ said he, smiling, ‘you are on the same errand as myself.’
+
+‘Exactly so,’ said Lily; ‘it will do capitally; how pretty Long Acre
+looks, and what a beautiful view of the church!’
+
+‘This room used once to be pretty,’ said William, looking round,
+disappointed; ‘it is very forlorn.’
+
+‘Ah! but it will look very different when the chairs do not stand with
+their backs to the wall. I do not think Alethea knows of this room, for
+nobody has sat in it for years, and we will make it a surprise. And here
+is your own picture, at ten years old, over the fireplace! I have such a
+vision, you will not know the room when I have set it to rights.’
+
+They went on talking eagerly of the improvements that might be made, and
+from thence came to other subjects—Alethea herself, and the future plans.
+At last William asked if Lily knew what made Jane look as deplorable as
+she had done for the last two days, and Lily was obliged to tell him,
+with the addition that Eleanor had begun to inform her of the real fact,
+but that she had stopped her by declaring that she had known it all from
+the first. Just as they had mentioned her, Jane, attracted by the
+unusual sound of voices in Lady Emily’s room, came in, asking what they
+could be doing there. Lily would scarcely have dared to reply, but
+William said in a grave, matter-of-fact way, ‘We are thinking of having
+this room newly fitted up.’
+
+‘For Alethea Weston?’ said Jane; ‘how can you, Lily? I should have
+thought, at least, it was no laughing matter.’
+
+‘I advise you to follow Lily’s example and make the best of it,’ said
+William.
+
+‘I do, but it is another thing to stand laughing here. I see one thing
+that I shall do—I shall take away your picture and hang it in my room.’
+
+‘We shall see,’ said William, following Lilias, who had left the room to
+hide her laughter.
+
+To mystify Jane was the great amusement of the day; Reginald, finding
+Maurice possessed with the same notion, did more to maintain it than the
+others would have thought right, and Maurice reporting his speeches to
+Jane, she had not the least doubt that her idea was correct. Lord
+Rotherwood came to dinner, and no sooner had he entered the drawing-room
+than Reginald, rejoicing in the absence of the parties concerned,
+informed him of the joke, much to his diversion, though rather to the
+discomfiture of the more prudent spectators, who might have wished it
+confined to themselves.
+
+‘It has gone far enough,’ said Claude; ‘she will say something she will
+repent if we do not take care.’
+
+‘I should like to reduce her to humble herself to ask an explanation from
+Marianne,’ said Lily.
+
+‘And pray don’t spoil the joke before I have enjoyed it,’ said Lord
+Rotherwood. ‘My years of discretion are not such centuries of wisdom as
+those of that gentleman who looks as grim as his namesake the Emperor on
+a coin.’
+
+The entrance of Eleanor and Jane here put an end to the conversation,
+which was not renewed till the evening, when the younger, or as Claude
+called it, the middle-aged part of the company were sitting on the lawn,
+leaving the drawing-room to the elder and more prudent, and the terrace
+to the wilder and more active. Emily was talking of Mrs. Burnet’s visit
+of the day before, and her opinion of the Hetherington festivities. ‘And
+what an interminable visit it was,’ said Jane; ‘I thought they would
+never go!’
+
+‘People always inflict themselves in a most merciless manner when there
+is anything going on,’ said Emily.
+
+‘I wonder if they guessed anything,’ said Lily.
+
+‘To be sure they did, and stayed out of curiosity,’ said Lord Rotherwood.
+‘In spite of Emily’s dignified contradictions of the report, every one
+knew it the other evening. It was all in vain that she behaved as if I
+was speaking treason—people have eyes.’
+
+‘Ah! I am very sorry for that contradiction,’ said Lily; ‘I hope people
+will not fancy we do not like it.’
+
+‘No, it will only prove my greatness,’ said Lord Rotherwood. ‘Your
+Marques, was China in the map, so absorbing all beholders that the
+magnanimous Mohuns themselves—’
+
+‘What nonsense, Rotherwood,’ said Jane, sharply; ‘can’t you suppose that
+one may shut one’s eyes to what one does not wish to see.’
+
+The singular inappropriateness of this answer occasioned a general roar
+of laughter, and she looked in perplexity. Every one whom she asked why
+they laughed replied by saying, ‘Ask Marianne Weston;’ and at length,
+after much puzzling and guessing, and being more laughed at than had ever
+before happened to her in her life, she was obliged to seek an
+explanation from Marianne, who might well have triumphed had she been so
+disposed. Jane’s character for penetration was entirely destroyed, and
+the next morning she received, as a present from Claude, an old book,
+which had long belonged to the nursery, entitled, _A Puzzle for a Curious
+Girl_.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII
+CONCLUSION
+
+
+ ‘There let Hymen oft appear
+ In saffron robe, with taper clear,
+ And pomp, and feast, and revelry,
+ And mask, and antique pageantry;
+ Such sights as useful poets dream
+ On summer eves, by haunted stream.’
+
+ON the morning of a fine day, late in September, the Beechcroft bells
+were ringing merrily, and a wedding procession was entering the gate of
+the churchyard.
+
+In the afternoon there was a great feast on the top of the hill, attended
+by all the Mohuns, who were forced, to Lily’s great satisfaction, to give
+it there, as there was no space in the grounds at the New Court. All was
+wonderfully suitable to old times, inasmuch as the Baron was actually
+persuaded to sit for five minutes under the yew-tree where ‘Mohun’s
+chair’ ought to have been, and the cricketers were of all ranks, from the
+Marquis of Rotherwood to little Dick Grey.
+
+The wedding had been hurried on, and the wedding tour was shortened, in
+order that Mrs. William Mohun might be installed as mistress of the New
+Court before Eleanor’s departure, which took place early in October; and
+shortly after Mrs. Ridley, who had come on a visit to Beechcroft, to take
+leave of her brother, returned to the north, taking with her the little
+Harry. He was nearly a year old, and it gave great pain to his young
+aunts to part with him, now that he had endeared himself to them by many
+engaging ways, but Lily felt herself too unequal to the task of training
+him up to make any objection, and there were many promises that he should
+not be a stranger to his grandfather’s home.
+
+Mrs. and Miss Aylmer had been about a month settled at a superior sort of
+cottage, near the New Court, with Mrs. Eden for their servant. Lord
+Rotherwood had fitted out the second son, who sailed for India with Mr.
+and Mrs. Hawkesworth, had sent Devereux to school, and was lying in wait
+to see what could be done for the two others, and Jane was congratulated
+far more than she wished, on having been the means of discovering such an
+excellent governess. Jane was now a regular inhabitant of the
+schoolroom, as much tied down to lessons and schoolroom hours as her two
+little sisters, with the prospect of so continuing for two years, if not
+for three. She made one attempt to be pert to Miss Aylmer; but something
+in the manner of her governess quite baffled her, and she was obliged to
+be more obedient than she had ever been. The mischief which Emily and
+Lilias had done to her, by throwing off their allegiance to Eleanor, and
+thus unconsciously leading her to set her at nought, was, at her age, not
+to be so easily repaired; yet with no opportunity for gossiping, and with
+involuntary respect for her governess, there were hopes that she would
+lose the habit of her two great faults. There certainly was an
+improvement in her general tone and manner, which made Mr. Devereux hope
+that he might soon resume with her the preparation for confirmation which
+had been cut short the year before.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline had been possessed by Reginald with a great dread of
+governesses; and they were agreeably surprised in Miss Aylmer, whom they
+found neither cross nor strict, and always willing to forward their
+amusements, and let them go out with their papa and sisters whenever they
+were asked. Phyllis, without much annoyance to one so obedient, was
+trained into more civilisation, and Ada’s more serious faults were duly
+watched and guarded against. The removal of Esther was a great advantage
+to Ada; an older and more steady person was taken in her place; while to
+the great relief of Mr. Mohun and Lilias, Rachel Harvey took Esther to
+her brother’s farmhouse, where she promised to watch and teach her, and
+hoped in time to make her a good servant.
+
+Of Emily there is little to say. She ate, drank, and slept, talked
+agreeably, read idle books, and looked nice in the drawing-room, wasting
+time, throwing away talents, weakening the powers of her mind, and laying
+up a store of sad reflections for herself against the time when she must
+awake from her selfish apathy.
+
+As to Lilias Mohun, the heroine of this tale, the history of the
+formation of her character has been told, and all that remains to be said
+of her is, that the memory of her faults and her sorrows did not fleet
+away like a morning cloud, though followed by many happy and prosperous
+days, and though the effects of many were repaired. Agnes’s death,
+Esther’s theft, Ada’s accident, the schism in the parish, and her own
+numerous mistakes, were constantly recalled, and never without a thought
+of the danger of being wise above her elders, and taking mere feeling for
+Christian charity.
+
+
+
+
+***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SCENES AND CHARACTERS***
+
+
+******* This file should be named 4944-0.txt or 4944-0.zip *******
+
+
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/4/9/4/4944
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
+be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
+law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
+so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
+States without permission and without paying copyright
+royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
+of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
+and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
+specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
+eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
+for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
+performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
+away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
+not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
+trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
+
+START: FULL LICENSE
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
+Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
+destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
+possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
+Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
+by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
+person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
+1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
+agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
+Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
+of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
+works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
+States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
+United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
+claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
+displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
+all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
+that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
+free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
+works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
+Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
+comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
+same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
+you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
+in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
+check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
+agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
+distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
+other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
+representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
+country outside the United States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
+immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
+prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
+on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
+performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
+
+ This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
+ most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
+ restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
+ under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
+ eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
+ United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
+ are located before using this ebook.
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
+derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
+contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
+copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
+the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
+redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
+either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
+obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
+trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
+additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
+will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
+posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
+beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
+any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
+to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
+other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
+version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
+(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
+to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
+of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
+Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
+full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+provided that
+
+* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
+ to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
+ agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
+ within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
+ legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
+ payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
+ Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
+ Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
+ copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
+ all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
+ works.
+
+* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
+ any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
+ receipt of the work.
+
+* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
+are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
+from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
+Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
+Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
+contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
+or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
+other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
+cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
+with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
+with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
+lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
+or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
+opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
+the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
+without further opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
+OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
+damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
+violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
+agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
+limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
+unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
+remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
+accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
+production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
+including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
+the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
+or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
+additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
+Defect you cause.
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
+computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
+exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
+from people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
+generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
+Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
+www.gutenberg.org
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
+U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
+mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
+volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
+locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
+Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
+date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
+official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
+DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
+state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
+donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
+freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
+distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
+volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
+the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
+necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
+edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
+facility: www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/4944-0.zip b/4944-0.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f8f031c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-0.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h.zip b/4944-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0b39a8a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/4944-h.htm b/4944-h/4944-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9ac6476
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/4944-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,10702 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html
+ PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+ "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=US-ASCII" />
+<title>Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge</title>
+ <style type="text/css">
+/*<![CDATA[ XML blockout */
+<!--
+ P { margin-top: .75em;
+ margin-bottom: .75em;
+ }
+ P.gutsumm { margin-left: 5%;}
+ P.poetry {margin-left: 3%; }
+ .GutSmall { font-size: 0.7em; }
+ H1, H2 {
+ text-align: center;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ margin-bottom: 2em;
+ }
+ H3, H4, H5 {
+ text-align: center;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 1em;
+ }
+ BODY{margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+ }
+ table { border-collapse: collapse; }
+table {margin-left:auto; margin-right:auto;}
+ td { vertical-align: top; border: 1px solid black;}
+ td p { margin: 0.2em; }
+ .blkquot {margin-left: 4em; margin-right: 4em;} /* block indent */
+
+ .smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
+
+ .pagenum {position: absolute;
+ left: 92%;
+ font-size: small;
+ text-align: right;
+ font-weight: normal;
+ color: gray;
+ }
+ img { border: none; }
+ img.dc { float: left; width: 50px; height: 50px; }
+ p.gutindent { margin-left: 2em; }
+ div.gapspace { height: 0.8em; }
+ div.gapline { height: 0.8em; width: 100%; border-top: 1px solid;}
+ div.gapmediumline { height: 0.3em; width: 40%; margin-left:30%;
+ border-top: 1px solid; }
+ div.gapmediumdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 40%; margin-left:30%;
+ border-top: 1px solid; border-bottom: 1px solid;}
+ div.gapshortdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 20%;
+ margin-left: 40%; border-top: 1px solid;
+ border-bottom: 1px solid; }
+ div.gapdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 50%;
+ margin-left: 25%; border-top: 1px solid;
+ border-bottom: 1px solid;}
+ div.gapshortline { height: 0.3em; width: 20%; margin-left:40%;
+ border-top: 1px solid; }
+ .citation {vertical-align: super;
+ font-size: .8em;
+ text-decoration: none;}
+ img.floatleft { float: left;
+ margin-right: 1em;
+ margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
+ img.floatright { float: right;
+ margin-left: 1em; margin-top: 0.5em;
+ margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
+ img.clearcenter {display: block;
+ margin-left: auto;
+ margin-right: auto; margin-top: 0.5em;
+ margin-bottom: 0.5em}
+ -->
+ /* XML end ]]>*/
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg eBook, Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge,
+Illustrated by W. J. Hennessy
+
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
+other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
+whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
+the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
+www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
+to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
+
+
+
+
+Title: Scenes and Characters
+ or, Eighteen Months at Beechcroft
+
+
+Author: Charlotte M. Yonge
+
+
+
+Release Date: January 16, 2015 [eBook #4944]
+[This file was first posted on April 2, 2002]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII)
+
+
+***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SCENES AND CHARACTERS***
+</pre>
+<p>Transcribed from the 1889 Macmillan and Co. edition by David
+Price, email ccx074@pglaf.org</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">
+<a href="images/fpb.jpg">
+<img alt=
+"She visited the village school.&mdash;p. 38"
+title=
+"She visited the village school.&mdash;p. 38"
+ src="images/fps.jpg" />
+</a></p>
+<h1>SCENES AND CHARACTERS,<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">OR,</span><br />
+Eighteen Months at Beechcroft</h1>
+<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall">BY</span><br
+/>
+CHARLOTTE M. YOUNGE<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">AUTHOR OF &lsquo;THE HEIR OF
+REDCLYFFE,&rsquo; &lsquo;THE TWO GUARDIANS,&rsquo;
+ETC.</span></p>
+<p style="text-align: center">
+<a href="images/tpb.jpg">
+<img alt=
+"&lsquo;Yes, Miss, Dick Rood is a sad fellow.&rsquo;&mdash;p. 41"
+title=
+"&lsquo;Yes, Miss, Dick Rood is a sad fellow.&rsquo;&mdash;p. 41"
+ src="images/tps.jpg" />
+</a></p>
+<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall"><i>FIFTH
+EDITION</i></span></p>
+<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall">ILLUSTRATED
+BY W. J. HENNESSY</span></p>
+<p style="text-align: center"><b>London</b><br />
+MACMILLAN AND CO.<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">AND NEW YORK</span><br />
+1889</p>
+<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall"><i>All
+rights reserved</i></span></p>
+<h2><a name="pagev"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+v</span>PREFACE</h2>
+<p><span class="smcap">Of</span> those who are invited to pay a
+visit to Beechcroft, there are some who, honestly acknowledging
+that amusement is their object, will be content to feel with
+Lilias, conjecture with Jane, and get into scrapes with Phyllis,
+without troubling themselves to extract any moral from their
+proceedings; and to these the Mohun family would only apologise
+for having led a very humdrum life during the eighteen months
+spent in their company.</p>
+<p>There may, however, be more unreasonable visitors, who,
+professing only to come as parents and guardians, expect
+entertainment for themselves, as well as instruction for those
+who had rather it was out of sight,&mdash;look for antiques in
+carved cherry-stones,&mdash;and require plot, incident, and
+catastrophe in a chronicle of small beer.</p>
+<p>To these the Mohuns beg respectfully to observe, that they
+hope their examples may not be altogether <a
+name="pagevi"></a><span class="pagenum">p. vi</span>devoid of
+indirect instruction; and lest it should be supposed that they
+lived without object, aim, or principle, they would observe that
+the maxim which has influenced the delineation of the different
+<i>Scenes and Characters</i> is, that feeling, unguided and
+unrestrained, soon becomes mere selfishness; while the simple
+endeavour to fulfil each immediate claim of duty may lead to the
+highest acts of self-devotion.</p>
+<p><span class="smcap">New Court</span>, <span
+class="smcap">Beechcroft</span>,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; 18th
+<i>January</i>.</p>
+<h2><a name="pagevii"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+vii</span>PREFACE (1886)</h2>
+<p><span class="smcap">Perhaps</span> this book is an instance to
+be adduced in support of the advice I have often given to young
+authors&mdash;not to print before they themselves are old enough
+to do justice to their freshest ideas.</p>
+<p>Not that I can lay claim to its being a production of tender
+and interesting youth.&nbsp; It was my second actual publication,
+and I believe I was of age before it appeared&mdash;but I see now
+the failures that more experience might have enabled me to avoid;
+and I would not again have given it to the world if the same
+characters recurring in another story had not excited a certain
+desire to see their first start.</p>
+<p>In fact they have been more or less my life-long
+companions.&nbsp; An almost solitary child, with periodical
+visits to the Elysium of a large family, it was natural to dream
+of other children and their ways and sports till they became
+almost realities.&nbsp; They took shape when my French master set
+me to write letters for him.&nbsp; The letters gradually became
+conversation and <a name="pageviii"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+viii</span>narrative, and the adventures of the family sweetened
+the toils of French composition.&nbsp; In the exigencies of
+village school building in those days gone by, before in every
+place</p>
+<blockquote><p>&ldquo;It there behoved him to set up the standard
+of her Grace,&rdquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>the tale was actually printed for private sale, as a link
+between translations of short stories.</p>
+<p>This process only stifled the family in my imagination for a
+time.&nbsp; They awoke once more with new names, but
+substantially the same, and were my companions in many a solitary
+walk, the results of which were scribbled down in leisure moments
+to be poured into my mother&rsquo;s ever patient and sympathetic
+ears.</p>
+<p>And then came the impulse to literature for young people given
+by the example of that memorable book the <i>Fairy Bower</i>, and
+followed up by <i>Amy Herbert</i>.&nbsp; It was felt that elder
+children needed something of a deeper tone than the Edgeworthian
+style, yet less directly religious than the Sherwood class of
+books; and on that wave of opinion, my little craft floated out
+into the great sea of the public.</p>
+<p>Friends, whose kindness astonished me, and fills me with
+gratitude when I look back on it, gave me seasonable criticism
+and pruning, and finally launched me.&nbsp; My heroes and
+heroines had arranged themselves so as to work out a definite
+principle, and this was enough for us all.</p>
+<p><a name="pageix"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+ix</span>Children&rsquo;s books had not been supposed to require
+a plot.&nbsp; Miss Edgeworth&rsquo;s, which I still continue to
+think gems in their own line, are made chronicles, or, more
+truly, illustrations of various truths worked out upon the same
+personages.&nbsp; Moreover, the skill of a Jane Austen or a Mrs.
+Gaskell is required to produce a perfect plot without doing
+violence to the ordinary events of an every-day life.&nbsp; It is
+all a matter of arrangement.&nbsp; Mrs. Gaskell can make a
+perfect little plot out of a sick lad and a canary bird; and
+another can do nothing with half a dozen murders and an
+explosion; and of arranging my materials so as to build up a
+story, I was quite incapable.&nbsp; It is still my great
+deficiency; but in those days I did not even understand that the
+attempt was desirable.&nbsp; Criticism was a more thorough thing
+in those times than it has since become through the multiplicity
+of books to be hurried over, and it was often very useful, as
+when it taught that such arrangement of incident was the means of
+developing the leading idea.</p>
+<p>Yet, with all its faults, the children, who had been real to
+me, caught, chiefly by the youthful sense of fun and enjoyment,
+the attention of other children; and the curious semi-belief one
+has in the phantoms of one&rsquo;s brain made me dwell on their
+after life and share my discoveries with my friends, not,
+however, writing them down till after the lapse of all these
+years the <a name="pagex"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+x</span>tenderness inspired by associations of early days led to
+taking up once more the old characters in <i>The Two Sides of the
+Shield</i>; and the kind welcome this has met with has led to the
+resuscitation of the crude and inexperienced tale which never
+pretended to be more than a mere family chronicle.</p>
+<p style="text-align: right">C. M. YONGE.</p>
+<p>6<i>th</i> <i>October</i> 1886.</p>
+<h2><a name="pagexi"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+xi</span>CONTENTS</h2>
+<table>
+<tr>
+<td><p>&nbsp;</p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span
+class="GutSmall">PAGE</span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER I</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Elder Sister</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page1">1</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER II</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The New Court</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page6">6</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER III</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The New Principle</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page15">15</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER IV</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Honest Phyl</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page26">26</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER V</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Village Gossip</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page35">35</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER VI</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The New Friend</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page52">52</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER VII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Sir Maurice</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page61">61</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER VIII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Brothers</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page78">78</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center"><a
+name="pagexii"></a><span class="pagenum">p. xii</span>CHAPTER
+IX</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Wasp</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page101">101</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER X</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Cousin Rotherwood</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page109">109</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XI</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Dancing</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page123">123</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Fever</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page131">131</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XIII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">A Curiosity Map</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page143">143</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XIV</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Christmas</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page155">155</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XV</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Minor Misfortunes</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page167">167</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XVI</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Vanity and Vexation</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page186">186</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XVII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Little Agnes</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page198">198</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XVIII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Double, Double Toil and
+Trouble</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page208">208</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center"><a
+name="pagexiii"></a><span class="pagenum">p. xiii</span>CHAPTER
+XIX</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Rector&rsquo;s Illness</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page222">222</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XX</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Little Nephew</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page227">227</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXI</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Charity Begins at Home</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page235">235</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Baronial Court</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page249">249</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXIII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Joys and Sorrows</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page256">256</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXIV</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Love&rsquo;s Labour Lost</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page264">264</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXV</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Thirtieth of July</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page277">277</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXVI</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">The Crisis</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page297">297</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td colspan="2"><p style="text-align: center">CHAPTER XXVII</p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td><p><span class="smcap">Conclusion</span></p>
+</td>
+<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a
+href="#page313">313</a></span></p>
+</td>
+</tr>
+</table>
+<h2><a name="page1"></a><span class="pagenum">p. 1</span>CHAPTER
+I<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE ELDER SISTER</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Return, and in the daily round<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Of duty and of love,<br />
+Thou best wilt find that patient faith<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; That lifts the soul above.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Eleanor Mohun</span> was the eldest child
+of a gentleman of old family, and good property, who had married
+the sister of his friend and neighbour, the Marquis of
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; The first years of her life were marked by few
+events.&nbsp; She was a quiet, steady, useful girl, finding her
+chief pleasure in nursing and teaching her brothers and sisters,
+and her chief annoyance in her mamma&rsquo;s attempts to make her
+a fine lady; but before she had reached her nineteenth year she
+had learnt to know real anxiety and sorrow.&nbsp; Her mother,
+after suffering much from grief at the loss of her two brothers,
+fell into so alarming a state of health, that her husband was
+obliged immediately to hurry her away to Italy, leaving the
+younger children under the care of a governess, and the elder
+boys at school, while Eleanor alone accompanied them.</p>
+<p>Their absence lasted nearly three years, and during the last
+winter, an engagement commenced between Eleanor and Mr. Francis
+Hawkesworth, rather to the surprise of Lady Emily, who wondered
+that he had been able to discover the real worth veiled beneath a
+formal and retiring manner, and to admire features which, though
+regular, had a want of light and animation, which diminished
+their beauty even more than the thinness and compression of the
+lips, and the very pale gray of the eyes.</p>
+<p>The family were about to return to England, where the marriage
+was to take place, when Lady Emily was attacked with a sudden
+illness, which her weakened frame was unable to resist, and in a
+very few days she died, leaving the little Adeline, about eight
+months old, to accompany her father and sister on their
+melancholy journey homewards.&nbsp; This loss made a great change
+in the views of Eleanor, who, as she considered the cares and
+annoyances which would fall on her father, when left to bear the
+whole burthen of the management of the children and household,
+felt it was her duty to give up her own prospects of happiness,
+and to remain at home.&nbsp; How could she leave the tender
+little ones to the care of servants&mdash;trust her sisters to a
+governess, and make her brothers&rsquo; home yet more
+dreary?&nbsp; She knew her father to be strong in sense and firm
+in judgment, but indolent, indulgent, and inattentive to details,
+and she could not bear to leave him to be harassed by the petty
+cares of a numerous family, especially when broken in spirits and
+weighed down with sorrow.&nbsp; She thought her duty was plain,
+and, accordingly, she wrote to Mr. Hawkesworth, to beg him to
+allow her to withdraw her promise.</p>
+<p>Her brother Henry was the only person who knew what she had
+done, and he alone perceived something of tremulousness about her
+in the midst of the even cheerfulness with which she had from the
+first supported her father&rsquo;s spirits.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun,
+however, did not long remain in ignorance, for Frank Hawkesworth
+himself arrived at Beechcroft to plead his cause with
+Eleanor.&nbsp; He knew her value too well to give her up, and Mr.
+Mohun would not hear of her making such a sacrifice for his
+sake.&nbsp; But Eleanor was also firm, and after weeks of
+unhappiness and uncertainty, it was at length arranged that she
+should remain at home till Emily was old enough to take her
+place, and that Frank should then return from India and claim his
+bride.</p>
+<p>Well did she discharge the duties which she had undertaken;
+she kept her father&rsquo;s mind at ease, followed out his views,
+managed the boys with discretion and gentleness, and made her
+sisters well-informed and accomplished girls; but, for want of
+fully understanding the characters of her two next sisters, Emily
+and Lilias, she made some mistakes with regard to them.&nbsp; The
+clouds of sorrow, to her so dark and heavy, had been to them but
+morning mists, and the four years which had changed her from a
+happy girl into a thoughtful, anxious woman, had brought them to
+an age which, if it is full of the follies of childhood, also
+partakes of the earnestness of youth; an age when deep
+foundations of enduring confidence may be laid by one who can
+enter into and direct the deeper flow of mind and feeling which
+lurks hid beneath the freaks and fancies of the early years of
+girlhood.&nbsp; But Eleanor had little sympathy for freaks and
+fancies.&nbsp; She knew the realities of life too well to build
+airy castles with younger and gayer spirits; her sisters&rsquo;
+romance seemed to her dangerous folly, and their lively nonsense
+levity and frivolity.&nbsp; They were too childish to share in
+her confidence, and she was too busy and too much preoccupied to
+have ear or mind for visionary trifles, though to trifles of real
+life she paid no small degree of attention.</p>
+<p>It might have been otherwise had Henry Mohun lived; but in the
+midst of the affection of all who knew him, honour from those who
+could appreciate his noble character, and triumphs gained by his
+uncommon talents, he was cut off by a short illness, when not
+quite nineteen, a most grievous loss to his family, and above
+all, to Eleanor.&nbsp; Unlike her, as he was joyous,
+high-spirited, full of fun, and overflowing with imagination and
+poetry, there was a very close bond of union between them, in the
+strong sense of duty, the firmness of purpose, and energy of mind
+which both possessed, and which made Eleanor feel perfect
+reliance on him, and look up to him with earnest
+admiration.&nbsp; With him alone she was unreserved; he was the
+only person who could ever make her show a spark of liveliness,
+and on his death, it was only with the most painful efforts that
+she could maintain her composed demeanour and fulfil her daily
+duties.&nbsp; Years passed on, and still she felt the blank which
+Harry had left, almost as much as the first day that she heard of
+his death, but she never spoke of him, and to her sisters it
+seemed as if he was forgotten.&nbsp; The reserve which had begun
+to thaw under his influence, again returning, placed her a still
+greater distance from the younger girls, and unconsciously she
+became still more of a governess and less of a sister.&nbsp;
+Little did she know of the &lsquo;blissful dreams in secret
+shared&rsquo; between Emily, Lilias, and their brother Claude,
+and little did she perceive the danger that Lilias would be run
+away with by a lively imagination, repressed and starved, but
+entirely untrained.</p>
+<p>Whatever influenced Lilias, had, through her, nearly the same
+effect upon Emily, a gentle girl, easily led, especially by
+Lilias, whom she regarded with the fondest affection and
+admiration.&nbsp; The perils of fancy and romance were not,
+however, to be dreaded for Jane, the fourth sister, a strong
+resemblance of Eleanor in her clear common sense, love of
+neatness, and active usefulness; but there were other dangers for
+her, in her tendency to faults, which, under wise training, had
+not yet developed themselves.</p>
+<p>Such were the three girls who were now left to assist each
+other in the management of the household, and who looked forward
+to their new offices with the various sensations of pleasure,
+anxiety, self-importance, and self-mistrust, suited to their
+differing characters, and to the ages of eighteen, sixteen, and
+fourteen.</p>
+<h2><a name="page6"></a><span class="pagenum">p. 6</span>CHAPTER
+II<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE NEW COURT</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Just at the age &rsquo;twixt boy and
+youth,<br />
+When thought is speech, and speech is truth.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> long-delayed wedding took place
+on the 13th of January, 1845, and the bride and bridegroom
+immediately departed for a year&rsquo;s visit among Mr.
+Hawkesworth&rsquo;s relations in Northumberland, whence they were
+to return to Beechcroft, merely for a farewell, before sailing
+for India.</p>
+<p>It was half-past nine in the evening, and the wedding
+over&mdash;Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth gone, and the guests
+departed, the drawing-room had returned to its usual state.&nbsp;
+It was a very large room, so spacious that it would have been
+waste and desolate, had it not been well filled with handsome,
+but heavy old-fashioned furniture, covered with crimson damask,
+and one side of the room fitted up with a bookcase, so high that
+there was a spiral flight of library steps to give access to the
+upper shelves.&nbsp; Opposite were four large windows, now hidden
+by their ample curtains; and near them was at one end of the room
+a piano, at the other a drawing-desk.&nbsp; The walls were
+wainscoted with polished black oak, the panels reflecting the red
+fire-light like mirrors.&nbsp; Over the chimney-piece hung a
+portrait, by Vandyke, of a pale, dark cavalier, of noble mien,
+and with arched eyebrows, called by Lilias, in defiance of dates,
+by the name of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the hero of the family, and
+allowed by every one to be a striking likeness of Claude, the
+youth who at that moment lay, extending a somewhat superfluous
+length of limb upon the sofa, which was placed commodiously at
+right angles to the fire.</p>
+<p>The other side of the fire was Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s special
+domain, and there he sat at his writing-table, abstracted by
+deafness and letter writing, from the various sounds of mirth and
+nonsense, which proceeded from the party round the long narrow
+sofa table, which they had drawn across the front of the fire,
+leaving the large round centre table in darkness and
+oblivion.</p>
+<p>This party had within the last half hour been somewhat
+thinned; the three younger girls had gone to bed, the Rector of
+Beechcroft, Mr. Robert Devereux, had been called home to attend
+some parish business, and there remained Emily and
+Lilias&mdash;tall graceful girls, with soft hazel eyes, clear
+dark complexions, and a quantity of long brown curls.&nbsp; The
+latter was busily completing a guard for the watch, which Mr.
+Hawkesworth had presented to Reginald, a fine handsome boy of
+eleven, who, with his elbows on the table, sat contemplating her
+progress, and sometimes teasing his brother Maurice, who was
+earnestly engaged in constructing a model with some cards, which
+he had pilfered from the heap before Emily.&nbsp; She was putting
+her sister&rsquo;s wedding cards into their shining envelopes,
+and directing them in readiness for the post the next morning,
+while they were sealed by a youth of the same age as Claude, a
+small slim figure, with light complexion and hair, and dark gray
+eyes full of brightness and vivacity.</p>
+<p>He was standing, so as to be more on a level with the high
+candle, and as Emily&rsquo;s writing was not quite so rapid as
+his sealing, he amused himself in the intervals with burning his
+own fingers, by twisting the wax into odd shapes.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why do you not seal up his eyes?&rsquo; inquired
+Reginald, with an arch glance towards his brother on the
+sofa.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do it yourself, you rogue,&rsquo; was the answer, at
+the same time approaching with the hot sealing-wax in his
+hand&mdash;a demonstration which occasioned Claude to open his
+eyes very wide, without giving himself any further trouble about
+the matter.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;now they try to look
+innocent, as if no one could hear them plotting
+mischief.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Them! it was not!&mdash;Redgie there&mdash;young
+ladies&mdash;I appeal&mdash;was not I as
+innocent?&rsquo;&mdash;was the very rapid, incoherent, and
+indistinct answer.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;After so lucid and connected a justification, no more
+can be said,&rsquo; replied Claude, in a kind of &lsquo;leave me,
+leave me to repose&rsquo; tone, which occasioned Lilias to say,
+&lsquo;I am afraid you are very tired.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Tired! what has he done to tire him?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure a wedding is a terrible wear of
+spirits!&rsquo; said Emily&mdash;&lsquo;such
+excitement.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well&mdash;when I give a spectacle to the family next
+year, I mean to tire you to some purpose.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, looking up, &lsquo;is
+Rotherwood&rsquo;s wedding to be the next?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You ought to understand, uncle,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood, making two stops towards him, and speaking a little
+more clearly, &lsquo;I thought you longed to get rid of your
+nephew and his concerns.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You idle boy!&rsquo; returned Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;you do
+not mean to have the impertinence to come of age next
+year.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;As much as having been born on the 30th of July, 1825,
+can make me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But what good will your coming of age do us?&rsquo;
+said Lilias, &lsquo;you will be in London or Brighton, or some
+such stupid place.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not be senseless, Lily,&rsquo; returned her
+cousin.&nbsp; &lsquo;Devereux Castle is to be in
+splendour&mdash;Hetherington in amazement&mdash;the
+county&rsquo;s hair shall stand on end&mdash;illuminations,
+bonfires, feasts, balls, colours flying, bands playing, tenants
+dining, fireworks&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Hurrah! jolly! jolly!&rsquo; shouted Reginald, dancing
+on the ottoman, &lsquo;and mind there are lots of
+squibs.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And that Master Reginald Mohun has a new cap and bells
+for the occasion,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me make some fireworks,&rsquo; said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will begin like a noble baron of the hospitable
+olden time,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It will be like the old days, when every birthday of
+yours was a happy day for the people at Hetherington,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! those were happy old days,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood, in a graver tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;These are happy days, are not they?&rsquo; said Lily,
+smiling.</p>
+<p>Her cousin answered with a sigh, &lsquo;Yes, but you do not
+remember the old ones, Lily;&rsquo; then, after a pause, he
+added, &lsquo;It was a grievous mistake to shut up the castle all
+these years.&nbsp; We have lost sight of everybody.&nbsp; I do
+not even know what has become of the Aylmers.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They went to live in London,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;Aunt Robert used to write to them there.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I know, I know, but where are they now?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In London, I should think,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Some one said Miss Aylmer was gone out as a
+governess.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed!&nbsp; I wish I could hear more!&nbsp; Poor Mr.
+Aylmer!&nbsp; He was the first man who tried to teach me
+Latin.&nbsp; I wonder what has become of that mad fellow Edward,
+and Devereux, my father&rsquo;s godson!&nbsp; Was not Mrs. Aylmer
+badly off?&nbsp; I cannot bear that people should be
+forgotten!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is not so very long that we have lost sight of
+them,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eight years,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;He died six weeks after my father.&nbsp; Well!&nbsp; I
+have made my mother promise to come home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Really?&rsquo; said Lilias, &lsquo;she has been coming
+so often.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Aye&mdash;but she is coming this time.&nbsp; She is to
+spend the winter at the castle, and make acquaintance with all
+the neighbourhood.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;His lordship is romancing,&rsquo; said Claude to Lily
+in a confidential tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll punish you for suspecting me of talking
+hyperborean language&mdash;hyperbolical, I mean,&rsquo; cried
+Lord Rotherwood; &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll make you dance the Polka with
+all the beauty and fashion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I shall stay at Oxford till it is over,&rsquo;
+said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You do not know what a treasure you will be,&rsquo;
+said the Marquis, &lsquo;ladies like nothing so well as dancing
+with a fellow twice the height he should be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Beware of putting me forward,&rsquo; said Claude,
+rising, and, as he leant against the chimney-piece, looking down
+from his height of six feet three, with a patronising air upon
+his cousin, &lsquo;I shall be taken for the hero, and you for my
+little brother.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish I was,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;it
+would be much better fun.&nbsp; I should escape the speechifying,
+the worst part of it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;for one whose speeches
+will be scraps of three words each, strung together with the
+burthen of the apprentices&rsquo; song, Radara tadara,
+tandore.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Radaratade,&rsquo; said the Marquis, laughing.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;By the bye, if Eleanor and Frank Hawkesworth manage well,
+they may be here in time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because they are so devoted to gaiety?&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;You will say next that William is coming
+from Canada, on purpose.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That tall captain!&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;He used to be a very awful person.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! he used to keep the spoilt Marquis in order,&rsquo;
+said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To say nothing of the spoilt Claude,&rsquo; returned
+Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude never was spoilt,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was not Eleanor&rsquo;s way,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;At least she cannot be accused of spoiling me,&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;I shall never dare to write at
+that round table again&mdash;her figure will occupy the chair
+like Banquo&rsquo;s ghost, and wave me off with a knitting
+needle.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! that stain of ink was a worse blot on your
+character than on the new table cover,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She was rigidly impartial,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;she made exceptions in
+favour of Ada and me.&nbsp; She left the spoiling of the rest to
+Emily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And well Emily will perform it!&nbsp; A pretty state
+you will be in by the 30th of July, 1846,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why should not Emily make as good a duenna as
+Eleanor?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why should she not?&nbsp; She will not&mdash;that is
+all,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Such slow people you
+all are!&nbsp; You would all go to sleep if I did not sometimes
+rouse you up a little&mdash;grow stagnant.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not an elegant comparison,&rsquo; said Lilias;
+&lsquo;besides, you must remember that your hasty brawling
+streams do not reflect like tranquil lakes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;One of Lily&rsquo;s poetical hits, I declare!&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;but she need not have taken
+offence&mdash;I did not refer to her&mdash;only Claude and Emily,
+and perhaps&mdash;no, I will not say who else.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then, Rotherwood, I will tell you what I am&mdash;the
+Lily that derives all its support from the calm lake.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well done, Lily, worthy of yourself,&rsquo; cried Lord
+Rotherwood, laughing, &lsquo;but you know I am always off when
+you talk poetry.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I suspect it is time for us all to be off,&rsquo; said
+Claude, &lsquo;did I not hear it strike the quarter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And to-morrow I shall be off in earnest,&rsquo; said
+Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;Half way to London before Claude
+has given one turn to &ldquo;his sides, and his shoulders, and
+his heavy head.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Shall we see you at Easter?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, I do not think you will.&nbsp; I am engaged to stay
+with somebody somewhere, I forget the name of place and man;
+besides, Grosvenor Square is more tolerable then than at any
+other time of the year, and I shall spend a fortnight with my
+mother and Florence.&nbsp; It is after Easter that you come to
+Oxford, is it not, Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, my year of idleness will be over.&nbsp; And there
+is the Baron looking at his watch.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The &lsquo;Baron&rsquo; was the title by which the young
+people were wont to distinguish Mr. Mohun, who, as Lily believed,
+had a right to the title of Baron of Beechcroft.&nbsp; It was
+certain that he was the representative of a family which had been
+settled at Beechcroft ever since the Norman Conquest, and Lily
+was very proud of the name of Sir William de Moune in the battle
+roll, and of Sir John among the first Knights of the
+Garter.&nbsp; Her favourite was Sir Maurice, who had held out
+Beechcroft Court for six weeks against the Roundheads, and had
+seen the greater part of the walls battered down.&nbsp; Witnesses
+of the strength of the old castle yet remained in the massive
+walls and broad green ramparts, which enclosed what was now
+orchard and farm-yard, and was called the Old Court, while the
+dwelling-house, built by Sir Maurice after the Restoration, was
+named the New Court.&nbsp; Sir Maurice had lost many an acre in
+the cause of King Charles, and his new mansion was better suited
+to the honest squires who succeeded him, than to the mighty
+barons his ancestors.&nbsp; It was substantial and well built,
+with a square gravelled court in front, and great, solid, folding
+gates opening into a lane, bordered with very tall well-clipped
+holly hedges, forming a polished, green, prickly wall.&nbsp;
+There was a little door in one of these gates, which was scarcely
+ever shut, from whence a well-worn path led to the porch, where
+generally reposed a huge Newfoundland dog, guardian of the hoops
+and walkingsticks that occupied the corners.&nbsp; The front door
+was of heavy substantial oak, studded with nails, and never
+closed in the daytime, and the hall, wainscoted and floored with
+slippery oak, had a noble open fireplace, with a wood fire
+burning on the hearth.</p>
+<p>On the other side of the house was a terrace sloping down to a
+lawn and bowling-green, hedged in by a formal row of
+evergreens.&nbsp; A noble plane-tree was in the middle of the
+lawn, and beyond it a pond renowned for water-lilies.&nbsp; To
+the left was the kitchen garden, terminating in an orchard,
+planted on the ramparts and moat of the Old Court; then came the
+farm buildings, and beyond them a field, sloping upwards to an
+extensive wood called Beechcroft Park.&nbsp; In the wood was the
+cottage of Walter Greenwood, gamekeeper and woodman by hereditary
+succession, but able and willing to turn his hand to anything,
+and, in fact, as Adeline once elegantly termed him, the
+&lsquo;family tee totum.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>To the right of the house there was a field, called Long Acre,
+bounded on the other side by the turnpike road to Raynham, which
+led up the hill to the village green, surrounded by well-kept
+cottages and gardens.&nbsp; The principal part of the village
+was, however, at the foot of the hill, where the Court lane
+crossed the road, led to the old church, the school, and
+parsonage, in its little garden, shut in by thick yew
+hedges.&nbsp; Beyond was the blacksmith&rsquo;s shop, more
+cottages, and Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s wondrous village warehouse;
+and the lane, after passing by the handsome old farmhouse of Mr.
+Harrington, Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s principal tenant, led to a bridge
+across a clear trout stream, the boundary of the parish of
+Beechcroft.</p>
+<h2><a name="page15"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+15</span>CHAPTER III<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE NEW PRINCIPLE</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;And wilt thou show no more, quoth he,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Than doth thy duty bind?<br />
+I well perceive thy love is small.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">On</span> the Sunday evening which
+followed Eleanor&rsquo;s wedding, Lilias was sitting next to
+Emily, and talking in very earnest tones, which after a time
+occasioned Claude to look up and say, &lsquo;What is all this
+about?&nbsp; Something remarkably absurd I suspect.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only a new principle,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;New!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;only what must be the
+feeling of every person of any warmth of character?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now for it then,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Claude, I really mean it (and Lily sincerely
+thought she did).&nbsp; I will not tell you if you are going to
+laugh.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That depends upon what your principle may chance to
+be,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is it, Emily?&nbsp; She
+will be much obliged to you for telling.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She only says she cannot bear people to do their duty,
+and not to act from a feeling of love,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is not fair,&rsquo; returned Lily, &lsquo;all I
+say is, that it is better that people should act upon love for
+its own sake, than upon duty for its own sake.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What comes in rhyme with Lily?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t be tiresome, Claude, I really want you to
+understand me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Wait till you understand yourself,&rsquo; said the
+provoking brother, &lsquo;and let me finish what I am
+reading.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>For about a quarter of an hour he was left in peace, while
+Lily was busily employed with a pencil and paper, under the
+shadow of a book, and at length laid before him the following
+verses:&mdash;</p>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;What is the source of gentleness,<br />
+The spring of human blessedness,<br />
+Bringing the wounded spirit healing,<br />
+The comforts high of heaven revealing,<br />
+The lightener of each daily care,<br />
+The wing of hope, the life of prayer,<br />
+The zest of joy, the balm of sorrow,<br />
+Bliss of to-day, hope of to-morrow,<br />
+The glory of the sun&rsquo;s bright beam,<br />
+The softness of the pale moon stream,<br />
+The flow&rsquo;ret&rsquo;s grace, the river&rsquo;s voice,<br />
+The tune to which the birds rejoice;<br />
+Without it, vain each learned page,<br />
+Cold and unfelt each council sage,<br />
+Heavy and dull each human feature,<br />
+Lifeless and wretched every creature;<br />
+In which alone the glory lies,<br />
+Which value gives to sacrifice?<br />
+&rsquo;Tis that which formed the whole creation,<br />
+Which rests on every generation.<br />
+Of Paradise the only token<br />
+Just left us, &rsquo;mid our treasures broken,<br />
+Which never can from us be riven,<br />
+Sure earnest of the joys of Heaven.<br />
+And which, when earth shall pass away,<br />
+Shall be our rest on the last day,<br />
+When tongues shall fail and knowledge cease,<br />
+And throbbing hearts be all at peace:<br />
+When faith is sight, and hope is sure,<br />
+That which alone shall still endure<br />
+Of earthly joys in heaven above,<br />
+&rsquo;Tis that best gift, eternal Love!&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>&lsquo;What have you there?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, who had
+come towards them while Claude was reading the lines.&nbsp;
+Taking the paper from Claude&rsquo;s hand, he read it to himself,
+and then saying, &lsquo;Tolerable, Lily; there are some things to
+alter, but you may easily make it passable,&rsquo; he went on to
+his own place, leaving Lilias triumphant.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Claude, you see I have the great Baron on my
+side.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am of the Baron&rsquo;s opinion,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;the only wonder is that you doubted it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You seemed to say that love was good for
+nothing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I said nothing but that Lily has a rhyme.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And saying that I was silly, was equivalent to saying
+that love was nothing,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;O Lily, I hope not,&rsquo; said Claude, with a comical
+air.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I know I often am foolish, but not in
+this,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;I do say that mere duty is not
+lovable.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Say it if you will then,&rsquo; said Claude, yawning,
+&lsquo;only let me finish this sermon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily set herself to reconsider some of her lines: but
+presently Emily left the room, Claude looked up, and Lily
+exclaimed, &lsquo;Now, Claude, let us make a trial of
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Claude, yawning again, and looking
+resigned.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Think how Eleanor went on telling us of duty, duty,
+duty&mdash;never making allowances&mdash;never relaxing her stiff
+rules about trifles&mdash;never unbending from her duenna-like
+dignity&mdash;never showing one spark of enthusiasm&mdash;making
+great sacrifices, but only because she thought them her
+duty&mdash;because it was right&mdash;good for herself&mdash;only
+a higher kind of selfishness&mdash;not because her feeling
+prompted her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly, feeling does not usually prompt people to
+give up their lovers for the sake of their brothers and
+sisters.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She did it because it was her duty,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;quite as if she did not care.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wonder whether Frank thought so,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;At any rate you will confess that Emily is a much more
+engaging person,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly, I had rather talk nonsense to her,&rsquo;
+said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You feel it, though you will not allow it,&rsquo; said
+Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now think of Emily&rsquo;s sympathy, and
+gentleness, and sweet smile, and tell me if she is not a complete
+personification of love.&nbsp; And then Eleanor,
+unpoetical&mdash;never thrown off her balance by grief or joy,
+with no ups and downs&mdash;no enthusiasm&mdash;no appreciation
+of the beautiful&mdash;her highest praise &ldquo;very
+right,&rdquo; and tell me if there can be a better image of
+duty.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude might have had some chance of bringing Lily to her
+senses, if he had allowed that there was some truth in what she
+had said; but he thought the accusation so unjust in general,
+that he would not agree to any part of it, and only answered,
+&lsquo;You have very strange views of duty and of
+Eleanor.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well!&rsquo; replied Lily, &lsquo;I only ask you to
+watch; Emily and I are determined to act on the principle of
+love, and you will see if her government is not more successful
+than that of duty.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Such was the principle upon which Lily intended her sister to
+govern the household, and to which Emily listened without knowing
+what she meant much better than she did herself.&nbsp;
+Emily&rsquo;s own views, as far as she possessed any, were to get
+on as smoothly as she could, and make everybody pleased and
+happy, without much trouble to herself, and also to make the
+establishment look a little more as if a Lady Emily had lately
+been its mistress, than had been the case in Eleanor&rsquo;s
+time.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s property was good, but he wished to
+avoid unnecessary display and expense, and he expected his
+daughters to follow out these views, keeping a wise check upon
+Emily, by looking over her accounts every Saturday, and turning a
+deaf ear when she talked of the age of the drawing-room carpet,
+and the ugliness of the old chariot.&nbsp; Emily had a good deal
+on her hands, requiring sense and activity, but Lilias and Jane
+were now quite old enough to assist her.&nbsp; Lily however,
+thought fit to despise all household affairs, and bestowed the
+chief of her attention on her own department&mdash;the village
+school and poor people; and she was also much engrossed by her
+music and drawing, her German and Italian, and her verse
+writing.</p>
+<p>Claude had more power over her than any one else.&nbsp; He was
+a gentle, amiable boy, of high talent, but disposed to indolence
+by ill health.&nbsp; In most matters he was, however, victorious
+over this propensity, which was chiefly visible in his love of
+easy chairs, and his dislike of active sports, which made him the
+especial companion of his sisters.&nbsp; A dangerous illness had
+occasioned his removal from Eton, and he had since been at home,
+reading with his cousin Mr. Devereux, and sharing his
+sisters&rsquo; amusements.</p>
+<p>Jane was in her own estimation an important member of the
+administration, and in fact, was Emily&rsquo;s chief assistant
+and deputy.&nbsp; She was very small and trimly made, everything
+fitted her precisely, and she had tiny dexterous fingers, and
+active little feet, on which she darted about noiselessly and
+swiftly as an arrow; an oval brown face, bright colour, straight
+features, and smooth dark hair, bright sparkling black eyes, a
+little mouth, wearing an arch subdued smile, very white teeth,
+and altogether the air of a woman in miniature.&nbsp; Brisk,
+bold, and blithe&mdash;ever busy and ever restless, she was
+generally known by the names of Brownie and Changeling, which
+were not inappropriate to her active and prying disposition.</p>
+<p>Excepting Claude and Emily, the young party were early risers,
+and Lily especially had generally despatched a good deal of
+business before the eight o&rsquo;clock breakfast.</p>
+<p>At nine they went to church, Mr. Devereux having restored the
+custom of daily service, and after this, Mr. Mohun attended to
+his multitudinous affairs; Claude went to the
+parsonage,&mdash;Emily to the storeroom, Lily to the village, the
+younger girls to the schoolroom, where they were presently joined
+by Emily.&nbsp; Lily remained in her own room till one
+o&rsquo;clock, when she joined the others in the schoolroom, and
+they read aloud some book of history till two, the hour of dinner
+for the younger, and of luncheon for the elder.&nbsp; They then
+went out, and on their return from evening service, which began
+at half-past four, the little ones had their lessons to learn,
+and the others were variously employed till dinner, the time of
+which was rather uncertain but always late.&nbsp; The evening
+passed pleasantly and quickly away in reading, work, music, and
+chatter.</p>
+<p>As Emily had expected, her first troubles were with Phyllis;
+called, not the neat handed, by her sisters; Master Phyl, by her
+brothers; and Miss Tomboy, by the maids.&nbsp; She seemed born to
+be a trial of patience to all concerned with her; yet without
+many actual faults, except giddiness, restlessness, and
+unrestrained spirits.&nbsp; In the drawing-room, schoolroom, and
+nursery she was continually in scrapes, and so often reproved and
+repentant, that her loud roaring fits of crying were amongst the
+ordinary noises of the New Court.&nbsp; She was terribly awkward
+when under constraint, or in learning any female accomplishment,
+but swift and ready when at her ease, and glorying in the boyish
+achievements of leaping ditches and climbing trees.&nbsp; Her
+voice was rather highly pitched, and she had an inveterate habit
+of saying, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,&rsquo; at the
+beginning of all her speeches.&nbsp; She was not tall, but
+strong, square, firm, and active; she had a round merry face, a
+broad forehead, and large bright laughing eyes, of a doubtful
+shade between gray and brown.&nbsp; Her mouth was wide, her nose
+turned up, her complexion healthy, but not rosy, and her stiff
+straight brown hair was more apt to hang over her eyes, than to
+remain in its proper place behind her ears.</p>
+<p>Adeline was very different; her fair and brilliant complexion,
+her deep blue eyes and golden ringlets, made her a very lovely
+little creature; her quietness was a relief after her
+sister&rsquo;s boisterous merriment, and her dislike of dirt and
+brambles, continually contrasted with poor Phyllis&rsquo;s
+recklessness of such impediments.&nbsp; Ada readily learnt
+lessons, which cost Phyllis and her teacher hours of toil; Ada
+worked deftly when Phyllis&rsquo;s stiff fingers never willingly
+touched a needle; Ada played with a doll, drew on scraps of
+paper, or put up dissected maps, while Phyllis was in mischief or
+in the way.&nbsp; A book was the only chance of interesting her;
+but very few books took her fancy enough to occupy her
+long;&mdash;those few, however, she read over and over again, and
+when unusual tranquillity reigned in the drawing-room, she was
+sure to be found curled up at the top of the library steps,
+reading one of three books&mdash;<i>Robinson Crusoe</i>,
+<i>Little Jack</i>, or <i>German Popular Tales</i>.&nbsp; Then
+Emily blamed her ungraceful position, Jane laughed at her uniform
+taste, and Lily proposed some story about modern children, such
+as Phyllis never could like, and the constant speech was
+repeated, &lsquo;Only look at Ada!&rsquo; till Phyllis considered
+her sister as a perfect model, and sighed over her own
+naughtiness.</p>
+<p><i>German Popular Tales</i> were a recent introduction of
+Claude&rsquo;s, for Eleanor had carefully excluded all fairy
+tales from her sisters&rsquo; library; so great was her dread of
+works of fiction, that Emily and Lilias had never been allowed to
+read any of the Waverley Novels, excepting <i>Guy Mannering</i>,
+which their brother Henry had insisted upon reading aloud to them
+the last time he was at home, and that had taken so strong a hold
+on their imagination, that Eleanor was quite alarmed.</p>
+<p>One day Mr. Mohun chanced to refer to some passage in
+<i>Waverley</i>, and on finding that his daughters did not
+understand him, he expressed great surprise at their want of
+taste.</p>
+<p>Poor things,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;they cannot help it;
+do not you know that Eleanor thinks the Waverley Novels a sort of
+slow poison?&nbsp; They know no more of them than their
+outsides.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, the sooner they know the inside the
+better.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then may we really read them, papa?&rsquo; cried
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And welcome,&rsquo; said her father.</p>
+<p>This permission once given, the young ladies had no idea of
+moderation; Lily&rsquo;s heart and soul were wrapped up in
+whatever tale she chanced to be reading&mdash;she talked of
+little else, she neglected her daily occupations, and was in a
+kind of trance for about three weeks.&nbsp; At length she was
+recalled to her senses by her father&rsquo;s asking her why she
+had shown him no drawings lately.&nbsp; Lily hesitated for a
+moment, and then said, &lsquo;Papa, I am sorry I was so
+idle.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;let us be able
+to give a good account of ourselves when Eleanor
+comes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am afraid, papa,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the truth
+is, that my head has been so full of <i>Woodstock</i> for the
+last few days, that I could do nothing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And before that?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;<i>The Bride of Lammermoor</i>.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And last week?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;<i>Waverley</i>.&nbsp; Oh! papa, I am afraid you must
+be very angry with me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Lily, not yet,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I
+do not think you quite knew what an intoxicating draught you had
+got hold of; I should have cautioned you.&nbsp; Your negligence
+has not yet been a serious fault, though remember, that it
+becomes so after warning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I will just finish
+<i>Peveril</i> at once, and get it out of my head, and then read
+no more of the dear books,&rsquo; and she gave a deep sigh.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily would take the temperance pledge, on condition
+that she might finish her bottle at a draught,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.</p>
+<p>Lily laughed, and looked down, feeling quite unable to offer
+to give up <i>Peveril</i> before she had finished it, but her
+father relieved her, by saying in his kind voice, &lsquo;No, no,
+Lily, take my advice, read those books, for most of them are very
+good reading, and very pretty reading, and very useful reading,
+and you can hardly be called a well-educated person if you do not
+know them; but read them only after the duties of the day are
+done&mdash;make them your pleasure, but do not make yourself
+their slave.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily,&rsquo; said Claude the next morning, as he saw
+her prepare her drawing-desk, &lsquo;why are you not reading
+<i>Peveril</i>?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know what papa said yesterday,&rsquo; was the
+answer.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! but I thought your feelings were with poor Julian
+in the Tower,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My feelings prompt me to sacrifice my pleasure in
+reading about him to please papa, after he spoke so
+kindly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If that is always the effect of your principle, I shall
+think better of it,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>Lily, whether from her new principle, or her old habits of
+obedience, never ventured to touch one of her tempters till after
+five o&rsquo;clock, but, as she was a very rapid reader, she
+generally contrived to devour more than a sufficient quantity
+every evening, so that she did not enjoy them as much as she
+would, had she been less voracious in her appetite, and they made
+her complain grievously of the dulness of the latter part of
+Russell&rsquo;s <i>Modern Europe</i>, which was being read in the
+schoolroom, and yawn nearly as much as Phyllis over the
+&lsquo;Pragmatic Sanction.&rsquo;&nbsp; However, when that book
+was concluded, and they began Palgrave&rsquo;s <i>Anglo
+Saxons</i>, Lily was seized within a sudden historical
+fever.&nbsp; She could hardly wait till one o&rsquo;clock, before
+she settled herself at the schoolroom table with her work, and
+summoned every one, however occupied, to listen to the
+reading.</p>
+<h2><a name="page26"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+26</span>CHAPTER IV<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">HONEST PHYL</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Multiplication<br />
+Is a vexation.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was a bright and beautiful
+afternoon in March, the song of the blackbird and thrush, and the
+loud chirp of the titmouse, came merrily through the schoolroom
+window, mixed with the sounds of happy voices in the garden; the
+western sun shone brightly in, and tinged the white wainscoted
+wall with yellow light; the cat sat in the window-seat, winking
+at the sun, and sleepily whisking her tail for the amusement of
+her kitten, which was darting to and fro, and patting her on the
+head, in the hope of rousing her to some more active sport.</p>
+<p>But in the midst of all these joyous sights and sounds, was
+heard a dolorous voice repeating, &lsquo;three and four
+are&mdash;three and four are&mdash;oh dear! they are&mdash;seven,
+no, but I do not think it is a four after all, is it not a
+one?&nbsp; Oh dear!&rsquo;&nbsp; And on the floor lay Phyllis,
+her back to the window, kicking her feet slowly up and down, and
+yawning and groaning over her slate.</p>
+<p>Presently the door opened, and Claude looked in, and very
+nearly departed again instantly, for Phyllis at that moment made
+a horrible squeaking with her slate-pencil, the sound above all
+others that he disliked.&nbsp; He, however, stopped, and asked
+where Emily was.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Out in the garden,&rsquo; answered Phyllis, with a
+tremendous yawn.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What are you doing here, looking so piteous?&rsquo;
+said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My sum,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is this your time of day for arithmetic?&rsquo; asked
+he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;only I had not done it
+by one o&rsquo;clock to-day, and Lily said I must finish after
+learning my lessons for to-morrow, but I do not think I shall
+ever have done, it is so hard.&nbsp; Oh!&rsquo; (another stretch
+and a yawn, verging on a howl), &lsquo;and Jane and Ada are
+sowing the flower-seeds.&nbsp; Oh dear!&nbsp; Oh dear!&rsquo; and
+Phyllis&rsquo;s face contracted, in readiness to cry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And is that the best position for doing sums?&rsquo;
+said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was obliged to lie down here to get out of the way of
+Ada&rsquo;s sum,&rsquo; said Phyllis, getting up.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Get out of the way of Ada&rsquo;s sum?&rsquo; repeated
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, she left it on the table where I was sitting,
+where I could see it, and it is this very one, so I must not look
+at it; I wish I could do sums as fast as she can.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Could you not have turned the other side of the slate
+upwards?&rsquo; said Claude, smiling.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So I could!&rsquo; said Phyllis, as if a new light had
+broken in upon her.&nbsp; &lsquo;But then I wanted to be out of
+sight of pussy, for I could not think a bit, while the kitten was
+at play so prettily, and I kicked my heels to keep from hearing
+the voices in the garden, for it does make me so
+unhappy!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Some good-natured brothers would have told the little girl not
+to mind, and sent her out to enjoy herself, but Claude respected
+Phyllis&rsquo;s honesty too much to do so, and he said,
+&lsquo;Well, Phyl, let me see the sum, and we will try if we
+cannot conquer it between us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis&rsquo;s face cleared up in an instant, as she brought
+the slate to her brother.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is this?&rsquo; said he; &lsquo;I do not
+understand.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Compound Addition,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I did
+one with Emily yesterday, and this is the second.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! these are marks between the pounds, shillings, and
+pence,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I took them for elevens; well,
+I do not wonder at your troubles, I could not do this sum as it
+is set.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Could not you, indeed?&rsquo; cried Phyllis, quite
+delighted.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, indeed,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Suppose we
+set it again, more clearly; but how is this?&nbsp; When I was in
+the schoolroom we always had a sponge fastened to the
+slate.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I had one before
+Eleanor went, but my string broke, and I lost it, and Emily
+always forgets to give me another.&nbsp; I will run and wash the
+slate in the nursery; but how shall we know what the sum
+is?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, I suppose I may look at Ada&rsquo;s slate, though
+you must not,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing to himself at poor
+little honest simplicity, as he applied himself to cut a new
+point to her very stumpy slate-pencil, and she scampered away,
+and returned in a moment with her clean slate.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, how nice and fresh it all looks!&rsquo; said she as
+he set down the clear large figures.&nbsp; &lsquo;I cannot think
+how you can do it so evenly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Phyl, do not let the pencil scream if you can help
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude found that Phyllis&rsquo;s great difficulty was with
+the farthings.&nbsp; She could not understand the fractional
+figures, and only knew thus far, that &lsquo;Emily said it never
+meant four.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude began explaining, but his first attempt was far too
+scientific.&nbsp; Phyllis gave a desponding sigh, looking so
+mystified, that he began to believe that she was hopelessly dull,
+and to repent of having offered to help her; but at last, by
+means of dividing a card into four pieces, he succeeded in making
+her comprehend him, and her eyes grew bright with the pleasure of
+understanding.</p>
+<p>Even then the difficulties were not conquered, her addition
+was very slow, and dividing by twelve and twenty seemed endless
+work; at length the last figure of the pounds was set down, the
+slate was compared with Adeline&rsquo;s, and the sum pronounced
+to be right.&nbsp; Phyllis capered up to the kitten and tossed it
+up in the air in her joy, then coming slowly back to her brother,
+she said with a strange, awkward air, hanging down her head,
+&lsquo;Claude, I&rsquo;ll tell you what&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, what?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should like to kiss you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Then away she bounded, clattered down stairs, and flew across
+the lawn to tell every one she met that Claude had helped her to
+do her sum, and that it was quite right.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you expect that it would be too hard for him,
+Phyl?&rsquo; said Jane, laughing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;but he said he could
+not do it as it was set.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And whose fault was that?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! but he showed me how to set it better,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, &lsquo;and he said that when he learnt the beginning of
+fractions, he thought them as hard as I do.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Fractions!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you do not fancy
+you have come to fractions yet!&nbsp; Fine work you will make of
+them when you do!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>In the evening, as soon as the children were gone to bed, Jane
+took a paper out of her work-basket, saying, &lsquo;There, Emily,
+is my account of Phyl&rsquo;s scrapes through this whole week; I
+told you I should write them all down.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How kind!&rsquo; muttered Claude.</p>
+<p>Regardless of her brother, who had not looked up from his
+book, Jane began reading her list of poor Phyllis&rsquo;s
+misadventures.&nbsp; &lsquo;On Monday she tore her frock by
+climbing a laurel-tree, to look at a blackbird&rsquo;s
+nest.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I gave her leave,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Rachel had ordered her not to climb; and she was crying
+because she could not see the nest that Wat Greenwood had
+found.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;On Tuesday she cried over her French grammar, and tore
+a leaf out of the old spelling-book.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That was nearly out before,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;Maurice and Redgie spoilt that long ago.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know of anything on Wednesday, but on Thursday
+she threw Ada down the steps out of the nursery.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! that accounts for the dreadful screaming that I
+heard,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I forgot to ask the meaning of
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure it was Phyl that was the most dismayed, and
+cried the loudest,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That she always does,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;On
+Friday we had an uproar in the schoolroom about her hemming, and
+on Saturday she tumbled into a wet ditch, and tore her bonnet in
+the brambles; on Sunday, she twisted her ancles together at
+church.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, there I did chance to observe her,&rsquo; said
+Lily, &lsquo;there seemed to be a constant struggle between her
+ancles and herself, they were continually coming lovingly
+together, but were separated the next moment.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And to-day this sum,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;seven
+scrapes in one week!&nbsp; I really am of opinion, as Rachel says
+when she is angry, that school is the best place for
+her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think so too,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;she is very
+troublesome, but&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Claude!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;you do not mean
+that you would have that poor dear merry Master Phyl sent to
+school, she would pine away like a wild bird in a cage; but papa
+will never think of such a thing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If I thought of her being sent to school,&rsquo; said
+Claude, &lsquo;it would be to shield her from&mdash;the rule of
+love.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! you think we are too indulgent,&rsquo; said Emily;
+&lsquo;perhaps we are, but you know we cannot torment a poor
+child all day long.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If you call the way you treat her indulgent, I should
+like to know what you call severe.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What do you mean, Claude?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I call your indulgence something like the tender
+mercies of the wicked,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;On a fine
+day, when every one is taking their pleasure in the garden, to
+shut an unhappy child up in the schoolroom, with a hard sum that
+you have not taken the trouble to teach her how to do, and late
+in the day, when no one&rsquo;s head is clear for difficult
+arithmetic&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Hard sum do you call it?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed I explained it to her,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And well she understood you,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She might have learnt if she had attended,&rsquo; said
+Emily; &lsquo;Ada understood clearly, with the same
+explanation.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And do not you be too proud of the effect of your
+instructions, Claude,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;for when honest
+Phyl came into the garden, she did not know farthings from
+fractions.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And pray, Mrs. Senior Wrangler,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;will you tell me where is the difference between a
+half-penny and half a penny?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a good laugh at Jane&rsquo;s expense, Emily went on,
+&lsquo;Now, Claude, I will tell you how it happened; Phyllis is
+so slow, and dawdles over her lessons so long, that it is quite a
+labour to hear her; Ada is quick enough, but if you were to hear
+Phyllis say one column of spelling, you would know what misery
+is.&nbsp; Then before she has half finished, the clock strikes
+one, it is time to read, and the lessons are put off till the
+afternoon.&nbsp; I certainly did not know that she was about her
+sum all that time, or I would have sent her out as I did on
+Saturday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And the reading at one is as fixed as fate,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, no!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;when we were about old
+&ldquo;Russell,&rdquo; we did not begin till nearly two, but
+since we have been reading this book, Lily will never let us rest
+till we begin; she walks up and down, and hurries and worries
+and&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Emily, in a murmuring voice, &lsquo;we
+should do better if Lily would not make such a point of that one
+thing; but she never minds what else is cut short, and she never
+thinks of helping me.&nbsp; It never seems to enter her head how
+much I have on my hands, and no one does anything to help
+me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Emily! you never asked me,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I knew you would not like it,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;No, it is not my way to complain, people may see how to
+help me if they choose to do it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily, Lily, take care,&rsquo; said Claude, in a low
+voice; &lsquo;is not the rule you admire, the rule of love of
+yourself?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Claude!&rsquo; returned Lily, &lsquo;do not say so,
+you know it was Emily that I called an example of it, not myself,
+and see how forbearing she has been.&nbsp; Now I see that I am
+really wanted, I will help.&nbsp; It must be love, not duty, that
+calls me to the schoolroom, for no one ever said that was my
+province.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Poor duty! you give it a very narrow
+boundary.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias, who, to say the truth, had been made more careful of
+her own conduct, by the wish to establish her principle, really
+betook herself to the schoolroom for an hour every morning, with
+a desire to be useful.&nbsp; She thought she did great things in
+undertaking those tasks of Phyllis&rsquo;s which Emily most
+disliked.&nbsp; But Lilias was neither patient nor humble enough
+to be a good teacher, though she could explain difficult rules in
+a sensible way.&nbsp; She could not, or would not, understand the
+difference between dulness and inattention; her sharp hasty
+manner would frighten away all her pupil&rsquo;s powers of
+comprehension; she sometimes fell into the great error of
+scolding, when Phyllis was doing her best, and the poor
+child&rsquo;s tears flowed more frequently than ever.</p>
+<p>Emily&rsquo;s gentle manner made her instructions far more
+agreeable, though she was often neither clear nor correct in her
+explanations; she was contented if the lessons were droned
+through in any manner, so long as she could say they were done;
+she disliked a disturbance, and overlooked or half corrected
+mistakes rather than cause a cry.&nbsp; Phyllis naturally
+preferred being taught by her, and Lily was vexed and unwilling
+to persevere.&nbsp; She went to the schoolroom expecting to be
+annoyed, created vexation for herself, and taught in anything but
+a loving spirit.&nbsp; Still, however, the thought of Claude, and
+the wish to do more than her duty, kept her constant to her
+promise, and her love of seeing things well done was useful,
+though sadly counterbalanced by her deficiency in temper and
+patience.</p>
+<h2><a name="page35"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+35</span>CHAPTER V<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">VILLAGE GOSSIP</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;The deeds we do, the words we say,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Into still air they seem to fleet;<br />
+We count them past,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; But they shall last.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Soon</span> after Easter, Claude went to
+Oxford.&nbsp; He was much missed by his sisters, who wanted him
+to carve for them at luncheon, to escort them when they rode or
+walked, to hear their music, talk over their books, advise
+respecting their drawings, and criticise Lily&rsquo;s
+verses.&nbsp; A new subject of interest was, however, arising for
+them in the neighbours who were shortly expected to arrive at
+Broom Hill, a house which had lately been built in a hamlet about
+a mile and a half from the New Court.</p>
+<p>These new comers were the family of a barrister of the name of
+Weston, who had taken the house for the sake of his wife, her
+health having been much injured by her grief at the loss of two
+daughters in the scarlet fever.&nbsp; Two still remained, a
+grown-up young lady, and a girl of eleven years old, and the Miss
+Mohuns learnt with great delight that they should have near
+neighbours of their own age.&nbsp; They had never had any young
+companions as young ladies were scarce among their acquaintance,
+and they had not seen their cousin, Lady Florence Devereux, since
+they were children.</p>
+<p>It was with great satisfaction that Emily and Lilias set out
+with their father to make the first visit, and they augured well
+from their first sight of Mrs. Weston and her daughters.&nbsp;
+Mrs. Weston was alone, her daughters being out walking, and Lily
+spent the greater part of the visit in silence, though her mind
+was made up in the first ten minutes, as she told Emily on
+leaving the house, &lsquo;that Miss Weston&rsquo;s tastes were in
+complete accordance with her own.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rapid judgment,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Love
+before first sight.&nbsp; But Mrs. Weston is a very sweet
+person.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And, Emily, did you see the music-book open at
+&ldquo;Angels ever bright and fair?&rdquo;&nbsp; If Miss Weston
+sings that as I imagine it!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How could you see what was in the music-book at the
+other end of the room?&nbsp; I only saw it was a beautiful
+piano.&nbsp; And what handsome furniture! it made me doubly
+ashamed of our faded carpet and chairs, almost as old as the
+house itself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily!&rsquo; said Lily, in her most earnest tones,
+&lsquo;I would not change one of those dear old chairs for a
+king&rsquo;s ransom!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The visit was in a short time returned, and though it was but
+a formal morning call, Lilias found her bright expectations
+realised by the sweetness of Alethea Weston&rsquo;s manners, and
+the next time they met it was a determined thing in her mind
+that, as Claude would have said, they had sworn an eternal
+friendship.</p>
+<p>She had the pleasure of lionising the two sisters over the Old
+Court, telling all she knew and all she imagined about the siege,
+Sir Maurice Mohun, and his faithful servant, Walter
+Greenwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;Miss Weston,&rsquo; said she in
+conclusion, &lsquo;have you read <i>Old Mortality</i>?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Alethea, amused at the question.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because they say I am as bad as Lady Margaret about the
+king&rsquo;s visit.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have not heard the story often enough to think
+so,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, &lsquo;I will warn you if I
+do.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>In the meantime Phyllis and Adeline were equally charmed with
+Marianne, though shocked at her ignorance of country manners,
+and, indeed, Alethea was quite diverted with Lily&rsquo;s pity at
+the discovery that she had never before been in the country in
+the spring.&nbsp; &lsquo;What,&rsquo; she cried, &lsquo;have you
+never seen the tufts of red on the hazel, nor the fragrant golden
+palms, and never heard the blackbird rush twittering out of the
+hedge, nor the first nightingale&rsquo;s note, nor the
+nightjar&rsquo;s low chirr, nor the chattering of the
+rooks?&nbsp; O what a store of sweet memories you have
+lost!&nbsp; Why, how can you understand the beginning of the
+Allegro?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Both the Miss Westons had so much pleasure in making
+acquaintance with &lsquo;these delights,&rsquo; as quite to
+compensate for their former ignorance, and soon the New Court
+rang with their praises.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun thought very highly of
+the whole family, and rejoiced in such society for his daughters,
+and they speedily became so well acquainted, that it was the
+ordinary custom of the Westons to take luncheon at the New Court
+on Sunday.&nbsp; On her side, however, Alethea Weston felt some
+reluctance to become intimate with the young ladies of the New
+Court.&nbsp; She was pleased with Emily&rsquo;s manners,
+interested by Lily&rsquo;s earnestness and simplicity, and
+thought Jane a clever and amusing little creature, but even their
+engaging qualities gave her pain, by reminding her of the sisters
+she had lost, or by making her think how they would have liked
+them.&nbsp; A country house and neighbours like these had been
+the objects of many visions of their childhood, and now all the
+sweet sights and sounds around her only made her think how she
+should have enjoyed them a year ago.&nbsp; She felt almost
+jealous of Marianne&rsquo;s liking for her new friends, lest they
+should steal her heart from Emma and Lucy; but knowing that these
+were morbid and unthankful feelings, she struggled against them,
+and though she missed her sisters even more than when her mother
+and Marianne were in greater need of her attention, she let no
+sign of her sorrowful feeling appear, and seeing that Marianne
+was benefited in health and spirits, by intercourse with young
+companions, she gave no hint of her disinclination to join in the
+walks and other amusements of the Miss Mohuns.</p>
+<p>She also began to take interest in the poor people.&nbsp; By
+Mrs. Weston&rsquo;s request, Mr. Devereux had pointed out the
+families which were most in need of assistance, and Alethea made
+it her business to find out the best way of helping them.&nbsp;
+She visited the village school with Lilias, and when requested by
+her and by the Rector to give her aid in teaching, she did not
+like to refuse what might be a duty, though she felt very
+diffident of her powers of instruction.&nbsp; Marianne, like
+Phyllis and Adeline, became a Sunday scholar, and was catechised
+with the others in church.&nbsp; Both Mr. Mohun and his nephew
+thought very highly of the family, and the latter was
+particularly glad that Lily should have some older person to
+assist her in those parish matters which he left partly in her
+charge.</p>
+<p>Mr. Devereux had been Rector of Beechcroft about a year and a
+half, and had hitherto been much liked.&nbsp; His parishioners
+had known him from a boy, and were interested about him, and
+though very young, there was something about him that gained
+their respect.&nbsp; Almost all his plans were going on well, and
+things were, on the whole, in a satisfactory state, though no one
+but Lilias expected even Cousin Robert to make a Dreamland of
+Beechcroft, and there were days when he looked worn and anxious,
+and the girls suspected that some one was behaving ill.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you a headache, Robert?&rsquo; asked Emily, a few
+evenings before Whit-Sunday, &lsquo;you have not spoken three
+words this evening.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not at all, thank you,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux,
+smiling, &lsquo;you need not think to make me your victim, now
+you have no Claude to nurse.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then if it is not bodily, it is mental,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am in a difficulty about the christening of Mrs.
+Naylor&rsquo;s child.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Naylor the blacksmith?&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+thought it was high time for it to be christened.&nbsp; It must
+be six weeks old.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is it not to be on Whit-Sunday?&rsquo; said Lily,
+disconsolately.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh no!&nbsp; Mrs. Naylor will not hear of bringing the
+child on a Sunday, and I could hardly make her think it possible
+to bring it on Whit-Tuesday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why did you not insist?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps I might, if there was no other holy day at
+hand, or if there was not another difficulty, a point on which I
+cannot give way.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! the godfathers and godmothers,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;does she want that charming brother of hers, Edward
+Gage?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, and what is worse, Edward Gage&rsquo;s dissenting
+wife, and Dick Rodd, who shows less sense of religion than any
+one in the parish, and has never been confirmed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Could you make them hear reason?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They were inclined to be rather impertinent,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;Old Mrs. Gage&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; interrupted Jane, &lsquo;there is no hope
+for you if the sour Gage is in the pie.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The sour Gage told me people were not so particular in
+her younger days, and perhaps they should not have the child
+christened at all, since I was such a <i>contrary</i>
+gentleman.&nbsp; Tom Naylor was not at home, I am to see him
+to-morrow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I do not think Tom Naylor is as bad as the
+rest,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;he would have been tolerable, if
+he had married any one but Martha Gage.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, he is an open good-natured fellow, and I have
+hopes of making an impression on him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I hope papa will take
+away his custom.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, who always heard any
+mention of himself.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux repeated his history, and
+discussed the matter with his uncle, only once interrupted by an
+inquiry from Jane about the child&rsquo;s name, a point on which
+she could gain no intelligence.&nbsp; His report the next day was
+not decidedly unfavourable, though he scarcely hoped the
+christening would be so soon as Tuesday.&nbsp; He had not seen
+the father, and suspected he had purposely kept out of the
+way.</p>
+<p>Jane, disappointed that the baby&rsquo;s name remained a
+mystery, resolved to set out on a voyage of discovery.&nbsp;
+Accordingly, as soon as her cousin was gone, she asked Emily if
+she had not been saying that Ada wanted some more cotton for her
+sampler.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but I am not going to
+walk all the way to Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s this
+afternoon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Shall I go?&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ada, run and
+fetch your pattern.&rsquo;&nbsp; Emily and Ada were much obliged
+by Jane&rsquo;s disinterested offer, and in a quarter of an hour
+Ada&rsquo;s thoughts and hands were busy in Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s
+drawer of many-coloured cotton.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What a pity this is about Mrs. Naylor&rsquo;s
+baby,&rsquo; began Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is a sad story indeed, Miss Jane, I am sure it must
+be grievous to Mr. Devereux,&rsquo; said Mrs. Appleton.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Betsy Wall said he had been there three times about
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! we all know that Walls have ears,&rsquo; said Jane;
+&lsquo;how that Betsy does run about gossiping!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss Jane, there she bides all day long at the
+stile gaping; not a stitch does she do for her mother; I cannot
+tell what is to be the end of it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And do you know what the child&rsquo;s name is to be,
+Mrs. Appleton?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Miss Jane,&rsquo; answered Mrs. Appleton.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Betsy did say they talked of naming him after his uncle,
+Edward Gage, only Mr. Devereux would not let him
+stand.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Since he married
+that dissenting wife he never comes near the church; he is too
+much like the sour Gage, as we call his mother, to be good for
+much.&nbsp; But, after all, he is not so bad as Dick Rodd, who
+has never been confirmed, and has never shown any sense of
+religion in his life.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss, Dick Rodd is a sad fellow: did you hear what
+a row there was at the Mohun Arms last week, Miss
+Jane?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Aye,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;and papa says he shall
+certainly turn Dick Rodd out of the house as soon as the lease is
+out, and it is only till next Michaelmas
+twelve-months.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss, as I said to Betsy Wall, it would be more
+for their interest to behave well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed it would,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Robert
+and papa were talking of having their horses shod at Stoney
+Bridge, if Tom Naylor will be so obstinate, only papa does not
+like to give Tom up if he can help it, because his father was so
+good, and Tom would not be half so bad if he had not married one
+of the Gages.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Here is Cousin Robert coming down the lane,&rsquo; said
+Ada, who had chosen her cotton, and was gazing from the
+door.&nbsp; Jane gave a violent start, took a hurried leave of
+Mrs. Appleton, and set out towards home; she could not avoid
+meeting her cousin.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Jenny! have you been enjoying a gossip with your
+great ally?&rsquo; said he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We have only been buying pink cotton,&rsquo; said Ada,
+whose conscience was clear.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;Beechcroft affairs
+would soon stand still, without those useful people, Mrs.
+Appleton, Miss Wall, and Miss Jane Mohun,&rsquo; and he passed
+on.&nbsp; Jane felt her face colouring, his freedom from
+suspicion made her feel very guilty, but the matter soon passed
+out of her mind.</p>
+<p>Blithe Whit-Sunday came, the five Miss Mohuns appeared in
+white frocks, new bonnets were plenty, the white tippets of the
+children, and the bright shawls of the mothers, made the village
+look gay; Wat Greenwood stuck a pink between his lips, and the
+green boughs of hazel and birch decked the dark oak carvings in
+the church.</p>
+<p>And Whit-Monday came.&nbsp; At half-past ten the rude music of
+the band of the Friendly Society came pealing from the top of the
+hill, then appeared two tall flags, crowned with guelder roses
+and peonies, then the great blue drum, the clarionet blown by
+red-waist-coated and red-faced Mr. Appleton, the three flutes and
+the triangle, all at their loudest, causing some of the
+spectators to start, and others to dance.&nbsp; Then behold the
+whole procession of labourers, in white round frocks, blue
+ribbons in their hats, and tall blue staves in their hands.&nbsp;
+In the rear, the confused mob, women and children, cheerful faces
+and mirthful sounds everywhere.&nbsp; These were hushed as the
+flags were lowered to pass under the low-roofed gateway of the
+churchyard, and all was still, except the trampling of feet on
+the stone floor.&nbsp; Then the service began, the responses were
+made in full and hearty tones, almost running into a chant, the
+old 133rd Psalm was sung as loudly and as badly as usual, a very
+short but very earnest sermon was preached, and forth came the
+troop again.</p>
+<p>Mr. Devereux always dined with the club in a tent, at the top
+of the hill, but his uncle made him promise to come to a second
+dinner at the New Court in the evening.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Robert looks anxious,&rsquo; said Lily, as she parted
+with him after the evening service; &lsquo;I am afraid something
+is going wrong.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Trust me for finding out what it is,&rsquo; said
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Jenny, do not ask him,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;if he tells us to relieve his mind, I am very glad he
+should make friends of us, but do not ask.&nbsp; Let us talk of
+other things to put it out of his head, whatever it may
+be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane soon heard more of the cause of the depression of her
+cousin&rsquo;s spirits than even she had any desire to do.&nbsp;
+After dinner, the girls were walking in the garden, enjoying the
+warmth of the evening, when Mr. Devereux came up to her and drew
+her aside from the rest, telling her that he wished to speak to
+her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;when am I to meet you at
+school again?&nbsp; You never told me which chapter I was to
+prepare; I cannot think what would become of your examinations if
+it was not for me, you could not get an answer to one question in
+three.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That was not what I wished to speak to you
+about,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;What had you been
+saying to Mrs. Appleton when I met you at her door on
+Saturday?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The colour rushed into Jane&rsquo;s cheeks, but she replied
+without hesitation, &lsquo;Oh! different things, <i>La pluie et
+le beau temps</i>, just as usual.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Cannot you remember anything more
+distinctly?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I always make a point of forgetting what I talk
+about,&rsquo; said Jane, trying to laugh.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Jane, let me tell you what has happened in the
+village&mdash;as I came down the hill from the
+club-dinner&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh,&rsquo; said Jane, hoping to make a diversion,
+&lsquo;Wat Greenwood came back about a quarter of an hour ago,
+and he&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Devereux proceeded without attending to her, &lsquo;As I
+came down the hill from the club-dinner, old Mrs. Gage came out
+of Naylor&rsquo;s house, and her daughter with her, in great
+anger, calling me to account for having spoken of her in a most
+unbecoming way, calling her the sour Gage, and trying to set the
+Squire against them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, that abominable chattering woman!&rsquo; Jane
+exclaimed; &lsquo;and Betsy Wall too, I saw her all alive about
+something.&nbsp; What a nuisance such people are!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In short,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I heard an
+exaggerated account of all that passed here on the subject the
+other day.&nbsp; Now, Jane, am I doing you any injustice in
+thinking that it must have been through you that this history
+went abroad into the village?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I am sure you never told
+us that it was any secret.&nbsp; When a story is openly told to
+half a dozen people they cannot be expected to keep it to
+themselves.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I spoke uncharitably and incautiously,&rsquo; said he,
+&lsquo;I am willing to confess, but it is nevertheless my duty to
+set before you the great matter that this little fire has
+kindled.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, it cannot have done any great harm, can it?&rsquo;
+asked Jane, the agitation of her voice and laugh betraying that
+she was not quite so careless as she wished to appear.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Only the sour Gage will ferment a little.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Jane!&nbsp; I did not expect that you would treat
+this matter so lightly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But tell me, what harm has it done?&rsquo; asked
+she.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you consider it nothing that the poor child should
+remain unbaptized, that discord should be brought into the
+parish, that anger should be on the conscience of your neighbour,
+that he should be driven from the church?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is it as bad as that?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We do not yet see the full extent of the mischief our
+idle words may have done,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But it is their own fault, if they will do
+wrong,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;they ought not to be in a rage,
+we said nothing but the truth.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish I was clear of the sin,&rsquo; said her
+cousin.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And after all,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I cannot see
+that I was much to blame; I only talked to Mrs. Appleton, as I
+have done scores of times, and no one minded it.&nbsp; You only
+laughed at me on Saturday, and papa and Eleanor never scolded
+me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You cannot say that no one has ever tried to check
+you,&rsquo; said the Rector.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And how was I to know that that mischief-maker would
+repeat it?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not mean to say,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux,
+&lsquo;that you actually committed a greater sin than you may
+often have done, by talking in a way which you knew would
+displease your father.&nbsp; I know we are too apt to treat
+lightly the beginnings of evil, until some sudden sting makes us
+feel what a serpent we have been fostering.&nbsp; Think this a
+warning, pray that the evil we dread may be averted; but should
+it ensue, consider it as a punishment sent in mercy.&nbsp; It
+will be better for you not to come to school to-morrow; instead
+of the references you were to have looked out, I had rather you
+read over in a humble spirit the Epistle of St. James.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane&rsquo;s tears by this time were flowing fast, and finding
+that she no longer attempted to defend herself, her cousin said
+no more.&nbsp; He joined the others, and Jane, escaping to her
+own room, gave way to a passionate fit of crying.&nbsp; Whether
+her tears were of true sorrow or of anger she could not have told
+herself; she was still sobbing on her bed when the darkness came
+on, and her two little sisters came in on their way to bed to
+wish her good-night.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Jane, Jane! what is the matter? have you been
+naughty?&rsquo; asked the little girls in great amazement.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; said Jane, shortly;
+&lsquo;good-night,&rsquo; and she sat up and wiped away her
+tears.&nbsp; The children still lingered.&nbsp; &lsquo;Go away,
+do,&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;Is Robert gone?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;he is reading the
+newspaper.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis and Adeline left the room, and Jane walked up and
+down, considering whether she should venture to go down to tea;
+perhaps her cousin had waited till the little girls had gone
+before he spoke to Mr. Mohun, or perhaps her red eyes might cause
+questions on her troubles; she was still in doubt when Lily
+opened the door, a lamp in her hand.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My dear Jenny, are you here?&nbsp; Ada told me you were
+crying, what is the matter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you have not heard?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only Robert began just now, &ldquo;Poor Jenny, she has
+been the cause of getting us into a very awkward scrape,&rdquo;
+but then Ada came to tell me about you, and I came
+away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, angrily, &lsquo;he will throw
+all the blame upon me, when I am sure it was quite as much the
+fault of that horrible Mrs. Appleton, and papa will be as angry
+as possible.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But what has happened?&rsquo; asked Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! that chatterer, that worst of gossipers, has gone
+and told the Naylors and Mrs. Gage all we said about them the
+other day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So you told Mrs. Appleton?&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;so
+that was the reason you were so obliging about the marking
+thread.&nbsp; Oh, Jane, you had better say no more about Mrs.
+Appleton!&nbsp; And has it done much mischief?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Mrs. Gage &ldquo;pitched&rdquo; into Robert,
+as Wat Greenwood would say, and the christening is off
+again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Jane, this is frightful,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;I do
+not wonder that you are unhappy.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I daresay it will all come right again,&rsquo;
+said Jane; &lsquo;there will only be a little delay, papa and
+Robert will bring them to their senses in time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Suppose the baby was to die,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, it will not die,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;a great
+fat healthy thing like that likely to die indeed!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot make you out, Jane,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;If I had done such a thing, I do not think I could have a
+happy minute till it was set right.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I told you I was very sorry,&rsquo; said Jane,
+&lsquo;only I wish they would not all be so hard upon me.&nbsp;
+Robert owns that he should not have said such things if he did
+not wish them to be repeated.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Does he?&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;How exactly
+like Robert that is, to own himself in fault when he is obliged
+to blame others.&nbsp; Jane, how could you hear him say such
+things and not be overcome with shame?&nbsp; And then to turn it
+against him!&nbsp; Oh, Jane, I do not think I can talk to you any
+more.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not mean to say it was not very good of
+him,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Good of him&mdash;what a word!&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Well, good-night, I cannot bear to talk to you now.&nbsp;
+Shall I say anything for you downstairs?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, tell papa and Robert I am very sorry,&rsquo; said
+Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;I shall not come down again, you may leave the
+lamp.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>On her way downstairs in the dark Lilias was led, by the
+example of her cousin, to reflect that she was not without some
+share in the mischief that had been done; the words which report
+imputed to Mr. Devereux were mostly her own or
+Jane&rsquo;s.&nbsp; There was no want of candour in Lily, and as
+soon as she entered the drawing-room she went straight up to her
+father and cousin, and began, &lsquo;Poor Jenny is very unhappy;
+she desired me to tell you how sorry she is.&nbsp; But I really
+believe that I did the mischief, Robert.&nbsp; It was I who said
+those foolish things that were repeated as if you had said
+them.&nbsp; It is a grievous affair, but who could have thought
+that we were doing so much harm?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps it may not do any,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;The Naylors have a great deal of good about
+them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They must have more than I suppose, if they can endure
+what Robert is reported to have said of them,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What did you say, Robert,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;did
+you not tell them all was said by your foolish young
+cousins?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I agreed with you too much to venture on contradicting
+the report; you know I could not even deny having called Mrs.
+Gage by that name.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, if I could do anything to mend it!&rsquo; cried
+Lily.</p>
+<p>But wishes had no effect.&nbsp; Lilias and Jane had to mourn
+over the full extent of harm done by hasty words.&nbsp; After the
+more respectable men had left the Mohun Arms on the evening of
+Whit-Monday, the rest gave way to unrestrained drunkenness, not
+so much out of reckless self-indulgence, as to defy the clergyman
+and the squire.&nbsp; They came to the front of the parsonage,
+yelled and groaned for some time, and ended by breaking down the
+gate.</p>
+<p>This conduct was repeated on Tuesday, and on many Saturdays
+following; some young trees in the churchyard were cut, and abuse
+of the parson written on the walls the idle young men taking this
+opportunity to revenge their own quarrels, caused by Mr.
+Devereux&rsquo;s former efforts for their reformation.</p>
+<p>On Sunday several children were absent from school; all those
+belonging to Farmer Gage&rsquo;s labourers were taken away, and
+one man was turned off by the farmers for refusing to remove his
+child.</p>
+<p>Now that the war was carried on so openly, Mr. Mohun
+considered it his duty to withdraw his custom from one who chose
+to set his pastor at defiance.&nbsp; He went to the forge, and
+had a long conversation with the blacksmith, but though he was
+listened to with respect, it was not easy to make much impression
+on an ignorant, hot-tempered man, who had been greatly offended,
+and prided himself on showing that he would support the quarrel
+of his wife and her relations against both squire and parson; and
+though Mr. Mohun did persuade him to own that it was wrong to be
+at war with the clergyman, the effect of his arguments was soon
+done away with by the Gages, and no ground was gained.</p>
+<p>Mr. Gage&rsquo;s farm was unhappily at no great distance from
+a dissenting chapel and school, in the adjoining parish of Stoney
+Bridge, and thither the farmer and blacksmith betook themselves,
+with many of the cottagers of Broom Hill.</p>
+<p>One alone of the family of Tom Naylor refused to join him in
+his dissent, and that was his sister, Mrs. Eden, a widow, with
+one little girl about seven years old, who, though in great
+measure dependent upon him for subsistence, knew her duty too
+well to desert the church, or to take her child from school, and
+continued her even course, toiling hard for bread, and
+uncomplaining, though often munch distressed.&nbsp; All the rest
+of the parish who were not immediately under Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s
+influence were in a sad state of confusion.</p>
+<p>Jane was grieved at heart, but would not confess it, and
+Lilias was so restless and unhappy, that Emily was quite weary of
+her lamentations.&nbsp; Her best comforter was Miss Weston, who
+patiently listened to her, sighed with her over the evident
+sorrow of the Rector, and the mischief in the parish, and proved
+herself a true friend, by never attempting to extenuate her
+fault.</p>
+<h2><a name="page52"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+52</span>CHAPTER VI<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE NEW FRIEND</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Maidens should be mild and meek,<br />
+Swift to hear, and slow to speak.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Miss Weston</span> had been much
+interested by what she heard respecting Mrs. Eden, and gladly
+discovered that she was just the person who could assist in some
+needlework which was required at Broom Hill.&nbsp; She asked
+Lilias to tell her where to find her cottage, and Lily replied by
+an offer to show her the way; Miss Weston hesitated, thinking
+that perhaps in the present state of things Lily had rather not
+see her; but her doubts were quickly removed by this speech,
+&lsquo;I want to see her particularly.&nbsp; I have been there
+three times without finding her.&nbsp; I think I can set this
+terrible matter right by speaking to her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Accordingly, Lilias and Phyllis set out with Alethea and
+Marianne one afternoon to Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s cottage, which stood
+at the edge of a long field at the top of the hill.&nbsp; Very
+fast did Lily talk all the way, but she grew more silent as she
+came to the cottage, and knocked at the door; it was opened by
+Mrs. Eden herself, a pale, but rather pretty young woman, with a
+remarkable gentle and pleasing face, and a manner which was
+almost ladylike, although her hands were freshly taken out of the
+wash-tub.&nbsp; She curtsied low, and coloured at the sight of
+Lilias, set chairs for the visitors, and then returned to her
+work.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Mrs. Eden,&rsquo; Lily began, intending to make her
+explanation, but feeling confused, thought it better to wait till
+her friend&rsquo;s business was settled, and altered her speech
+into &lsquo;Miss Weston is come to speak to you about some
+work.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mrs. Eden looked quite relieved, and Alethea proceeded to
+appoint the day for her coming to Broom Hill, and arrange some
+small matters, during which Lily not only settled what to say,
+but worked herself into a fit of impatience at the length of
+Alethea&rsquo;s instructions.&nbsp; When they were concluded,
+however, and there was a pause, her words failed her, and she
+wished that she was miles from the cottage, or that she had never
+mentioned her intentions.&nbsp; At last she stammered out,
+&lsquo;Oh! Mrs. Eden&mdash;I wanted to speak to you
+about&mdash;about Mr. Devereux and your brother.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mrs. Eden bent over her wash-tub, Miss Weston examined the
+shells on the chimney-piece, Marianne and Phyllis listened with
+all their ears, and poor Lily was exceedingly uncomfortable.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wished to tell you&mdash;I do not think&mdash;I do
+not mean&mdash;It was not his saying.&nbsp; Indeed, he did not
+say those things about the Gages.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I told my brother I did not think Mr. Devereux would go
+for to say such a thing,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden, as much confused
+as Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! that was right, Mrs. Eden.&nbsp; The mischief was
+all my making and Jane&rsquo;s.&nbsp; We said those foolish
+things, and they were repeated as if it was he.&nbsp; Oh! do tell
+your brother so, Mrs. Eden.&nbsp; It was very good of you to
+think it was not Cousin Robert.&nbsp; Pray tell Tom Naylor.&nbsp;
+I cannot bear that things should go on in this dreadful
+way.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, Miss, I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Mrs.
+Eden.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Mrs Eden, I am sure that would set it right
+again,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;are not you?&nbsp; I would do
+anything to have that poor baby christened.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily&rsquo;s confidence melted away as she saw that Mrs.
+Eden&rsquo;s tears were falling fast, and she ended with,
+&lsquo;Only tell them, and we shall see what will
+happen.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very well, Miss Lilias,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I am very sorry.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let us hope that time and patience will set things
+right,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, to relieve the embarrassment of
+both parties.&nbsp; &lsquo;Your brother must soon see that Mr.
+Devereux only wishes to do his duty.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea skilfully covered Lily&rsquo;s retreat, and the party
+took leave of Mrs. Eden, and turned into their homeward path.</p>
+<p>Lily at first seemed disposed to be silent, and Miss Weston
+therefore amused herself with listening to the chatter of the
+little girls as they walked on before them.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There are only thirty-six days to the holidays,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis; &lsquo;Ada and I keep a paper in the nursery with
+the account of the number of days.&nbsp; We shall be so glad when
+Claude, and Maurice, and Redgie come home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are they not very boisterous?&rsquo; said Marianne.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not Maurice,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, indeed,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;Maurice is like
+nobody else.&nbsp; He takes up some scientific pursuit each time
+he comes home, and cares for nothing else for some time, and then
+quite forgets it.&nbsp; He is an odd-looking boy too, thick and
+sturdy, with light flaxen hair, and dark, overhanging eyebrows,
+and he makes the most extraordinary grimaces.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And Reginald?&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Redgie is a noble-looking fellow.&nbsp; But just
+eleven, and taller than Jane.&nbsp; His complexion so fair, yet
+fresh and boyish, and his eyes that beautiful blue that
+Ada&rsquo;s are&mdash;real blue.&nbsp; Then his hair, in dark
+brown waves, with a rich auburn shine.&nbsp; The old knights must
+have been just like Redgie.&nbsp; And Claude&mdash;Oh! Miss
+Weston, have you ever seen Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, but I have seen your eldest brother.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;William?&nbsp; Why, he has been in Canada these three
+years.&nbsp; Where could you have seen him?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;At Brighton, about four years ago.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! the year before he went.&nbsp; I remember that his
+regiment was there.&nbsp; Well, it is curious that you should
+know him; and did you ever hear of Harry, the brother that we
+lost?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I remember Captain Mohun&rsquo;s being called away to
+Oxford by his illness,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah, yes!&nbsp; William was the only one of us who was
+with him, even papa was not there.&nbsp; His illness was so
+short.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;I think it was on a
+Tuesday that Captain Mohun left Brighton, and we saw his death in
+the paper on Saturday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;William only arrived the evening that he died.&nbsp;
+Papa was gone to Ireland to see about Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+property.&nbsp; Robert, not knowing that, wrote to him at
+Beechcroft; Eleanor forwarded the letter without opening it, and
+so we knew nothing till Robert came to tell us that all was
+over.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Without any preparation?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With none.&nbsp; Harry had left home about ten days
+before, quite well, and looking so handsome.&nbsp; You know what
+a fine-looking person William is.&nbsp; Well, Harry was very like
+him, only not so tall and strong, with the same clear hazel eyes,
+and more pink in his cheeks&mdash;fairer altogether.&nbsp; Then
+Harry wrote, saying that he had caught one of his bad
+colds.&nbsp; We did not think much of it, for he was always
+having coughs.&nbsp; We heard no more for a week, and then one
+morning Eleanor was sent for out of the schoolroom, and there was
+Robert come to tell us.&nbsp; Oh! it was such a
+thunderbolt.&nbsp; This was what did the mischief.&nbsp; You know
+papa and mamma being from home so long, the elder boys had no
+settled place for the holidays; sometimes they stayed with one
+friend, sometimes with another, and so no one saw enough of them
+to find out how delicate poor Harry really was.&nbsp; I think
+papa had been anxious the only winter they were at home together,
+and Harry had been talked to and advised to take care; but in the
+summer and autumn he was well, and did not think about it.&nbsp;
+He went to Oxford by the coach&mdash;it was a bitterly cold
+frosty day&mdash;there was a poor woman outside, shivering and
+looking very ill, and Harry changed places with her.&nbsp; He was
+horribly chilled, but thinking he had only a common cold, he took
+no care.&nbsp; Robert, coming to Oxford about a week after, found
+him very ill, and wrote to papa and William, but William scarcely
+came in time.&nbsp; Harry just knew him, and that was all.&nbsp;
+He could not speak, and died that night.&nbsp; Then William
+stayed at Oxford to receive papa, and Robert came to tell
+us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It must have been a terrible shock.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Such a loss&mdash;he was so very good and clever.&nbsp;
+Every one looked up to him&mdash;William almost as much as the
+younger ones.&nbsp; He never was in any scrape, had all sorts of
+prizes at Eton, besides getting his scholarship before he was
+seventeen.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Whenever Lily could get Miss Weston alone, it was her way to
+talk in this manner.&nbsp; She loved the sound of her own voice
+so well, that she was never better satisfied than when engrossing
+the whole conversation.&nbsp; Having nothing to talk of but her
+books, her poor people, and her family, she gave her friend the
+full benefit of all she could say on each subject, while Alethea
+had kindness enough to listen with real interest to her long
+rambling discourses, well pleased to see her happy.</p>
+<p>The next time they met, Lilias told her all she knew or
+imagined respecting Eleanor, and of her own debate with Claude,
+and ended, &lsquo;Now, Miss Weston, tell me your opinion, which
+would you choose for a sister, Eleanor or Emily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have some experience of Miss Mohun&rsquo;s delightful
+manners, and none of Mrs. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s, so I am no fair
+judge,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I really have done justice to Eleanor&rsquo;s sterling
+goodness,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now what should you
+think?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I can hardly imagine greater proofs of affection than
+Mrs. Hawkesworth has given you,&rsquo; said Miss Weston,
+smiling.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was because it was her duty,&rsquo; said
+Lilias.&nbsp; &lsquo;You have only heard the facts, but you
+cannot judge of her ways and looks.&nbsp; Now only think, when
+Frank came home, after seven years of perils by field and
+flood&mdash;there she rose up to receive him as if he had been
+Mr. Nobody making a morning call.&nbsp; And all the time before
+they were married, I do believe she thought more of showing Emily
+how much tea we were to use in a week than anything
+else.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps some people might have admired her
+self-command,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Self-command, the refuge of the insensible?&nbsp; And
+now, I told you about dear Harry the other day.&nbsp; He was
+Eleanor&rsquo;s especial brother, yet his death never seemed to
+make any difference to her.&nbsp; She scarcely cried: she heard
+our lessons as usual, talked in her quiet voice&mdash;showed no
+tokens of feeling.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was her health as good as before?&rsquo; asked Miss
+Weston.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She was not ill,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;if she had, I
+should have been satisfied.&nbsp; She certainly could not take
+long walks that winter, but she never likes walking.&nbsp; People
+said she looked ill, but I do not know.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Shall I tell you what I gather from your
+history?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Pray do.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then do not think me very perverse, if I say that
+perhaps the grief she then repressed may have weighed down her
+spirits ever since, so that you can hardly remember any
+alteration.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That I cannot,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;She is
+always the same, but then she ought to have been more cheerful
+before his death.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did not you lose him soon after your mother?&rsquo;
+said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Two whole years,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! and
+aunt, Robert too, and Frank went to India the beginning of that
+year; yes, there was enough to depress her, but I never thought
+of grief going on in that quiet dull way for so many
+years.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You would prefer one violent burst, and then
+forgetfulness?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not exactly,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but I should like
+a little evidence of it.&nbsp; If it is really strong, it cannot
+be hid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Little did Lily think of the grief that sat heavy upon the
+spirit of Alethea, who answered&mdash;&lsquo;Some people can do
+anything that they consider their duty.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Duty: what, are you a duty lover?&rsquo; exclaimed
+Lilias.&nbsp; &lsquo;I never suspected it, because you are not
+disagreeable.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Alethea, laughing, &lsquo;your
+compliment rather surprises me, for I thought you told me that
+your brother Claude was on the duty side of the
+question.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He thinks he is,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but love is
+his real motive of action, as I can prove to you.&nbsp; Poor
+Claude had a very bad illness when he was about three years old;
+and ever since he has been liable to terrible headaches, and he
+is not at all strong.&nbsp; Of course he cannot always study
+hard, and when first he went to school, every one scolded him for
+being idle.&nbsp; I really believe he might have done more, but
+then he was so clever that he could keep up without any trouble,
+and, as Robert says, that was a great temptation; but still papa
+was not satisfied, because he said Claude could do better.&nbsp;
+So said Harry.&nbsp; Oh! you cannot think what a person Harry
+was, as high-spirited as William, and as gentle as Claude; and in
+his kind way he used to try hard to make Claude exert himself,
+but it never would do&mdash;he was never in mischief, but he
+never took pains.&nbsp; Then Harry died, and when Claude came
+home, and saw how changed things were, how gray papa&rsquo;s hair
+had turned, and how silent and melancholy William had grown, he
+set himself with all his might to make up to papa as far as he
+could.&nbsp; He thought only of doing what Harry would have
+wished, and papa himself says that he has done wonders.&nbsp; I
+cannot see that Henry himself could have been more than Claude is
+now; he has not spared himself in the least, his tutor says, and
+he would have had the Newcastle Scholarship last year, if he had
+not worked so hard that he brought on one of his bad illnesses,
+and was obliged to come home.&nbsp; Now I am sure that he has
+acted from love, for it was as much his duty to take pains while
+Harry was alive as afterwards.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, &lsquo;but what
+does he say himself?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! he never will talk of himself,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you not overlooked one thing which may be the
+truth,&rsquo; said Alethea, as if she was asking for information,
+&lsquo;that duty and love may be identical?&nbsp; Is not St.
+Paul&rsquo;s description of charity very like the duty to our
+neighbour?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The practice is the same, but not the theory,&rsquo;
+said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, what is called duty, seems to me to be love doing
+unpleasant work,&rsquo; said Miss Weston; &lsquo;love disguised
+under another name, when obliged to act in a way which seems,
+only seems, out of accordance with its real title.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is all very well for those who have love,&rsquo;
+said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Some have not who do their duty
+conscientiously&mdash;another word which I hate, by the
+bye.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They have love in a rough coat, perhaps,&rsquo; said
+Alethea, &lsquo;and I should expect it soon to put on a smoother
+one.&rsquo;</p>
+<h2><a name="page61"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+61</span>CHAPTER VII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">SIR MAURICE</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Shall thought was his, in after time,<br />
+Thus to be hitched into a rhyme;<br />
+The simple sire could only boast<br />
+That he was loyal to his cost,<br />
+The banished race of kings revered,<br />
+And lost his land.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> holidays arrived, and with them
+the three brothers, for during the first few weeks of the Oxford
+vacation Claude accompanied Lord Rotherwood on visits to some
+college friends, and only came home the same day as the younger
+ones.</p>
+<p>Maurice did not long leave his sisters in doubt as to what was
+to be his reigning taste, for as soon as dinner was over, he made
+Jane find the volume of the Encyclop&aelig;dia containing
+Entomology, and with his elbows on the table, proceeded to study
+it so intently, that the young ladies gave up all hopes of
+rousing him from it.&nbsp; Claude threw himself down on the sofa
+to enjoy the luxury of a desultory talk with his sisters; and
+Reginald, his head on the floor, and his heels on a chair, talked
+loud and fast enough for all three, with very little regard to
+what the damsels might be saying.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Claude,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;you cannot think
+how much we like Miss Weston, she lets us call her Alethea,
+and&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here came an interruption from Mr. Mohun, who perceiving the
+position of Reginald&rsquo;s dusty shoes, gave a loud
+&lsquo;Ah&mdash;h!&rsquo; as if he was scolding a dog, and
+ordered him to change them directly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Here, Phyl!&rsquo; said Reginald, kicking off his
+shoes, &lsquo;just step up and bring my shippers, Rachel will
+give them to you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away went Phyllis, well pleased to be her brother&rsquo;s
+fag.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&nbsp; Redgie does not know the misfortune that
+hangs over him,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;will not the Baron
+let Viper come to the house?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Worse,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;Rachel is going
+away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rachel?&rsquo; cried Claude, starting up from the
+sofa.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rachel?&rsquo; said Maurice, without raising his
+eyes.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rachel!&nbsp; Rachel! botheration!&rsquo; roared
+Reginald, with a wondrous caper.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Rachel,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;Rachel, who
+makes so much of you, for no reason that I could ever discover,
+but because you are the most troublesome.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will never find any one to mend your jackets, and
+dress your wounds like Rachel,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and make
+a baby of you instead of a great schoolboy.&nbsp; What will
+become of you, Redgie?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What will become of any of us?&rsquo; said Claude;
+&lsquo;I thought Rachel was the mainspring of the
+house.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you quarrelled with her, Emily?&rsquo; said
+Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;it is only that her
+brother has lost his wife, and wants her to take care of his
+children.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;her master has lost
+his wife, and wants her to take care of his children.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot think what I shall do,&rsquo; said Ada;
+&lsquo;I cry about it every night when I go to bed.&nbsp; What is
+to be done?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Send her brother a new wife,&rsquo; said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Send him Emily,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;we could
+spare her much better.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only I don&rsquo;t wish him joy,&rsquo; said
+Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I hope you wish me joy of my substitute,&rsquo;
+said Emily; &lsquo;I do not think you would ever guess, but Lily,
+after being in what Rachel calls quite a way, has persuaded every
+one to let us have Esther Bateman.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What, the Baron?&rsquo; said Claude, in surprise.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;is it not
+delightful?&nbsp; He said at first, Emily was too inexperienced
+to teach a young servant; but then we settled that Hannah should
+be upper servant, and Esther will only have to wait upon Phyl and
+Ada.&nbsp; Then he said Faith Longley was of a better set of
+people, but I am sure it would give one the nightmare to see her
+lumbering about the house, and then he talked it over with Robert
+and with Rachel.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And was not Rachel against it, or was she too kind to
+her young ladies?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! she was cross when she talked it over with
+us,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but we coaxed her over, and she told
+the Baron it would do very well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And Robert?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He was quite with us, for he likes Esther as much as I
+do,&rsquo; said lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;how can you say he
+was quite with you, when he said he thought it would be better if
+she was farther from home, and under some older
+person?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, but he allowed that she would be much safer here
+than at home,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But I thought she used to be the head of all the ill
+behaviour in school,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! that was in Eleanor&rsquo;s time,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;there was nothing to draw her out, she never was
+encouraged; but since she has been in my class, and has found
+that her wishes to do right are appreciated and met by affection,
+she has been quite a new creature.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Since she has been in <span class="GutSmall">MY</span>
+class,&rsquo; Claude repeated.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Lily, with a slight blush, &lsquo;it
+is just what Robert says.&nbsp; He told her, when he gave her her
+prize Bible on Palm Sunday, that she had been going on very well,
+but she must take great care when removed from those whose
+influence now guided her, and who could he have meant but
+me?&nbsp; And now she is to go on with me always.&nbsp; She will
+be quite one of the old sort of faithful servants, who feel that
+they owe everything to their masters, and will it not be pleasant
+to have so sweet and expressive a face about the
+house?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do I know her face?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh
+yes!&nbsp; I do.&nbsp; She has black eyes, I think, and would be
+pretty if she did not look pert.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You provoking Claude!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;you are
+as bad as Alethea, who never will say that Esther is the best
+person for us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was going to inquire for the all-for-love
+principle,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;but I see it is in full
+force.&nbsp; And how are the verses, Lily?&nbsp; Have you made a
+poem upon Michael Moone, or Mohun, the actor, our uncle, whom I
+discovered for you in Pepys&rsquo;s Memoirs?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but I have been
+writing something about Sir Maurice, which you shall hear
+whenever you are not in this horrid temper.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The next afternoon, as soon as luncheon was over, Lily drew
+Claude out to his favourite place under the plane-tree, where she
+proceeded to inflict her poem upon his patient ears, while he lay
+flat upon the grass looking up to the sky; Emily and Jane had
+promised to join them there in process of time, and the four
+younger ones were, as usual, diverting themselves among the farm
+buildings at the Old Court.</p>
+<p>Lily began: &lsquo;I meant to have two parts about Sir Maurice
+going out to fight when he was very young, and then about his
+brothers being killed, and King Charles knighting him, and his
+betrothed, Phyllis Crossthwayte, embroidering his black engrailed
+cross on his banner, and then the taking the castle, and his
+being wounded, and escaping, and Phyllis not thinking it right to
+leave her father; but I have not finished that, so now you must
+hear about his return home.&rsquo;</p>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;A romaunt in six cantos, entitled Woe
+woe,<br />
+By Miss Fanny F. known more commonly so,&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>muttered Claude to himself; but as Lily did not understand or
+know whence his quotation came, it did not hurt her feelings, and
+she went merrily on:&mdash;</p>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;&rsquo;Tis the twenty-ninth of merry
+May;<br />
+Full cheerily shine the sunbeams to-day,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Their joyous light revealing<br />
+Full many a troop in garments gay,<br />
+With cheerful steps who take their way<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; By the green hill and shady lane,<br />
+While merry bells are pealing;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And soon in Beechcroft&rsquo;s holy fane<br />
+The villagers are kneeling.<br />
+Dreary and mournful seems the shrine<br />
+Where sound their prayers and hymns divine;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; For every mystic ornament<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; By the rude spoiler&rsquo;s hand is rent;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Scarce is its ancient beauty traced<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; In wood-work broken and defaced,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Reft of each quaint device and rare,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Of foliage rich and mouldings fair;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Yet happy is each spirit there;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; The simple peasantry rejoice<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; To see the altar decked with care,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; To hear their ancient
+Pastor&rsquo;s voice<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Reciting o&rsquo;er each well-known prayer,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; To view again his robe of white,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And hear the services aright;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Once more to chant their glorious Creed,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And thankful own their nation freed<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; From those who cast her glories down,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And rent away her Cross and Crown.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; A stranger knelt among the crowd,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And joined his voice in praises loud,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And when the holy rites had ceased,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Held converse with the aged Priest,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Then turned to join the village feast,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Where, raised on the hill&rsquo;s summit green,<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The Maypole&rsquo;s flowery wreaths were seen;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Beneath the venerable yew<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The stranger stood the sports to view,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Unmarked by all, for each was bent<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; On his own scheme of merriment,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; On talking, laughing, dancing, playing&mdash;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; There never was so blithe a Maying.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; So thought each laughing maiden gay,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Whose head-gear bore the oaken spray;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; So thought that hand of shouting boys,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Unchecked in their best joy&mdash;in noise;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; But gray-haired men, whose deep-marked scars<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Bore token of the civil wars,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And hooded dames in cloaks of red,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; At the blithe youngsters shook the head,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Gathering in eager clusters told<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; How joyous were the days of old,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; When Beechcroft&rsquo;s lords, those Barons bold,<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Came forth to join their vassals&rsquo; sport,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And here to hold their rustic court,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Throned in the ancient chair you see<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Beneath our noble old yew tree.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Alas! all empty stands the throne,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Reserved for Mohun&rsquo;s race alone,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And the old folks can only tell<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Of the good lords who ruled so well.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;Ah!&nbsp; I bethink me of the time,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The last before those years of crime,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; When with his open hearty cheer,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The good old squire was sitting here.&rdquo;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;&rsquo;Twas then,&rdquo; another voice
+replied,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;That brave young Master Maurice tried<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; To pitch the ball with Andrew Grey&mdash;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; We ne&rsquo;er shall see so blithe a day&mdash;<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; All the young squires have long
+been dead.&rdquo;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;No, Master Webb,&rdquo; quoth Andrew Grey,<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;Young Master Maurice safely
+fled,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; At least so all the Greenwoods say,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And Walter Greenwood with him went<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; To share his master&rsquo;s banishment;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And now King Charles is ruling here,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Our own good landlord may be near.&rdquo;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;Small hope of that,&rdquo; the old man
+said,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And sadly shook his hoary head,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;Sir Maurice died beyond the sea,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Last of his noble line was he.&rdquo;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; &ldquo;Look, Master Webb!&rdquo; he turned, and
+there<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The stranger sat in Mohun&rsquo;s chair;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; At ease he sat, and smiled to scan<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The face of each astonished man;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Then on the ground he laid aside<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; His plumed hat and mantle wide.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; One moment, Andrew deemed he knew<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Those glancing eyes of hazel hue,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; But the sunk cheek, the figure spare,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The lines of white that streak the hair&mdash;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; How can this he the stripling gay,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Erst, victor in the sports of May?<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Full twenty years of cheerful toil,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And labour on his native soil,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; On Andrew&rsquo;s head had left no trace&mdash;<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; The summer&rsquo;s sun, the
+winter&rsquo;s storm,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; They had but ruddier made his face,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; More hard his hand, more strong
+his form.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Forth from the wandering, whispering crowd,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; A farmer came, and spoke aloud,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; With rustic bow and welcome fair,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; But with a hesitating air&mdash;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; He told how custom well preserved<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The throne for Mohun&rsquo;s race reserved;<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The stranger laughed, &ldquo;What, Harrington,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Hast thou forgot thy landlord&rsquo;s son?&rdquo;<br
+/>
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Loud was the cry, and blithe the shout,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; On Beechcroft hill that now rang out,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And still remembered is the day,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; That merry twenty-ninth of May,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; When to his father&rsquo;s home returned<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; That knight, whose glory well was earned.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; In poverty and banishment,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; His prime of manhood had been spent,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; A wanderer, scorned by Charles&rsquo;s court,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; One faithful servant his support.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And now, he seeks his home forlorn,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Broken in health, with sorrow worn.<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And two short years just passed away,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Between that joyous meeting-day,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And the sad eve when Beechcroft&rsquo;s bell<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Tolled forth Sir Maurice&rsquo;s funeral knell;<br
+/>
+And Phyllis, whose love was so constant and tried,<br />
+Was a widow the year she was Maurice&rsquo;s bride;<br />
+Yet the path of the noble and true-hearted knight,<br />
+Was brilliant with honour, and glory, and light,<br />
+And still his descendants shall sing of the fame<br />
+Of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the pride of his name.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>&lsquo;It is a pity they should sing of it in such lines as
+those last four,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Let me see, I
+like your bringing in the real names, though I doubt whether any
+but Greenwood could have been found here.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! here come Emily and Jane,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;let me put it away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are very much afraid of Jane,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Jane has no feeling for poetry,&rsquo; said Lily,
+with simplicity, which made her brother smile.</p>
+<p>Jane and Emily now came up, the former with her work, the
+latter with a camp-stool and a book.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+wonder,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;where those boys are!&nbsp; By
+the bye, what character did they bring home from
+school?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The same as usual,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Maurice&rsquo;s mind only half given to his work, and
+Redgie&rsquo;s whole mind to his play.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Maurice&rsquo;s talent does not lie in the direction of
+Latin and Greek,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;it is nonsense to make him
+learn it, and so he says.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps he would say the same of mathematics and
+mechanics, if as great a point were made of them,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think not,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;he has more
+notion of them than of Latin verses.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you are on my side,&rsquo; said Jane,
+triumphantly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did I say so?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why not?&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is the use
+of his knowing those stupid languages?&nbsp; I am sure it is
+wasting time not to improve such a genius as he has for mechanics
+and natural history.&nbsp; Now, Claude, I wish you would
+answer.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was waiting till you had done,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why do you not think it nonsense?&rsquo; persisted
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because I respect my father&rsquo;s opinion,&rsquo;
+said Claude, letting himself fall on the grass, as if he had done
+with the subject.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Pooh!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;that sounds like a good
+little boy of five years old!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very likely,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But you have some opinion of your own,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I wish you would give it,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Come, Emily,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;have you
+brought anything to read?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But your opinion, Claude,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I am sure you think with me, only you are too grand, and
+too correct to say so.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude made no answer, but Jane saw she was wrong by his
+countenance; before she could say anything more, however, they
+were interrupted by a great outcry from the Old Court
+regions.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I thought it was a long
+time since we had heard anything of those uproarious
+mortals.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope there is nothing the matter,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh no,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I hear Redgie&rsquo;s
+laugh.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Aye, but among that party,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;Redgie&rsquo;s laugh is not always a proof of peace: they
+are too much in the habit of acting the boys and the
+frogs.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We were better off,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;with the
+gentle Claude, as Miss Middleton used to call him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Molly, as William used to call him with more
+propriety,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;not half so well worth
+playing with as such a fellow as Redgie.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not even for young ladies?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Phyllis and Ada are much the better for being
+teased,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am convinced that I
+never did my duty by you in that respect.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There were others to do it for you,&rsquo; said
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Harry never teased,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;and
+William scorned us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;His teasing was all performed upon Claude,&rsquo; said
+Lily, &lsquo;and a great shame it was.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not at all,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;only an
+injudicious attempt to put a little life into a
+tortoise.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A bad comparison,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but what is
+all this?&nbsp; Here come the children in dismay!&nbsp; What is
+the matter, my dear child?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This was addressed to Phyllis, who was the first to come up at
+full speed, sobbing, and out of breath, &lsquo;Oh, the
+dragon-fly!&nbsp; Oh, do not let him kill it!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The dragon-fly, the poor dear blue dragon-fly!&rsquo;
+screamed Adeline, hiding her face in Emily&rsquo;s lap,
+&lsquo;Oh, do not let him kill it! he is holding it; he is
+hurting it!&nbsp; Oh, tell him not!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I caught it,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;but not to
+have it killed.&nbsp; Oh, take it away!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A fine rout, indeed, you chicken,&rsquo; said Reginald;
+&lsquo;I know a fellow who ate up five horse-stingers one morning
+before breakfast.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stingers!&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;they do not sting
+anything, pretty creatures.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I told you I would catch the old pony and put it on him
+to try,&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>In the meantime, Maurice came up at his leisure, holding his
+prize by the wings.&nbsp; &lsquo;Look what a beautiful Libellulla
+Puella,&rsquo; said he to Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A demoiselle dragon-fly,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;what
+a beauty! what are you going to do with it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Put it into my museum,&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Here, Jane, put it under this flower-pot, and take care of
+it, while I fetch something to kill it with.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Maurice, do not!&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;One good squeeze,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+will do it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How came you be so cruel?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, a squeeze will not do,&rsquo; said Maurice;
+&lsquo;it would spoil its beauty; I must put it ever the fumes of
+carbonic acid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Maurice, you really must not,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now do not, dear Maurice,&rsquo; said Ada,
+&lsquo;there&rsquo;s a dear boy; I will give you such a
+kiss.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense; get out of the way,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+turning away.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Maurice, this is most horrid cruelty,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;what right have you to shorten the brief, happy life
+which&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; interrupted Maurice, &lsquo;if you make
+such a fuss about killing it, I will stick a pin through it into
+a cork, and let it shift for itself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Poor Phyllis ran away to the other end of the garden, sat down
+and sobbed, Ada screamed and argued, Emily complained, Lily
+exhorted Claude to interfere, while Reginald stood laughing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Such useless cruelty,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Useless!&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;Pray how is
+any one to make a collection of natural objects without killing
+things?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not see the use of a collection,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;you can examine the creatures and let them go.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Such a young lady&rsquo;s tender-hearted notion,&rsquo;
+said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Who ever heard of a man of science managing in such a
+ridiculous way?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Man of science!&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, &lsquo;when he
+will have forgotten by next Christmas that insects ever
+existed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>It was not convenient to hear this speech, so Maurice turned
+an empty flower-pot over his prisoner, and left it in
+Jane&rsquo;s care while he went to fetch the means of
+destruction, probably choosing the lawn for the place of
+execution, in order to show his contempt for his sisters.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Fair damsel in boddice blue,&rsquo; said Lily, peeping
+in at the hole at the top of the flower-pot, &lsquo;I wish I
+could avert your melancholy fate.&nbsp; I am very sorry for you,
+but I cannot help it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You might help it now, at any rate,&rsquo; muttered
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I know Monsieur Maurice
+too well to arouse his wrath so justly.&nbsp; If you choose to
+release the pretty creature, I shall be charmed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You forget that I am in charge,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is a carriage coming to the front gate,&rsquo;
+cried Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;Emily, may I go into the
+drawing-room?&nbsp; Oh, Jenny, will you undo my brown holland
+apron?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is right, little mincing Miss,&rsquo; said
+Reginald, with a low bow; &lsquo;how fine we are
+to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How visitors break into the afternoon,&rsquo; said
+Emily, with a languid turn of her head.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Jenny, brownie,&rsquo; called Maurice from his bedroom
+window, &lsquo;I want the sulphuric acid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane sprang up and ran into the house, though her sisters
+called after her, that she would come full upon the company in
+the hall.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They shall not catch me here,&rsquo; cried Reginald,
+rushing off into the shrubbery.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are you coming in, Claude?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Send Ada to call me, if there is any one worth
+seeing,&rsquo; said Claude</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They will see you from the window,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;no one ever found me out
+last summer, under these friendly branches.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The old butler, Joseph, now showed himself on the terrace; and
+the young ladies, knowing that he had no intention of crossing
+the lawn, hastened to learn from him who their visitors were, and
+entered the house.&nbsp; Just then Phyllis came running back from
+the kitchen garden, and without looking round, or perceiving
+Claude, she took up the flower-pot and released the captive,
+which, unconscious of its peril, rested on a blade of grass,
+vibrating its gauzy wings and rejoicing in the restored
+sunbeams.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Fly away, fly away, you pretty creature,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis; &lsquo;make haste, or Maurice will come and catch you
+again.&nbsp; I wish I had not given you such a fright.&nbsp; I
+thought you would have been killed, and a pin stuck all through
+that pretty blue and black body of yours.&nbsp; Oh! that would be
+dreadful.&nbsp; Make haste and go away!&nbsp; I would not have
+caught you, you beautiful thing, if I had known what he wanted to
+do.&nbsp; I thought he only wanted to look at your beautiful
+body, like a little bit of the sky come down to look at the
+flowers, and your delicate wings, and great shining eyes.&nbsp;
+Oh! I am very glad God made you so beautiful.&nbsp; Oh! there is
+Maurice coming.&nbsp; I must blow upon you to make you go.&nbsp;
+Oh, that is right&mdash;up quite high in the air&mdash;quite
+safe,&rsquo; and she clapped her hands as the dragon-fly rose in
+the air, and disappeared behind the laurels, just as Maurice and
+Reginald emerged from the shrubbery, the former with a bottle in
+his hand.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, where is the Libellulla?&rsquo; said he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The dragon-fly?&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I let
+it out.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Sold, Maurice!&rsquo; cried Reginald, laughing at his
+brother&rsquo;s disaster.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Upon my word, Phyl, you are very kind!&rsquo; said
+Maurice, angrily.&nbsp; &lsquo;If I had known you were such an
+ill-natured crab&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice dear, don&rsquo;t say so,&rsquo;
+exclaimed Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I thought I might let it out
+because I caught it myself; and I told you I did not catch it for
+you to kill; Maurice, indeed, I am sorry I vexed you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What else did you do it for?&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;It is horrid not to be able to leave one&rsquo;s things a
+minute&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But I did not know the dragon-fly belonged to you,
+Maurice,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is a puzzler, Mohun senior,&rsquo; said
+Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Redgie, do get Maurice to leave off being angry
+with me,&rsquo; implored his sister.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will leave off being angry,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+seeing his advantage, &lsquo;if you will promise never to let out
+my things again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think I can promise,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;O yes, you can,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;you know
+they are not his.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Promise you will not let out any insects I may
+get,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;or I shall say you are as cross
+as two sticks.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what, Maurice,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+&lsquo;I do wish you would not make me promise, for I do not
+think I <i>can</i> keep it, for I cannot bear to see the
+beautiful live things killed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Maurice, fiercely, &lsquo;I am
+very angry indeed, you naughty child; promise&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot,&rsquo; said Phyllis, beginning to cry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I will not speak to
+you all day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; shouted Reginald, &lsquo;we will only
+treat her like the horse-stinger; you wanted a puella,
+Maurice&mdash;here is one for you, here, give her a dose of the
+turpentine.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Maurice, advancing with his bottle;
+&lsquo;and do you take the poker down to Naylor&rsquo;s to be
+sharpened, it will just do to stick through her back.&nbsp; Oh!
+no, not Naylor&rsquo;s&mdash;the girls have made a hash there, as
+they do everything else; but we will settle her before they come
+out again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis screamed and begged for mercy&mdash;her last ally had
+deserted her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Promise!&rsquo; cried the boys.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t!&rsquo; was all her answer.</p>
+<p>Reginald caught her and held her fast, Maurice advanced upon
+her, she struggled, and gave a scream of real terror.&nbsp; The
+matter was no joke to any one but Reginald, for Maurice was very
+angry and really meant to frighten her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Hands off, boys, I will not have her bullied,&rsquo;
+said Claude, half rising.</p>
+<p>Maurice gave a violent start, Reginald looked round laughing,
+and exclaimed, &lsquo;Who would have thought of Claude sneaking
+there?&rsquo; and Phyllis ran to the protecting arm, which he
+stretched out.&nbsp; To her great surprise, he drew her to him,
+and kissed her forehead, saying, &lsquo;Well done,
+Phyl!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, I knew he was not going to hurt me,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, still panting from the struggle.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To be sure not,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I only
+meant to have a little fun.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude, with his arm still round his sister&rsquo;s waist,
+gave Maurice a look, expressing, &lsquo;Is that the truth?&rsquo;
+and Reginald tumbled head over heels, exclaiming, &lsquo;I would
+not have been Phyl just them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Ada now came running up to them, saying, &lsquo;Maurice and
+Redgie, you are to come in; Mr. and Mrs. Burnet heard your
+voices, and begged to see you, because they never saw you last
+holidays.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;More&rsquo;s the pity they should see us now,&rsquo;
+said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I shall not go,&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Papa is there, and he sent for you,&rsquo; said
+Ada.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Plague,&rsquo; was the answer.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;See what you get by making such a row,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;If you had been as orderly members of
+society as I am&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, but Claude,&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;papa told me to
+see if I could find you.&nbsp; Dear Claude, I wish,&rsquo; she
+proceeded, taking his hand, and looking engaging, &lsquo;I wish
+you would put your arm round me as you do round Phyl.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are not worth it, Ada,&rsquo; said Reginald, and
+Claude did not contradict him.</p>
+<h2><a name="page78"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+78</span>CHAPTER VIII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE BROTHERS</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;But smiled to hear the creatures he had
+known<br />
+So long were now in class and order shown&mdash;<br />
+Genus and species.&nbsp; &ldquo;Is it meet,&rdquo; said he,<br />
+&ldquo;This creature&rsquo;s name should one so sounding
+be&mdash;<br />
+&rsquo;Tis but a fly, though first-born of the spring,<br />
+Bombylius Majus, dost thou call the thing?&rdquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was not till Sunday, that
+Lily&rsquo;s eager wish was fulfilled, of introducing her friend
+and her brothers; but, as she might have foreseen, their first
+meeting did not make the perfections of either party very clear
+to the other.&nbsp; Claude never spoke to strangers more than he
+could help, Maurice and Reginald were in the room only a short
+time; so that the result of Miss Weston&rsquo;s observations,
+when communicated in reply to Lily&rsquo;s eager inquiries, was
+only that Claude was very like his father and eldest brother,
+Reginald very handsome, and Maurice looked like a very funny
+fellow.</p>
+<p>On Monday, Reginald and Maurice were required to learn what
+they had always refused to acknowledge, that the holidays were
+not intended to be spent in idleness.&nbsp; A portion of each
+morning was to be devoted to study, Claude having undertaken the
+task of tutor&mdash;and hard work he found it; and much did Lily
+pity him, when, as not unfrequently happened, the summons to the
+children&rsquo;s dinner would bring him from the study, looking
+thoroughly fagged&mdash;Maurice in so sulky a mood that he would
+hardly deign to open his lips&mdash;Reginald talking fast enough,
+indeed, but only to murmur at his duties in terms, which, though
+they made every one laugh, were painful to hear.&nbsp; Then
+Claude would take his brothers back to the study, and not appear
+for an hour or more, and when he did come forth, it was with a
+bad headache.&nbsp; Sometimes, as if to show that it was only
+through their own fault that their tasks were wearisome, one or
+both boys would finish quite early, when Reginald would betake
+himself to the schoolroom and employ his idle time in making it
+nearly impossible for Ada and Phyllis to learn, by talking,
+laughing, teasing the canary, overturning everything in pursuing
+wasps, making Emily fretful by his disobedience, and then
+laughing at her, and, in short, proving his right to the title he
+had given himself at the end of the only letter he had written
+since he first went to school, and which he had subscribed,
+&lsquo;Your affectionate bother, R. Mohun.&rsquo;&nbsp; So that,
+for their own sake, all would have preferred the inattentive
+mornings.</p>
+<p>Lily often tried to persuade Claude to allow her to tell her
+father how troublesome the boys were, but never with any
+effect.&nbsp; He once took up a book he had been using with them,
+and pointing to the name in the first page, in writing, which
+Lily knew full well, &lsquo;Henry Mohun,&rsquo; she perceived
+that he meant to convince her that it was useless to try to
+dissuade him, as he thought the patience and forbearance his
+brother had shown to him must be repaid by his not shrinking from
+the task he had imposed upon himself with his young brothers,
+though he was often obliged to sit up part of the night to pursue
+his own studies.</p>
+<p>If Claude had rather injudiciously talked too much to Lilias
+of &lsquo;her principle,&rsquo; and thus kept it alive in her
+mind, yet his example might have made its fallacy evident.&nbsp;
+She believed that what she called love had been the turning point
+in his character, that it had been his earnest desire to follow
+in Henry&rsquo;s steps, and so try to comfort his father for his
+loss, that had roused him from his indolence; but she was
+beginning to see that nothing but a sense of duty could have kept
+up the power of that first impulse for six years.&nbsp; Lily
+began to enter a little into his principle, and many things that
+occurred during these holidays made her mistrust her former
+judgment.&nbsp; She saw that without the unvarying principle of
+right and wrong, fraternal love itself would fail in outward acts
+and words.&nbsp; Forbearance, though undeniably a branch of love,
+could not exist without constant remembrance of duty; and which
+of them did not sometimes fail in kindness, meekness, and
+patience?&nbsp; Did Emily show that softness, which was her most
+agreeable characteristic, in her whining reproofs&mdash;in her
+complaints that &lsquo;no one listened to a word she
+said&rsquo;&mdash;in her refusal to do justice even to those who
+had vainly been seeking for peace?&nbsp; Did Lily herself show
+any of her much valued love, by the sharp manner in which she
+scolded the boys for roughness towards herself? or for language
+often used by them on purpose to make her displeasure a matter of
+amusement?&nbsp; She saw that her want of command of temper was a
+failure both in love and duty, and when irritated, the thought of
+duty came sooner to her aid than the feeling of love.</p>
+<p>And Maurice and Reginald were really very provoking.&nbsp;
+Maurice loved no amusement better than teasing his sisters, and
+this was almost the only thing in which Reginald agreed with
+him.&nbsp; Reginald was affectionate, but too reckless and
+violent not to be very troublesome, and he too often flew into a
+passion if Maurice attempted to laugh at him; the little girls
+were often frightened and made unhappy; Phyllis would scream and
+roar, and Ada would come sobbing to Emily, to be comforted after
+some rudeness of Reginald&rsquo;s.&nbsp; It was not very often
+that quarrels went so far, but many a time in thought, word, and
+deed was the rule of love transgressed, and more than once did
+Emily feel ready to give up all her dignity, to have
+Eleanor&rsquo;s hand over the boys once more.&nbsp; Claude,
+finding that he could do much to prevent mischief, took care not
+to leave the two boys long together with the elder girls.&nbsp;
+They were far more inoffensive when separate, as Maurice never
+practised his tormenting tricks when no one was present to laugh
+with him, and Reginald was very kind to Phyllis and Ada, although
+somewhat rude.</p>
+<p>It was a day or two after they returned that Phyllis was
+leaning on the window-sill in the drawing-room, watching a
+passing shower, and admiring the soft bright tints of a rainbow
+upon the dark gray mass of cloud.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do set my bow in
+the cloud,&rsquo; repeated she to herself over and over again,
+until Adeline entering the room, she eagerly exclaimed, &lsquo;Oh
+Ada, come and look at this beautiful rainbow, green, and pink,
+and purple.&nbsp; A double one, with so many stripes, Ada.&nbsp;
+See, there is a little bit more green.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is no green in a rainbow,&rsquo; said Ada.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But look, Ada, that is green.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is not real green.&nbsp; Blue, red, and yellow are
+the pragmatic colours,&rsquo; said Ada, with a most triumphant
+air.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now are not they, Maurice?&rsquo; said she,
+turning to her brother, who was, as usual, deep in
+entomology.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Pragmatic, you foolish child,&rsquo; said he.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Prismatic you mean.&nbsp; I am glad you remember what I
+tell you, however; I think I might teach you some science in
+time.&nbsp; You are right in saying that blue, red, and yellow
+are the prismatic colours.&nbsp; Now do you know what causes a
+rainbow?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is to show there is never to be another
+flood,&rsquo; said Phyllis, gravely.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, I did not mean that,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+addressing himself to Ada, whose love of hard words made him deem
+her a promising pupil, and whom he could lecture without
+interruption.&nbsp; &lsquo;The rainbow is caused
+by&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Maurice!&rsquo; exclaimed Phyllis, remaining with
+mouth wide open.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The rainbow is occasioned by the refraction of the rays
+of the sun in the drops of water of which a cloud is
+composed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Maurice!&rsquo; again said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, what do you keep on &ldquo;but, Mauricing,&rdquo;
+about?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Maurice, I thought it said, &ldquo;I do set my bow
+in the cloud.&rdquo;&nbsp; Is not that right?&nbsp; I will
+look.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I know that, but I know the iris, or rainbow, is a
+natural phenomenon occasioned by the refraction.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Maurice, I can&rsquo;t bear you to say
+that;&rsquo; and poor Phyllis sat down and began to cry.</p>
+<p>Ada interfered.&nbsp; &lsquo;Why, Maurice, you believe the
+Bible, don&rsquo;t you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This last speech was heard by Lilias, who just now entered the
+room, and greatly surprised her.&nbsp; &lsquo;What can you be
+talking of?&rsquo; said she.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only some nonsense of the children&rsquo;s,&rsquo; said
+Maurice, shortly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But only hear what he says,&rsquo; cried Ada.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;He says the rainbow was not put there to show there is
+never to be another flood!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Lily,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I do not think
+there is much use in talking to you, but I wish you to understand
+that all I said was, that the rainbow, or iris, is a natural
+phenomenon occasioned by the refraction of the
+solar&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will certainly bewilder yourself into something
+dreadful with that horrid science,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;What is the matter with Phyl?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only crying because of what I said,&rsquo; answered
+Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;So childish, and you are just as
+bad.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But do you mean to say,&rsquo; exclaimed Lily,
+&lsquo;that you set this human theory above the authority of the
+Bible?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is common sense,&rsquo; said Maurice; &lsquo;I could
+make a rainbow any day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Whereupon Phyllis cried the more, and Lily looked infinitely
+shocked.&nbsp; &lsquo;This is philosophy and vain deceit,&rsquo;
+said she; &lsquo;the very thing that tends to
+infidelity.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t help it&mdash;it is universally
+allowed,&rsquo; said the boy doggedly.</p>
+<p>It was fortunate that the next person who entered the room was
+Claude, and all at once he was appealed to by the four
+disputants, Lily the loudest and most vehement.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Claude, listen to him, and tell him to throw away these
+hateful new lights, which lead to everything that is
+shocking!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Listen to him, with three ladies talking at
+once?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;No, not Phyl&mdash;her
+tears only are eloquent; but it is a mighty war about the token
+of peace and <i>love</i>, Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The love would be in driving these horrible
+philosophical speculations out of Maurice&rsquo;s mind,&rsquo;
+said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No one can ever drive out the truth,&rsquo; said
+Maurice, with provoking coolness.&nbsp; &lsquo;Don&rsquo;t let
+her scratch out my eyes, Claude.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am not so sure of that maxim,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Truth is chiefly injured&mdash;I mean, her
+force weakened, by her own supporters.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you agree with me,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;as,
+in fact, every rational person must.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you are with me,&rsquo; said Lily, in the same
+breath; &lsquo;and you will convince Maurice of the danger of
+this nonsense.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Umph,&rsquo; sighed Claude, throwing himself into his
+father&rsquo;s arm-chair, &lsquo;&rsquo;tis a Herculean
+labour!&nbsp; It seems I agree with you both.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, every Christian must be with me, who has not lost
+his way in a mist of his own raising,&rsquo; said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you mean to say,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;that
+these colours are not produced by refraction?&nbsp; Look at them
+on those prisms;&rsquo; and he pointed to an old-fashioned lustre
+on the chimney-piece.&nbsp; &lsquo;I hope this is not a part of
+the Christian faith.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care, Maurice,&rsquo; and Claude&rsquo;s eyes were
+bent upon him in a manner that made him shrink.&nbsp; And he
+added, &lsquo;Of course I do believe that chapter about
+Noah.&nbsp; I only meant that the immediate cause of the rainbow
+is the refraction of light.&nbsp; I did not mean to be
+irreverent, only the girls took me up in such a way.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And I know well enough that you can make those colours
+by light on drops of water,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So you agreed all the time,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But,&rsquo; added Lily, &lsquo;I never liked to know
+it; for it always seemed to be explaining away the Bible, and I
+cannot bear not to regard that lovely bow as a constant
+miracle.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will remember,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;that some
+commentators say it should be, &ldquo;I <i>have</i> set my bow in
+the cloud,&rdquo; which would make what already existed become a
+token for the future.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I don&rsquo;t like that explanation,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Others say,&rsquo; added Claude, &lsquo;that there
+might have been no rain at all till the windows of heaven were
+opened at the flood, and, in that case, the first recurrence of
+rain must have greatly alarmed Noah&rsquo;s family, if they had
+not been supported and cheered by the sight of the
+rainbow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is reasonable,&rsquo; said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hate reason applied to revelation,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is a happier state of mind which does not seek to
+apply it,&rsquo; said Claude, looking at Phyllis, who had dried
+her tears, and stood in the window gazing at him, in the happy
+certainty that he was setting all right.&nbsp; Maurice respected
+Claude for his science as much as his character, and did not make
+game of this observation as he would if it had been made by one
+of his sisters, but he looked at him with an odd expression of
+perplexity.&nbsp; &lsquo;You do not think ignorant credulity
+better than reasonable belief?&rsquo; said he at length.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is not I only who think most highly of child-like
+unquestioning faith, Maurice,&rsquo; said
+Claude&mdash;&lsquo;faith, that is based upon love and
+reverence,&rsquo; added he to Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;But come, the
+shower is over, and philosophers, or no philosophers, I invite
+you to walk in the wood.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Aye,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I daresay I can find
+some of the Arachne species there.&nbsp; By the bye, Claude, do
+you think papa would let me have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen
+by twenty, to cover my case of insects?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ask, and you will discover,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>Accordingly, Maurice began the next morning at breakfast,
+&lsquo;Papa, may I have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen
+by&mdash;?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>But no one heard, for Emily was at the moment saying,
+&lsquo;The Westons are to dine here to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude and Maurice both looked blank.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I persuaded papa to ask the Westons,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;because I am determined that Claude shall like
+Alethea.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You must expect that I shall not, you have given me so
+many orders on the subject,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care it has not the same effect as to tell Maurice
+to like a book,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;nothing makes his
+aversion so certain.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Except when he takes it up by mistake, and forgets that
+it has been recommended to him,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care, Redgie, with your knife; don&rsquo;t put out
+my eyes in your ardour against that wretched wasp.&nbsp; Wat
+Greenwood may well say &ldquo;there is a terrible sight of
+waspses this year.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I killed twenty-nine yesterday,&rsquo; said
+Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And I will tell you what I saw,&rsquo; said Phyllis;
+&lsquo;I was picking up apples, and the wasps were flying all
+round, and there came a hornet.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Vespa Crabro!&rsquo; cried Maurice; &lsquo;oh, I must
+have one!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, what of the hornet?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,&rsquo; resumed Phyllis,
+&lsquo;he saw a wasp flying, and so he went up in the air, and
+pounced on the poor wasp as the hawk did on Jane&rsquo;s
+bantam.&nbsp; So then he hung himself up to the branch of a tree
+by one of his legs, and held the wasp with the other five, and
+began to pack it up.&nbsp; First he bit off the yellow tail, then
+the legs, and threw them away, and then there was nothing left
+but the head, and so he flew away with it to his nest.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Which way did he go?&rsquo; said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To the Old Court,&rsquo; answered Phyllis; &lsquo;I
+think the nest is in the roof of the old cow-house, for they were
+flying in and out there yesterday, and one was eating out the
+wood from the old rails.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;you must show me a
+hornet hawking for wasps before the nest is taken, Phyllis; I
+suppose you have seen the wasps catching flies?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh yes, papa! but they pack them up quite
+differently.&nbsp; They do not hang by one leg, but they sit down
+quite comfortably on a branch while they bite off the wings and
+legs.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There, Maurice,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I had
+rather hear of one such well-observed fact than of a dozen of
+your hard names and impaled insects.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis looked quite radiant with delight at his
+approbation.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, papa,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;may I have a
+piece of plate-glass, eighteen by twenty?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;When you observe facts in natural history, perhaps I
+may say something to your entomology,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, papa, all my insects will be spoilt if I may not
+have a piece of glass, eighteen by&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He was interrupted by the arrival of the post-bag, which Jane,
+as usual, opened.&nbsp; &lsquo;A letter from Rotherwood,&rsquo;
+said she; &lsquo;I hope he is coming at last.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He is,&rsquo; said Claude, reading the letter,
+&lsquo;but only from Saturday till Wednesday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He never gave us so little of his good company as he
+has this summer,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will have them all in the autumn, to comfort
+you,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;for he hereby announces the
+marvellous fact, that the Marchioness sends him to see if the
+castle is fit to receive her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are you sure he is not only believing what he
+wishes?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think he will gain his point at last,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How stupid of him to stay no longer!&rsquo; said
+Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think he has some scheme for this vacation,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;and I suppose he means to crowd all the
+Beechcroft diversions of a whole summer into those few
+days.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I wish him to know
+the Carringtons; invite them and the Westons to dinner on
+Tuesday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh don&rsquo;t!&rsquo; cried Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+will be so jolly to have him to take wasps&rsquo; nests; and may
+I go out rabbit-shooting with him?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If he goes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And may I carry a gun?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If it is not loaded,&rsquo; said his father.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I would do no mischief,&rsquo; said
+Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me give you one piece of advice, Reginald,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun, with a mysterious air&mdash;&lsquo;never make
+rash promises.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias was rather disappointed in her hopes that Miss Weston
+and Claude would become better acquainted.&nbsp; At dinner the
+conversation was almost entirely between the elder gentlemen;
+Claude scarcely spoke, except when referred to by his father or
+Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; Miss Weston never liked to incur the danger
+of having to repeat her insignificant speeches to a deaf ear, and
+being interested in the discussion that was going on, she by no
+means seconded Lily&rsquo;s attempt to get up an under-current of
+talk.&nbsp; In general, Lily liked to listen to conversation in
+silence, but she was now in very high spirits, and could not be
+quiet; fortunately, she had no interest in the subject the
+gentlemen were discussing, so that she could not meddle with
+that, and finding Alethea silent and Claude out of reach, she
+turned to Reginald, and talked and tittered with him all
+dinner-time.</p>
+<p>In the drawing-room she had it all her own way, and talked
+enough for all the sisters.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you heard that Cousin Rotherwood is
+coming?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, you said so before dinner.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We hope,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;that you and Mr.
+Weston will dine here on Tuesday.&nbsp; The Carringtons are
+coming, and a few others.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Alethea; &lsquo;I daresay papa
+will be very glad to come.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you ever seen Rotherwood?&rsquo; said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never,&rsquo; was the reply.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not expect much,&rsquo; said Lily, laughing, though
+she knew not why; &lsquo;he is a very little fellow; no one would
+suppose him to be twenty, he has such a boyish look.&nbsp; Then
+he never sits down&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Literally?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Literally,&rsquo; persisted Lily; &lsquo;such a quick
+person you never did see.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is he at Oxford?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh yes! it was all papa&rsquo;s doing that he was sent
+to Eton.&nbsp; Papa is his guardian.&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood never
+would have parted with him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He is the only son,&rsquo; interposed Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Uncle Rotherwood put him quite in papa&rsquo;s power;
+Aunt Rotherwood wanted to keep him at home with a tutor, and what
+she would have made of him I cannot think,&rsquo; said Lily; and
+regardless of Emily&rsquo;s warning frowns, and Alethea&rsquo;s
+attempt to change the subject, she went on: &lsquo;When he was
+quite a child he used to seem a realisation of all the naughty
+Dicks and Toms in story-books.&nbsp; Miss Middleton had a perfect
+horror of his coming here, for he would mind no one, and played
+tricks and drew Claude into mischief; but he is quite altered
+since papa had the management of him&mdash;Oh! such talks as papa
+has had with Aunt Rotherwood&mdash;do you know, papa says no one
+knows what it is to lose a father but those who have the care of
+his children, and Aunt Rotherwood is so provoking.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here Alethea determined to put an end to this oration, and to
+Emily&rsquo;s great relief, she cut short the detail of Lady
+Rotherwood&rsquo;s offences by saying, &lsquo;Do you think Faith
+Longley likely to suit us, if we took her to help the
+housemaid?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are you thinking of taking her?&rsquo; cried
+Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Yes, for steady, stupid household work, Faith
+would do very well; she is just the stuff to make a servant
+of&mdash;&ldquo;for dulness ever must be regular&rdquo;&mdash;I
+mean for those who like mere steadiness better than anything more
+lovable.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>As Alethea said, laughing, &lsquo;I must confess my respect
+for that quality,&rsquo; Mr. Devereux and Claude entered the
+room.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Robert!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;Mrs. Weston is
+going to take Faith Longley to help the housemaid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are travelling too fast, Lily,&rsquo; said Alethea,
+&lsquo;she is only going to think about it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should be very glad,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux,
+&lsquo;that Faith should have a good place; the Longleys are very
+respectable people, and they behaved particularly well in
+refusing to let this girl go and live with some dissenters at
+Stoney Bridge.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I like what I have seen of the girl very much,&rsquo;
+said Miss Weston.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In spite of her sad want of feeling,&rsquo; said
+Robert, smiling, as he looked at Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! she is a good work-a-day sort of person,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;like all other poor people, hard and
+passive.&nbsp; Now, do not set up your eyebrows, Claude, I am
+quite serious, there is no warmth about any
+except&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So this is what Lily is come to!&rsquo; cried Emily;
+&lsquo;the grand supporter of the poor on poetical
+principles.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The poor not affectionate!&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not, compared within people whose minds and affections
+have been cultivated,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now just
+hear what Mrs. Wall said to me only yesterday; she asked for a
+black stuff gown out of the clothing club, &ldquo;for,&rdquo;
+said she, &ldquo;I had a misfortune, Miss;&rdquo; I thought it
+would be, &ldquo;and tore my gown,&rdquo; but it was, &ldquo;I
+had a misfortune, Miss, and lost my brother.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A very harsh conclusion on very slight grounds,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Devereux.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Prove the contrary,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Facts would scarcely demonstrate it either way,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;They would only prove what was
+the case with individuals who chanced to come in our way, and if
+we are seldom able to judge of the depth of feeling of those with
+whom we are familiar, how much less of those who feel our
+presence a restraint.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Intense feeling mocks restraint,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Violent, not intense,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Besides, you talk of cultivating the affections.&nbsp; Now
+what do you mean?&nbsp; Exercising them, or talking about
+them?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;the affection of a poor
+person is more tried; we blame a poor man for letting his old
+mother go to the workhouse, without considering how many of us
+would do the same, if we had as little to live upon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Still,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;the same man who
+would refuse to maintain her if poor, would not bear with her
+infirmities if rich.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are the poor never infirm and peevish?&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! how much worse it must be to bear with ill-temper
+in poverty,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;when we think it quite
+wonderful to see a young lady kind and patient with a cross old
+relation; what must it be when she is denying herself, not only
+her pleasure, but her food for her sake; not merely sitting
+quietly with her all day, and calling a servant to wait upon her,
+but toiling all day to maintain her, and keeping awake half the
+night to nurse her?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Those are realities, indeed,&rsquo; said Alethea;
+&lsquo;our greatest efforts seem but child&rsquo;s play in
+comparison.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias could hardly have helped being sobered by this
+conversation if she had attended to it, but she had turned away
+to repeat the story of Mrs. Walls to Jane, and then, fancying
+that the others were still remarking upon it, she said in a
+light, laughing tone, &lsquo;Well, so far I agree with you.&nbsp;
+I know of a person who may well be called one of ourselves, who I
+could quite fancy making such a speech.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Whom do you mean?&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp;
+Alethea wished she did not know.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No very distant relation,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not talk nonsense, Jane,&rsquo; said Claude,
+gravely.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No nonsense at all, Claude,&rsquo; cried Jane in her
+very very pertest tone, &lsquo;it is exactly like Eleanor; I am
+sure I can see her with her hands before her, saying in her prim
+voice, &ldquo;I must turn my old black silk and trim it with
+crape, for I have had a misfortune, and lost my
+brother.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lilias,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, somewhat abruptly,
+&lsquo;did you not wish to sing with me this evening?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>And thus she kept Lilias from any further public mischief that
+evening.</p>
+<p>Claude, exceedingly vexed by what had passed, with great
+injustice, laid the blame upon Miss Weston, and instead of
+rendering her the honour which she really deserved for the tact
+with which she had put an end to the embarrassment of all
+parties, he fancied she was anxious to display her talents for
+music, and thus only felt fretted by the sounds.</p>
+<p>Mr. Weston and his daughter intended to walk home that
+evening, as it was a beautiful moonlight night.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, let us convoy you!&rsquo; exclaimed Lilias;
+&lsquo;I do long to show Alethea a glow-worm.&nbsp; Will you
+come, Claude?&nbsp; May we, papa?&nbsp; Feel how still and warm
+it is.&nbsp; A perfect summer night, not a breath
+stirring.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Mohun consented, and Lily almost hurried Alethea upstairs,
+to put on her bonnet and shawl.&nbsp; When she came down she
+found that the walking party had increased.&nbsp; Jane and
+Reginald would both have been in despair to have missed such a
+frolic; Maurice hoped to fall in with the droning beetle, or to
+lay violent hands on a glow-worm; Emily did not like to be left
+behind, and even Mr. Mohun was going, being in the midst of an
+interesting conversation with Mr. Weston.&nbsp; Lily, with an
+absurd tragic gesture, told Alethea that amongst so many, such a
+crowd, all the grace and sweet influence of the walk was
+ruined.&nbsp; The &lsquo;sweet influence&rsquo; was ruined as far
+as Lily was concerned, but not by the number of her
+companions.&nbsp; It was the uneasy feeling caused by her
+over-strained spirits and foolish chattering that prevented her
+from really entering into the charm of the soft air, the clear
+moon, the solemn deep blue sky, the few stars, the white lilies
+on the dark pond, the long shadows of the trees, the freshness of
+the dewy fields.&nbsp; Her simplicity, and her genuine delight in
+the loveliness of the scene, was gone for the time, and though
+she spoke much of her enjoyment, it was in a high-flown affected
+style.</p>
+<p>When the last good-night had been exchanged, and Lily had
+turned homeward, she felt the stillness which succeeded their
+farewells almost oppressive; she started at the dark shadow of a
+tree which lay across the path, and to shake off a sensation of
+fear which was coming over her, she put her arm within
+Claude&rsquo;s, exclaiming, &lsquo;You naughty boy, you will be
+stupid and silent, say what I will.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I heard enough to-night to strike me dumb,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>For one moment Lily thought he was in jest, but the gravity of
+his manner showed her that he was both grieved and displeased,
+and she changed her tone as she said, &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Claude,
+what do you mean?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you not know?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What, you mean about Eleanor?&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;you must fall upon Miss Jenny there&mdash;it was her
+doing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Jane&rsquo;s tongue is a pest,&rsquo; said Claude;
+&lsquo;but she was not the first to speak evil falsely of one to
+whom you owe everything.&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp; Lily, I cannot tell you
+how that allusion of yours sounded.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What allusion?&rsquo; asked Lily in alarm, for she had
+never seen her gentle brother so angry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know,&rsquo; said he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I do not,&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, munch
+frightened.&nbsp; &lsquo;Claude, Claude, you must mistake, I
+never could have said anything so very shocking.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope I do,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I could hardly
+believe that one of the little ones who cannot remember him,
+could have referred to him in that way&mdash;but for
+you!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Him?&rsquo; said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not like to mention his name to one who regards
+him so lightly,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Think over what
+passed, if you are sufficiently come to yourself to remember
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a little pause Lily said in a subdued voice,
+&lsquo;Claude, I hope you do not believe that I was thinking of
+what really happened when I said that.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Pray what were you thinking of?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The abstract view of Eleanor&rsquo;s
+character.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Abstract nonsense!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;A
+fine demonstration of the rule of love, to go about the world
+slandering your sister!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To go about the world!&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp; Claude, it was
+only Robert, one of ourselves, and Alethea, to whom I tell
+everything.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So much the worse.&nbsp; I always rejoiced that you had
+no foolish young lady friend to make missish confidences
+to.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She is no foolish young lady friend,&rsquo; said
+Lilias, indignant in her turn; &lsquo;she is five years older
+than I am, and papa wishes us to be intimate with her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then the fault is in yourself,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;You ought not to have told such things if
+they were true, and being utterly false&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Claude, I cannot see that they are
+false.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not false, that Eleanor cared not a farthing for
+Harry!&rsquo; cried Claude, shaking off Lily&rsquo;s arm, and
+stopping short.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&mdash;she cared, she really did care,&rsquo; said
+Lily, as fast as she could speak.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Claude,
+how could you think that?&nbsp; I told you I did not mean what
+really happened, only that&mdash;Eleanor is cold&mdash;not as
+warm as some people&mdash;she did care for him, of course she
+did&mdash;I know that&mdash;I believe she loved him with all her
+heart&mdash;but yet&mdash;I mean she did not&mdash;she went on as
+usual&mdash;said nothing&mdash;scarcely cried&mdash;looked the
+same&mdash;taught us&mdash;never&mdash;Oh! it did not make half
+the difference in her that it did in William.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot tell how she behaved at the time,&rsquo; said
+Claude, &lsquo;I only know I never had any idea what a loss Harry
+was till I came home and saw her face.&nbsp; I used never to
+trouble myself to think whether people looked ill or well, but
+the change in her did strike me.&nbsp; She was bearing up to
+comfort papa, and to cheer William, and to do her duty by all of
+us, and you could take such noble resignation for want of
+feeling!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias looked down and tried to speak, but she was choked by
+her tears; she could not bear Claude&rsquo;s displeasure, and she
+wept in silence.&nbsp; At last she said in a voice broken by
+sobs, &lsquo;I was unjust&mdash;I know Eleanor was all
+kindness&mdash;all self-sacrifice&mdash;I have been very
+ungrateful&mdash;I wish I could help it&mdash;and you know well,
+Claude, how far I am from regarding dear Harry with
+indifference&mdash;how the thought of him is a star in my
+mind&mdash;how happy it makes me to think of him at the end of
+the Church Militant Prayer; do not believe I was dreaming of
+him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And pray,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing in his own
+good-humoured way, &lsquo;which of us is it that she is so
+willing to lose?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Claude, no such thing,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;you
+know what I meant, or did not mean.&nbsp; It was nonsense&mdash;I
+hope nothing worse.&rsquo;&nbsp; Lily felt that she might take
+his arm again.&nbsp; There was a little silence, and then Lily
+resumed in a timid voice, &lsquo;I do not know whether you will
+be angry, Claude, but honestly, I do not think that if&mdash;that
+Eleanor would be so wretched about you as I should.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eleanor knew Harry better than you did; no, Lily, I
+never could have been what Harry was, even if I had never wasted
+my time, and if my headaches had not interfered with my best
+efforts.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not believe that, say what you will,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ask William, then,&rsquo; said Claude, sighing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure papa does not think so,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;no, I cannot feel that Harry is such a loss when we still
+have you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Lily, it is plain that you never knew Harry,&rsquo;
+said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not believe you ever
+did&mdash;that is one ting to be said for you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not as you did,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;remember, he
+was six years older.&nbsp; Then think how little we saw of him
+whilst they were abroad; he was always at school, or spending the
+holidays with Aunt Robert, and latterly even farther off, and
+only coming sometimes for an hour or two to see us.&nbsp; Then he
+used to kiss us all round, we went into the garden with him,
+looked at him, and were rather afraid of him; then he walked off
+to Wat Greenwood, came back, wished us good-bye, and away he
+went.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;but after they came
+home?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then he was a tall youth, and we were silly
+girls,&rsquo; said Lilias; &lsquo;he avoided Miss Middleton, and
+we were always with her.&nbsp; He was good-natured, but he could
+not get on with us; he did very well with the little ones, but we
+were of the wrong age.&nbsp; He and William and Eleanor were one
+faction, we were another, and you were between both&mdash;he was
+too old, too sublime, too good, too grave for us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Too grave!&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I never heard a
+laugh so full of glee, except, perhaps,
+Phyllis&rsquo;s.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The last time he was at home,&rsquo; continued Lily,
+&lsquo;we began to know him better; there was no Miss Middleton
+in the way, and after you and William were gone, he used to walk
+with us, and read to us.&nbsp; He read <i>Guy Mannering</i> to
+us, and told us the story of Sir Maurice de Mohun; but the loss
+was not the same to us as to you elder ones; and then sorrow was
+almost lost in admiration, and in pleasure at the terms in which
+every one spoke of him.&nbsp; Claude, I have no difficulty in not
+wishing it otherwise; he is still my brother, and I would not
+change the feeling which the thought of his death gives
+me&mdash;no, not for himself in life and health.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; sighed Claude, &lsquo;you have no cause for
+self-reproach&mdash;no reason to lament over &ldquo;wasted hours
+and love misspent.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will always talk of your old indolence, as if it
+was a great crime,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was my chief temptation,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;As long as we know we are out of the path of duty it does
+not make much difference whether we have turned to the right hand
+or to the left.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was it Harry&rsquo;s death that made you look upon it
+in this light?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I knew it well enough before,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;it was what he had often set before me.&nbsp; Indeed, till
+I came home, and saw this place without him, I never really knew
+what a loss he was.&nbsp; At Eton I did not miss him more than
+when he went to Oxford, and I did not dwell on what he was to
+papa, or what I ought to be; and even when I saw what home was
+without him, I should have contented myself with miserable
+excuses about my health, if it had not been for my confirmation;
+then I awoke, I saw my duty, and the wretched way in which I had
+been spending my time.&nbsp; Thoughts of Harry and of my father
+came afterwards; I had not vigour enough for them
+before.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here they reached the house, and parted&mdash;Claude, ashamed
+of having talked of himself for the first time in his life, and
+Lily divided between shame at her own folly and pleasure at
+Claude&rsquo;s having thus opened his mind.</p>
+<p>Jane, who was most in fault, escaped censure.&nbsp; Her father
+was ignorant of her improper speech.&nbsp; Emily forgot it, and
+it was not Claude&rsquo;s place to reprove his sisters, though to
+Lily he spoke as a friend.&nbsp; It passed away from her mind
+like other idle words, which, however, could not but leave an
+impression on those who heard her.</p>
+<p>An unlooked-for result of the folly of this evening was, that
+Claude was prevented from appreciating Miss Weston He could not
+learn to like her, nor shake off an idea, that she was prying
+into their family concerns; he thought her over-praised, and
+would not even give just admiration to her singing, because he
+had once fancied her eager to exhibit it.&nbsp; It was
+unreasonable to dislike his sister&rsquo;s friend for his
+sister&rsquo;s folly, but Claude&rsquo;s wisdom was not yet
+arrived at its full growth, and he deserved credit for keeping
+his opinion to himself.</p>
+<h2><a name="page101"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+101</span>CHAPTER IX<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE WASP</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Whom He hath blessed and called His own,<br
+/>
+He tries them early, look and tone,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Bent brow and throbbing heart,<br />
+Tries them with pain.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> next week Lily had the pleasure
+of fitting out Faith Longley for her place at Mrs.
+Weston&rsquo;s.&nbsp; She rejoiced at this opportunity of
+patronising her, because in her secret soul she felt that she
+might have done her a little injustice in choosing her own
+favourite Esther in her stead.&nbsp; Esther&rsquo;s popularity at
+the New Court, however, made Lilias confident in her own
+judgment; the servants liked her because she was quick and
+obliging, Mr. Mohun said she looked very neat, Phyllis liked her
+because a mischance to her frock was not so brave an offence with
+her as with Rachel, and Ada was growing very fond of her, because
+she was in the habit of bestowing great admiration on her golden
+curls as she arranged them, and both little girls were glad not
+to be compelled to put away the playthings they took out.</p>
+<p>Maurice and Reginald had agreed to defer their onslaught on
+the wasps till Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s arrival, and the war was
+now limited to attacks on foraging parties.&nbsp; Reginald most
+carefully marked every nest about the garden and farm, and, on
+his cousin&rsquo;s arrival on Saturday evening, began eagerly to
+give him a list of their localities.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood was as
+ardent in the cause as even Reginald could desire, and would have
+instantly set out with him to reconnoitre had not the evening
+been rainy.</p>
+<p>Then turning to Claude, he said, &lsquo;But I have not told
+you what brought me here; I came to persuade you to make an
+expedition with me up the Rhine; I set off next week; I would not
+write about it, because I knew you would only say you should like
+it very much, but&mdash;some but, that meant it was a great deal
+too much trouble.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How fast the plan has risen up,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;I heard nothing of it when I was with you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! it only came into my head last week, but I do not
+see what there is to wait for, second thoughts are never
+best.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Claude, how delightful,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>Claude stirred his tea meditatively, and did not speak.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is too much trouble, I perceive,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood; &lsquo;just as I told you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not exactly,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood now detailed his plan to his uncle, who said
+with a propitious smile, &lsquo;Well, Claude, what do you think
+of it?</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mind you catch a firefly for me,&rsquo; said
+Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why don&rsquo;t you answer, Claude?&rsquo; said Lilias;
+&lsquo;only imagine seeing Undine&rsquo;s Castle!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh, Claude?&rsquo; said his father.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It would be very pleasant,&rsquo; said Claude, slowly,
+&lsquo;but&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only a but,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+hope he will have disposed of it by the morning; I start next
+Tuesday week; I would not go later for the universe; we shall be
+just in time for the summer in its beauty, and to have a peep at
+Switzerland.&nbsp; We shall not have time for Mont Blanc, without
+rattling faster than any man in his senses would do.&nbsp; I do
+not mean to leave any place till I have thoroughly seen twice
+over everything worth seeing that it contains.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then perhaps you will get as far as Antwerp, and spend
+the rest of the holidays between the Cathedral and Paul
+Potter&rsquo;s bull.&nbsp; No, I shall have nothing to say to you
+at that rate,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Depend upon it, it will be you that will wish to stand
+still when I had rather be on the move,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you had better leave me behind.&nbsp; I have no
+intention of being hurried over the world, and never having my
+own way,&rsquo; said Claude, trying to look surly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure I should not mind travelling twice over the
+world to see Cologne Cathedral, or the field of Waterloo,&rsquo;
+said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me only show him my route,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;Redgie, look in my greatcoat pocket in
+the hall for Murray&rsquo;s Handbook, will you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Go and get it, Phyl,&rsquo; said Reginald, who was
+astride on the window-sill, peeling a stick.</p>
+<p>Away darted Lord Rotherwood to fetch it himself, but Phyllis
+was before him; her merry laugh was heard, as he chased her round
+the hall to get possession of his book, throwing down two or
+three cloaks to intercept her path.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun took the
+opportunity of his absence to tell Claude that he need not refuse
+on the score of expense.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; was all Claude&rsquo;s answer.</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood returned, and after punishing the discourteous
+Reginald by raising him up by his ears, he proceeded to give a
+full description of the delights of his expedition, the girls
+joining heartily with him in declaring it as well arranged as
+possible, and bringing all their knowledge of German travels to
+bear upon it.&nbsp; Claude sometimes put in a word, but never as
+if he cared much about the matter, and he was not to be persuaded
+to give any decided answer as to whether he would accompany the
+Marquis.</p>
+<p>The next morning at breakfast Lord Rotherwood returned to the
+charge, but Claude seemed even more inclined to refuse than the
+day before.&nbsp; Lilias could not divine what was the matter
+with him, and lingered long after her sisters had gone to school,
+to hear what answer he would make; and when Mr. Mohun looked at
+his watch, and asked her if she knew how late it was, she rose
+from the breakfast-table with a sigh, and thought while she was
+putting on her bonnet how much less agreeable the school had been
+since the schism in the parish.&nbsp; And besides, now that Faith
+and Esther, and one or two others of her best scholars, had gone
+away from school, there seemed to be no one of any intelligence
+or knowledge left in the class, except Marianne Weston, who knew
+too much for the others, and one or two clever inattentive little
+girls: Lily almost disliked teaching them.</p>
+<p>Phyllis and Adeline were in Miss Weston&rsquo;s class, and
+much did they delight in her teaching.&nbsp; There was a quiet
+earnestness in her manner which attracted her pupils, and fixed
+their attention, so as scarcely to allow the careless room for
+irreverence, while mere cleverness seemed almost to lose its
+advantage in learning what can only truly be entered into by
+those whose conduct agrees with their knowledge.</p>
+<p>Phyllis never dreamt that she could be happy while standing
+still and learning, till Miss Weston began to teach at the Sunday
+school.&nbsp; Obedience at school taught her to acquire habits of
+reverent attention, which gradually conquered the idleness and
+weariness which had once possessed her at church.&nbsp; First,
+she learnt to be interested in the Historical Lessons, then never
+to lose her place in the Psalms, then to think about and follow
+some of the Prayers; by this time she was far from feeling any
+fatigue at all on week-days; she had succeeded in restraining any
+contortions to relieve herself from the irksomeness of sitting
+still, and had her thoughts in tolerable order through the
+greater part of the Sunday service, and now it was her great
+wish, unknown to any one, to abstain from a single yawn through
+the whole service, including the sermon!</p>
+<p>Her place (chosen for her by Eleanor when first she had begun
+to go to Church, as far as possible from Reginald) was at the end
+of the seat, between her papa and the wall.&nbsp; This morning,
+as she put her arm on the book-board, while rising from kneeling,
+she felt a sudden thrill of sharp pain smear her left elbow,
+which made her start violently, and would have caused a scream,
+had she not been in church.&nbsp; She saw a wasp fall on the
+ground, and was just about to put her foot on it, when she
+recollected where she was.&nbsp; She had never in her life
+intentionally killed anything, and this was no time to begin in
+that place, and when she was angry.&nbsp; The pain was
+severe&mdash;more so perhaps than any she had felt
+before&mdash;and very much frightened, she pulled her
+papa&rsquo;s coat to draw his attention.&nbsp; But her first pull
+was so slight that he did not feel it, and before she gave a
+second she remembered that she could not make him hear what was
+the matter, without more noise than was proper.&nbsp; No, she
+must stay where she was, and try to bear the pain, and she knew
+that if she did try, help would be given her.&nbsp; She proceeded
+to find out the Psalm and join her voice with the others, though
+her heart was beating very fast, her forehead was contracted, and
+she could not help keeping her right hand clasped round her arm,
+and sometimes shifting from one foot to the other.&nbsp; The
+sharpness of the pain soon went off; she was able to attend to
+the Lessons, and hoped it would soon be quite well; but as soon
+as she began to think about it, it began to ache and throb, and
+seemed each moment to be growing hotter.&nbsp; The sermon
+especially tried her patience, her cheeks were burning, she felt
+sick and hardly able to hold up her head, yet she would not lean
+it against the wall, because she had often been told not to do
+so.&nbsp; She was exceedingly alarmed to find that her arm had
+swelled so much that she could hardly bend it, and it had
+received the impression of the gathers of her sleeve; she thought
+no sermon had ever been so long, but she sat quite still and
+upright, as she could not have done, had she not trained herself
+unconsciously by her efforts to leave off the trick of kicking
+her heels together.&nbsp; She did not speak till she was in the
+churchyard, and then she made Emily look at her arm.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My poor child, it is frightful,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;what is the matter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A wasp stung me just before the Psalms,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, &lsquo;and it goes on swelling and swelling, and it does
+pant!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is the matter?&rsquo; asked Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Papa, just look,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;a wasp stung
+this dear child quite early in the service, and she has been
+bearing it all this time in silence.&nbsp; Why did you not show
+me, Phyl?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because it was in church,&rsquo; said the little
+girl.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, Phyllis, you are a very Spartan,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Something better than a Spartan,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;Does it give you much pain now, my
+dear?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not so bad as in church,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+&lsquo;only I am very tired, and it is so hot.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We will help you home, then,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; As he took her up in his arms, Phyllis laughed,
+thanked him, replied to various inquiries from her sisters and
+the Westons&mdash;laughed again at sundry jokes from her
+brothers, then became silent, and was almost asleep, with her
+head on her papa&rsquo;s shoulder, by the time they reached the
+hall-door.&nbsp; She thought it very strange to be laid down on
+the sofa in the drawing-room, and to find every one attending to
+her.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston bathed her forehead with lavender-water,
+and Lily cut open the sleeve of her frock; Jane fetched all
+manner of remedies, and Emily pitied her.&nbsp; She was rather
+frightened: she thought such a fuss would not be made about her
+unless she was very ill; she was faint and tired, and was glad
+when Mrs. Weston proposed that they should all come away, and
+leave her to go to sleep quietly.</p>
+<p>Marianne was so absorbed in admiration of Phyllis that she did
+not speak one word all the way from church to the New Court, and
+stood in silence watching the operations upon her friend, till
+Mrs. Weston sent every one away.</p>
+<p>Adeline rather envied Phyllis; she would willingly have
+endured the pain to be made of so much importance, and said to be
+better than a Spartan, which must doubtless be something very
+fine indeed!</p>
+<p>Phyllis was waked by the bells ringing for the afternoon
+service; Mrs. Weston was sitting by her, reading, Claude came to
+inquire for her, and to tell her that as she had lost her early
+dinner, she was to join the rest of the party at six.&nbsp; To
+her great surprise she felt quite well and fresh, and her arm was
+much better; Mrs. Weston pinned up her sleeve, and she set off
+with her to church, wondering whether Ada would remember to tell
+her what she had missed that afternoon at school.&nbsp; Those
+whose approbation was valuable, honoured Phyllis for her conduct,
+but she did not perceive it, or seek for it; she did not look
+like a heroine while running about and playing with Reginald and
+the dogs in the evening, but her papa had told her she was a good
+child, Claude had given her one of his kindest smiles, and she
+was happy.&nbsp; Even when Esther was looking at the mark left by
+the sting, and telling her that she was sure Miss Marianne Weston
+would have not been half so good, her simple, humble spirit came
+to her aid, and she answered, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,
+Esther, Marianne would have behaved much better, for she is
+older, and never fidgets, and she would not have been angry like
+me, and just going to kill the wasp.&rsquo;</p>
+<h2><a name="page109"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+109</span>CHAPTER X<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">COUSIN ROTHERWOOD</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&lsquo;We care
+not who says<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; And intends it dispraise,<br />
+That an Angler to a fool is next neighbour.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">In</span> the evening Lord Rotherwood
+renewed his entreaties to Claude to join him on his
+travels.&nbsp; He was very much bent on taking him, for his own
+pleasure depended not a little on his cousin&rsquo;s
+company.&nbsp; Claude lay on the glassy slope of the terrace,
+while Lord Rotherwood paced rapidly up and down before him,
+persuading him with all the allurements he could think of, and
+looking the picture of impatience.&nbsp; Lily sat by, adding her
+weight to all his arguments.&nbsp; But Claude was almost
+contemptuous to all the beauties of Germany, and all the promised
+sights; he scarcely gave himself the trouble to answer his
+tormentors, only vouchsafing sometimes to open his lips to say
+that he never meant to go to a country where people spoke a
+language that sounded like cracking walnuts; that he hated
+steamers; had no fancy for tumble-down castles; that it was so
+common to travel; there was more distinction in staying at home;
+that the field of Waterloo had been spoilt, and was not worth
+seeing; his ideas of glaciers would be ruined by the reality; and
+he did not care to see Cologne Cathedral till it was
+finished.</p>
+<p>On this Lily set up an outcry of horror.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;One comfort is, Lily,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood,
+&lsquo;he does not mean it; he did not say it from the bottom of
+his heart.&nbsp; Now, confess you did not, Claude.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude pretended to be asleep.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I see plainly enough,&rsquo; said the Marquis to Lily,
+&lsquo;it is as Wat Greenwood says, &ldquo;Mr. Reynold and the
+grapes.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But it is not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and that is
+what provokes me; papa says he is quite welcome to go if he
+likes, and that he thinks it will do him a great deal of good,
+but that foolish boy will say nothing but &ldquo;I will think
+about it,&rdquo; and &ldquo;thank you&rdquo;.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I give him up as regularly dense.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is the most delightful plan ever thought of,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;so easily done, and just bringing within his
+compass all he ever wished to see.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! his sole ambition is to stretch those long legs of
+his on the grass, like a great vegetable marrow,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is vegetating like a plant that makes
+him so much taller than any rational creature with a little
+animal life.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think Jane has his share of curiosity,&rsquo; said
+Lily, &lsquo;I am sure I had no idea that anything belonging to
+us could be so stupid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said the Marquis, &lsquo;I shall not
+go.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, I shall certainly not go.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Claude, waking from his pretended
+sleep, &lsquo;why do you not ask Travers to go with you?&nbsp; He
+would like nothing better.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He is a botanist, and would bore me with looking for
+weeds.&nbsp; No, I will have you, or stay at home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude proposed several others as companions, but Lord
+Rotherwood treated them all with as much disdain as Claude had
+shown for Germany, and ended with &lsquo;Now, Claude, you know my
+determination, only tell me why you will not go?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I do tell you, Rotherwood, the truth is, that
+those boys, Maurice and Reginald, are perfectly unmanageable when
+they are left alone with the girls.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have a tutor for them,&rsquo; said the Marquis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very much obliged to you they would be for the
+suggestion,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! but Claude,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I really cannot go.&nbsp; They mind no one but the
+Baron and me, and besides that, it would be no small annoyance to
+the house; ten tutors could not keep them from indescribable bits
+of mischief.&nbsp; I undertook them these holidays, and I mean to
+keep them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias was just flying off to her father, when Claude caught
+hold of her, saying, &lsquo;I desire you will not,&rsquo; and she
+stood still, looking at her cousin in dismay.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is all right,&rsquo; cried the Marquis, joyfully,
+&lsquo;it is only to set off three weeks later.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! I thought you would not go a week later for the
+universe,&rsquo; said Claude, smiling.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not for the Universe, but for U&mdash;,&rsquo; said
+Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Worthy of a companion true, of the University of
+Gottingen,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;but, Rotherwood, do you
+really mean that it will make no difference to you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;None whatever; I meant to spend three weeks with my
+mother at the end of the tour, and I shall spend them now
+instead.&nbsp; I only talked of going immediately, because
+nothing is done at all that is not done quickly, and I hate
+delays, but it is all the same, and now it stands for Tuesday
+three weeks.&nbsp; Now we shall see what he says to Cologne,
+Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude sprung up, and began talking over arrangements and
+possibilities with zest, which showed what his wishes had been
+from the first.&nbsp; All was quickly settled, and as soon as his
+father had given his cordial approbation to the scheme, it was
+amusing to see how animated and active Claude became, and in how
+different a style he talked of the once slighted Rhine.</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood told the boys that their brother was a great
+deal too good for them, but they never troubled themselves to ask
+in what respect; Lilias took very great delight in telling Emily
+of the sacrifice which he had been willing to make, and looked
+forward to talking it over with Alethea, but she refrained, as
+long as he was at home, as she knew it would greatly displease
+him, and she had heard enough about missish confidences.</p>
+<p>The Marquis of Rotherwood was certainly the very reverse of
+his chosen travelling companion, in the matter of activity.&nbsp;
+He made an appointment with the two boys to get up at half-past
+four on Monday morning for some fishing, before the sun was too
+high&mdash;Maurice not caring for the sport, but intending to
+make prize of any of the &lsquo;insect youth&rsquo; which might
+prefer the sunrise for their gambols; and Reginald, in high
+delight at the prospect of real fishing, something beyond his own
+performances with a stick and a string, in pursuit of minnows in
+the ditches.&nbsp; Reginald was making contrivances for tying a
+string round his wrist and hanging the end of it from the window,
+that Andrew Grey might give it a pull as he went by to his work,
+to wake him, when Lord Rotherwood exclaimed, &lsquo;What! cannot
+you wake yourself at any time you please?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;I never heard of any
+one that could.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I advise you to learn the art; in the meantime I
+will call you to-morrow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Loud voices and laughter in the hall, and the front door
+creaking on its hinges at sunrise, convinced the household that
+this was no vain boast; before breakfast was quite over the
+fishermen were seen approaching the house.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood
+was an extraordinary figure, in an old shooting jacket of his
+uncle&rsquo;s, an enormous pair of fishing-boots of
+William&rsquo;s, and the broad-brimmed straw hat, which always
+hung up in the hall, and was not claimed by any particular
+owner.</p>
+<p>Maurice displayed to Jane the contents of two phials, strange
+little creatures, with stranger names, of which he was as proud
+as Reginald of his three fine trout.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood did
+not appear till he had made himself look like other people, which
+he did in a surprisingly short time.&nbsp; He began estimating
+the weight of the fish, and talking at his most rapid rate, till
+at last Claude said, &lsquo;Phyllis told us just now that you
+were coming back, for that she heard Cousin Rotherwood talking,
+and it proved to be Jane&rsquo;s old turkey cock
+gobbling.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No bad compliment,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;for
+Phyllis was once known to say, on hearing a turkey cock,
+&ldquo;How melodiously that nightingale sings.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no! that was Ada,&rsquo; said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I could answer for that,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Phyllis is too familiar with both parties to mistake their
+notes.&nbsp; Besides, she never was known to use such a word as
+melodiously.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you remember,&rsquo; said the Marquis, &lsquo;that
+there was some great lawyer who had three kinds of handwriting,
+one that the public could read, one that only his clerk could
+read, and one that nobody could read?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I suppose I am the clerk,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;unless I divide the honour with Florence.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think I am unintelligible anywhere but
+here,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is nothing
+sufficiently exciting at home, if Grosvenor Square is to be
+called home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Sometimes you do it without knowing it,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;when you do not exactly
+know what you are going to say.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then it is no bad plan,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;People are satisfied, and you
+don&rsquo;t commit yourself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what, Cousin Rotherwood,&rsquo;
+exclaimed Phyllis, &lsquo;your hand is bleeding.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is it?&nbsp; Thank you, Phyllis, I thought I had washed
+it off: now do find me some sealing-wax&mdash;India-rub
+her&mdash;sticking-plaster, I mean.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what a
+bad cut, how did it happen?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only, I am the victim to Maurice&rsquo;s first essay in
+fishing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Just fancy what an awkward fellow Maurice is,&rsquo;
+said Reginald, &lsquo;he had but one throw, and he managed to
+stick the hook into Rotherwood&rsquo;s hand.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;One of those barbed hooks?&nbsp; Oh! Rotherwood, how
+horrid!&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And he cut it out with his knife, and caught that great
+trout with it directly,&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And neither half drowned Maurice, nor sent him home
+again?&rsquo; asked Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I contented myself with taking away his weapon,&rsquo;
+said the Marquis; &lsquo;and he wished for nothing better than to
+poke about in the gutters for insects; it was only Redgie that
+teased him into the nobler sport.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Emily was inclined to make a serious matter of the accident,
+but her cousin said ten words while she said one, and by the time
+her first sentence was uttered, she found him talking about his
+ride to Devereux Castle.</p>
+<p>He and Claude set out as soon as breakfast was over, and came
+back about three o&rsquo;clock; Claude was tired with the heat,
+and betook himself to the sofa, where he fell asleep, under
+pretence of reading, but the indefatigable Marquis was ready and
+willing to set out with Reginald and Wat Greenwood to shoot
+rabbits.</p>
+<p>Dinner-time came, and Emily sat at the drawing-room window
+with Claude and Lilias, lamenting her cousin&rsquo;s bad
+habits.&nbsp; &lsquo;Nothing will ever make him punctual,&rsquo;
+said she.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am in duty bound to let you say nothing against
+him,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is very good-natured in him to wait for you,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;but it would be horribly selfish to leave you
+behind.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Delay is his great horror,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;and the wonder of his character is, that he is not
+selfish.&nbsp; No one had ever better training for it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He does like his own way very much,&rsquo; said
+Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Who does not?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nothing shows his sense so much,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;as his great attachment to papa&mdash;the only person who
+ever controlled him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And to Claude&mdash;his opposite in everything,&rsquo;
+said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think he will tire you to death in Germany,&rsquo;
+said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never fear,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;my <i>vis
+inerti&aelig;</i> is enough to counterbalance any amount of
+restlessness.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Here they come,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;how Wat
+Greenwood is grinning at Rotherwood&rsquo;s jokes!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A happy day for Wat,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;He
+will be quite dejected if William is not at home next shooting
+season.&nbsp; He thinks you a degenerate Mohun,
+Claude.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He must comfort himself with Redgie,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rotherwood is only eager about shooting in common with
+everything else,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but Redgie, I fear,
+will care for nothing else.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood came in, accounting for being late, as, in
+passing through a harvest field, he could not help attempting to
+reap.&nbsp; The Beechcroft farming operations had been his
+especial amusement from very early days, and his plans were
+numerous for farming on a grand scale as soon as he should be of
+age.&nbsp; His talk during dinner was of turnips and wheat, till
+at length Mr. Mohun asked him what he thought of the appearance
+of the castle.&nbsp; He said it was very forlorn; the rooms
+looked so dreary and deserted that he could not bear to be in
+them, and had been out of doors almost all the time.&nbsp;
+Indeed, he was afraid he had disappointed the housekeeper by not
+complimenting her as she deserved, for the freezing dismal order
+in which she kept everything.&nbsp; &lsquo;And really,&rsquo;
+said he, &lsquo;I must go again to-morrow and make up for it, and
+Emily, you must come with me and try to devise something to make
+the unhappy place less like the abode of the Prince of the Black
+Islands.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Emily willingly promised to go, and she went on talking to
+him, and telling him whom he was to meet on the next day, when an
+unusual silence making her look up, she beheld him more than half
+asleep.</p>
+<p>Reginald fidgeted and sighed, and Maurice grew graver and
+graver as they thought of the wasps.&nbsp; Maurice wanted to take
+a nest entire, and began explaining his plan to Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You see, Claude, burning some straw and then digging,
+spoils the combs, as Wat does it; now I have got some puff-balls
+and sulphur to put into the hole, and set fire to them with a
+lucifer match, so as to stifle the wasps, and then dig them out
+quietly to-morrow morning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is all of no use, if that Rotherwood will do nothing
+but sleep,&rsquo; said Reginald, in a disconsolate tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You should not have made him get up at four,&rsquo;
+said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Who!&nbsp; I?&rsquo; exclaimed the Marquis.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I never was wider awake.&nbsp; What are you waiting for,
+Reginald?&nbsp; I thought you were going to take wasps&rsquo;
+nests.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are much too tired, I am sure,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Tired! not in the least, I have done nothing to-day to
+tire me,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, walking up and down the
+room to keep himself awake.</p>
+<p>The whole party went out, and found Wat Greenwood waiting for
+them with a bundle of straw, a spade, and a little
+gunpowder.&nbsp; Maurice carried a basket containing all his
+preparations, on which Wat looked with supreme contempt, telling
+him that his puffs were too green to make a smeech.&nbsp;
+Maurice, not condescending to argue the point, ran on to a nest
+which Reginald had marked on one of the green banks of the
+ancient moat.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care that the wasps are all come in; mind what you
+are about, Maurice,&rsquo; called his father.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Master Maurice,&rsquo; shouted Wat, &lsquo;you had
+better take a green bough.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never mind, Wat,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;he
+would not stay long enough to use it if he had it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Reginald ran after Maurice, who had just reached the nest.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is one coming in, the evening is so warm they are
+not quiet yet.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll quiet them,&rsquo; said Maurice, kneeling
+down, and putting his first puff-ball into the hole.</p>
+<p>Reginald stood by with a sly smile, as he pulled a branch off
+a neighbouring filbert-tree.&nbsp; The next moment Maurice gave a
+sudden yell, &lsquo;The wasps! the wasps!&rsquo; and jumping up,
+and tripping at his first step, rolled down the bank, and landed
+safely at Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s feet.&nbsp; The shouts of
+laughter were loud, but he regarded them not, and as soon as he
+recovered his feet, rushed past his sisters, and never stopped
+till he reached the house.&nbsp; Redgie stood alone, in the midst
+of a cloud of wasps, beating them off with a bough, roaring with
+laughter, and calling Wat to bring the straw to burn them.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Redgie, come away, leave them for Maurice to
+try again,&rsquo; said his father.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The brute, he stung me,&rsquo; cried Reginald, knocking
+down a wasp or two as he came down.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is
+this?&rsquo; added he, as he stumbled over something at the
+bottom of the slope.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s
+basket; look here&mdash;laudanum&mdash;did he mean to poison the
+wasps?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;to cure their
+stings.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The poor unhappy quiz!&rsquo; cried Reginald.</p>
+<p>While the others were busy over a nest, Mr. Mohun asked Emily
+how the boy got at the medicine chest.&nbsp; Emily looked
+confused, and said she supposed Jane had given him a bottle.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Jane is too young to be trusted there,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun, &lsquo;I thought you knew better; do not let the key be
+out of your possession again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a few more nests had been taken in the usual manner,
+they returned to the house.&nbsp; Maurice was lying on the sofa
+reading the <i>Penny Magazine</i>, from which he raised his eyes
+no more that evening, in spite of all the jokes which flew about
+respecting wounded knights, courage, and the balsam of
+Fierabras.&nbsp; He called Jane to teach her how flies were made,
+and as soon as tea was over he went to bed.&nbsp; Reginald, after
+many yawns, prepared to follow his example, and as he was wishing
+his sisters good-night, Emily said, &lsquo;Now, Redgie, do not go
+out at such a preposterous hour to-morrow morning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is that to you?&rsquo; was Reginald&rsquo;s
+courteous inquiry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not wish to see every one fast asleep to-morrow
+evening,&rsquo; said Emily, and she looked at her cousin, whose
+head was far back over his chair.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He is a Trojan,&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is a Trojan better than a Spartan?&rsquo; asked Ada,
+meditatively.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Helen thought so,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;&ldquo;When Greek meets Greek, then comes the tug of
+war,&rdquo;&rsquo; muttered the Marquis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are all talking Greek,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Arabic,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>As far as it could be comprehended, Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+answer related to Maurice and the wasps.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what is to be done if
+he is in that condition to-morrow?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am not asleep; what makes you think I am?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish you would sit in that great chair,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;I am afraid you will break your neck; you look so
+uncomfortable, I cannot bear to see you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I never was more comfortable in my life,&rsquo; said
+Lord Rotherwood, asleep while finishing the sentence; but this
+time, happily with his elbows on the table, and his head in a
+safer position.</p>
+<p>The next day was spent rather more rationally.&nbsp; Lord
+Rotherwood met with a book of Irish Tales, with which he became
+so engrossed that he did not like to leave it when Emily and
+Claude were ready to ride to Devereux Castle with him.&nbsp; When
+there he was equally eager and vehement about each matter that
+came under consideration, and so many presented themselves, that
+Emily began to be in agonies lest she should not be at home in
+time to dress and receive her guests.&nbsp; They did, however,
+reach the house before Lilias, who had been walking with Miss
+Weston, came in, and when she went upstairs, she found Emily full
+of complaints at the inconvenience of having no Rachel to assist
+her in dressing, and to see that everything was in order, and
+that Phyllis was fit to appear when she came down in the evening;
+but, by the assistance of Lily and Jane, she got over her
+troubles, and when she went into the drawing-room, she was much
+relieved to find her two gentlemen quite safe and dressed.&nbsp;
+She had been in great fear of Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s straying
+away to join in some of Reginald&rsquo;s sports, and was grateful
+to the Irish book for keeping him out of mischief.</p>
+<p>Emily was in her glory; it was the first large dinner-party
+since Eleanor had gone, and though she pitied herself for having
+the trouble of entertaining the people, she really enjoyed the
+feeling that she now appeared as the mistress of New Court, with
+her cousin, the Marquis, by her side, to show how highly she was
+connected.&nbsp; And everything went off just as could be
+wished.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood talked intelligibly and sensibly,
+and Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s neighbour at dinner had a voice which he
+could hear.&nbsp; Lily&rsquo;s pleasure was not less than her
+sister&rsquo;s, though of a different kind.&nbsp; She delighted
+in thinking how well Emily did the honours, in watching the
+varied expression of Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s animated
+countenance, in imagining Claude&rsquo;s forehead to be finer
+than that of any one else, and in thinking how people must admire
+Reginald&rsquo;s tall, active figure, and very handsome
+face.&nbsp; She was asked to play, and did tolerably well, but
+was too shy to sing, nor, indeed, was Reginald encouraging.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;What is the use of your singing, Lily?&nbsp; If it was
+like Miss Weston&rsquo;s, now&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Reginald had taken a great fancy to Miss Weston; he stood by
+her all the evening, and afterwards let her talk to him, and then
+began to chatter himself, at last becoming so confidential as to
+impart to her the grand object of his ambition, which was to be
+taller than Claude!</p>
+<p>The next morning Lord Rotherwood left Beechcroft, somewhat to
+Emily&rsquo;s relief; for though she was very proud of him, and
+much enjoyed the dignity of being seen to talk familiarly with
+him, yet, when no strangers were present, and he became no more
+than an ordinary cousin, she was worried by his incessant
+activity, and desire to see, know, and do everything as fast and
+as thoroughly as possible.&nbsp; She could not see the use of
+such vehemence; she liked to take things in a moderate way, and
+as Claude said, much preferred the passive to the active
+voice.&nbsp; Claude, on the contrary, was ashamed of his
+constitutional indolence, looked on it as a temptation, and
+struggled against it, almost envying his cousin his unabated
+eagerness and untiring energy, and liking to be with him, because
+no one else so effectually roused him from his habitual
+languor.&nbsp; His indolence was, however, so much the effect of
+ill health, that exertion was sometimes scarcely in his power,
+especially in hot weather, and by the time his brothers&rsquo;
+studies were finished each day, he was unfit for anything but to
+lie on the grass under the plane-tree.</p>
+<p>The days glided on, and the holidays came to an end; Maurice
+spent them in adding to his collection of insects, which, with
+Jane&rsquo;s assistance, he arranged very neatly; and Reginald
+and Phyllis performed several exploits, more agreeable to
+themselves than satisfactory to the more rational part of the New
+Court community.&nbsp; At the same time, Reginald&rsquo;s
+devotion to Miss Weston increased; he never moved from her side
+when she sang, did not fail to be of the party when she walked
+with his sisters, offered her one of his own puppies, named his
+little ship &lsquo;Alethea,&rsquo; and was even tolerably civil
+to Marianne.</p>
+<p>At length the day of departure came; the boys returned to
+school, Claude joined Lord Rotherwood, and the New Court was
+again in a state of tranquillity.</p>
+<h2><a name="page123"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+123</span>CHAPTER XI<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">DANCING</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p style="text-align: center">&lsquo;Prescribe us not
+our duties.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>&lsquo;<span class="smcap">Well</span>, Phyllis,&rsquo; said
+her father, as he passed through the hall to mount his horse,
+&lsquo;how do you like the prospect of Monsieur le Roi&rsquo;s
+instructions?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not at all, papa,&rsquo; answered Phyllis, running out
+to the hall door to pat the horse, and give it a piece of
+bread.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Take care you turn out your toes,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;You must learn to dance like a dragon before
+Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s birthday next year.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Papa, how do dragons dance?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is a question I must decide at my leisure,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun, mounting.&nbsp; &lsquo;Stand out of the way,
+Phyl, or you will feel how horses dance.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away he rode, while Phyllis turned with unwilling steps to the
+nursery, to be dressed for her first dancing lesson; Marianne
+Weston was to learn with her, and this was some consolation, but
+Phyllis could not share in the satisfaction Adeline felt in the
+arrival of Monsieur le Roi.&nbsp; Jane was also a pupil, but
+Lily, whose recollections of her own dancing days were not
+agreeable, absented herself entirely from the dancing-room, even
+though Alethea Weston had come with her sister.</p>
+<p>Poor Phyllis danced as awkwardly as was expected, but Adeline
+seemed likely to be a pupil in whom a master might rejoice;
+Marianne was very attentive and not ungraceful, but Alethea soon
+saw reason to regret the arrangement that had been made, for she
+perceived that Jane considered the master a fair subject for
+derision, and her &lsquo;nods and becks, and wreathed
+smiles,&rsquo; called up corresponding looks in Marianne&rsquo;s
+face.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh Brownie, you are a naughty thing!&rsquo; said Emily,
+as soon as M. le Roi had departed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He really was irresistible!&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I suppose ridicule is one of the disagreeables to which
+a dancing-master makes up his mind,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;one can have no
+compunction in quizzing that species.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think I can quite say that, Jane,&rsquo; said
+Miss Weston.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;This man especially lays himself open to
+ridicule,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;do you know, Alethea, that he
+is an Englishman, and his name is King, only he calls himself Le
+Roi, and speaks broken English!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Though Alethea joined in the general laugh, she did not feel
+quite satisfied; she feared that if not checked in time, Jane
+would proceed to actual impertinence, and that Marianne would be
+tempted to follow her example, but she did not like to interfere,
+and only advised Marianne to be on her guard, hoping that Emily
+would also speak seriously to her sister.</p>
+<p>On the next occasion, however, Jane ventured still farther;
+her grimaces were almost irresistible, and she had a most comical
+manner of imitating the master&rsquo;s attitudes when his eye was
+not upon her, and putting on a demure countenance when he turned
+towards her, which sorely tried Marianne.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What shall I do, Alethea?&rsquo; said the little girl,
+as the sisters walked home together; &lsquo;I do not know how to
+help laughing, if Jane will be so very funny.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am afraid we must ask mamma to let us give up the
+dancing,&rsquo; replied Alethea; &lsquo;the temptation is almost
+too strong, and I do not think she would wish to expose you to
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Alethea, why do not you speak to Jane?&rsquo;
+asked Marianne; &lsquo;no one seems to tell her it is wrong; Miss
+Mohun was almost laughing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think Jane would consider that I ought to find
+fault with her,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But you would not scold her,&rsquo; urged Marianne;
+&lsquo;only put her in mind that it is not right, not kind; that
+Monsieur le Roi is in authority over her for the time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will speak to mamma,&rsquo; said Alethea,
+&lsquo;perhaps it will be better next time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>And it was better, for Mr. Mohun happening to be at home, was
+dragged into the dancing-room by Emily and Ada.&nbsp; Once, when
+she thought he was looking another way, Jane tried to raise a
+smile, but a stern &lsquo;Jane, what are you thinking of?&rsquo;
+recalled her to order, and when the lesson was over her father
+spoke gravely to her, telling her that he thought few things more
+disgusting in a young lady than impertinence towards her
+teachers; and then added, &lsquo;Miss Weston, I hope you keep
+strict watch over these giddy young things.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Awed by her father, Jane behaved tolerably well at that time
+and the next, and Miss Weston hoped her interference would not be
+needed, but as if to make up for this restraint, her conduct a
+fortnight after was quite beyond bearing.&nbsp; She used every
+means to make Marianne laugh, and at last went so far as to
+pretend to think that M. le Roi had not understood what she said
+in English, and to translate it into French.&nbsp; Poor Marianne
+looked imploringly at her sister, and Alethea hoped that Emily
+would interpose, but Emily was turning away her head to conceal a
+laugh, and Miss Weston was obliged to give Jane a very grave
+look, which she perfectly understood, though she pretended not to
+see it.&nbsp; When the exercise was over Miss Weston made her a
+sign to approach, and said, &lsquo;Jane, do you think your papa
+would have liked&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What do you mean?&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I have not
+been laughing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know what I mean,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;and
+pray do not be displeased if I ask you not to make it difficult
+for Marianne to behave properly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane drew up her head and went back to her place.&nbsp; She
+played no more tricks that day, but as soon as the guests were
+gone, began telling Lilias how Miss Weston had been meddling and
+scolding her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And well you must have deserved it,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not say that Jenny was right,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;but I think Miss Weston might allow me to correct my own
+sister in my own house.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You correct Jane!&rsquo; cried Lily, and Jane
+laughed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I only mean,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;that it was not
+very polite, and papa says the closest friendship is no reason
+for dispensing with the rules of politeness.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the rules of
+politeness are rules of love, and it was in love that Alethea
+spoke; she sees how sadly we are left to ourselves, and is kind
+enough to speak a word in season.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;since it was in love
+that she spoke, you would like to have her for our reprover for
+ever, and I can assure you more unlikely things have
+happened.&nbsp; I have heard it from one who can
+judge.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me hear no more of this,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;it is preposterous and ridiculous, and very disrespectful
+to papa.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane for once, rather shocked at her own words, went back to
+what had been said just before.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then, perhaps, you would like to have Eleanor back
+again?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure you want some one to put you in mind of your
+duty,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eleanor and duty!&rsquo; cried Emily; &lsquo;you who
+thought so much of the power of love!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of Emily and love, she would say, if it sounded
+well,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot see what true love you or Jane are showing
+now,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;it is no kindness to encourage her
+pertness, or to throw away a friendly reproof because it offends
+your pride.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nobody reproved me,&rsquo; replied Emily;
+&lsquo;besides, I know love will prevail; for my sake Jane will
+not expose herself and me to a stranger&rsquo;s
+interference.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If you depend upon that, I wish you joy,&rsquo; said
+Lilias, as she left the room.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What a weathercock Lily is!&rsquo; cried Jane,
+&lsquo;she has fallen in love with Alethea Weston, and echoes all
+she says.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not considering her own inconsistency,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That Alethea Weston,&rsquo; exclaimed Jane, in an angry
+tone;&mdash;but Emily, beginning to recover some sense of
+propriety, said, &lsquo;Jenny, you know you were very ill-bred,
+and you made it difficult for the little ones to behave
+well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not our own little ones,&rsquo; said Jane;
+&lsquo;honest Phyl did not understand the joke, and Ada was
+thinking of her attitudes; one comfort is, that I shall be
+confirmed in three weeks&rsquo; time, and then people cannot
+treat me as a mere child&mdash;little as I am.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Jane,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I do not like
+to hear you talk of confirmation in that light way.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I do not mean
+it&mdash;of course I do not mean it&mdash;don&rsquo;t look
+shocked&mdash;it was only by the bye&mdash;and another by the
+bye, Emily, you know I must have a cap and white ribbons, and I
+am afraid I must make it myself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ay, that is the worst of having Esther,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;she and Hannah have no notion of anything but the
+plainest work; I am sure if I had thought of all the trouble of
+that kind which having a young girl would entail, I would never
+have consented to Esther&rsquo;s coming.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That was entirely Lily&rsquo;s scheme,&rsquo; said
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes; it is impossible to resist Lily, she is so eager
+and anxious, and it would have vexed her very much if I had
+opposed her, and that I cannot bear; besides, Esther is a very
+nice girl, and will learn.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is Robert talking to papa on the green,&rsquo;
+said Jane; &lsquo;what a deep conference; what can it be
+about?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>If Jane had heard that conversation she might have perceived
+that she could not wilfully offend, even in what she thought a
+trifling matter, without making it evident, even to others, that
+there was something very wrong about her.&nbsp; At that moment
+the Rector was saying to his uncle, &lsquo;I am in doubt about
+Jane, I cannot but fear she is not in a satisfactory state for
+confirmation, and I wished to ask you what you think?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Act just as you would with any of the village
+girls,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should be very sorry to do otherwise,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux; &lsquo;but I thought you might like, since every one
+knows that she is a candidate, that she should not be at home at
+the time of the confirmation, if it is necessary to refuse
+her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I should not wish to
+shield her from the disgrace.&nbsp; It may be useful to her, and
+besides, it will establish your character for impartiality.&nbsp;
+I have not been satisfied with all I saw of little Jane for some
+time past, and I am afraid that much passes amongst my poor girls
+which never comes to my knowledge.&nbsp; Her pertness especially
+is probably restrained in my presence.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is not so much the pertness that I complain
+of,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;for that might be merely
+exuberance of spirits, but there is a sort of habitual
+irreverence, which makes one dread to bring her nearer to sacred
+tings.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I know what you mean,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;and
+I think the pertness is a branch of it, more noticed because more
+inconvenient to others.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I think the fault
+I speak of is most evident; when there is occasion to reprove
+her, I am always baffled by a kind of levity which makes every
+warning glance aside.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I should decidedly say refuse her,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;It would be a warning that she could not
+disregard, and the best chance of improving her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yet,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;if she is eager
+for confirmation, and regards it in its proper light, it is hard
+to say whether it is right to deny it to her; it may give her the
+depth and earnestness which she needs.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Poor child,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;she has great
+disadvantages; I am quite sure our present system is not fit for
+her.&nbsp; Things shall be placed on a different footing, and in
+another year or two I hope she may be fitter for
+confirmation.&nbsp; However, before you finally decide, I should
+wish to have some conversation with her, and speak to you
+again.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is just what I wish,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.</p>
+<h2><a name="page131"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+131</span>CHAPTER XII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE FEVER</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Jane borrowed maxims from a doubting
+school,<br />
+And took for truth the test of ridicule.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> question of Jane&rsquo;s
+confirmation was decided in an unexpected manner; for the day
+after Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s conversation with his nephew she was
+attacked by a headache and sore throat, spent a feverish night,
+and in the morning was so unwell that a medical man was sent for
+from Raynham.&nbsp; On his arrival he pronounced that she was
+suffering from scarlet fever, and Emily began to feel the
+approach of the same complaint.</p>
+<p>Phyllis and Adeline were shut up in the drawing-room, and a
+system of quarantine established, which was happily brought to a
+conclusion by a note from Mrs. Weston, who kindly begged that
+they might be sent to her at Broomhill, and Mr. Mohun gladly
+availing himself of the offer, the little girls set off, so well
+pleased to make a visit alone, as almost to forget the occasion
+of it.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston had extended her invitation to Lilias,
+but she begged to be allowed to remain with her sisters, and Mr.
+Mohun thought that she had been already so much exposed to the
+infection that it was useless for her to take any
+precautions.</p>
+<p>She was therefore declared head nurse; and it was well that
+she had an energetic spirit, and so sweet a temper, that she was
+ready to sympathise with all Emily&rsquo;s petulant complaints,
+and even to find fault with herself for not being in two places
+at once.&nbsp; Two of the maids were ill, and the whole care of
+Emily and Jane devolved upon her, with only the assistance of
+Esther.</p>
+<p>Emily was not very seriously ill, but Jane&rsquo;s fever was
+very high, and Lily thought that her father was more anxious than
+he chose to appear.&nbsp; Of Jane&rsquo;s own thoughts little
+could be guessed; she was often delirious, and at all times
+speaking was so painful that she said as little as possible.</p>
+<p>Lily&rsquo;s troubles seemed at their height one Sunday
+afternoon, while her father was at church.&nbsp; She had been
+reading the Psalms and Lessons to Emily, and she then rose to
+return to Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not go,&rsquo; entreated Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will send Esther.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Esther is of no use.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And therefore I do not like to leave her so long alone
+with Jane.&nbsp; Pray spare me a little smile.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then come back soon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily was glad to escape with no more objections.&nbsp; She
+found Jane complaining of thirst, but to swallow gave her great
+pain, and she required so much attendance for some little time,
+that Emily&rsquo;s bell was twice rung before Esther could be
+spared to go to her.</p>
+<p>She soon came back, saying, &lsquo;Miss Mohun wants you
+directly, Miss Lilias.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Tell her I will come presently,&rsquo; said Lily, who
+had one hand pressed on Jane&rsquo;s burning temples, while the
+other was sprinkling her with ether.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stay,&rsquo; said Jane, faintly, and Esther left the
+room.</p>
+<p>Jane drew her breath with so much difficulty that a dreadful
+terror seized upon Lily, lest she should be suffocated.&nbsp; She
+raised her head, and supported her till Esther could bring more
+pillows.&nbsp; Esther brought a message from Emily to hasten her
+return; but Jane could not be left, and the grateful look she
+gave her as she arranged the pillows repaid her for all her
+toils.&nbsp; After a little time Jane became more comfortable,
+and said in a whisper, &lsquo;Dear Lily, I wish I was not so
+troublesome.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Back came Esther at this moment, saying, &lsquo;Miss Emily
+says she is worse, and wants you directly, Miss
+Lilias.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily hurried away to Emily&rsquo;s room, and found what might
+well have tried her temper.&nbsp; Emily was flushed indeed, and
+feverish, but her breathing was smooth and even, and her hand and
+pulse cool and slow, compared with the parched burning hands, and
+throbbings, too quick to count, which Lily had just been
+watching.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, my dear Emily, I am sorry you do not feel better;
+what can I do for you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How can I be better while I am left so long, and Esther
+not coming when I ring?&nbsp; What would happen if I were to
+faint away?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but
+when you rang, poor Jenny could spare neither of us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How is poor Jenny?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Her throat is very bad, but she is quite sensible now,
+and wishes to have me there.&nbsp; What did you want,
+Emily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I wish you would draw the curtain, the light
+hurts me; that will do&mdash;no&mdash;now it is worse, pray put
+it as it was before.&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp; Lily, if you knew how ill I
+am you would not leave me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Can I do anything for you&mdash;will you have some
+coffee?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! no, it has a bad taste, I am sure it is carelessly
+made.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Shall I make you some fresh, with the spirit
+lamp?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, I am tired of it.&nbsp; I wonder if I might have
+some tamarinds?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will ask as soon as papa comes from
+church.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is he gone to church? how could he go when we are all
+so ill?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps he was doing us more good at church than he
+could at home.&nbsp; You will be glad to hear, Emily, that he has
+sent for Rachel to come and help us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! has he? but she lives so far off, and gets her
+letters so seldom, I don&rsquo;t reckon at all upon her
+coming.&nbsp; If she could come directly it would be a
+comfort.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It would, indeed,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;she would
+know what to do for Jane.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily, where is the ether?&nbsp; You are always taking
+it away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In Jane&rsquo;s room; I will fetch it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, if you once get into Jane&rsquo;s room I shall
+never see you back again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Now Emily knew that Jane was very ill, and Lily&rsquo;s pale
+cheeks, heavy eyes, and failing voice, might have reminded her
+that two sick persons were a heavy charge upon a girl of
+seventeen, without the addition of her caprices and
+fretfulness.&nbsp; And how was it that the kind-hearted,
+affectionate Emily never thought of all this?&nbsp; It was
+because she had been giving way to selfishness for nineteen
+years; and now the contemplation of her own sufferings was quite
+enough to hide from her that others had much to bear; and
+illness, instead of teaching her patience and consideration, only
+made her more exacting and querulous.</p>
+<p>To Lily&rsquo;s unspeakable relief, Miss Weston accompanied
+Mr. Mohun from church, and offered to share her attendance.&nbsp;
+No one knew what it cost Alethea to come into the midst of a
+scene which constantly reminded her of the sisters she had lost,
+but she did not shrink from it, and was glad that her parents saw
+no objection to her offering to share Lily&rsquo;s toils.&nbsp;
+Her experience was most valuable, and relieved Lilias of the fear
+that was continually haunting her, lest her ignorance might lead
+to some fatal mistake.&nbsp; The next day brought Rachel, and
+both patients began to mend.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s recovery was
+quicker than Emily&rsquo;s, for her constitution was not so
+languid, and having no pleasure in the importance of being an
+invalid, she was willing to exert herself, and make the best of
+everything, while Emily did not much like to be told that she was
+better, and thought it cruel to hint that exertion would benefit
+her.&nbsp; Both were convalescent before the fever attacked Lily,
+who was severely ill, but not alarmingly so, and her gentleness
+and patience made Alethea delight in having the care of
+her.&nbsp; Lily was full of gratitude to her kind friend, and
+felt quite happy when Alethea chanced one day to call her by the
+name of Emma; she almost hoped she was taking the place of that
+sister, and the thought cheered her through many languid hours,
+and gave double value to all Alethea&rsquo;s kindness.&nbsp; She
+did not feel disposed to repine at an illness which brought out
+such affection from her friend, and still more from her father,
+who, when he came to see her, would say things which gave her a
+thrill of pleasure whenever she thought of them.</p>
+<p>It happened one day that Jane, having finished her book,
+looked round for some other occupation; she knew that Miss Weston
+had walked to Broomhill; Rachael was with Lilias, and there was
+no amusement at hand.&nbsp; At last she recollected that her papa
+had said in the morning, that he hoped to see her and Emily in
+the schoolroom in the course of the day, and hoping to meet her
+sister, she resolved to try and get there.&nbsp; The room had
+been Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s sitting-room since the beginning of their
+illness, and it looked so very comfortable that she was glad she
+had come, though she was so tired she wondered how she should get
+back again.&nbsp; Emily was not there, so she lay down on the
+sofa and took up a little book from the table.&nbsp; The title
+was <i>Susan Harvey</i>, <i>or Confirmation</i>, and she read it
+with more interest as she remembered with a pang that this was
+the day of the confirmation, to which she had been invited; she
+soon found herself shedding tears over the book, she who had
+never yet been known to cry at any story, however
+affecting.&nbsp; She had not finished when Mr. Devereux came in
+to look for Mr. Mohun, and finding her there, was going away as
+soon as he had congratulated her on having left her room, but she
+begged him to stay, and began asking questions about the
+confirmation.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Were there many people?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Three hundred.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did the Stoney Bridge people make a
+disturbance?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How many of our people?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Twenty-seven.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did all the girls wear caps?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Most of them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane was rather surprised at the shortness of her
+cousin&rsquo;s answers, but she went on, as he stood before the
+fire, apparently in deep thought.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was Miss Burnet confirmed?&nbsp; She is the dullest
+girl I ever knew, and she is older than I am.&nbsp; Was she
+confused?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She was.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you give Mary Wright a ticket?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then, of course, you did not give one to Ned
+Long.&nbsp; I thought you would never succeed in making him
+remember which is the ninth commandment.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I did not refuse him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed! did he improve in a portentous
+manner?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not particularly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, you must have been more merciful than I
+expected.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Robert, you must have lost the use of your tongue, for
+want of us to talk to.&nbsp; I shall be affronted if you go into
+a brown study the first day of seeing me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He smiled in a constrained manner, and after a few minutes
+said, &lsquo;I have been considering whether this is a fit time
+to tell you what will give you pain.&nbsp; You must tell me if
+you can bear it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;About Lily, or the little ones?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no! only about yourself.&nbsp; Your father wished
+me to speak to you, but I would not have done so on this first
+meeting, but what you have just been saying makes me think this
+is the best occasion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me know; I do not like suspense,&rsquo; said Jane,
+sharply.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think it right to tell you, Jane, that neither your
+father nor I thought it would be desirable for you to be
+confirmed at this time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you really mean it?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Look back on the past year, and say if you sincerely
+think you are fit for confirmation.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;As to that,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;the best people
+are always saying that they are not fit for these
+things.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;None can call themselves worthy of them; but I think
+the conscience of some would bear them witness that they had
+profited so far by their present means of grace as to give
+grounds for hoping that they would derive benefit from further
+assistance.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I suppose I must be very bad, since you see
+it,&rsquo; said Jane, in a manner rather more subdued; &lsquo;but
+I did not think myself worse than other people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is a Christian called, only to be no worse than
+others?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh no!&nbsp; I see, I mean&mdash;pray tell me my great
+fault.&nbsp; Pertness, I suppose&mdash;love of gossip?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There must be a deeper root of evil, of which these are
+but the visible effects, Jane.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What do you mean, Robert?&rsquo; said Jane, now seeming
+really impressed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think, Jane, that the greatest and most dangerous
+fault of your character is want of reverence.&nbsp; I think it is
+want of reverence which makes you press forward to that for which
+you confess yourself unfit; it is want of reverence for holiness
+which makes you not care to attain it; want of reverence for the
+Holy Word that makes you treat it as a mere lesson; and in
+smaller matters your pertness is want of reverence for your
+superiors; you would not be ready to believe and to say the worst
+of others, if you reverenced what good there may be in
+them.&nbsp; Take care that your want of reverence is not in
+reality want of faith.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane&rsquo;s spirits were weak and subdued.&nbsp; It was a
+great shock to her to hear that she was not thought worthy of
+confirmation; her faults had never been called by so hard a name;
+she was in part humbled, and in part grieved, and what she
+thought harshness in her cousin; she turned away her face, and
+did not speak.&nbsp; He continued, &lsquo;Jane, you must not
+think me unkind, your father desired me to talk to you, and,
+indeed, the time of recovery from sickness is too precious to be
+trifled away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane wept bitterly.&nbsp; Presently he said, &lsquo;It grieves
+me to have been obliged to speak harshly to you, you must forgive
+me if I have talked too much to you, Jane.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane tried to speak, but sobs prevented her, and she gave way
+to a violent fit of crying.&nbsp; Her cousin feared he had been
+unwise in saying so much, and had weakened the effect of his own
+words.&nbsp; He would have been glad to see tears of repentance,
+but he was afraid that she was weeping over fancied unkindness,
+and that he might have done what might be hurtful to her in her
+weak state.&nbsp; He said a few kind words, and tried to console
+her, but this change of tone rather added to her distress, and
+she became hysterical.&nbsp; He was much vexed and alarmed, and,
+ringing the bell, hastened to call assistance.&nbsp; He found
+Esther, and sent her to Jane, and on returning to the schoolroom
+with some water, he found her lying exhausted on the sofa; he
+therefore went in search of his uncle, who was overlooking some
+farming work, and many were the apologies made, and many the
+assurances he received, that it would be better for her in the
+end, as the impression would be more lasting.</p>
+<p>Jane was scarcely conscious of her cousin&rsquo;s departure,
+or of Esther&rsquo;s arrival, but after drinking some water, and
+lying still for a few moments, she exclaimed, &lsquo;Oh, Robert!
+oh, Esther! the confirmation!&rsquo; and gasped and sobbed
+again.&nbsp; Esther thought she had guessed the cause of her
+tears, and tried to comfort her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! Miss Jane, there will be another confirmation some
+day; it was a sad thing you were too ill, to be sure,
+but&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! if I had&mdash;if he would not say&mdash;if he had
+thought me fit.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Esther was amazed, and asked if she should call Miss Weston,
+who was now with Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no!&rsquo; cried Jane, nearly relapsing into
+hysterics.&nbsp; &lsquo;She shall not see me in this
+state.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Esther hardly knew what to do, but she tried to soothe and
+comfort her by following what was evidently the feeling
+predominating in Jane&rsquo;s mind, as indicated by her broken
+sentences, and said, &lsquo;It was a pity, to be sure, that Mr.
+Devereux came and talked so long, he could not know of your being
+so very weak, Miss Jane.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, faintly, &lsquo;I could have
+borne it better if he had waited a few days.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss, when you had not been so very ill.&nbsp; Mr.
+Devereux is a very good gentleman, but they do say he is very
+sharp.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He means to be kind,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;but I do
+not think he has much consideration, always.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss Jane, that is just what Mrs. White said,
+when&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Esther&rsquo;s speech was cut short by the entrance of Miss
+Weston.&nbsp; Jane started up, dashed off her tears, and tried to
+look as usual, but the paleness of her face, and the redness of
+her eyes, made this impossible, and she was obliged to lie down
+again.&nbsp; Esther left the room, and Miss Weston did not feel
+intimate enough with Jane to ask any questions; she gave her some
+<i>sal volatile</i>, talked kindly to her of her weakness, and
+offered to read to her; all the time leaving an opening for
+confidence, if Jane wished to relieve her mind.&nbsp; The book
+which lay near her accounted, as she thought, for her agitation,
+and she blamed herself for having judged her harshly as deficient
+in feeling, now that she found her so much distressed, because
+illness had prevented her confirmation.&nbsp; Under this
+impression she honoured her reserve, while she thought with more
+affection of Lily&rsquo;s open heart.&nbsp; Jane, who never took,
+or expected others to take, the most favourable view of
+people&rsquo;s motives, thought Alethea knew the cause of her
+distress, and disliked her the more, as having witnessed her
+humiliation.</p>
+<p>Such was Jane&rsquo;s love of gossip that the next time she
+was alone with Esther she asked for the history of Mrs. White,
+thus teaching her maid disrespect to her pastor, indirectly
+complaining of his unkindness, and going far to annul the effect
+of what she had learnt at school.&nbsp; Perhaps during her
+hysterics Jane&rsquo;s conduct was not under control, but
+subsequent silence was in her power, and could she be free from
+blame if Esther&rsquo;s faults gained greater ascendency?</p>
+<p>The next day Mr. Mohun attempted to speak to Jane, but being
+both frightened and unhappy, she found it very easy and natural,
+as well as very convenient, to fall into hysterics again, and her
+father was obliged to desist, regretting that, at the only time
+she was subdued enough to listen to reproof, she was too weak to
+bear it without injury.&nbsp; Rachel, who was nearly as despotic
+among the young ladies as she had been in former times in the
+nursery, now insisted on Emily&rsquo;s going into the schoolroom,
+and when there, she made rapid progress.&nbsp; Alethea was amused
+to see how Jane&rsquo;s decided will and lively spirit would
+induce Emily to make exertions, which no persuasions of hers
+could make her think other than impossible.</p>
+<p>A few days more, and they were nearly well again; and Lilias
+so far recovered as to be able to spare her kind friend, who
+returned home with a double portion of Lily&rsquo;s love, and of
+deep gratitude from Mr. Mohun; but these feelings were scarcely
+expressed in words.&nbsp; Emily gave her some graceful thanks,
+and Jane disliked her more than ever.</p>
+<p>It was rather a dreary time that now commenced with the young
+ladies; they were tired of seeing the same faces continually, and
+dispirited by hearing that the fever was spreading in the
+village.&nbsp; The autumn was far advanced, the weather was damp
+and gloomy, and the sisters sat round the fire shivering with
+cold, feeling the large room dreary and deserted, missing the
+merry voices of the children, and much tormented by want of
+occupation.&nbsp; They could not go out, their hands were not
+steady enough to draw, they felt every letter which they had to
+write a heavy burden; neither Emily nor Lily could like
+needlework; they could have no music, for the piano at the other
+end of the room seemed to be in an Arctic Region, and they did
+little but read novels and childish stories, and play at chess or
+backgammon.&nbsp; Jane was the best off.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston sent
+her a little sock, with a request that she would make out the way
+in which it was knit, in a complicated feathery pattern, and in
+puzzling over her cotton, taking stitches up and letting them
+down, she made the time pass a little less heavily with her than
+with her sisters.</p>
+<h2><a name="page143"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+143</span>CHAPTER XIII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">A CURIOSITY MAP</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Keek into the draw-well,<br />
+
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;
+Janet, Janet,<br />
+There ye&rsquo;ll see your bonny sell,<br />
+
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;
+My jo Janet.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was at this time that Lady
+Rotherwood and her daughter arrived at Devereux Castle, and Mr.
+Mohun was obliged to go to meet her there, leaving his three
+daughters to spend a long winter evening by themselves, in their
+doleful and dismal way, as Lily called it.</p>
+<p>The evening had closed in, but they did not ring for candles,
+lest they should make it seem longer; and Jane was just beginning
+to laugh at Emily for the deplorable state of her frock and
+collar, tumbled with lying on the sofa, when the three girls all
+started at the unexpected sound of a ring at the front door.</p>
+<p>With a rapid and joyful suspicion who it might be, Emily and
+Lilias sprang to the door, Jane thrust the poker into the fire,
+in a desperate attempt to produce a flame, drove an arm-chair off
+the hearth-rug, whisked an old shawl out of sight, and flew after
+them into the hall, just as the deep tones of a well-known voice
+were heard greeting old Joseph.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;William!&rsquo; cried the girls.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! is it
+you?&nbsp; Are you not afraid of the scarlet fever?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, who has it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We have had it, but we are quite well now.&nbsp; How
+cold you are!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But where is my father?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Gone to Hetherington with Robert, to meet Aunt
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; Come into the drawing-room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here Emily glided off to perform a hurried toilette.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And the little ones?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;At Broomhill.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston was so kind as to take
+them out of the way of the infection,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; William, those Westons!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Westons, what Westons?&nbsp; Not those I knew at
+Brighton?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The very same,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;They have
+taken the house at Broomhill.&nbsp; Oh! they have been so very
+kind, I do not know what would have become of us without
+Alethea.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why did you not tell me they were living here?&nbsp;
+And you like them?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Like them!&nbsp; No one can tell the comfort Alethea
+has been.&nbsp; She came to us and nursed us, and has been my
+great support.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And Phyllis and Ada are with them?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, they have been at Broomhill these six weeks, and
+more.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here Emily came in and told William that his room was ready,
+and Rachel on the stairs wishing to see the Captain.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How well he looks!&rsquo; cried Lily, as he closed the
+door; &lsquo;it is quite refreshing to see any one looking so
+strong and bright.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And more like Sir Maurice than ever,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! but Claude is more like,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;because he is pale.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;do let us in the
+meantime make the room look more fit to be seen before he comes
+down.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The alacrity which had long been wanting to Lilias and Jane
+had suddenly returned, and they succeeded in making the room look
+surprisingly comfortable, compared with its former desolate
+aspect, before William came down, and renewed his inquiries after
+all the family.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And how is my father&rsquo;s deafness?&rsquo; was one
+of his questions.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Worse,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am afraid all
+the younger ones will learn to vociferate.&nbsp; He hears no one
+well but ourselves.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! and Alethea Weston,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Her voice is so clear and distinct, that she hardly ever
+raises it to make him hear.&nbsp; And have you ever heard her
+sing?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, she sings very well.&nbsp; I cannot think why you
+never told me they were living here.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because you never honour us with your
+correspondence,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;if you had vouchsafed
+to write to your sisters you could not have escaped hearing of
+the Westons.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And has Mr. Weston given up the law?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, he only came home in the vacation,&rsquo; said
+Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Did you know they had lost two
+daughters?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I saw it in the paper.&nbsp; Emma and Lucy were nice
+girls, but not equal to Miss Weston.&nbsp; What a shock to Mrs.
+Weston!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, she quite lost her health, and the doctors said
+she must move into the country directly.&nbsp; Mrs. Carrington,
+who is some distant connection, told them of this place, and they
+took it rather hastily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do they like it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh yes, very much!&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Mrs.
+Weston is very fond of the garden, and drives about in the
+pony-carriage, and it is quite pleasant to see how she admires
+the views.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And,&rsquo; added Lily, &lsquo;Alethea walks with us,
+and sings with me, and teaches at school, and knows all the poor
+people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I must go and see those children to-morrow,&rsquo; said
+William.</p>
+<p>The evening passed very pleasantly; and perhaps, in truth,
+Captain Mohun and his sisters were surprised to find each other
+so agreeable; for, in the eyes of the young ladies, he was by far
+the most awful person in the family.</p>
+<p>When he had been last at home Harry&rsquo;s recent death had
+thrown a gloom over the whole family, and he had especially
+missed him.&nbsp; Himself quick, sensible, clever, and active, he
+was intolerant of opposite qualities, and the principal effect of
+that visit to Beechcroft was to make all the younger ones afraid
+of him, to discourage poor Claude, and to give to himself a
+gloomy remembrance of that home which had lost its principal
+charms in his mother and Harry.</p>
+<p>He had now come home rather from a sense of duty than an
+expectation of pleasure, and he was quite surprised to find how
+much more attractive the New Court had become.&nbsp; Emily and
+Lilias were now conversible and intelligent companions, better
+suited to him than Eleanor had ever been, and he had himself in
+these four years acquired a degree of gentleness and
+consideration which prevented him from appearing so
+unapproachable as in days of old.&nbsp; This was especially the
+case with regard to Claude, whose sensitive and rather timid
+nature had in his childhood suffered much from William&rsquo;s
+boyish attempts to make him manly, and as he grew older, had
+almost felt himself despised; but now William appreciated his
+noble qualities, and was anxious to make amends for his former
+unkindness.</p>
+<p>Claude came home from Oxford, not actually ill, but in the
+ailing condition in which he often was, just weak enough to give
+his sisters a fair excuse for waiting upon him, and petting him
+all day long.&nbsp; About the same time Phyllis and Adeline came
+back from Broomhill, and there was great joy at the New Court at
+the news that Mrs. Hawkesworth was the happy mother of a little
+boy.</p>
+<p>Claude was much pleased by being asked by Eleanor to be
+godfather to his little nephew, whose name was to be Henry.&nbsp;
+Perhaps he hoped, what Lilias was quite sure of, that Eleanor did
+not think him unworthy to stand in Harry&rsquo;s place.</p>
+<p>The choice of the other sponsors did not meet with universal
+approbation.&nbsp; Emily thought it rather hard that Mr.
+Hawkesworth&rsquo;s sister, Mrs. Ridley, should have been chosen
+before herself, and both she and Ada would have greatly preferred
+either Lord Rotherwood, Mr. Devereux, or William, to Mr. Ridley,
+while Phyllis had wanderings of her own how Claude could be
+godfather without being present at the christening.</p>
+<p>One evening Claude was writing his answer to Eleanor, sitting
+at the sofa table where a small lamp was burning.&nbsp; Jane,
+attracted by its bright and soft radiance, came and sat down
+opposite to him with her work.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What a silence!&rsquo; said Lily, after about a quarter
+of an hour.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What made you start, Jane?&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did I?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My speaking, I suppose,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;breaking the awful spell of silence.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How red you look, Jane.&nbsp; What is the
+matter?&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do I?&rsquo; asked Jane, becoming still redder.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is holding your face down over that baby&rsquo;s
+hood,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you will sacrifice the colour of
+your nose to your nephew.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude now asked Jane for the sealing-wax, folded up his
+letter, sealed it, put on a stamp, and as Jane was leaving the
+room at bedtime, said, &lsquo;Jenny, my dear, as you go by, just
+put that letter in the post-bag.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane obeyed, and left the room.&nbsp; Claude soon after took
+the letter out of the bag, went to Emily&rsquo;s door, listened
+to ascertain that Jane was not there, and then knocked and was
+admitted.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I could not help coming,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;to tell
+you of the trap in which Brownie has been caught.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I fancied I saw her
+peeping slyly at your letter.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Just so,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;and I hope she has
+experienced the truth of an old proverb.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! tell us what you have said,&rsquo; cried the
+sisters.</p>
+<p>Claude read, &lsquo;Jane desires me to say that a hood for the
+baby shall be sent in the course of a week, and she hopes that it
+may be worn at the christening.&nbsp; I should rather say I hope
+it may be lost in the transit, for assuredly the head that it
+covers must be infected with something far worse than the scarlet
+fever&mdash;the fever of curiosity, the last quality which I
+should like my godson to possess.&nbsp; My only consolation is,
+that he will see the full deformity of the vice, as, poor little
+fellow, he becomes acquainted with &ldquo;that worst of plagues,
+a prying maiden aunt.&rdquo;&nbsp; If Jane was simply curious, I
+should not complain, but her love of investigation is not
+directed to what ought to be known, but rather to find out some
+wretched subject for petty scandal, to blacken every action, and
+to add to the weight of every misdeed, and all for the sake of
+detailing her discoveries in exchange for similar information
+with Mrs. Appleton, or some equally suitable
+confidante.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is that all?&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And enough, too, I hope,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It ought to cure her!&rsquo; cried Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Cure her!&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;no such thing;
+cures are not wrought in this way; this is only a joke, and to
+keep it up, I will tell you a piece of news, which Jane must have
+spied out in my letter, as I had just written it when I saw her
+eyes in a suspicious direction.&nbsp; It was settled that
+Messieurs Maurice and Redgie are to go for two hours a day, three
+times a week, to Mr. Stevens, during the holidays.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The new Stoney Bridge curate?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very glad you are not to be bored by them,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;but how they will dislike it!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is very hard upon them,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;and I tried to prevent it, but the Baron was quite
+determined.&nbsp; Now I will begin to talk about this plan, and
+see whether Jenny betrays any knowledge of it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! it will be rare!&rsquo; cried Lily; &lsquo;but do
+not speak of it before the Baron or William.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let it be at luncheon,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you
+know they never appear.&nbsp; Do you mean to send the
+letter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not that part of it,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;you see
+I can tear off the last page, and it is only to add a new
+conclusion.&nbsp; Good-night.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane had certainly not spent the evening in an agreeable
+manner; she had not taken her seat at Claude&rsquo;s table with
+any evil designs towards his letter, but his writing was clear
+and legible, and her eye caught the word &lsquo;Maurice;&rsquo;
+she wished to know what Claude could be saying about him, and
+having once begun, she could not leave off, especially when she
+saw her own name.&nbsp; When aware of the compliments he was
+paying her, she looked at him, but his eyes were fixed on his
+pen, and no smile, no significant expression betrayed that he was
+aware of her observations; and even when he gave her the letter
+to put into the post-bag he looked quite innocent and
+unconcerned.&nbsp; On the other hand, she did not like to think
+that he had been sending such a character of her to Eleanor in
+sober sadness; it was impossible to find out whether he had sent
+the letter; she could not venture to beg him to keep it back, she
+could only trust to his good-nature.</p>
+<p>At luncheon, as they had agreed, Lily began by asking where
+her papa and William were gone?&nbsp; Claude answered, &lsquo;To
+Stoney Bridge, to call upon Mr. Stevens; they mean to ask him to
+dine one day next week, to be introduced to his
+pupils.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is he an Oxford or Cambridge man?&rsquo; asked
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oxford,&rsquo; exclaimed Jane, quite forgetting whence
+she had derived her information, &lsquo;he is a fellow
+of&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed?&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;how do you know
+that?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, we have all been talking of him lately,&rsquo;
+said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not I,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;why should he interest
+us?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because he is to tutor the boys,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;When did you hear that he is to tutor the boys?&rsquo;
+asked Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;When you did, I suppose,&rsquo; said Jane,
+blushing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You did, did you?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+feel convinced, if so, that you must really be what you are so
+often called, a changeling.&nbsp; I heard it, or rather read it
+first at Oxford, where the Baron desired me to make inquiries
+about him.&nbsp; You were, doubtless, looking over my shoulder at
+the moment.&nbsp; This is quite a discovery.&nbsp; We shall have
+to perform a brewery of egg-shells this evening, and put the elf
+to flight with a red-hot poker, and what a different sister Jane
+we shall recover, instead of this little mischief-making sprite,
+so quiet, so reserved, never intruding her opinion, showing
+constant deference to all her superiors&mdash;yes, and to her
+inferiors, shutting her eyes to the faults of others, and when
+they come before her, trying to shield the offender from those
+who regard them as merely exciting news.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude&rsquo;s speech had become much more serious than he
+intended, and he felt quite guilty when he had finished, so that
+it was not at all an undesirable interruption when Phyllis and
+Adeline asked for the story of the brewery of egg-shells.</p>
+<p>Emily and Lilias kindly avoided looking at Jane, who, after
+fidgeting on her chair and turning very red, succeeded in
+regaining outward composure.&nbsp; She resolved to let the matter
+die away, and think no more about it.</p>
+<p>When Mr. Mohun and William came home, they brought the news
+that Lady Rotherwood had invited the whole party to dinner.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very glad we are allowed to see them,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;I am quite tired of being shut up.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If it was not for the Westons we might as well live in
+Nova Zembla,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am glad you damsels should know a little more of
+Florence,&rsquo; said Mrs. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;cousins were made to be
+friends.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In that case one ought to be able to choose
+them,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And know them,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;We have
+not seen Florence since she was eleven years old.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Cousin or not,&rsquo; said Lilias, &lsquo;Florence can
+hardly be so much my friend as Alethea.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Right, Lily,&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;stand up for
+old friends against all the cousins in the universe.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Has Alethea a right to be called an old friend?&rsquo;
+said Emily; &lsquo;does three quarters of a year make friendship
+venerable?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No one can deny that she is a tried friend,&rsquo; said
+Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But pray, good people,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;what
+called forth those vows of eternal constancy? why was my innocent
+general observation construed into an attack upon Miss
+Weston?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because there is something invidious in your
+tone,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What kind of girl is that Florence?&rsquo; asked
+William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! a nice, lively, pleasant girl,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot make out what her pursuits are,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;Rotherwood never talks of her reading
+anything.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She has been governessed and crammed till she is half
+sick of all reading,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;of all
+study&mdash;ay, and all accomplishments.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So that is the friend you recommend, Lily!&rsquo; said
+William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Claude, that is what I call a great shame,&rsquo;
+said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stay,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;you have heard but
+half my story, I say that this is the reaction.&nbsp; Florence
+has no lack of sense, and if you young ladies are wise, you may
+help her to find the use of it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude&rsquo;s further opinion did not transpire, as dinner
+was announced, and nothing more was said about Lady Florence till
+the girls had an opportunity of judging for themselves.&nbsp; She
+had a good deal of her brother&rsquo;s vivacity, with gentleness
+and grace, which made her very engaging, and her perfect
+recollection of the New Court, and of childish days, charmed her
+cousins.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood was very kind and affectionate,
+and held out hopes of many future meetings.&nbsp; The next day
+Maurice and Reginald came home from school, bringing a better
+character for diligence than usual, on which they founded hopes
+that the holidays would be left to their own disposal.&nbsp; They
+were by no means pleased with the arrangement made with Mr.
+Stevens and most unwillingly did they undertake the expedition to
+Stony Bridge, performing the journey in a very unsociable
+manner.&nbsp; Maurice was no horseman, and chose to jog on foot
+through three miles of lane, while Reginald&rsquo;s pony cantered
+merrily along, its master&rsquo;s head being intent upon the
+various winter sports in which William and Lord Rotherwood
+allowed him to share.&nbsp; Little did Maurice care for such
+diversions; he was, as Adeline said, studying another
+&lsquo;apology.&rsquo;&nbsp; This time it was phrenology, for
+which the cropped heads of Lilias and Jane afforded unusual
+facility.&nbsp; There was, however, but a limited supply of heads
+willing to be fingered, and Maurice returned to the most abiding
+of his tastes, and in an empty room at the Old Court laboured
+assiduously to find the secret of perpetual motion.</p>
+<p>A few days before Christmas Rachel Harvey again took leave of
+Beechcroft, with a promise that she would make them another visit
+when Eleanor came home.&nbsp; Before she went she gave Emily a
+useful caution, telling her it was not right to trust her keys
+out of her own possession.&nbsp; It was what Miss Mohun never
+would have done, she had never once committed them even to
+Rachel.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With due deference to Eleanor,&rsquo; said Emily, with
+her winning smile, &lsquo;we must allow that that was being over
+cautious.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Rachel smiled, but her lecture was not averted by the
+compliment.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It might have been very well since you have known me,
+Miss Emily, but I do not know what would have come of it, if I
+had been too much trusted when I was a giddy young thing like
+Esther; that girl comes of a bad lot, and if anything is to be
+made of her, it is by keeping temptation out of her way, and not
+letting her be with that mother of hers.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Rachel had rather injured the effect of her advice by behaving
+too like a mistress during her visit; Emily had more than once
+wished that all servants were not privileged people, and she was
+more offended than convinced by the remonstrance.</p>
+<h2><a name="page155"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+155</span>CHAPTER XIV<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">CHRISTMAS</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&lsquo;Slee, sla, slud,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Stuck in the mud,<br />
+O! it is pretty to wade through a flood,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Come, wheel round,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The dirt we have found,<br />
+Would he an estate at a farthing a pound.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Lily&rsquo;s</span> illness interrupted
+her teaching at the village school for many weeks, and she was in
+no great haste to resume it.&nbsp; Alethea Weston seemed to enjoy
+doing all that was required, and Lily left it in her hands, glad
+to shut her eyes as much as possible to the disheartening state
+the parish had been in ever since her former indiscretion.</p>
+<p>The approach of Christmas, however, made it necessary for her
+to exert herself a little more, and her interest in parish
+matters revived as she distributed the clothing-club goods, and
+in private conference with each good dame, learnt the wants of
+her family.&nbsp; But it was sad to miss several names struck out
+of the list for non-attendance at church; and when Mrs. Eden came
+for her child&rsquo;s clothing, Lily remarked that the articles
+she chose were unlike those of former years, the cheapest and
+coarsest she could find.</p>
+<p>St. Thomas&rsquo;s day was marked by the custom, called at
+Beechcroft &lsquo;gooding.&rsquo;&nbsp; Each mother of a family
+came to all the principal houses in the parish to receive
+sixpence, towards providing a Christmas dinner, and it was
+Lily&rsquo;s business to dispense this dole at the New
+Court.&nbsp; With a long list of names and a heap of silver
+before her, she sat at the oaken table by the open chimney in the
+hall, returning a nod or a smiling greeting to the thanks of the
+women as they came, one by one, to receive the little silver
+coins, and warm themselves by the glowing wood fire.</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">
+<a href="images/p156b.jpg">
+<img alt=
+"Dispensing the &lsquo;Gooding.&rsquo;&mdash;p. 156"
+title=
+"Dispensing the &lsquo;Gooding.&rsquo;&mdash;p. 156"
+ src="images/p156s.jpg" />
+</a></p>
+<p>Pleasant as the task was at first, it ended painfully.&nbsp;
+Agnes Eden appeared, in order to claim the double portion
+allotted to her mother, as a widow.&nbsp; This was the first time
+that Mrs. Eden had asked for the gooding-money, and Lily knew
+that it was a sign that she must be in great distress.&nbsp;
+Agnes made her a little courtesy, and crept away again as soon as
+she had received her shilling; but Mrs. Grey, who was Mrs.
+Eden&rsquo;s neighbour, had not quite settled her penny-club
+affairs, and remained a little longer.&nbsp; An unassuming and
+lightly-principled person was Mrs. Grey, and Lily enjoyed a talk
+with her, while she was waiting for the purple stuff frock which
+Jane was measuring off for Kezia.&nbsp; They spoke of the
+children, and of a few other little matters, and presently
+something was said about Mrs. Eden; Lily asked if the blacksmith
+helped her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! no, Miss Lilias, he will do nothing for her while
+she sends her child to school and to church.&nbsp; He will not
+speak to her even.&nbsp; Not a bit of butter, nor a morsel of
+bacon, has been in her house since Michaelmas, and what she would
+have done if it was not for Mr. Devereux and Mrs. Weston, I
+cannot think.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias, much shocked by this account of the distress into
+which she and Jane had been the means of bringing the widow,
+reported it to her father and to the Rector; entreating the
+former to excuse her rent, which he willingly promised to do, and
+also desired his daughters to give her a blanket, and tell her to
+come to dine house whenever any broth was to be given away.&nbsp;
+Mr. Devereux, who already knew of her troubles, and allowed her a
+small sum weekly, now told his cousins how much the Greys had
+assisted her.&nbsp; Andrew Grey had dug up and housed her
+winter&rsquo;s store of potatoes, he had sought work for her, and
+little Agnes often shared the meals of his children.&nbsp; The
+Greys had a large family, very young, so that all that they did
+for her was the fruit of self-denial.&nbsp; Innumerable were the
+kindnesses which they performed unknown to any but the widow and
+her child.&nbsp; More, by a hundred times, did they assist her,
+than the thoughtless girls who had occasioned her sufferings,
+though Lily was not the only one who felt that nothing was too
+much for them to do.&nbsp; Nothing, perhaps, would have been too
+much, except to bear her in mind and steadily aid her in little
+things; but Lily took no account of little things, talked away
+her feelings, and thus all her grand resolutions produced almost
+nothing.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood sent Mrs. Eden a sovereign, the
+girls newly clothed little Agnes, Phyllis sometimes carried her
+the scraps of her dinner, Mrs. Eden once came to work at the New
+Court, and a few messes of broth were given to her, but in
+general she was forgotten, and when remembered, indolence or
+carelessness too often prevented the Miss Mohuns from helping
+her.&nbsp; In Emily&rsquo;s favourite phrase, each individual
+thing was &lsquo;not worth while.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>When Lilias did think it &lsquo;worth while,&rsquo; she would
+do a great deal upon impulse, sometimes with more zeal than
+discretion, as she proved by an expedition which she took on
+Christmas Eve.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun did not allow the poor of the
+village to depend entirely on the gooding for their Christmas
+dinner, but on the 24th of December a large mess of excellent
+beef broth was prepared at the New Court, and distributed to all
+his own labourers, and the most respectable of the other
+cottagers.</p>
+<p>In the course of the afternoon Lily found that one portion had
+not been given out.&nbsp; It was that which was intended for the
+Martins, a poor old rheumatic couple, who lived at South End, the
+most distant part of the parish.&nbsp; Neither of them could walk
+as far as the New Court, and most of their neighbours had
+followed Farmer Gage, and had therefore been excluded from the
+distribution, so that there was no one to send.&nbsp; Lily,
+therefore, resolved herself to carry the broth to them, if she
+could find an escort, which was not an easy matter, as the frost
+had that morning broken up, and a good deal of snow and rain had
+been falling in the course of the day.&nbsp; In the hall she met
+Reginald, just turned out of Maurice&rsquo;s workshop, and much
+at a loss for employment.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Redgie,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;you can do me a great
+kindness.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If it is not a bore,&rsquo; returned Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I only want you to walk with me to South
+End.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;I thought the little
+Misses were too delicate to put their dear little proboscises
+outside the door.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is the reason I ask you; I do not think Emily or
+Jane would like it, and it is too far for Claude.&nbsp; Those
+poor old Martins have not got their broth, and there is no one to
+fetch it for them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then do not be half an hour putting on your
+things.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you; and do not run off, and make me spend an
+hour in hunting for you, and then say that I made you
+wait.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will wait fast enough.&nbsp; You are not so bad as
+Emily,&rsquo; said Reginald, while Lily ran upstairs to equip
+herself.&nbsp; When she came down, she was glad to find her
+escort employed in singeing the end of the tail of the old
+rocking-horse at the fire in the hall, so that she was not
+obliged to seek him in the drawing-room, where her plans would
+probably have met with opposition.&nbsp; She had, however,
+objections to answer from an unexpected quarter.&nbsp; Reginald
+was much displeased when she took possession of the pitcher of
+broth.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will not walk with such a thing as that,&rsquo; said
+he, &lsquo;it makes you look like one of the dirty girls in the
+village.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you ought, like the courteous Rinaldo, to carry it
+for me,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I touch the nasty thing!&nbsp; Faugh!&nbsp; Throw it
+into the gutter, Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He made an attempt to dispose of it in that manner, which it
+required all Lily&rsquo;s strength to withstand, as well as an
+imploring &lsquo;Now, Redgie, think of the poor old people.&nbsp;
+Remember, you have promised.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Promised!&nbsp; I never promised to walk with a greasy
+old pitcher.&nbsp; What am I to do if we meet Miss
+Weston?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily contrived to overcome Reginald&rsquo;s refined notions
+sufficiently to make him allow her to carry the pitcher; and when
+he had whistled up two of the dogs, they proceeded merrily along
+the road, dirty and wet though it was.&nbsp; Their walk was not
+entirely without adventures; first, they had to turn back in the
+path by the river side, which would have saved them half a mile,
+but was now flooded.&nbsp; Then, as they were passing through a
+long lane, which led them by Edward Gage&rsquo;s farm, a great
+dog rushed out of the yard, and fell upon the little terrier,
+Viper.&nbsp; Old Neptune flew to the rescue, and to the great
+alarm of Lily, Reginald ran up with a stick; happily, however, a
+labourer at the same time came out with a pitchfork, and beat off
+the enemy.&nbsp; These two delays, together with Reginald&rsquo;s
+propensity for cutting sticks, and for breaking ice, made it
+quite late when they arrived at South End.&nbsp; When there, they
+found that a kind neighbour had brought the old people their
+broth in the morning, and intended to go for her own when she
+came home from her work in the evening.&nbsp; It was not often
+that Lily went to South End; the old people were delighted to see
+her, and detained her for some time by a long story about their
+daughter at service, while Reginald looked the picture of
+impatience, drumming on his knee, switching the leg of the table,
+and tickling Neptune&rsquo;s ears.&nbsp; When they left the
+cottage it was much later and darker than they had expected; but
+Lily was unwilling again to encounter the perils of the lane, and
+consulted her brother whether there was not some other way.&nbsp;
+He gave notice of a cut across some fields, which would take them
+into the turnpike road, and Lily agreeing, they climbed over a
+gate into a pathless turnip field.&nbsp; Reginald strode along
+first, calling to the dogs, while Lily followed, abstaining from
+dwelling on the awkward circumstance that every step she took led
+her farther from home, and rejoicing that it was so dark that she
+could not see the mud which plastered the edge of her
+petticoats.&nbsp; After plodding through three very long fields,
+they found themselves shut in by a high hedge and tall ditch.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That fool of a farmer!&rsquo; cried Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is to be done?&rsquo; said Lily,
+disconsolately.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is the road,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;How do you propose to get into it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There was a gap here last summer,&rsquo; said the
+boy.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very likely!&nbsp; Come back; try the next field; it
+must have a gate somewhere.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Back they went, after seeing the carrier&rsquo;s cart from
+Raynham pass by.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Redgie, it must be half-past five!&nbsp; We shall never
+be in time.&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood coming too!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a desperate plunge through a swamp of ice, water, and
+mud, they found themselves at a gate, and safely entered the
+turnpike road.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How it rains!&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;One
+comfort is that it is too dark for any one to see us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not very dark, either,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;I
+believe there is a moon if one could see it.&nbsp; Ha! here comes
+some one on horseback.&nbsp; It is a gray horse; it is
+William.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Come to look for us,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh,
+Redgie!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Coming home from Raynham,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Do not fancy yourself so important, Lily.&nbsp; William,
+is that you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Reginald!&rsquo; exclaimed William, suddenly checking
+his horse.&nbsp; &lsquo;Lily, what is all this?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We set out to South End, to take the broth to the old
+Martins, and we found the meadows flooded, which made us late;
+but we shall soon be at home,&rsquo; said Lily, in a
+make-the-best-of-it tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Soon?&nbsp; You are a mile and a half from home now,
+and do you know how late it is?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Half-past five,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Six, at least; how could you be so absurd?&rsquo;&nbsp;
+William rode quickly on; Reginald laughed, and they plodded on;
+at length a tall dark figure was seen coming towards them, and
+Lily started, as it addressed her, &lsquo;Now what is the meaning
+of all this?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, William, have you come to meet us?&nbsp; Thank you;
+I am sorry&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How were you to come through the village in the dark,
+without some one to take care of you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am taking care of her,&rsquo; said Reginald,
+affronted.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Make haste; my aunt is come.&nbsp; How could you make
+the people at home so anxious?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>William gave Lily his arm, and on finding she was both tired
+and wet, again scolded her, walked so fast that she was out of
+breath, then complained of her folly, and blamed Reginald.&nbsp;
+It was very unpleasant, and yet she was very much obliged to him,
+and exceedingly sorry he had taken so much trouble.</p>
+<p>They came home at about seven o&rsquo;clock.&nbsp; Jane met
+them in the hall, full of her own and Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+wonderings; she hurried Lily upstairs, and&mdash;skilful, quick,
+and ready&mdash;she helped her to dress in a very short
+time.&nbsp; As they ran down Reginald overtook them, and they
+entered the drawing-room as the dinner-bell was ringing.&nbsp;
+William did not appear for some time, and his apologies were not
+such as to smooth matters for his sister.</p>
+<p>Perhaps it was for this very reason that Mr. Mohun allowed
+Lily to escape with no more than a jesting reproof.&nbsp; Lord
+Rotherwood wished to make his cousin&rsquo;s hardihood and
+enterprise an example to his sister, and, in his droll
+exaggerating way, represented such walks as every-day
+occurrences.&nbsp; This was just the contrary to what Emily
+wished her aunt to believe, and Claude was much diverted with the
+struggle between her politeness to Lord Rotherwood and her desire
+to maintain the credit of the family.</p>
+<p>Lady Florence, though liking Lilias, thought this walk
+extravagant.&nbsp; Emily feared Lilias had lost her aunt&rsquo;s
+good opinion, and prepared herself for some hints about a
+governess.&nbsp; It was untoward; but in the course of the
+evening she was a little comforted by a proposal from Lady
+Rotherwood to take her and Lilias to a ball at Raynham, which was
+to take place in January; and as soon as the gentlemen appeared,
+they submitted the invitation to their father, while Lady
+Rotherwood pressed William to accompany them, and he was
+refusing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What are soldiers intended for but to dance!&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I never dance,&rsquo; said William, with a grave
+emphasis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am out of the scrape,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I shall be gone before it takes place; I reserve all my
+dancing for July 30th.&nbsp; Well, young ladies, is the Baron
+propitious?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He says he will consider of it,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh then, he will let you go,&rsquo; said Florence,
+&lsquo;people never consider when they mean no.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Florence,&rsquo; said her brother, &lsquo;Uncle
+Mohun&rsquo;s &ldquo;consider of it&rdquo; is equivalent to Le
+Roi&rsquo;s &ldquo;avisera.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is he saying?&rsquo; asked Lily, turning to
+listen.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh, that my wig is in no ball-going
+condition.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A wreath would hide all deficiencies,&rsquo; said
+Florence; &lsquo;I am determined to have you both.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I give small hopes of both,&rsquo; said Claude;
+&lsquo;you will only have Emily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why do you think so, Claude?&rsquo; cried both Florence
+and Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;From my own observation,&rsquo; Claude answered,
+gravely.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very angry with the Baron,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood; &lsquo;he is grown inhospitable: he will not let me
+come here to-morrow&mdash;the first Christmas these five years
+that I have missed paying my respects to the New Court sirloin
+and turkey.&nbsp; It is too bad&mdash;and the Westons dining here
+too.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Cousin Turkey-cock, well may you be in a
+passion,&rsquo; muttered Claude, as if in soliloquy.</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood and Lilias both caught the sound, and laughed,
+but Emily, unwilling that Florence should see what liberties they
+took with her brother, asked quickly why he was not to come.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think we are much obliged to him,&rsquo; said
+Florence, &lsquo;it would be too bad to leave mamma and me to
+spend our Christmas alone, when we came to the castle on purpose
+to oblige him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ay, and he says he will not let me come here, because I
+ought to give the Hetherington people ocular demonstration that I
+go to church,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very right, as Eleanor would say,&rsquo; observed
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very likely; but I don&rsquo;t care for the
+Hetherington folks; they do not know how to make the holly in the
+church fit to be seen, and they will not sing the good old
+Christmas carols.&nbsp; Andrew Grey is worth all the Hetherington
+choir put together.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Possibly; but how are they to mend, if their Marquis
+contents himself with despising them?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is too bad, Claude.&nbsp; When you heard how
+submissively I listened to the Baron, and know I mean to abide by
+what he said, you ought to condole with me a little, if you have
+not the grace to lament my absence on your own account.&nbsp;
+Why, I thought myself as regular a part of the feast as the
+mince-pies, and almost as necessary.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here a request for some music put an end to his
+lamentations.&nbsp; Lilias was vexed by the uncertainty about the
+ball, and was, besides, too tired to play with spirit.&nbsp; She
+saw that Emily was annoyed, and she felt ready to cry before the
+evening was over; but still she was proud of her exploit, and
+when, after the party was gone, Emily began to represent to her
+the estimate that her aunt was likely to form of her character,
+she replied, &lsquo;If she thinks the worse of me for carrying
+the broth to those poor old people, I am sure I do not wish for
+her good opinion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Mohun was not propitious when the question of Lily&rsquo;s
+going to the ball was pressed upon him.&nbsp; He said that he
+thought her too young for gaieties, and, besides, that late hours
+never agreed with her, and he advised her to wait for the 30th of
+July.</p>
+<p>Lilias knew that it was useless to say any more.&nbsp; She was
+much disappointed, and at the same time provoked with herself for
+caring about such a matter.&nbsp; Her temper was out of order on
+Christmas Day; and while she wondered why she could not enjoy the
+festival as formerly, with thoughts fitted to the day, she did
+not examine herself sufficiently to find out the real cause of
+her uncomfortable feelings.</p>
+<p>The clear frost was only cold; the bright sunshine did not
+rejoice her; the holly and the mistletoe seemed ill arranged; and
+none of the pleasant sights of the day could give her such
+blitheness as once she had known.</p>
+<p>She was almost angry when she saw that the Westons had left
+off their mourning, declaring that they did not look like
+themselves; and her vexation came to a height when she found that
+Alethea actually intended to go to the ball with Mrs.
+Carrington.&nbsp; The excited manner in which she spoke of it
+convinced Mr. Mohun that he had acted wisely in not allowing her
+to go, since the very idea seemed to turn her head.</p>
+<h2><a name="page167"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+167</span>CHAPTER XV<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">MINOR MISFORTUNES</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p style="text-align: center">&lsquo;Loving she is,
+and tractable though wild.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">In</span> a day or two Lady Rotherwood and
+her daughter called at the New Court.&nbsp; On this occasion
+Lilias was employed in as rational and lady-like a manner as
+could be desired&mdash;in practising her music in the
+drawing-room; Emily was reading, and Ada threading beads.</p>
+<p>Lady Rotherwood greeted her nieces very affectionately, gave a
+double caress to Adeline, stroked her pretty curls, admired her
+beadwork, talked to her about her doll, and then proceeded to
+invite the whole family to a Twelfth-Day party, given for their
+especial benefit.&nbsp; The little Carringtons and the Weston
+girls were also to be asked.&nbsp; Emily and Lilias were eagerly
+expressing their delight when suddenly a trampling, like a charge
+of horse, was heard in the hall; the door was thrown back, and in
+rushed Reginald and Phyllis, shouting, &lsquo;Such fun!&mdash;the
+pigs are in the garden!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>At the sight of their aunt they stopped short, looking aghast,
+and certainly those who beheld them partook of their
+consternation.&nbsp; Reginald was hot and gloveless; his shoes
+far from clean; his brown curls hanging in great disorder from
+his Scotch cap; his handkerchief loose; his jacket
+dusty&mdash;but this was no great matter, since, as Emily said,
+he was &lsquo;only a boy.&rsquo;&nbsp; His bright open smile, the
+rough, yet gentleman-like courtesy of his advance to the
+Marchioness, his comical roguish glance at Emily, to see if she
+was very angry, and to defy her if she were, and his speedy exit,
+all greatly amused Lady Florence, and made up for what there
+might have been of the wild schoolboy in his entrance.</p>
+<p>Poor Phyllis had neither the excuse of being a schoolboy nor
+the good-humoured fearlessness that freed her brother from
+embarrassment, and she stood stock-still, awkward and dismayed,
+not daring to advance; longing to join in the pig-chase, yet
+afraid to run away, her eyes stretched wide open, her hair
+streaming into them, her bonnet awry, her tippet powdered with
+seeds of hay, her gloves torn and soiled, the colour of her brown
+holland apron scarcely discernible through its various stains,
+her frock tucked up, her stockings covered with mud, and without
+shoes, which she had taken off at the door.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Phyllis,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what are you
+thinking of?&nbsp; What makes you such a figure?&nbsp; Come and
+speak to Aunt Rotherwood.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis drew off her left-hand glove, and held out her hand,
+making a few sidelong steps towards her aunt, who gave her a
+rather reluctant kiss.&nbsp; Lily bent her bonnet into shape, and
+pulled down her frock, while Florence laughed, patted her cheek,
+and asked what she had been doing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Helping Redgie to chop turnips,&rsquo; was the
+answer.</p>
+<p>Afraid of some further exposure, Emily hastily sent her away
+to be made fit to be seen, and Lady Rotherwood went on caressing
+Ada and talking of something else.&nbsp; Emily had no opportunity
+of explaining that this was not Phyllis&rsquo;s usual condition,
+and she was afraid that Lady Rotherwood would never believe that
+it was accidental.&nbsp; She was much annoyed, especially as the
+catastrophe only served to divert Mr. Mohun and Claude.&nbsp; Of
+all the family William and Adeline alone took her view of the
+case.&nbsp; Ada lectured Phyllis on her
+&lsquo;naughtiness,&rsquo; and plumed herself on her aunt&rsquo;s
+evident preference, but William was not equally
+sympathetic.&nbsp; He was indeed as fastidious as Emily herself,
+and as much annoyed by such misadventures; but he maintained that
+she was to blame for them, saying that the state of things was
+not such as it should be, and that the exposure might be
+advantageous if it put her on her guard in future.</p>
+<p>It appeared as if poor Phyllis was to be punished for the
+vexation which she had caused, for in the course of her
+adventures with Reginald she caught a cold, which threatened to
+prevent her from being of the party on Twelfth-Day.&nbsp; She had
+a cough, which did not give her by any means as much
+inconvenience as the noise it occasioned did to other
+people.&nbsp; Every morning and every evening she anxiously asked
+her sisters whether they thought she would be allowed to
+go.&nbsp; Another of the party seemed likely to fail.&nbsp; On
+the 5th of January Claude came down to breakfast later even than
+usual; but he had no occasion to make excuses, for his heavy
+eyes, the dark lines under them, his pale cheeks, and the very
+sit of his hair, were sure signs that he had a violent
+headache.&nbsp; He soon betook himself to the sofa in the
+drawing-room, attended by Lily, with pillows, cushions, ether,
+and lavender.&nbsp; Late in the afternoon the pain diminished a
+little, and he fell asleep, to the great joy of his sister, who
+sat watching him, scarcely daring to move.</p>
+<p>Suddenly a frightful scream and loud crash was heard in the
+room above them.&nbsp; Claude started up, and Lily, exclaiming,
+&lsquo;Those tiresome children!&rsquo; hurried to the room whence
+the noise had come.</p>
+<p>Reginald, Phyllis, and Ada, all stood there laughing.&nbsp;
+Reginald and Phyllis had been climbing to the top of a great
+wardrobe, by means of a ladder of chairs and tables.&nbsp; While
+Phyllis was descending her brother had made some demonstration
+that startled her, and she fell with all the chairs over her, but
+without hurting herself.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You naughty troublesome child,&rsquo; cried Lily, in no
+gentle tone.&nbsp; &lsquo;How often have you been told to leave
+off such boyish tricks!&nbsp; And you choose the very place for
+disturbing poor Claude, with his bad headache, making it worse
+than ever.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis tried to speak, but only succeeded in giving a dismal
+howl.&nbsp; She went on screaming, sobbing, and roaring so loud
+that she could not hear Lily&rsquo;s attempts to quiet her.&nbsp;
+The next minute Claude appeared, looking half distracted.&nbsp;
+Reginald ran off, and as he dashed out of the room, came full
+against William, who caught hold of him, calling out to know what
+was the matter.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only Phyllis screaming,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh, Claude, I am very sorry!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is that all?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I thought
+some one was half killed!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He sank into a chair, pressing his hand on his temples, and
+looking very faint.&nbsp; William supported him, and Lily stood
+by, repeating, &lsquo;I am very sorry&mdash;it was all my
+fault&mdash;my scolding&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Hush,&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;you have done
+mischief enough.&nbsp; Go away, children.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis had already gone, and the next moment thrust into
+Lily&rsquo;s hand the first of the medicaments which she had
+found in the drawing-room.&nbsp; The faintness soon went off, but
+Claude thought he had better not struggle against the headache
+any longer, but go to bed, in hopes of being better the next
+day.&nbsp; William went with him to his room, and Lilias lingered
+on the stairs, very humble, and very wretched.&nbsp; William soon
+came forth again, and asked the meaning of the uproar.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was all my fault,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;I was
+vexed at Claude&rsquo;s being waked, and that made me speak
+sharply to Phyllis, and set her roaring.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know which is the most inconsiderate of
+you,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You cannot blame me more than I deserve,&rsquo; said
+Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;May I go to poor Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I suppose so; but I do not see what good you are to
+do.&nbsp; Quiet is the only thing for him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily, however, went, and Claude gave her to understand that he
+liked her to stay with him.&nbsp; She arranged his blinds and
+curtains comfortably, and then sat down to watch him.&nbsp;
+William went to the drawing-room to write a letter.&nbsp; Just as
+he had sat down he heard a strange noise, a sound of sobbing,
+which seemed to come from the corner where the library steps
+stood.&nbsp; Looking behind them, he beheld Phyllis curled up,
+her head on her knees, crying bitterly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You there!&nbsp; Come out.&nbsp; What is the matter
+now?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am so very sorry,&rsquo; sighed she.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, leave off crying.&rsquo;&nbsp; She would
+willingly have obeyed, but her sobs were beyond her own control;
+and he went on, &lsquo;If you are sorry, there is no more to be
+said.&nbsp; I hope it will be a lesson to you another time.&nbsp;
+You are quite old enough to have more consideration for other
+people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very sorry,&rsquo; again said Phyllis, in a
+mournful note.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Be sorry, only do not roar.&nbsp; You make that noise
+from habit, I am convinced, and you may break yourself off it if
+you choose.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis crept out of the room, and in a few minutes more the
+door was softly opened by Emily, returning from her walk.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I thought Claude was here.&nbsp; Is he gone to
+bed?&nbsp; Is his head worse?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, the children have been doing their best to
+distract him.&nbsp; Emily, I want to know why it is that those
+children are for ever in mischief and yelling in all parts of the
+house.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish I could help it,&rsquo; said Emily, with a sigh;
+&lsquo;they are very troublesome.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There must be great mismanagement,&rsquo; said her
+brother.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, William!&nbsp; Why do you think so?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Other children do not go on in this way, and it was not
+so in Eleanor&rsquo;s time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is only Phyllis,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Phyllis or not, it ought not to be.&nbsp; What will
+that child grow up, if you let her be always running wild with
+the boys?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Consider, William, that you see us at a disadvantage;
+we are all unsettled by this illness, and the children have been
+from home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;As if they learnt all these wild tricks at
+Broomhill!&nbsp; That excuse will not do, Emily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And then they are always worse in the holidays,&rsquo;
+pleaded Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, there are reasons to be found for everything that
+goes wrong; but if you were wise you would look deeper.&nbsp;
+Now, Emily, I do not wish to be hard upon you, for I know you are
+in a very difficult position, and very young for such a charge,
+but I am sure you might manage better.&nbsp; I do not think you
+use your energies.&nbsp; There is no activity, nor regularity,
+nor method, about this household.&nbsp; I believe that my father
+sees that this is the case, but it is not his habit to find fault
+with little things.&nbsp; You may think that, therefore, I need
+not interfere, but&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, William!&nbsp; I am glad&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But remember that comfort is made up of little
+things.&nbsp; And, Emily, when you consider how much my father
+has suffered, and how desolate his home must be at the best, I
+think you will be inclined to exert yourself to prevent him from
+being anxious about the children or harassed by your
+negligence.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, William,&rsquo; returned Emily, with many
+tears, &lsquo;it is my most earnest wish to make him
+comfortable.&nbsp; Thank you for what you have said.&nbsp; Now
+that I am stronger, I hope to do more, and I will really do my
+best.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>At this moment Emily was sincere; but the good impulse of one
+instant was not likely to endure against long cherished habits of
+selfish apathy.</p>
+<p>Claude did not appear again till the middle of the next
+day.&nbsp; His headache was nearly gone, but he was so languid
+that he gave up all thoughts of Devereux Castle that
+evening.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood, who always seemed to know what
+was going on at Beechcroft, came to inquire for him, and very
+unwillingly allowed that it would be better for him to stay at
+home.&nbsp; Lilias wished to remain with him; but this her cousin
+would not permit, saying that he could not consent to lose three
+of the party, and Florence would be disappointed in all her
+plans.&nbsp; Neither would Claude hear of keeping her at home,
+and she was obliged to satisfy herself with putting his arm-chair
+in his favourite corner by the fire, with the little table before
+it, supplied with books, newspaper, inkstand, paper-knife, and
+all the new periodicals, and he declared that he should enjoy the
+height of luxury.</p>
+<p>Phyllis considered it to be entirely her fault that he could
+not go, and was too much grieved on that account to have many
+regrets to spare for herself.&nbsp; She enjoyed seeing Adeline
+dressed, and hearing Esther&rsquo;s admiration of her.&nbsp; And
+having seen the party set off, she made her way into the
+drawing-room, opening the door as gently as possible, just wide
+enough to admit her little person, then shutting it as if she was
+afraid of hurting it, she crept across the room on tiptoe.&nbsp;
+She started when Claude looked up and said, &lsquo;Why, Phyl, I
+have not seen you to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Good morning,&rsquo; she mumbled, advancing in her
+sidelong way.</p>
+<p>Claude suspected that she had been more blamed the day before
+than the occasion called for, and wishing to make amends he
+kissed her, and said something good-natured about spending the
+evening together.</p>
+<p>Phyllis, a little reassured, went to her own
+occupations.&nbsp; She took out a large heavy volume, laid it on
+the window-seat, and began to read.&nbsp; Claude was interested
+in his own book, and did not look up till the light failed
+him.&nbsp; He then, closing his book, gave a long yawn, and
+looked round for his little companion, almost thinking, from the
+stillness of the room, that she must have gone to seek for
+amusement in the nursery.</p>
+<p>She was, however, still kneeling against the window-seat, her
+elbows planted on the great folio, and her head between her
+hands, reading intently.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Little Madam,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;what great book
+have you got there?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;<i>As You Like It</i>,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What! are you promoted to reading
+Shakspeare?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have not read any but this,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ada and I have often looked at the
+pictures, and I liked the poor wounded stag coming down to the
+water so much, that I read about it, and then I went on.&nbsp;
+Was it wrong, Claude? no one ever told me not.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are welcome to read it,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;but not now&mdash;it is too dark.&nbsp; Come and sit in
+the great chair on the other side of the fire, and be
+sociable.&nbsp; And what do you think of &lsquo;<i>As You Like
+It</i>?&rsquo;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I like it very much,&rsquo; answered Phyllis,
+&lsquo;only I cannot think why <i>Jacks</i> did not go to the
+poor stag, and try to cure it, when he saw its tears running into
+the water.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>To save the character of <i>Jacks</i>, Claude gravely
+suggested the difficulty of catching the stag, and then asked
+Phyllis her opinion of the heroines.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! it was very funny about Rosalind dressing like a
+man, and then being ready to cry like a girl when she was tired,
+and then pretending to pretend to be herself; and Celia, it was
+very kind of her to go away with Rosalind; but I should have
+liked her better if she had stayed at home, and persuaded her
+father to let Rosalind stay too.&nbsp; I am sure she would if she
+had been like Ada.&nbsp; Then it is so nice about Old Adam and
+Orlando.&nbsp; Do not you think so, Claude?&nbsp; It is just what
+I am sure Wat Greenwood would do for Redgie, if he was to be
+turned out like Orlando.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is just what Wat Greenwood&rsquo;s ancestor did for
+Sir Maurice Mohun,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Dame Greenwood tells us that story.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Phyl, I think you show very good taste in liking
+the scene between Orlando and Adam.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am glad you like it, too, Claude.&nbsp; But I will
+tell you what I like best,&rsquo; exclaimed the little girl,
+springing up, &lsquo;I do like it, when Orlando killed the
+lioness and the snake,&mdash;and saved Oliver; how glad he must
+have been.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Glad to have done good to his enemy,&rsquo; said
+Claude; &lsquo;yes, indeed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;His enemy! he was his brother, you know.&nbsp; I meant
+it must be so very nice to save anybody&mdash;don&rsquo;t you
+think so, Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Certainly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude, do you know there is nothing I wish so much as
+to save somebody&rsquo;s life.&nbsp; It was very nice to save the
+dragon-fly; and it is very nice to let flies out of
+spiders&rsquo; webs, only they always have their legs and wings
+torn, and look miserable; and it was very nice to put the poor
+little thrushes back into their nest when they tumbled out, and
+then to see their mother come to feed them; and it was very
+pleasant to help the poor goose that had put its head through the
+pales, and could not get it back.&nbsp; Mrs. Harrington said it
+would have been strangled if I had not helped it.&nbsp; That was
+very nice, but how delightful it would be to save some real human
+person&rsquo;s life.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude did not laugh at the odd medley in her speech, but
+answered, &lsquo;Well, those little things train you in readiness
+and kindness.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Will they?&rsquo; said Phyllis, pressing on to express
+what had long been her earnest wish.&nbsp; &lsquo;If I could but
+save some one, I should not mind being killed myself&mdash;I
+think not&mdash;I hope it is not naughty to say so.&nbsp; I
+believe there is something in the Bible about it, about laying
+down one&rsquo;s life for one&rsquo;s friend.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is, Phyl, and I quite agree with you; it must be
+a great blessing to have saved some one.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And little girls have sometimes done it, Claude.&nbsp;
+I know a story of one who saved her little brother from drowning,
+and another waked the people when the house was on fire.&nbsp;
+And when I was at Broomhill, Marianne showed me a story of a
+young lady who helped to save the Prince, that Prince Charlie
+that Miss Weston sings about.&nbsp; I wish the Prince of Wales
+would get into some misfortune&mdash;I should like to save
+him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not quite echo that loyal wish,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, but, Claude, Redgie wishes for a rebellion, like
+Sir Maurice&rsquo;s, for he says all the boys at his school would
+be one regiment, in green velvet coats, and white feathers in
+their hats.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed! and Redgie to be Field Marshal?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, he is to be Sir Reginald Mohun, a Knight of the
+Garter, and to ask the Queen to give William back the title of
+Baron of Beechcroft, and make papa a Duke.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well done! he is to take good care of the interests of
+the family.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But it is not that that I should care about,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should like it better for the
+feeling in one&rsquo;s own self; I think all that fuss would
+rather spoil it&mdash;don&rsquo;t you, Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I do; but Phyllis, if you only wish for that
+feeling, you need not look for dangers or rebellions to gain
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! you mean the feeling that very good people indeed
+have&mdash;people like Harry&mdash;but that I shall never
+be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope you mean to try, though.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do try; I wish I was as good as Ada, but I am so
+naughty and so noisy that I do not know what to do.&nbsp; Every
+day when I say my prayers I think about being quiet, and not
+idling at my lessons, and sometimes I do stop in time, and behave
+better, but sometimes I forget, and I do not mind what I am
+about, and my voice gets loud, and I let the things tumble down
+and make a noise, and so it was yesterday.&rsquo;&nbsp; Here she
+looked much disposed to cry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, we will not have any crying this
+evening,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not think you did
+me much mischief, my head ached just as much before.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That was a thing I wanted to ask you about: William
+says my crying loud is all habit, and that I must cure myself of
+it.&nbsp; How does he mean?&nbsp; Ought I to cry every day to
+practise doing it without roaring?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you like to begin,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing;
+&lsquo;shall I beat you or pinch you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! it would make your head bad again,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis; &lsquo;but I wish you would tell me what he means.&nbsp;
+When I cry I only think about what makes me unhappy.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Try never to cry,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I assure
+you it is not pleasant to hear you, even when I have no
+headache.&nbsp; If you wish to do anything right, you must learn
+self-control, and it will be a good beginning to check yourself
+when you are going to cry.&nbsp; Do not look melancholy
+now.&nbsp; Here comes the tea.&nbsp; Let me see how you will
+perform as tea-maker.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish the evening would not go away so
+fast!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And what are we to do after tea?&nbsp; You are queen of
+the evening.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If you would but tell me a story, Claude.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>They lingered long over the tea-table, talking and laughing,
+and when they had finished, Phyllis discovered with surprise that
+it was nearly bedtime.&nbsp; The promised story was not omitted,
+however, and Phyllis, sitting on a little footstool at her
+brother&rsquo;s feet, looked up eagerly for it.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Phyl, I will tell you a true history that I heard
+from an officer who had served in the Peninsular War&mdash;the
+war in Spain, you know.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, with the French, who killed their king.&nbsp; Lily
+told me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And the Portuguese were helping us.&nbsp; Just after we
+had taken the town of Ciudad Rodrigo, some of the Portuguese
+soldiers went to find lodgings for themselves, and, entering a
+magazine of gunpowder, made a fire on the floor to dress their
+food.&nbsp; A most dangerous thing&mdash;do you know
+why?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The book would be burnt,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What book, you wise child?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The Magazine; I thought a magazine was one of the paper
+books that Maurice is always reading.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; said Claude, laughing, &lsquo;a magazine is
+a store, and as many different things are stored in those books,
+they are called magazines.&nbsp; A powder magazine is a store of
+barrels of gunpowder.&nbsp; Now do you see why it was dangerous
+to light a fire?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It blows up,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;that was the
+reason why Robinson Crusoe was afraid of the
+lightning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Right, Phyl, and therefore a candle is never allowed to
+be carried into a powder magazine, and even nailed shoes are
+never worn there, lest they should strike fire.&nbsp; One spark,
+lighting on a grain of gunpowder, scattered on the floor, might
+communicate with the rest, make it all explode, and spread
+destruction everywhere.&nbsp; Think in what fearful peril these
+reckless men had placed, not only themselves, but the whole town,
+and the army.&nbsp; An English officer chanced to discover them,
+and what do you think he did?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Told all the people to run away.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How could he have told every one, soldiers,
+inhabitants, and all? where could they have gone?&nbsp; No, he
+raised no alarm, but he ordered the Portuguese out of the
+building, and with the help of an English sergeant, he carried
+out, piece by piece, all the wood which they had set on
+fire.&nbsp; Now, imagine what that must have been.&nbsp; An
+explosion might happen at any moment, yet they had to walk
+steadily, slowly, and with the utmost caution, in and out of this
+place several times, lest one spark might fly back.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then they were saved?&rsquo; cried Phyllis,
+breathlessly; &lsquo;and what became of them
+afterwards?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They were both killed in battle, the officer, I
+believe, in Badajoz, and the sergeant sometime
+afterwards.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis gave a deep sigh, and sat silent for some
+minutes.&nbsp; Next, Claude began a droll Irish fairy-tale, which
+he told with spirit and humour, such as some people would have
+scorned to exert for the amusement of a mere child.&nbsp; Phyllis
+laughed, and was so happy, that when suddenly they heard the
+sound of wheels, she started up, wondering what brought the
+others home so soon, and was still more surprised when Claude
+told her it was past ten.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh dear! what will papa and Emily say to me for being
+up still?&nbsp; But I will stay now, it would not be fair to
+pretend to be gone to bed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well said, honest Phyl; now for the news from the
+castle.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, Claude,&rsquo; said his eldest brother, entering,
+&lsquo;you are alive again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I doubt whether your evening could have been pleasanter
+than ours,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Phyl,&rsquo; cried Ada, &lsquo;do you know, Mary
+Carrington&rsquo;s governess thought I was Florence&rsquo;s
+sister.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You look so bright, Claude,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I
+think you must have taken Cinderella&rsquo;s friend with the
+pumpkin to enliven you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My fairy was certainly sister to a Brownie,&rsquo; said
+Claude, stroking Phyllis&rsquo;s hair.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude,&rsquo; again began Ada, &lsquo;Miss
+Car&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish Cinderella&rsquo;s fairy may be forthcoming the
+day of the ball,&rsquo; said Lily, disconsolately.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And William is going after all,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed! has the great Captain relented?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes.&nbsp; Is it not good of him?&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood
+is so much pleased that he consents to go entirely to oblige
+her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Sensible of his condescension,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;By the bye, what makes the Baron look so
+mischievous?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mischievous!&rsquo; said Emily, looking round with a
+start, &lsquo;he is looking very comical, and so he has been all
+the evening.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What?&nbsp; You thought mischievous was meant in
+Hannah&rsquo;s sense, when she complains of Master Reginald being
+very mischie-vi-ous.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Ada now succeeded in saying, &lsquo;The Carringtons&rsquo;
+governess called me Lady Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How could she bring herself to utter so horrid a
+sound?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ada is more cock-a-hoop than ever now,&rsquo; said
+Reginald; &lsquo;she does not think Miss Weston good enough to
+speak to.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Claude, she really did, she thought I was
+Florence&rsquo;s sister, and she said I was just like
+her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish you would hold your tongue, or go to bed,&rsquo;
+said William, &lsquo;I have heard nothing but this nonsense all
+the way home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>While William was sending off Ada to bed, and Phyllis was
+departing with her, Lily told Claude that the Captain had been
+most agreeable.&nbsp; &lsquo;I feared,&rsquo; said she,
+&lsquo;that he would be too grand for this party, but he was
+particularly entertaining; Rotherwood was quite
+eclipsed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rotherwood wants Claude to set him off,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now, young ladies, reserve the rest of your
+adventures for the morning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Adeline had full satisfaction in recounting the
+governess&rsquo;s mistake to the maids, and in hearing from
+Esther that it was no wonder, &lsquo;for that she looked more
+like a born lady than Lady Florence herself!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias&rsquo;s fit of petulance about the ball had returned
+more strongly than ever; she partly excused herself to her own
+mind, by fancying she disliked the thought of the lonely evening
+she was to spend more than that of losing the pleasure of the
+ball.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun would be absent, conducting Maurice to a
+new school, and Claude and Reginald would also be gone.</p>
+<p>Her temper was affected in various ways; she wondered that
+William and Emily could like to go&mdash;she had thought that
+Miss Weston was wiser.&nbsp; Her daily occupations were
+irksome&mdash;she was cross to Phyllis.</p>
+<p>It made her very angry to be accused by the young brothers of
+making a fuss, and Claude&rsquo;s silence was equally
+offensive.&nbsp; It was upon principle that he said
+nothing.&nbsp; He knew it was nothing but a transient attack of
+silliness, of which she was herself ashamed; but he was sorry to
+leave her in that condition, and feared Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+coming into the neighbourhood was doing her harm, as certainly as
+it was spoiling Ada.&nbsp; The ball day arrived, and it was
+marked by a great burst of fretfulness on the part of poor
+Lilias, occasioned by so small a matter as the being asked by
+Emily to write a letter to Eleanor.&nbsp; Emily was dressing to
+go to dine at Devereux Castle when she made the request.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What have I to say?&nbsp; I never could write a letter
+in my life, at least not to the Duenna&mdash;there is no
+news.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;About the boys going to school,&rsquo; Emily
+suggested.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;As if she did not know all about them as well as I can
+tell her.&nbsp; She does not care for my news, I see no one to
+hear gossip from.&nbsp; I thought you undertook all the formal
+correspondence, Emily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you call a letter to your sister formal
+correspondence!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Everything is formal with her.&nbsp; All I can say is,
+that you and William are going to the ball, and she will say that
+is very silly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eleanor once went to this Raynham ball; it was her
+first and last,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, not long before they went to Italy; it will only
+make her melancholy to speak of it&mdash;I declare I cannot
+write.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And I have no time,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;and you
+know how vexed she is if she does not get her letter every
+Saturday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;All for the sake of punctuality, nothing else,&rsquo;
+said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;I rather like to disappoint fidgety
+people&mdash;don&rsquo;t you, Emily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;only papa does not like
+that she should be disappointed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You might have written, if you had not dawdled away all
+the morning.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This was true, and it therefore stung Emily, who complained
+that Lily was very unkind.&nbsp; Lily defended herself sharply,
+and the dispute was growing vehement, when William happily cut it
+short by a summons to Emily to make haste.</p>
+<p>When they were gone Lily had time for reflection.&nbsp;
+Good-temper was so common a virtue, and generally cost her so
+little effort, that she took no pains to cultivate it, but she
+now felt she had lost all claim to be considered amiable under
+disappointment.&nbsp; It was too late to bear the privation with
+a good grace.&nbsp; She was heartily ashamed of having been so
+cross about a trifle, and ashamed of being discontented at
+Emily&rsquo;s having a pleasure in which she could not
+share.&nbsp; Would this have been the case a year ago?&nbsp; She
+was afraid to ask herself the question, and without going deep
+enough into the history of her own mind to make her sorrow and
+shame profitable, she tried to satisfy herself with a superficial
+compensation, by making herself particularly agreeable to her
+three younger sisters, and by writing a very long and
+entertaining letter to Eleanor.</p>
+<p>She met Emily with a cheerful face the next day, and listened
+with pleasure to her history of the ball; and when Mr. Mohun
+returned home he saw that the cloud had passed away.&nbsp; But,
+alas!&nbsp; Lilias neglected to take the only means of preventing
+its recurrence.</p>
+<p>The next week William departed.&nbsp; Before he went he gave
+his sisters great pleasure by desiring them to write to him, and
+not to let him fall into his ancient state of ignorance
+respecting the affairs of Beechcroft.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mind,&rsquo; was his farewell speech, &lsquo;I expect
+you to keep me <i>au courant du jour</i>.&nbsp; I will not be in
+the dark about your best friends and neighbours when I come home
+next July.&rsquo;</p>
+<h2><a name="page186"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+186</span>CHAPTER XVI<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">VANITY AND VEXATION</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;And still I have to tell the same sad
+tale<br />
+Of wasted energies, and idle dreams.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Devereux Castle</span> now became the
+great resort of the Miss Mohuns.&nbsp; They were always sure of a
+welcome there.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood liked to patronise them, and
+Florence was glad of their society.</p>
+<p>This was quite according to the wishes of Emily, who now had
+nothing left to desire, but that the style of dress suitable, in
+her opinion, to the granddaughter of the Marquis of Rotherwood,
+was more in accordance with the purse of the daughter of the
+Esquire of Beechcroft.&nbsp; It was no part of Emily&rsquo;s
+character to care for dress.&nbsp; She was at once too indolent
+and too sensible; she saw the vulgarity of finery, and only aimed
+at simplicity and elegance.&nbsp; During their girlhood Emily and
+Lilias had had no more concern with their clothes than with their
+food; Eleanor had carefully taught them plain needlework, and
+they had assisted in making more than one set of shirts; but they
+had nothing to do with the choice or fashion of their own
+apparel.&nbsp; They were always dressed alike, and in as plain
+and childish a manner as they could be, consistently with their
+station.&nbsp; On Eleanor&rsquo;s marriage a suitable allowance
+was given to each of them, in order that they might provide their
+own clothes, and until Rachel left them they easily kept
+themselves in very good trim.&nbsp; When Esther came Lily
+cheerfully took the trouble of her own small decorations,
+considering it as her payment for the pleasure of having Esther
+in the house.&nbsp; Emily, however, neglected the useful
+&lsquo;stitch in time,&rsquo; till even &lsquo;nine&rsquo; were
+unavailing.&nbsp; She soon found herself compelled to buy new
+ready-made articles, and expected Lilias to do the same.&nbsp;
+But Lilias demurred, for she was too wise to think it necessary
+to ruin herself in company with Emily, and thus the two sisters
+were no longer dressed alike.&nbsp; A constant fear tormented
+Emily lest she should disgrace Lady Rotherwood, or be considered
+by some stranger as merely a poor relation of the great people,
+and not as the daughter of the gentleman of the oldest family in
+the county.&nbsp; She was, therefore, anxious to be perfectly
+fashionable, and not to wear the same things too often, and in
+her disinterested desire to maintain the dignity of the family
+the allowance which she received at Christmas melted away in her
+hands.</p>
+<p>Lily, though exempt from this folly, was not in a satisfactory
+state of mind.&nbsp; She was drawn off from her duties by a kind
+of spell.&nbsp; It was not that she liked Florence&rsquo;s
+society better than her home pursuits.</p>
+<p>Florence was indeed a very sweet-tempered and engaging
+creature; but her mind was not equal to that of Lilias, and there
+was none of the pleasure of relying upon her, and looking up to
+her, which Lilias had learnt to enjoy in the company of her
+brother Claude, and of Alethea Weston.&nbsp; It was only that
+Lily&rsquo;s own mind had been turned away from her former
+occupations, and that she did not like to resume them.&nbsp; She
+had often promised herself to return to her really useful
+studies, and her positive duties, as soon as her brothers were
+gone; but day after day passed and nothing was done, though her
+visits to the cottages and her lessons to Phyllis were often
+neglected.&nbsp; Her calls at Devereux Castle took up many
+afternoons.&nbsp; Florence continually lent her amusing books,
+her aunt took great interest in her music, and she spent much
+time in practising.&nbsp; The mornings were cold and dark, and
+she could not rise early, and thus her time slipped away, she
+knew not how, uselessly and unsatisfactorily.&nbsp; The three
+younger ones were left more to themselves, and to the
+maids.&nbsp; Jane sought for amusement in village gossip, and the
+little ones, finding the nursery more agreeable than the deserted
+drawing-room, made Esther their companion.</p>
+<p>Mr. Mohun had, at this time, an unusual quantity of business
+on his hands; he saw that the girls were not going on well, but
+he had reasons for not interfering at present, and he looked
+forward to Eleanor&rsquo;s visit as the conclusion of their
+trial.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot think,&rsquo; said Marianne Weston one day to
+her sister, &lsquo;why Mr. Mohun comes here so often.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea told her he had some business with their mamma, and
+she thought no more of the matter, till she was one day
+questioned by Jane.&nbsp; She was rather afraid of Jane, who, as
+she thought, disliked her, and wished to turn her into ridicule;
+so it was with no satisfaction that she found herself separated
+from the others in the course of a walk, and submitted to a
+cross-examination.</p>
+<p>Jane asked, in a mysterious manner, who had been at Broomhill
+that morning.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mr. Mohun,&rsquo; said Marianne.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What did he go there for?&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Alethea says he has some business with
+mamma.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you did not hear what it was?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was not in the room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Are you never there when he comes?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Sometimes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And is Alethea there?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh yes!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;His business must be with her too.&nbsp; Cannot you
+guess it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Marianne, looking amazed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How can you be so slow?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am not sure that I would guess if I could,&rsquo;
+said Marianne, &lsquo;for I do not think they wish me to
+know.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! nonsense, it is fine fun to find out
+secrets,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;You will know it at last,
+you may be sure, so there can be no harm in making it out
+beforehand, so as to have the pleasure of triumph when the wise
+people vouchsafe to admit you into their confidence; I am sure I
+know it all.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then please do not tell me, Jane, I ought not to hear
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Little Mrs. Propriety,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you are
+already assuming all the dignity of my Aunt Marianne, and
+William&rsquo;s Aunt Marianne&mdash;oh! and of little
+Henry&rsquo;s Great-aunt Marianne.&nbsp; Now,&rsquo; she added,
+laughing, &lsquo;can you guess the secret?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Marianne stood still in amazement for a moment, and then
+exclaimed, &lsquo;Jane, Jane! you do not mean it, you are only
+trying to tease me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am quite serious,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+will see that I am right.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here they were interrupted, and as soon as she returned from
+her walk Marianne, perplexed and amazed, went to her mother, and
+told her all that Jane had said.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How can she be so silly?&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then it is all nonsense, as I thought,&rsquo; said
+Marianne, joyfully.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should not like Alethea to
+marry an old man.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mr. Mohun is very unlikely to make himself
+ridiculous,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do not say
+anything of it to Alethea; it would only make her
+uncomfortable.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If it had been Captain Mohun, now&mdash;&rsquo;
+Marianne stopped, and blushed, finding her speech unanswered.</p>
+<p>A few days after, Mr. Mohun overtook Marianne and her mother,
+as he was riding home from Raynham, and dismounting, led his
+horse, and walked on with them.&nbsp; Either not perceiving
+Marianne, or not caring whether she heard him, he said,</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Has Miss Weston received the letter she
+expected?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;she thinks, as
+there is no answer, the family must be gone abroad, and very
+probably they have taken Miss Aylmer with them; but she has
+written to another friend to ask about them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;From all I hear,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I should
+prefer waiting to hear from her, before we make further
+inquiries; we shall not be ready before midsummer, as I should
+wish my eldest daughter to assist me in making this important
+decision.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In that case,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;there
+will be plenty of time to communicate with her.&nbsp; I can see
+some of the friends of the family when I go to London, for we
+must not leave Mr. Weston in solitude another spring.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps I shall see you there,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;I have some business in London, and I think I
+shall meet the Hawkesworths there in May or June.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a little more conversation Mr. Mohun took his leave, and
+as soon as he had ridden on, Marianne said, &lsquo;Oh! mamma, I
+could not help hearing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My dear,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;I know you may
+be trusted; but I should not have told you, as you may find such
+a secret embarrassing when you are with your young
+friends.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And so they are to have a governess?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes; and we are trying to find Miss Aylmer for
+them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Aylmer!&nbsp; I am glad of it; how much Phyllis
+and Ada will like her!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, it will be very good for them; I wish I knew the
+Grants&rsquo; direction.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I hope Jane will not question me any more; it
+will be very difficult to manage, now I know the
+truth.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>But poor Marianne was not to escape.&nbsp; Jane was on the
+watch to find her alone, and as soon as an opportunity offered,
+she began:&mdash;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, auntie, any discoveries?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, Jane, it is not right to fancy Mr. Mohun can do
+anything so absurd.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is as people may think,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish you would not talk in that way,&rsquo; said
+Marianne.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Marianne,&rsquo; pursued the tormentor, &lsquo;if
+you can explain the mystery I will believe you, otherwise I know
+what to think.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am certain you are wrong, Jane; but I can tell you no
+more.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very well, my good aunt, I am satisfied.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane really almost persuaded herself that she was right, as
+she perceived that her father was always promoting intercourse
+with the Westons, and took pleasure in conversing with
+Alethea.&nbsp; She twisted everything into a confirmation of her
+idea; while the prospect of having Miss Weston for a stepmother
+increased her former dislike; but she kept her suspicions to
+herself for the present, triumphing in the idea that, when the
+time came, she could bring Marianne as a witness of her
+penetration.</p>
+<p>The intercourse between the elder Miss Mohuns and Miss Weston
+was, however, not so frequent as formerly; and Alethea herself
+could not but remark that, while Mr. Mohun seemed to desire to
+become more intimate, his daughters were more backward in making
+appointments with her.&nbsp; This was chiefly remarkable in Emily
+and Jane.&nbsp; Lilias was the same in openness, earnestness, and
+affection; but there was either a languor about her spirits or
+they were too much excited, and her talk was more of novels, and
+less of poor children than formerly.&nbsp; The constant visits to
+Devereux Castle prevented Emily and Lilias from being as often as
+before at church, and thus they lost many walks and talks that
+they used to enjoy in the way home.&nbsp; Marianne began to grow
+indignant, especially on one occasion, when Emily and Lily went
+out for a drive with Lady Rotherwood, forgetting that they had
+engaged to take a walk with the Westons that afternoon.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is really a great deal too bad,&rsquo; said she to
+Alethea; &lsquo;it is exactly what we have read of in books about
+grandeur making people cast off their old friends.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not be unfair, Marianne,&rsquo; said Alethea.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Lady Florence has a better right to&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Better right!&rsquo; exclaimed Marianne.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;What, because she is a marquis&rsquo;s
+daughter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Because she is their cousin.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not believe Lilias really cares for her half as
+much as for you,&rsquo; said Marianne.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is all
+because they are fine people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nay, Marianne, if our cousins were to come into this
+neighbourhood, we should not be as dependent on the Mohuns as we
+now feel.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope we should not break our engagements with
+them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps they could not help it.&nbsp; When their aunt
+came to fetch them, knowing how seldom they can have the
+carriage, it would have been scarcely civil to say that they had
+rather take a walk with people they can see any day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Last year Lilias would have let Emily go by
+herself,&rsquo; said Marianne.&nbsp; &lsquo;Alethea, they are all
+different since that Lady Rotherwood came&mdash;all except
+Phyl.&nbsp; Ada is a great deal more conceited than she was when
+she was staying here; she pulls out her curls, and looks in the
+glass much more, and she is always talking about some one having
+taken her for Lady Florence&rsquo;s sister.&nbsp; And, Alethea,
+just fancy, she does not like me to go through a gate before her,
+because she says she has precedence!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea was much amused, but she would not let Marianne
+condemn the whole family for Ada&rsquo;s folly.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+will all come right,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;let us be patient
+and good-humoured, and nothing can be really wrong.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Though Alethea made the best of it to her sister, she could
+not but feel hurt, and would have been much more so if her temper
+had been jealous or sentimental.&nbsp; Almost in spite of herself
+she had bestowed upon Lilias no small share of her affection, and
+she would have been more pained by her neglect if she had not
+partaken of that spirit which &lsquo;thinketh no evil, but
+beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things, and
+endureth all things.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias was not satisfied with either herself, her home, her
+sisters, or her school; she was far from being the fresh, happy
+creature that she had been the year before.&nbsp; She had seen
+the fallacy of her principle of love, but in her self-willed
+adherence to it she had lost the strong sense and habit of duty
+which had once ruled her; and in a vague and restless frame of
+mind, she merely sought from day to day for pleasure and idle
+occupation.&nbsp; Lent came, but she was not roused, she was only
+more uncomfortable when she saw the Rector, or Alethea, or went
+to church.&nbsp; Alethea&rsquo;s unfailing gentleness she felt
+almost as a rebuke; and Mr. Devereux, though always kind and
+good-natured, had ceased to speak to her of those small village
+matters in which she used to be prime counsellor.</p>
+<p>The school became a burthen instead of a delight, and her
+attendance there a fatigue.&nbsp; On going in one Sunday morning,
+very late, she found Alethea teaching her class as well as her
+own.&nbsp; With a look of vexation she inquired, as she took her
+place, if it was so very late, and on the way to church she said
+again, &lsquo;I thought I was quite in time; I do not like to
+hurry the children&mdash;the distant ones have not time to
+come.&nbsp; It was only half-past nine.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Lilias,&rsquo; said Marianne, &lsquo;it was twenty
+minutes to ten, I know, for I had just looked at the
+clock.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That clock is always too fast,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>The next Sunday was very cold, and Lilias did not feel at all
+disposed to leave the fire when the others prepared to go to the
+afternoon school.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is it time?&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;I was chilled
+at church, and my feet are still like ice; I will follow you in
+five minutes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea went, and Lilias lingered by the fire.&nbsp; Mrs.
+Weston once asked her if she knew how late it was; but still she
+waited, until she was startled by the sound of the bell for
+evening service.&nbsp; As she went to church with Mrs. Weston and
+Emily she met Jane, who told her that her class had been
+unemployed all the afternoon.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I would have taken them,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;but
+that Robert does not like me to teach the great girls, and I do
+think Alethea might have heard them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is very provoking,&rsquo; said Lily, pettishly;
+&lsquo;I thought I might depend&mdash;&rsquo;&nbsp; She turned
+and saw Miss Weston close to her.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh,
+Alethea!&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;I thought you would have heard
+those girls.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I thought you were coming,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So I was, but I am sure the bell rang too early.&nbsp;
+I do wish you had taken them, Alethea.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sorry you are vexed,&rsquo; said Alethea,
+simply.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What makes you think I am vexed?&nbsp; I only thought
+you liked hearing my class.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>They were by this time at the church door, and as they entered
+Alethea blamed herself for feeling grieved, and Lily awoke to a
+sense of her unreasonableness.&nbsp; She longed to tell Alethea
+how sorry she felt, but she had no opportunity, and she resolved
+to go to Broomhill the next day to make her confession.&nbsp; In
+the night, however, snow began to fall, and the morning showed
+the February scene of thawing snow and pouring rain.&nbsp; Going
+out was impossible, both on that day and the next.&nbsp;
+Wednesday dawned fair and bright; but just after breakfast Lily
+received a little note, with the intelligence that Mr. Weston had
+arrived at Broomhill on Monday evening, and with his wife and
+daughters was to set off that very day to make a visit to some
+friends on the way to London.&nbsp; Had not the weather been so
+bad, Alethea said she should have come to take leave of her New
+Court friends on Tuesday, but she could now only send this note
+to tell them how sorry she was to go without seeing them, and to
+beg Emily to send back a piece of music which she had lent to
+her.&nbsp; The messenger was Faith Longley, who was to accompany
+them, and who now was going home to take leave of her mother, and
+would call again for the music in a quarter of an hour.&nbsp;
+Lily ran to ask her when they were to go.&nbsp; &lsquo;At
+eleven,&rsquo; was the answer; and Lily telling her she need not
+call again, as she herself would bring the music, went to look
+for it.&nbsp; High and low did she seek, and so did Jane, but it
+was not to be found in any nook, likely or unlikely; and when at
+last Lily, in despair, gave up the attempt to find it, it was
+already a quarter to eleven.&nbsp; Emily sent many apologies and
+civil messages, and Lily set out at a rapid pace to walk to
+Broomhill by the road, for the thaw had rendered the fields
+impassable.&nbsp; Fast as she walked, she was too late.&nbsp; She
+had the mortification of seeing the carriage turn out at the
+gates, and take the Raynham road; she was not even seen, nor had
+she a wave of the hand, or a smile to comfort her.</p>
+<p>Almost crying with vexation, she walked home, and sat down to
+write to Alethea, but, alas! she did not know where to direct a
+letter.&nbsp; Bitterly did she repent of the burst of ill-temper
+which had stained her last meeting with her friend, and she was
+scarcely comforted even by the long and affectionate letter which
+she received a week after their departure.&nbsp; Kindness from
+her was now forgiveness; never did she so strongly feel
+Florence&rsquo;s inferiority; and she wondered at herself for
+having sought her society so much as to neglect her patient and
+superior friend.&nbsp; She became careless and indifferent to
+Florence, and yet she went on in her former course, following
+Emily, and fancying that nothing at Beechcroft could interest her
+in the absence of her dear Alethea Weston.</p>
+<h2><a name="page198"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+198</span>CHAPTER XVII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">LITTLE AGNES</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;O guide us when our faithless hearts<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; From Thee would start aloof,<br />
+Where patience her sweet skill imparts,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Beneath some cottage roof.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Palm Sunday</span> brought Lily many
+regrets.&nbsp; It was the day of the school prize giving, and she
+reflected with shame, how much less she knew about the children
+than last year, and how little they owed to her; she feared to
+think of the approach of Easter Day, a dread which she had never
+felt before, and which she knew to be a very bad sign; but her
+regret was not repentance&mdash;she talked, and laughed, and
+tried to feel at ease.&nbsp; Agnes Eden&rsquo;s happy face was
+the most pleasant sight on that day.&nbsp; The little girl
+received a Bible, and as it was given to her her pale face was
+coloured with bright pink, her blue eyes lighted up, her smile
+was radiant with the beauty of innocence, but Lily could not look
+at her without self-reproach.&nbsp; She resolved to make up for
+her former neglect by double kindness, and determined that, at
+any rate, Passion Week should be properly spent&mdash;she would
+not once miss going to church.</p>
+<p>But on Monday, when Emily proposed to ride to Devereux Castle,
+she assented, only saying that they would return for evening
+service.&nbsp; She took care to remind her sister when it was
+time to set out homewards; but Emily was, as usual, so long in
+taking her leave that it was too late to think of going to church
+when they set off.</p>
+<p>About two miles from Beechcroft Lily saw a little figure in a
+gray cloak trudging steadily along the road, and as she came
+nearer she recognised Kezia Grey.&nbsp; She stopped and asked the
+child what brought her so far from home.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am going for the doctor, Miss,&rsquo; said the
+child.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is your mother worse?&rsquo; asked Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mother is pretty well,&rsquo; said Kezia; &lsquo;but it
+is for Agnes Eden, Miss&mdash;she is terrible bad.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Poor little Agnes!&rsquo; exclaimed Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Why, she was at school yesterday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Miss, but she was taken bad last night.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a moment&rsquo;s consultation between the sisters, Kezia
+was told that she might return home, and the servant who
+accompanied the Miss Mohuns was sent to Raynham for the
+doctor.&nbsp; The next afternoon Lily was just setting out to
+inquire for Agnes when Lord Rotherwood arrived at the New Court
+with his sister.&nbsp; He wanted to show Florence some of his
+favourite haunts at Beechcroft, and had brought her to join his
+cousins in their walk.&nbsp; A very pleasant expedition they
+made, but it led them so far from home that the church bell was
+heard pealing over the woods far in the distance.&nbsp; Lily
+could not go to Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s cottage, because she did not
+know the nature of Agnes&rsquo;s complaint, and her aunt could
+not bear that Florence should go into any house where there was
+illness.&nbsp; In the course of the walk, however, she met Kezia,
+on her way to the New Court, to ask for a blister for Agnes, the
+doctor having advised Mrs. Eden to apply to the Miss Mohuns for
+one, as it was wanted quickly, and it was too far to send to
+Raynham.&nbsp; Lily promised to send the blister as soon as
+possible, and desired the little messenger to return home, where
+she was much wanted, to help her mother, who had a baby of less
+than a week old.</p>
+<p>Alas! in the mirth and amusement of the evening Lily entirely
+forgot the blister, until just as she went to bed, when she made
+one of her feeble resolutions to take it, or send it early in the
+morning.&nbsp; She only awoke just in time to be ready for
+breakfast, went downstairs without one thought of the sick child,
+and never recollected her, until at church, just before the
+Litany, she heard these words: &lsquo;The prayers of the
+congregation are desired for Agnes Eden.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She felt as if she had been shot, and scarcely knew where she
+was for several moments.&nbsp; On coming out of church, she stood
+almost in a dream, while Emily and Jane were talking to the
+Rector, who told them how very ill the child was, and how little
+hope there was of her recovery.&nbsp; He took leave of them, and
+Lily walked home, scarcely hearing the soothing words with which
+Emily strove to comfort her.&nbsp; The meaning passed away
+mournfully; Lily sat over the fire without speaking, and without
+attempting to do anything.&nbsp; In the afternoon rain came on;
+but Lily, too unhappy not to be restless, put on her bonnet and
+cloak, and went out.</p>
+<p>She walked quickly up the hill, and entered the field where
+the cottage stood.&nbsp; There she paused.&nbsp; She did not dare
+to knock at the cottage door; she could not bear to speak to Mrs.
+Eden; she dreaded the sight of Mrs. Grey or Kezia, and she gazed
+wistfully at the house, longing, yet fearing, to know what was
+passing within it.&nbsp; She wandered up and down the field, and
+at last was trying to make up her mind to return home, when she
+heard footsteps behind her, and turning, saw Mr. Devereux
+advancing along the path at the other end of the field.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you been to inquire for Agnes?&rsquo; said he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I could not.&nbsp; I long to know, but I cannot bear to
+ask, I cannot venture in.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you like to go in with me?&rsquo; said her
+cousin.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not think you will see anything
+dreadful.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I would give
+anything to know about her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How you tremble! but you need not be afraid.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He knocked at the door, but there was no answer; he opened it,
+and going to the foot of the stairs, gently called Mrs. Eden, who
+came down calm and quiet as ever, though very pale.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How is she?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No better, sir, thank you, light-headed
+still.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Mrs. Eden, I am so sorry,&rsquo; sobbed
+Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! can you forgive me?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Pray do not take on so, Miss,&rsquo; said Mrs.
+Eden.&nbsp; &lsquo;You have always been a very kind friend to
+her, Miss Lilias.&nbsp; Do not take on so, Miss.&nbsp; If it is
+His will, nothing could have made any difference.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily was going to speak again, but Mr. Devereux stopped her,
+saying, &lsquo;We must not keep Mrs. Eden from her,
+Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, sir, her aunt is with her,&rsquo; said Mrs.
+Eden, &lsquo;and no one is any good there now, she does not know
+any one.&nbsp; Will you walk up and see her, sir? will you walk
+up, Miss Lilias?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily silently followed her cousin up the narrow stairs to the
+upper room, where, in the white-curtained bed, lay the little
+child, tossing about and moaning, her cheeks flushed with fever,
+and her blue eyes wide open, but unconscious.&nbsp; A woman, whom
+Lily did not at first perceive to be Mrs. Naylor, rose and
+courtsied on their entrance.&nbsp; Agnes&rsquo;s new Bible was
+beside her, and her mother told them that she was not easy if it
+was out of sight for an instant.</p>
+<p>At this moment Agnes called out, &lsquo;Mother,&rsquo; and
+Mrs. Eden bent down to her, but she only repeated,
+&lsquo;Mother&rsquo; two or three times, and then began
+talking:</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Kissy, I want my bag&mdash;where is my
+thimble&mdash;no, not that I can&rsquo;t remember&mdash;my
+catechism-book&mdash;my godfathers and godmothers in my baptism,
+wherein I was made a member&mdash;my Christian name&mdash;my
+name, it is my Christian name; no, that is not it&mdash;</p>
+<blockquote><p>&ldquo;It is a name by which I am<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Writ in the hook of life,<br />
+And here below a charm to keep,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Unharmed by sin and strife;<br />
+As often as my name I hear,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; I hear my Saviour&rsquo;s voice.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>Then she began the Creed, but, breaking off, exclaimed,
+&lsquo;Where is my Bible, mother, I shall read it
+to-morrow&mdash;read that pretty verse about &ldquo;I am the good
+Shepherd&mdash;the Lord is my Shepherd, therefore can I lack
+nothing&mdash;yea, though I walk through the valley of the shadow
+of death, I will fear no evil, for Thou art within me.&rdquo;</p>
+<blockquote><p>&ldquo;I now am of that little flock<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Which Christ doth call His own,<br />
+For all His sheep He knows by name,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And He of them is known.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>&lsquo;Let us call upon your good Shepherd, Agnes,&rsquo; said
+the pastor, and the child turned her face towards him as if she
+understood him.&nbsp; Kneeling down, he repeated the Lord&rsquo;s
+Prayer, and the feeble voice followed his.&nbsp; He then read the
+prayer for a sick child, and left the room, for he saw that Lily
+would be quite overcome if she remained there any longer.&nbsp;
+Mrs. Eden followed them downstairs, and again stung poor Lily to
+the heart by thanks for all her kindness.</p>
+<p>They then left the house of mourning; Lily trembled violently,
+and clung to her cousin&rsquo;s arm for support.&nbsp; Her tears
+streamed fast, but her sobs were checked by awe at Mrs.
+Eden&rsquo;s calmness.&nbsp; She felt as if she had been among
+the angels.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How pale you are!&rsquo; said her cousin, &lsquo;I
+would not have taken you there if I thought it would overset you
+so much.&nbsp; Come into Mrs. Grey&rsquo;s, and sit down and
+recover a little.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, do not let me see any one,&rsquo; said
+Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! that dear child!&nbsp; Robert, let me tell
+you the worst, for your kindness is more than I can bear.&nbsp; I
+promised Agnes a blister and forgot it!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She could say no more for some minutes, but her cousin did not
+speak.&nbsp; Recovering her voice, she added, &lsquo;Only speak
+to me, Robert.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very sorry for you,&rsquo; answered he, in a kind
+tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But tell me, what shall I do?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What to do, you ask,&rsquo; said the Rector; &lsquo;I
+am not sure that I know what you mean.&nbsp; If your neglect has
+added to her sufferings, you cannot remove them; and I would not
+add to your sorrow unless you wished me to do so for your
+good.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not see how I could be more unhappy than I am
+now,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think if you wish to turn your grief to good account
+you must go a little deeper than this omission.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You mean that it is a result of general
+carelessness,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;I know I have been in an
+odd idle way for some time; I have often resolved, but I seem to
+have no power over myself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;May I ask you one question, Lily?&nbsp; How have you
+been spending this Lent?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Robert, you are right,&rsquo; cried Lily; &lsquo;you
+may well ask.&nbsp; I know I have not gone to church properly,
+but how could you guess the terrible way in which I have been
+indulging myself, and excusing myself every unpleasant duty that
+came in my way?&nbsp; That was the very reason of this dreadful
+neglect; well do I deserve to be miserable at Easter, the proper
+time for joy.&nbsp; Oh! how different it will be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It will be, I hope, an Easter marked by repentance and
+amendment,&rsquo; said the Rector.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Robert, do not begin to be kind to me yet, you do
+not know how very bad I have been,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;it
+all began from just after Eleanor&rsquo;s wedding.&nbsp; A mad
+notion came into my head and laid hold of me.&nbsp; I fancied
+Eleanor stern, and cold, and unlovable; I was ingratitude
+itself.&nbsp; I made a foolish theory, that regard for duty makes
+people cold and stern, and that feeling, which I confused with
+Christian love, was all that was worth having, and the more
+Claude tried to cure me, the more obstinate I grew; I drew Emily
+over to my side, and we set our follies above everything.&nbsp;
+Justified ourselves for idling, neglecting the children,
+indulging ourselves, calling it love, and so it was,
+self-love.&nbsp; So my temper has been spoiling, and my mind
+getting worse and worse, ever since we lost Eleanor.&nbsp; At
+last different things showed me the fallacy of my principle, but
+then I do believe I was beyond my own management.&nbsp; I felt
+wrong, and could not mend, and went on recklessly.&nbsp; You know
+but too well what mischief I have done in the village, but you
+can never know what harm I have done at home.&nbsp; I have seen
+more and more that I was going on badly, but a sleep, a spell was
+upon me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps the pain you now feel may be the means of
+breaking the spell.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But is it not enough to drive me mad to think that
+improvement in me should be bought at such a price&mdash;the
+widow&rsquo;s only child?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You forget that the loss is a blessing to
+her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Still I may pray that my punishment may not be through
+them,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Surely,&rsquo; was the answer, &lsquo;it is grievous to
+see that dear child cut off; and her patient mother left
+desolate&mdash;yet how much more grievous it would be to see that
+spotless innocence defiled.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If it was to fall on any one,&rsquo; said Lilias,
+&lsquo;I should be thankful that it is on one so fit to
+die.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The church bell began to ring, and they quickened their steps
+in silence.&nbsp; Presently Lily said, &lsquo;Tell me of
+something to do, Robert, something that may be a pledge that my
+sorrow is not a passing shower, something unnecessary, but
+disagreeable, which may keep me in remembrance that my Lent was
+not one of self-denial.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You must be able to find more opportunities of
+self-denial than I can devise,&rsquo; said her cousin.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of course,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but some one thing,
+some punishment.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will answer you to-morrow,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;One thing more,&rsquo; said Lily, looking down;
+&lsquo;after this great fall, ought I to come to next
+Sunday&rsquo;s feast?&nbsp; I would turn away if you thought
+fit.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily, you can best judge,&rsquo; said the Rector,
+kindly.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should think that you were now in a
+humble, contrite frame, and therefore better prepared than when
+self-confident.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How many times! how shall I think of them! but I
+will,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;and Robert, will you think of me
+when you say the Absolution now and next Sunday at the
+altar?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>They were by this time at the church-porch.&nbsp; As Mr.
+Devereux uncovered his head, he turned to Lilias, and said in a
+low tone, &lsquo;God bless you, Lilias, and grant you true
+repentance and pardon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Early the next morning the toll of the passing-bell informed
+Lily that the little lamb had been gathered into the heavenly
+fold.</p>
+<p>When she took her place in church she found in her Prayer-book
+a slip of paper in the handwriting of her cousin.&nbsp; It was
+thus: &lsquo;You had better find out in which duty you have most
+failed, and let the fulfilment of that be your proof of
+self-denial.&nbsp; R. D.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Afterwards Lily learnt that Agnes had been sensible for a
+short time before her peaceful death.&nbsp; She had spoken much
+of her baptism, had begged to be buried next to a little sister
+of Kezia&rsquo;s, and asked her mother to give her new Bible to
+Kezia.</p>
+<p>It was not till Sunday that Lilias felt as if she could ever
+be comforted.&nbsp; Her heart was indeed ready to break as she
+walked at the head of the school children behind the
+white-covered coffin, and she felt as if she did not deserve to
+dwell upon the child&rsquo;s present happiness; but afterwards
+she was relieved by joining in prayer for the pardon of our sins
+and negligences, and she felt as if she was forgiven, at least by
+man, when she joined with Mrs. Eden in the appointed feast of
+Easter Day.</p>
+<p>Mrs. Naylor was at church on that and several following
+Sundays; but though her husband now showed every kindness to his
+sister, he still obstinately refused to be reconciled to Mr.
+Devereux.</p>
+<p>For many weeks poor little Kezia looked very unhappy.&nbsp;
+Her blithe smiles were gone, her eyes filled with tears whenever
+she was reminded of her friend, she walked to school alone, she
+did not join the sports of the other children, but she kept close
+to the side of Mrs. Eden, and seemed to have no pleasure but with
+her, or in nursing her little sister, who, two Sundays after the
+funeral, was christened by the name of Agnes.</p>
+<p>It was agreed by Mr. Mohun and Lilias that the grave of the
+little girl should be marked by a stone cross, thus
+inscribed:&mdash;</p>
+<blockquote><p style="text-align: center">&lsquo;<span
+class="smcap">Agnes Eden</span>,</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">April 8th, 1846,</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">Aged 7 years.</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">&ldquo;He shall gather the lambs in
+His arms.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<h2><a name="page208"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+208</span>CHAPTER XVIII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">DOUBLE, DOUBLE TOIL AND
+TROUBLE</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Truly the tender mercies of the weak,<br />
+As of the wicked, are but cruel.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">And</span> how did Lilias show that she
+had been truly benefited by her sorrows?&nbsp; Did she fall back
+into her habits of self-indulgence, or did she run into
+ill-directed activity, selfish as her indolence, because only
+gratifying the passion of the moment?</p>
+<p>Those who lived with her saw but little change; kind-hearted
+and generous she had ever been, and many had been her good
+impulses, so that while she daily became more steady in
+well-doing, and exerting herself on principle, no one remarked
+it, and no one entered into the struggles which it cost her to
+tame her impetuosity, or force herself to do what was
+disagreeable to herself, and might offend Emily.</p>
+<p>However, Emily could forgive a great deal when she found that
+Lily was ready to take any part of the business of the household
+and schoolroom, which she chose to impose upon her, without the
+least objection, yet to leave her to assume as much of the credit
+of managing as she chose&mdash;to have no will or way of her own,
+and to help her to keep her wardrobe in order.</p>
+<p>The schoolroom was just now more of a labour than had ever
+been the case, at least to one who, like Lilias, if she did a
+thing at all, would not be satisfied with half doing it.&nbsp;
+Phyllis was not altered, except that she cried less, and had in a
+great measure cured herself of dawdling habits and tricks, by her
+honest efforts to obey well-remembered orders of Eleanor&rsquo;s;
+but still her slowness and dulness were trying to her teachers,
+and Lily had often to reproach herself for being angry with her
+&lsquo;when she was doing her best.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>But Adeline was Lily&rsquo;s principal trouble; there was a
+change in her, for which her sister could not account.&nbsp; Last
+year, when Eleanor left them, Ada was a sweet-tempered,
+affectionate child, docile, gentle, and, excepting a little
+occasional affectation and carelessness, very free from faults;
+but now her attention could hardly be commanded for five minutes
+together; she had lost the habit of ready and implicit obedience,
+was petulant when reproved, and was far more eager to attract
+notice from strangers&mdash;more conceited, and, therefore, more
+affected, and, worse than all, Lily sometimes thought she
+perceived a little slyness, though she was never able to prove
+any one instance completely to herself, much less to bring one
+before her father.&nbsp; Thus, if Ada had done any mischief, she
+would indeed confess it on being examined; but when asked why she
+had not told of it directly, would say she had forgotten; she
+would avail herself of Phyllis&rsquo;s assistance in her lessons
+without acknowledging it, and Lilias found it was by no means
+safe to leave the Key to the French Exercises alone in the room
+with her.</p>
+<p>Emily&rsquo;s mismanagement had fostered Ada&rsquo;s
+carelessness and inattention.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+injudicious caresses helped to make her more affected; other
+faults had grown up for want of sufficient control, but this last
+was principally Esther&rsquo;s work.&nbsp; Esther had done well
+at school; she liked learning, was stimulated by notice, was
+really attached to Lilias, and tried to deserve her goodwill; but
+her training at school and at home were so different, that her
+conduct was, even at the best, far too much of eye-service, and
+she had very little idea of real truth and sincerity.</p>
+<p>On first coming to the New Court she flattered the children,
+because she did not know how to talk to them otherwise, and
+afterwards, because she found that Miss Ada&rsquo;s affections
+were to be gained by praise.&nbsp; Then, in her ignorant
+good-nature, she had no scruples about concealing mischief which
+the children had done, or procuring for Ada little forbidden
+indulgences on her promise of secrecy, a promise which Phyllis
+would not give, thus putting a stop to all those in which she
+would have participated.&nbsp; It was no wonder that Ada,
+sometimes helping Esther to deceive, sometimes deceived by her,
+should have learnt the same kind of cunning, and ceased to think
+it a matter of course to be true and just in all her
+dealings.</p>
+<p>But how was it that Phyllis remained the same &lsquo;honest
+Phyl&rsquo; that she had ever been, not one word savouring of
+aught but strict truth having ever crossed her lips, her thoughts
+and deeds full of guileless simplicity?&nbsp; She met with the
+same temptations, the same neglect, the same bad example, as her
+sister; why had they no effect upon her?&nbsp; In the first
+place, flattery could not touch her, it was like water on a
+duck&rsquo;s back, she did not know that it was flattery, but so
+thoroughly humble was her mind that no words of Esther&rsquo;s
+would make her believe herself beautiful, agreeable, or
+clever.&nbsp; Yet she never found out that Esther over-praised
+her sister; she admired Ada so much that she never suspected that
+any commendation of her was more than she deserved.&nbsp; Again,
+Phyllis never thought of making herself appear to advantage, and
+her humility saved her from the habit of concealing small faults,
+for which she expected no punishment; and, when seriously to
+blame, punishment seemed so natural a consequence, that she never
+thought of avoiding it, otherwise than by expressing sorrow for
+her fault.&nbsp; She was uninfected by Esther&rsquo;s deceit,
+though she never suspected any want of truth; her singleness of
+mind was a shield from all evil; she knew she was no favourite in
+the nursery, but she never expected to be liked as much as Ada,
+her pride and glory.&nbsp; In the meantime Emily went on
+contriving opportunities and excuses for spending her time at
+Devereux Castle, letting everything fall into Lily&rsquo;s hands,
+everything that she had so eagerly undertaken little more than a
+year ago.&nbsp; And now all was confusion; the excellent order in
+which Eleanor had left the household affairs was quite
+destroyed.&nbsp; Attention to the storeroom was one of the ways
+in which Lilias thought that she could best follow the advice of
+Mr. Devereux, since Eleanor had always taught that great
+exactness in this point was most necessary.&nbsp; Great disorder
+now, however, prevailed there, and she found that her only chance
+of rectifying it was to measure everything she found there, and
+to beg Emily to allow her to keep the key; for, when several
+persons went to the storeroom, no one ever knew what was given
+out, and she was sure that the sweet things diminished much
+faster than they ought to do; but her sister treated the proposal
+as an attempt to deprive her of her dignity, and she was
+silenced.</p>
+<p>She was up almost with the light, to despatch whatever
+household affairs could be settled without Emily, before the time
+came for the children&rsquo;s lessons; many hours were spent on
+these, while she was continually harassed by Phyllis&rsquo;s
+dulness, Ada&rsquo;s inattention, and the interruption of work to
+do for Emily, and often was she baffled by interference from Jane
+or Emily.&nbsp; She was conscious of her unfitness to teach the
+children, and often saw that her impatience, ignorance, and
+inefficiency, were doing mischief; but much as this pained her,
+she could not speak to her father without compromising her
+sister, and to argue with Emily herself was quite in vain.&nbsp;
+Emily had taken up the principle of love, and defended herself
+with it on every occasion, so that poor Lily was continually
+punished by having her past follies quoted against herself.</p>
+<p>Each day Emily grew more selfish and indolent; now that Lily
+was willing to supply all that she neglected, and to do all that
+she asked, she proved how tyrannical the weak can be.</p>
+<p>The whole of her quarter&rsquo;s allowance was spent in dress,
+and Lily soon found that the only chance of keeping her out of
+debt was to spend her own time and labour in her behalf; and what
+an exertion of patience and kindness this required can hardly be
+imagined.&nbsp; Emily did indeed reward her skill with
+affectionate thanks and kind praises, but she interfered with her
+sleep and exercise, by her want of consideration, and hardened
+herself more and more in her apathetic selfishness.</p>
+<p>Some weeks after Easter Lilias was arranging some books on a
+shelf in the schoolroom, when she met with a crumpled piece of
+music-paper, squeezed in behind the books.&nbsp; It proved to be
+Miss Weston&rsquo;s lost song, creased, torn, dust-stained, and
+spoiled; she carried it to Emily, who decided that nothing could
+be done but to copy it for Alethea, and apologise for the
+disaster.&nbsp; Framing apologies was more in Emily&rsquo;s way
+than copying music; and the former task, therefore, devolved upon
+Lily, and occupied her all one afternoon, when she ought to have
+been seeking a cure for the headache in the fresh air.&nbsp; It
+was no cure to find the name of Emma Weston in the corner, and to
+perceive how great and irreparable the loss of the paper was to
+her friend.&nbsp; The thought of all her wrongs towards Alethea,
+caused more than one large tear to fall, to blot the heads of her
+crotchets and quavers, and thus give her all her work to do over
+again.</p>
+<p>The letter that she wrote was so melancholy and repentant,
+that it gave great pain to her kind friend, who thought illness
+alone could account for the dejection apparent in the general
+tone of all her expressions.&nbsp; In answer, she sent a very
+affectionate consoling letter, begging Lily to think no more of
+the matter; and though she had too much regard for truth to say
+that she had not been grieved by the loss of Emma&rsquo;s
+writing, she added that Lily&rsquo;s distress gave her far more
+pain, and that her copy would have great value in her eyes.</p>
+<p>The beginning of June now arrived, and brought with it the
+time for the return of Claude and Lord Rotherwood.</p>
+<p>The Marquis&rsquo;s carriage met him at Raynham, and he set
+down Claude at New Court, on his way to Hetherington, just coming
+in to exchange a hurried greeting with the young ladies.</p>
+<p>Their attention was principally taken up by their brother.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude, how well you look!&nbsp; How fat you
+are!&rsquo; was their exclamation.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is not he?&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+am quite proud of him.&nbsp; Not one headache since he
+went.&nbsp; He will have no excuse for not dancing the
+polka.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not return the compliment to you, Lily,&rsquo;
+said Claude, looking anxiously at his sister.&nbsp; &lsquo;What
+is the matter with you?&nbsp; Have you been ill?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, no! not at all!&rsquo; said Lily, smiling.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure there is enough to make any one ill,&rsquo;
+said Emily, in her deplorable tone; &lsquo;I thought this poor
+parish had had its share of illness, with the scarlet fever, and
+now it has turned to a horrible typhus fever.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Where?&nbsp;
+Who?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! the Naylors, and the Rays, and the Walls.&nbsp;
+John Ray died this morning, and they do not think that Tom Naylor
+will live.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; interrupted Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;I
+shall not stop to hear any more of this chapter of
+accidents.&nbsp; I am off, but mind, remember the 30th, and do
+not any of you frighten yourselves into the fever.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He went, and Lily now spoke.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is one thing
+in all this, Claude, that is matter of joy, Tom Naylor has sent
+for Robert.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then, Lily, I do most heartily congratulate
+you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope things may go better,&rsquo; said Lily, with
+tears in her eyes.&nbsp; &lsquo;The poor baby is with its
+grandmother.&nbsp; Mrs. Naylor is ill too, and every one is so
+afraid of the fever that nobody goes near them but Robert, and
+Mrs. Eden, and old Dame Martin.&nbsp; Robert says Naylor is in a
+satisfactory frame&mdash;determined on having the baby
+christened&mdash;but, oh! I am afraid the christening is to be
+bought by something terrible.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think those fevers are often very
+infectious,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So papa says,&rsquo; replied Emily; &lsquo;but Robert
+looks very ill.&nbsp; He is wearing himself out with sitting
+up.&nbsp; Making himself nurse as well as everything
+else.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This was very distressing, but still Claude scarcely thought
+it accounted for the change that had taken place in Lilias.&nbsp;
+Her cheek was pale, her eye heavy, her voice had lost its merry
+tone; Claude knew that she had had much to grieve her, but he was
+as yet far from suspecting how she was overworked and
+harassed.&nbsp; He spoke of Eleanor&rsquo;s return, and she did
+not brighten; she smiled sadly at his attempts to cheer her, and
+he became more and more anxious about her.&nbsp; He was not long
+in discovering what was the matter.</p>
+<p>The second day after his return Robert told them at the
+churchyard gate that Tom Naylor was beginning to mend, and this
+seemed to be a great comfort to Lily, who walked home with a
+blither step than usual.&nbsp; Claude betook himself to the
+study, and saw no more of his sisters till two o&rsquo;clock,
+when Lily appeared, with the languid, dejected look which she had
+lately worn, and seemed to find it quite an effort to keep the
+tears out of her eyes.&nbsp; Ada and Phyllis were in very high
+spirits, because they were going to Raynham with Emily and Jane,
+and at every speech of Ada&rsquo;s Lily looked more
+grieved.&nbsp; After the Raynham party were gone Claude began to
+look for Lily.&nbsp; He found her in her room, an evening dress
+spread on the bed, a roll of ribbon in one hand, and with the
+other supporting her forehead, while tears were slowly rolling
+down her cheeks.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily, my dear, what is the matter?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! nothing, nothing, Claude,&rsquo; said she,
+quickly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nothing! no, that is not true.&nbsp; Tell me,
+Lily.&nbsp; You have been disconsolate ever since I came home,
+and I will not let it go on so.&nbsp; No answer?&nbsp; Then am I
+to suppose that these new pearlins are the cause of her
+sorrow?&nbsp; Come, Lily, be like yourself, and speak.&nbsp; More
+tears!&nbsp; Here, drink this water, be yourself again, or I
+shall be angry and vexed.&nbsp; Now then, that is right: make an
+effort, and tell me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is nothing to tell,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;only
+you are very kind&mdash;I do not know what is the matter with
+me&mdash;only I have been very foolish of late&mdash;and
+everything makes me cry.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My poor child, I knew you had not been well.&nbsp; They
+do not know how to take care of you, Lily, and I shall take you
+in hand.&nbsp; I am going to order the horses, and we will have a
+gallop over the Downs, and put a little colour into your
+cheeks.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, thank you, Claude, I cannot come, indeed I
+cannot, I have this work, which must be done to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;At work at your finery instead of coming out!&nbsp; You
+must be altered, indeed, Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is not for myself,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but I
+promised Emily she should have it ready to wear
+to-morrow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily, oh?&nbsp; So she is making a slave of
+you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, it was a voluntary promise.&nbsp; She does not
+care about it, only she would be disappointed, and I have
+promised.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hate promises!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Well,
+what must be, must be, so I will resign myself to this promise of
+yours, only do not make such another.&nbsp; Well, but that was
+not all; you were not crying about that fine green thing, were
+you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, no!&rsquo; said Lily, smiling, as now she could
+smile again.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What then?&nbsp; I will know, Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was only vexed at something about the
+children.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then what was it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was only that Ada was idle at her lessons; I told
+her to learn a verb as a punishment, she went to Emily, and,
+somehow or other, Emily did not find out the exact facts, excused
+her, and took her to Raynham.&nbsp; I was vexed, because I am
+sure it does Ada harm, and Emily did not understand what I said
+afterwards; I am sure she thought me unjust.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How came she not to be present?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily does not often sit in the schoolroom in the
+morning, since she has been about that large drawing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So you are governess as well as ladies&rsquo;-maid, are
+you, Lily?&nbsp; What else?&nbsp; Housekeeper, I suppose, as I
+see you have all the weekly bills on your desk.&nbsp; Why, Lily,
+this is perfectly philanthropic of you.&nbsp; You are
+exemplifying the rule of love in a majestic manner.&nbsp; Crying
+again!&nbsp; Water lily once more?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily looked up, and smiled; &lsquo;Claude, how can you talk of
+that old, silly, nay, wicked nonsense of my principle.&nbsp; I
+was wise above what was written, and I have my punishment in the
+wreck which my &ldquo;frenzy of spirit and folly of tongue&rdquo;
+have wrought.&nbsp; The unchristened child, Agnes&rsquo;s death,
+the confusion of this house, all are owing to my hateful
+principle.&nbsp; I see the folly of it now, but Emily has taken
+it up, and acts upon it in everything.&nbsp; I do struggle
+against it a little; but I cannot blame any one, I can do no
+good, it is all owing to me.&nbsp; We have betrayed papa&rsquo;s
+confidence; if he does not see it now it will all come upon him
+when Eleanor comes home, and what is to become of us?&nbsp; How
+it will grieve him to see that we cannot be trusted!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Poor Lily!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is a bad
+prospect, but I think you see the worst side of it.&nbsp; You are
+not well, and, therefore, doleful.&nbsp; This, Lily, I can tell
+you, that the Baron always considered Emily&rsquo;s government as
+a kind of experiment, and so perhaps he will not be so grievously
+disappointed as you expect.&nbsp; Besides, I have a strong
+suspicion that Emily&rsquo;s own nature has quite as much to do
+with her present conduct as your principle, which, after all, did
+not live very long.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Just long enough to unsettle me, and make it more
+difficult for me to get any way right,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh! dear, what would I give to force backward the wheels
+of time!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But as you cannot, you had better try to brighten up
+your energies.&nbsp; Come, you know I cannot tell you not to look
+back, but I can tell you not to look forward.&nbsp; Nay, I do
+tell you literally, to look forward, out of the window, instead
+of back into this hot room.&nbsp; Do not you think the plane-tree
+there looks very inviting?&nbsp; Suppose we transport
+Emily&rsquo;s drapery there, and I want to refresh my memory with
+Spenser; I do not think I have touched him since plane-tree time
+last year.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I believe Spenser and the plane-tree are inseparably
+woven together in your mind,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, ever since the time when I first met with the
+book.&nbsp; I remember well roving over the bookcase, and meeting
+with it, and taking it out there, for fear Eleanor should see me
+and tell mama.&nbsp; Phyl, with <i>As You Like It</i>, put me
+much in mind of myself with that.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude talked in this manner, while Lily, listening with a
+smile, prepared her work.&nbsp; He read, and she listened.&nbsp;
+It was such a treat as she had not enjoyed for a long time, for
+she had begun to think that all her pleasant reading days were
+past.&nbsp; Her work prospered, and her face was bright when her
+sisters came home.</p>
+<p>But, alas!&nbsp; Emily was not pleased with her performance;
+she said that she intended something quite different, and by
+manner, rather than by words, indicated that she should not be
+satisfied unless Lily completely altered it.&nbsp; It was to be
+worn at the castle the next evening, and Lily knew she should
+have no time for it in the course of the day.&nbsp; Accordingly,
+at half-past twelve, as Claude was going up to bed, he saw a
+light under his sister&rsquo;s door, and knocked to ask the
+cause.&nbsp; Lily was still at work upon the trimming, and very
+angry he was, particularly when she begged him to take care not
+to disturb Emily.&nbsp; At last, by threatening to awake her, for
+the express purpose of giving her a scolding, he made Lily
+promise to go to bed immediately, a promise which she, poor weary
+creature, was very glad to make.</p>
+<p>Claude now resolved to tell his father the state of things,
+for he well knew that though it was easy to obtain a general
+promise from Emily, it was likely to be of little effect in
+preventing her from spurring her willing horse to death.</p>
+<p>The next morning he rose in time to join his father in the
+survey which he usually took of his fields before breakfast, and
+immediately beginning on the subject on which he was anxious, he
+gave a full account of his sister&rsquo;s proceedings.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;In short,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;Emily and Ada torment
+poor Lily every hour of her life; she bears it all as a sort of
+penance, and how it is to end I cannot tell.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Unless,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, smiling, &lsquo;as
+Rotherwood would say, Jupiter will interfere.&nbsp; Well, Jupiter
+has begun to take measures, and has asked Mrs. Weston to look out
+for a governess.&nbsp; Eh!&nbsp; Claude?&rsquo; he continued,
+after a pause, &lsquo;you set up your eyebrows, do you?&nbsp; You
+think it will be a bore.&nbsp; Very likely, but there is nothing
+else to be done.&nbsp; Jane is under no control, Phyllis running
+wild, Ada worse managed than any child of my
+acquaintance&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And poor Lily wearing herself to a shadow, in vain
+attempts to mend matters,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If Lily was the eldest, things would be very
+different,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Or even if she had been as wise last year as she is
+now,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;she would have kept Emily in
+order then, but now it is too late.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;This year is, on many accounts, much to be
+regretted,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I think it has
+brought out Lily&rsquo;s character.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And a very fine character it is,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very.&nbsp; She has been, and is, more childish than
+Eleanor ever was, but she is her superior in most points.&nbsp;
+She has been your pupil, Claude, and she does you
+credit.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thereby hangs a tale which does me no credit,&rsquo;
+muttered Claude, as he remembered how foolishly he had roused her
+spirit of contradiction, besides the original mischief of naming
+Eleanor the duenna; &lsquo;but we will not enter into that
+now.&nbsp; I see this governess is their best chance.&nbsp; Have
+you heard of one?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of several; but the only one who seems likely to suit
+us is out of reach for the present, and I do not regret it, for I
+shall not decide till Eleanor comes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily will not be much pleased,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It has long been her great dread that Aunt
+Rotherwood should recommend one.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ay, Emily&rsquo;s objections and your aunt&rsquo;s
+recommendations are what I would gladly avoid,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But Lily!&rsquo; said Claude, returning to the subject
+on which he was most anxious.&nbsp; &lsquo;She is already what
+Ada calls a monotony, and there will be nothing left of her by
+the time Eleanor comes, if matters go on in their present
+fashion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have a plan for her.&nbsp; A little change will set
+her to rights, and we will take her to London when we go next
+week to meet Eleanor.&nbsp; She deserves a little extra pleasure;
+you must take her under your protection, and lionise her
+well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Trust me for that,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+is the best news I have heard for a long time.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I am glad that one of my remedies meets with your
+approbation,&rsquo; said his father, smiling.&nbsp; &lsquo;For
+the other, you are much inclined to pronounce the cure as bad as
+the disease.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not for Lily,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I think I can
+promise you that a remedy will be found for all the other
+grievances by Michaelmas.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude looked surprised, but as Mr. Mohun explained no
+further, only observing upon the potatoes, through which they
+were walking, he only said, &lsquo;Then it is next week that you
+go to London.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There is much to do, both for Rotherwood and for
+Eleanor; I shall go as soon as I can, but I do not think it will
+be while this fever is so prevalent.&nbsp; I had rather not be
+from home&mdash;I do not like Robert&rsquo;s looks.&rsquo;</p>
+<h2><a name="page222"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+222</span>CHAPTER XIX<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE RECTOR&rsquo;S ILLNESS</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Thou drooping sick man, bless the guide<br
+/>
+That checked, or turned thy headstrong youth.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> thought of her brother&rsquo;s
+kindness, and the effect of his consolation, made Lilias awake
+that morning in more cheerful spirits; but it was not long before
+grief and anxiety again took possession of her.</p>
+<p>The first sound that she heard on opening the schoolroom
+window was the tolling of the church bell, giving notice of the
+death of another of those to whom she felt bound by the ties of
+neighbourhood.</p>
+<p>At church she saw that Mr. Devereux was looking more ill than
+he yet had done, and it was plainly with very great exertion that
+he succeeded in finishing the service.&nbsp; The Mohun party
+waited, as usual, to speak to him afterwards, for since his
+attendance upon Naylor had begun he had not thought it safe to
+come to the New Court as usual, lest he should bring the
+infection to them.&nbsp; He was very pale, and walked wearily,
+but he spoke cheerfully, as he told them that Naylor was now
+quite out of danger.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then I hope you did not stay there all last
+night,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, I did not, I was so tired when I came back from
+poor John Ray&rsquo;s funeral, that I thought I would take a
+holiday, and sleep at home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am afraid you have not profited by your night&rsquo;s
+rest,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you look as if you had a horrible
+headache.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I prescribe for you
+that you go home and lie down.&nbsp; I am going to Raynham, and I
+will tell your friend there that you want help for the evening
+service.&nbsp; Do not think of moving again to-day.&nbsp; I shall
+send Claude home with you to see that you obey my
+prescription.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude went home with his cousin, and his sisters saw him no
+more till late in the day, when he came to tell them that Mr.
+Mohun had brought back Dr. Leslie from Raynham with him, that Dr.
+Leslie had seen Mr. Devereux, and had pronounced that he had
+certainly caught the fever.</p>
+<p>Lily had made up her mind to this for some time, but still it
+seemed almost as great a blow as if it had come without any
+preparation.&nbsp; The next day was the first Sunday that Mr.
+Devereux had not read the service since he had been Rector of
+Beechcroft.&nbsp; The villagers looked sadly at the stranger who
+appeared in his place, and many tears were shed when the prayers
+of the congregation were desired for Robert Devereux, and Thomas
+and Martha Naylor.&nbsp; It was announced that the daily service
+would be discontinued for the present, and Lily felt as if all
+the blessings which she had misused were to be taken from
+her.</p>
+<p>For some time Mr. Devereux continued very ill, and Dr. Leslie
+gave little hope of his improvement.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun and Claude
+were his constant attendants&mdash;an additional cause of anxiety
+to the Miss Mohuns.&nbsp; Emily was listless and melancholy,
+talking in a maundering, dismal way, not calculated to brace her
+spirits or those of her sisters.&nbsp; Jane was not without
+serious thoughts, but whether they would benefit her depended on
+herself; for, as we have seen by the events of the autumn, sorrow
+and suffering do not necessarily produce good effects, though
+some effects they always produce.</p>
+<p>Thus it was with Lilias.&nbsp; Grief and anxiety aided her in
+subduing her will and learning resignation.&nbsp; She did not
+neglect her daily duties, but was more exact in their fulfilment;
+and low as her spirits had been before, she now had an inward
+spring which enabled her to be the support of the rest.&nbsp; She
+was useful to her father, always ready to talk to Claude, or walk
+with him in the intervals when he was sent out of the sickroom to
+rest and breathe the fresh air.&nbsp; She was cheerful and
+patient with Emily, and devoid of petulance when annoyed by the
+spirits of the younger ones rising higher than accorded with the
+sad and anxious hearts of their elders.&nbsp; Her most painful
+feeling was, that it was possible that she might be punished
+through her cousin, as she had already been through Agnes; that
+her follies might have brought this distress upon every one, and
+that this was the price at which the child&rsquo;s baptism was to
+be bought.&nbsp; Yet Lily would not have changed her present
+thoughts for any of her varying frames of mind since that fatal
+Whitsuntide.&nbsp; Better feelings were springing up within her
+than she had then known; the church service and Sunday were
+infinitely more to her, and she was beginning to obtain peace of
+mind independent of external things.</p>
+<p>She could not help rejoicing to see how many evidences of
+affection to the Rector were called forth by this illness;
+presents of fruit poured in from all quarters, from Lord
+Rotherwood&rsquo;s choice hothouse grapes, to poor little Kezia
+Grey&rsquo;s wood-strawberries; inquiries were continual, and the
+stillness of the village was wonderful.&nbsp; There was no
+cricket on the hill, no talking in the street, no hallooing in
+the hay-field, and no burst of noise when the children were let
+out of school.&nbsp; Many of the people were themselves in grief
+for the loss of their own relations; and when on Sunday the Miss
+Mohuns saw how many were dressed in black, they thought with a
+pang how soon they themselves might be mourning for one whose
+influence they had crippled, and whose plans they had thwarted
+during the three short years of his ministry.</p>
+<p>During this time it was hard to say whether Lord Rotherwood
+was more of a comfort or a torment.&nbsp; He was attached to his
+cousin with all the ardour of his affectionate disposition, and
+not one day passed without his appearing at Beechcroft.&nbsp; At
+first it was always in the parlour at the parsonage that he took
+up his station, and waited till he could find some means of
+getting at Claude or his uncle, to hear the last report from
+them, and if possible to make Claude come out for a walk or ride
+with him.&nbsp; And once Mr. Mohun caught him standing just
+outside Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s door, waiting for an opportunity to
+make an entrance.&nbsp; He could not, or would not see why Mr.
+Mohun should allow Claude to run the risk of infection rather
+than himself, and thus he kept his mother in continual anxiety,
+and even his uncle could not feel by any means certain that he
+would not do something imprudent.&nbsp; At last a promise was
+extracted from him that he would not again enter the parsonage,
+but he would not gratify Lady Rotherwood so far as to abstain
+from going to Beechcroft, a place which she began to regard with
+horror.&nbsp; He now was almost constantly at the New Court,
+talking over the reports, and quite provoking Emily by never
+desponding, and never choosing to perceive how bad things really
+were.&nbsp; Every day which was worse than the last was supposed
+to be the crisis, and every restless sleep that they heard of he
+interpreted into the beginning of recovery.&nbsp; At last,
+however, after ten days of suspense, the report began to improve,
+and Claude came to the New Court with a more cheerful face, to
+say that his cousin was munch better.&nbsp; The world seemed
+immediately to grow brighter, people went about with joyful
+looks, Lord Rotherwood declared that from the first he had known
+all would be well, and Lily began to hope that now she had been
+spared so heavy a punishment, it was a kind of earnest that other
+things would mend, that she had suffered enough.&nbsp; The future
+no longer hung before her in such dark colours as before Mr.
+Devereux&rsquo;s illness, though still the New Court was in no
+satisfactory state, and still she had reason to expect that her
+father and Eleanor would be disappointed and grieved.&nbsp;
+Thankfulness that Mr. Devereux was recovering, and that Claude
+had escaped the infection, made her once more hopeful and
+cheerful; she let the morrow take thought for the things of
+itself, rejoicing that it was not her business to make
+arrangements.</p>
+<h2><a name="page227"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+227</span>CHAPTER XX<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE LITTLE NEPHEW</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;You must be father, mother, both,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; And uncle, all in one.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">Mr. Mohun</span> had much business to
+transact in London which he could not leave undone, and as soon
+as his nephew began to recover he thought of setting off to meet
+Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, who had already been a week at Lady
+Rotherwood&rsquo;s house in Grosvenor Square, which she had lent
+to them for the occasion.&nbsp; Claude had intended to stay at
+home, as his cousin was not yet well enough to leave the room;
+but just at this time a college friend of the Rector&rsquo;s,
+hearing of his illness, wrote to propose to come and stay with
+him for a month or six weeks, and help him in serving his
+church.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux was particularly glad to accept this
+kind offer, as it left him no longer dependent on Mr. Stephens
+and the Raynham curates, and set Claude at liberty for the London
+expedition.&nbsp; All was settled in the short space of one
+day.&nbsp; The very next they were to set off, and in great
+haste; Lily did all she could for the regulation of the house,
+packed up her goods, and received the commissions of her
+sisters.</p>
+<p>Ada gave her six shillings, with orders to buy either a doll
+or a book&mdash;the former if Eleanor did not say it was silly;
+and Phyllis put into her hands a weighty crown piece, begging for
+as many things as it could buy.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s wants and
+wishes were moderate and sensible, and she gave Lily the money
+for them.&nbsp; With Emily there was more difficulty.&nbsp; All
+Lily&rsquo;s efforts had not availed to prevent her from
+contracting two debts at Raynham.&nbsp; More than four pounds she
+owed to Lily, and this she offered to pay her, giving her at the
+same time a list of commissions sufficient to swallow up double
+her quarter&rsquo;s allowance.&nbsp; Lily, though really in want
+of the money for her own use, thought the debts at Raynham so
+serious, that she begged Emily to let her wait for payment till
+it was convenient, and to pay the shoemaker and dressmaker
+immediately.</p>
+<p>Emily thanked her, and promised to do so as soon as she could
+go to Raynham, and Lily next attempted to reduce her list of
+London commissions to something more reasonable.&nbsp; In part
+she succeeded, but it remained a matter of speculation how all
+the necessary articles which she had to buy for herself, and all
+Emily&rsquo;s various orders, were to come out of her own means,
+reduced as they were by former loans.</p>
+<p>The next day Lilias was on her way to London; feeling, as she
+left Beechcroft, that it was a great relief that the schoolroom
+and storeroom could not follow her.&nbsp; She was sorry that she
+should miss seeing Alethea Weston, who was to come home the next
+day, but she left various messages for her, and an affectionate
+note, and had received a promise from her sisters that the copy
+of the music should be given to her the first day that they saw
+her.&nbsp; Her journey afforded her much amusement, and it was
+not till towards the end of the day that she had much time for
+thinking, when, her companions being sleepily inclined, she was
+left to her own meditations and to a dull country.&nbsp; She
+began to revolve her own feelings towards Eleanor, and as she
+remembered the contempt and ingratitude she had once expressed,
+she shrank from the meeting with shame and dread, and knew that
+she should feel reproached by Eleanor&rsquo;s wonted calmness of
+manner.&nbsp; And as she mused upon all that Eleanor had endured,
+and all that she had done, such a reverence for suffering and
+sacrifice took possession of her mind that she was ready to look
+up to her sister with awe.&nbsp; She began to recollect old
+reproofs, and found herself sitting more upright, and examining
+the sit of the folds of her dress with some uneasiness at the
+thought of Eleanor&rsquo;s preciseness.&nbsp; In the midst of her
+meditations her two companions were roused by the slackening
+speed of the train, and starting up, informed her that they were
+arriving at their journey&rsquo;s end.&nbsp; The next minute she
+heard her father consigning her and the umbrellas to Mr.
+Hawkesworth&rsquo;s care, and all was bewilderment till she found
+herself in the hall of her aunt&rsquo;s house, receiving as warm
+and affectionate a greeting from Eleanor as Emily herself could
+have bestowed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And the baby, Eleanor?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Asleep, but you shall see him; and how is Ada? and all
+of them? why, Claude, how well you look!&nbsp; Papa, let me help
+you to take off your greatcoat&mdash;you are cold&mdash;will you
+have a fire?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Never had Lily heard Eleanor say so much in a breath, or seen
+her eye so bright, or her smile so ready, yet, when she entered
+the drawing-room, she saw that Mrs. Hawkesworth was still the
+Eleanor of old.&nbsp; In contrast with the splendid furniture of
+the apartments, a pile of shirts was on the table,
+Eleanor&rsquo;s well-known work-basket on the floor, and the
+ceaseless knitting close at hand.</p>
+<p>Much news was exchanged in the few minutes that elapsed before
+Eleanor carried off her sister to her room, indulging her by the
+way with a peep at little Harry, and one kiss to his round red
+cheek as he lay asleep in his little bed.&nbsp; It was not
+Eleanor&rsquo;s fault that she did not entirely dress Lily, and
+unpack her wardrobe; but Lilias liked to show that she could
+manage for herself; and Eleanor&rsquo;s praise of her neat
+arrangements gave her as much pleasure as in days of yore.</p>
+<p>The evening passed very happily.&nbsp; Eleanor&rsquo;s heart
+was open, she was full of enjoyment at meeting those she loved,
+and the two sisters sat long together in the twilight, talking
+over numerous subjects, all ending in Beechcroft or the baby.</p>
+<p>Yet when Lily awoke the next morning her awe of Eleanor began
+to return, and she felt like a child just returned to
+school.&nbsp; She was, however, mistaken; Eleanor assumed no
+authority, she treated Lily as her equal, and thus made her feel
+more like a woman than she had ever done before.&nbsp; Lily
+thought either that Eleanor was much altered, or that in her
+folly she must have fancied her far more cold and grave than she
+really was.&nbsp; She had, however, no time for studying her
+character; shopping and sight-seeing filled up most of her time,
+and the remainder was spent in resting, and in playing with
+little Henry.</p>
+<p>One evening, when Mr. Mohun and Claude were dining out, Lilias
+was left alone with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth.&nbsp; Lily was very
+tired, but she worked steadily at marking Eleanor&rsquo;s
+pocket-handkerchiefs, until her sister, seeing how weary she was,
+made her lie down on the sofa.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Here is a gentleman who is tired too,&rsquo; said
+Eleanor, dancing the baby; &lsquo;we will carry you off, sir, and
+leave Aunt Lily to go to sleep.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Aunt Lily is not so tired as that,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;pray keep him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is quite bedtime,&rsquo; said Eleanor, in her
+decided tone, and she carried him off.</p>
+<p>Lilias took up the knitting which she had laid down, and began
+to study the stitches.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should like this feathery
+pattern,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;(if it did not remind me so much
+of the fever); but, by the bye, Frank, have you completed Master
+Henry&rsquo;s outfit?&nbsp; I looked forward to helping to choose
+his pretty little things, but I see no preparation but of
+stockings.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, Lily, did not you know that he was to stay in
+England?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To stay in England?&nbsp; No, I never thought of
+that&mdash;how sorry you must be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>At this moment Eleanor returned, and Mr. Hawkesworth told her
+he had been surprised to find Lily did not know their intentions
+with regard to the baby.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If we had any certain intentions we should have told
+her,&rsquo; said Eleanor; &lsquo;I did not wish to speak to her
+about it till we had made up our minds.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I know no use in mysteries,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Hawkesworth, &lsquo;especially when Lily may help us to
+decide.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;On his going or staying?&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, eagerly
+looking to Mr. Hawkesworth, who was evidently more disposed to
+speak than his wife.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not on his going or staying&mdash;I am sorry to say
+that point was settled long ago&mdash;but where we shall leave
+him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily&rsquo;s heart beat high, but she did not speak.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The truth is,&rsquo; proceeded Mr. Hawkesworth,
+&lsquo;that this young gentleman has, as perhaps you know, a
+grandpapa, a grandmamma, and also six or seven aunts.&nbsp; With
+his grandmamma he cannot be left, for sundry reasons, unnecessary
+to mention.&nbsp; Now, one of his aunts is a staid matronly lady,
+and his godmother besides, and in all respects the person to take
+charge of him,&mdash;only she lives in a small house in a town,
+and has plenty of babies of her own, without being troubled with
+other people&rsquo;s.&nbsp; Master Henry&rsquo;s other five aunts
+live in one great house, in a delightful country, with nothing to
+do but make much of him all day long, yet it is averred that
+these said aunts are a parcel of giddy young colts, amongst whom,
+if Henry escapes being demolished as a baby he will infallibly be
+spoilt as he grows up.&nbsp; Now, how are we to
+decide?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You have heard the true state of the case, Lily,&rsquo;
+said Mrs. Hawkesworth.&nbsp; &lsquo;I did not wish to harass papa
+by speaking to him till something was settled; you are certainly
+old enough to have an opinion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, Lily,&rsquo; said Frank; &lsquo;do you think that
+the hospitable New Court will open to receive our poor deserted
+child, and that these said aunts are not wild colts but discreet
+damsels?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Playful as Mr. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s manner was, Lily saw the
+earnestness that was veiled under it: she felt the solemnity of
+Eleanor&rsquo;s appeal, and knew that this was no time to let
+herself be swayed by her wishes.&nbsp; There was a silence.&nbsp;
+At last, after a great struggle, Lily&rsquo;s better judgment
+gained the mastery, and raising her head, she said,
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Frank, do not ask me&mdash;I wish&mdash;but,
+Eleanor, when you see how much harm we have done, how utterly we
+have failed&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily&rsquo;s newly-acquired habits of self-command enabled her
+to subdue a violent fit of sobbing, which she felt impending, but
+her tears flowed quietly down her cheeks.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Remember,&rsquo; said Frank, &lsquo;those who mistrust
+themselves are the most trustworthy.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Frank, it is not only the feeling of the greatness
+of the charge, it is the knowledge that we are not fit for
+it&mdash;that our own faults have forfeited such
+happiness.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Again Lily was choked with tears.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Frank, &lsquo;we shall judge at
+Beechcroft.&nbsp; At all events, one of those aunts is to be
+respected.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Eleanor added her &lsquo;Very right.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This kindness on the part of her brother-in-law, which Lily
+felt to be undeserved, caused her tears to flow faster, and
+Eleanor, seeing her quite overcome, led her out of the room,
+helped her to undress, and put her to bed, with tenderness such
+as Lily had never experienced from her, excepting in illness.</p>
+<p>In spite of bitter regrets, when she thought of the happiness
+it would have been to keep her little nephew, and of importunate
+and disappointing hopes that Mrs. Ridley would find it impossible
+to receive him, Lily felt that she had done right, and had made a
+real sacrifice for duty&rsquo;s sake.&nbsp; No more was said on
+the subject, and Lily was very grateful to Eleanor for making no
+inquiries, which she could not have answered without blaming
+Emily.</p>
+<p>Sight-seeing prospered very well under Claude&rsquo;s
+guidance, and Lily&rsquo;s wonder and delight was a constant
+source of amusement to her friends.&nbsp; Her shopping was more
+of a care than a pleasure, for, in spite of the handsome
+equipments which Mr. Mohun presented to all his daughters, it was
+impossible to contract Emily&rsquo;s requirements within the
+limits of what ought to be her expenditure, and the different
+views of her brother and sister were rather troublesome in this
+matter.&nbsp; Claude hated the search for ladies&rsquo; finery,
+and if drawn into it, insisted on always taking her to the
+grandest and most expensive shops; while, on the other hand,
+though Eleanor liked to hunt up cheap things and good bargains,
+she had such rigid ideas about plainness of dress, that there was
+little chance that what she approved would satisfy Emily.</p>
+<h2><a name="page235"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+235</span>CHAPTER XXI<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">CHARITY BEGINS AT HOME</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Suddenly, a mighty jerk<br />
+A mighty mischief did.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">In</span> the meantime Emily and Jane went
+on very prosperously at home, looking forward to the return of
+the rest of the party on Saturday, the 17th of July.&nbsp; In
+this, however, they were doomed to disappointment, for neither
+Mr. Mohun nor Mr. Hawkesworth could wind up their affairs so as
+to return before the 24th.&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s holidays
+commenced on Monday the 19th, and Claude offered to go home on
+the same day, and meet him, but in a general council it was
+determined to the contrary.&nbsp; Claude was wanted to stay for a
+concert on Thursday, and both Mr. Mohun and Eleanor thought
+Maurice, without Reginald, would not be formidable for a few
+days.</p>
+<p>At first he seemed to justify this opinion.&nbsp; He did not
+appear to have any peculiar pursuit, unless such might be called
+a very earnest attempt to make Phyllis desist from her favourite
+preface of &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,&rsquo; and to reform
+her habit of saying, &lsquo;Please for,&rsquo; instead of
+&lsquo;If you please.&rsquo;&nbsp; He walked with the sisters,
+carried messages for Mr. Devereux, performed some neat little
+bits of carpentry, and was very useful and agreeable.</p>
+<p>On Wednesday afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called,
+their heads the more full of the 30th because the Marquis had not
+once thought of it while Mr. Devereux was ill.&nbsp; Among the
+intended diversions fireworks were mentioned, and from that
+moment rockets, wheels, and serpents, commenced a wild career
+through Maurice&rsquo;s brain.&nbsp; Through the whole evening he
+searched for books on what he was pleased to call the art of
+pyrotechnics, studied them all Wednesday, and the next morning
+announced his intention of making some fireworks on a new
+plan.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, you must not,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you will be
+sure to do mischief.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am going to ask Wat for some powder,&rsquo; was
+Maurice&rsquo;s reply, and he walked off.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stop him, Jane, stop him,&rsquo; cried Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Nothing can be so dangerous.&nbsp; Tell him how angry papa
+would be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Though Jane highly esteemed her brother&rsquo;s discretion,
+she did not much like the idea of his touching powder, and she
+ran after him to suggest that he had better wait till
+papa&rsquo;s return.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then Redgie will be at home,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+&lsquo;and I could not be answerable for the consequence of such
+a careless fellow touching powder.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This great proof of caution quite satisfied Jane, but not so
+Wat Greenwood, who proved himself a faithful servant by refusing
+to let Master Maurice have one grain of gunpowder without express
+leave from the squire.&nbsp; Maurice then had recourse to Jane,
+and his power over her was such as to triumph over strong sense
+and weak notions of obedience, so that she was prevailed upon to
+supply him with the means of making the dangerous and forbidden
+purchase.</p>
+<p>Emily was both annoyed and alarmed when she found that the
+gunpowder was actually in the house, and she even thought of
+sending a note to the parsonage to beg Mr. Devereux to speak to
+Maurice; but Jane had gone over to the enemy, and Emily never
+could do anything unsupported.&nbsp; Besides, she neither liked
+to affront Maurice nor to confess herself unable to keep him in
+order; and she, therefore, tried to put the whole matter out of
+her head, in the thoughts of an expedition to Raynham, which she
+was about to make in the manner she best liked, with Jane in the
+close carriage, and the horses reluctantly spared from their farm
+work.</p>
+<p>As they were turning the corner of the lane they overtook
+Phyllis and Adeline on their way to the school with some work,
+and Emily stopped the carriage, to desire them to send off a
+letter which she had left on the chimney-piece in the
+schoolroom.&nbsp; Then proceeding to Raynham, they made their
+visits, paid Emily&rsquo;s debts, performed their commissions,
+and met the carriage again at the bookseller&rsquo;s shop, at the
+end of about two hours.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Look here, Emily!&rsquo; exclaimed Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Read this! can it be Mrs. Aylmer?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The truly charitable,&rsquo; said Emily,
+contemptuously.&nbsp; &lsquo;Mrs. Aylmer is
+above&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But read.&nbsp; It says &ldquo;unbeneficed clergyman
+and deceased nobleman,&rdquo; and who can that be but Uncle
+Rotherwood and Mr. Aylmer.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, let us see,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;those
+things are always amusing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>It was an appeal to the &lsquo;truly charitable,&rsquo; from
+the friends of the widow of an unbeneficed clergyman of the
+diocese, one of whose sons had, it was said, by the kindness of a
+deceased nobleman, received the promise of an appointment in
+India, of which he was unable to avail himself for want of the
+funds needful for his outfit.&nbsp; This appeal was, it added,
+made without the knowledge of the afflicted lady, but further
+particulars might be learnt by application to E. F., No. 5 West
+Street, Raynham.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;E. F. is plainly that bustling, little, old Miss
+Fitchett, who wrote to papa for some subscription,&rsquo; said
+Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;You know she is a regular beggar, always
+doing these kind of things, but I can never believe that Mrs.
+Aylmer would consent to appear in this manner.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! but it says without her knowledge,&rsquo; said
+Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Don&rsquo;t you remember Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+lamenting that they were forgotten?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, it is shocking,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;the
+clergyman that married papa and mamma!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ask Mr. Adam what he knows,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>Emily accordingly applied to the bookseller, and learnt that
+Mrs. Aylmer was indeed the person intended.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Something must be done,&rsquo; said she, returning to
+Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Our name will be a help.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Speak to Aunt Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Or suppose we apply to Miss Fitchett, we should have time
+to drive that way.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure I shall not go to Miss Fitchett,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;she only longs for an excuse to visit us.&nbsp;
+What can you be thinking of?&nbsp; Lend me your pencil, Jenny, if
+you please.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>And Emily wrote down, &lsquo;Miss Mohun, &pound;5,&rsquo; and
+handed to the bookseller all that she possessed towards paying
+her just debts to Lilias.&nbsp; While she was writing, Jane had
+turned towards the window, and suddenly exclaiming, &lsquo;There
+is Ben!&nbsp; Oh! that gunpowder!&rsquo; darted out of the
+shop.&nbsp; She had seen the groom on horseback, and the next
+moment she was asking breathlessly, &lsquo;Is it
+Maurice?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Miss Jane; but Miss Ada is badly burnt, and Master
+Maurice sent me to fetch Mr. Saunders.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How did it happen?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t say, Miss; the schoolroom has been on
+fire, and Master Maurice said the young ladies had got at the
+gunpowder.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Emily had just arrived at the door, looking dreadfully pale,
+and followed by numerous kind offers of salts and glasses of
+water; but Jane, perceiving that at least she had strength to get
+into the carriage, refused them all, helped her in, and with
+instant decision, desired to be driven to the
+surgeon&rsquo;s.&nbsp; Emily obeyed like a child, and threw
+herself back in the carriage without a word; Jane trembled like
+an aspen leaf; but her higher spirit took the lead, and very
+sensibly she managed, stopping at Mr. Saunders&rsquo;s door to
+offer to take him to Beechcroft, and getting a glass of
+sal-volatile for Emily while they were waiting for him.&nbsp; His
+presence was a great relief, for Emily&rsquo;s natural courtesy
+made her exert herself, and thus warded off much that would have
+been very distressing.</p>
+<p>In the meantime we will return to Beechcroft, where
+Emily&rsquo;s request respecting her letter had occasioned some
+discussion between the little girls, as they returned from a walk
+with Marianne.&nbsp; Phyllis thought that Emily meant them to
+wafer the letter, since they were under strict orders never to
+touch fire or candle; but Ada argued that they were to seal it,
+and that permission to light a candle was implied in the
+order.&nbsp; At last, Phyllis hoped the matter might be settled
+by asking Maurice to seal the letter, and meeting him at the
+front door, she began, in fortunately, with &lsquo;Please,
+Maurice&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I never listen to anything beginning with
+please,&rsquo; said Maurice, who was in a great hurry,
+&lsquo;only don&rsquo;t touch my powder.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away he went, deaf to all his sister&rsquo;s shouts of
+&lsquo;Maurice, Maurice,&rsquo; and they went in, Ada not sorry
+to be unheard, as she was bent on the grand exploit of lighting a
+lucifer match, but Phyllis still pleading for the wafer.&nbsp;
+They found the schoolroom strewed with Maurice&rsquo;s
+preparations for fireworks, and Emily&rsquo;s letter on the
+chimney-piece.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let us take the letter downstairs, and put on a
+wafer,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Won&rsquo;t you come,
+Ada?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, the stamps are here, and so are the matches, I can
+do it easily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But Ada, Ada, it would be naughty.&nbsp; Only wait, and
+I will show you such a pretty wafer that I know of in the
+drawing-room.&nbsp; I will run and fetch it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis went, and Ada stood a few moments in doubt, looking at
+the letter.&nbsp; The recollection of duty was not strong enough
+to balance the temptation, and she took up a match and drew it
+along the sandpaper.&nbsp; It did not light&mdash;a second pull,
+and the flame appeared more suddenly than she had expected, while
+at the same moment the lock of the door turned, and fancying it
+was Maurice, she started, and dropped the match.&nbsp; Phyllis
+opened the door, heard a loud explosion and a scream, saw a
+bright flash and a cloud of smoke.&nbsp; She started back, but
+the next moment again opened the door, and ran forward.&nbsp;
+Hannah rushed in at the same time, and caught up Ada, who had
+fallen to the ground.&nbsp; A light in the midst of the smoke
+made Phyllis turn, and she beheld the papers on the table on
+fire.&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s powder-horn was in the midst, but the
+flames had not yet reached it, and, mindful of Claude&rsquo;s
+story, she sprung forward, caught it up, and dashed it through
+the window; she felt the glow of the fire upon her cheek, and
+stood still as if stunned, till Hannah carried Ada out of the
+room, and screamed to her to come away, and call Joseph.&nbsp;
+The table was now one sheet of flame, and Phyllis flew to the
+pantry, where she gave the summons in almost inaudible
+tones.&nbsp; The servants hurried to the spot, and she was left
+alone and bewildered; she ran hither and thither in confusion,
+till she met Hannah, eagerly asking for Master Maurice, and
+saying that the surgeon must be instantly sent for, as
+Ada&rsquo;s face and neck were badly burnt.&nbsp; Phyllis ran
+down, calling Maurice, and at length met him at the front door,
+looking much frightened, and asking for Ada.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice, her face and neck are burnt, and
+badly.&nbsp; She does scream?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did I not tell you not to meddle with the
+powder?&rsquo; said Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I could not help it,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stuff and nonsense!&nbsp; It is very well that you have
+not killed Ada, and I think that would have made you
+sorry.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis with difficulty mentioned Hannah&rsquo;s desire that a
+surgeon should be sent for: Maurice went to look for Ben, and she
+followed him.&nbsp; Then he began asking how she had done the
+mischief.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;I do not much
+think I did it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Mind, you can&rsquo;t humbug me.&nbsp; Did you not say
+that you touched the powder?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, but&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No buts,&rsquo; said Maurice, making the most of his
+brief authority.&nbsp; &lsquo;I hate false excuses.&nbsp; What
+were you doing when it exploded?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Coming into the room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! that accounts for it,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+&lsquo;the slightest vibration causes an explosion of that sort
+of rocket, and of course it was your bouncing into the
+room!&nbsp; You have had a lesson against rushing about the
+house.&nbsp; Come, though, cheer up, Phyl, it is a bad business,
+but it might have been worse; you will know better next
+time.&nbsp; Don&rsquo;t cry, Phyl, I will explain to you all
+about the patent rocket.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But do you really think that I blew up Ada?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Blew up Ada! caused the powder to ignite.&nbsp; The
+inflammable matter&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>As he spoke he followed Phyllis to the nursery, and there was
+so much shocked, that he could no longer lord it over her, but
+shrinking back, shut himself up in his room, and bolted the
+door.</p>
+<p>Nearly an hour passed away before the arrival of Emily, Jane,
+and Mr. Saunders.&nbsp; Phyllis ran down, and meeting them at the
+door, exclaimed, &lsquo;Oh! Emily, poor Ada!&nbsp; I am so
+sorry.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The sisters hurried past her to the nursery, where Ada was
+lying on the bed, half undressed, and her face, neck, and arm
+such a spectacle that Emily turned away, ready to faint.&nbsp;
+Mr. Saunders was summoned, and Phyllis thrust out of the
+room.&nbsp; She sat down on the step of the stairs, resting her
+forehead on her knees, and trembling, listened to the sounds of
+voices, and the screams which now and then reached her
+ears.&nbsp; After a time she was startled by hearing herself
+called from the stairs <i>by below</i> a voice which she had not
+heard for many weeks, and springing up, saw Mr. Devereux leaning
+on the banisters.&nbsp; The great change in his appearance
+frightened her almost as much as the accident itself, and she
+stood looking at him without speaking.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Phyllis,&rsquo; said he, in a voice hoarse with agitation,
+&lsquo;what is it? tell me at once.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She could not speak, and her wild and frightened air might
+well give him great alarm.&nbsp; She pointed to the nursery, and
+put her finger to her lips, and he, beckoning to her to follow
+him, went downstairs, and turning into the drawing-room, said, as
+he sank down upon the sofa, &lsquo;Now, Phyllis, what has
+happened?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The gunpowder&mdash;I made it go off, and it has burnt
+poor Ada&rsquo;s face!&nbsp; Mr. Saunders is there, and she
+screams&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis finding herself ready to roar, left off speaking, and
+laying her head on the table, burst into an agony of crying,
+while Mr. Devereux was too much exhausted to address her; at last
+she exclaimed: &lsquo;I hear the nursery door; he is
+going!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She flew to the door, and listened, and then called out,
+&lsquo;Emily, Jane, here is Cousin Robert!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane came down, leaving Emily to finish hearing Mr.
+Saunders&rsquo;s directions.&nbsp; She was even more shocked at
+her cousin&rsquo;s looks than Phyllis had been, and though she
+tried to speak cheerfully, her manner scarcely agreed with her
+words.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is all well, Robert, I am sorry you have
+been so frightened.&nbsp; It is but a slight affair, though it
+looks so shocking.&nbsp; There is no danger.&nbsp; But, oh,
+Robert! you ought not to be here.&nbsp; What shall we do for you?
+you are quite knocked up.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! no,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I am only a
+little out of breath.&nbsp; A terrible report came to me, and I
+set off to learn the truth.&nbsp; I should like to hear what Mr.
+Saunders says of her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will call him in here before he goes,&rsquo; said
+Jane; &lsquo;how tired you are; you have not been out
+before.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only to the gate to speak to Rotherwood yesterday, and
+prevent him from coming in,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;but
+I have great designs for Sunday.&nbsp; They come home to-morrow,
+do not they?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane was much relieved by hearing her cousin talk in this
+manner, and answered, &lsquo;Yes, and a dismal coming home it
+will be; it is too late to let them know.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Saunders now entered, and gave a very favourable account
+of the patient, saying that even the scars would probably
+disappear in a few weeks.&nbsp; His gig had come from Raynham,
+and he offered to set Mr. Devereux down at the parsonage, a
+proposal which the latter was very glad to accept.&nbsp; Emily
+and Jane had leisure, when they were gone, to inquire into the
+manner of the accident.&nbsp; Phyllis answered that Maurice said
+that her banging the door had made the powder go off.&nbsp; Jane
+then asked where Maurice was, and Phyllis reporting that he was
+in his own room, she repaired thither, and knocked twice without
+receiving an answer.&nbsp; On her call, however, he opened the
+door; she saw that he had been in tears, and hastened to tell him
+Mr. Saunders&rsquo;s opinion.&nbsp; He fastened the door again as
+soon as she had entered.&nbsp; &lsquo;If I could have thought
+it!&rsquo; sighed he.&nbsp; &lsquo;Fool that I was, not to lock
+the door!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you were not there?&nbsp; Phyllis says that she
+did it by banging the door.&nbsp; Is not that
+nonsense?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not at all.&nbsp; Did I not read to you in the <i>Year
+Book of Facts</i> about the patent signal rockets, which explode
+with the least vibration, even when a carriage goes by?&nbsp;
+Now, mine was on the same principle.&nbsp; I was making an
+experiment on the ingredients; I did not expect to succeed the
+first time, and so I took no precautions.&nbsp; Well!
+Pyrotechnics are a dangerous science!&nbsp; Next time I study
+them it shall be at the workshop at the Old Court.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Maurice was sincerely sorry for the consequence of his
+disobedience, and would have been much to be pitied had it not
+been for his secret satisfaction in the success of his art.&nbsp;
+He called his sister into the schoolroom to explain how it
+happened.&nbsp; The room was a dismal sight, blackened with
+smoke, and flooded with water, the table and part of the floor
+charred, a mass of burnt paper in the midst, and a stifling smell
+of fire.&nbsp; A pane of glass was shattered, and Maurice ran
+down to the lawn to see if he could find anything there to
+account for it.&nbsp; The next moment he returned, the
+powder-horn in his hand.&nbsp; &lsquo;See, Jenny, how fortunate
+that this was driven through the window with the force of the
+explosion.&nbsp; The whole place might have been blown to atoms
+with such a quantity as this.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then what was it that blew up?&rsquo; asked Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What I had put out for my rocket, about two
+ounces.&nbsp; If this half-pound had gone there is no saying what
+might have happened.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now, Maurice,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I must go back
+to Ada, and will you run down to the parsonage with a parcel,
+directed to Robert, that you will find in the hall?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>This was a device to occupy Maurice, who, as Jane saw, was so
+restless and unhappy that she did not like to leave him, much as
+she was wanted elsewhere.&nbsp; He went, but afraid to see his
+cousin, only left the parcel at the door.&nbsp; As he was going
+back he heard a shout, and looking round saw Lord Rotherwood
+mounted on Cedric, his most spirited horse, galloping up the
+lane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Maurice!&rsquo; cried he, &lsquo;what is all
+this? they say the New Court is blown up, and you and half the
+girls killed, but I hope one part is as true as the
+other.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nobody is hurt but Ada,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;but
+her face is a good deal burnt.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh? then she won&rsquo;t be fit for the 30th, poor
+child! tell me how it was, make haste.&nbsp; I heard it from Mr.
+Burnet as I came down to dinner.&nbsp; We have a dozen people at
+dinner.&nbsp; I told him not to mention it to my mother, and rode
+off to hear the truth.&nbsp; Make haste, half the people were
+come when I set off.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The horse&rsquo;s caperings so discomposed Maurice that he
+could scarcely collect his wits enough to answer: &lsquo;Some
+signal rocket on a new principle&mdash;detonating powder,
+composed of oxymuriate&mdash;Oh!&nbsp; Rotherwood, take
+care!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Speak sense, and go on.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then Phyllis came in, banged the door, and the
+vibration caused the explosion,&rsquo; said Maurice, scared into
+finishing promptly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh! banging the door?&nbsp; You had better not tell
+that story at school.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Rotherwood, the deton&mdash;Oh! that
+horse&mdash;you will be off!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not half so dangerous as patent rockets.&nbsp; Is Emily
+satisfied with such stuff?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t you know that fulminating
+silver&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What does Robert Devereux say?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Really, Rotherwood, I could show you&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Show me?&nbsp; No; if rockets are so perilous I shall
+have nothing to do with them.&nbsp; Stand still, Cedric!&nbsp;
+Just tell me about Ada.&nbsp; Is there much harm done?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Her face is scorched a good deal, but they say it will
+soon be right.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am glad&mdash;we will send to inquire to-morrow, but
+I cannot come&mdash;ha, ha! a new infernal machine.&nbsp;
+Good-bye, Friar Bacon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away he went, and Maurice stood looking after him with
+complacent disdain.&nbsp; &lsquo;There they go, Cedric and
+Rotherwood, equally well provided with brains!&nbsp; What is the
+use of talking science to either?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>It was late when he reached the house, and his two sisters
+shortly came down to tea, with news that Adeline was asleep and
+Phyllis was going to bed.&nbsp; The accident was again talked
+over.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I do not understand it,
+but I suppose papa will.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The telling papa is a bad part of the affair, with
+William and Eleanor there too,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not mean to speak to Phyllis about it
+again,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;it makes her cry so
+terribly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It will come out fast enough,&rsquo; sighed
+Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;Good-night.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>More than once in the course of the night did poor Phyllis
+wake and cry, and the next day was the most wretched she had ever
+spent; she was not allowed to stay in the nursery, and the
+schoolroom was uninhabitable, so she wandered listlessly about
+the garden, sometimes creeping down to the churchyard, where she
+looked up at the old tower, or pondered over the graves, and
+sometimes forgetting her troubles in converse with the dogs, in
+counting the rings in the inside of a foxglove flower, or in
+rescuing tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a water-lily.</p>
+<p style="text-align: center">
+<a href="images/p247b.jpg">
+<img alt=
+"Rescuing tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a
+water-lily.&mdash;p. 247"
+title=
+"Rescuing tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a
+water-lily.&mdash;p. 247"
+ src="images/p247s.jpg" />
+</a></p>
+<p>Her sisters and brothers were not less forlorn.&nbsp; Emily
+sighed and lamented; Adeline was feverish and petulant; and Jane
+toiled in vain to please and soothe both, and to comfort Maurice;
+but with all her good-temper and good-nature she had not the
+spirit which alone could enable her to be a comfort to any
+one.&nbsp; Ada whined, fretted, and was disobedient, and from
+Maurice she met with nothing but rebuffs; he was silent and
+sullen, and spent most of the day in the workshop, slowly planing
+scraps of deal board, and watching with a careless eye the curled
+shavings float to the ground.</p>
+<p>In the course of the afternoon Alethea and Marianne came to
+inquire after the patient.&nbsp; Jane came down to them and
+talked very fast, but when they asked for a further explanation
+of the cause of the accident, Jane declared that Maurice said it
+was impossible that any one who did not understand chemistry
+should know how it happened, and Alethea went away strongly
+reminded that it was no affair of hers.</p>
+<p>Notes passed between the New Court and the vicarage, but Mr.
+Devereux was feeling the effect of his yesterday&rsquo;s exertion
+too much to repeat it, and no persuasion of the sisters could
+induce Maurice to visit him.</p>
+<h2><a name="page249"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+249</span>CHAPTER XXII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE BARONIAL COURT</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Still in his eyes his soul revealing,<br />
+He dreams not, knows not of concealing,<br />
+Does all he does with single mind,<br />
+And thinks of others that are kind.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> travellers were expected to
+arrive at about seven o&rsquo;clock in the evening, and in
+accordance with a well-known taste of Eleanor&rsquo;s, Emily had
+ordered no dinner, but a substantial meal under the name of
+tea.&nbsp; When the sound of carriage wheels was heard, Jane was
+with Adeline, Maurice was in his retreat at the Old Court, and it
+was with no cheerful alacrity that Emily went alone into the
+hall.&nbsp; Phyllis was already at the front door, and the
+instant Mr. Mohun set foot on the threshold, her hand grasped his
+coat, and her shrill voice cried in his ear, &lsquo;Papa, I am
+very sorry I blew up the gunpowder and burnt Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What, my dear? where is Ada?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In bed.&nbsp; I blew up the gunpowder and burnt her
+face,&rsquo; repeated Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We have had an accident,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but
+I hope it is nothing very serious, only poor Ada is a sad
+figure.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>In another moment Mr. Mohun and Eleanor were on the way to the
+nursery; Lilias was following, but she recollected that a general
+rush into a sickroom was not desirable, and therefore paused and
+came back to the hall.&nbsp; The worst was over with Phyllis when
+the confession had been made.&nbsp; She was in raptures at the
+sight of the baby, and was presently showing the nurse the way
+upstairs, but her brother William called her back:
+&lsquo;Phyllis, you have not spoken to any one.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis turned, and came down slowly in her most ungainly
+manner, believing herself in too great disgrace to be noticed by
+anybody, and she was quite surprised and comforted to be greeted
+by her brothers and Lily just as usual.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And how did you meet with this misfortune?&rsquo; asked
+Mr. Hawkesworth.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I banged the door, and made it go off,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What can you mean?&rsquo; said William, in a tone of
+surprise, which Phyllis took for anger, and she hid her face to
+stifle her sobs.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, do not frighten her,&rsquo; said Claude&rsquo;s
+kind voice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Run and make friends with your nephew, Phyllis,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Hawkesworth; &lsquo;do not greet us with
+crying.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;First tell me what is become of Maurice,&rsquo; said
+Claude, &lsquo;is he blown up too?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, he is at the Old Court,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Shall I tell him that you are come?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will look for him,&rsquo; said Claude, and out he
+went.</p>
+<p>The others dispersed in different directions, and did not
+assemble again for nearly half an hour, when they all met in the
+drawing-room to drink tea; Claude and Maurice were the last to
+appear, and, on entering, the first thing the former said was,
+&lsquo;Where is Phyllis?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In the nursery,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;she has had
+her supper, and chooses to stay with Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Has any one found out the history of the
+accident?&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have vainly been trying to make sense of
+Maurice&rsquo;s account,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Sense!&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;there is
+none.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am perfectly bewildered,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;every one has a different story, only consenting in making
+Phyllis the victim.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And,&rsquo; added Claude, &lsquo;I strongly suspect she
+is not in fault.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why should you doubt what she says herself?&rsquo; said
+Eleanor.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What does she say herself?&rsquo; said William,
+&lsquo;nothing but that she shut the door, and what does that
+amount to?&mdash;Nothing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She says she touched the powder,&rsquo; interposed
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is another matter,&rsquo; said William; &lsquo;no
+one told me of her touching the powder.&nbsp; But why do you not
+ask her?&nbsp; She is publicly condemned without a
+hearing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Who accuses her?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I can hardly tell,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;she met
+us, saying she was very sorry.&nbsp; Yes, she accuses
+herself.&nbsp; Every one has believed it to be her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And why?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>There was a pause, but at last Emily said, &lsquo;How would
+you account for it otherwise?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have not yet heard the circumstances.&nbsp; Maurice,
+I wish to hear your account.&nbsp; I will not now ask how you
+procured the powder.&nbsp; Whoever was the immediate cause of the
+accident, you are chiefly to blame.&nbsp; Where was the
+powder?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Maurice gave his theory and his facts, ending with the
+powder-horn being driven out of the window upon the green.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hear,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;But,
+Maurice, did you not say that Phyllis touched the powder?&nbsp;
+How do you reconcile that with this incomprehensible
+statement?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She might have done that before,&rsquo; said
+Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now call Phyllis,&rsquo; said his father.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is it not very formidable for her to be examined before
+such an assembly?&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The accusation has been public, and the investigation
+shall be the same,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you do not think she did it, papa?&rsquo; cried
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not by shutting the door,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>Phyllis entered, and Mr. Mohun, holding out both hands to her,
+drew her towards him, and placing her with her back to the
+others, still retained her hands, while he said, &lsquo;Phyllis,
+do not be frightened, but tell me where you were when the powder
+exploded?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Coming into the room,&rsquo; said Phyllis, in a
+trembling voice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Where had you been?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Fetching a wafer out of the drawing-room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What was the wafer for?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To put on Emily&rsquo;s letter, which she told us to
+send.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And where was Ada?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;In the schoolroom, reading the direction of the
+letter.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Tell me exactly what happened when you came
+back.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I opened the door, and there was a flash, and a bang,
+and a smoke, and Ada tumbled down.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have one more question to ask.&nbsp; When did you
+touch the powder?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;When it had exploded?&nbsp; Take care what you
+say.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was it naughty?&nbsp; I am very sorry,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, beginning to cry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What powder did you touch?&nbsp; I do not understand
+you, tell me quietly.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I touched the powder-horn.&nbsp; What went off was only
+a little in a paper on the table, and there was a great deal
+more.&nbsp; When the rocket blew up there was a great noise, and
+Ada and I both screamed, and Hannah ran in and took up Ada in her
+arms.&nbsp; Then I saw a great fire, and looked, and saw
+Emily&rsquo;s music-book, and all the papers blazing.&nbsp; So I
+thought if it got to the powder it would blow up again, and I
+laid hold of the horn and threw it out of the window.&nbsp; That
+is all I know, papa, only I hope you are not very angry with
+me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She looked into his face, not knowing how to interpret the
+unusual expression she saw there.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Angry with you!&rsquo; said he.&nbsp; &lsquo;No, my
+dear child, you have acted with great presence of mind.&nbsp; You
+have saved your sister and Hannah from great danger, and I am
+very sorry that you have been unjustly treated.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He then gave his little daughter a kiss, and putting his hand
+on her head, added, &lsquo;Whoever caused the explosion, Phyllis
+is quite free from blame, and I wish every one to understand
+this, because she has been unjustly accused, without examination,
+and because she has borne it patiently, and without attempting to
+justify herself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very right,&rsquo; observed Eleanor.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Shake hands, Phyllis,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>The others said more with their eyes than with their
+lips.&nbsp; Phyllis stood like one in a dream, and fixing her
+bewildered looks upon Claude, said, &lsquo;Did not I do
+it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, Phyllis, you had nothing to do with it,&rsquo; was
+the general exclamation.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Maurice said it was the door,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Maurice talked nonsense,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;you
+were only foolish in believing him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis went up to Claude, and laid her head on his arm; Mr.
+Hawkesworth held out his hand to her, but she did not look up,
+and Claude withdrawing his arm, and raising her head, found that
+she was crying.&nbsp; Eleanor and Lilias both rose, and came
+towards her but Claude made them a sign, and led her away.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What a fine story this will be for Reginald,&rsquo;
+said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And for Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not see how it happened,&rsquo; said Eleanor.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of course Ada did it herself,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of course,&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;It was all
+from Emily&rsquo;s setting them to seal her letter, that is plain
+now.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Would not Ada have said so?&rsquo; asked Eleanor.</p>
+<p>Lily sighed at the thought of what Eleanor had yet to
+learn.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you tell them to seal your letter, Emily?&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sorry to say that I did tell them to send
+it,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but I said nothing about sealing,
+as Jane remembers, and I forgot that Maurice&rsquo;s gunpowder
+was in the room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Eleanor shook her head sorrowfully, and looked down at her
+knitting, and Lily knew that her mind was made up respecting
+little Henry&rsquo;s dwelling-place.</p>
+<p>It was some comfort to have raised no false expectations.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ada must not be frightened and agitated
+to-night,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I hope you will talk
+to her to-morrow, Eleanor.&nbsp; Well, Claude, have you made
+Phyllis understand that she is acquitted?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Scarcely,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;she is so overcome
+and worn out, that I thought she had better go to bed, and wake
+in her proper senses to-morrow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A very unconscious heroine,&rsquo; said William.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;She is a wonder&mdash;I never thought her anything but an
+honest sort of romp.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have long thought her a wonderful specimen of
+obedience,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.</p>
+<p>William and Claude now walked to the parsonage, and the
+council broke up; but it must not be supposed that this was the
+last that Emily and Maurice heard on the subject.</p>
+<h2><a name="page256"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+256</span>CHAPTER XXIII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">JOYS AND SORROWS</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;Complaint was heard on every part<br />
+Of something disarranged.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> next day, Sunday, was one of
+the most marked in Lily&rsquo;s life.&nbsp; It was the first time
+she saw Mr. Devereux after his illness, and though Claude had
+told her he was going to church, it gave her a sudden thrill of
+joy to see him there once more, and perhaps she never felt more
+thankful than when his name was read before the
+Thanksgiving.&nbsp; After the service there was an exchange of
+greetings, but Lily spoke no word, she felt too happy and too
+awe-struck to say anything, and she walked back to the New Court
+in silence.</p>
+<p>In the afternoon she had hopes that a blessing would be
+granted to her, for which at one time she had scarcely dared to
+hope; and she felt convinced that so it would be when she saw
+that Mr. Devereux wore his surplice, although, as in the morning,
+his friend read the service.&nbsp; After the Second Lesson there
+was a pause, and then Mr. Devereux left the chair by the altar,
+walked along the aisle, and took his stand on the step of the
+font.&nbsp; Lily&rsquo;s heart beat high as she saw who were
+gathering round him&mdash;Mrs. Eden, Andrew Grey, James
+Harrington, and Mrs. Naylor, who held in her arms a healthy,
+rosy-checked boy of a year old.</p>
+<p>She could not have described the feelings which made her eyes
+overflow with tears, as she saw Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s thin hand
+sprinkle the drops over the brow of the child, and heard him say,
+&lsquo;Robert, I baptize thee&rsquo;&mdash;words which she had
+heard in dreams, and then awakened to remember that the parish
+was at enmity with the pastor, the child unbaptized, and herself,
+in part, the cause.</p>
+<p>The name of the little boy was an additional pledge of
+reconciliation, and at the same time it made her feel again what
+had been the price of his baptism.&nbsp; When she looked back
+upon the dreary feelings which she had so lately experienced, it
+seemed to her as if she might believe that this christening was,
+as it were, a pledge of pardon, and an earnest of better
+things.</p>
+<p>Naylor, who had recovered much more slowly than Mr. Devereux,
+was at church for the first time, and after the service Mr. Mohun
+sought him out in the churchyard, and heartily shook hands with
+him.&nbsp; Lily would gladly have followed his example, but she
+only stood by Eleanor and Mrs. Weston, who were speaking to Mrs.
+Eden and Mrs. Naylor, admiring the little boy, and praising him
+for his good behaviour in church.</p>
+<p>Love of babies was a strong bond between Mrs. Weston and Mrs.
+Hawkesworth, who seemed to become well acquainted from the first
+moment that little Henry was mentioned; and Lily was well pleased
+to see that in Jane&rsquo;s phrase Eleanor &lsquo;took to her
+friends so well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>And yet this day brought with it some annoyances, which once
+would have fretted her so much as to interfere even with such joy
+as she now felt.&nbsp; The song, with which she had taken so much
+pains, ought to have been sent home a week before, but owing to
+the delay caused by Emily&rsquo;s carelessness, it had been burnt
+in the fire in the schoolroom, and Lily could not feel herself
+forgiven till she had talked the disaster over in private with
+her friend, and this was out of her power throughout the day, for
+something always prevented her from getting Alethea alone.&nbsp;
+In the morning Jane stuck close to her, and in the afternoon
+William walked to the school gate with them.&nbsp; But
+Alethea&rsquo;s manner was kinder towards her than ever, and she
+was quite satisfied about her.</p>
+<p>It gave her more pain to perceive that Emily in every possible
+manner avoided being alone with her.&nbsp; It was by her desire
+that Phyllis came to sleep in their room; she would keep Jane
+talking there, give Esther some employment which kept her in
+their presence, linger in the drawing-room while Lilias was
+dressing, and at bedtime be too sleepy to say anything but
+good-night.</p>
+<p>That Sunday was a sorrowful one to Eleanor; for in the course
+of the conversation with Ada, which Mr. Mohun had desired her to
+hold, she became conscious of the little girl&rsquo;s
+double-dealing ways.&nbsp; It was only by a very close
+cross-examination that she was able to extract from her a true
+account of the disaster, and though Ada never went so far as
+actually to tell a falsehood, it was evident that she was willing
+to conceal as much as possible, and to throw the blame on other
+people.&nbsp; And when the real facts were confessed she did not
+seem able to comprehend why she was regarded with displeasure;
+her instinct of truth and obedience was lost for the time, and
+Eleanor saw it with the utmost pain.&nbsp; Adeline had been her
+especial darling, and cold as her manner had often been towards
+the others, it ever was warm towards the motherless little one,
+whom she had tended and cherished with most anxious care from her
+earliest infancy.&nbsp; She had left her gentle, candid, and
+affectionate; a loving, engaging, little creature, and how did
+she find her now?&nbsp; Her fair bright face disfigured, her
+caresses affected, her mind turned to deceit and
+prevarication!&nbsp; Well might Eleanor feel it more than ever
+painful to leave her own little Henry to the care of others; and
+well it was for her that she had learned to find comfort in the
+consciousness that her duty was clear.</p>
+<p>The next morning Emily learned what was Henry&rsquo;s
+destination.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Eleanor,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;why do you not
+leave him here?&nbsp; We should be so rejoiced to have
+him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, I am afraid it is out of the
+question,&rsquo; answered Eleanor, quietly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, dear Eleanor?&nbsp; You know how glad we should
+be.&nbsp; I should have thought,&rsquo; proceeded Emily, a little
+hurt, &lsquo;that you would have wished him to live in your own
+home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Eleanor did not speak, and Emily, who had the little boy in
+her arms, went on talking to him: &lsquo;Come, baby, let us
+persuade mamma to let you stay with Aunt Emily.&nbsp; Ask papa,
+Henry, won&rsquo;t you?&nbsp; Seriously, Eleanor, has Frank
+considered how much better it would be to have him in the
+country?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;He has, Emily; he once wished much to leave him
+here.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure grandpapa would like it,&rsquo; said
+Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do you observe, Eleanor, how fond he is of
+baby, always calling him Harry too, as if he liked the sound of
+the name?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It has all been talked over, Emily, and it cannot
+be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With papa?&rsquo; asked Emily in surprise.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, with Lily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With Lily!&rsquo; exclaimed Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Did not
+Aunt Lily wish to keep you, Harry?&nbsp; I thought she was very
+fond of you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You had better inquire no further,&rsquo; said Eleanor,
+&lsquo;except of your own conscience.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did Lily think us unfit to take care of him?&rsquo;
+asked Emily, in surprise.</p>
+<p>As she spoke Lily herself came in, the key of the storeroom in
+her hand, and looks of consternation on her face.&nbsp; She came
+to announce a terrible deficiency in the preserved quinces, which
+she herself had carefully put aside on a shelf in the storeroom,
+and which Emily said she had not touched in her absence.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Let me see,&rsquo; said Eleanor, rising, and setting
+off to the storeroom; Emily and Lily followed, with a sad
+suspicion of the truth.&nbsp; On the way they looked into the
+nursery, to give little Henry to his nurse, and to ask Jane, who
+was sitting with Ada, what she remembered about it.&nbsp; Jane
+knew nothing, and they went on to the storeroom, where Eleanor,
+quite in her element, began rummaging, arranging, and sighing
+over the confusion, while Lily lent a helping hand, and Emily
+stood by, wishing that her sister would not trouble
+herself.&nbsp; Presently Jane came running up with a saucer in
+her hand, containing a quarter of a quince and some syrup, which
+she said she had found in the nursery cupboard, in searching for
+a puzzle which Ada wanted.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I should guess that Miss
+Ada herself knew something about it, for when I could not find
+the puzzle in the right-hand cupboard, she was so very unwilling
+that I should look into that one; she said there was nothing
+there but the boys&rsquo; old playthings and Esther&rsquo;s
+clothes.&nbsp; And I do not know whether you saw how she fidgeted
+when you were talking about the quinces, before you went
+up.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is much too plain,&rsquo; sighed Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh! Rachel, why did we not listen to you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you suppose,&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;that Ada
+has been in the habit of taking the key and helping
+herself?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but that Esther has
+helped her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;I never thought it wise
+to take her, but how could she get the key?&nbsp; You do not mean
+that you trusted it out of your own keeping.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It began while we were ill,&rsquo; faltered Emily,
+&lsquo;and afterwards it was difficult to bring matters into
+their former order.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But oh, Eleanor, what is to be done?&rsquo; sighed
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Speak to papa, of course,&rsquo; said Eleanor.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;He is gone to the castle, and in the meantime we had
+better take an exact account of everything here.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And Esther?&nbsp; And Ada?&rsquo; inquired the
+sisters.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think it will be better to speak to him before making
+so grave an accusation,&rsquo; said Eleanor.</p>
+<p>They now commenced that wearisome occupation&mdash;a complete
+setting-to-rights; Eleanor counted, weighed, and measured, and
+extended her cares from the stores to every other household
+matter.&nbsp; Emily made her escape, and went to sit with Ada;
+but Lily and Jane toiled for several hours with Eleanor, till
+Lily was so heated and wearied that she was obliged to give up a
+walk to Broomhill, and spend another day without a talk with
+Alethea.&nbsp; However, she was so patient, ready, and
+good-humoured, that Eleanor was well pleased with her.&nbsp; She
+could hardly think of the slight vexation, when her mind was full
+of sorrow and shame on Esther&rsquo;s account.&nbsp; It was she
+who, contrary to the advice of her elders, had insisted on
+bringing her into the house; she had allowed temptation to be set
+in her way, and had not taken sufficient pains to strengthen her
+principles; and how could she do otherwise than feel guilty of
+all Esther&rsquo;s faults, and of those into which she had led
+Adeline?</p>
+<p>On Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s return Ada was interrogated.&nbsp; She
+pitied herself&mdash;said she did not think papa would be
+angry&mdash;prevaricated&mdash;and tried to coax away his
+inquiries, but all in vain; and at length, by slow degrees, the
+confession was drawn from her that she had been used to asking
+Esther for morsels of sweet things when she was sent to the
+storeroom; that afterwards she had seen her packing up some tea
+and sugar to take to her mother, and that Esther on that
+occasion, and several others, purchased her silence by giving her
+a share of pilfered sweetmeats.&nbsp; Telling her that he only
+spared her a very severe punishment for the present, on account
+of her illness, Mr. Mohun left her, and on his way downstairs met
+Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Phyl,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;did Esther ever give you
+sweet things out of the storeroom?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Once, papa, when she had been putting out some currant
+jam, she offered me what had been left in the spoon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you take it?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, papa, for Eleanor used to say it was a bad trick to
+lick out spoons.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you ever know that she took tea and sugar from the
+storeroom, for her mother?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Took home tea and sugar to her mother!&nbsp; She could
+not have done it, papa.&nbsp; It would be stealing!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Esther, who was next called for, cried a great deal, and
+begged for pardon, pleading again and again that&mdash;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was mother,&rsquo; an answer which made her young
+mistresses again sigh over the remembrance of Rachel&rsquo;s
+disregarded advice.&nbsp; Her fate was left for consideration and
+consultation with Mr. Devereux, for Mr. Mohun, seeing himself to
+blame for having allowed her to be placed in a situation of so
+much trial, and thinking that there was much that was good about
+her, did not like to send her to her home, where she was likely
+to learn nothing but what was bad.</p>
+<h2><a name="page264"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+264</span>CHAPTER XXIV<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">LOVE&rsquo;S LABOUR LOST</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;And well, with ready hand and heart,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; Each task of toilsome duty taking,<br />
+Did one dear inmate take her part,<br />
+&nbsp;&nbsp; The last asleep, the earliest waking.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">In</span> the course of the afternoon Lord
+Rotherwood and Florence called, to see Eleanor, inquire after
+Ada, and make the final arrangements for going to a morning
+concert at Raynham the next day.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood was afraid
+of the fatigue, and Florence therefore wished to accompany her
+cousins, who, as Eleanor meant to stay at home, were to be under
+Mrs. Weston&rsquo;s protection.&nbsp; Lady Florence and her
+brother, therefore, agreed to ride home by Broomhill, and mention
+the plan to Mrs. Weston, and took their leave, appointing
+Adam&rsquo;s shop as the place of rendezvous.</p>
+<p>Next morning Emily, Lilias, and Jane happened to be together
+in the drawing-room, when Mr. Mohun and Claude came in, the
+former saying to Lily, &lsquo;Here is the mason&rsquo;s account
+for the gravestone which you wished to have put up to Agnes Eden;
+it comes to two pounds.&nbsp; You undertook half the expense, and
+as Claude is going to Raynham, he will pay for it if you will
+give him your sovereign.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but first I must ask
+Emily to pay me for the London commissions.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Emily repented not having had a private conference with
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;So you have not settled your accounts,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;I hope Lily has not ruined you,
+Emily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I thought her a mirror of prudence,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Emily, is the sovereign forthcoming?&nbsp; I am
+going directly, for Frank has something to do at Raynham, and
+William is going to try his gray in the phaeton.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am afraid you will think me very silly,&rsquo; said
+Emily, after some deliberation, &lsquo;but I hope Lily will not
+be very angry when I confess that seven shillings is the sum
+total of my property.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Emily,&rsquo; cried Lily, in dismay, &lsquo;what
+has become of your five pounds?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I gave them as a subscription for a clergyman&rsquo;s
+widow in distress,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;it was the impulse
+of a moment, I could not help it, and, dear Lily, I hope it will
+not inconvenience you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;If papa will be kind enough to wait for this pound till
+Michaelmas,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I would wait willingly,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun,
+&lsquo;but I will not see you cheated.&nbsp; How much does she
+owe you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The commissions came to six pounds three,&rsquo; said
+Lily, looking down.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you forget the old
+debt.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; whispered Lily; but Mr. Mohun asked
+what Jane had said, and Claude repeated her speech, upon which he
+inquired, &lsquo;What old debt?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Papa,&rsquo; said Emily, in her most candid tone,
+&lsquo;I do not know what I should have done but for Lily&rsquo;s
+kindness.&nbsp; Really, I cannot get on with my present
+allowance; being the eldest, so many expenses come upon
+me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then am I to understand,&rsquo; replied Mr. Mohun,
+&lsquo;that your foolish vanity has led you to encroach on your
+sister&rsquo;s kindness, and to borrow of her what you had no
+reasonable hope of repaying?&nbsp; Again, Lily, what does she owe
+you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Emily felt the difference between the sharp, curious eyes with
+which Jane regarded her, and the sorrowful downcast looks of
+Lily, who replied, &lsquo;The old debt is four pounds, but that
+does not signify.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; resumed her father, &lsquo;I cannot blame
+you for your good-nature, though an older person might have acted
+otherwise.&nbsp; You must have managed wonderfully well, to look
+always so well dressed with only half your proper income.&nbsp;
+Here is the amount of the debt.&nbsp; Is it right?&nbsp; And,
+Lily, one thing more; I wish to thank you for what you have done
+towards keeping this house in order.&nbsp; You have worked hard,
+and endured much, and from all I can gather, you have prevented
+much mischief.&nbsp; Much has unfairly been thrown upon you, and
+you have well and steadily done your duty.&nbsp; For you, Emily,
+I have more to say to you, but I shall not enter on it at
+present, for it is late.&nbsp; You had better get ready, or you
+will keep the others waiting.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not think I can go,&rsquo; sighed Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are wanted,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+do not think your aunt would like Florence to go without
+you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily had trembled as much under her father&rsquo;s praise as
+Emily under his blame.&nbsp; She did not feel as if his
+commendation was merited, and longed to tell him of her faults
+and follies, but this was no fit time, and she hastened to
+prepare for her expedition, her spirits scarcely in time for a
+party of pleasure.&nbsp; Jane talked about the 30th, and asked
+questions about London, all the way to Raynham, and both Emily
+and Lily were glad to join in her chatter, in hopes of relieving
+their own embarrassment.</p>
+<p>On arriving at the place of meeting they found Lady Florence
+watching for them.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am glad you are come,&rsquo; said she,
+&lsquo;Rotherwood will always set out either too soon or too
+late, and this time it was too soon, so here we have been full a
+quarter of an hour, but he does not care.&nbsp; There he is,
+quite engrossed with his book.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood was standing by the counter, reading so
+intently that he did not see his cousins&rsquo; arrival.&nbsp;
+When they entered he just looked up, shook hands, asked after
+Ada, and went on reading.&nbsp; Lily began looking for some books
+for the school, which she had long wished for, and was now able
+to purchase; Emily sat down in a melancholy, abstracted mood, and
+Florence and Jane stood together talking.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know you are all to come early,&rsquo; said the
+former, &lsquo;I do not know how we should manage without
+you.&nbsp; Rotherwood insists on having everything the same
+day&mdash;poor people first, and gentry and farmers
+altogether.&nbsp; Mamma does not like it, and I expect we shall
+be dreadfully tired; but he says he will not have the honest poor
+men put out for the fashionables; and you know we are all to
+dance with everybody.&nbsp; But Jenny, who is this crossing the
+street?&nbsp; Look, you have an eye for oddities.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Fitchett, the subscription-hunter,&rsquo; said
+Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She is actually coming to hunt us.&nbsp; I believe I
+have my purse.&nbsp; Oh! Emily is to be the first
+victim.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Miss Fitchett advanced to Emily, and saying that she believed
+she had the honour to address Miss Mohun, began to tell her that
+her friend having been prematurely informed of her small efforts,
+had with a noble spirit of independence begged that the
+subscription might not be continued, and that what had already
+been given might be returned, and she rejoiced in this
+opportunity of making the explanation.&nbsp; But Miss Fitchett
+could not bear to relinquish the five-pound note, and added, that
+perhaps Miss Mohun might not object to apply her subscription to
+some other object, the Dorcas Society for instance.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, I have no interest in the Dorcas
+Society,&rsquo; said Emily; a reply which brought upon her a full
+account of all its aims and objects; and as still her polite
+looks spoke nothing of assent, Miss Fitchett went on with a
+string of other societies, speaking the louder and the more
+eagerly in the hope of attracting the attention of the young
+marquis and his sister.&nbsp; Emily was easily overwhelmed with
+words, and not thinking it lady-like to claim her money, yet
+feeling that none of these societies were fit objects for it, she
+stood confused and irresolute, unwilling either to consent or
+refuse.&nbsp; Jane, perceiving her difficulty, turned to Lord
+Rotherwood, and rousing him from his book, explained
+Emily&rsquo;s distress in a few words, and sent him to her
+rescue.&nbsp; He stepped forward just as Miss Fitchett, taking
+silence for consent, was proceeding to thank Emily; &lsquo;I
+think you misunderstand Miss Mohun,&rsquo; said he.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Since her subscription is not needed by the person for
+whom it was intended, she would be glad to have it
+restored.&nbsp; She does not wish to encourage any unauthorised
+societies.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Boy as he was, in appearance still more than in age, there was
+a dignity in his manner which, together with the principle on
+which he spoke, overawed Miss Fitchett even more than his
+rank.&nbsp; She only said, &lsquo;Oh! my lord, I beg your
+pardon.&nbsp; Certainly, only&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The note was placed in Emily&rsquo;s hands, and with a bow
+from Lord Rotherwood, she retreated, murmuring to herself the
+remonstrance which she had not courage to bestow upon the
+Marquis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, thank you, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily;
+&lsquo;you have done me a great service.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well done, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Florence; &lsquo;you
+have given the old lady something to reflect upon.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Made a public announcement of principle,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I was determined to give her a reason,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis, laughing, &lsquo;but I assure you I felt like the stork
+with its head in the wolf&rsquo;s mouth, I thought she would give
+me a screed of doctrine.&nbsp; How came you to let your property
+get unto her clutches, Emily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was a subscription for Mrs. Aylmer,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Our curate&rsquo;s wife!&rsquo; cried he with a start;
+&lsquo;how was it?&nbsp; Florence, did you know anything?&nbsp; I
+thought she was in London.&nbsp; Why were we in the dark?&nbsp;
+Tell me all.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;All I know is that she is living somewhere in Raynham,
+and last week there was a paper here to say that she was in want
+of the means of fitting out her son for India.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, yes, Johnny, I know my father did get a promise
+for him&mdash;well!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is all I know, except that she does not choose to
+be a beggar.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Poor Mrs. Aylmer! shameful neglect! she shall not be
+ill-used any longer, I will find her out this instant.&nbsp;
+Don&rsquo;t wait for me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>And after a few words to Mr. Adams, off he went, walking as
+fast as he could, and leaving the young ladies not without fear
+of another invasion.&nbsp; Soon, however, the brothers came in,
+and presently after Mrs. Weston appeared.&nbsp; It was agreed
+that Lord Rotherwood should be left to his own devices, and they
+set out for the concert-room.&nbsp; Poor Florence lost much
+pleasure in disappointment at his non-appearance, but when the
+concert was over they found him sitting in the carriage,
+reading.&nbsp; As soon as they appeared he sprang out, and came
+to meet them, pouring rapidly out a history of his
+adventures.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you have found them, and what can be done for
+them?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Everything ought to be done, but Mrs. Aylmer has a
+spirit of independence.&nbsp; That foolish woman&rsquo;s
+advertisement was unknown to her till Emily&rsquo;s five pounds
+came in, so fine a nest-egg that she could not help cackling,
+whereupon Mrs. Aylmer insisted on having every farthing
+returned.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Can she provide the boy&rsquo;s outfit?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She says so, or rather that her daughter can, but I
+shall see about that.&nbsp; It is worth while to be of age.&nbsp;
+Imagine!&nbsp; That bank which failed was the end of my
+father&rsquo;s legacy.&nbsp; They must have lived on a fraction
+of nothing!&nbsp; Edward went to sea.&nbsp; Miss Aylmer went out
+as a governess.&nbsp; Now she is at home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Aylmer!&rsquo; exclaimed Miss Weston, &lsquo;I
+know she was a clergyman&rsquo;s daughter.&nbsp; Do you know the
+name of the family she lived with?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was it Grant?&rsquo; said William.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+remember hearing of her going to some Grants.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It was,&rsquo; said Alethea; &lsquo;she must be the
+same.&nbsp; Is she at home?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;and you may
+soon see her, for I mean to have them all to stay at the castle
+as soon as our present visitors are gone.&nbsp; My mother and
+Florence shall call upon them on Friday.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I have not found out
+what brought them back to Raynham.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you lived at Beechcroft all your life, and never
+discovered that there is a grammar-school at Raynham, with
+special privileges for the sons of clergymen of the
+diocese?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>A few more words, and the cousins parted; Emily by no means
+sorry that she had been obliged to go to Raynham.&nbsp; She
+tendered the five-pound note to her father, but he desired her to
+wait till Friday, and then to bring him a full account of her
+expenditure of the year.&nbsp; Her irregular ways made this
+almost impossible, especially as in the present state of affairs
+she wished to avoid a private conference with either Lily or
+Jane.&nbsp; She was glad that an invitation to dine and sleep at
+the castle on Wednesday would save her from the peril of having
+to talk to Lily in the evening.&nbsp; Reginald came home on
+Tuesday, to the great joy of all the party, and especially to
+that of Phyllis.&nbsp; This little maiden was more puzzled by the
+events that had taken place than conscious of the feeling which
+she had once thought must be so delightful.&nbsp; She could
+scarcely help perceiving that every one was much more kind to her
+than usual, especially Claude and Lily, and Lord Rotherwood said
+things which she could not at all understand.&nbsp; Her
+observation to Reginald was, &lsquo;Was it not lucky I had a
+cough on Twelfth Day, or Claude would not have told me what to do
+about gunpowder?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Reginald troubled Phyllis much by declaring that nothing
+should induce him to kiss his nephew, and she was terribly
+shocked by the indifference with which Eleanor treated his
+neglect, even when it branched out into abuse of babies in
+general, and in particular of Henry&rsquo;s bald head and
+turned-up nose.</p>
+<p>In the evening of Wednesday Phyllis was sitting with Ada in
+the nursery, when Reginald came up with the news that the party
+downstairs were going to practise country dances.&nbsp; Eleanor
+was to play, Claude was to dance with Lily, and Frank with Jane,
+and he himself wanted Phyllis for a partner.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; sighed Ada, &lsquo;I wish I was there to
+dance with you, Redgie!&nbsp; What are the others
+doing?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Maurice is reading, and William went out as soon as
+dinner was over; make haste, Phyl.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t go,&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;I shall be
+alone all to-morrow, and I want you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;do you think she
+is to sit poking here all day, playing with those foolish London
+things of yours?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But I am ill, Redgie.&nbsp; I wish you would not be
+cross.&nbsp; Everybody is cross to me now, I think.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will stay, Ada,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+know, Redgie, I dance like a cow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You dance better than nothing,&rsquo; said Reginald,
+&lsquo;I must have you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But you are not ill, Redgie,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>He went down in displeasure, and was forced to consider Sir
+Maurice&rsquo;s picture as his partner, until presently the door
+opened, and Phyllis appeared.&nbsp; &lsquo;So you have thought
+better of it,&rsquo; cried he.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I cannot come to dance,
+but Ada wants you to leave off playing.&nbsp; She says the music
+makes her unhappy, for it makes her think about
+to-morrow.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rather selfish, Miss Ada,&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Stay here, Phyllis, now you are come,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun, &lsquo;I will go and speak to Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis was now captured, and made to take her place opposite
+to Reginald; but more than once she sighed under the apprehension
+that Ada was receiving a lecture.&nbsp; This was the case; and
+very little did poor Ada comprehend the change that had taken
+place in the conduct of almost every one towards her; she did not
+perceive that she was particularly naughty, and yet she had
+suddenly become an object of blame, instead of a spoiled
+pet.&nbsp; Formerly her little slynesses had been unnoticed, and
+her overbearing ways towards Phyllis scarcely remarked, but now
+they were continually mentioned as grievous faults.&nbsp; Esther,
+her especial friend and comforter, was scarcely allowed to come
+into the same room with her; Hannah treated her with a kind of
+grave, silent respect, far from the familiarity which she liked;
+little Henry&rsquo;s nurse never would talk to her, and if it had
+not been for Phyllis, she would have been very miserable.&nbsp;
+On Phyllis, however, she repaid herself for all the
+mortifications that she received, while the sweet-tempered little
+girl took all her fretfulness and exactions as results of her
+illness, and went on pitying her, and striving to please her.</p>
+<p>When Phyllis came up to wish her good-night, she was received
+with an exclamation at her lateness in a peevish tone:
+&lsquo;Yes, I am late,&rsquo; said Phyllis, merrily, &lsquo;but
+we had not done dancing till tea-time, and then Eleanor was so
+kind as to say I might sit up to have some tea with
+them.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! and you quite forgot how tiresome it is up here,
+with nobody to speak to,&rsquo; said Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;How cross
+they were not to stop the music when I said it made me
+miserable!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude said it was selfish to want to stop five
+people&rsquo;s pleasure for one,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But I am so ill,&rsquo; said Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;If
+Claude was as uncomfortable as I am, he would know how to be
+sorry for me.&nbsp; And only think&mdash;Phyl, what are you
+doing?&nbsp; Do not you know I do not like the moonlight to come
+on me.&nbsp; It is like a great face laughing at me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, I like the moon so much!&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+creeping behind the curtain to look out, &lsquo;there is
+something so white and bright in it; when it comes on the
+bed-clothes, it makes me go to sleep, thinking about white robes,
+oh! and all sorts of nice things.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t bear the moon,&rsquo; said Ada; &lsquo;do
+not you know, Maurice says that the moon makes the people go mad,
+and that is the reason it is called lunacy, after <i>la
+lune</i>?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I asked Miss Weston about that,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+&lsquo;because of the Psalm, and she said it was because it was
+dangerous to go to sleep in the open air in hot countries.&nbsp;
+Ada, I wish you could see now.&nbsp; There is the great round
+moon in the middle of the sky, and the sky such a beautiful
+colour, and a few such great bright stars, and the trees so dark,
+and the white lilies standing up on the black pond, and the lawn
+all white with dew! what a fine day it will be
+to-morrow!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A fine day for you!&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;but only
+think of poor me all alone by myself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You will have baby,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Baby&mdash;if he could talk it would be all very
+well.&nbsp; It is just like the cross people in books.&nbsp; Here
+I shall lie and cry all the time, while you are dancing about as
+merry as can be.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Ada, you will not do that,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+with tears in her eyes.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is baby with all his
+pretty ways, and you may teach him to say Aunt Ada, and I will
+bring you in numbers of flowers, and there is your new doll, and
+all the pretty things that came from London, and the new book of
+Fairy Tales, and all sorts&mdash;oh! no, do not cry,
+Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But I shall, for I shall think of you dancing, and not
+caring for me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do care, Ada&mdash;why do you say that I do
+not?&nbsp; I cannot bear it, Ada, dear Ada.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You don&rsquo;t, or you would not go and leave me
+alone.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then, Ada, I will not go,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;I
+could not bear to leave you crying here all alone.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, dear good Phyl, but I think you will not
+have much loss.&nbsp; You know you do not like dancing, and you
+cannot do it well, and they will be sure to laugh at
+you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And I daresay Redgie and Marianne will tell us all
+about it,&rsquo; said Phyllis, sighing.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should
+rather like to have seen it, but they will tell us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then do you promise to stay?&mdash;there&rsquo;s a
+dear,&rsquo; said Ada.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Cousin Robert is
+coming in, and that will be very nice, and I hope he will not
+look as he did the day the gunpowder went off&mdash;oh,
+dear!&rsquo;&nbsp; She went back to the window to get rid of her
+tears unperceived.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ah,&rsquo; cried she,
+&lsquo;there is some one in the garden!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;A man!&rsquo; screamed Ada&mdash;&lsquo;a thief, a
+robber&mdash;call somebody!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Phyllis, laughing, &lsquo;it is
+only William; he has been out all the evening, and now papa has
+come out to speak to him, and they are walking up and down
+together.&nbsp; I wonder whether he has been sitting with Cousin
+Robert or at Broomhill!&nbsp; Well, good-night, Ada.&nbsp; Here
+comes Hannah.&rsquo;</p>
+<h2><a name="page277"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+277</span>CHAPTER XXV<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE THIRTIETH OF JULY</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;The heir, with roses in his shoes,<br />
+That night might village partner choose.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">The</span> 30th of July was bright and
+clear, and Phyllis was up early, gathering flowers, which, with
+the help of Jane&rsquo;s nimble fingers, she made into elegant
+little bouquets for each of her sisters, and for Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How is this?&rsquo; said Mr. Hawkesworth, pretending to
+look disconsolate, &lsquo;am I to sing &ldquo;Fair Phyllida
+flouts me,&rdquo; or why is my button-hole left
+destitute?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Perhaps that is for you on the side-table,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! no,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;those are some
+Provence roses for Miss Weston and Marianne, because Miss Weston
+likes those, and they have none at Broomhill.&nbsp; Redgie is
+going to take care of them.&nbsp; I will get you a nosegay,
+Frank.&nbsp; I did not know you liked it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>She started up.&nbsp; &lsquo;How prudent, Phyllis,&rsquo; said
+Eleanor, &lsquo;not to have put on your muslin frock
+yet.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I am not going,&rsquo; said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not going!&rsquo; was the general outcry.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, poor Ada cries so about being left at home with
+only baby, that I cannot bear it, and so I promised to
+stay.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away went Phyllis, and Reginald exclaimed, &lsquo;Well, she
+shall not be served so.&nbsp; I will go and tell Ada so this
+instant.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Off he rushed, and putting in his head at the nursery door,
+shouted, &lsquo;Ada, I am come to tell you that Phyl is not to be
+made your black-a-moor slave!&nbsp; She shall go, that is
+settled.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Down he went with equal speed, without waiting for an answer,
+and arrived while Eleanor was saying that she thought Ada was
+provided with amusement with the baby, her playthings, and books,
+and that Mr. Devereux had promised to make her a visit.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Anybody ought to stay at home rather than
+Phyllis,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;I think I had better
+stay.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you are more
+wanted than I am; you are really worth talking to and dancing
+with; I had much better be at home.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I forgot!&rsquo; exclaimed William.&nbsp; &lsquo;Mrs.
+Weston desired me to say that she is not going, and she will take
+care of Ada.&nbsp; Mr. Weston will set her down at half-past ten,
+and take up one of us.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will be that one,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;I have
+not seen Miss Weston since I came home.&nbsp; I meant to walk to
+Broomhill after dinner yesterday, only the Baron stopped me about
+that country-dance.&nbsp; Last Christmas I made her promise to
+dance with me to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily had hoped to be that one, but she did not oppose
+Reginald, and turned to listen to Eleanor, who was saying,
+&lsquo;Let us clearly understand how every one is to go, it will
+save a great deal of confusion.&nbsp; You and Jane, and Maurice,
+go in the phaeton, do not you?&nbsp; And who drives
+you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;William, I believe,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Claude goes earlier, so he rides the gray.&nbsp; Then
+there is the chariot for you and Frank, and papa and
+Phyllis.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>So it was proposed, but matters turned out otherwise.&nbsp;
+The phaeton, which, with a promoted cart-horse, was rather a slow
+conveyance, was to set out first, but the whole of the freight
+was not ready in time.&nbsp; The ladies were in the hall as soon
+as it came to the door, but neither of the gentlemen were
+forthcoming.&nbsp; Reginald, who was wandering in the hall, was
+sent to summon them; but down he came in great wrath.&nbsp;
+Maurice had declared that he was not ready, and they must wait
+for him till he had tied his neckcloth, which Reginald opined
+would take three quarters of an hour, as he was doing it
+scientifically, and William had said that he was not going in the
+gig at all, that he had told Wat Greenwood to drive, and that
+Reginald must go instead of Maurice.</p>
+<p>In confirmation of the startling fact Wat, who had had a
+special invitation from the Marquis, was sitting in the phaeton
+in his best black velvet coat.&nbsp; Jane only hoped that Emily
+would not look out of the window, or she would certainly go into
+fits on seeing them arrive with the old phaeton, the thick-legged
+cart-horse, and Wat Greenwood for a driver; and Reginald, after
+much growling at Maurice, much bawling at William&rsquo;s door,
+and, as Jane said, romping and roaring in all parts of the house,
+was forced to be resigned to his fate, and all the way to
+Hetherington held a very amusing conversation with his
+good-natured friend the keeper.</p>
+<p>They were overtaken, nodded to, and passed by the rest of
+their party.&nbsp; Maurice had been reduced to ride the pony,
+William came with the Westons, and the chariot load was just as
+had been before arranged.</p>
+<p>Claude came out to meet them at the door, saying, &lsquo;I
+need not have gone so early.&nbsp; What do you think has become
+of the hero of the day?&nbsp; Guess, I will just give you this
+hint,</p>
+<blockquote><p>&ldquo;Though on pleasure he was bent, he had no
+selfish mind.&rdquo;&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! the Aylmers, I suppose,&rsquo; said Lilias.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Right, Lily, he heard something at dinner yesterday
+about a school for clergymen&rsquo;s sons, which struck him as
+likely to suit young Devereux Aylmer, and off he set at seven
+o&rsquo;clock this morning to Raynham, to breakfast with Mrs.
+Aylmer, and talk to her about it.&nbsp; Never let me hear again
+that he is engrossed with his own affairs!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And why is he in such a hurry?&rsquo; asked Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;&rsquo;Tis his nature,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;besides Travers, who mentioned this school, goes away
+to-morrow.&nbsp; My aunt is in a fine fright lest he should not
+come back in time.&nbsp; Did not you hear her telling papa so in
+the drawing-room?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There he is, riding up to the door,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, who had joined them in the hall.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood
+stopped for a few moments at the door to give some directions to
+the servants, and then came quickly in.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ah, there
+you are!&mdash;What time is it?&nbsp; It is all right,
+Claude&mdash;Devereux is just the right age.&nbsp; I asked him a
+few questions this morning, and he will stand a capital
+examination.&nbsp; Ha, Phyl, I am glad to see you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish you many happy returns of the day, Cousin
+Rotherwood.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you, Phyl, we had better see how we get through
+one such day before we wish it to return.&nbsp; Are the rest
+come?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He went on into the drawing-room, and hastily informing his
+mother that he had sent the carriage to fetch Miss Aylmer and her
+brothers to the feast, called Claude to come out on the lawn to
+look at the preparations.&nbsp; The bowling-green was to serve as
+drawing-room, and at one end was pitched an immense tent where
+the dinner was to be.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I say, Claude,&rsquo; said he in his quickest and most
+confused way, &lsquo;I depend upon you for one thing.&nbsp; Do
+not let the Baron be too near me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The Baron of Beef?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, the Baron of Beechcroft.&nbsp; If you wish my
+speech to be <i>radara tadara</i>, put him where I can imagine
+that he hears me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very well,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing; &lsquo;have
+you any other commands?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No&mdash;yes, I have though.&nbsp; You know what we
+settled about the toasts.&nbsp; Hunt up old Farmer Elderfield as
+soon as he comes, and do not frighten him.&nbsp; If you could sit
+next to him and make him get up at the right time, it would be
+best.&nbsp; Tell him I will not let any one propose my health but
+my great-grandfather&rsquo;s tenant.&nbsp; You will manage it
+best.&nbsp; And tell Frank Hawkesworth, and Mr. Weston, or some
+of them, to manage so that the gentry may not sit together in a
+herd, two or three together would be best.&nbsp; Mind, Claude, I
+depend on you for being attentive to all the damsels.&nbsp; I
+cannot be everywhere at once, and I see your great Captain will
+be of no use to me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here news was brought that the labourers had begun to arrive,
+and the party went to the walnut avenue, where the feast was
+spread.&nbsp; It was pleasant to see so many poor families
+enjoying their excellent dinner; but perhaps the pleasantest
+sight was the lord of the feast speaking to each poor man with
+all his bright good-natured cordiality.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun was
+surprised to see how well he knew them all, considering how short
+a time he had been among them, and Lilias found Florence rise in
+her estimation, when she perceived that the inside of the
+Hetherington cottages were not unknown to her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you know, Florence,&rsquo; said she, as they walked
+back to the house together, &lsquo;I did you great
+injustice?&nbsp; I never expected you to know or care about poor
+people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No more I did till this winter,&rsquo; said Florence;
+&lsquo;I could not do anything, you know, before.&nbsp; Indeed, I
+do not do much now, only Rotherwood has made me go into the
+school now and then; and when first we came, he made it his
+especial request that whenever a poor woman came to ask for
+anything I would go and speak to her.&nbsp; And so I could not
+help being interested about those I knew.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How odd it is that we never talked about it,&rsquo;
+said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I never talk of it,&rsquo; said Florence,
+&lsquo;because mamma never likes to hear of my going into
+cottages with Rotherwood.&nbsp; Besides, somehow I thought you
+did it as a matter of duty, and not of pleasure.&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp;
+Rotherwood, is that you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The Aylmers are come,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood,
+drawing her arm into his, &lsquo;and I want you to come and speak
+to them, Florence and Lily; I can&rsquo;t find any one; all the
+great elders have vanished.&nbsp; You know them of old, do not
+you, Lily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Of old?&nbsp; Yes; but of so old that I do not suppose
+they will know me.&nbsp; You must introduce me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He hastened them to the drawing-room, where they found Miss
+Aylmer, a sensible, lady-like looking person, and two brothers,
+of about fifteen and thirteen.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, Miss Aylmer, I have brought you two old friends;
+so old, that they think you have forgotten them&mdash;my cousin
+Lilias, and my sister Florence.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We have not forgotten you, Miss Aylmer,&rsquo; said
+Florence, warmly shaking hands with her.&nbsp; &lsquo;You seem so
+entirely to belong to Hetherington that I scarcely knew the place
+without you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>There was something that particularly pleased Lily in the
+manner in which Miss Aylmer answered.&nbsp; Florence talked a
+little while, and then proposed to adjourn to the supplementary
+drawing-room&mdash;the lawn&mdash;where the company were already
+assembling.</p>
+<p>Florence was soon called off to receive some other guest, and
+Lilias spent a considerable time in sitting under a tree talking
+to Miss Aylmer, whom she found exceedingly pleasant and
+agreeable, remembering all that had happened during their former
+intercourse, and interested in everything that was going
+on.&nbsp; Lily was much amused when her companion asked her who
+that gentleman was&mdash;&lsquo;that tall, thin young man, with
+dark hair, whom she had seen once or twice speaking to Lord
+Rotherwood?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The tall gentleman advanced, spoke to Miss Aylmer, told Lily
+that the world was verging towards the tent, and giving one arm
+to her and the other to Miss Aylmer, took that direction.&nbsp;
+In the meantime Phyllis had been walking about with her eldest
+sister, and wondering what had become of all the others.&nbsp; In
+process of time she found herself seated on a high bench in the
+tent, with a most beautiful pink-and-white sugar temple on the
+table before her.&nbsp; She was between Eleanor and Frank.&nbsp;
+All along one side of the table was a row of faces which she had
+never seen before, and she gazed at them in search of some
+well-known countenance.&nbsp; At last Mr. Weston caught her eye,
+and nodded to her.&nbsp; Next to him she saw Marianne, then
+Reginald; on the other side Alethea and William.&nbsp; A little
+tranquillised by seeing that every one was not lost, she had
+courage to eat some cold chicken, to talk to Frank about the
+sugar temple, and to make an inventory in her mind of the
+smartest bonnets for Ada&rsquo;s benefit.&nbsp; She was rather
+unhappy at not having found out when grace was said before
+dinner, and she made Eleanor promise to tell her in time to stand
+up after dinner.&nbsp; She could not, however, hear much, though
+warned in time, and by this time more at ease and rather enjoying
+herself than otherwise.&nbsp; Now Eleanor told her to listen, for
+Cousin Rotherwood was going to speak.&nbsp; She listened, but
+knew not what was said, until Mr. Hawkesworth told her it was
+Church and Queen.&nbsp; What Church and Queen had to do with
+Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s birthday she could not imagine, and she
+laid it up in her mind to ask Claude.&nbsp; The next time she was
+told to listen she managed to hear more.&nbsp; By the help of
+Eleanor&rsquo;s directions, she found out the speaker, an aged
+farmer, in a drab greatcoat, his head bald, excepting a little
+silky white hair, which fell over the collar of his coat.&nbsp;
+It was Mr. Elderfield, the oldest tenant on the estate, and he
+was saying in a slow deliberate tone that he was told he was to
+propose his lordship&rsquo;s health.&nbsp; It was a great honour
+for the like of him, and his lordship must excuse him if he did
+not make a fine speech.&nbsp; All he could say was, that he had
+lived eighty-three years on the estate, and held his farm nearly
+sixty years; he had seen three marquises of Rotherwood besides
+his present lordship, and he had always found them very good
+landlords.&nbsp; He hoped and believed his lordship was like his
+fathers, and he was sure he could do no better than tread in
+their steps.&nbsp; He proposed the health of Lord Rotherwood, and
+many happy returns of the day to him.</p>
+<p>The simplicity and earnestness of the old man&rsquo;s tones
+were appreciated by all, and the tremendous cheer, which almost
+terrified Phyllis, was a fit assent to the hearty good wishes of
+the old farmer.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Now comes the trial!&rsquo; whispered Claude to Lilias,
+after he had vehemently contributed his proportion to the
+noise.&nbsp; Lilias saw that his colour had risen, as much as if
+he had to make a speech himself, and he earnestly examined the
+coronet on his fork, while every other eye was fixed on the
+Marquis.&nbsp; Eloquence was not to be expected; but, at least,
+Lord Rotherwood spoke clearly and distinctly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My friends,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;you must not expect
+much of a speech from me; I can only thank you for your kindness,
+say how glad I am to see you here, and tell you of my earnest
+desire that I may not prove myself unworthy to be compared with
+my forefathers.&rsquo;&nbsp; Here was a pause.&nbsp;
+Claude&rsquo;s hand shook, and Lily saw how anxious he was, but
+in another moment the Marquis went on smoothly.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now,
+I must ask you to drink the health of a gentleman who has done
+his utmost to compensate for the loss which we sustained nine
+years ago, and to whom I owe any good intentions which I may
+bring to the management of this property.&nbsp; I beg leave to
+propose the health of my uncle, Mr. Mohun, of
+Beechcroft.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Claude was much surprised, for his cousin had never given him
+a hint of his intention.&nbsp; It was a moment of great delight
+to all the young Mohuns when the cheer rose as loud and hearty as
+for the young lord himself, and Phyllis smiled, and wondered,
+when she saw her papa rise to make answer.&nbsp; He said that he
+could not attempt to answer Lord Rotherwood, as he had not heard
+what he said, but that he was much gratified by his having
+thought of him on this occasion, and by the goodwill which all
+had expressed.&nbsp; This was the last speech that was
+interesting; Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s health and a few more toasts
+followed, and the party then left the tent for the lawn, where
+the cool air was most refreshing, and the last beams of the
+evening sun were lighting the tops of the trees.</p>
+<p>The dancing was now to begin, and this was the time for Claude
+to be useful.&nbsp; He had spent so much time at home, and had
+accompanied his father so often in his rides, that he knew every
+one, and he was inclined to make every exertion in the cause of
+his cousin, and on this occasion seemed to have laid aside his
+indolence and disinclination to speak to strangers.</p>
+<p>Lady Florence was also indefatigable, darting about, with a
+wonderful perception who everybody was, and with whom each would
+like to dance.&nbsp; She seized upon little Devereux Aylmer for
+her own partner before any one else had time to ask her, and
+carried him about the lawn, hunting up and pairing other shy
+people.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why, Reginald, what are you about?&nbsp; You can manage
+a country-dance.&nbsp; Make haste; where is your
+partner?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I meant to dance with Miss Weston,&rsquo; said
+Reginald, piteously.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Weston?&nbsp; Here she is.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is only Marianne,&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Miss Weston is dancing with William.&nbsp;
+Marianne, will you accept my apologies for this discourteous
+cousin of mine?&nbsp; I am perfectly horror-struck.&nbsp; There,
+Redgie, take her with a good grace; you will never have a better
+partner.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Marianne was only too glad to have Reginald presented to her,
+ungracious as he was, but the poor little couple met with
+numerous disasters.&nbsp; They neither of them knew the way
+through a country-dance, and were almost run over every time they
+went down the middle; Reginald&rsquo;s heels were very
+inconvenient to his neighbours; so much so, that once Claude
+thought it expedient to admonish him, that dancing was not merely
+an elegant name for football without a ball.&nbsp; Every now and
+then some of their friends gave them a hasty intimation that they
+were all wrong, but that they knew already but too well.&nbsp; At
+last, just when Marianne had turned scarlet with vexation, and
+Reginald was growing so desperate that he had thoughts of running
+a way, the dance came to an end, and Reginald, with very scanty
+politeness to his partner, rushed away to her sister, saying, in
+rather a reproachful tone, &lsquo;Miss Weston, you promised to
+dance with me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have not forgotten my promise,&rsquo; said Alethea,
+smiling.</p>
+<p>At the same moment Claude hurried up, saying, &lsquo;William,
+I want a partner for Miss Wilkins, of the Wold Farm.&nbsp; Miss
+Wilkins, let me introduce Captain Mohun.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You see I have made the Captain available,&rsquo; said
+Claude, presently after meeting Lord Rotherwood, as he speeded
+across the lawn.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Have you?&nbsp; I did not think him fair game,&rsquo;
+said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Where is your heroine,
+Claude?&nbsp; I have not seen her dancing.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What heroine?&nbsp; What do you mean?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Honest Phyl, of course.&nbsp; Did you think I meant
+Miss Weston?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With Eleanor, somewhere.&nbsp; Is the next dance a
+quadrille?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lord Rotherwood ran up the bank to the terraced walks, where
+the undancing part of the company sat or walked about.&nbsp; Soon
+he spied Phyllis standing by Eleanor, looking rather
+wearied.&nbsp; &lsquo;Phyllis, can you dance a
+quadrille?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Phyllis opened her eyes, and Eleanor desired her to
+answer.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Come, Phyllis, let me see what M. Le Roi has done for
+you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>He led her away, wondering greatly, and thinking how very
+good-natured Cousin Rotherwood was.</p>
+<p>Emily was much surprised to find Phyllis her <i>vis &agrave;
+vis</i>.&nbsp; Emily was very generally known and liked, and had
+no lack of grand partners, but she would have liked to dance with
+the Marquis.&nbsp; When the quadrille was over, she was glad to
+put herself in his way, by coming up to take charge of
+Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well done, Phyl,&rsquo; said he; &lsquo;no
+mistakes.&nbsp; You must have another dance.&nbsp; Whom shall we
+find for you?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you cannot
+think how you gratified us all with your speech.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! I always set my heart on saying something of the
+kind; but I wished I could have dared to add the bride&rsquo;s
+health.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The bride!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not pretend to have no eyes,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood, with a significant glance, which directed
+Emily&rsquo;s eyes to the terrace, where Mr. Mohun and Alethea
+were walking together in eager conversation.</p>
+<p>Emily was ready to sink into the earth.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s
+surmises, and the mysterious words of her father, left her no
+further doubt.&nbsp; At this moment some one asked her to dance,
+and scarcely knowing what she did or said, she walked to her
+place.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood now found a partner for Phyllis, and
+a farmer&rsquo;s daughter for himself.</p>
+<p>This dance over, Phyllis&rsquo;s partner did not well know how
+to dispose of her, and she grew rather frightened on finding that
+none of her sisters were in sight.&nbsp; At last she perceived
+Reginald standing on the bank, and made her escape to him.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Redgie, did you see who I have been dancing with?&nbsp;
+Cousin Rotherwood and Claude&rsquo;s grand Oxford
+friend&mdash;Mr. Travers.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is all nonsense,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Come out of this mob of people.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But where is Eleanor?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Somewhere in the midst.&nbsp; They are all absurd
+together.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What is the matter, Redgie?&rsquo; asked Phyllis,
+unable to account for this extraordinary fit of misanthropy.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Papa and William both driving me about like a
+dog,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;first I danced with Miss
+Weston&mdash;then she saw that woman&mdash;that Miss
+Aylmer&mdash;shook hands&mdash;talked&mdash;and then nothing
+would serve her but to find papa.&nbsp; As soon as the Baron sees
+me he cries out, &ldquo;Why are not you dancing, Redgie?&nbsp; We
+do not want you!&rdquo;&nbsp; Up and down they walk, ever so
+long, and presently papa turns off, and begins talking to Miss
+Aylmer.&nbsp; Then, of course, I went back to Miss Weston, but
+then up comes William, as savage as one of his Canadian bears; he
+orders me off too, and so here I am!&nbsp; I am sure I am not
+going to ask any one else to dance.&nbsp; Come and walk with me
+in peace, Phyl.&nbsp; Do you see them?&mdash;Miss Weston and
+Marianne under that tulip-tree, and the Captain helping them to
+ice.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Redgie, did you give Miss Weston her nosegay?&nbsp;
+Some one put such beautiful flowers in it, such as I never saw
+before.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How could I?&nbsp; They sent me off with Lily and
+Jane.&nbsp; I told William I had the flowers in charge, and he
+said he would take care of them.&nbsp; By the bye, Phyl,&rsquo;
+and Reginald gave a wondrous spring, &lsquo;I have it!&nbsp; I
+have it!&nbsp; I have it!&nbsp; If he is not in love with Miss
+Weston you may call me an ass for the rest of my life.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should not like to call you an ass, Redgie,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very likely; but do not make me call you one.&nbsp;
+Hurrah!&nbsp; Now ask Marianne if it is not so.&nbsp; Marianne
+must know.&nbsp; How jolly!&nbsp; I say, Phyl, stay there, and I
+will fetch Marianne.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Away ran Reginald, and presently returned with Marianne, who
+was very glad to be invited to join Phyllis.&nbsp; She little
+knew what an examination awaited her.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Marianne,&rsquo; began Phyllis, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell
+you what&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, I will do it right,&rsquo; said Reginald;
+&lsquo;you know nothing about it, Phyl.&nbsp; Marianne, is not
+something going on there?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Going on?&rsquo; said Marianne, &lsquo;Alethea is
+speaking to Mrs. Hawkesworth.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Nonsense, I know better, Marianne.&nbsp; I have a
+suspicion that I could tell what the Captain was about yesterday
+when he walked off after dinner.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How very wise you think you look, Reginald!&rsquo; said
+Marianne, laughing heartily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But tell us; do tell us, Marianne,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Tell you whet?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Whether William is going to marry Miss Weston,&rsquo;
+said the straightforward Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Redgie says
+so&mdash;only tell us.&nbsp; Oh! it would be so nice!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How you blurt it out, Phyl,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;You do not know how those things are managed.&nbsp; Mind,
+I found it out all myself.&nbsp; Just say, Marianne.&nbsp; Am not
+I right?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know whether I ought to tell,&rsquo; said
+Marianne.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! then it is all right,&rsquo; said Reginald,
+&lsquo;and I found it out.&nbsp; Now, Marianne, there is a good
+girl, tell us all about it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know I could not say &ldquo;No&rdquo; when you
+asked me,&rsquo; said Marianne; &lsquo;I could not help it
+really; but pray do not tell anybody, or Captain Mohun will not
+like it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Does any one know?&rsquo; said Reginald.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only ourselves and Mr. Mohun; and I think Lord
+Rotherwood guesses, from something I heard him say to
+Jane.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To Jane?&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;That is
+provoking; she will think she found it out all herself, and be so
+conceited!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You need not be afraid,&rsquo; said Marianne, laughing;
+&lsquo;Jane is on a wrong scent.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Jane?&nbsp; Oh! I should like to see her out in her
+reckonings!&nbsp; I should like to have a laugh against
+her.&nbsp; What does she think, Marianne?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! I cannot tell you; it is too bad.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! do; do, pray.&nbsp; You may whisper it if it is too
+bad for Phyllis to hear.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Marianne; &lsquo;it is nothing but
+nonsense.&nbsp; If you hear it, Phyllis shall too; but mind, you
+must promise not to say anything to anybody, or I do not know
+what will become of me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, we will not,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;boys
+can always keep secrets, and I&rsquo;ll engage for Phyl.&nbsp;
+Now for it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She is in a terrible fright lest it should be Mr.
+Mohun.&nbsp; She got it into her head last autumn, and all I
+could say would not persuade her out of it.&nbsp; Why, she always
+calls me Aunt Marianne when we are alone.&nbsp; Now, Reginald,
+here comes Maurice.&nbsp; Do not say anything, I beg and
+entreat.&nbsp; It is my secret, you know.&nbsp; I daresay you
+will all be told to-morrow,&mdash;indeed, mamma said
+so,&mdash;but pray say nothing about me or Jane.&nbsp; It was
+only settled yesterday evening.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>At this moment Maurice came up, with a message that Miss
+Weston and Eleanor were going away, and wanted the little
+girls.&nbsp; They followed him to the tent, which had been
+cleared of the tables, and lighted up, in order that the dancing
+might continue there.&nbsp; Most of their own party were
+collected at the entrance, watching for them.&nbsp; Lilias came
+up just as they did, and exclaimed in a tone of disappointment,
+on finding them preparing to depart.&nbsp; She had enjoyed
+herself exceedingly, found plenty of partners, and was not in the
+least tired.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Why should she not stay?&rsquo; said William.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Claude has engaged to stay to the end of everything, and
+he may as well drive her as ride the gray.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And you, Jenny,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;do you
+like to stay or go?&nbsp; Alethea will make room for you in the
+pony-carriage, or you may go with Eleanor.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;With Eleanor, if you please,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Already, Jane?&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Are you
+tired?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane drew her aside.&nbsp; &lsquo;Tired of hearing that I was
+right about what you would not believe.&nbsp; Did you not hear
+what he called her?&nbsp; And Rotherwood has found it
+out.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is all gossip and mistake,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>Here Jane was called away by Eleanor, and departed with her;
+Lilias went to look for her aunt or Florence, but on the way was
+asked to dance by Mr. Carrington.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I suppose I may congratulate you,&rsquo; said he in one
+of the pauses in the quadrille.</p>
+<p>Lily thought it best to misunderstand, and answered,
+&lsquo;Everything has gone off very well.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood will be a popular man; but
+my congratulations refer to something nearer home.&nbsp; I think
+you owe us some thanks for having brought them into the
+neighbourhood.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Report is very kind in making arrangements,&rsquo; said
+Lily, with something of Emily&rsquo;s haughty courtesy.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope this is something more than report,&rsquo; said
+her partner.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, I believe not.&nbsp; I think I may safely say
+that it is at present quite unfounded,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>Mr. Carrington, much surprised, said no more.</p>
+<p>Lily did not believe the report sufficiently to be annoyed by
+it during the excitement and pleasure of the evening, and at
+present her principal vexation was caused by the rapid diminution
+of the company.&nbsp; She and her brother were the very last to
+depart, even Florence had gone to bed, and Lady Rotherwood,
+looking exceedingly tired, kissed Lily at the foot of the stairs,
+pitied her for going home in an open carriage, and wished her
+good-night in a very weary tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should think you were the fiftieth lady I have handed
+across the hall,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, as he gave Lily his
+arm.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But where were the fireworks, Rotherwood?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Countermanded long ago.&nbsp; We have had enough of
+them.&nbsp; Well, I am sorry it is over.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am very glad it is so well over,&rsquo; said
+Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thanks to your exertions, Claude,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;You acted like a hero.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Like a dancing dervish you mean,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It will suffice for my whole
+life.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope you are not quite exhausted.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, thank you.&nbsp; I have turned over a new
+leaf.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Talking of new leaves,&rsquo; said the Marquis,
+&lsquo;I always had a presentiment that Emily&rsquo;s government
+would come to a crisis to-day.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do you think it has?&rsquo; said Claude.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Trust my word, you will hear great news
+to-morrow.&nbsp; And that reminds me&mdash;can you come here
+to-morrow morning?&nbsp; Travers is going&mdash;I drive him to
+meet the coach at the town, and you were talking of wanting to
+see the new windows in the cathedral: it will be a good
+opportunity.&nbsp; And dine here afterwards to talk over the
+adventures.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Thank you&mdash;that last I cannot do.&nbsp; The Baron
+was saying it would be the first time of having us all
+together.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very well, besides the great news.&nbsp; I wish I was
+going back with you; it is a tame conclusion, only to go to
+bed.&nbsp; If I was but to be on the scene of action
+to-morrow.&nbsp; Tell the Baron that&mdash;no, use your influence
+to get me invited to dinner on Saturday&mdash;I really want to
+speak to him.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very well,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll do my
+best.&nbsp; Good-night.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Good-night,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+have both done wonders.&nbsp; Still, I wish it was to come over
+again.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Few people would say so,&rsquo; said Lily, as they
+drove off.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Few would say so if they thought so,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I have been quite admiring the way
+Rotherwood has gone on&mdash;enjoying the fun as if he was
+nobody&mdash;just as Reginald might, making other people happy,
+and making no secret of his satisfaction in it all.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Very free from affectation and nonsense,&rsquo; said
+Lily, &lsquo;as William said of him last Christmas.&nbsp; You
+were in a fine fright about his speech, Claude.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;More than I ought to have been.&nbsp; I should have
+known that he is too simple-minded and straightforward to say
+anything but just what he ought.&nbsp; What a nice person that
+Miss Aylmer is.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Is not she, Claude?&nbsp; I was very glad you had her
+for a neighbour.&nbsp; Happy the children who have her for a
+governess.&nbsp; How sensible and gentle she seems.&nbsp; The
+Westons&mdash;But oh!&nbsp; Claude, tell me one thing, did you
+hear&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Well, what?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am ashamed to say.&nbsp; That preposterous report
+about papa.&nbsp; Why, Rotherwood himself seems to believe it,
+and Mr. Carrington began to congratulate&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The public has bestowed so many ladies on the Baron,
+that I wonder it is not tired,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;It is time it should patronise William instead.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rotherwood is not the public,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;and he is the last person to say anything impertinent of
+papa.&nbsp; And I myself heard papa call her Alethea, which he
+never used to do.&nbsp; Claude, what do you think?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>After a long pause Claude slowly replied, &lsquo;Think?&nbsp;
+Why, I think Miss Weston must be a person of great courage.&nbsp;
+She begins the world as a grandmother, to say nothing of her
+eldest daughter and son being considerably her
+seniors.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not believe it,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do
+you, Claude?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I cannot make up my mind&mdash;it is too amazing.&nbsp;
+My hair is still standing on end.&nbsp; When it comes down I may
+be able to tell you something.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Such were the only answers that Lily could extract from
+him.&nbsp; He did not sufficiently disbelieve the report to treat
+it with scorn, yet he did not sufficiently credit it to resign
+himself to such a state of things.</p>
+<p>On coming home Lily found Emily and Jane in her room, eagerly
+discussing the circumstances which, to their prejudiced eyes,
+seemed strong confirmation.&nbsp; While their tongues were in
+full career the door opened and Eleanor appeared.&nbsp; She told
+them it was twelve o&rsquo;clock, turned Jane out of the room,
+and made Emily and Lily promise not to utter another syllable
+that night.</p>
+<h2><a name="page297"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+297</span>CHAPTER XXVI<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">THE CRISIS</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;&ldquo;Is this your care of the
+nest?&rdquo; cried he,<br />
+&ldquo;It comes of your gadding abroad,&rdquo; said
+she.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">To</span> the consternation of the
+disconsolate damsels, the first news they heard the next morning
+was that Mr. Mohun was gone to breakfast at Broomhill, and the
+intelligence was received by Frank Hawkesworth with a smile which
+they thought perfectly malicious.&nbsp; Frank, William, and
+Reginald talked a little at breakfast about the
+<i>f&ecirc;te</i>, but no one joined them, and Claude looked so
+grave that Eleanor was convinced that he had a headache, and
+vainly tried to persuade him to stay at home, instead of setting
+off to Devereux Castle immediately after breakfast.</p>
+<p>The past day had not been spent in vain by Ada.&nbsp; Mrs.
+Weston had led her by degrees to open her heart to her, had made
+her perceive the real cause of her father&rsquo;s displeasure,
+see her faults, and promise to confess them, a promise which she
+performed with many tears, as soon as she saw Eleanor in the
+morning.</p>
+<p>On telling this to Emily Eleanor was surprised to find that
+she was not listened to with much satisfaction.&nbsp; Emily
+seemed to think it a piece of interference on the part of Mrs.
+Weston, and would not allow that it was likely to be the
+beginning of improvement in Ada.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;The words were put into her mouth,&rsquo; said she;
+&lsquo;and they were an easy way of escaping from her present
+state of disgrace.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;On the contrary,&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;she seemed
+to think that she justly deserved to be in disgrace.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Did you think so?&rsquo; said Emily, in a careless
+tone.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You are in a strange mood to-day, Emily,&rsquo; said
+Eleanor.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Am I?&nbsp; I did not know it.&nbsp; I wonder where
+Lily is.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily was in her own room, teaching Phyllis.&nbsp; Phyllis was
+rather wild and flighty that morning, scarcely able to command
+her attention, and every now and then bursting into an
+irrepressible fit of laughter.&nbsp; Reginald and Phyllis found
+it most difficult to avoid betraying Marianne, and as soon as
+luncheon was over, they agreed to set out on a long expedition
+into the woods, where they might enjoy their wonderful secret
+together.&nbsp; Just at this time Mr. Mohun returned.&nbsp; He
+came into the drawing-room, and Lilias, perceiving that the
+threatened conversation with Emily was about to take place, made
+her escape to her own room, whither she was presently followed by
+Jane, who could not help running after her to report the great
+news that Emily was to be deposed.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I am sure of it,&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;They
+sent me out of the room, but not before I had seen certain
+symptoms.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is very hard that poor Emily should bear all the
+blame,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You have managed to escape it very well,&rsquo; said
+Jane, laughing.&nbsp; &lsquo;You have all the thanks and
+praise.&nbsp; I suppose it is because the intimacy with Miss
+Weston was your work.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I will not believe that nonsense,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Seeing is believing, they say,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Remember, it is not only me.&nbsp; Think of
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; And Maurice guesses it too, and Redgie told him
+great things were going on.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>While Jane was speaking they heard the drawing-room door open,
+and in another moment Emily came in.</p>
+<p>It was true that, as Jane said, she had been deposed.&nbsp;
+Mr. Mohun had begun by saying, &lsquo;Emily, can you bring me
+such an account of your expenditure as I desired?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I scarcely think I can, papa,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I am sorry to say that my accounts are rather in
+confusion.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;That is to say, that you have been as irregular in the
+management of your own affairs as you have in mine.&nbsp; Well, I
+have paid your debt to Lilias, and from this time forward I
+require of you to reduce your expenses to the sum which I
+consider suitable, and which both Eleanor and Lilias have found
+perfectly sufficient.&nbsp; And now, Emily, what have you to say
+for the management of my affairs?&nbsp; Can you offer any excuse
+for your utter failure?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Indeed, papa, I am very sorry I vexed you,&rsquo; said
+Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Our illness last autumn&mdash;different
+things&mdash;I know all has not been quite as it should be; but I
+hope that in future I shall profit by past experience.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope so,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I am
+afraid to trust the management of the family to you any
+longer.&nbsp; Your trial is over, and you have failed, merely
+because you would not exert yourself from wilful indolence and
+negligence.&nbsp; You have not attended to any one thing
+committed to your charge&mdash;you have placed temptation in
+Esther&rsquo;s way&mdash;and allowed Ada to take up habits which
+will not be easily corrected.&nbsp; I should not think myself
+justified in leaving you in charge any longer, lest worse
+mischief should ensue.&nbsp; I wish you to give up the keys to
+Eleanor for the present.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Mr. Mohun would perhaps have added something if Emily had
+shown signs of repentance, or even of sorrow.&nbsp; The moment
+was at least as painful to him as to her, and he had prepared
+himself to expect either hysterical tears, with vows of
+amendment, or else an argument on her side that she was right and
+everybody else wrong.&nbsp; But there was nothing of the kind;
+Emily neither spoke nor looked; she only carried the tokens of
+her authority to Eleanor, and left the room.&nbsp; She thought
+she knew well enough the cause of her deposition, considered it
+quite as a matter of course, and departed on purpose to avoid
+hearing the announcement which she expected to follow.</p>
+<p>She was annoyed by finding her sisters in her room, and
+especially irritated by Jane&rsquo;s tone, as she eagerly asked,
+&lsquo;Well, what did he say?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; replied Emily, pettishly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Was it about Miss Weston?&rsquo; persisted Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not actually, but I saw it was coming,&rsquo; said
+Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I was just telling Lily
+that she owes all her present favour to her having been
+Alethea&rsquo;s bosom friend.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I confess I thought Miss Weston was assuming authority
+long ago,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily, how can you say so?&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;How can you be so unjust and ungrateful?&nbsp; I do not
+believe this report; but if it should be true, are not these
+foolish expressions of dislike so many attempts to make yourself
+undutiful?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I have rather more sincerity, more dignity, more
+attachment to my own mother, than to try to gain favour by
+affecting what I do not feel,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Rather cutting, Emily,&rsquo; said Jane.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Do not give that speech an application which Emily did
+not intend,&rsquo; said Lily, sadly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What makes you think I did not intend it?&rsquo; said
+Emily, coldly.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Emily!&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, starting up, and
+colouring violently, &lsquo;are you thinking what you are
+saying?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do not know what you mean,&rsquo; replied Emily
+quietly, in her soft, unchanging voice; &lsquo;I only mean that
+if you can feel satisfied with the new arrangement you are more
+easily pleased than I am.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only tell me, Emily, do you accuse me of attempting to
+gain favour in an unworthy manner?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I only congratulate you on standing so well with every
+one.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lily hid her face in her hands.&nbsp; At this moment Eleanor
+opened the door, saying, &lsquo;Can you come down?&nbsp; Mrs.
+Burnet is here.&rsquo;&nbsp; Eleanor went without observing Lily,
+and Emily was obliged to follow.&nbsp; Jane lingered in order to
+comfort Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You know she did not quite mean it,&rsquo; said she;
+&lsquo;she is only very much provoked.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I know, I know,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;she is very
+sorry herself by this time.&nbsp; Of course she did not mean it,
+but it is the first unkind thing she ever said to me.&nbsp; It is
+very silly, and very unjust to take it seriously, but I cannot
+help it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It is a very abominable shame,&rsquo; said Jane,
+&lsquo;and so I shall tell Emily.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, do not, Jenny, I beg.&nbsp; I know she thinks so
+herself, and grieves too much over it.&nbsp; No wonder she is
+vexed.&nbsp; All my faults have come upon her.&nbsp; You had
+better go down, Jane; Mrs. Burnet is always vexed if she does not
+see a good many of us, and I am sure I cannot go.&nbsp; Besides,
+Emily dislikes having that girl to entertain.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Lily, you are so very gentle and forgiving, that I
+wonder how any one can say what grieves you,&rsquo; said Jane,
+for once struck with admiration.</p>
+<p>She went, and Lily remained, weeping over the injustice which
+she had forgiven, and feeling as if, all the time, it was fair
+that the rule of &lsquo;love&rsquo; should, as it were, recoil
+upon her.&nbsp; Her tears flowed fast, as she went over the long
+line of faults and follies which lay heavy on her
+conscience.&nbsp; And Emily against her!&nbsp; That sister who,
+from her infancy, had soothed her in every trouble, of whose
+sympathy she had always felt sure, whose gentleness had been her
+admiration in her days of sharp answers and violent temper, who
+had seemed her own beyond all the others; this wound from her
+gave Lily a bitter feeling of desertion and loneliness.&nbsp; It
+was like a completion of her punishment&mdash;the broken reed on
+which she leant had pierced her deeply.</p>
+<p>She was still sitting on the side of her bed, weeping, when a
+slight tap at the door made her start&mdash;a gentle tap, the
+sound of which she had learned to love in her illness.&nbsp; The
+next moment Alethea stood before her, with outstretched
+arms.&nbsp; This was a time to feel the value of such a friend,
+and every suspicion passing from her mind, she flew to Alethea,
+kissed her again and again, and laid her head on her
+shoulder.&nbsp; Her caress was returned with equal warmth.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;But how is this?&rsquo; said Alethea, now perceiving
+that her face was pale, and marked by tears.&nbsp; &lsquo;How is
+this, my dear Lily?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, Alethea!&nbsp; I cannot tell you, but it is all
+misery.&nbsp; The full effect of my baneful principle has
+appeared!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Has anything happened?&rsquo; exclaimed Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is nothing
+new, except the&mdash;Oh!&nbsp; I cannot tell you.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wish I could do anything for you, my poor
+Lily,&rsquo; said Alethea.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;You can look kind,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and that is
+a great comfort.&nbsp; Oh! Alethea, it was very kind of you to
+come and speak to me.&nbsp; I shall do now&mdash;I can bear it
+all better.&nbsp; You have a comforting face and voice like
+nobody else.&nbsp; When did you come?&nbsp; Have you been in the
+drawing-room?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Alethea.&nbsp; &lsquo;I walked here
+with Marianne, and finding there were visitors in the
+drawing-room we went to Ada, and she told me where to find
+you.&nbsp; I had something to tell you&mdash;but perhaps you know
+already.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The colour on her cheek recalled all Lily&rsquo;s fears, and
+to hear the news from herself was an unexpected trial.&nbsp; She
+felt as if what she had said justified Emily&rsquo;s reproach,
+and turning away her head, replied, &lsquo;Yes, I
+know.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea was a little hurt by her coldness, but she ascribed it
+to dejection and embarrassment, and blamed herself for hurrying
+on what she had to tell without sufficient regard for
+Lily&rsquo;s distress.&nbsp; There was an awkward pause, which
+Alethea broke, by saying, &lsquo;Your brother thought you would
+like to hear it from me.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My brother!&rsquo; cried Lily, with a most sudden
+change of tone.&nbsp; &lsquo;William?&nbsp; Oh, Alethea! dearest
+Alethea; I beg your pardon.&nbsp; They almost made me believe it
+was papa.&nbsp; Oh! I am so very glad!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Alethea could not help laughing, and Lily joined her
+heartily.&nbsp; It was one of the brightest hours of her life, as
+she sat with her hand in her friend&rsquo;s, pouring out her
+eager expressions of delight and affection.&nbsp; All her
+troubles were forgotten&mdash;how should they not, when Alethea
+was to be her sister!&nbsp; It seemed as if but a few minutes had
+passed, when the sound of the great clock warned Alethea that it
+was time to return to Broomhill, and she asked Lilias to walk
+back with her.&nbsp; After summoning Marianne, they set out
+through the garden, where, on being joined by William, Lily
+thought it expedient to betake herself to Marianne, who was but
+too glad to be able freely to communicate many interesting
+particulars.&nbsp; At Broomhill she had a very enjoyable talk
+with Mrs. Weston, but her chief delight was in her walk home with
+her brother.&nbsp; She was high in his favour, as Alethea&rsquo;s
+chief friend.&nbsp; Though usually reserved, he was now open, and
+Lily wondered to find herself honoured with confidence.&nbsp; His
+attachment had begun in very early days, when first he knew the
+Westons in Brighton.&nbsp; Harry&rsquo;s death had suddenly
+called him away, and a few guarded expressions of his wishes in
+the course of the next winter had been cut short by his
+father.&nbsp; He then went to Canada, and had had no opportunity
+of renewing his acquaintance till the last winter, when, on
+coming home, to his great joy and surprise he found the Westons
+on the most intimate terms with his family.</p>
+<p>He then spoke to his father, who wished him to take a little
+more time for consideration, and he had accordingly waited till
+the summer.&nbsp; Lily longed to know his plans for the future,
+and presently he went on to say that his father wished him to
+leave the army, live at home, and let Alethea be the head of the
+household.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh, William! it is perfect.&nbsp; There is an end of
+all our troubles.&nbsp; It is as if a great black curtain was
+drawn up.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;They say such plans never succeed,&rsquo; said William;
+&lsquo;but we mean to prove the contrary.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;How good it will be for the children!&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh! why had we not such a guide at first?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;She has all that Eleanor wants,&rsquo; said
+William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;My follies were not Eleanor&rsquo;s fault,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;but I do think I should not have been quite so silly
+if I had known Alethea from the first.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>It was not in the power of William himself to say more in her
+praise than Lily.&nbsp; In the eagerness of their conversation
+they walked slowly, and as they were crossing the last field the
+dinner-bell rang.&nbsp; As they quickened their steps they saw
+Mr. Mohun looking at his wheat.&nbsp; Lily told him how late it
+was.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;There,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;I am always looking after
+other people&rsquo;s affairs.&nbsp; Between Rotherwood and
+William I have not a moment for my own crops.&nbsp; However, my
+turn is coming.&nbsp; William will have it all on his hands, and
+the old deaf useless Baron will sit in his great chair and take
+his ease.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Not a bit, papa,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the Baron
+will grow young, and take to dancing.&nbsp; He is talking
+nonsense already.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Eh!&nbsp; Miss Lily turned saucy?&nbsp; Mrs. William
+Mohun must take her in hand.&nbsp; Well, Lily, has he your
+consent and approbation?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I only wish this was eighteen months ago,
+papa.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We shall soon come into order, Lily.&nbsp; With Miss
+Aylmer for the little ones, and Mrs. Mohun for the great ones, I
+have little fear.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Miss Aylmer, papa!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Yes, if all turns out well.&nbsp; We propose to find a
+house for her mother in the village, and let her come every day
+to teach the little ones.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I am very glad.&nbsp; We liked her so
+much.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I hope,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;that this plan
+will please Claude better than my proposal of a governess last
+month.&nbsp; He looked as if he expected Minerva with helmet, and
+&AElig;gis and all.&nbsp; Now make haste and dress.&nbsp; Do not
+let us shock Eleanor by keeping dinner waiting longer than we can
+help.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Lilias found that her sisters had long been dressed and gone
+down.&nbsp; She dressed alone, every now and then smiling at her
+own happy looks reflected in the glass.&nbsp; Just as she had
+finished, Claude knocked at the door, and putting in his head,
+said, &lsquo;Well, Lily, has the wonderful news come forth?&nbsp;
+I see it has, by your face.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And do you know what it is, Claude?&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I know what Rotherwood meant, and I cannot think where
+all our senses were.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And, Claude, only say that you like her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I think it is a very good thing indeed.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Only say that you cordially like her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do.&nbsp; I admire her sense and her gentleness very
+much, and I think you owe a great deal to her.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Then you allow that you were unjust last
+summer?&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do; but it was owing to you.&nbsp; You were somewhat
+foolish, and I thought it was her fault.&nbsp; Besides, I was
+quite tired of hearing that extraordinary name of hers for ever
+repeated.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Here they were summoned to dinner, and hurried down.&nbsp; The
+dinner passed very strangely; some were in very high spirits,
+others in a very melancholy mood; Eleanor and Maurice alone
+preserved the golden mean; and the behaviour of the merry ones
+was perfectly unintelligible to the rest.&nbsp; Reginald, still
+bound by his promise to Marianne, was wild to make his discovery
+known, and behaved in such a strange and comical manner as to
+call forth various reproofs from Eleanor, which provoked double
+mirth from the others.&nbsp; The cause of their amusement was
+ostensibly the talking over of yesterday&rsquo;s
+<i>f&ecirc;te</i>, but the laughing was more than adequate, even
+to the wonderful collection of odd speeches and adventures which
+were detailed.&nbsp; Emily and Jane could not guess what had come
+to Lily, and thought her merriment very ill-placed.&nbsp; Yet, in
+justice to Lily, it must be said that her joy no longer made her
+wild and thoughtless.&nbsp; There was something guarded and
+subdued about her, which made Claude reflect how different she
+was from the untamed girl of last summer, who could not be happy
+without a sort of intoxication.</p>
+<p>The ladies returned to the drawing-room, where Ada now
+appeared for the first time, and while they were congratulating
+her Mr. Mohun summoned Eleanor away.&nbsp; Jane followed at a
+safe distance to see where they went.&nbsp; They shut themselves
+into the study, and Jane, now meeting Maurice, went into the
+garden with him.&nbsp; &lsquo;It must be coming now,&rsquo; said
+she; &lsquo;oh! there are William and Claude talking under the
+plane-tree.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Claude has his cunning smile on,&rsquo; said
+Maurice.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No wonder,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;it is very
+absurd.&nbsp; I daresay William will hardly ever come home
+now.&nbsp; One comfort is, they will see I was right from the
+first.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>Jane and Maurice remained in the garden till teatime, and thus
+missed hearing the whole affair discussed in the drawing-room
+between Emily, Lilias, and Frank.&nbsp; This was the first news
+that Emily heard of it, and a very great relief it was, for she
+could imagine liking, and even loving, Alethea as a
+sister-in-law.&nbsp; Her chief annoyance was at present from the
+perception of the difference between her own position and that of
+Lilias.&nbsp; Last year how was Lily regarded in the family, and
+what was her opinion worth?&nbsp; Almost nothing; she was only a
+clever, romantic, silly girl, while Emily had credit at least for
+discretion.&nbsp; Now Lily was consulted and sought out by
+father, brothers, Eleanor&mdash;no longer treated as a
+child.&nbsp; And what was Emily?&nbsp; Blamed or pitied on every
+side, and left to hear this important news from the chance
+mention of her brother-in-law, himself not fully informed.&nbsp;
+She had become nobody, and had even lost the satisfaction, such
+as it was, of fancying that her father only made her bad
+management an excuse for his marriage.&nbsp; She heard many
+particulars from Lily in the course of the evening, as they were
+going to bed; and the sisters talked with all their wonted
+affection, although Emily had not thought it worth while to
+revive an old grievance, by asking Lily&rsquo;s pardon for her
+unkind speech, and rested satisfied with the knowledge that her
+sister knew her heart too well to care for what she said in a
+moment of irritation.&nbsp; On the other hand, Lily did not think
+that she had a right to mention the plan of Alethea&rsquo;s
+government, and the next day she was glad of her reserve, for her
+father called her to share his early walk for the purpose of
+talking over the scheme, telling her that he thought she
+understood the state of things better than Eleanor could, and
+that he considered that she had sufficient influence with Emily
+to prevent her from making Alethea uncomfortable.&nbsp; The
+conclusion of the conversation was, that they thought they might
+depend upon Emily&rsquo;s amiability, her courtesy, and her
+dislike of trouble, to balance her love of importance and
+dignity.&nbsp; And that Alethea would do nothing to hurt her
+feelings, and would assume no authority that she could help, they
+felt convinced.</p>
+<p>After breakfast Mr. Mohun called Emily into his study,
+informed her of his resolution, to which she listened with her
+usual submissive manner, and told her that he trusted to her good
+sense and right feeling to obviate any collisions of authority
+which might be unpleasant to Alethea and hurtful to the younger
+ones.&nbsp; She promised all that was desired, and though at the
+moment she felt hurt and grieved, she almost immediately
+recovered her usual spirits, never high, but always serene, and
+only seeking for easy amusement and comfort in whatever
+happened.&nbsp; There was no public disgrace in her deposition;
+it would not seem unnatural to the neighbours that her
+brother&rsquo;s wife should be at the head of the house.&nbsp;
+She would gain credit for her amiability, and she would no longer
+be responsible or obliged to exert herself; and as to Alethea
+herself, she could not help respecting and almost loving
+her.&nbsp; It was very well it was no worse.</p>
+<p>In the meantime Lily, struck by a sudden thought, had hastened
+to her mother&rsquo;s little deserted morning-room, to see if it
+could not be made a delightful abode for Alethea; and she was
+considering of its capabilities when she started at the sound of
+an approaching step.&nbsp; It was the rapid and measured tread of
+the Captain, and in a few moments he entered.&nbsp; &lsquo;Thank
+you,&rsquo; said he, smiling, &lsquo;you are on the same errand
+as myself.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Exactly so,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;it will do
+capitally; how pretty Long Acre looks, and what a beautiful view
+of the church!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;This room used once to be pretty,&rsquo; said William,
+looking round, disappointed; &lsquo;it is very
+forlorn.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! but it will look very different when the chairs do
+not stand with their backs to the wall.&nbsp; I do not think
+Alethea knows of this room, for nobody has sat in it for years,
+and we will make it a surprise.&nbsp; And here is your own
+picture, at ten years old, over the fireplace!&nbsp; I have such
+a vision, you will not know the room when I have set it to
+rights.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>They went on talking eagerly of the improvements that might be
+made, and from thence came to other subjects&mdash;Alethea
+herself, and the future plans.&nbsp; At last William asked if
+Lily knew what made Jane look as deplorable as she had done for
+the last two days, and Lily was obliged to tell him, with the
+addition that Eleanor had begun to inform her of the real fact,
+but that she had stopped her by declaring that she had known it
+all from the first.&nbsp; Just as they had mentioned her, Jane,
+attracted by the unusual sound of voices in Lady Emily&rsquo;s
+room, came in, asking what they could be doing there.&nbsp; Lily
+would scarcely have dared to reply, but William said in a grave,
+matter-of-fact way, &lsquo;We are thinking of having this room
+newly fitted up.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;For Alethea Weston?&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;how can
+you, Lily?&nbsp; I should have thought, at least, it was no
+laughing matter.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I advise you to follow Lily&rsquo;s example and make
+the best of it,&rsquo; said William.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I do, but it is another thing to stand laughing
+here.&nbsp; I see one thing that I shall do&mdash;I shall take
+away your picture and hang it in my room.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;We shall see,&rsquo; said William, following Lilias,
+who had left the room to hide her laughter.</p>
+<p>To mystify Jane was the great amusement of the day; Reginald,
+finding Maurice possessed with the same notion, did more to
+maintain it than the others would have thought right, and Maurice
+reporting his speeches to Jane, she had not the least doubt that
+her idea was correct.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood came to dinner, and
+no sooner had he entered the drawing-room than Reginald,
+rejoicing in the absence of the parties concerned, informed him
+of the joke, much to his diversion, though rather to the
+discomfiture of the more prudent spectators, who might have
+wished it confined to themselves.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;It has gone far enough,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;she
+will say something she will repent if we do not take
+care.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I should like to reduce her to humble herself to ask an
+explanation from Marianne,&rsquo; said Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;And pray don&rsquo;t spoil the joke before I have
+enjoyed it,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;My years of
+discretion are not such centuries of wisdom as those of that
+gentleman who looks as grim as his namesake the Emperor on a
+coin.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The entrance of Eleanor and Jane here put an end to the
+conversation, which was not renewed till the evening, when the
+younger, or as Claude called it, the middle-aged part of the
+company were sitting on the lawn, leaving the drawing-room to the
+elder and more prudent, and the terrace to the wilder and more
+active.&nbsp; Emily was talking of Mrs. Burnet&rsquo;s visit of
+the day before, and her opinion of the Hetherington
+festivities.&nbsp; &lsquo;And what an interminable visit it
+was,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;I thought they would never
+go!&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;People always inflict themselves in a most merciless
+manner when there is anything going on,&rsquo; said Emily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;I wonder if they guessed anything,&rsquo; said
+Lily.</p>
+<p>&lsquo;To be sure they did, and stayed out of
+curiosity,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;In spite of
+Emily&rsquo;s dignified contradictions of the report, every one
+knew it the other evening.&nbsp; It was all in vain that she
+behaved as if I was speaking treason&mdash;people have
+eyes.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;Ah! I am very sorry for that contradiction,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;I hope people will not fancy we do not like
+it.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;No, it will only prove my greatness,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;Your Marques, was China in the map, so
+absorbing all beholders that the magnanimous Mohuns
+themselves&mdash;&rsquo;</p>
+<p>&lsquo;What nonsense, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Jane, sharply;
+&lsquo;can&rsquo;t you suppose that one may shut one&rsquo;s eyes
+to what one does not wish to see.&rsquo;</p>
+<p>The singular inappropriateness of this answer occasioned a
+general roar of laughter, and she looked in perplexity.&nbsp;
+Every one whom she asked why they laughed replied by saying,
+&lsquo;Ask Marianne Weston;&rsquo; and at length, after much
+puzzling and guessing, and being more laughed at than had ever
+before happened to her in her life, she was obliged to seek an
+explanation from Marianne, who might well have triumphed had she
+been so disposed.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s character for penetration
+was entirely destroyed, and the next morning she received, as a
+present from Claude, an old book, which had long belonged to the
+nursery, entitled, <i>A Puzzle for a Curious Girl</i>.</p>
+<h2><a name="page313"></a><span class="pagenum">p.
+313</span>CHAPTER XXVII<br />
+<span class="GutSmall">CONCLUSION</span></h2>
+<blockquote><p>&lsquo;There let Hymen oft appear<br />
+In saffron robe, with taper clear,<br />
+And pomp, and feast, and revelry,<br />
+And mask, and antique pageantry;<br />
+Such sights as useful poets dream<br />
+On summer eves, by haunted stream.&rsquo;</p>
+</blockquote>
+<p><span class="smcap">On</span> the morning of a fine day, late
+in September, the Beechcroft bells were ringing merrily, and a
+wedding procession was entering the gate of the churchyard.</p>
+<p>In the afternoon there was a great feast on the top of the
+hill, attended by all the Mohuns, who were forced, to
+Lily&rsquo;s great satisfaction, to give it there, as there was
+no space in the grounds at the New Court.&nbsp; All was
+wonderfully suitable to old times, inasmuch as the Baron was
+actually persuaded to sit for five minutes under the yew-tree
+where &lsquo;Mohun&rsquo;s chair&rsquo; ought to have been, and
+the cricketers were of all ranks, from the Marquis of Rotherwood
+to little Dick Grey.</p>
+<p>The wedding had been hurried on, and the wedding tour was
+shortened, in order that Mrs. William Mohun might be installed as
+mistress of the New Court before Eleanor&rsquo;s departure, which
+took place early in October; and shortly after Mrs. Ridley, who
+had come on a visit to Beechcroft, to take leave of her brother,
+returned to the north, taking with her the little Harry.&nbsp; He
+was nearly a year old, and it gave great pain to his young aunts
+to part with him, now that he had endeared himself to them by
+many engaging ways, but Lily felt herself too unequal to the task
+of training him up to make any objection, and there were many
+promises that he should not be a stranger to his
+grandfather&rsquo;s home.</p>
+<p>Mrs. and Miss Aylmer had been about a month settled at a
+superior sort of cottage, near the New Court, with Mrs. Eden for
+their servant.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood had fitted out the second
+son, who sailed for India with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, had sent
+Devereux to school, and was lying in wait to see what could be
+done for the two others, and Jane was congratulated far more than
+she wished, on having been the means of discovering such an
+excellent governess.&nbsp; Jane was now a regular inhabitant of
+the schoolroom, as much tied down to lessons and schoolroom hours
+as her two little sisters, with the prospect of so continuing for
+two years, if not for three.&nbsp; She made one attempt to be
+pert to Miss Aylmer; but something in the manner of her governess
+quite baffled her, and she was obliged to be more obedient than
+she had ever been.&nbsp; The mischief which Emily and Lilias had
+done to her, by throwing off their allegiance to Eleanor, and
+thus unconsciously leading her to set her at nought, was, at her
+age, not to be so easily repaired; yet with no opportunity for
+gossiping, and with involuntary respect for her governess, there
+were hopes that she would lose the habit of her two great
+faults.&nbsp; There certainly was an improvement in her general
+tone and manner, which made Mr. Devereux hope that he might soon
+resume with her the preparation for confirmation which had been
+cut short the year before.</p>
+<p>Phyllis and Adeline had been possessed by Reginald with a
+great dread of governesses; and they were agreeably surprised in
+Miss Aylmer, whom they found neither cross nor strict, and always
+willing to forward their amusements, and let them go out with
+their papa and sisters whenever they were asked.&nbsp; Phyllis,
+without much annoyance to one so obedient, was trained into more
+civilisation, and Ada&rsquo;s more serious faults were duly
+watched and guarded against.&nbsp; The removal of Esther was a
+great advantage to Ada; an older and more steady person was taken
+in her place; while to the great relief of Mr. Mohun and Lilias,
+Rachel Harvey took Esther to her brother&rsquo;s farmhouse, where
+she promised to watch and teach her, and hoped in time to make
+her a good servant.</p>
+<p>Of Emily there is little to say.&nbsp; She ate, drank, and
+slept, talked agreeably, read idle books, and looked nice in the
+drawing-room, wasting time, throwing away talents, weakening the
+powers of her mind, and laying up a store of sad reflections for
+herself against the time when she must awake from her selfish
+apathy.</p>
+<p>As to Lilias Mohun, the heroine of this tale, the history of
+the formation of her character has been told, and all that
+remains to be said of her is, that the memory of her faults and
+her sorrows did not fleet away like a morning cloud, though
+followed by many happy and prosperous days, and though the
+effects of many were repaired.&nbsp; Agnes&rsquo;s death,
+Esther&rsquo;s theft, Ada&rsquo;s accident, the schism in the
+parish, and her own numerous mistakes, were constantly recalled,
+and never without a thought of the danger of being wise above her
+elders, and taking mere feeling for Christian charity.</p>
+<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SCENES AND CHARACTERS***</p>
+<pre>
+
+
+***** This file should be named 4944-h.htm or 4944-h.zip******
+
+
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/4/9/4/4944
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
+be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
+law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
+so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
+States without permission and without paying copyright
+royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
+of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
+and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
+specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
+eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
+for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
+performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
+away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
+not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
+trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
+
+START: FULL LICENSE
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
+Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
+www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
+destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
+possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
+Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
+by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
+person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
+1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
+agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
+Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
+of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
+works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
+States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
+United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
+claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
+displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
+all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
+that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
+free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
+works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
+Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
+comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
+same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
+you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
+in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
+check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
+agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
+distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
+other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
+representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
+country outside the United States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
+immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
+prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
+on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
+performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
+
+ This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
+ most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
+ restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
+ under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
+ eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
+ United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
+ are located before using this ebook.
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
+derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
+contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
+copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
+the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
+redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
+either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
+obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
+trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
+additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
+will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
+posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
+beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
+any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
+to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
+other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
+version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
+(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
+to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
+of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
+Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
+full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+provided that
+
+* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
+ to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
+ agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
+ within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
+ legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
+ payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
+ Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
+ Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
+ copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
+ all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
+ works.
+
+* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
+ any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
+ receipt of the work.
+
+* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
+are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
+from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
+Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
+Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
+contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
+or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
+other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
+cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
+with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
+with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
+lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
+or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
+opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
+the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
+without further opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
+OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
+damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
+violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
+agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
+limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
+unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
+remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
+accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
+production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
+including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
+the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
+or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
+additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
+Defect you cause.
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
+computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
+exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
+from people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
+generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
+Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
+www.gutenberg.org
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
+U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
+mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
+volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
+locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
+Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
+date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
+official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
+DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
+state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
+donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
+freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
+distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
+volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
+the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
+necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
+edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
+facility: www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+</pre></body>
+</html>
diff --git a/4944-h/images/fpb.jpg b/4944-h/images/fpb.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..27d1387
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/fpb.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/fps.jpg b/4944-h/images/fps.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..e71fcb2
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/fps.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/p156b.jpg b/4944-h/images/p156b.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..09024eb
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/p156b.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/p156s.jpg b/4944-h/images/p156s.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d24458b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/p156s.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/p247b.jpg b/4944-h/images/p247b.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..7d6c51d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/p247b.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/p247s.jpg b/4944-h/images/p247s.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2707b61
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/p247s.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/tpb.jpg b/4944-h/images/tpb.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..8dac668
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/tpb.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4944-h/images/tps.jpg b/4944-h/images/tps.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0c56626
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4944-h/images/tps.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1b800f0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #4944 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/4944)
diff --git a/old/scch10.txt b/old/scch10.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0f11b64
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/scch10.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,10967 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge
+(#25 in our series by Charlotte M. Yonge)
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
+this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
+Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
+header without written permission.
+
+Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
+eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
+important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
+how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
+donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+
+Title: Scenes and Characters
+
+Author: Charlotte M. Yonge
+
+Release Date: January, 2004 [EBook #4944]
+[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
+[This file was first posted on April 2, 2002]
+[Most recently updated: April 2, 2002]
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, SCENES AND CHARACTERS ***
+
+
+
+
+Transcribed from the 1889 Macmillan and Co. edition by David Price,
+email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk
+
+
+
+
+SCENES AND CHARACTERS, OR, EIGHTEEN MONTHS AT BEECHCROFT
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+
+
+Of those who are invited to pay a visit to Beechcroft, there are some
+who, honestly acknowledging that amusement is their object, will be
+content to feel with Lilias, conjecture with Jane, and get into
+scrapes with Phyllis, without troubling themselves to extract any
+moral from their proceedings; and to these the Mohun family would
+only apologise for having led a very humdrum life during the eighteen
+months spent in their company.
+
+There may, however, be more unreasonable visitors, who, professing
+only to come as parents and guardians, expect entertainment for
+themselves, as well as instruction for those who had rather it was
+out of sight,--look for antiques in carved cherry-stones,--and
+require plot, incident, and catastrophe in a chronicle of small beer.
+
+To these the Mohuns beg respectfully to observe, that they hope their
+examples may not be altogether devoid of indirect instruction; and
+lest it should be supposed that they lived without object, aim, or
+principle, they would observe that the maxim which has influenced the
+delineation of the different Scenes and Characters is, that feeling,
+unguided and unrestrained, soon becomes mere selfishness; while the
+simple endeavour to fulfil each immediate claim of duty may lead to
+the highest acts of self-devotion.
+
+NEW COURT, BEECHCROFT,
+18th January.
+
+
+
+PREFACE (1886)
+
+
+
+Perhaps this book is an instance to be adduced in support of the
+advice I have often given to young authors--not to print before they
+themselves are old enough to do justice to their freshest ideas.
+
+Not that I can lay claim to its being a production of tender and
+interesting youth. It was my second actual publication, and I
+believe I was of age before it appeared--but I see now the failures
+that more experience might have enabled me to avoid; and I would not
+again have given it to the world if the same characters recurring in
+another story had not excited a certain desire to see their first
+start.
+
+In fact they have been more or less my life-long companions. An
+almost solitary child, with periodical visits to the Elysium of a
+large family, it was natural to dream of other children and their
+ways and sports till they became almost realities. They took shape
+when my French master set me to write letters for him. The letters
+gradually became conversation and narrative, and the adventures of
+the family sweetened the toils of French composition. In the
+exigencies of village school building in those days gone by, before
+in every place
+
+
+"It there behoved him to set up the standard of her Grace,"
+
+
+the tale was actually printed for private sale, as a link between
+translations of short stories.
+
+This process only stifled the family in my imagination for a time.
+They awoke once more with new names, but substantially the same, and
+were my companions in many a solitary walk, the results of which were
+scribbled down in leisure moments to be poured into my mother's ever
+patient and sympathetic ears.
+
+And then came the impulse to literature for young people given by the
+example of that memorable book the Fairy Bower, and followed up by
+Amy Herbert. It was felt that elder children needed something of a
+deeper tone than the Edgeworthian style, yet less directly religious
+than the Sherwood class of books; and on that wave of opinion, my
+little craft floated out into the great sea of the public.
+
+Friends, whose kindness astonished me, and fills me with gratitude
+when I look back on it, gave me seasonable criticism and pruning, and
+finally launched me. My heroes and heroines had arranged themselves
+so as to work out a definite principle, and this was enough for us
+all.
+
+Children's books had not been supposed to require a plot. Miss
+Edgeworth's, which I still continue to think gems in their own line,
+are made chronicles, or, more truly, illustrations of various truths
+worked out upon the same personages. Moreover, the skill of a Jane
+Austen or a Mrs. Gaskell is required to produce a perfect plot
+without doing violence to the ordinary events of an every-day life.
+It is all a matter of arrangement. Mrs. Gaskell can make a perfect
+little plot out of a sick lad and a canary bird; and another can do
+nothing with half a dozen murders and an explosion; and of arranging
+my materials so as to build up a story, I was quite incapable. It is
+still my great deficiency; but in those days I did not even
+understand that the attempt was desirable. Criticism was a more
+thorough thing in those times than it has since become through the
+multiplicity of books to be hurried over, and it was often very
+useful, as when it taught that such arrangement of incident was the
+means of developing the leading idea.
+
+Yet, with all its faults, the children, who had been real to me,
+caught, chiefly by the youthful sense of fun and enjoyment, the
+attention of other children; and the curious semi-belief one has in
+the phantoms of one's brain made me dwell on their after life and
+share my discoveries with my friends, not, however, writing them down
+till after the lapse of all these years the tenderness inspired by
+associations of early days led to taking up once more the old
+characters in The Two Sides of the Shield; and the kind welcome this
+has met with has led to the resuscitation of the crude and
+inexperienced tale which never pretended to be more than a mere
+family chronicle.
+
+C. M. YONGE.
+6th October 1886.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I--THE ELDER SISTER
+
+
+
+'Return, and in the daily round
+ Of duty and of love,
+Thou best wilt find that patient faith
+ That lifts the soul above.'
+
+Eleanor Mohun was the eldest child of a gentleman of old family, and
+good property, who had married the sister of his friend and
+neighbour, the Marquis of Rotherwood. The first years of her life
+were marked by few events. She was a quiet, steady, useful girl,
+finding her chief pleasure in nursing and teaching her brothers and
+sisters, and her chief annoyance in her mamma's attempts to make her
+a fine lady; but before she had reached her nineteenth year she had
+learnt to know real anxiety and sorrow. Her mother, after suffering
+much from grief at the loss of her two brothers, fell into so
+alarming a state of health, that her husband was obliged immediately
+to hurry her away to Italy, leaving the younger children under the
+care of a governess, and the elder boys at school, while Eleanor
+alone accompanied them.
+
+Their absence lasted nearly three years, and during the last winter,
+an engagement commenced between Eleanor and Mr. Francis Hawkesworth,
+rather to the surprise of Lady Emily, who wondered that he had been
+able to discover the real worth veiled beneath a formal and retiring
+manner, and to admire features which, though regular, had a want of
+light and animation, which diminished their beauty even more than the
+thinness and compression of the lips, and the very pale gray of the
+eyes.
+
+The family were about to return to England, where the marriage was to
+take place, when Lady Emily was attacked with a sudden illness, which
+her weakened frame was unable to resist, and in a very few days she
+died, leaving the little Adeline, about eight months old, to
+accompany her father and sister on their melancholy journey
+homewards. This loss made a great change in the views of Eleanor,
+who, as she considered the cares and annoyances which would fall on
+her father, when left to bear the whole burthen of the management of
+the children and household, felt it was her duty to give up her own
+prospects of happiness, and to remain at home. How could she leave
+the tender little ones to the care of servants--trust her sisters to
+a governess, and make her brothers' home yet more dreary? She knew
+her father to be strong in sense and firm in judgment, but indolent,
+indulgent, and inattentive to details, and she could not bear to
+leave him to be harassed by the petty cares of a numerous family,
+especially when broken in spirits and weighed down with sorrow. She
+thought her duty was plain, and, accordingly, she wrote to Mr.
+Hawkesworth, to beg him to allow her to withdraw her promise.
+
+Her brother Henry was the only person who knew what she had done, and
+he alone perceived something of tremulousness about her in the midst
+of the even cheerfulness with which she had from the first supported
+her father's spirits. Mr. Mohun, however, did not long remain in
+ignorance, for Frank Hawkesworth himself arrived at Beechcroft to
+plead his cause with Eleanor. He knew her value too well to give her
+up, and Mr. Mohun would not hear of her making such a sacrifice for
+his sake. But Eleanor was also firm, and after weeks of unhappiness
+and uncertainty, it was at length arranged that she should remain at
+home till Emily was old enough to take her place, and that Frank
+should then return from India and claim his bride.
+
+Well did she discharge the duties which she had undertaken; she kept
+her father's mind at ease, followed out his views, managed the boys
+with discretion and gentleness, and made her sisters well-informed
+and accomplished girls; but, for want of fully understanding the
+characters of her two next sisters, Emily and Lilias, she made some
+mistakes with regard to them. The clouds of sorrow, to her so dark
+and heavy, had been to them but morning mists, and the four years
+which had changed her from a happy girl into a thoughtful, anxious
+woman, had brought them to an age which, if it is full of the follies
+of childhood, also partakes of the earnestness of youth; an age when
+deep foundations of enduring confidence may be laid by one who can
+enter into and direct the deeper flow of mind and feeling which lurks
+hid beneath the freaks and fancies of the early years of girlhood.
+But Eleanor had little sympathy for freaks and fancies. She knew the
+realities of life too well to build airy castles with younger and
+gayer spirits; her sisters' romance seemed to her dangerous folly,
+and their lively nonsense levity and frivolity. They were too
+childish to share in her confidence, and she was too busy and too
+much preoccupied to have ear or mind for visionary trifles, though to
+trifles of real life she paid no small degree of attention.
+
+It might have been otherwise had Henry Mohun lived; but in the midst
+of the affection of all who knew him, honour from those who could
+appreciate his noble character, and triumphs gained by his uncommon
+talents, he was cut off by a short illness, when not quite nineteen,
+a most grievous loss to his family, and above all, to Eleanor.
+Unlike her, as he was joyous, high-spirited, full of fun, and
+overflowing with imagination and poetry, there was a very close bond
+of union between them, in the strong sense of duty, the firmness of
+purpose, and energy of mind which both possessed, and which made
+Eleanor feel perfect reliance on him, and look up to him with earnest
+admiration. With him alone she was unreserved; he was the only
+person who could ever make her show a spark of liveliness, and on his
+death, it was only with the most painful efforts that she could
+maintain her composed demeanour and fulfil her daily duties. Years
+passed on, and still she felt the blank which Harry had left, almost
+as much as the first day that she heard of his death, but she never
+spoke of him, and to her sisters it seemed as if he was forgotten.
+The reserve which had begun to thaw under his influence, again
+returning, placed her a still greater distance from the younger
+girls, and unconsciously she became still more of a governess and
+less of a sister. Little did she know of the 'blissful dreams in
+secret shared' between Emily, Lilias, and their brother Claude, and
+little did she perceive the danger that Lilias would be run away with
+by a lively imagination, repressed and starved, but entirely
+untrained.
+
+Whatever influenced Lilias, had, through her, nearly the same effect
+upon Emily, a gentle girl, easily led, especially by Lilias, whom she
+regarded with the fondest affection and admiration. The perils of
+fancy and romance were not, however, to be dreaded for Jane, the
+fourth sister, a strong resemblance of Eleanor in her clear common
+sense, love of neatness, and active usefulness; but there were other
+dangers for her, in her tendency to faults, which, under wise
+training, had not yet developed themselves.
+
+Such were the three girls who were now left to assist each other in
+the management of the household, and who looked forward to their new
+offices with the various sensations of pleasure, anxiety, self-
+importance, and self-mistrust, suited to their differing characters,
+and to the ages of eighteen, sixteen, and fourteen.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II--THE NEW COURT
+
+
+
+'Just at the age 'twixt boy and youth,
+When thought is speech, and speech is truth.'
+
+The long-delayed wedding took place on the 13th of January, 1845, and
+the bride and bridegroom immediately departed for a year's visit
+among Mr. Hawkesworth's relations in Northumberland, whence they were
+to return to Beechcroft, merely for a farewell, before sailing for
+India.
+
+It was half-past nine in the evening, and the wedding over--Mr. and
+Mrs. Hawkesworth gone, and the guests departed, the drawing-room had
+returned to its usual state. It was a very large room, so spacious
+that it would have been waste and desolate, had it not been well
+filled with handsome, but heavy old-fashioned furniture, covered with
+crimson damask, and one side of the room fitted up with a bookcase,
+so high that there was a spiral flight of library steps to give
+access to the upper shelves. Opposite were four large windows, now
+hidden by their ample curtains; and near them was at one end of the
+room a piano, at the other a drawing-desk. The walls were wainscoted
+with polished black oak, the panels reflecting the red fire-light
+like mirrors. Over the chimney-piece hung a portrait, by Vandyke, of
+a pale, dark cavalier, of noble mien, and with arched eyebrows,
+called by Lilias, in defiance of dates, by the name of Sir Maurice de
+Mohun, the hero of the family, and allowed by every one to be a
+striking likeness of Claude, the youth who at that moment lay,
+extending a somewhat superfluous length of limb upon the sofa, which
+was placed commodiously at right angles to the fire.
+
+The other side of the fire was Mr. Mohun's special domain, and there
+he sat at his writing-table, abstracted by deafness and letter
+writing, from the various sounds of mirth and nonsense, which
+proceeded from the party round the long narrow sofa table, which they
+had drawn across the front of the fire, leaving the large round
+centre table in darkness and oblivion.
+
+This party had within the last half hour been somewhat thinned; the
+three younger girls had gone to bed, the Rector of Beechcroft, Mr.
+Robert Devereux, had been called home to attend some parish business,
+and there remained Emily and Lilias--tall graceful girls, with soft
+hazel eyes, clear dark complexions, and a quantity of long brown
+curls. The latter was busily completing a guard for the watch, which
+Mr. Hawkesworth had presented to Reginald, a fine handsome boy of
+eleven, who, with his elbows on the table, sat contemplating her
+progress, and sometimes teasing his brother Maurice, who was
+earnestly engaged in constructing a model with some cards, which he
+had pilfered from the heap before Emily. She was putting her
+sister's wedding cards into their shining envelopes, and directing
+them in readiness for the post the next morning, while they were
+sealed by a youth of the same age as Claude, a small slim figure,
+with light complexion and hair, and dark gray eyes full of brightness
+and vivacity.
+
+He was standing, so as to be more on a level with the high candle,
+and as Emily's writing was not quite so rapid as his sealing, he
+amused himself in the intervals with burning his own fingers, by
+twisting the wax into odd shapes.
+
+'Why do you not seal up his eyes?' inquired Reginald, with an arch
+glance towards his brother on the sofa.
+
+'Do it yourself, you rogue,' was the answer, at the same time
+approaching with the hot sealing-wax in his hand--a demonstration
+which occasioned Claude to open his eyes very wide, without giving
+himself any further trouble about the matter.
+
+'Eh?' said he, 'now they try to look innocent, as if no one could
+hear them plotting mischief.'
+
+'Them! it was not!--Redgie there--young ladies--I appeal--was not I
+as innocent?'--was the very rapid, incoherent, and indistinct answer.
+
+'After so lucid and connected a justification, no more can be said,'
+replied Claude, in a kind of 'leave me, leave me to repose' tone,
+which occasioned Lilias to say, 'I am afraid you are very tired.'
+
+'Tired! what has he done to tire him?'
+
+'I am sure a wedding is a terrible wear of spirits!' said Emily--
+'such excitement.'
+
+'Well--when I give a spectacle to the family next year, I mean to
+tire you to some purpose.'
+
+'Eh?' said Mr. Mohun, looking up, 'is Rotherwood's wedding to be the
+next?'
+
+'You ought to understand, uncle,' said Lord Rotherwood, making two
+stops towards him, and speaking a little more clearly, 'I thought you
+longed to get rid of your nephew and his concerns.'
+
+'You idle boy!' returned Mr. Mohun, 'you do not mean to have the
+impertinence to come of age next year.'
+
+'As much as having been born on the 30th of July, 1825, can make me.'
+
+'But what good will your coming of age do us?' said Lilias, 'you will
+be in London or Brighton, or some such stupid place.'
+
+'Do not be senseless, Lily,' returned her cousin. 'Devereux Castle
+is to be in splendour--Hetherington in amazement--the county's hair
+shall stand on end--illuminations, bonfires, feasts, balls, colours
+flying, bands playing, tenants dining, fireworks--'
+
+'Hurrah! jolly! jolly!' shouted Reginald, dancing on the ottoman,
+'and mind there are lots of squibs.'
+
+'And that Master Reginald Mohun has a new cap and bells for the
+occasion,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Let me make some fireworks,' said Maurice.
+
+'You will begin like a noble baron of the hospitable olden time,'
+said Lily.
+
+'It will be like the old days, when every birthday of yours was a
+happy day for the people at Hetherington,' said Emily.
+
+'Ah! those were happy old days,' said Lord Rotherwood, in a graver
+tone.
+
+'These are happy days, are not they?' said Lily, smiling.
+
+Her cousin answered with a sigh, 'Yes, but you do not remember the
+old ones, Lily;' then, after a pause, he added, 'It was a grievous
+mistake to shut up the castle all these years. We have lost sight of
+everybody. I do not even know what has become of the Aylmers.'
+
+'They went to live in London,' said Emily, 'Aunt Robert used to write
+to them there.'
+
+'I know, I know, but where are they now?'
+
+'In London, I should think,' said Emily. 'Some one said Miss Aylmer
+was gone out as a governess.'
+
+'Indeed! I wish I could hear more! Poor Mr. Aylmer! He was the
+first man who tried to teach me Latin. I wonder what has become of
+that mad fellow Edward, and Devereux, my father's godson! Was not
+Mrs. Aylmer badly off? I cannot bear that people should be
+forgotten!'
+
+'It is not so very long that we have lost sight of them,' said Emily.
+
+'Eight years,' said Lord Rotherwood. 'He died six weeks after my
+father. Well! I have made my mother promise to come home.'
+
+'Really?' said Lilias, 'she has been coming so often.'
+
+'Aye--but she is coming this time. She is to spend the winter at the
+castle, and make acquaintance with all the neighbourhood.'
+
+'His lordship is romancing,' said Claude to Lily in a confidential
+tone.
+
+'I'll punish you for suspecting me of talking hyperborean language--
+hyperbolical, I mean,' cried Lord Rotherwood; 'I'll make you dance
+the Polka with all the beauty and fashion.'
+
+'Then I shall stay at Oxford till it is over,' said Claude.
+
+'You do not know what a treasure you will be,' said the Marquis,
+'ladies like nothing so well as dancing with a fellow twice the
+height he should be.'
+
+'Beware of putting me forward,' said Claude, rising, and, as he leant
+against the chimney-piece, looking down from his height of six feet
+three, with a patronising air upon his cousin, 'I shall be taken for
+the hero, and you for my little brother.'
+
+'I wish I was,' said Lord Rotherwood, 'it would be much better fun.
+I should escape the speechifying, the worst part of it.'
+
+'Yes,' said Claude, 'for one whose speeches will be scraps of three
+words each, strung together with the burthen of the apprentices'
+song, Radara tadara, tandore.'
+
+'Radaratade,' said the Marquis, laughing. 'By the bye, if Eleanor
+and Frank Hawkesworth manage well, they may be here in time.'
+
+'Because they are so devoted to gaiety?' said Claude. 'You will say
+next that William is coming from Canada, on purpose.'
+
+'That tall captain!' said Lord Rotherwood. 'He used to be a very
+awful person.'
+
+'Ah! he used to keep the spoilt Marquis in order,' said Claude.
+
+'To say nothing of the spoilt Claude,' returned Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Claude never was spoilt,' said Lily.
+
+'It was not Eleanor's way,' said Emily.
+
+'At least she cannot be accused of spoiling me,' said Lord
+Rotherwood. 'I shall never dare to write at that round table again--
+her figure will occupy the chair like Banquo's ghost, and wave me off
+with a knitting needle.'
+
+'Ah! that stain of ink was a worse blot on your character than on the
+new table cover,' said Claude.
+
+'She was rigidly impartial,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'No,' said Claude, 'she made exceptions in favour of Ada and me. She
+left the spoiling of the rest to Emily.'
+
+'And well Emily will perform it! A pretty state you will be in by
+the 30th of July, 1846,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Why should not Emily make as good a duenna as Eleanor?' said Lily.
+
+'Why should she not? She will not--that is all,' said the Marquis.
+'Such slow people you all are! You would all go to sleep if I did
+not sometimes rouse you up a little--grow stagnant.'
+
+'Not an elegant comparison,' said Lilias; 'besides, you must remember
+that your hasty brawling streams do not reflect like tranquil lakes.'
+
+'One of Lily's poetical hits, I declare!' said Lord Rotherwood, 'but
+she need not have taken offence--I did not refer to her--only Claude
+and Emily, and perhaps--no, I will not say who else.'
+
+'Then, Rotherwood, I will tell you what I am--the Lily that derives
+all its support from the calm lake.'
+
+'Well done, Lily, worthy of yourself,' cried Lord Rotherwood,
+laughing, 'but you know I am always off when you talk poetry.'
+
+'I suspect it is time for us all to be off,' said Claude, 'did I not
+hear it strike the quarter?'
+
+'And to-morrow I shall be off in earnest,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+'Half way to London before Claude has given one turn to "his sides,
+and his shoulders, and his heavy head."'
+
+'Shall we see you at Easter?' said Emily.
+
+'No, I do not think you will. I am engaged to stay with somebody
+somewhere, I forget the name of place and man; besides, Grosvenor
+Square is more tolerable then than at any other time of the year, and
+I shall spend a fortnight with my mother and Florence. It is after
+Easter that you come to Oxford, is it not, Claude?'
+
+'Yes, my year of idleness will be over. And there is the Baron
+looking at his watch.'
+
+The 'Baron' was the title by which the young people were wont to
+distinguish Mr. Mohun, who, as Lily believed, had a right to the
+title of Baron of Beechcroft. It was certain that he was the
+representative of a family which had been settled at Beechcroft ever
+since the Norman Conquest, and Lily was very proud of the name of Sir
+William de Moune in the battle roll, and of Sir John among the first
+Knights of the Garter. Her favourite was Sir Maurice, who had held
+out Beechcroft Court for six weeks against the Roundheads, and had
+seen the greater part of the walls battered down. Witnesses of the
+strength of the old castle yet remained in the massive walls and
+broad green ramparts, which enclosed what was now orchard and farm-
+yard, and was called the Old Court, while the dwelling-house, built
+by Sir Maurice after the Restoration, was named the New Court. Sir
+Maurice had lost many an acre in the cause of King Charles, and his
+new mansion was better suited to the honest squires who succeeded
+him, than to the mighty barons his ancestors. It was substantial and
+well built, with a square gravelled court in front, and great, solid,
+folding gates opening into a lane, bordered with very tall well-
+clipped holly hedges, forming a polished, green, prickly wall. There
+was a little door in one of these gates, which was scarcely ever
+shut, from whence a well-worn path led to the porch, where generally
+reposed a huge Newfoundland dog, guardian of the hoops and
+walkingsticks that occupied the corners. The front door was of heavy
+substantial oak, studded with nails, and never closed in the daytime,
+and the hall, wainscoted and floored with slippery oak, had a noble
+open fireplace, with a wood fire burning on the hearth.
+
+On the other side of the house was a terrace sloping down to a lawn
+and bowling-green, hedged in by a formal row of evergreens. A noble
+plane-tree was in the middle of the lawn, and beyond it a pond
+renowned for water-lilies. To the left was the kitchen garden,
+terminating in an orchard, planted on the ramparts and moat of the
+Old Court; then came the farm buildings, and beyond them a field,
+sloping upwards to an extensive wood called Beechcroft Park. In the
+wood was the cottage of Walter Greenwood, gamekeeper and woodman by
+hereditary succession, but able and willing to turn his hand to
+anything, and, in fact, as Adeline once elegantly termed him, the
+'family tee totum.'
+
+To the right of the house there was a field, called Long Acre,
+bounded on the other side by the turnpike road to Raynham, which led
+up the hill to the village green, surrounded by well-kept cottages
+and gardens. The principal part of the village was, however, at the
+foot of the hill, where the Court lane crossed the road, led to the
+old church, the school, and parsonage, in its little garden, shut in
+by thick yew hedges. Beyond was the blacksmith's shop, more
+cottages, and Mrs. Appleton's wondrous village warehouse; and the
+lane, after passing by the handsome old farmhouse of Mr. Harrington,
+Mr. Mohun's principal tenant, led to a bridge across a clear trout
+stream, the boundary of the parish of Beechcroft.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III--THE NEW PRINCIPLE
+
+
+
+'And wilt thou show no more, quoth he,
+ Than doth thy duty bind?
+I well perceive thy love is small.'
+
+On the Sunday evening which followed Eleanor's wedding, Lilias was
+sitting next to Emily, and talking in very earnest tones, which after
+a time occasioned Claude to look up and say, 'What is all this about?
+Something remarkably absurd I suspect.'
+
+'Only a new principle,' said Emily.
+
+'New!' cried Lily, 'only what must be the feeling of every person of
+any warmth of character?'
+
+'Now for it then,' said Claude.
+
+'No, no, Claude, I really mean it (and Lily sincerely thought she
+did). I will not tell you if you are going to laugh.'
+
+'That depends upon what your principle may chance to be,' said
+Claude. 'What is it, Emily? She will be much obliged to you for
+telling.'
+
+'She only says she cannot bear people to do their duty, and not to
+act from a feeling of love,' said Emily.
+
+'That is not fair,' returned Lily, 'all I say is, that it is better
+that people should act upon love for its own sake, than upon duty for
+its own sake.'
+
+'What comes in rhyme with Lily?' said Claude.
+
+'Don't be tiresome, Claude, I really want you to understand me.'
+
+'Wait till you understand yourself,' said the provoking brother, 'and
+let me finish what I am reading.'
+
+For about a quarter of an hour he was left in peace, while Lily was
+busily employed with a pencil and paper, under the shadow of a book,
+and at length laid before him the following verses:-
+
+
+'What is the source of gentleness,
+The spring of human blessedness,
+Bringing the wounded spirit healing,
+The comforts high of heaven revealing,
+The lightener of each daily care,
+The wing of hope, the life of prayer,
+The zest of joy, the balm of sorrow,
+Bliss of to-day, hope of to-morrow,
+The glory of the sun's bright beam,
+The softness of the pale moon stream,
+The flow'ret's grace, the river's voice,
+The tune to which the birds rejoice;
+Without it, vain each learned page,
+Cold and unfelt each council sage,
+Heavy and dull each human feature,
+Lifeless and wretched every creature;
+In which alone the glory lies,
+Which value gives to sacrifice?
+'Tis that which formed the whole creation,
+Which rests on every generation.
+Of Paradise the only token
+Just left us, 'mid our treasures broken,
+Which never can from us be riven,
+Sure earnest of the joys of Heaven.
+And which, when earth shall pass away,
+Shall be our rest on the last day,
+When tongues shall fail and knowledge cease,
+And throbbing hearts be all at peace:
+When faith is sight, and hope is sure,
+That which alone shall still endure
+Of earthly joys in heaven above,
+'Tis that best gift, eternal Love!'
+
+
+'What have you there?' said Mr. Mohun, who had come towards them
+while Claude was reading the lines. Taking the paper from Claude's
+hand, he read it to himself, and then saying, 'Tolerable, Lily; there
+are some things to alter, but you may easily make it passable,' he
+went on to his own place, leaving Lilias triumphant.
+
+'Well, Claude, you see I have the great Baron on my side.'
+
+'I am of the Baron's opinion,' said Claude, 'the only wonder is that
+you doubted it.'
+
+'You seemed to say that love was good for nothing.'
+
+'I said nothing but that Lily has a rhyme.'
+
+'And saying that I was silly, was equivalent to saying that love was
+nothing,' said Lily.
+
+'O Lily, I hope not,' said Claude, with a comical air.
+
+'Well, I know I often am foolish, but not in this,' said Lily; 'I do
+say that mere duty is not lovable.'
+
+'Say it if you will then,' said Claude, yawning, 'only let me finish
+this sermon.'
+
+Lily set herself to reconsider some of her lines: but presently
+Emily left the room, Claude looked up, and Lily exclaimed, 'Now,
+Claude, let us make a trial of it.'
+
+'Well,' said Claude, yawning again, and looking resigned.
+
+'Think how Eleanor went on telling us of duty, duty, duty--never
+making allowances--never relaxing her stiff rules about trifles--
+never unbending from her duenna-like dignity--never showing one spark
+of enthusiasm--making great sacrifices, but only because she thought
+them her duty--because it was right--good for herself--only a higher
+kind of selfishness--not because her feeling prompted her.'
+
+'Certainly, feeling does not usually prompt people to give up their
+lovers for the sake of their brothers and sisters.'
+
+'She did it because it was her duty,' said Lily, 'quite as if she did
+not care.'
+
+'I wonder whether Frank thought so,' said Claude.
+
+'At any rate you will confess that Emily is a much more engaging
+person,' said Lily.
+
+'Certainly, I had rather talk nonsense to her,' said Claude.
+
+'You feel it, though you will not allow it,' said Lily. 'Now think
+of Emily's sympathy, and gentleness, and sweet smile, and tell me if
+she is not a complete personification of love. And then Eleanor,
+unpoetical--never thrown off her balance by grief or joy, with no ups
+and downs--no enthusiasm--no appreciation of the beautiful--her
+highest praise "very right," and tell me if there can be a better
+image of duty.'
+
+Claude might have had some chance of bringing Lily to her senses, if
+he had allowed that there was some truth in what she had said; but he
+thought the accusation so unjust in general, that he would not agree
+to any part of it, and only answered, 'You have very strange views of
+duty and of Eleanor.'
+
+'Well!' replied Lily, 'I only ask you to watch; Emily and I are
+determined to act on the principle of love, and you will see if her
+government is not more successful than that of duty.'
+
+Such was the principle upon which Lily intended her sister to govern
+the household, and to which Emily listened without knowing what she
+meant much better than she did herself. Emily's own views, as far as
+she possessed any, were to get on as smoothly as she could, and make
+everybody pleased and happy, without much trouble to herself, and
+also to make the establishment look a little more as if a Lady Emily
+had lately been its mistress, than had been the case in Eleanor's
+time. Mr. Mohun's property was good, but he wished to avoid
+unnecessary display and expense, and he expected his daughters to
+follow out these views, keeping a wise check upon Emily, by looking
+over her accounts every Saturday, and turning a deaf ear when she
+talked of the age of the drawing-room carpet, and the ugliness of the
+old chariot. Emily had a good deal on her hands, requiring sense and
+activity, but Lilias and Jane were now quite old enough to assist
+her. Lily however, thought fit to despise all household affairs, and
+bestowed the chief of her attention on her own department--the
+village school and poor people; and she was also much engrossed by
+her music and drawing, her German and Italian, and her verse writing.
+
+Claude had more power over her than any one else. He was a gentle,
+amiable boy, of high talent, but disposed to indolence by ill health.
+In most matters he was, however, victorious over this propensity,
+which was chiefly visible in his love of easy chairs, and his dislike
+of active sports, which made him the especial companion of his
+sisters. A dangerous illness had occasioned his removal from Eton,
+and he had since been at home, reading with his cousin Mr. Devereux,
+and sharing his sisters' amusements.
+
+Jane was in her own estimation an important member of the
+administration, and in fact, was Emily's chief assistant and deputy.
+She was very small and trimly made, everything fitted her precisely,
+and she had tiny dexterous fingers, and active little feet, on which
+she darted about noiselessly and swiftly as an arrow; an oval brown
+face, bright colour, straight features, and smooth dark hair, bright
+sparkling black eyes, a little mouth, wearing an arch subdued smile,
+very white teeth, and altogether the air of a woman in miniature.
+Brisk, bold, and blithe--ever busy and ever restless, she was
+generally known by the names of Brownie and Changeling, which were
+not inappropriate to her active and prying disposition.
+
+Excepting Claude and Emily, the young party were early risers, and
+Lily especially had generally despatched a good deal of business
+before the eight o'clock breakfast.
+
+At nine they went to church, Mr. Devereux having restored the custom
+of daily service, and after this, Mr. Mohun attended to his
+multitudinous affairs; Claude went to the parsonage,--Emily to the
+storeroom, Lily to the village, the younger girls to the schoolroom,
+where they were presently joined by Emily. Lily remained in her own
+room till one o'clock, when she joined the others in the schoolroom,
+and they read aloud some book of history till two, the hour of dinner
+for the younger, and of luncheon for the elder. They then went out,
+and on their return from evening service, which began at half-past
+four, the little ones had their lessons to learn, and the others were
+variously employed till dinner, the time of which was rather
+uncertain but always late. The evening passed pleasantly and quickly
+away in reading, work, music, and chatter.
+
+As Emily had expected, her first troubles were with Phyllis; called,
+not the neat handed, by her sisters; Master Phyl, by her brothers;
+and Miss Tomboy, by the maids. She seemed born to be a trial of
+patience to all concerned with her; yet without many actual faults,
+except giddiness, restlessness, and unrestrained spirits. In the
+drawing-room, schoolroom, and nursery she was continually in scrapes,
+and so often reproved and repentant, that her loud roaring fits of
+crying were amongst the ordinary noises of the New Court. She was
+terribly awkward when under constraint, or in learning any female
+accomplishment, but swift and ready when at her ease, and glorying in
+the boyish achievements of leaping ditches and climbing trees. Her
+voice was rather highly pitched, and she had an inveterate habit of
+saying, 'I'll tell you what,' at the beginning of all her speeches.
+She was not tall, but strong, square, firm, and active; she had a
+round merry face, a broad forehead, and large bright laughing eyes,
+of a doubtful shade between gray and brown. Her mouth was wide, her
+nose turned up, her complexion healthy, but not rosy, and her stiff
+straight brown hair was more apt to hang over her eyes, than to
+remain in its proper place behind her ears.
+
+Adeline was very different; her fair and brilliant complexion, her
+deep blue eyes and golden ringlets, made her a very lovely little
+creature; her quietness was a relief after her sister's boisterous
+merriment, and her dislike of dirt and brambles, continually
+contrasted with poor Phyllis's recklessness of such impediments. Ada
+readily learnt lessons, which cost Phyllis and her teacher hours of
+toil; Ada worked deftly when Phyllis's stiff fingers never willingly
+touched a needle; Ada played with a doll, drew on scraps of paper, or
+put up dissected maps, while Phyllis was in mischief or in the way.
+A book was the only chance of interesting her; but very few books
+took her fancy enough to occupy her long;--those few, however, she
+read over and over again, and when unusual tranquillity reigned in
+the drawing-room, she was sure to be found curled up at the top of
+the library steps, reading one of three books--Robinson Crusoe,
+Little Jack, or German Popular Tales. Then Emily blamed her
+ungraceful position, Jane laughed at her uniform taste, and Lily
+proposed some story about modern children, such as Phyllis never
+could like, and the constant speech was repeated, 'Only look at Ada!'
+till Phyllis considered her sister as a perfect model, and sighed
+over her own naughtiness.
+
+German Popular Tales were a recent introduction of Claude's, for
+Eleanor had carefully excluded all fairy tales from her sisters'
+library; so great was her dread of works of fiction, that Emily and
+Lilias had never been allowed to read any of the Waverley Novels,
+excepting Guy Mannering, which their brother Henry had insisted upon
+reading aloud to them the last time he was at home, and that had
+taken so strong a hold on their imagination, that Eleanor was quite
+alarmed.
+
+One day Mr. Mohun chanced to refer to some passage in Waverley, and
+on finding that his daughters did not understand him, he expressed
+great surprise at their want of taste.
+
+Poor things,' said Claude, 'they cannot help it; do not you know that
+Eleanor thinks the Waverley Novels a sort of slow poison? They know
+no more of them than their outsides.'
+
+'Well, the sooner they know the inside the better.'
+
+'Then may we really read them, papa?' cried Lily.
+
+'And welcome,' said her father.
+
+This permission once given, the young ladies had no idea of
+moderation; Lily's heart and soul were wrapped up in whatever tale
+she chanced to be reading--she talked of little else, she neglected
+her daily occupations, and was in a kind of trance for about three
+weeks. At length she was recalled to her senses by her father's
+asking her why she had shown him no drawings lately. Lily hesitated
+for a moment, and then said, 'Papa, I am sorry I was so idle.'
+
+'Take care,' said Mr. Mohun, 'let us be able to give a good account
+of ourselves when Eleanor comes.'
+
+'I am afraid, papa,' said Lily, 'the truth is, that my head has been
+so full of Woodstock for the last few days, that I could do nothing.'
+
+'And before that?'
+
+'The Bride of Lammermoor.'
+
+'And last week?'
+
+'Waverley. Oh! papa, I am afraid you must be very angry with me.'
+
+'No, no, Lily, not yet,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I do not think you quite
+knew what an intoxicating draught you had got hold of; I should have
+cautioned you. Your negligence has not yet been a serious fault,
+though remember, that it becomes so after warning.'
+
+'Then,' said Lily, 'I will just finish Peveril at once, and get it
+out of my head, and then read no more of the dear books,' and she
+gave a deep sigh.
+
+'Lily would take the temperance pledge, on condition that she might
+finish her bottle at a draught,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+Lily laughed, and looked down, feeling quite unable to offer to give
+up Peveril before she had finished it, but her father relieved her,
+by saying in his kind voice, 'No, no, Lily, take my advice, read
+those books, for most of them are very good reading, and very pretty
+reading, and very useful reading, and you can hardly be called a
+well-educated person if you do not know them; but read them only
+after the duties of the day are done--make them your pleasure, but do
+not make yourself their slave.'
+
+'Lily,' said Claude the next morning, as he saw her prepare her
+drawing-desk, 'why are you not reading Peveril?'
+
+'You know what papa said yesterday,' was the answer.
+
+'Oh! but I thought your feelings were with poor Julian in the Tower,'
+said Claude.
+
+'My feelings prompt me to sacrifice my pleasure in reading about him
+to please papa, after he spoke so kindly.'
+
+'If that is always the effect of your principle, I shall think better
+of it,' said Claude.
+
+Lily, whether from her new principle, or her old habits of obedience,
+never ventured to touch one of her tempters till after five o'clock,
+but, as she was a very rapid reader, she generally contrived to
+devour more than a sufficient quantity every evening, so that she did
+not enjoy them as much as she would, had she been less voracious in
+her appetite, and they made her complain grievously of the dulness of
+the latter part of Russell's Modern Europe, which was being read in
+the schoolroom, and yawn nearly as much as Phyllis over the
+'Pragmatic Sanction.' However, when that book was concluded, and
+they began Palgrave's Anglo Saxons, Lily was seized within a sudden
+historical fever. She could hardly wait till one o'clock, before she
+settled herself at the schoolroom table with her work, and summoned
+every one, however occupied, to listen to the reading.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV--HONEST PHYL
+
+
+
+'Multiplication
+Is a vexation.'
+
+It was a bright and beautiful afternoon in March, the song of the
+blackbird and thrush, and the loud chirp of the titmouse, came
+merrily through the schoolroom window, mixed with the sounds of happy
+voices in the garden; the western sun shone brightly in, and tinged
+the white wainscoted wall with yellow light; the cat sat in the
+window-seat, winking at the sun, and sleepily whisking her tail for
+the amusement of her kitten, which was darting to and fro, and
+patting her on the head, in the hope of rousing her to some more
+active sport.
+
+But in the midst of all these joyous sights and sounds, was heard a
+dolorous voice repeating, 'three and four are--three and four are--oh
+dear! they are--seven, no, but I do not think it is a four after all,
+is it not a one? Oh dear!' And on the floor lay Phyllis, her back
+to the window, kicking her feet slowly up and down, and yawning and
+groaning over her slate.
+
+Presently the door opened, and Claude looked in, and very nearly
+departed again instantly, for Phyllis at that moment made a horrible
+squeaking with her slate-pencil, the sound above all others that he
+disliked. He, however, stopped, and asked where Emily was.
+
+'Out in the garden,' answered Phyllis, with a tremendous yawn.
+
+'What are you doing here, looking so piteous?' said Claude.
+
+'My sum,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Is this your time of day for arithmetic?' asked he.
+
+'No,' said Phyllis, 'only I had not done it by one o'clock to-day,
+and Lily said I must finish after learning my lessons for to-morrow,
+but I do not think I shall ever have done, it is so hard. Oh!'
+(another stretch and a yawn, verging on a howl), 'and Jane and Ada
+are sowing the flower-seeds. Oh dear! Oh dear!' and Phyllis's face
+contracted, in readiness to cry.
+
+'And is that the best position for doing sums?' said Claude.
+
+'I was obliged to lie down here to get out of the way of Ada's sum,'
+said Phyllis, getting up.
+
+'Get out of the way of Ada's sum?' repeated Claude.
+
+'Yes, she left it on the table where I was sitting, where I could see
+it, and it is this very one, so I must not look at it; I wish I could
+do sums as fast as she can.'
+
+'Could you not have turned the other side of the slate upwards?' said
+Claude, smiling.
+
+'So I could!' said Phyllis, as if a new light had broken in upon her.
+'But then I wanted to be out of sight of pussy, for I could not think
+a bit, while the kitten was at play so prettily, and I kicked my
+heels to keep from hearing the voices in the garden, for it does make
+me so unhappy!'
+
+Some good-natured brothers would have told the little girl not to
+mind, and sent her out to enjoy herself, but Claude respected
+Phyllis's honesty too much to do so, and he said, 'Well, Phyl, let me
+see the sum, and we will try if we cannot conquer it between us.'
+
+Phyllis's face cleared up in an instant, as she brought the slate to
+her brother.
+
+'What is this?' said he; 'I do not understand.'
+
+'Compound Addition,' said Phyllis, 'I did one with Emily yesterday,
+and this is the second.'
+
+'Oh! these are marks between the pounds, shillings, and pence,' said
+Claude, 'I took them for elevens; well, I do not wonder at your
+troubles, I could not do this sum as it is set.'
+
+'Could not you, indeed?' cried Phyllis, quite delighted.
+
+'No, indeed,' said Claude. 'Suppose we set it again, more clearly;
+but how is this? When I was in the schoolroom we always had a sponge
+fastened to the slate.'
+
+'Yes,' said Phyllis, 'I had one before Eleanor went, but my string
+broke, and I lost it, and Emily always forgets to give me another. I
+will run and wash the slate in the nursery; but how shall we know
+what the sum is?'
+
+'Why, I suppose I may look at Ada's slate, though you must not,' said
+Claude, laughing to himself at poor little honest simplicity, as he
+applied himself to cut a new point to her very stumpy slate-pencil,
+and she scampered away, and returned in a moment with her clean
+slate.
+
+'Oh, how nice and fresh it all looks!' said she as he set down the
+clear large figures. 'I cannot think how you can do it so evenly.'
+
+'Now, Phyl, do not let the pencil scream if you can help it.'
+
+Claude found that Phyllis's great difficulty was with the farthings.
+She could not understand the fractional figures, and only knew thus
+far, that 'Emily said it never meant four.'
+
+Claude began explaining, but his first attempt was far too
+scientific. Phyllis gave a desponding sigh, looking so mystified,
+that he began to believe that she was hopelessly dull, and to repent
+of having offered to help her; but at last, by means of dividing a
+card into four pieces, he succeeded in making her comprehend him, and
+her eyes grew bright with the pleasure of understanding.
+
+Even then the difficulties were not conquered, her addition was very
+slow, and dividing by twelve and twenty seemed endless work; at
+length the last figure of the pounds was set down, the slate was
+compared with Adeline's, and the sum pronounced to be right. Phyllis
+capered up to the kitten and tossed it up in the air in her joy, then
+coming slowly back to her brother, she said with a strange, awkward
+air, hanging down her head, 'Claude, I'll tell you what--'
+
+'Well, what?' said Claude.
+
+'I should like to kiss you.'
+
+Then away she bounded, clattered down stairs, and flew across the
+lawn to tell every one she met that Claude had helped her to do her
+sum, and that it was quite right.
+
+'Did you expect that it would be too hard for him, Phyl?' said Jane,
+laughing.
+
+'No,' said Phyllis, 'but he said he could not do it as it was set.'
+
+'And whose fault was that?' said Jane.
+
+'Oh! but he showed me how to set it better,' said Phyllis, 'and he
+said that when he learnt the beginning of fractions, he thought them
+as hard as I do.'
+
+'Fractions!' said Jane, 'you do not fancy you have come to fractions
+yet! Fine work you will make of them when you do!'
+
+In the evening, as soon as the children were gone to bed, Jane took a
+paper out of her work-basket, saying, 'There, Emily, is my account of
+Phyl's scrapes through this whole week; I told you I should write
+them all down.'
+
+'How kind!' muttered Claude.
+
+Regardless of her brother, who had not looked up from his book, Jane
+began reading her list of poor Phyllis's misadventures. 'On Monday
+she tore her frock by climbing a laurel-tree, to look at a
+blackbird's nest.'
+
+'I gave her leave,' said Emily. 'Rachel had ordered her not to
+climb; and she was crying because she could not see the nest that Wat
+Greenwood had found.'
+
+'On Tuesday she cried over her French grammar, and tore a leaf out of
+the old spelling-book.'
+
+'That was nearly out before,' said Emily, 'Maurice and Redgie spoilt
+that long ago.'
+
+'I do not know of anything on Wednesday, but on Thursday she threw
+Ada down the steps out of the nursery.'
+
+'Oh! that accounts for the dreadful screaming that I heard,' said
+Claude; 'I forgot to ask the meaning of it.'
+
+'I am sure it was Phyl that was the most dismayed, and cried the
+loudest,' said Lily.
+
+'That she always does,' said Jane. 'On Friday we had an uproar in
+the schoolroom about her hemming, and on Saturday she tumbled into a
+wet ditch, and tore her bonnet in the brambles; on Sunday, she
+twisted her ancles together at church.'
+
+'Well, there I did chance to observe her,' said Lily, 'there seemed
+to be a constant struggle between her ancles and herself, they were
+continually coming lovingly together, but were separated the next
+moment.'
+
+'And to-day this sum,' said Jane; 'seven scrapes in one week! I
+really am of opinion, as Rachel says when she is angry, that school
+is the best place for her.'
+
+'I think so too,' said Claude.
+
+'I do not know,' said Emily, 'she is very troublesome, but--'
+
+'Oh, Claude!' cried Lily, 'you do not mean that you would have that
+poor dear merry Master Phyl sent to school, she would pine away like
+a wild bird in a cage; but papa will never think of such a thing.'
+
+'If I thought of her being sent to school,' said Claude, 'it would be
+to shield her from--the rule of love.'
+
+'Oh! you think we are too indulgent,' said Emily; 'perhaps we are,
+but you know we cannot torment a poor child all day long.'
+
+'If you call the way you treat her indulgent, I should like to know
+what you call severe.'
+
+'What do you mean, Claude?' said Emily.
+
+'I call your indulgence something like the tender mercies of the
+wicked,' said Claude. 'On a fine day, when every one is taking their
+pleasure in the garden, to shut an unhappy child up in the
+schoolroom, with a hard sum that you have not taken the trouble to
+teach her how to do, and late in the day, when no one's head is clear
+for difficult arithmetic--'
+
+'Hard sum do you call it?' said Jane.
+
+'Indeed I explained it to her,' said Emily.
+
+'And well she understood you,' said Claude.
+
+'She might have learnt if she had attended,' said Emily; 'Ada
+understood clearly, with the same explanation.'
+
+'And do not you be too proud of the effect of your instructions,
+Claude,' said Jane, 'for when honest Phyl came into the garden, she
+did not know farthings from fractions.'
+
+'And pray, Mrs. Senior Wrangler,' said Claude, 'will you tell me
+where is the difference between a half-penny and half a penny?'
+
+After a good laugh at Jane's expense, Emily went on, 'Now, Claude, I
+will tell you how it happened; Phyllis is so slow, and dawdles over
+her lessons so long, that it is quite a labour to hear her; Ada is
+quick enough, but if you were to hear Phyllis say one column of
+spelling, you would know what misery is. Then before she has half
+finished, the clock strikes one, it is time to read, and the lessons
+are put off till the afternoon. I certainly did not know that she
+was about her sum all that time, or I would have sent her out as I
+did on Saturday.'
+
+'And the reading at one is as fixed as fate,' said Claude.
+
+'Oh, no!' said Jane, 'when we were about old "Russell," we did not
+begin till nearly two, but since we have been reading this book, Lily
+will never let us rest till we begin; she walks up and down, and
+hurries and worries and--'
+
+'Yes,' said Emily, in a murmuring voice, 'we should do better if Lily
+would not make such a point of that one thing; but she never minds
+what else is cut short, and she never thinks of helping me. It never
+seems to enter her head how much I have on my hands, and no one does
+anything to help me.'
+
+'Oh, Emily! you never asked me,' said Lily.
+
+'I knew you would not like it,' said Emily. 'No, it is not my way to
+complain, people may see how to help me if they choose to do it.'
+
+'Lily, Lily, take care,' said Claude, in a low voice; 'is not the
+rule you admire, the rule of love of yourself?'
+
+'Oh, Claude!' returned Lily, 'do not say so, you know it was Emily
+that I called an example of it, not myself, and see how forbearing
+she has been. Now I see that I am really wanted, I will help. It
+must be love, not duty, that calls me to the schoolroom, for no one
+ever said that was my province.'
+
+'Poor duty! you give it a very narrow boundary.'
+
+Lilias, who, to say the truth, had been made more careful of her own
+conduct, by the wish to establish her principle, really betook
+herself to the schoolroom for an hour every morning, with a desire to
+be useful. She thought she did great things in undertaking those
+tasks of Phyllis's which Emily most disliked. But Lilias was neither
+patient nor humble enough to be a good teacher, though she could
+explain difficult rules in a sensible way. She could not, or would
+not, understand the difference between dulness and inattention; her
+sharp hasty manner would frighten away all her pupil's powers of
+comprehension; she sometimes fell into the great error of scolding,
+when Phyllis was doing her best, and the poor child's tears flowed
+more frequently than ever.
+
+Emily's gentle manner made her instructions far more agreeable,
+though she was often neither clear nor correct in her explanations;
+she was contented if the lessons were droned through in any manner,
+so long as she could say they were done; she disliked a disturbance,
+and overlooked or half corrected mistakes rather than cause a cry.
+Phyllis naturally preferred being taught by her, and Lily was vexed
+and unwilling to persevere. She went to the schoolroom expecting to
+be annoyed, created vexation for herself, and taught in anything but
+a loving spirit. Still, however, the thought of Claude, and the wish
+to do more than her duty, kept her constant to her promise, and her
+love of seeing things well done was useful, though sadly
+counterbalanced by her deficiency in temper and patience.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V--VILLAGE GOSSIP
+
+
+
+'The deeds we do, the words we say,
+ Into still air they seem to fleet;
+We count them past,
+ But they shall last.'
+
+Soon after Easter, Claude went to Oxford. He was much missed by his
+sisters, who wanted him to carve for them at luncheon, to escort them
+when they rode or walked, to hear their music, talk over their books,
+advise respecting their drawings, and criticise Lily's verses. A new
+subject of interest was, however, arising for them in the neighbours
+who were shortly expected to arrive at Broom Hill, a house which had
+lately been built in a hamlet about a mile and a half from the New
+Court.
+
+These new comers were the family of a barrister of the name of
+Weston, who had taken the house for the sake of his wife, her health
+having been much injured by her grief at the loss of two daughters in
+the scarlet fever. Two still remained, a grown-up young lady, and a
+girl of eleven years old, and the Miss Mohuns learnt with great
+delight that they should have near neighbours of their own age. They
+had never had any young companions as young ladies were scarce among
+their acquaintance, and they had not seen their cousin, Lady Florence
+Devereux, since they were children.
+
+It was with great satisfaction that Emily and Lilias set out with
+their father to make the first visit, and they augured well from
+their first sight of Mrs. Weston and her daughters. Mrs. Weston was
+alone, her daughters being out walking, and Lily spent the greater
+part of the visit in silence, though her mind was made up in the
+first ten minutes, as she told Emily on leaving the house, 'that Miss
+Weston's tastes were in complete accordance with her own.'
+
+'Rapid judgment,' said Emily. 'Love before first sight. But Mrs.
+Weston is a very sweet person.'
+
+'And, Emily, did you see the music-book open at "Angels ever bright
+and fair?" If Miss Weston sings that as I imagine it!'
+
+'How could you see what was in the music-book at the other end of the
+room? I only saw it was a beautiful piano. And what handsome
+furniture! it made me doubly ashamed of our faded carpet and chairs,
+almost as old as the house itself.'
+
+'Emily!' said Lily, in her most earnest tones, 'I would not change
+one of those dear old chairs for a king's ransom!'
+
+The visit was in a short time returned, and though it was but a
+formal morning call, Lilias found her bright expectations realised by
+the sweetness of Alethea Weston's manners, and the next time they met
+it was a determined thing in her mind that, as Claude would have
+said, they had sworn an eternal friendship.
+
+She had the pleasure of lionising the two sisters over the Old Court,
+telling all she knew and all she imagined about the siege, Sir
+Maurice Mohun, and his faithful servant, Walter Greenwood. 'Miss
+Weston,' said she in conclusion, 'have you read Old Mortality?'
+
+'Yes,' said Alethea, amused at the question.
+
+'Because they say I am as bad as Lady Margaret about the king's
+visit.'
+
+'I have not heard the story often enough to think so,' said Miss
+Weston, 'I will warn you if I do.'
+
+In the meantime Phyllis and Adeline were equally charmed with
+Marianne, though shocked at her ignorance of country manners, and,
+indeed, Alethea was quite diverted with Lily's pity at the discovery
+that she had never before been in the country in the spring. 'What,'
+she cried, 'have you never seen the tufts of red on the hazel, nor
+the fragrant golden palms, and never heard the blackbird rush
+twittering out of the hedge, nor the first nightingale's note, nor
+the nightjar's low chirr, nor the chattering of the rooks? O what a
+store of sweet memories you have lost! Why, how can you understand
+the beginning of the Allegro?'
+
+Both the Miss Westons had so much pleasure in making acquaintance
+with 'these delights,' as quite to compensate for their former
+ignorance, and soon the New Court rang with their praises. Mr. Mohun
+thought very highly of the whole family, and rejoiced in such society
+for his daughters, and they speedily became so well acquainted, that
+it was the ordinary custom of the Westons to take luncheon at the New
+Court on Sunday. On her side, however, Alethea Weston felt some
+reluctance to become intimate with the young ladies of the New Court.
+She was pleased with Emily's manners, interested by Lily's
+earnestness and simplicity, and thought Jane a clever and amusing
+little creature, but even their engaging qualities gave her pain, by
+reminding her of the sisters she had lost, or by making her think how
+they would have liked them. A country house and neighbours like
+these had been the objects of many visions of their childhood, and
+now all the sweet sights and sounds around her only made her think
+how she should have enjoyed them a year ago. She felt almost jealous
+of Marianne's liking for her new friends, lest they should steal her
+heart from Emma and Lucy; but knowing that these were morbid and
+unthankful feelings, she struggled against them, and though she
+missed her sisters even more than when her mother and Marianne were
+in greater need of her attention, she let no sign of her sorrowful
+feeling appear, and seeing that Marianne was benefited in health and
+spirits, by intercourse with young companions, she gave no hint of
+her disinclination to join in the walks and other amusements of the
+Miss Mohuns.
+
+She also began to take interest in the poor people. By Mrs. Weston's
+request, Mr. Devereux had pointed out the families which were most in
+need of assistance, and Alethea made it her business to find out the
+best way of helping them. She visited the village school with
+Lilias, and when requested by her and by the Rector to give her aid
+in teaching, she did not like to refuse what might be a duty, though
+she felt very diffident of her powers of instruction. Marianne, like
+Phyllis and Adeline, became a Sunday scholar, and was catechised with
+the others in church. Both Mr. Mohun and his nephew thought very
+highly of the family, and the latter was particularly glad that Lily
+should have some older person to assist her in those parish matters
+which he left partly in her charge.
+
+Mr. Devereux had been Rector of Beechcroft about a year and a half,
+and had hitherto been much liked. His parishioners had known him
+from a boy, and were interested about him, and though very young,
+there was something about him that gained their respect. Almost all
+his plans were going on well, and things were, on the whole, in a
+satisfactory state, though no one but Lilias expected even Cousin
+Robert to make a Dreamland of Beechcroft, and there were days when he
+looked worn and anxious, and the girls suspected that some one was
+behaving ill.
+
+'Have you a headache, Robert?' asked Emily, a few evenings before
+Whit-Sunday, 'you have not spoken three words this evening.'
+
+'Not at all, thank you,' said Mr. Devereux, smiling, 'you need not
+think to make me your victim, now you have no Claude to nurse.'
+
+'Then if it is not bodily, it is mental,' said Lily.
+
+'I am in a difficulty about the christening of Mrs. Naylor's child.'
+
+'Naylor the blacksmith?' said Jane. 'I thought it was high time for
+it to be christened. It must be six weeks old.'
+
+'Is it not to be on Whit-Sunday?' said Lily, disconsolately.
+
+'Oh no! Mrs. Naylor will not hear of bringing the child on a Sunday,
+and I could hardly make her think it possible to bring it on Whit-
+Tuesday.'
+
+'Why did you not insist?' said Lily.
+
+'Perhaps I might, if there was no other holy day at hand, or if there
+was not another difficulty, a point on which I cannot give way.'
+
+'Oh! the godfathers and godmothers,' said Lily, 'does she want that
+charming brother of hers, Edward Gage?'
+
+'Yes, and what is worse, Edward Gage's dissenting wife, and Dick
+Rodd, who shows less sense of religion than any one in the parish,
+and has never been confirmed.'
+
+'Could you make them hear reason?'
+
+'They were inclined to be rather impertinent,' said Mr. Devereux.
+'Old Mrs. Gage--'
+
+'Oh!' interrupted Jane, 'there is no hope for you if the sour Gage is
+in the pie.'
+
+'The sour Gage told me people were not so particular in her younger
+days, and perhaps they should not have the child christened at all,
+since I was such a CONTRARY gentleman. Tom Naylor was not at home, I
+am to see him to-morrow.'
+
+'Well, I do not think Tom Naylor is as bad as the rest,' said Lily;
+'he would have been tolerable, if he had married any one but Martha
+Gage.'
+
+'Yes, he is an open good-natured fellow, and I have hopes of making
+an impression on him.'
+
+'If not,' said Lily, 'I hope papa will take away his custom.'
+
+'What?' said Mr. Mohun, who always heard any mention of himself. Mr.
+Devereux repeated his history, and discussed the matter with his
+uncle, only once interrupted by an inquiry from Jane about the
+child's name, a point on which she could gain no intelligence. His
+report the next day was not decidedly unfavourable, though he
+scarcely hoped the christening would be so soon as Tuesday. He had
+not seen the father, and suspected he had purposely kept out of the
+way.
+
+Jane, disappointed that the baby's name remained a mystery, resolved
+to set out on a voyage of discovery. Accordingly, as soon as her
+cousin was gone, she asked Emily if she had not been saying that Ada
+wanted some more cotton for her sampler.
+
+'Yes,' said Emily, 'but I am not going to walk all the way to Mrs.
+Appleton's this afternoon.'
+
+'Shall I go?' said Jane. 'Ada, run and fetch your pattern.' Emily
+and Ada were much obliged by Jane's disinterested offer, and in a
+quarter of an hour Ada's thoughts and hands were busy in Mrs.
+Appleton's drawer of many-coloured cotton.
+
+'What a pity this is about Mrs. Naylor's baby,' began Jane.
+
+'It is a sad story indeed, Miss Jane, I am sure it must be grievous
+to Mr. Devereux,' said Mrs. Appleton. 'Betsy Wall said he had been
+there three times about it.'
+
+'Ah! we all know that Walls have ears,' said Jane; 'how that Betsy
+does run about gossiping!'
+
+'Yes, Miss Jane, there she bides all day long at the stile gaping;
+not a stitch does she do for her mother; I cannot tell what is to be
+the end of it.'
+
+'And do you know what the child's name is to be, Mrs. Appleton?'
+
+'No, Miss Jane,' answered Mrs. Appleton. 'Betsy did say they talked
+of naming him after his uncle, Edward Gage, only Mr. Devereux would
+not let him stand.'
+
+'No,' said Jane. 'Since he married that dissenting wife he never
+comes near the church; he is too much like the sour Gage, as we call
+his mother, to be good for much. But, after all, he is not so bad as
+Dick Rodd, who has never been confirmed, and has never shown any
+sense of religion in his life.'
+
+'Yes, Miss, Dick Rodd is a sad fellow: did you hear what a row there
+was at the Mohun Arms last week, Miss Jane?'
+
+'Aye,' said Jane, 'and papa says he shall certainly turn Dick Rodd
+out of the house as soon as the lease is out, and it is only till
+next Michaelmas twelve-months.'
+
+'Yes, Miss, as I said to Betsy Wall, it would be more for their
+interest to behave well.'
+
+'Indeed it would,' said Jane. 'Robert and papa were talking of
+having their horses shod at Stoney Bridge, if Tom Naylor will be so
+obstinate, only papa does not like to give Tom up if he can help it,
+because his father was so good, and Tom would not be half so bad if
+he had not married one of the Gages.'
+
+'Here is Cousin Robert coming down the lane,' said Ada, who had
+chosen her cotton, and was gazing from the door. Jane gave a violent
+start, took a hurried leave of Mrs. Appleton, and set out towards
+home; she could not avoid meeting her cousin.
+
+'Oh, Jenny! have you been enjoying a gossip with your great ally?'
+said he.
+
+'We have only been buying pink cotton,' said Ada, whose conscience
+was clear.
+
+'Ah!' said Mr. Devereux, 'Beechcroft affairs would soon stand still,
+without those useful people, Mrs. Appleton, Miss Wall, and Miss Jane
+Mohun,' and he passed on. Jane felt her face colouring, his freedom
+from suspicion made her feel very guilty, but the matter soon passed
+out of her mind.
+
+Blithe Whit-Sunday came, the five Miss Mohuns appeared in white
+frocks, new bonnets were plenty, the white tippets of the children,
+and the bright shawls of the mothers, made the village look gay; Wat
+Greenwood stuck a pink between his lips, and the green boughs of
+hazel and birch decked the dark oak carvings in the church.
+
+And Whit-Monday came. At half-past ten the rude music of the band of
+the Friendly Society came pealing from the top of the hill, then
+appeared two tall flags, crowned with guelder roses and peonies, then
+the great blue drum, the clarionet blown by red-waist-coated and red-
+faced Mr. Appleton, the three flutes and the triangle, all at their
+loudest, causing some of the spectators to start, and others to
+dance. Then behold the whole procession of labourers, in white round
+frocks, blue ribbons in their hats, and tall blue staves in their
+hands. In the rear, the confused mob, women and children, cheerful
+faces and mirthful sounds everywhere. These were hushed as the flags
+were lowered to pass under the low-roofed gateway of the churchyard,
+and all was still, except the trampling of feet on the stone floor.
+Then the service began, the responses were made in full and hearty
+tones, almost running into a chant, the old 133rd Psalm was sung as
+loudly and as badly as usual, a very short but very earnest sermon
+was preached, and forth came the troop again.
+
+Mr. Devereux always dined with the club in a tent, at the top of the
+hill, but his uncle made him promise to come to a second dinner at
+the New Court in the evening.
+
+'Robert looks anxious,' said Lily, as she parted with him after the
+evening service; 'I am afraid something is going wrong.'
+
+'Trust me for finding out what it is,' said Jane.
+
+'No, no, Jenny, do not ask him,' said Lily; 'if he tells us to
+relieve his mind, I am very glad he should make friends of us, but do
+not ask. Let us talk of other things to put it out of his head,
+whatever it may be.'
+
+Jane soon heard more of the cause of the depression of her cousin's
+spirits than even she had any desire to do. After dinner, the girls
+were walking in the garden, enjoying the warmth of the evening, when
+Mr. Devereux came up to her and drew her aside from the rest, telling
+her that he wished to speak to her.
+
+'Oh!' said Jane, 'when am I to meet you at school again? You never
+told me which chapter I was to prepare; I cannot think what would
+become of your examinations if it was not for me, you could not get
+an answer to one question in three.'
+
+'That was not what I wished to speak to you about,' said Mr.
+Devereux. 'What had you been saying to Mrs. Appleton when I met you
+at her door on Saturday?'
+
+The colour rushed into Jane's cheeks, but she replied without
+hesitation, 'Oh! different things, La pluie et le beau temps, just as
+usual.'
+
+'Cannot you remember anything more distinctly?'
+
+'I always make a point of forgetting what I talk about,' said Jane,
+trying to laugh.
+
+'Now, Jane, let me tell you what has happened in the village--as I
+came down the hill from the club-dinner--'
+
+'Oh,' said Jane, hoping to make a diversion, 'Wat Greenwood came back
+about a quarter of an hour ago, and he--'
+
+Mr. Devereux proceeded without attending to her, 'As I came down the
+hill from the club-dinner, old Mrs. Gage came out of Naylor's house,
+and her daughter with her, in great anger, calling me to account for
+having spoken of her in a most unbecoming way, calling her the sour
+Gage, and trying to set the Squire against them.'
+
+'Oh, that abominable chattering woman!' Jane exclaimed; 'and Betsy
+Wall too, I saw her all alive about something. What a nuisance such
+people are!'
+
+'In short,' said Mr. Devereux, 'I heard an exaggerated account of all
+that passed here on the subject the other day. Now, Jane, am I doing
+you any injustice in thinking that it must have been through you that
+this history went abroad into the village?'
+
+'Well,' said Jane, 'I am sure you never told us that it was any
+secret. When a story is openly told to half a dozen people they
+cannot be expected to keep it to themselves.'
+
+'I spoke uncharitably and incautiously,' said he, 'I am willing to
+confess, but it is nevertheless my duty to set before you the great
+matter that this little fire has kindled.'
+
+'Why, it cannot have done any great harm, can it?' asked Jane, the
+agitation of her voice and laugh betraying that she was not quite so
+careless as she wished to appear. 'Only the sour Gage will ferment a
+little.'
+
+'Oh, Jane! I did not expect that you would treat this matter so
+lightly.'
+
+'But tell me, what harm has it done?' asked she.
+
+'Do you consider it nothing that the poor child should remain
+unbaptized, that discord should be brought into the parish, that
+anger should be on the conscience of your neighbour, that he should
+be driven from the church?'
+
+'Is it as bad as that?' said Jane.
+
+'We do not yet see the full extent of the mischief our idle words may
+have done,' said Mr. Devereux.
+
+'But it is their own fault, if they will do wrong,' said Jane; 'they
+ought not to be in a rage, we said nothing but the truth.'
+
+'I wish I was clear of the sin,' said her cousin.
+
+'And after all,' said Jane, 'I cannot see that I was much to blame; I
+only talked to Mrs. Appleton, as I have done scores of times, and no
+one minded it. You only laughed at me on Saturday, and papa and
+Eleanor never scolded me.'
+
+'You cannot say that no one has ever tried to check you,' said the
+Rector.
+
+'And how was I to know that that mischief-maker would repeat it?'
+said Jane.
+
+'I do not mean to say,' said Mr. Devereux, 'that you actually
+committed a greater sin than you may often have done, by talking in a
+way which you knew would displease your father. I know we are too
+apt to treat lightly the beginnings of evil, until some sudden sting
+makes us feel what a serpent we have been fostering. Think this a
+warning, pray that the evil we dread may be averted; but should it
+ensue, consider it as a punishment sent in mercy. It will be better
+for you not to come to school to-morrow; instead of the references
+you were to have looked out, I had rather you read over in a humble
+spirit the Epistle of St. James.'
+
+Jane's tears by this time were flowing fast, and finding that she no
+longer attempted to defend herself, her cousin said no more. He
+joined the others, and Jane, escaping to her own room, gave way to a
+passionate fit of crying. Whether her tears were of true sorrow or
+of anger she could not have told herself; she was still sobbing on
+her bed when the darkness came on, and her two little sisters came in
+on their way to bed to wish her good-night.
+
+'Oh, Jane, Jane! what is the matter? have you been naughty?' asked
+the little girls in great amazement.
+
+'Never mind,' said Jane, shortly; 'good-night,' and she sat up and
+wiped away her tears. The children still lingered. 'Go away, do,'
+said she. 'Is Robert gone?'
+
+'No,' said Phyllis, 'he is reading the newspaper.'
+
+Phyllis and Adeline left the room, and Jane walked up and down,
+considering whether she should venture to go down to tea; perhaps her
+cousin had waited till the little girls had gone before he spoke to
+Mr. Mohun, or perhaps her red eyes might cause questions on her
+troubles; she was still in doubt when Lily opened the door, a lamp in
+her hand.
+
+'My dear Jenny, are you here? Ada told me you were crying, what is
+the matter?'
+
+'Then you have not heard?' said Jane.
+
+'Only Robert began just now, "Poor Jenny, she has been the cause of
+getting us into a very awkward scrape," but then Ada came to tell me
+about you, and I came away.'
+
+'Yes,' said Jane, angrily, 'he will throw all the blame upon me, when
+I am sure it was quite as much the fault of that horrible Mrs.
+Appleton, and papa will be as angry as possible.'
+
+'But what has happened?' asked Lily.
+
+'Oh! that chatterer, that worst of gossipers, has gone and told the
+Naylors and Mrs. Gage all we said about them the other day.'
+
+'So you told Mrs. Appleton?' said Lily; 'so that was the reason you
+were so obliging about the marking thread. Oh, Jane, you had better
+say no more about Mrs. Appleton! And has it done much mischief?'
+
+'Oh! Mrs. Gage "pitched" into Robert, as Wat Greenwood would say,
+and the christening is off again.'
+
+'Jane, this is frightful,' said Lily; 'I do not wonder that you are
+unhappy.'
+
+'Well, I daresay it will all come right again,' said Jane; 'there
+will only be a little delay, papa and Robert will bring them to their
+senses in time.'
+
+'Suppose the baby was to die,' said Lily.
+
+'Oh, it will not die,' said Jane, 'a great fat healthy thing like
+that likely to die indeed!'
+
+'I cannot make you out, Jane,' said Lily. 'If I had done such a
+thing, I do not think I could have a happy minute till it was set
+right.'
+
+'Well, I told you I was very sorry,' said Jane, 'only I wish they
+would not all be so hard upon me. Robert owns that he should not
+have said such things if he did not wish them to be repeated.'
+
+'Does he?' cried Lily. 'How exactly like Robert that is, to own
+himself in fault when he is obliged to blame others. Jane, how could
+you hear him say such things and not be overcome with shame? And
+then to turn it against him! Oh, Jane, I do not think I can talk to
+you any more.'
+
+'I do not mean to say it was not very good of him,' said Jane.
+
+'Good of him--what a word!' cried Lily. 'Well, good-night, I cannot
+bear to talk to you now. Shall I say anything for you downstairs?'
+
+'Oh, tell papa and Robert I am very sorry,' said Jane. 'I shall not
+come down again, you may leave the lamp.'
+
+On her way downstairs in the dark Lilias was led, by the example of
+her cousin, to reflect that she was not without some share in the
+mischief that had been done; the words which report imputed to Mr.
+Devereux were mostly her own or Jane's. There was no want of candour
+in Lily, and as soon as she entered the drawing-room she went
+straight up to her father and cousin, and began, 'Poor Jenny is very
+unhappy; she desired me to tell you how sorry she is. But I really
+believe that I did the mischief, Robert. It was I who said those
+foolish things that were repeated as if you had said them. It is a
+grievous affair, but who could have thought that we were doing so
+much harm?'
+
+'Perhaps it may not do any,' said Emily. 'The Naylors have a great
+deal of good about them.'
+
+'They must have more than I suppose, if they can endure what Robert
+is reported to have said of them,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'What did you say, Robert,' said Lily, 'did you not tell them all was
+said by your foolish young cousins?'
+
+'I agreed with you too much to venture on contradicting the report;
+you know I could not even deny having called Mrs. Gage by that name.'
+
+'Oh, if I could do anything to mend it!' cried Lily.
+
+But wishes had no effect. Lilias and Jane had to mourn over the full
+extent of harm done by hasty words. After the more respectable men
+had left the Mohun Arms on the evening of Whit-Monday, the rest gave
+way to unrestrained drunkenness, not so much out of reckless self-
+indulgence, as to defy the clergyman and the squire. They came to
+the front of the parsonage, yelled and groaned for some time, and
+ended by breaking down the gate.
+
+This conduct was repeated on Tuesday, and on many Saturdays
+following; some young trees in the churchyard were cut, and abuse of
+the parson written on the walls the idle young men taking this
+opportunity to revenge their own quarrels, caused by Mr. Devereux's
+former efforts for their reformation.
+
+On Sunday several children were absent from school; all those
+belonging to Farmer Gage's labourers were taken away, and one man was
+turned off by the farmers for refusing to remove his child.
+
+Now that the war was carried on so openly, Mr. Mohun considered it
+his duty to withdraw his custom from one who chose to set his pastor
+at defiance. He went to the forge, and had a long conversation with
+the blacksmith, but though he was listened to with respect, it was
+not easy to make much impression on an ignorant, hot-tempered man,
+who had been greatly offended, and prided himself on showing that he
+would support the quarrel of his wife and her relations against both
+squire and parson; and though Mr. Mohun did persuade him to own that
+it was wrong to be at war with the clergyman, the effect of his
+arguments was soon done away with by the Gages, and no ground was
+gained.
+
+Mr. Gage's farm was unhappily at no great distance from a dissenting
+chapel and school, in the adjoining parish of Stoney Bridge, and
+thither the farmer and blacksmith betook themselves, with many of the
+cottagers of Broom Hill.
+
+One alone of the family of Tom Naylor refused to join him in his
+dissent, and that was his sister, Mrs. Eden, a widow, with one little
+girl about seven years old, who, though in great measure dependent
+upon him for subsistence, knew her duty too well to desert the
+church, or to take her child from school, and continued her even
+course, toiling hard for bread, and uncomplaining, though often munch
+distressed. All the rest of the parish who were not immediately
+under Mr. Mohun's influence were in a sad state of confusion.
+
+Jane was grieved at heart, but would not confess it, and Lilias was
+so restless and unhappy, that Emily was quite weary of her
+lamentations. Her best comforter was Miss Weston, who patiently
+listened to her, sighed with her over the evident sorrow of the
+Rector, and the mischief in the parish, and proved herself a true
+friend, by never attempting to extenuate her fault.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI--THE NEW FRIEND
+
+
+
+'Maidens should be mild and meek,
+Swift to hear, and slow to speak.'
+
+Miss Weston had been much interested by what she heard respecting
+Mrs. Eden, and gladly discovered that she was just the person who
+could assist in some needlework which was required at Broom Hill.
+She asked Lilias to tell her where to find her cottage, and Lily
+replied by an offer to show her the way; Miss Weston hesitated,
+thinking that perhaps in the present state of things Lily had rather
+not see her; but her doubts were quickly removed by this speech, 'I
+want to see her particularly. I have been there three times without
+finding her. I think I can set this terrible matter right by
+speaking to her.'
+
+Accordingly, Lilias and Phyllis set out with Alethea and Marianne one
+afternoon to Mrs. Eden's cottage, which stood at the edge of a long
+field at the top of the hill. Very fast did Lily talk all the way,
+but she grew more silent as she came to the cottage, and knocked at
+the door; it was opened by Mrs. Eden herself, a pale, but rather
+pretty young woman, with a remarkable gentle and pleasing face, and a
+manner which was almost ladylike, although her hands were freshly
+taken out of the wash-tub. She curtsied low, and coloured at the
+sight of Lilias, set chairs for the visitors, and then returned to
+her work.
+
+'Oh! Mrs. Eden,' Lily began, intending to make her explanation, but
+feeling confused, thought it better to wait till her friend's
+business was settled, and altered her speech into 'Miss Weston is
+come to speak to you about some work.'
+
+Mrs. Eden looked quite relieved, and Alethea proceeded to appoint the
+day for her coming to Broom Hill, and arrange some small matters,
+during which Lily not only settled what to say, but worked herself
+into a fit of impatience at the length of Alethea's instructions.
+When they were concluded, however, and there was a pause, her words
+failed her, and she wished that she was miles from the cottage, or
+that she had never mentioned her intentions. At last she stammered
+out, 'Oh! Mrs. Eden--I wanted to speak to you about--about Mr.
+Devereux and your brother.'
+
+Mrs. Eden bent over her wash-tub, Miss Weston examined the shells on
+the chimney-piece, Marianne and Phyllis listened with all their ears,
+and poor Lily was exceedingly uncomfortable.
+
+'I wished to tell you--I do not think--I do not mean--It was not his
+saying. Indeed, he did not say those things about the Gages.'
+
+'I told my brother I did not think Mr. Devereux would go for to say
+such a thing,' said Mrs. Eden, as much confused as Lily.
+
+'Oh! that was right, Mrs. Eden. The mischief was all my making and
+Jane's. We said those foolish things, and they were repeated as if
+it was he. Oh! do tell your brother so, Mrs. Eden. It was very good
+of you to think it was not Cousin Robert. Pray tell Tom Naylor. I
+cannot bear that things should go on in this dreadful way.'
+
+'Indeed, Miss, I am very sorry,' said Mrs. Eden.
+
+'But, Mrs Eden, I am sure that would set it right again,' said Lily,
+'are not you? I would do anything to have that poor baby
+christened.'
+
+Lily's confidence melted away as she saw that Mrs. Eden's tears were
+falling fast, and she ended with, 'Only tell them, and we shall see
+what will happen.'
+
+'Very well, Miss Lilias,' said Mrs. Eden. 'I am very sorry.'
+
+'Let us hope that time and patience will set things right,' said Miss
+Weston, to relieve the embarrassment of both parties. 'Your brother
+must soon see that Mr. Devereux only wishes to do his duty.'
+
+Alethea skilfully covered Lily's retreat, and the party took leave of
+Mrs. Eden, and turned into their homeward path.
+
+Lily at first seemed disposed to be silent, and Miss Weston therefore
+amused herself with listening to the chatter of the little girls as
+they walked on before them.
+
+'There are only thirty-six days to the holidays,' said Phyllis; 'Ada
+and I keep a paper in the nursery with the account of the number of
+days. We shall be so glad when Claude, and Maurice, and Redgie come
+home.'
+
+'Are they not very boisterous?' said Marianne.
+
+'Not Maurice,' said Phyllis.
+
+'No, indeed,' said Lily, 'Maurice is like nobody else. He takes up
+some scientific pursuit each time he comes home, and cares for
+nothing else for some time, and then quite forgets it. He is an odd-
+looking boy too, thick and sturdy, with light flaxen hair, and dark,
+overhanging eyebrows, and he makes the most extraordinary grimaces.'
+
+'And Reginald?' said Alethea.
+
+'Oh! Redgie is a noble-looking fellow. But just eleven, and taller
+than Jane. His complexion so fair, yet fresh and boyish, and his
+eyes that beautiful blue that Ada's are--real blue. Then his hair,
+in dark brown waves, with a rich auburn shine. The old knights must
+have been just like Redgie. And Claude--Oh! Miss Weston, have you
+ever seen Claude?'
+
+'No, but I have seen your eldest brother.'
+
+'William? Why, he has been in Canada these three years. Where could
+you have seen him?'
+
+'At Brighton, about four years ago.'
+
+'Ah! the year before he went. I remember that his regiment was
+there. Well, it is curious that you should know him; and did you
+ever hear of Harry, the brother that we lost?'
+
+'I remember Captain Mohun's being called away to Oxford by his
+illness,' said Alethea.
+
+'Ah, yes! William was the only one of us who was with him, even papa
+was not there. His illness was so short.'
+
+'Yes,' said Alethea, 'I think it was on a Tuesday that Captain Mohun
+left Brighton, and we saw his death in the paper on Saturday.'
+
+'William only arrived the evening that he died. Papa was gone to
+Ireland to see about Cousin Rotherwood's property. Robert, not
+knowing that, wrote to him at Beechcroft; Eleanor forwarded the
+letter without opening it, and so we knew nothing till Robert came to
+tell us that all was over.'
+
+'Without any preparation?'
+
+'With none. Harry had left home about ten days before, quite well,
+and looking so handsome. You know what a fine-looking person William
+is. Well, Harry was very like him, only not so tall and strong, with
+the same clear hazel eyes, and more pink in his cheeks--fairer
+altogether. Then Harry wrote, saying that he had caught one of his
+bad colds. We did not think much of it, for he was always having
+coughs. We heard no more for a week, and then one morning Eleanor
+was sent for out of the schoolroom, and there was Robert come to tell
+us. Oh! it was such a thunderbolt. This was what did the mischief.
+You know papa and mamma being from home so long, the elder boys had
+no settled place for the holidays; sometimes they stayed with one
+friend, sometimes with another, and so no one saw enough of them to
+find out how delicate poor Harry really was. I think papa had been
+anxious the only winter they were at home together, and Harry had
+been talked to and advised to take care; but in the summer and autumn
+he was well, and did not think about it. He went to Oxford by the
+coach--it was a bitterly cold frosty day--there was a poor woman
+outside, shivering and looking very ill, and Harry changed places
+with her. He was horribly chilled, but thinking he had only a common
+cold, he took no care. Robert, coming to Oxford about a week after,
+found him very ill, and wrote to papa and William, but William
+scarcely came in time. Harry just knew him, and that was all. He
+could not speak, and died that night. Then William stayed at Oxford
+to receive papa, and Robert came to tell us.'
+
+'It must have been a terrible shock.'
+
+'Such a loss--he was so very good and clever. Every one looked up to
+him--William almost as much as the younger ones. He never was in any
+scrape, had all sorts of prizes at Eton, besides getting his
+scholarship before he was seventeen.'
+
+Whenever Lily could get Miss Weston alone, it was her way to talk in
+this manner. She loved the sound of her own voice so well, that she
+was never better satisfied than when engrossing the whole
+conversation. Having nothing to talk of but her books, her poor
+people, and her family, she gave her friend the full benefit of all
+she could say on each subject, while Alethea had kindness enough to
+listen with real interest to her long rambling discourses, well
+pleased to see her happy.
+
+The next time they met, Lilias told her all she knew or imagined
+respecting Eleanor, and of her own debate with Claude, and ended,
+'Now, Miss Weston, tell me your opinion, which would you choose for a
+sister, Eleanor or Emily?'
+
+'I have some experience of Miss Mohun's delightful manners, and none
+of Mrs. Hawkesworth's, so I am no fair judge,' said Alethea.
+
+'I really have done justice to Eleanor's sterling goodness,' said
+Lily. 'Now what should you think?'
+
+'I can hardly imagine greater proofs of affection than Mrs.
+Hawkesworth has given you,' said Miss Weston, smiling.
+
+'It was because it was her duty,' said Lilias. 'You have only heard
+the facts, but you cannot judge of her ways and looks. Now only
+think, when Frank came home, after seven years of perils by field and
+flood--there she rose up to receive him as if he had been Mr. Nobody
+making a morning call. And all the time before they were married, I
+do believe she thought more of showing Emily how much tea we were to
+use in a week than anything else.'
+
+'Perhaps some people might have admired her self-command,' said
+Alethea.
+
+'Self-command, the refuge of the insensible? And now, I told you
+about dear Harry the other day. He was Eleanor's especial brother,
+yet his death never seemed to make any difference to her. She
+scarcely cried: she heard our lessons as usual, talked in her quiet
+voice--showed no tokens of feeling.'
+
+'Was her health as good as before?' asked Miss Weston.
+
+'She was not ill,' said Lily; 'if she had, I should have been
+satisfied. She certainly could not take long walks that winter, but
+she never likes walking. People said she looked ill, but I do not
+know.'
+
+'Shall I tell you what I gather from your history?'
+
+'Pray do.'
+
+'Then do not think me very perverse, if I say that perhaps the grief
+she then repressed may have weighed down her spirits ever since, so
+that you can hardly remember any alteration.'
+
+'That I cannot,' said Lily. 'She is always the same, but then she
+ought to have been more cheerful before his death.'
+
+'Did not you lose him soon after your mother?' said Alethea.
+
+'Two whole years,' said Lily. 'Oh! and aunt, Robert too, and Frank
+went to India the beginning of that year; yes, there was enough to
+depress her, but I never thought of grief going on in that quiet dull
+way for so many years.'
+
+'You would prefer one violent burst, and then forgetfulness?'
+
+'Not exactly,' said Lily; 'but I should like a little evidence of it.
+If it is really strong, it cannot be hid.'
+
+Little did Lily think of the grief that sat heavy upon the spirit of
+Alethea, who answered--'Some people can do anything that they
+consider their duty.'
+
+'Duty: what, are you a duty lover?' exclaimed Lilias. 'I never
+suspected it, because you are not disagreeable.'
+
+'Thank you,' said Alethea, laughing, 'your compliment rather
+surprises me, for I thought you told me that your brother Claude was
+on the duty side of the question.'
+
+'He thinks he is,' said Lily, 'but love is his real motive of action,
+as I can prove to you. Poor Claude had a very bad illness when he
+was about three years old; and ever since he has been liable to
+terrible headaches, and he is not at all strong. Of course he cannot
+always study hard, and when first he went to school, every one
+scolded him for being idle. I really believe he might have done
+more, but then he was so clever that he could keep up without any
+trouble, and, as Robert says, that was a great temptation; but still
+papa was not satisfied, because he said Claude could do better. So
+said Harry. Oh! you cannot think what a person Harry was, as high-
+spirited as William, and as gentle as Claude; and in his kind way he
+used to try hard to make Claude exert himself, but it never would do-
+-he was never in mischief, but he never took pains. Then Harry died,
+and when Claude came home, and saw how changed things were, how gray
+papa's hair had turned, and how silent and melancholy William had
+grown, he set himself with all his might to make up to papa as far as
+he could. He thought only of doing what Harry would have wished, and
+papa himself says that he has done wonders. I cannot see that Henry
+himself could have been more than Claude is now; he has not spared
+himself in the least, his tutor says, and he would have had the
+Newcastle Scholarship last year, if he had not worked so hard that he
+brought on one of his bad illnesses, and was obliged to come home.
+Now I am sure that he has acted from love, for it was as much his
+duty to take pains while Harry was alive as afterwards.'
+
+'Certainly,' said Miss Weston, 'but what does he say himself?'
+
+'Oh! he never will talk of himself,' said Lily.
+
+'Have you not overlooked one thing which may be the truth,' said
+Alethea, as if she was asking for information, 'that duty and love
+may be identical? Is not St. Paul's description of charity very like
+the duty to our neighbour?'
+
+'The practice is the same, but not the theory,' said Lily.
+
+'Now, what is called duty, seems to me to be love doing unpleasant
+work,' said Miss Weston; 'love disguised under another name, when
+obliged to act in a way which seems, only seems, out of accordance
+with its real title.'
+
+'That is all very well for those who have love,' said Lily. 'Some
+have not who do their duty conscientiously--another word which I
+hate, by the bye.'
+
+'They have love in a rough coat, perhaps,' said Alethea, 'and I
+should expect it soon to put on a smoother one.'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII--SIR MAURICE
+
+
+
+'Shall thought was his, in after time,
+Thus to be hitched into a rhyme;
+The simple sire could only boast
+That he was loyal to his cost,
+The banished race of kings revered,
+And lost his land.'
+
+The holidays arrived, and with them the three brothers, for during
+the first few weeks of the Oxford vacation Claude accompanied Lord
+Rotherwood on visits to some college friends, and only came home the
+same day as the younger ones.
+
+Maurice did not long leave his sisters in doubt as to what was to be
+his reigning taste, for as soon as dinner was over, he made Jane find
+the volume of the Encyclopaedia containing Entomology, and with his
+elbows on the table, proceeded to study it so intently, that the
+young ladies gave up all hopes of rousing him from it. Claude threw
+himself down on the sofa to enjoy the luxury of a desultory talk with
+his sisters; and Reginald, his head on the floor, and his heels on a
+chair, talked loud and fast enough for all three, with very little
+regard to what the damsels might be saying.
+
+'Oh! Claude,' said Lily, 'you cannot think how much we like Miss
+Weston, she lets us call her Alethea, and--'
+
+Here came an interruption from Mr. Mohun, who perceiving the position
+of Reginald's dusty shoes, gave a loud 'Ah--h!' as if he was scolding
+a dog, and ordered him to change them directly.
+
+'Here, Phyl!' said Reginald, kicking off his shoes, 'just step up and
+bring my shippers, Rachel will give them to you.'
+
+Away went Phyllis, well pleased to be her brother's fag.
+
+'Ah! Redgie does not know the misfortune that hangs over him,' said
+Emily.
+
+'What?' said Reginald, 'will not the Baron let Viper come to the
+house?'
+
+'Worse,' said Emily, 'Rachel is going away.'
+
+'Rachel?' cried Claude, starting up from the sofa.
+
+'Rachel?' said Maurice, without raising his eyes.
+
+'Rachel! Rachel! botheration!' roared Reginald, with a wondrous
+caper.
+
+'Yes, Rachel,' said Emily; 'Rachel, who makes so much of you, for no
+reason that I could ever discover, but because you are the most
+troublesome.'
+
+'You will never find any one to mend your jackets, and dress your
+wounds like Rachel,' said Lily, 'and make a baby of you instead of a
+great schoolboy. What will become of you, Redgie?'
+
+'What will become of any of us?' said Claude; 'I thought Rachel was
+the mainspring of the house.'
+
+'Have you quarrelled with her, Emily?' said Reginald.
+
+'Nonsense,' said Emily, 'it is only that her brother has lost his
+wife, and wants her to take care of his children.'
+
+'Well,' said Reginald, 'her master has lost his wife, and wants her
+to take care of his children.'
+
+'I cannot think what I shall do,' said Ada; 'I cry about it every
+night when I go to bed. What is to be done?'
+
+'Send her brother a new wife,' said Maurice.
+
+'Send him Emily,' said Reginald; 'we could spare her much better.'
+
+'Only I don't wish him joy,' said Maurice.
+
+'Well, I hope you wish me joy of my substitute,' said Emily; 'I do
+not think you would ever guess, but Lily, after being in what Rachel
+calls quite a way, has persuaded every one to let us have Esther
+Bateman.'
+
+'What, the Baron?' said Claude, in surprise.
+
+'Yes,' said Lily, 'is it not delightful? He said at first, Emily was
+too inexperienced to teach a young servant; but then we settled that
+Hannah should be upper servant, and Esther will only have to wait
+upon Phyl and Ada. Then he said Faith Longley was of a better set of
+people, but I am sure it would give one the nightmare to see her
+lumbering about the house, and then he talked it over with Robert and
+with Rachel.'
+
+'And was not Rachel against it, or was she too kind to her young
+ladies?'
+
+'Oh! she was cross when she talked it over with us,' said Lily; 'but
+we coaxed her over, and she told the Baron it would do very well.'
+
+'And Robert?'
+
+'He was quite with us, for he likes Esther as much as I do,' said
+lily.
+
+'Now, Lily,' said Jane, 'how can you say he was quite with you, when
+he said he thought it would be better if she was farther from home,
+and under some older person?'
+
+'Yes, but he allowed that she would be much safer here than at home,'
+said Lily.
+
+'But I thought she used to be the head of all the ill behaviour in
+school,' said Claude.
+
+'Oh! that was in Eleanor's time,' said Lily; 'there was nothing to
+draw her out, she never was encouraged; but since she has been in my
+class, and has found that her wishes to do right are appreciated and
+met by affection, she has been quite a new creature.'
+
+'Since she has been in MY class,' Claude repeated.
+
+'Well,' said Lily, with a slight blush, 'it is just what Robert says.
+He told her, when he gave her her prize Bible on Palm Sunday, that
+she had been going on very well, but she must take great care when
+removed from those whose influence now guided her, and who could he
+have meant but me? And now she is to go on with me always. She will
+be quite one of the old sort of faithful servants, who feel that they
+owe everything to their masters, and will it not be pleasant to have
+so sweet and expressive a face about the house?'
+
+'Do I know her face?' said Claude. 'Oh yes! I do. She has black
+eyes, I think, and would be pretty if she did not look pert.'
+
+'You provoking Claude!' cried Lily, 'you are as bad as Alethea, who
+never will say that Esther is the best person for us.'
+
+'I was going to inquire for the all-for-love principle,' said Claude,
+'but I see it is in full force. And how are the verses, Lily? Have
+you made a poem upon Michael Moone, or Mohun, the actor, our uncle,
+whom I discovered for you in Pepys's Memoirs?'
+
+'Nonsense,' said Lily; 'but I have been writing something about Sir
+Maurice, which you shall hear whenever you are not in this horrid
+temper.'
+
+The next afternoon, as soon as luncheon was over, Lily drew Claude
+out to his favourite place under the plane-tree, where she proceeded
+to inflict her poem upon his patient ears, while he lay flat upon the
+grass looking up to the sky; Emily and Jane had promised to join them
+there in process of time, and the four younger ones were, as usual,
+diverting themselves among the farm buildings at the Old Court.
+
+Lily began: 'I meant to have two parts about Sir Maurice going out
+to fight when he was very young, and then about his brothers being
+killed, and King Charles knighting him, and his betrothed, Phyllis
+Crossthwayte, embroidering his black engrailed cross on his banner,
+and then the taking the castle, and his being wounded, and escaping,
+and Phyllis not thinking it right to leave her father; but I have not
+finished that, so now you must hear about his return home.'
+
+
+'A romaunt in six cantos, entitled Woe woe,
+By Miss Fanny F. known more commonly so,'
+
+
+muttered Claude to himself; but as Lily did not understand or know
+whence his quotation came, it did not hurt her feelings, and she went
+merrily on:-
+
+
+''Tis the twenty-ninth of merry May;
+Full cheerily shine the sunbeams to-day,
+ Their joyous light revealing
+Full many a troop in garments gay,
+With cheerful steps who take their way
+ By the green hill and shady lane,
+While merry bells are pealing;
+And soon in Beechcroft's holy fane
+The villagers are kneeling.
+Dreary and mournful seems the shrine
+Where sound their prayers and hymns divine;
+ For every mystic ornament
+ By the rude spoiler's hand is rent;
+ Scarce is its ancient beauty traced
+ In wood-work broken and defaced,
+ Reft of each quaint device and rare,
+ Of foliage rich and mouldings fair;
+ Yet happy is each spirit there;
+ The simple peasantry rejoice
+ To see the altar decked with care,
+ To hear their ancient Pastor's voice
+ Reciting o'er each well-known prayer,
+ To view again his robe of white,
+ And hear the services aright;
+ Once more to chant their glorious Creed,
+ And thankful own their nation freed
+ From those who cast her glories down,
+ And rent away her Cross and Crown.
+ A stranger knelt among the crowd,
+ And joined his voice in praises loud,
+ And when the holy rites had ceased,
+ Held converse with the aged Priest,
+ Then turned to join the village feast,
+ Where, raised on the hill's summit green,
+ The Maypole's flowery wreaths were seen;
+ Beneath the venerable yew
+ The stranger stood the sports to view,
+ Unmarked by all, for each was bent
+ On his own scheme of merriment,
+ On talking, laughing, dancing, playing -
+ There never was so blithe a Maying.
+ So thought each laughing maiden gay,
+ Whose head-gear bore the oaken spray;
+ So thought that hand of shouting boys,
+ Unchecked in their best joy--in noise;
+ But gray-haired men, whose deep-marked scars
+ Bore token of the civil wars,
+ And hooded dames in cloaks of red,
+ At the blithe youngsters shook the head,
+ Gathering in eager clusters told
+ How joyous were the days of old,
+ When Beechcroft's lords, those Barons bold,
+ Came forth to join their vassals' sport,
+ And here to hold their rustic court,
+ Throned in the ancient chair you see
+ Beneath our noble old yew tree.
+ Alas! all empty stands the throne,
+ Reserved for Mohun's race alone,
+ And the old folks can only tell
+ Of the good lords who ruled so well.
+ "Ah! I bethink me of the time,
+ The last before those years of crime,
+ When with his open hearty cheer,
+ The good old squire was sitting here."
+ "'Twas then," another voice replied,
+ "That brave young Master Maurice tried
+ To pitch the ball with Andrew Grey -
+ We ne'er shall see so blithe a day -
+ All the young squires have long been dead."
+ "No, Master Webb," quoth Andrew Grey,
+ "Young Master Maurice safely fled,
+ At least so all the Greenwoods say,
+ And Walter Greenwood with him went
+ To share his master's banishment;
+ And now King Charles is ruling here,
+ Our own good landlord may be near."
+ "Small hope of that," the old man said,
+ And sadly shook his hoary head,
+ "Sir Maurice died beyond the sea,
+ Last of his noble line was he."
+ "Look, Master Webb!" he turned, and there
+ The stranger sat in Mohun's chair;
+ At ease he sat, and smiled to scan
+ The face of each astonished man;
+ Then on the ground he laid aside
+ His plumed hat and mantle wide.
+ One moment, Andrew deemed he knew
+ Those glancing eyes of hazel hue,
+ But the sunk cheek, the figure spare,
+ The lines of white that streak the hair -
+ How can this he the stripling gay,
+ Erst, victor in the sports of May?
+ Full twenty years of cheerful toil,
+ And labour on his native soil,
+ On Andrew's head had left no trace -
+ The summer's sun, the winter's storm,
+ They had but ruddier made his face,
+ More hard his hand, more strong his form.
+ Forth from the wandering, whispering crowd,
+ A farmer came, and spoke aloud,
+ With rustic bow and welcome fair,
+ But with a hesitating air -
+ He told how custom well preserved
+ The throne for Mohun's race reserved;
+ The stranger laughed, "What, Harrington,
+ Hast thou forgot thy landlord's son?"
+ Loud was the cry, and blithe the shout,
+ On Beechcroft hill that now rang out,
+ And still remembered is the day,
+ That merry twenty-ninth of May,
+ When to his father's home returned
+ That knight, whose glory well was earned.
+ In poverty and banishment,
+ His prime of manhood had been spent,
+ A wanderer, scorned by Charles's court,
+ One faithful servant his support.
+ And now, he seeks his home forlorn,
+ Broken in health, with sorrow worn.
+ And two short years just passed away,
+ Between that joyous meeting-day,
+ And the sad eve when Beechcroft's bell
+ Tolled forth Sir Maurice's funeral knell;
+And Phyllis, whose love was so constant and tried,
+Was a widow the year she was Maurice's bride;
+Yet the path of the noble and true-hearted knight,
+Was brilliant with honour, and glory, and light,
+And still his descendants shall sing of the fame
+Of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the pride of his name.'
+
+
+'It is a pity they should sing of it in such lines as those last
+four,' said Claude. 'Let me see, I like your bringing in the real
+names, though I doubt whether any but Greenwood could have been found
+here.'
+
+'Oh! here come Emily and Jane,' said Lily, 'let me put it away.'
+
+'You are very much afraid of Jane,' said Claude.
+
+'Yes, Jane has no feeling for poetry,' said Lily, with simplicity,
+which made her brother smile.
+
+Jane and Emily now came up, the former with her work, the latter with
+a camp-stool and a book. 'I wonder,' said she, 'where those boys
+are! By the bye, what character did they bring home from school?'
+
+'The same as usual,' said Claude. 'Maurice's mind only half given to
+his work, and Redgie's whole mind to his play.'
+
+'Maurice's talent does not lie in the direction of Latin and Greek,'
+said Emily.
+
+'No,' said Jane, 'it is nonsense to make him learn it, and so he
+says.'
+
+'Perhaps he would say the same of mathematics and mechanics, if as
+great a point were made of them,' said Lily.
+
+'I think not,' said Claude; 'he has more notion of them than of Latin
+verses.'
+
+'Then you are on my side,' said Jane, triumphantly.
+
+'Did I say so?' said Claude.
+
+'Why not?' said Jane. 'What is the use of his knowing those stupid
+languages? I am sure it is wasting time not to improve such a genius
+as he has for mechanics and natural history. Now, Claude, I wish you
+would answer.'
+
+'I was waiting till you had done,' said Claude.
+
+'Why do you not think it nonsense?' persisted Jane.
+
+'Because I respect my father's opinion,' said Claude, letting himself
+fall on the grass, as if he had done with the subject.
+
+'Pooh!' said Jane, 'that sounds like a good little boy of five years
+old!'
+
+'Very likely,' said Claude.
+
+'But you have some opinion of your own,' said Lily.
+
+'Certainly.'
+
+'Then I wish you would give it,' said Jane.
+
+'Come, Emily,' said Claude, 'have you brought anything to read?'
+
+'But your opinion, Claude,' said Jane. 'I am sure you think with me,
+only you are too grand, and too correct to say so.'
+
+Claude made no answer, but Jane saw she was wrong by his countenance;
+before she could say anything more, however, they were interrupted by
+a great outcry from the Old Court regions.
+
+'Oh,' said Emily, 'I thought it was a long time since we had heard
+anything of those uproarious mortals.'
+
+'I hope there is nothing the matter,' said Lily.
+
+'Oh no,' said Jane, 'I hear Redgie's laugh.'
+
+'Aye, but among that party,' said Emily, 'Redgie's laugh is not
+always a proof of peace: they are too much in the habit of acting
+the boys and the frogs.'
+
+'We were better off,' said Lily, 'with the gentle Claude, as Miss
+Middleton used to call him.'
+
+'Miss Molly, as William used to call him with more propriety,' said
+Claude, 'not half so well worth playing with as such a fellow as
+Redgie.'
+
+'Not even for young ladies?' said Emily.
+
+'No, Phyllis and Ada are much the better for being teased,' said
+Claude. 'I am convinced that I never did my duty by you in that
+respect.'
+
+'There were others to do it for you,' said Jane.
+
+'Harry never teased,' said Emily, 'and William scorned us.'
+
+'His teasing was all performed upon Claude,' said Lily, 'and a great
+shame it was.'
+
+'Not at all,' said Claude, 'only an injudicious attempt to put a
+little life into a tortoise.'
+
+'A bad comparison,' said Lily; 'but what is all this? Here come the
+children in dismay! What is the matter, my dear child?'
+
+This was addressed to Phyllis, who was the first to come up at full
+speed, sobbing, and out of breath, 'Oh, the dragon-fly! Oh, do not
+let him kill it!'
+
+'The dragon-fly, the poor dear blue dragon-fly!' screamed Adeline,
+hiding her face in Emily's lap, 'Oh, do not let him kill it! he is
+holding it; he is hurting it! Oh, tell him not!'
+
+'I caught it,' said Phyllis, 'but not to have it killed. Oh, take it
+away!'
+
+'A fine rout, indeed, you chicken,' said Reginald; 'I know a fellow
+who ate up five horse-stingers one morning before breakfast.'
+
+'Stingers!' said Phyllis, 'they do not sting anything, pretty
+creatures.'
+
+'I told you I would catch the old pony and put it on him to try,'
+said Reginald.
+
+In the meantime, Maurice came up at his leisure, holding his prize by
+the wings. 'Look what a beautiful Libellulla Puella,' said he to
+Jane.
+
+'A demoiselle dragon-fly,' said Lily; 'what a beauty! what are you
+going to do with it?'
+
+'Put it into my museum,' said Maurice. 'Here, Jane, put it under
+this flower-pot, and take care of it, while I fetch something to kill
+it with.'
+
+'Oh, Maurice, do not!' said Emily.
+
+'One good squeeze,' said Reginald. 'I will do it.'
+
+'How came you be so cruel?' said Lily.
+
+'No, a squeeze will not do,' said Maurice; 'it would spoil its
+beauty; I must put it ever the fumes of carbonic acid.'
+
+'Maurice, you really must not,' said Emily.
+
+'Now do not, dear Maurice,' said Ada, 'there's a dear boy; I will
+give you such a kiss.'
+
+'Nonsense; get out of the way,' said Maurice, turning away.
+
+'Now, Maurice, this is most horrid cruelty,' said Lily; 'what right
+have you to shorten the brief, happy life which--'
+
+'Well,' interrupted Maurice, 'if you make such a fuss about killing
+it, I will stick a pin through it into a cork, and let it shift for
+itself.'
+
+Poor Phyllis ran away to the other end of the garden, sat down and
+sobbed, Ada screamed and argued, Emily complained, Lily exhorted
+Claude to interfere, while Reginald stood laughing.
+
+'Such useless cruelty,' said Emily.
+
+'Useless!' said Maurice. 'Pray how is any one to make a collection
+of natural objects without killing things?'
+
+'I do not see the use of a collection,' said Lily; 'you can examine
+the creatures and let them go.'
+
+'Such a young lady's tender-hearted notion,' said Reginald.
+
+'Who ever heard of a man of science managing in such a ridiculous
+way?'
+
+'Man of science!' exclaimed Lily, 'when he will have forgotten by
+next Christmas that insects ever existed.'
+
+It was not convenient to hear this speech, so Maurice turned an empty
+flower-pot over his prisoner, and left it in Jane's care while he
+went to fetch the means of destruction, probably choosing the lawn
+for the place of execution, in order to show his contempt for his
+sisters.
+
+'Fair damsel in boddice blue,' said Lily, peeping in at the hole at
+the top of the flower-pot, 'I wish I could avert your melancholy
+fate. I am very sorry for you, but I cannot help it.'
+
+'You might help it now, at any rate,' muttered Claude.
+
+'No,' said Lily, 'I know Monsieur Maurice too well to arouse his
+wrath so justly. If you choose to release the pretty creature, I
+shall be charmed.'
+
+'You forget that I am in charge,' said Jane.
+
+'There is a carriage coming to the front gate,' cried Ada. 'Emily,
+may I go into the drawing-room? Oh, Jenny, will you undo my brown
+holland apron?'
+
+'That is right, little mincing Miss,' said Reginald, with a low bow;
+'how fine we are to-day.'
+
+'How visitors break into the afternoon,' said Emily, with a languid
+turn of her head.
+
+'Jenny, brownie,' called Maurice from his bedroom window, 'I want the
+sulphuric acid.'
+
+Jane sprang up and ran into the house, though her sisters called
+after her, that she would come full upon the company in the hall.
+
+'They shall not catch me here,' cried Reginald, rushing off into the
+shrubbery.
+
+'Are you coming in, Claude?' said Emily.
+
+'Send Ada to call me, if there is any one worth seeing,' said Claude
+
+'They will see you from the window,' said Emily.
+
+'No,' said Claude, 'no one ever found me out last summer, under these
+friendly branches.'
+
+The old butler, Joseph, now showed himself on the terrace; and the
+young ladies, knowing that he had no intention of crossing the lawn,
+hastened to learn from him who their visitors were, and entered the
+house. Just then Phyllis came running back from the kitchen garden,
+and without looking round, or perceiving Claude, she took up the
+flower-pot and released the captive, which, unconscious of its peril,
+rested on a blade of grass, vibrating its gauzy wings and rejoicing
+in the restored sunbeams.
+
+'Fly away, fly away, you pretty creature,' said Phyllis; 'make haste,
+or Maurice will come and catch you again. I wish I had not given you
+such a fright. I thought you would have been killed, and a pin stuck
+all through that pretty blue and black body of yours. Oh! that would
+be dreadful. Make haste and go away! I would not have caught you,
+you beautiful thing, if I had known what he wanted to do. I thought
+he only wanted to look at your beautiful body, like a little bit of
+the sky come down to look at the flowers, and your delicate wings,
+and great shining eyes. Oh! I am very glad God made you so
+beautiful. Oh! there is Maurice coming. I must blow upon you to
+make you go. Oh, that is right--up quite high in the air--quite
+safe,' and she clapped her hands as the dragon-fly rose in the air,
+and disappeared behind the laurels, just as Maurice and Reginald
+emerged from the shrubbery, the former with a bottle in his hand.
+
+'Well, where is the Libellulla?' said he.
+
+'The dragon-fly?' said Phyllis. 'I let it out.'
+
+'Sold, Maurice!' cried Reginald, laughing at his brother's disaster.
+
+'Upon my word, Phyl, you are very kind!' said Maurice, angrily. 'If
+I had known you were such an ill-natured crab--'
+
+'Oh! Maurice dear, don't say so,' exclaimed Phyllis. 'I thought I
+might let it out because I caught it myself; and I told you I did not
+catch it for you to kill; Maurice, indeed, I am sorry I vexed you.'
+
+'What else did you do it for?' said Maurice. 'It is horrid not to be
+able to leave one's things a minute--'
+
+'But I did not know the dragon-fly belonged to you, Maurice,' said
+Phyllis.
+
+'That is a puzzler, Mohun senior,' said Reginald.
+
+'Now, Redgie, do get Maurice to leave off being angry with me,'
+implored his sister.
+
+'I will leave off being angry,' said Maurice, seeing his advantage,
+'if you will promise never to let out my things again.'
+
+'I do not think I can promise,' said Phyllis.
+
+'O yes, you can,' said Reginald, 'you know they are not his.'
+
+'Promise you will not let out any insects I may get,' said Maurice,
+'or I shall say you are as cross as two sticks.'
+
+'I'll tell you what, Maurice,' said Phyllis, 'I do wish you would not
+make me promise, for I do not think I CAN keep it, for I cannot bear
+to see the beautiful live things killed.'
+
+'Nonsense,' said Maurice, fiercely, 'I am very angry indeed, you
+naughty child; promise--'
+
+'I cannot,' said Phyllis, beginning to cry.
+
+'Then,' said Maurice, 'I will not speak to you all day.'
+
+'No, no,' shouted Reginald, 'we will only treat her like the horse-
+stinger; you wanted a puella, Maurice--here is one for you, here,
+give her a dose of the turpentine.'
+
+'Yes,' said Maurice, advancing with his bottle; 'and do you take the
+poker down to Naylor's to be sharpened, it will just do to stick
+through her back. Oh! no, not Naylor's--the girls have made a hash
+there, as they do everything else; but we will settle her before they
+come out again.'
+
+Phyllis screamed and begged for mercy--her last ally had deserted
+her.
+
+'Promise!' cried the boys.
+
+'Oh, don't!' was all her answer.
+
+Reginald caught her and held her fast, Maurice advanced upon her, she
+struggled, and gave a scream of real terror. The matter was no joke
+to any one but Reginald, for Maurice was very angry and really meant
+to frighten her.
+
+'Hands off, boys, I will not have her bullied,' said Claude, half
+rising.
+
+Maurice gave a violent start, Reginald looked round laughing, and
+exclaimed, 'Who would have thought of Claude sneaking there?' and
+Phyllis ran to the protecting arm, which he stretched out. To her
+great surprise, he drew her to him, and kissed her forehead, saying,
+'Well done, Phyl!'
+
+'Oh, I knew he was not going to hurt me,' said Phyllis, still panting
+from the struggle.
+
+'To be sure not,' said Maurice, 'I only meant to have a little fun.'
+
+Claude, with his arm still round his sister's waist, gave Maurice a
+look, expressing, 'Is that the truth?' and Reginald tumbled head over
+heels, exclaiming, 'I would not have been Phyl just them.'
+
+Ada now came running up to them, saying, 'Maurice and Redgie, you are
+to come in; Mr. and Mrs. Burnet heard your voices, and begged to see
+you, because they never saw you last holidays.'
+
+'More's the pity they should see us now,' said Maurice.
+
+'I shall not go,' said Reginald.
+
+'Papa is there, and he sent for you,' said Ada.
+
+'Plague,' was the answer.
+
+'See what you get by making such a row,' said Claude. 'If you had
+been as orderly members of society as I am--'
+
+'Oh, but Claude,' said Ada, 'papa told me to see if I could find you.
+Dear Claude, I wish,' she proceeded, taking his hand, and looking
+engaging, 'I wish you would put your arm round me as you do round
+Phyl.'
+
+'You are not worth it, Ada,' said Reginald, and Claude did not
+contradict him.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII--THE BROTHERS
+
+
+
+'But smiled to hear the creatures he had known
+So long were now in class and order shown -
+Genus and species. "Is it meet," said he,
+"This creature's name should one so sounding be -
+'Tis but a fly, though first-born of the spring,
+Bombylius Majus, dost thou call the thing?"
+
+It was not till Sunday, that Lily's eager wish was fulfilled, of
+introducing her friend and her brothers; but, as she might have
+foreseen, their first meeting did not make the perfections of either
+party very clear to the other. Claude never spoke to strangers more
+than he could help, Maurice and Reginald were in the room only a
+short time; so that the result of Miss Weston's observations, when
+communicated in reply to Lily's eager inquiries, was only that Claude
+was very like his father and eldest brother, Reginald very handsome,
+and Maurice looked like a very funny fellow.
+
+On Monday, Reginald and Maurice were required to learn what they had
+always refused to acknowledge, that the holidays were not intended to
+be spent in idleness. A portion of each morning was to be devoted to
+study, Claude having undertaken the task of tutor--and hard work he
+found it; and much did Lily pity him, when, as not unfrequently
+happened, the summons to the children's dinner would bring him from
+the study, looking thoroughly fagged--Maurice in so sulky a mood that
+he would hardly deign to open his lips--Reginald talking fast enough,
+indeed, but only to murmur at his duties in terms, which, though they
+made every one laugh, were painful to hear. Then Claude would take
+his brothers back to the study, and not appear for an hour or more,
+and when he did come forth, it was with a bad headache. Sometimes,
+as if to show that it was only through their own fault that their
+tasks were wearisome, one or both boys would finish quite early, when
+Reginald would betake himself to the schoolroom and employ his idle
+time in making it nearly impossible for Ada and Phyllis to learn, by
+talking, laughing, teasing the canary, overturning everything in
+pursuing wasps, making Emily fretful by his disobedience, and then
+laughing at her, and, in short, proving his right to the title he had
+given himself at the end of the only letter he had written since he
+first went to school, and which he had subscribed, 'Your affectionate
+bother, R. Mohun.' So that, for their own sake, all would have
+preferred the inattentive mornings.
+
+Lily often tried to persuade Claude to allow her to tell her father
+how troublesome the boys were, but never with any effect. He once
+took up a book he had been using with them, and pointing to the name
+in the first page, in writing, which Lily knew full well, 'Henry
+Mohun,' she perceived that he meant to convince her that it was
+useless to try to dissuade him, as he thought the patience and
+forbearance his brother had shown to him must be repaid by his not
+shrinking from the task he had imposed upon himself with his young
+brothers, though he was often obliged to sit up part of the night to
+pursue his own studies.
+
+If Claude had rather injudiciously talked too much to Lilias of 'her
+principle,' and thus kept it alive in her mind, yet his example might
+have made its fallacy evident. She believed that what she called
+love had been the turning point in his character, that it had been
+his earnest desire to follow in Henry's steps, and so try to comfort
+his father for his loss, that had roused him from his indolence; but
+she was beginning to see that nothing but a sense of duty could have
+kept up the power of that first impulse for six years. Lily began to
+enter a little into his principle, and many things that occurred
+during these holidays made her mistrust her former judgment. She saw
+that without the unvarying principle of right and wrong, fraternal
+love itself would fail in outward acts and words. Forbearance,
+though undeniably a branch of love, could not exist without constant
+remembrance of duty; and which of them did not sometimes fail in
+kindness, meekness, and patience? Did Emily show that softness,
+which was her most agreeable characteristic, in her whining reproofs-
+-in her complaints that 'no one listened to a word she said'--in her
+refusal to do justice even to those who had vainly been seeking for
+peace? Did Lily herself show any of her much valued love, by the
+sharp manner in which she scolded the boys for roughness towards
+herself? or for language often used by them on purpose to make her
+displeasure a matter of amusement? She saw that her want of command
+of temper was a failure both in love and duty, and when irritated,
+the thought of duty came sooner to her aid than the feeling of love.
+
+And Maurice and Reginald were really very provoking. Maurice loved
+no amusement better than teasing his sisters, and this was almost the
+only thing in which Reginald agreed with him. Reginald was
+affectionate, but too reckless and violent not to be very
+troublesome, and he too often flew into a passion if Maurice
+attempted to laugh at him; the little girls were often frightened and
+made unhappy; Phyllis would scream and roar, and Ada would come
+sobbing to Emily, to be comforted after some rudeness of Reginald's.
+It was not very often that quarrels went so far, but many a time in
+thought, word, and deed was the rule of love transgressed, and more
+than once did Emily feel ready to give up all her dignity, to have
+Eleanor's hand over the boys once more. Claude, finding that he
+could do much to prevent mischief, took care not to leave the two
+boys long together with the elder girls. They were far more
+inoffensive when separate, as Maurice never practised his tormenting
+tricks when no one was present to laugh with him, and Reginald was
+very kind to Phyllis and Ada, although somewhat rude.
+
+It was a day or two after they returned that Phyllis was leaning on
+the window-sill in the drawing-room, watching a passing shower, and
+admiring the soft bright tints of a rainbow upon the dark gray mass
+of cloud. 'I do set my bow in the cloud,' repeated she to herself
+over and over again, until Adeline entering the room, she eagerly
+exclaimed, 'Oh Ada, come and look at this beautiful rainbow, green,
+and pink, and purple. A double one, with so many stripes, Ada. See,
+there is a little bit more green.'
+
+'There is no green in a rainbow,' said Ada.
+
+'But look, Ada, that is green.'
+
+'It is not real green. Blue, red, and yellow are the pragmatic
+colours,' said Ada, with a most triumphant air. 'Now are not they,
+Maurice?' said she, turning to her brother, who was, as usual, deep
+in entomology.
+
+'Pragmatic, you foolish child,' said he. 'Prismatic you mean. I am
+glad you remember what I tell you, however; I think I might teach you
+some science in time. You are right in saying that blue, red, and
+yellow are the prismatic colours. Now do you know what causes a
+rainbow?'
+
+'It is to show there is never to be another flood,' said Phyllis,
+gravely.
+
+'Oh, I did not mean that,' said Maurice, addressing himself to Ada,
+whose love of hard words made him deem her a promising pupil, and
+whom he could lecture without interruption. 'The rainbow is caused
+by--'
+
+'But, Maurice!' exclaimed Phyllis, remaining with mouth wide open.
+
+'The rainbow is occasioned by the refraction of the rays of the sun
+in the drops of water of which a cloud is composed.'
+
+'But, Maurice!' again said Phyllis.
+
+'Well, what do you keep on "but, Mauricing," about?'
+
+'But, Maurice, I thought it said, "I do set my bow in the cloud." Is
+not that right? I will look.'
+
+'I know that, but I know the iris, or rainbow, is a natural
+phenomenon occasioned by the refraction.'
+
+'But, Maurice, I can't bear you to say that;' and poor Phyllis sat
+down and began to cry.
+
+Ada interfered. 'Why, Maurice, you believe the Bible, don't you?'
+
+This last speech was heard by Lilias, who just now entered the room,
+and greatly surprised her. 'What can you be talking of?' said she.
+
+'Only some nonsense of the children's,' said Maurice, shortly.
+
+'But only hear what he says,' cried Ada. 'He says the rainbow was
+not put there to show there is never to be another flood!'
+
+'Now, Lily,' said Maurice, 'I do not think there is much use in
+talking to you, but I wish you to understand that all I said was,
+that the rainbow, or iris, is a natural phenomenon occasioned by the
+refraction of the solar--'
+
+'You will certainly bewilder yourself into something dreadful with
+that horrid science,' said Lily. 'What is the matter with Phyl?'
+
+'Only crying because of what I said,' answered Maurice. 'So
+childish, and you are just as bad.'
+
+'But do you mean to say,' exclaimed Lily, 'that you set this human
+theory above the authority of the Bible?'
+
+'It is common sense,' said Maurice; 'I could make a rainbow any day.'
+
+Whereupon Phyllis cried the more, and Lily looked infinitely shocked.
+'This is philosophy and vain deceit,' said she; 'the very thing that
+tends to infidelity.'
+
+'I can't help it--it is universally allowed,' said the boy doggedly.
+
+It was fortunate that the next person who entered the room was
+Claude, and all at once he was appealed to by the four disputants,
+Lily the loudest and most vehement. 'Claude, listen to him, and tell
+him to throw away these hateful new lights, which lead to everything
+that is shocking!'
+
+'Listen to him, with three ladies talking at once?' said Claude.
+'No, not Phyl--her tears only are eloquent; but it is a mighty war
+about the token of peace and LOVE, Lily.'
+
+'The love would be in driving these horrible philosophical
+speculations out of Maurice's mind,' said Lily.
+
+'No one can ever drive out the truth,' said Maurice, with provoking
+coolness. 'Don't let her scratch out my eyes, Claude.'
+
+'I am not so sure of that maxim,' said Claude. 'Truth is chiefly
+injured--I mean, her force weakened, by her own supporters.'
+
+'Then you agree with me,' said Maurice, 'as, in fact, every rational
+person must.'
+
+'Then you are with me,' said Lily, in the same breath; 'and you will
+convince Maurice of the danger of this nonsense.'
+
+'Umph,' sighed Claude, throwing himself into his father's arm-chair,
+''tis a Herculean labour! It seems I agree with you both.'
+
+'Why, every Christian must be with me, who has not lost his way in a
+mist of his own raising,' said Lilias.
+
+'Do you mean to say,' said Maurice, 'that these colours are not
+produced by refraction? Look at them on those prisms;' and he
+pointed to an old-fashioned lustre on the chimney-piece. 'I hope
+this is not a part of the Christian faith.'
+
+'Take care, Maurice,' and Claude's eyes were bent upon him in a
+manner that made him shrink. And he added, 'Of course I do believe
+that chapter about Noah. I only meant that the immediate cause of
+the rainbow is the refraction of light. I did not mean to be
+irreverent, only the girls took me up in such a way.'
+
+'And I know well enough that you can make those colours by light on
+drops of water,' said Lily.
+
+'So you agreed all the time,' said Claude.
+
+'But,' added Lily, 'I never liked to know it; for it always seemed to
+be explaining away the Bible, and I cannot bear not to regard that
+lovely bow as a constant miracle.'
+
+'You will remember,' said Claude, 'that some commentators say it
+should be, "I HAVE set my bow in the cloud," which would make what
+already existed become a token for the future.
+
+'I don't like that explanation,' said Lily.
+
+'Others say,' added Claude, 'that there might have been no rain at
+all till the windows of heaven were opened at the flood, and, in that
+case, the first recurrence of rain must have greatly alarmed Noah's
+family, if they had not been supported and cheered by the sight of
+the rainbow.'
+
+'That is reasonable,' said Maurice.
+
+'I hate reason applied to revelation,' said Lily.
+
+'It is a happier state of mind which does not seek to apply it,' said
+Claude, looking at Phyllis, who had dried her tears, and stood in the
+window gazing at him, in the happy certainty that he was setting all
+right. Maurice respected Claude for his science as much as his
+character, and did not make game of this observation as he would if
+it had been made by one of his sisters, but he looked at him with an
+odd expression of perplexity. 'You do not think ignorant credulity
+better than reasonable belief?' said he at length.
+
+'It is not I only who think most highly of child-like unquestioning
+faith, Maurice,' said Claude--'faith, that is based upon love and
+reverence,' added he to Lily. 'But come, the shower is over, and
+philosophers, or no philosophers, I invite you to walk in the wood.'
+
+'Aye,' said Maurice, 'I daresay I can find some of the Arachne
+species there. By the bye, Claude, do you think papa would let me
+have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen by twenty, to cover my case of
+insects?'
+
+'Ask, and you will discover,' said Claude.
+
+Accordingly, Maurice began the next morning at breakfast, 'Papa, may
+I have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen by--?'
+
+But no one heard, for Emily was at the moment saying, 'The Westons
+are to dine here to-day.'
+
+Claude and Maurice both looked blank.
+
+'I persuaded papa to ask the Westons,' said Lily, 'because I am
+determined that Claude shall like Alethea.'
+
+'You must expect that I shall not, you have given me so many orders
+on the subject,' said Claude.
+
+'Take care it has not the same effect as to tell Maurice to like a
+book,' said Emily; 'nothing makes his aversion so certain.'
+
+'Except when he takes it up by mistake, and forgets that it has been
+recommended to him,' said Claude.
+
+'Take care, Redgie, with your knife; don't put out my eyes in your
+ardour against that wretched wasp. Wat Greenwood may well say "there
+is a terrible sight of waspses this year."'
+
+'I killed twenty-nine yesterday,' said Reginald.
+
+'And I will tell you what I saw,' said Phyllis; 'I was picking up
+apples, and the wasps were flying all round, and there came a
+hornet.'
+
+'Vespa Crabro!' cried Maurice; 'oh, I must have one!'
+
+'Well, what of the hornet?' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'I'll tell you what,' resumed Phyllis, 'he saw a wasp flying, and so
+he went up in the air, and pounced on the poor wasp as the hawk did
+on Jane's bantam. So then he hung himself up to the branch of a tree
+by one of his legs, and held the wasp with the other five, and began
+to pack it up. First he bit off the yellow tail, then the legs, and
+threw them away, and then there was nothing left but the head, and so
+he flew away with it to his nest.'
+
+'Which way did he go?' said Maurice.
+
+'To the Old Court,' answered Phyllis; 'I think the nest is in the
+roof of the old cow-house, for they were flying in and out there
+yesterday, and one was eating out the wood from the old rails.'
+
+'Well,' said Mr. Mohun, 'you must show me a hornet hawking for wasps
+before the nest is taken, Phyllis; I suppose you have seen the wasps
+catching flies?'
+
+'Oh yes, papa! but they pack them up quite differently. They do not
+hang by one leg, but they sit down quite comfortably on a branch
+while they bite off the wings and legs.'
+
+'There, Maurice,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I had rather hear of one such
+well-observed fact than of a dozen of your hard names and impaled
+insects.'
+
+Phyllis looked quite radiant with delight at his approbation.
+
+'But, papa,' said Maurice, 'may I have a piece of plate-glass,
+eighteen by twenty?'
+
+'When you observe facts in natural history, perhaps I may say
+something to your entomology,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'But, papa, all my insects will be spoilt if I may not have a piece
+of glass, eighteen by--'
+
+He was interrupted by the arrival of the post-bag, which Jane, as
+usual, opened. 'A letter from Rotherwood,' said she; 'I hope he is
+coming at last.'
+
+'He is,' said Claude, reading the letter, 'but only from Saturday
+till Wednesday.'
+
+'He never gave us so little of his good company as he has this
+summer,' said Emily.
+
+'You will have them all in the autumn, to comfort you,' said Claude,
+'for he hereby announces the marvellous fact, that the Marchioness
+sends him to see if the castle is fit to receive her.'
+
+'Are you sure he is not only believing what he wishes?' said Mr.
+Mohun.
+
+'I think he will gain his point at last,' said Claude.
+
+'How stupid of him to stay no longer!' said Reginald.
+
+'I think he has some scheme for this vacation,' said Claude, 'and I
+suppose he means to crowd all the Beechcroft diversions of a whole
+summer into those few days.'
+
+'Emily,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I wish him to know the Carringtons; invite
+them and the Westons to dinner on Tuesday.'
+
+'Oh don't!' cried Reginald. 'It will be so jolly to have him to take
+wasps' nests; and may I go out rabbit-shooting with him?'
+
+'If he goes.'
+
+'And may I carry a gun?'
+
+'If it is not loaded,' said his father.
+
+'Indeed, I would do no mischief,' said Reginald.
+
+'Let me give you one piece of advice, Reginald,' said Mr. Mohun, with
+a mysterious air--'never make rash promises.'
+
+Lilias was rather disappointed in her hopes that Miss Weston and
+Claude would become better acquainted. At dinner the conversation
+was almost entirely between the elder gentlemen; Claude scarcely
+spoke, except when referred to by his father or Mr. Devereux. Miss
+Weston never liked to incur the danger of having to repeat her
+insignificant speeches to a deaf ear, and being interested in the
+discussion that was going on, she by no means seconded Lily's attempt
+to get up an under-current of talk. In general, Lily liked to listen
+to conversation in silence, but she was now in very high spirits, and
+could not be quiet; fortunately, she had no interest in the subject
+the gentlemen were discussing, so that she could not meddle with
+that, and finding Alethea silent and Claude out of reach, she turned
+to Reginald, and talked and tittered with him all dinner-time.
+
+In the drawing-room she had it all her own way, and talked enough for
+all the sisters.
+
+'Have you heard that Cousin Rotherwood is coming?'
+
+'Yes, you said so before dinner.'
+
+'We hope,' said Emily, 'that you and Mr. Weston will dine here on
+Tuesday. The Carringtons are coming, and a few others.'
+
+'Thank you,' said Alethea; 'I daresay papa will be very glad to
+come.'
+
+'Have you ever seen Rotherwood?' said Lilias.
+
+'Never,' was the reply.
+
+'Do not expect much,' said Lily, laughing, though she knew not why;
+'he is a very little fellow; no one would suppose him to be twenty,
+he has such a boyish look. Then he never sits down--'
+
+'Literally?' said Emily.
+
+'Literally,' persisted Lily; 'such a quick person you never did see.'
+
+'Is he at Oxford?'
+
+'Oh yes! it was all papa's doing that he was sent to Eton. Papa is
+his guardian. Aunt Rotherwood never would have parted with him.'
+
+'He is the only son,' interposed Emily.
+
+'Uncle Rotherwood put him quite in papa's power; Aunt Rotherwood
+wanted to keep him at home with a tutor, and what she would have made
+of him I cannot think,' said Lily; and regardless of Emily's warning
+frowns, and Alethea's attempt to change the subject, she went on:
+'When he was quite a child he used to seem a realisation of all the
+naughty Dicks and Toms in story-books. Miss Middleton had a perfect
+horror of his coming here, for he would mind no one, and played
+tricks and drew Claude into mischief; but he is quite altered since
+papa had the management of him--Oh! such talks as papa has had with
+Aunt Rotherwood--do you know, papa says no one knows what it is to
+lose a father but those who have the care of his children, and Aunt
+Rotherwood is so provoking.'
+
+Here Alethea determined to put an end to this oration, and to Emily's
+great relief, she cut short the detail of Lady Rotherwood's offences
+by saying, 'Do you think Faith Longley likely to suit us, if we took
+her to help the housemaid?'
+
+'Are you thinking of taking her?' cried Lily. 'Yes, for steady,
+stupid household work, Faith would do very well; she is just the
+stuff to make a servant of--"for dulness ever must be regular"--I
+mean for those who like mere steadiness better than anything more
+lovable.'
+
+As Alethea said, laughing, 'I must confess my respect for that
+quality,' Mr. Devereux and Claude entered the room.
+
+'Oh, Robert!' cried Lily, 'Mrs. Weston is going to take Faith Longley
+to help the housemaid.'
+
+'You are travelling too fast, Lily,' said Alethea, 'she is only going
+to think about it.'
+
+'I should be very glad,' said Mr. Devereux, 'that Faith should have a
+good place; the Longleys are very respectable people, and they
+behaved particularly well in refusing to let this girl go and live
+with some dissenters at Stoney Bridge.'
+
+'I like what I have seen of the girl very much,' said Miss Weston.
+
+'In spite of her sad want of feeling,' said Robert, smiling, as he
+looked at Lily.
+
+'Oh! she is a good work-a-day sort of person,' said Lily, 'like all
+other poor people, hard and passive. Now, do not set up your
+eyebrows, Claude, I am quite serious, there is no warmth about any
+except--'
+
+'So this is what Lily is come to!' cried Emily; 'the grand supporter
+of the poor on poetical principles.'
+
+'The poor not affectionate!' said Alethea.
+
+'Not, compared within people whose minds and affections have been
+cultivated,' said Lily. 'Now just hear what Mrs. Wall said to me
+only yesterday; she asked for a black stuff gown out of the clothing
+club, "for," said she, "I had a misfortune, Miss;" I thought it would
+be, "and tore my gown," but it was, "I had a misfortune, Miss, and
+lost my brother."'
+
+'A very harsh conclusion on very slight grounds,' said Mr. Devereux.
+
+'Prove the contrary,' said Lily.
+
+'Facts would scarcely demonstrate it either way,' said Mr. Devereux.
+'They would only prove what was the case with individuals who chanced
+to come in our way, and if we are seldom able to judge of the depth
+of feeling of those with whom we are familiar, how much less of those
+who feel our presence a restraint.'
+
+'Intense feeling mocks restraint,' said Lily.
+
+'Violent, not intense,' said Mr. Devereux. 'Besides, you talk of
+cultivating the affections. Now what do you mean? Exercising them,
+or talking about them?'
+
+'Ah!' said Emily, 'the affection of a poor person is more tried; we
+blame a poor man for letting his old mother go to the workhouse,
+without considering how many of us would do the same, if we had as
+little to live upon.'
+
+'Still,' said Alethea, 'the same man who would refuse to maintain her
+if poor, would not bear with her infirmities if rich.'
+
+'Are the poor never infirm and peevish?' said Mr. Devereux.
+
+'Oh! how much worse it must be to bear with ill-temper in poverty,'
+said Emily, 'when we think it quite wonderful to see a young lady
+kind and patient with a cross old relation; what must it be when she
+is denying herself, not only her pleasure, but her food for her sake;
+not merely sitting quietly with her all day, and calling a servant to
+wait upon her, but toiling all day to maintain her, and keeping awake
+half the night to nurse her?'
+
+'Those are realities, indeed,' said Alethea; 'our greatest efforts
+seem but child's play in comparison.'
+
+Lilias could hardly have helped being sobered by this conversation if
+she had attended to it, but she had turned away to repeat the story
+of Mrs. Walls to Jane, and then, fancying that the others were still
+remarking upon it, she said in a light, laughing tone, 'Well, so far
+I agree with you. I know of a person who may well be called one of
+ourselves, who I could quite fancy making such a speech.'
+
+'Whom do you mean?' said Mr. Devereux. Alethea wished she did not
+know.
+
+'No very distant relation,' said Jane.
+
+'Do not talk nonsense, Jane,' said Claude, gravely.
+
+'No nonsense at all, Claude,' cried Jane in her very very pertest
+tone, 'it is exactly like Eleanor; I am sure I can see her with her
+hands before her, saying in her prim voice, "I must turn my old black
+silk and trim it with crape, for I have had a misfortune, and lost my
+brother."'
+
+'Lilias,' said Miss Weston, somewhat abruptly, 'did you not wish to
+sing with me this evening?'
+
+And thus she kept Lilias from any further public mischief that
+evening.
+
+Claude, exceedingly vexed by what had passed, with great injustice,
+laid the blame upon Miss Weston, and instead of rendering her the
+honour which she really deserved for the tact with which she had put
+an end to the embarrassment of all parties, he fancied she was
+anxious to display her talents for music, and thus only felt fretted
+by the sounds.
+
+Mr. Weston and his daughter intended to walk home that evening, as it
+was a beautiful moonlight night.
+
+'Oh, let us convoy you!' exclaimed Lilias; 'I do long to show Alethea
+a glow-worm. Will you come, Claude? May we, papa? Feel how still
+and warm it is. A perfect summer night, not a breath stirring.'
+
+Mr. Mohun consented, and Lily almost hurried Alethea upstairs, to put
+on her bonnet and shawl. When she came down she found that the
+walking party had increased. Jane and Reginald would both have been
+in despair to have missed such a frolic; Maurice hoped to fall in
+with the droning beetle, or to lay violent hands on a glow-worm;
+Emily did not like to be left behind, and even Mr. Mohun was going,
+being in the midst of an interesting conversation with Mr. Weston.
+Lily, with an absurd tragic gesture, told Alethea that amongst so
+many, such a crowd, all the grace and sweet influence of the walk was
+ruined. The 'sweet influence' was ruined as far as Lily was
+concerned, but not by the number of her companions. It was the
+uneasy feeling caused by her over-strained spirits and foolish
+chattering that prevented her from really entering into the charm of
+the soft air, the clear moon, the solemn deep blue sky, the few
+stars, the white lilies on the dark pond, the long shadows of the
+trees, the freshness of the dewy fields. Her simplicity, and her
+genuine delight in the loveliness of the scene, was gone for the
+time, and though she spoke much of her enjoyment, it was in a high-
+flown affected style.
+
+When the last good-night had been exchanged, and Lily had turned
+homeward, she felt the stillness which succeeded their farewells
+almost oppressive; she started at the dark shadow of a tree which lay
+across the path, and to shake off a sensation of fear which was
+coming over her, she put her arm within Claude's, exclaiming, 'You
+naughty boy, you will be stupid and silent, say what I will.'
+
+'I heard enough to-night to strike me dumb,' said Claude.
+
+For one moment Lily thought he was in jest, but the gravity of his
+manner showed her that he was both grieved and displeased, and she
+changed her tone as she said, 'Oh! Claude, what do you mean?'
+
+'Do you not know?' said Claude.
+
+'What, you mean about Eleanor?' said Lily; 'you must fall upon Miss
+Jenny there--it was her doing.'
+
+'Jane's tongue is a pest,' said Claude; 'but she was not the first to
+speak evil falsely of one to whom you owe everything. Oh! Lily, I
+cannot tell you how that allusion of yours sounded.'
+
+'What allusion?' asked Lily in alarm, for she had never seen her
+gentle brother so angry.
+
+'You know,' said he.
+
+'Indeed, I do not,' exclaimed Lily, munch frightened. 'Claude,
+Claude, you must mistake, I never could have said anything so very
+shocking.'
+
+'I hope I do,' said Claude; 'I could hardly believe that one of the
+little ones who cannot remember him, could have referred to him in
+that way--but for you!'
+
+'Him?' said Lilias.
+
+'I do not like to mention his name to one who regards him so
+lightly,' said Claude. 'Think over what passed, if you are
+sufficiently come to yourself to remember it.'
+
+After a little pause Lily said in a subdued voice, 'Claude, I hope
+you do not believe that I was thinking of what really happened when I
+said that.'
+
+'Pray what were you thinking of?'
+
+'The abstract view of Eleanor's character.'
+
+'Abstract nonsense!' said Claude. 'A fine demonstration of the rule
+of love, to go about the world slandering your sister!'
+
+'To go about the world! Oh! Claude, it was only Robert, one of
+ourselves, and Alethea, to whom I tell everything.'
+
+'So much the worse. I always rejoiced that you had no foolish young
+lady friend to make missish confidences to.'
+
+'She is no foolish young lady friend,' said Lilias, indignant in her
+turn; 'she is five years older than I am, and papa wishes us to be
+intimate with her.'
+
+'Then the fault is in yourself,' said Claude. 'You ought not to have
+told such things if they were true, and being utterly false--'
+
+'But, Claude, I cannot see that they are false.'
+
+'Not false, that Eleanor cared not a farthing for Harry!' cried
+Claude, shaking off Lily's arm, and stopping short.
+
+'Oh!--she cared, she really did care,' said Lily, as fast as she
+could speak. 'Oh! Claude, how could you think that? I told you I
+did not mean what really happened, only that--Eleanor is cold--not as
+warm as some people--she did care for him, of course she did--I know
+that--I believe she loved him with all her heart--but yet--I mean she
+did not--she went on as usual--said nothing--scarcely cried--looked
+the same--taught us--never--Oh! it did not make half the difference
+in her that it did in William.'
+
+'I cannot tell how she behaved at the time,' said Claude, 'I only
+know I never had any idea what a loss Harry was till I came home and
+saw her face. I used never to trouble myself to think whether people
+looked ill or well, but the change in her did strike me. She was
+bearing up to comfort papa, and to cheer William, and to do her duty
+by all of us, and you could take such noble resignation for want of
+feeling!'
+
+Lilias looked down and tried to speak, but she was choked by her
+tears; she could not bear Claude's displeasure, and she wept in
+silence. At last she said in a voice broken by sobs, 'I was unjust--
+I know Eleanor was all kindness--all self-sacrifice--I have been very
+ungrateful--I wish I could help it--and you know well, Claude, how
+far I am from regarding dear Harry with indifference--how the thought
+of him is a star in my mind--how happy it makes me to think of him at
+the end of the Church Militant Prayer; do not believe I was dreaming
+of him.'
+
+'And pray,' said Claude, laughing in his own good-humoured way,
+'which of us is it that she is so willing to lose?'
+
+'Oh! Claude, no such thing,' said Lily, 'you know what I meant, or
+did not mean. It was nonsense--I hope nothing worse.' Lily felt
+that she might take his arm again. There was a little silence, and
+then Lily resumed in a timid voice, 'I do not know whether you will
+be angry, Claude, but honestly, I do not think that if--that Eleanor
+would be so wretched about you as I should.'
+
+'Eleanor knew Harry better than you did; no, Lily, I never could have
+been what Harry was, even if I had never wasted my time, and if my
+headaches had not interfered with my best efforts.'
+
+'I do not believe that, say what you will,' said Lily.
+
+'Ask William, then,' said Claude, sighing.
+
+'I am sure papa does not think so,' said Lily; 'no, I cannot feel
+that Harry is such a loss when we still have you.'
+
+'Oh! Lily, it is plain that you never knew Harry,' said Claude. 'I
+do not believe you ever did--that is one ting to be said for you.'
+
+'Not as you did,' said Lily; 'remember, he was six years older. Then
+think how little we saw of him whilst they were abroad; he was always
+at school, or spending the holidays with Aunt Robert, and latterly
+even farther off, and only coming sometimes for an hour or two to see
+us. Then he used to kiss us all round, we went into the garden with
+him, looked at him, and were rather afraid of him; then he walked off
+to Wat Greenwood, came back, wished us good-bye, and away he went.'
+
+'Yes,' said Claude, 'but after they came home?'
+
+'Then he was a tall youth, and we were silly girls,' said Lilias; 'he
+avoided Miss Middleton, and we were always with her. He was good-
+natured, but he could not get on with us; he did very well with the
+little ones, but we were of the wrong age. He and William and
+Eleanor were one faction, we were another, and you were between both-
+-he was too old, too sublime, too good, too grave for us.'
+
+'Too grave!' said Claude; 'I never heard a laugh so full of glee,
+except, perhaps, Phyllis's.'
+
+'The last time he was at home,' continued Lily, 'we began to know him
+better; there was no Miss Middleton in the way, and after you and
+William were gone, he used to walk with us, and read to us. He read
+Guy Mannering to us, and told us the story of Sir Maurice de Mohun;
+but the loss was not the same to us as to you elder ones; and then
+sorrow was almost lost in admiration, and in pleasure at the terms in
+which every one spoke of him. Claude, I have no difficulty in not
+wishing it otherwise; he is still my brother, and I would not change
+the feeling which the thought of his death gives me--no, not for
+himself in life and health.'
+
+'Ah!' sighed Claude, 'you have no cause for self-reproach--no reason
+to lament over "wasted hours and love misspent."'
+
+'You will always talk of your old indolence, as if it was a great
+crime,' said Lily.
+
+'It was my chief temptation,' said Claude. 'As long as we know we
+are out of the path of duty it does not make much difference whether
+we have turned to the right hand or to the left.'
+
+'Was it Harry's death that made you look upon it in this light?' said
+Lily.
+
+'I knew it well enough before,' said Claude, 'it was what he had
+often set before me. Indeed, till I came home, and saw this place
+without him, I never really knew what a loss he was. At Eton I did
+not miss him more than when he went to Oxford, and I did not dwell on
+what he was to papa, or what I ought to be; and even when I saw what
+home was without him, I should have contented myself with miserable
+excuses about my health, if it had not been for my confirmation; then
+I awoke, I saw my duty, and the wretched way in which I had been
+spending my time. Thoughts of Harry and of my father came
+afterwards; I had not vigour enough for them before.'
+
+Here they reached the house, and parted--Claude, ashamed of having
+talked of himself for the first time in his life, and Lily divided
+between shame at her own folly and pleasure at Claude's having thus
+opened his mind.
+
+Jane, who was most in fault, escaped censure. Her father was
+ignorant of her improper speech. Emily forgot it, and it was not
+Claude's place to reprove his sisters, though to Lily he spoke as a
+friend. It passed away from her mind like other idle words, which,
+however, could not but leave an impression on those who heard her.
+
+An unlooked-for result of the folly of this evening was, that Claude
+was prevented from appreciating Miss Weston He could not learn to
+like her, nor shake off an idea, that she was prying into their
+family concerns; he thought her over-praised, and would not even give
+just admiration to her singing, because he had once fancied her eager
+to exhibit it. It was unreasonable to dislike his sister's friend
+for his sister's folly, but Claude's wisdom was not yet arrived at
+its full growth, and he deserved credit for keeping his opinion to
+himself.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX--THE WASP
+
+
+
+'Whom He hath blessed and called His own,
+He tries them early, look and tone,
+ Bent brow and throbbing heart,
+Tries them with pain.'
+
+The next week Lily had the pleasure of fitting out Faith Longley for
+her place at Mrs. Weston's. She rejoiced at this opportunity of
+patronising her, because in her secret soul she felt that she might
+have done her a little injustice in choosing her own favourite Esther
+in her stead. Esther's popularity at the New Court, however, made
+Lilias confident in her own judgment; the servants liked her because
+she was quick and obliging, Mr. Mohun said she looked very neat,
+Phyllis liked her because a mischance to her frock was not so brave
+an offence with her as with Rachel, and Ada was growing very fond of
+her, because she was in the habit of bestowing great admiration on
+her golden curls as she arranged them, and both little girls were
+glad not to be compelled to put away the playthings they took out.
+
+Maurice and Reginald had agreed to defer their onslaught on the wasps
+till Lord Rotherwood's arrival, and the war was now limited to
+attacks on foraging parties. Reginald most carefully marked every
+nest about the garden and farm, and, on his cousin's arrival on
+Saturday evening, began eagerly to give him a list of their
+localities. Lord Rotherwood was as ardent in the cause as even
+Reginald could desire, and would have instantly set out with him to
+reconnoitre had not the evening been rainy.
+
+Then turning to Claude, he said, 'But I have not told you what
+brought me here; I came to persuade you to make an expedition with me
+up the Rhine; I set off next week; I would not write about it,
+because I knew you would only say you should like it very much, but--
+some but, that meant it was a great deal too much trouble.'
+
+'How fast the plan has risen up,' said Claude, 'I heard nothing of it
+when I was with you.'
+
+'Oh! it only came into my head last week, but I do not see what there
+is to wait for, second thoughts are never best.'
+
+'Oh! Claude, how delightful,' said Lily.
+
+Claude stirred his tea meditatively, and did not speak.
+
+'It is too much trouble, I perceive,' said Lord Rotherwood; 'just as
+I told you.'
+
+'Not exactly,' said Claude.
+
+Lord Rotherwood now detailed his plan to his uncle, who said with a
+propitious smile, 'Well, Claude, what do you think of it?
+
+'Mind you catch a firefly for me,' said Maurice.
+
+'Why don't you answer, Claude?' said Lilias; 'only imagine seeing
+Undine's Castle!'
+
+'Eh, Claude?' said his father.
+
+'It would be very pleasant,' said Claude, slowly, 'but--'
+
+'What?' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'Only a but,' said the Marquis. 'I hope he will have disposed of it
+by the morning; I start next Tuesday week; I would not go later for
+the universe; we shall be just in time for the summer in its beauty,
+and to have a peep at Switzerland. We shall not have time for Mont
+Blanc, without rattling faster than any man in his senses would do.
+I do not mean to leave any place till I have thoroughly seen twice
+over everything worth seeing that it contains.'
+
+'Then perhaps you will get as far as Antwerp, and spend the rest of
+the holidays between the Cathedral and Paul Potter's bull. No, I
+shall have nothing to say to you at that rate,' said Claude.
+
+'Depend upon it, it will be you that will wish to stand still when I
+had rather be on the move,' said the Marquis.
+
+'Then you had better leave me behind. I have no intention of being
+hurried over the world, and never having my own way,' said Claude,
+trying to look surly.
+
+'I am sure I should not mind travelling twice over the world to see
+Cologne Cathedral, or the field of Waterloo,' said Lily.
+
+'Let me only show him my route,' said Lord Rotherwood. 'Redgie, look
+in my greatcoat pocket in the hall for Murray's Handbook, will you?'
+
+'Go and get it, Phyl,' said Reginald, who was astride on the window-
+sill, peeling a stick.
+
+Away darted Lord Rotherwood to fetch it himself, but Phyllis was
+before him; her merry laugh was heard, as he chased her round the
+hall to get possession of his book, throwing down two or three cloaks
+to intercept her path. Mr. Mohun took the opportunity of his absence
+to tell Claude that he need not refuse on the score of expense.
+
+'Thank you,' was all Claude's answer.
+
+Lord Rotherwood returned, and after punishing the discourteous
+Reginald by raising him up by his ears, he proceeded to give a full
+description of the delights of his expedition, the girls joining
+heartily with him in declaring it as well arranged as possible, and
+bringing all their knowledge of German travels to bear upon it.
+Claude sometimes put in a word, but never as if he cared much about
+the matter, and he was not to be persuaded to give any decided answer
+as to whether he would accompany the Marquis.
+
+The next morning at breakfast Lord Rotherwood returned to the charge,
+but Claude seemed even more inclined to refuse than the day before.
+Lilias could not divine what was the matter with him, and lingered
+long after her sisters had gone to school, to hear what answer he
+would make; and when Mr. Mohun looked at his watch, and asked her if
+she knew how late it was, she rose from the breakfast-table with a
+sigh, and thought while she was putting on her bonnet how much less
+agreeable the school had been since the schism in the parish. And
+besides, now that Faith and Esther, and one or two others of her best
+scholars, had gone away from school, there seemed to be no one of any
+intelligence or knowledge left in the class, except Marianne Weston,
+who knew too much for the others, and one or two clever inattentive
+little girls: Lily almost disliked teaching them.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline were in Miss Weston's class, and much did they
+delight in her teaching. There was a quiet earnestness in her manner
+which attracted her pupils, and fixed their attention, so as scarcely
+to allow the careless room for irreverence, while mere cleverness
+seemed almost to lose its advantage in learning what can only truly
+be entered into by those whose conduct agrees with their knowledge.
+
+Phyllis never dreamt that she could be happy while standing still and
+learning, till Miss Weston began to teach at the Sunday school.
+Obedience at school taught her to acquire habits of reverent
+attention, which gradually conquered the idleness and weariness which
+had once possessed her at church. First, she learnt to be interested
+in the Historical Lessons, then never to lose her place in the
+Psalms, then to think about and follow some of the Prayers; by this
+time she was far from feeling any fatigue at all on week-days; she
+had succeeded in restraining any contortions to relieve herself from
+the irksomeness of sitting still, and had her thoughts in tolerable
+order through the greater part of the Sunday service, and now it was
+her great wish, unknown to any one, to abstain from a single yawn
+through the whole service, including the sermon!
+
+Her place (chosen for her by Eleanor when first she had begun to go
+to Church, as far as possible from Reginald) was at the end of the
+seat, between her papa and the wall. This morning, as she put her
+arm on the book-board, while rising from kneeling, she felt a sudden
+thrill of sharp pain smear her left elbow, which made her start
+violently, and would have caused a scream, had she not been in
+church. She saw a wasp fall on the ground, and was just about to put
+her foot on it, when she recollected where she was. She had never in
+her life intentionally killed anything, and this was no time to begin
+in that place, and when she was angry. The pain was severe--more so
+perhaps than any she had felt before--and very much frightened, she
+pulled her papa's coat to draw his attention. But her first pull was
+so slight that he did not feel it, and before she gave a second she
+remembered that she could not make him hear what was the matter,
+without more noise than was proper. No, she must stay where she was,
+and try to bear the pain, and she knew that if she did try, help
+would be given her. She proceeded to find out the Psalm and join her
+voice with the others, though her heart was beating very fast, her
+forehead was contracted, and she could not help keeping her right
+hand clasped round her arm, and sometimes shifting from one foot to
+the other. The sharpness of the pain soon went off; she was able to
+attend to the Lessons, and hoped it would soon be quite well; but as
+soon as she began to think about it, it began to ache and throb, and
+seemed each moment to be growing hotter. The sermon especially tried
+her patience, her cheeks were burning, she felt sick and hardly able
+to hold up her head, yet she would not lean it against the wall,
+because she had often been told not to do so. She was exceedingly
+alarmed to find that her arm had swelled so much that she could
+hardly bend it, and it had received the impression of the gathers of
+her sleeve; she thought no sermon had ever been so long, but she sat
+quite still and upright, as she could not have done, had she not
+trained herself unconsciously by her efforts to leave off the trick
+of kicking her heels together. She did not speak till she was in the
+churchyard, and then she made Emily look at her arm.
+
+'My poor child, it is frightful,' said Emily, 'what is the matter?'
+
+'A wasp stung me just before the Psalms,' said Phyllis, 'and it goes
+on swelling and swelling, and it does pant!'
+
+'What is the matter?' asked Mr. Mohun.
+
+'Papa, just look,' said Emily, 'a wasp stung this dear child quite
+early in the service, and she has been bearing it all this time in
+silence. Why did you not show me, Phyl?'
+
+'Because it was in church,' said the little girl.
+
+'Why, Phyllis, you are a very Spartan,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Something better than a Spartan,' said Mr. Mohun. 'Does it give you
+much pain now, my dear?'
+
+'Not so bad as in church,' said Phyllis, 'only I am very tired, and
+it is so hot.'
+
+'We will help you home, then,' said Mr. Mohun. As he took her up in
+his arms, Phyllis laughed, thanked him, replied to various inquiries
+from her sisters and the Westons--laughed again at sundry jokes from
+her brothers, then became silent, and was almost asleep, with her
+head on her papa's shoulder, by the time they reached the hall-door.
+She thought it very strange to be laid down on the sofa in the
+drawing-room, and to find every one attending to her. Mrs. Weston
+bathed her forehead with lavender-water, and Lily cut open the sleeve
+of her frock; Jane fetched all manner of remedies, and Emily pitied
+her. She was rather frightened: she thought such a fuss would not
+be made about her unless she was very ill; she was faint and tired,
+and was glad when Mrs. Weston proposed that they should all come
+away, and leave her to go to sleep quietly.
+
+Marianne was so absorbed in admiration of Phyllis that she did not
+speak one word all the way from church to the New Court, and stood in
+silence watching the operations upon her friend, till Mrs. Weston
+sent every one away.
+
+Adeline rather envied Phyllis; she would willingly have endured the
+pain to be made of so much importance, and said to be better than a
+Spartan, which must doubtless be something very fine indeed!
+
+Phyllis was waked by the bells ringing for the afternoon service;
+Mrs. Weston was sitting by her, reading, Claude came to inquire for
+her, and to tell her that as she had lost her early dinner, she was
+to join the rest of the party at six. To her great surprise she felt
+quite well and fresh, and her arm was much better; Mrs. Weston pinned
+up her sleeve, and she set off with her to church, wondering whether
+Ada would remember to tell her what she had missed that afternoon at
+school. Those whose approbation was valuable, honoured Phyllis for
+her conduct, but she did not perceive it, or seek for it; she did not
+look like a heroine while running about and playing with Reginald and
+the dogs in the evening, but her papa had told her she was a good
+child, Claude had given her one of his kindest smiles, and she was
+happy. Even when Esther was looking at the mark left by the sting,
+and telling her that she was sure Miss Marianne Weston would have not
+been half so good, her simple, humble spirit came to her aid, and she
+answered, 'I'll tell you what, Esther, Marianne would have behaved
+much better, for she is older, and never fidgets, and she would not
+have been angry like me, and just going to kill the wasp.'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X--COUSIN ROTHERWOOD
+
+
+
+'We care not who says
+ And intends it dispraise,
+That an Angler to a fool is next neighbour.'
+
+In the evening Lord Rotherwood renewed his entreaties to Claude to
+join him on his travels. He was very much bent on taking him, for
+his own pleasure depended not a little on his cousin's company.
+Claude lay on the glassy slope of the terrace, while Lord Rotherwood
+paced rapidly up and down before him, persuading him with all the
+allurements he could think of, and looking the picture of impatience.
+Lily sat by, adding her weight to all his arguments. But Claude was
+almost contemptuous to all the beauties of Germany, and all the
+promised sights; he scarcely gave himself the trouble to answer his
+tormentors, only vouchsafing sometimes to open his lips to say that
+he never meant to go to a country where people spoke a language that
+sounded like cracking walnuts; that he hated steamers; had no fancy
+for tumble-down castles; that it was so common to travel; there was
+more distinction in staying at home; that the field of Waterloo had
+been spoilt, and was not worth seeing; his ideas of glaciers would be
+ruined by the reality; and he did not care to see Cologne Cathedral
+till it was finished.
+
+On this Lily set up an outcry of horror.
+
+'One comfort is, Lily,' said Lord Rotherwood, 'he does not mean it;
+he did not say it from the bottom of his heart. Now, confess you did
+not, Claude.'
+
+Claude pretended to be asleep.
+
+'I see plainly enough,' said the Marquis to Lily, 'it is as Wat
+Greenwood says, "Mr. Reynold and the grapes."'
+
+'But it is not,' said Lily, 'and that is what provokes me; papa says
+he is quite welcome to go if he likes, and that he thinks it will do
+him a great deal of good, but that foolish boy will say nothing but
+"I will think about it," and "thank you"'
+
+'Then I give him up as regularly dense.'
+
+'It is the most delightful plan ever thought of,' said Lily, 'so
+easily done, and just bringing within his compass all he ever wished
+to see.'
+
+'Oh! his sole ambition is to stretch those long legs of his on the
+grass, like a great vegetable marrow,' said Lord Rotherwood. 'It is
+vegetating like a plant that makes him so much taller than any
+rational creature with a little animal life.'
+
+'I think Jane has his share of curiosity,' said Lily, 'I am sure I
+had no idea that anything belonging to us could be so stupid.'
+
+'Well,' said the Marquis, 'I shall not go.'
+
+'No?' said Lily.
+
+'No, I shall certainly not go.'
+
+'Nonsense,' said Claude, waking from his pretended sleep, 'why do you
+not ask Travers to go with you? He would like nothing better.'
+
+'He is a botanist, and would bore me with looking for weeds. No, I
+will have you, or stay at home.'
+
+Claude proposed several others as companions, but Lord Rotherwood
+treated them all with as much disdain as Claude had shown for
+Germany, and ended with 'Now, Claude, you know my determination, only
+tell me why you will not go?'
+
+'Then I do tell you, Rotherwood, the truth is, that those boys,
+Maurice and Reginald, are perfectly unmanageable when they are left
+alone with the girls.'
+
+'Have a tutor for them,' said the Marquis.
+
+'Very much obliged to you they would be for the suggestion,' said
+Claude.
+
+'Oh! but Claude,' said Lily.
+
+'I really cannot go. They mind no one but the Baron and me, and
+besides that, it would be no small annoyance to the house; ten tutors
+could not keep them from indescribable bits of mischief. I undertook
+them these holidays, and I mean to keep them.'
+
+Lilias was just flying off to her father, when Claude caught hold of
+her, saying, 'I desire you will not,' and she stood still, looking at
+her cousin in dismay.
+
+'It is all right,' cried the Marquis, joyfully, 'it is only to set
+off three weeks later.'
+
+'Oh! I thought you would not go a week later for the universe,' said
+Claude, smiling.
+
+'Not for the Universe, but for U-,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Worthy of a companion true, of the University of Gottingen,' said
+Claude; 'but, Rotherwood, do you really mean that it will make no
+difference to you?'
+
+'None whatever; I meant to spend three weeks with my mother at the
+end of the tour, and I shall spend them now instead. I only talked
+of going immediately, because nothing is done at all that is not done
+quickly, and I hate delays, but it is all the same, and now it stands
+for Tuesday three weeks. Now we shall see what he says to Cologne,
+Lily.'
+
+Claude sprung up, and began talking over arrangements and
+possibilities with zest, which showed what his wishes had been from
+the first. All was quickly settled, and as soon as his father had
+given his cordial approbation to the scheme, it was amusing to see
+how animated and active Claude became, and in how different a style
+he talked of the once slighted Rhine.
+
+Lord Rotherwood told the boys that their brother was a great deal too
+good for them, but they never troubled themselves to ask in what
+respect; Lilias took very great delight in telling Emily of the
+sacrifice which he had been willing to make, and looked forward to
+talking it over with Alethea, but she refrained, as long as he was at
+home, as she knew it would greatly displease him, and she had heard
+enough about missish confidences.
+
+The Marquis of Rotherwood was certainly the very reverse of his
+chosen travelling companion, in the matter of activity. He made an
+appointment with the two boys to get up at half-past four on Monday
+morning for some fishing, before the sun was too high--Maurice not
+caring for the sport, but intending to make prize of any of the
+'insect youth' which might prefer the sunrise for their gambols; and
+Reginald, in high delight at the prospect of real fishing, something
+beyond his own performances with a stick and a string, in pursuit of
+minnows in the ditches. Reginald was making contrivances for tying a
+string round his wrist and hanging the end of it from the window,
+that Andrew Grey might give it a pull as he went by to his work, to
+wake him, when Lord Rotherwood exclaimed, 'What! cannot you wake
+yourself at any time you please?'
+
+'No,' said Reginald, 'I never heard of any one that could.'
+
+'Then I advise you to learn the art; in the meantime I will call you
+to-morrow.'
+
+Loud voices and laughter in the hall, and the front door creaking on
+its hinges at sunrise, convinced the household that this was no vain
+boast; before breakfast was quite over the fishermen were seen
+approaching the house. Lord Rotherwood was an extraordinary figure,
+in an old shooting jacket of his uncle's, an enormous pair of
+fishing-boots of William's, and the broad-brimmed straw hat, which
+always hung up in the hall, and was not claimed by any particular
+owner.
+
+Maurice displayed to Jane the contents of two phials, strange little
+creatures, with stranger names, of which he was as proud as Reginald
+of his three fine trout. Lord Rotherwood did not appear till he had
+made himself look like other people, which he did in a surprisingly
+short time. He began estimating the weight of the fish, and talking
+at his most rapid rate, till at last Claude said, 'Phyllis told us
+just now that you were coming back, for that she heard Cousin
+Rotherwood talking, and it proved to be Jane's old turkey cock
+gobbling.'
+
+'No bad compliment,' said Emily, 'for Phyllis was once known to say,
+on hearing a turkey cock, "How melodiously that nightingale sings."'
+
+'No, no! that was Ada,' said Lilias.
+
+'I could answer for that,' said Claude. 'Phyllis is too familiar
+with both parties to mistake their notes. Besides, she never was
+known to use such a word as melodiously.'
+
+'Do you remember,' said the Marquis, 'that there was some great
+lawyer who had three kinds of handwriting, one that the public could
+read, one that only his clerk could read, and one that nobody could
+read?'
+
+'I suppose I am the clerk,' said Claude, 'unless I divide the honour
+with Florence.'
+
+'I do not think I am unintelligible anywhere but here,' said Lord
+Rotherwood. 'There is nothing sufficiently exciting at home, if
+Grosvenor Square is to be called home.'
+
+'Sometimes you do it without knowing it,' said Lily.
+
+'Yes,' said Claude, 'when you do not exactly know what you are going
+to say.'
+
+'Then it is no bad plan,' said Lord Rotherwood. 'People are
+satisfied, and you don't commit yourself.'
+
+'I'll tell you what, Cousin Rotherwood,' exclaimed Phyllis, 'your
+hand is bleeding.'
+
+'Is it? Thank you, Phyllis, I thought I had washed it off: now do
+find me some sealing-wax--India-rub her--sticking-plaster, I mean.'
+
+'Oh! Rotherwood,' said Emily, 'what a bad cut, how did it happen?'
+
+'Only, I am the victim to Maurice's first essay in fishing.'
+
+'Just fancy what an awkward fellow Maurice is,' said Reginald, 'he
+had but one throw, and he managed to stick the hook into Rotherwood's
+hand.'
+
+'One of those barbed hooks? Oh! Rotherwood, how horrid!' said Emily.
+
+'And he cut it out with his knife, and caught that great trout with
+it directly,' said Reginald.
+
+'And neither half drowned Maurice, nor sent him home again?' asked
+Lily.
+
+'I contented myself with taking away his weapon,' said the Marquis;
+'and he wished for nothing better than to poke about in the gutters
+for insects; it was only Redgie that teased him into the nobler
+sport.'
+
+Emily was inclined to make a serious matter of the accident, but her
+cousin said ten words while she said one, and by the time her first
+sentence was uttered, she found him talking about his ride to
+Devereux Castle.
+
+He and Claude set out as soon as breakfast was over, and came back
+about three o'clock; Claude was tired with the heat, and betook
+himself to the sofa, where he fell asleep, under pretence of reading,
+but the indefatigable Marquis was ready and willing to set out with
+Reginald and Wat Greenwood to shoot rabbits.
+
+Dinner-time came, and Emily sat at the drawing-room window with
+Claude and Lilias, lamenting her cousin's bad habits. 'Nothing will
+ever make him punctual,' said she.
+
+'I am in duty bound to let you say nothing against him,' said Claude.
+
+'It is very good-natured in him to wait for you,' said Lily, 'but it
+would be horribly selfish to leave you behind.'
+
+'Delay is his great horror,' said Claude, 'and the wonder of his
+character is, that he is not selfish. No one had ever better
+training for it.'
+
+'He does like his own way very much,' said Lilias.
+
+'Who does not?' said Claude.
+
+'Nothing shows his sense so much,' said Emily, 'as his great
+attachment to papa--the only person who ever controlled him.'
+
+'And to Claude--his opposite in everything,' said Lilias.
+
+'I think he will tire you to death in Germany,' said Emily.
+
+'Never fear,' said Claude, 'my vis inertiae is enough to
+counterbalance any amount of restlessness.'
+
+'Here they come,' said Lily; 'how Wat Greenwood is grinning at
+Rotherwood's jokes!'
+
+'A happy day for Wat,' said Emily. 'He will be quite dejected if
+William is not at home next shooting season. He thinks you a
+degenerate Mohun, Claude.'
+
+'He must comfort himself with Redgie,' said Claude.
+
+'Rotherwood is only eager about shooting in common with everything
+else,' said Lily, 'but Redgie, I fear, will care for nothing else.'
+
+Lord Rotherwood came in, accounting for being late, as, in passing
+through a harvest field, he could not help attempting to reap. The
+Beechcroft farming operations had been his especial amusement from
+very early days, and his plans were numerous for farming on a grand
+scale as soon as he should be of age. His talk during dinner was of
+turnips and wheat, till at length Mr. Mohun asked him what he thought
+of the appearance of the castle. He said it was very forlorn; the
+rooms looked so dreary and deserted that he could not bear to be in
+them, and had been out of doors almost all the time. Indeed, he was
+afraid he had disappointed the housekeeper by not complimenting her
+as she deserved, for the freezing dismal order in which she kept
+everything. 'And really,' said he, 'I must go again to-morrow and
+make up for it, and Emily, you must come with me and try to devise
+something to make the unhappy place less like the abode of the Prince
+of the Black Islands.'
+
+Emily willingly promised to go, and she went on talking to him, and
+telling him whom he was to meet on the next day, when an unusual
+silence making her look up, she beheld him more than half asleep.
+
+Reginald fidgeted and sighed, and Maurice grew graver and graver as
+they thought of the wasps. Maurice wanted to take a nest entire, and
+began explaining his plan to Claude.
+
+'You see, Claude, burning some straw and then digging, spoils the
+combs, as Wat does it; now I have got some puff-balls and sulphur to
+put into the hole, and set fire to them with a lucifer match, so as
+to stifle the wasps, and then dig them out quietly to-morrow
+morning.'
+
+'It is all of no use, if that Rotherwood will do nothing but sleep,'
+said Reginald, in a disconsolate tone.
+
+'You should not have made him get up at four,' said Emily.
+
+'Who! I?' exclaimed the Marquis. 'I never was wider awake. What
+are you waiting for, Reginald? I thought you were going to take
+wasps' nests.'
+
+'You are much too tired, I am sure,' said Emily.
+
+'Tired! not in the least, I have done nothing to-day to tire me,'
+said Lord Rotherwood, walking up and down the room to keep himself
+awake.
+
+The whole party went out, and found Wat Greenwood waiting for them
+with a bundle of straw, a spade, and a little gunpowder. Maurice
+carried a basket containing all his preparations, on which Wat looked
+with supreme contempt, telling him that his puffs were too green to
+make a smeech. Maurice, not condescending to argue the point, ran on
+to a nest which Reginald had marked on one of the green banks of the
+ancient moat.
+
+'Take care that the wasps are all come in; mind what you are about,
+Maurice,' called his father.
+
+'Master Maurice,' shouted Wat, 'you had better take a green bough.'
+
+'Never mind, Wat,' said Lord Rotherwood, 'he would not stay long
+enough to use it if he had it.'
+
+Reginald ran after Maurice, who had just reached the nest.
+
+'There is one coming in, the evening is so warm they are not quiet
+yet.'
+
+'I'll quiet them,' said Maurice, kneeling down, and putting his first
+puff-ball into the hole.
+
+Reginald stood by with a sly smile, as he pulled a branch off a
+neighbouring filbert-tree. The next moment Maurice gave a sudden
+yell, 'The wasps! the wasps!' and jumping up, and tripping at his
+first step, rolled down the bank, and landed safely at Lord
+Rotherwood's feet. The shouts of laughter were loud, but he regarded
+them not, and as soon as he recovered his feet, rushed past his
+sisters, and never stopped till he reached the house. Redgie stood
+alone, in the midst of a cloud of wasps, beating them off with a
+bough, roaring with laughter, and calling Wat to bring the straw to
+burn them.
+
+'No, no, Redgie, come away, leave them for Maurice to try again,'
+said his father.
+
+'The brute, he stung me,' cried Reginald, knocking down a wasp or two
+as he came down. 'What is this?' added he, as he stumbled over
+something at the bottom of the slope. 'Oh! Maurice's basket; look
+here--laudanum--did he mean to poison the wasps?'
+
+'No,' said Jane, 'to cure their stings.'
+
+'The poor unhappy quiz!' cried Reginald.
+
+While the others were busy over a nest, Mr. Mohun asked Emily how the
+boy got at the medicine chest. Emily looked confused, and said she
+supposed Jane had given him a bottle.
+
+'Jane is too young to be trusted there,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I thought
+you knew better; do not let the key be out of your possession again.'
+
+After a few more nests had been taken in the usual manner, they
+returned to the house. Maurice was lying on the sofa reading the
+Penny Magazine, from which he raised his eyes no more that evening,
+in spite of all the jokes which flew about respecting wounded
+knights, courage, and the balsam of Fierabras. He called Jane to
+teach her how flies were made, and as soon as tea was over he went to
+bed. Reginald, after many yawns, prepared to follow his example, and
+as he was wishing his sisters good-night, Emily said, 'Now, Redgie,
+do not go out at such a preposterous hour to-morrow morning.'
+
+'What is that to you?' was Reginald's courteous inquiry.
+
+'I do not wish to see every one fast asleep to-morrow evening,' said
+Emily, and she looked at her cousin, whose head was far back over his
+chair.
+
+'He is a Trojan,' said Reginald.
+
+'Is a Trojan better than a Spartan?' asked Ada, meditatively.
+
+'Helen thought so,' said Claude.
+
+'"When Greek meets Greek, then comes the tug of war,"' muttered the
+Marquis.
+
+'You are all talking Greek,' said Jane.
+
+'Arabic,' said Claude.
+
+As far as it could be comprehended, Lord Rotherwood's answer related
+to Maurice and the wasps.
+
+'There,' said Emily, 'what is to be done if he is in that condition
+to-morrow?'
+
+'I am not asleep; what makes you think I am?'
+
+'I wish you would sit in that great chair,' said Emily, 'I am afraid
+you will break your neck; you look so uncomfortable, I cannot bear to
+see you.'
+
+'I never was more comfortable in my life,' said Lord Rotherwood,
+asleep while finishing the sentence; but this time, happily with his
+elbows on the table, and his head in a safer position.
+
+The next day was spent rather more rationally. Lord Rotherwood met
+with a book of Irish Tales, with which he became so engrossed that he
+did not like to leave it when Emily and Claude were ready to ride to
+Devereux Castle with him. When there he was equally eager and
+vehement about each matter that came under consideration, and so many
+presented themselves, that Emily began to be in agonies lest she
+should not be at home in time to dress and receive her guests. They
+did, however, reach the house before Lilias, who had been walking
+with Miss Weston, came in, and when she went upstairs, she found
+Emily full of complaints at the inconvenience of having no Rachel to
+assist her in dressing, and to see that everything was in order, and
+that Phyllis was fit to appear when she came down in the evening;
+but, by the assistance of Lily and Jane, she got over her troubles,
+and when she went into the drawing-room, she was much relieved to
+find her two gentlemen quite safe and dressed. She had been in great
+fear of Lord Rotherwood's straying away to join in some of Reginald's
+sports, and was grateful to the Irish book for keeping him out of
+mischief.
+
+Emily was in her glory; it was the first large dinner-party since
+Eleanor had gone, and though she pitied herself for having the
+trouble of entertaining the people, she really enjoyed the feeling
+that she now appeared as the mistress of New Court, with her cousin,
+the Marquis, by her side, to show how highly she was connected. And
+everything went off just as could be wished. Lord Rotherwood talked
+intelligibly and sensibly, and Mr. Mohun's neighbour at dinner had a
+voice which he could hear. Lily's pleasure was not less than her
+sister's, though of a different kind. She delighted in thinking how
+well Emily did the honours, in watching the varied expression of Lord
+Rotherwood's animated countenance, in imagining Claude's forehead to
+be finer than that of any one else, and in thinking how people must
+admire Reginald's tall, active figure, and very handsome face. She
+was asked to play, and did tolerably well, but was too shy to sing,
+nor, indeed, was Reginald encouraging. 'What is the use of your
+singing, Lily? If it was like Miss Weston's, now--'
+
+Reginald had taken a great fancy to Miss Weston; he stood by her all
+the evening, and afterwards let her talk to him, and then began to
+chatter himself, at last becoming so confidential as to impart to her
+the grand object of his ambition, which was to be taller than Claude!
+
+The next morning Lord Rotherwood left Beechcroft, somewhat to Emily's
+relief; for though she was very proud of him, and much enjoyed the
+dignity of being seen to talk familiarly with him, yet, when no
+strangers were present, and he became no more than an ordinary
+cousin, she was worried by his incessant activity, and desire to see,
+know, and do everything as fast and as thoroughly as possible. She
+could not see the use of such vehemence; she liked to take things in
+a moderate way, and as Claude said, much preferred the passive to the
+active voice. Claude, on the contrary, was ashamed of his
+constitutional indolence, looked on it as a temptation, and struggled
+against it, almost envying his cousin his unabated eagerness and
+untiring energy, and liking to be with him, because no one else so
+effectually roused him from his habitual languor. His indolence was,
+however, so much the effect of ill health, that exertion was
+sometimes scarcely in his power, especially in hot weather, and by
+the time his brothers' studies were finished each day, he was unfit
+for anything but to lie on the grass under the plane-tree.
+
+The days glided on, and the holidays came to an end; Maurice spent
+them in adding to his collection of insects, which, with Jane's
+assistance, he arranged very neatly; and Reginald and Phyllis
+performed several exploits, more agreeable to themselves than
+satisfactory to the more rational part of the New Court community.
+At the same time, Reginald's devotion to Miss Weston increased; he
+never moved from her side when she sang, did not fail to be of the
+party when she walked with his sisters, offered her one of his own
+puppies, named his little ship 'Alethea,' and was even tolerably
+civil to Marianne.
+
+At length the day of departure came; the boys returned to school,
+Claude joined Lord Rotherwood, and the New Court was again in a state
+of tranquillity.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI--DANCING
+
+
+
+'Prescribe us not our duties.'
+
+'Well, Phyllis,' said her father, as he passed through the hall to
+mount his horse, 'how do you like the prospect of Monsieur le Roi's
+instructions?'
+
+'Not at all, papa,' answered Phyllis, running out to the hall door to
+pat the horse, and give it a piece of bread.
+
+'Take care you turn out your toes,' said Mr. Mohun. 'You must learn
+to dance like a dragon before Cousin Rotherwood's birthday next
+year.'
+
+'Papa, how do dragons dance?'
+
+'That is a question I must decide at my leisure,' said Mr. Mohun,
+mounting. 'Stand out of the way, Phyl, or you will feel how horses
+dance.'
+
+Away he rode, while Phyllis turned with unwilling steps to the
+nursery, to be dressed for her first dancing lesson; Marianne Weston
+was to learn with her, and this was some consolation, but Phyllis
+could not share in the satisfaction Adeline felt in the arrival of
+Monsieur le Roi. Jane was also a pupil, but Lily, whose
+recollections of her own dancing days were not agreeable, absented
+herself entirely from the dancing-room, even though Alethea Weston
+had come with her sister.
+
+Poor Phyllis danced as awkwardly as was expected, but Adeline seemed
+likely to be a pupil in whom a master might rejoice; Marianne was
+very attentive and not ungraceful, but Alethea soon saw reason to
+regret the arrangement that had been made, for she perceived that
+Jane considered the master a fair subject for derision, and her 'nods
+and becks, and wreathed smiles,' called up corresponding looks in
+Marianne's face.
+
+'Oh Brownie, you are a naughty thing!' said Emily, as soon as M. le
+Roi had departed.
+
+'He really was irresistible!' said Jane.
+
+'I suppose ridicule is one of the disagreeables to which a dancing-
+master makes up his mind,' said Alethea.
+
+'Yes,' said Jane, 'one can have no compunction in quizzing that
+species.'
+
+'I do not think I can quite say that, Jane,' said Miss Weston.
+
+'This man especially lays himself open to ridicule,' said Jane; 'do
+you know, Alethea, that he is an Englishman, and his name is King,
+only he calls himself Le Roi, and speaks broken English!'
+
+Though Alethea joined in the general laugh, she did not feel quite
+satisfied; she feared that if not checked in time, Jane would proceed
+to actual impertinence, and that Marianne would be tempted to follow
+her example, but she did not like to interfere, and only advised
+Marianne to be on her guard, hoping that Emily would also speak
+seriously to her sister.
+
+On the next occasion, however, Jane ventured still farther; her
+grimaces were almost irresistible, and she had a most comical manner
+of imitating the master's attitudes when his eye was not upon her,
+and putting on a demure countenance when he turned towards her, which
+sorely tried Marianne.
+
+'What shall I do, Alethea?' said the little girl, as the sisters
+walked home together; 'I do not know how to help laughing, if Jane
+will be so very funny.'
+
+'I am afraid we must ask mamma to let us give up the dancing,'
+replied Alethea; 'the temptation is almost too strong, and I do not
+think she would wish to expose you to it.'
+
+'But, Alethea, why do not you speak to Jane?' asked Marianne; 'no one
+seems to tell her it is wrong; Miss Mohun was almost laughing.'
+
+'I do not think Jane would consider that I ought to find fault with
+her,' said Alethea.
+
+'But you would not scold her,' urged Marianne; 'only put her in mind
+that it is not right, not kind; that Monsieur le Roi is in authority
+over her for the time.'
+
+'I will speak to mamma,' said Alethea, 'perhaps it will be better
+next time.'
+
+And it was better, for Mr. Mohun happening to be at home, was dragged
+into the dancing-room by Emily and Ada. Once, when she thought he
+was looking another way, Jane tried to raise a smile, but a stern
+'Jane, what are you thinking of?' recalled her to order, and when the
+lesson was over her father spoke gravely to her, telling her that he
+thought few things more disgusting in a young lady than impertinence
+towards her teachers; and then added, 'Miss Weston, I hope you keep
+strict watch over these giddy young things.'
+
+Awed by her father, Jane behaved tolerably well at that time and the
+next, and Miss Weston hoped her interference would not be needed, but
+as if to make up for this restraint, her conduct a fortnight after
+was quite beyond bearing. She used every means to make Marianne
+laugh, and at last went so far as to pretend to think that M. le Roi
+had not understood what she said in English, and to translate it into
+French. Poor Marianne looked imploringly at her sister, and Alethea
+hoped that Emily would interpose, but Emily was turning away her head
+to conceal a laugh, and Miss Weston was obliged to give Jane a very
+grave look, which she perfectly understood, though she pretended not
+to see it. When the exercise was over Miss Weston made her a sign to
+approach, and said, 'Jane, do you think your papa would have liked--'
+
+'What do you mean?' said Jane, 'I have not been laughing.'
+
+'You know what I mean,' said Alethea, 'and pray do not be displeased
+if I ask you not to make it difficult for Marianne to behave
+properly.'
+
+Jane drew up her head and went back to her place. She played no more
+tricks that day, but as soon as the guests were gone, began telling
+Lilias how Miss Weston had been meddling and scolding her.
+
+'And well you must have deserved it,' said Lily.
+
+'I do not say that Jenny was right,' said Emily, 'but I think Miss
+Weston might allow me to correct my own sister in my own house.'
+
+'You correct Jane!' cried Lily, and Jane laughed.
+
+'I only mean,' said Emily, 'that it was not very polite, and papa
+says the closest friendship is no reason for dispensing with the
+rules of politeness.'
+
+'Certainly not,' said Lily, 'the rules of politeness are rules of
+love, and it was in love that Alethea spoke; she sees how sadly we
+are left to ourselves, and is kind enough to speak a word in season.'
+
+'Perhaps,' said Jane, 'since it was in love that she spoke, you would
+like to have her for our reprover for ever, and I can assure you more
+unlikely things have happened. I have heard it from one who can
+judge.'
+
+'Let me hear no more of this,' said Emily, 'it is preposterous and
+ridiculous, and very disrespectful to papa.'
+
+Jane for once, rather shocked at her own words, went back to what had
+been said just before.
+
+'Then, perhaps, you would like to have Eleanor back again?'
+
+'I am sure you want some one to put you in mind of your duty,' said
+Lily.
+
+'Eleanor and duty!' cried Emily; 'you who thought so much of the
+power of love!'
+
+'Of Emily and love, she would say, if it sounded well,' said Jane.
+
+'I cannot see what true love you or Jane are showing now,' said Lily,
+'it is no kindness to encourage her pertness, or to throw away a
+friendly reproof because it offends your pride.'
+
+'Nobody reproved me,' replied Emily; 'besides, I know love will
+prevail; for my sake Jane will not expose herself and me to a
+stranger's interference.'
+
+'If you depend upon that, I wish you joy,' said Lilias, as she left
+the room.
+
+'What a weathercock Lily is!' cried Jane, 'she has fallen in love
+with Alethea Weston, and echoes all she says.'
+
+'Not considering her own inconsistency,' said Emily.
+
+'That Alethea Weston,' exclaimed Jane, in an angry tone;--but Emily,
+beginning to recover some sense of propriety, said, 'Jenny, you know
+you were very ill-bred, and you made it difficult for the little ones
+to behave well.'
+
+'Not our own little ones,' said Jane; 'honest Phyl did not understand
+the joke, and Ada was thinking of her attitudes; one comfort is, that
+I shall be confirmed in three weeks' time, and then people cannot
+treat me as a mere child--little as I am.'
+
+'Oh! Jane,' said Emily, 'I do not like to hear you talk of
+confirmation in that light way.'
+
+'No, no,' said Jane, 'I do not mean it--of course I do not mean it--
+don't look shocked--it was only by the bye--and another by the bye,
+Emily, you know I must have a cap and white ribbons, and I am afraid
+I must make it myself.'
+
+'Ay, that is the worst of having Esther,' said Emily, 'she and Hannah
+have no notion of anything but the plainest work; I am sure if I had
+thought of all the trouble of that kind which having a young girl
+would entail, I would never have consented to Esther's coming.'
+
+'That was entirely Lily's scheme,' said Jane.
+
+'Yes; it is impossible to resist Lily, she is so eager and anxious,
+and it would have vexed her very much if I had opposed her, and that
+I cannot bear; besides, Esther is a very nice girl, and will learn.'
+
+'There is Robert talking to papa on the green,' said Jane; 'what a
+deep conference; what can it be about?'
+
+If Jane had heard that conversation she might have perceived that she
+could not wilfully offend, even in what she thought a trifling
+matter, without making it evident, even to others, that there was
+something very wrong about her. At that moment the Rector was saying
+to his uncle, 'I am in doubt about Jane, I cannot but fear she is not
+in a satisfactory state for confirmation, and I wished to ask you
+what you think?'
+
+'Act just as you would with any of the village girls,' said Mr.
+Mohun.
+
+'I should be very sorry to do otherwise,' said Mr. Devereux; 'but I
+thought you might like, since every one knows that she is a
+candidate, that she should not be at home at the time of the
+confirmation, if it is necessary to refuse her.'
+
+'No,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I should not wish to shield her from the
+disgrace. It may be useful to her, and besides, it will establish
+your character for impartiality. I have not been satisfied with all
+I saw of little Jane for some time past, and I am afraid that much
+passes amongst my poor girls which never comes to my knowledge. Her
+pertness especially is probably restrained in my presence.'
+
+'It is not so much the pertness that I complain of,' said Mr.
+Devereux, 'for that might be merely exuberance of spirits, but there
+is a sort of habitual irreverence, which makes one dread to bring her
+nearer to sacred tings.'
+
+'I know what you mean,' said Mr. Mohun, 'and I think the pertness is
+a branch of it, more noticed because more inconvenient to others.'
+
+'Yes,' said Mr. Devereux, 'I think the fault I speak of is most
+evident; when there is occasion to reprove her, I am always baffled
+by a kind of levity which makes every warning glance aside.'
+
+'Then I should decidedly say refuse her,' said Mr. Mohun. 'It would
+be a warning that she could not disregard, and the best chance of
+improving her.'
+
+'Yet,' said Mr. Devereux, 'if she is eager for confirmation, and
+regards it in its proper light, it is hard to say whether it is right
+to deny it to her; it may give her the depth and earnestness which
+she needs.'
+
+'Poor child,' said Mr. Mohun, 'she has great disadvantages; I am
+quite sure our present system is not fit for her. Things shall be
+placed on a different footing, and in another year or two I hope she
+may be fitter for confirmation. However, before you finally decide,
+I should wish to have some conversation with her, and speak to you
+again.
+
+'That is just what I wish,' said Mr. Devereux.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII--THE FEVER
+
+
+
+'Jane borrowed maxims from a doubting school,
+And took for truth the test of ridicule.'
+
+The question of Jane's confirmation was decided in an unexpected
+manner; for the day after Mr. Mohun's conversation with his nephew
+she was attacked by a headache and sore throat, spent a feverish
+night, and in the morning was so unwell that a medical man was sent
+for from Raynham. On his arrival he pronounced that she was
+suffering from scarlet fever, and Emily began to feel the approach of
+the same complaint.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline were shut up in the drawing-room, and a system of
+quarantine established, which was happily brought to a conclusion by
+a note from Mrs. Weston, who kindly begged that they might be sent to
+her at Broomhill, and Mr. Mohun gladly availing himself of the offer,
+the little girls set off, so well pleased to make a visit alone, as
+almost to forget the occasion of it. Mrs. Weston had extended her
+invitation to Lilias, but she begged to be allowed to remain with her
+sisters, and Mr. Mohun thought that she had been already so much
+exposed to the infection that it was useless for her to take any
+precautions.
+
+She was therefore declared head nurse; and it was well that she had
+an energetic spirit, and so sweet a temper, that she was ready to
+sympathise with all Emily's petulant complaints, and even to find
+fault with herself for not being in two places at once. Two of the
+maids were ill, and the whole care of Emily and Jane devolved upon
+her, with only the assistance of Esther.
+
+Emily was not very seriously ill, but Jane's fever was very high, and
+Lily thought that her father was more anxious than he chose to
+appear. Of Jane's own thoughts little could be guessed; she was
+often delirious, and at all times speaking was so painful that she
+said as little as possible.
+
+Lily's troubles seemed at their height one Sunday afternoon, while
+her father was at church. She had been reading the Psalms and
+Lessons to Emily, and she then rose to return to Jane.
+
+'Do not go,' entreated Emily.
+
+'I will send Esther.'
+
+'Esther is of no use.'
+
+'And therefore I do not like to leave her so long alone with Jane.
+Pray spare me a little smile.'
+
+'Then come back soon.'
+
+Lily was glad to escape with no more objections. She found Jane
+complaining of thirst, but to swallow gave her great pain, and she
+required so much attendance for some little time, that Emily's bell
+was twice rung before Esther could be spared to go to her.
+
+She soon came back, saying, 'Miss Mohun wants you directly, Miss
+Lilias.'
+
+'Tell her I will come presently,' said Lily, who had one hand pressed
+on Jane's burning temples, while the other was sprinkling her with
+ether.
+
+'Stay,' said Jane, faintly, and Esther left the room.
+
+Jane drew her breath with so much difficulty that a dreadful terror
+seized upon Lily, lest she should be suffocated. She raised her
+head, and supported her till Esther could bring more pillows. Esther
+brought a message from Emily to hasten her return; but Jane could not
+be left, and the grateful look she gave her as she arranged the
+pillows repaid her for all her toils. After a little time Jane
+became more comfortable, and said in a whisper, 'Dear Lily, I wish I
+was not so troublesome.'
+
+Back came Esther at this moment, saying, 'Miss Emily says she is
+worse, and wants you directly, Miss Lilias.'
+
+Lily hurried away to Emily's room, and found what might well have
+tried her temper. Emily was flushed indeed, and feverish, but her
+breathing was smooth and even, and her hand and pulse cool and slow,
+compared with the parched burning hands, and throbbings, too quick to
+count, which Lily had just been watching.
+
+'Well, my dear Emily, I am sorry you do not feel better; what can I
+do for you?'
+
+'How can I be better while I am left so long, and Esther not coming
+when I ring? What would happen if I were to faint away?'
+
+'Indeed, I am very sorry,' said Lily; 'but when you rang, poor Jenny
+could spare neither of us.'
+
+'How is poor Jenny?' said Emily.
+
+'Her throat is very bad, but she is quite sensible now, and wishes to
+have me there. What did you want, Emily?'
+
+'Oh! I wish you would draw the curtain, the light hurts me; that
+will do--no--now it is worse, pray put it as it was before. Oh!
+Lily, if you knew how ill I am you would not leave me.'
+
+'Can I do anything for you--will you have some coffee?'
+
+'Oh! no, it has a bad taste, I am sure it is carelessly made.'
+
+'Shall I make you some fresh, with the spirit lamp?'
+
+'No, I am tired of it. I wonder if I might have some tamarinds?'
+
+'I will ask as soon as papa comes from church.'
+
+'Is he gone to church? how could he go when we are all so ill?'
+
+'Perhaps he was doing us more good at church than he could at home.
+You will be glad to hear, Emily, that he has sent for Rachel to come
+and help us.'
+
+'Oh! has he? but she lives so far off, and gets her letters so
+seldom, I don't reckon at all upon her coming. If she could come
+directly it would be a comfort.'
+
+'It would, indeed,' said Lily; 'she would know what to do for Jane.'
+
+'Lily, where is the ether? You are always taking it away.'
+
+'In Jane's room; I will fetch it.'
+
+'No, no, if you once get into Jane's room I shall never see you back
+again.'
+
+Now Emily knew that Jane was very ill, and Lily's pale cheeks, heavy
+eyes, and failing voice, might have reminded her that two sick
+persons were a heavy charge upon a girl of seventeen, without the
+addition of her caprices and fretfulness. And how was it that the
+kind-hearted, affectionate Emily never thought of all this? It was
+because she had been giving way to selfishness for nineteen years;
+and now the contemplation of her own sufferings was quite enough to
+hide from her that others had much to bear; and illness, instead of
+teaching her patience and consideration, only made her more exacting
+and querulous.
+
+To Lily's unspeakable relief, Miss Weston accompanied Mr. Mohun from
+church, and offered to share her attendance. No one knew what it
+cost Alethea to come into the midst of a scene which constantly
+reminded her of the sisters she had lost, but she did not shrink from
+it, and was glad that her parents saw no objection to her offering to
+share Lily's toils. Her experience was most valuable, and relieved
+Lilias of the fear that was continually haunting her, lest her
+ignorance might lead to some fatal mistake. The next day brought
+Rachel, and both patients began to mend. Jane's recovery was quicker
+than Emily's, for her constitution was not so languid, and having no
+pleasure in the importance of being an invalid, she was willing to
+exert herself, and make the best of everything, while Emily did not
+much like to be told that she was better, and thought it cruel to
+hint that exertion would benefit her. Both were convalescent before
+the fever attacked Lily, who was severely ill, but not alarmingly so,
+and her gentleness and patience made Alethea delight in having the
+care of her. Lily was full of gratitude to her kind friend, and felt
+quite happy when Alethea chanced one day to call her by the name of
+Emma; she almost hoped she was taking the place of that sister, and
+the thought cheered her through many languid hours, and gave double
+value to all Alethea's kindness. She did not feel disposed to repine
+at an illness which brought out such affection from her friend, and
+still more from her father, who, when he came to see her, would say
+things which gave her a thrill of pleasure whenever she thought of
+them.
+
+It happened one day that Jane, having finished her book, looked round
+for some other occupation; she knew that Miss Weston had walked to
+Broomhill; Rachael was with Lilias, and there was no amusement at
+hand. At last she recollected that her papa had said in the morning,
+that he hoped to see her and Emily in the schoolroom in the course of
+the day, and hoping to meet her sister, she resolved to try and get
+there. The room had been Mr. Mohun's sitting-room since the
+beginning of their illness, and it looked so very comfortable that
+she was glad she had come, though she was so tired she wondered how
+she should get back again. Emily was not there, so she lay down on
+the sofa and took up a little book from the table. The title was
+Susan Harvey, or Confirmation, and she read it with more interest as
+she remembered with a pang that this was the day of the confirmation,
+to which she had been invited; she soon found herself shedding tears
+over the book, she who had never yet been known to cry at any story,
+however affecting. She had not finished when Mr. Devereux came in to
+look for Mr. Mohun, and finding her there, was going away as soon as
+he had congratulated her on having left her room, but she begged him
+to stay, and began asking questions about the confirmation.
+
+'Were there many people?'
+
+'Three hundred.'
+
+'Did the Stoney Bridge people make a disturbance?'
+
+'No.'
+
+'How many of our people?'
+
+'Twenty-seven.'
+
+'Did all the girls wear caps?'
+
+'Most of them.'
+
+Jane was rather surprised at the shortness of her cousin's answers,
+but she went on, as he stood before the fire, apparently in deep
+thought.
+
+'Was Miss Burnet confirmed? She is the dullest girl I ever knew, and
+she is older than I am. Was she confused?'
+
+'She was.'
+
+'Did you give Mary Wright a ticket?'
+
+'No.'
+
+'Then, of course, you did not give one to Ned Long. I thought you
+would never succeed in making him remember which is the ninth
+commandment.'
+
+'I did not refuse him.'
+
+'Indeed! did he improve in a portentous manner?'
+
+'Not particularly.'
+
+'Well, you must have been more merciful than I expected.'
+
+'Indeed!'
+
+'Robert, you must have lost the use of your tongue, for want of us to
+talk to. I shall be affronted if you go into a brown study the first
+day of seeing me.'
+
+He smiled in a constrained manner, and after a few minutes said, 'I
+have been considering whether this is a fit time to tell you what
+will give you pain. You must tell me if you can bear it.'
+
+'About Lily, or the little ones?'
+
+'No, no! only about yourself. Your father wished me to speak to you,
+but I would not have done so on this first meeting, but what you have
+just been saying makes me think this is the best occasion.'
+
+'Let me know; I do not like suspense,' said Jane, sharply.
+
+'I think it right to tell you, Jane, that neither your father nor I
+thought it would be desirable for you to be confirmed at this time.'
+
+'Do you really mean it?' said Jane.
+
+'Look back on the past year, and say if you sincerely think you are
+fit for confirmation.'
+
+'As to that,' said Jane, 'the best people are always saying that they
+are not fit for these things.'
+
+'None can call themselves worthy of them; but I think the conscience
+of some would bear them witness that they had profited so far by
+their present means of grace as to give grounds for hoping that they
+would derive benefit from further assistance.'
+
+'Well, I suppose I must be very bad, since you see it,' said Jane, in
+a manner rather more subdued; 'but I did not think myself worse than
+other people.'
+
+'Is a Christian called, only to be no worse than others?'
+
+'Oh no! I see, I mean--pray tell me my great fault. Pertness, I
+suppose--love of gossip?'
+
+'There must be a deeper root of evil, of which these are but the
+visible effects, Jane.'
+
+'What do you mean, Robert?' said Jane, now seeming really impressed.
+
+'I think, Jane, that the greatest and most dangerous fault of your
+character is want of reverence. I think it is want of reverence
+which makes you press forward to that for which you confess yourself
+unfit; it is want of reverence for holiness which makes you not care
+to attain it; want of reverence for the Holy Word that makes you
+treat it as a mere lesson; and in smaller matters your pertness is
+want of reverence for your superiors; you would not be ready to
+believe and to say the worst of others, if you reverenced what good
+there may be in them. Take care that your want of reverence is not
+in reality want of faith.'
+
+Jane's spirits were weak and subdued. It was a great shock to her to
+hear that she was not thought worthy of confirmation; her faults had
+never been called by so hard a name; she was in part humbled, and in
+part grieved, and what she thought harshness in her cousin; she
+turned away her face, and did not speak. He continued, 'Jane, you
+must not think me unkind, your father desired me to talk to you, and,
+indeed, the time of recovery from sickness is too precious to be
+trifled away.'
+
+Jane wept bitterly. Presently he said, 'It grieves me to have been
+obliged to speak harshly to you, you must forgive me if I have talked
+too much to you, Jane.'
+
+Jane tried to speak, but sobs prevented her, and she gave way to a
+violent fit of crying. Her cousin feared he had been unwise in
+saying so much, and had weakened the effect of his own words. He
+would have been glad to see tears of repentance, but he was afraid
+that she was weeping over fancied unkindness, and that he might have
+done what might be hurtful to her in her weak state. He said a few
+kind words, and tried to console her, but this change of tone rather
+added to her distress, and she became hysterical. He was much vexed
+and alarmed, and, ringing the bell, hastened to call assistance. He
+found Esther, and sent her to Jane, and on returning to the
+schoolroom with some water, he found her lying exhausted on the sofa;
+he therefore went in search of his uncle, who was overlooking some
+farming work, and many were the apologies made, and many the
+assurances he received, that it would be better for her in the end,
+as the impression would be more lasting.
+
+Jane was scarcely conscious of her cousin's departure, or of Esther's
+arrival, but after drinking some water, and lying still for a few
+moments, she exclaimed, 'Oh, Robert! oh, Esther! the confirmation!'
+and gasped and sobbed again. Esther thought she had guessed the
+cause of her tears, and tried to comfort her.
+
+'Ah! Miss Jane, there will be another confirmation some day; it was a
+sad thing you were too ill, to be sure, but--'
+
+'Oh! if I had--if he would not say--if he had thought me fit.'
+
+Esther was amazed, and asked if she should call Miss Weston, who was
+now with Lilias.
+
+'No, no!' cried Jane, nearly relapsing into hysterics. 'She shall
+not see me in this state.'
+
+Esther hardly knew what to do, but she tried to soothe and comfort
+her by following what was evidently the feeling predominating in
+Jane's mind, as indicated by her broken sentences, and said, 'It was
+a pity, to be sure, that Mr. Devereux came and talked so long, he
+could not know of your being so very weak, Miss Jane.'
+
+'Yes,' said Jane, faintly, 'I could have borne it better if he had
+waited a few days.'
+
+'Yes, Miss, when you had not been so very ill. Mr. Devereux is a
+very good gentleman, but they do say he is very sharp.'
+
+'He means to be kind,' said Jane, 'but I do not think he has much
+consideration, always.'
+
+'Yes, Miss Jane, that is just what Mrs. White said, when--'
+
+Esther's speech was cut short by the entrance of Miss Weston. Jane
+started up, dashed off her tears, and tried to look as usual, but the
+paleness of her face, and the redness of her eyes, made this
+impossible, and she was obliged to lie down again. Esther left the
+room, and Miss Weston did not feel intimate enough with Jane to ask
+any questions; she gave her some sal volatile, talked kindly to her
+of her weakness, and offered to read to her; all the time leaving an
+opening for confidence, if Jane wished to relieve her mind. The book
+which lay near her accounted, as she thought, for her agitation, and
+she blamed herself for having judged her harshly as deficient in
+feeling, now that she found her so much distressed, because illness
+had prevented her confirmation. Under this impression she honoured
+her reserve, while she thought with more affection of Lily's open
+heart. Jane, who never took, or expected others to take, the most
+favourable view of people's motives, thought Alethea knew the cause
+of her distress, and disliked her the more, as having witnessed her
+humiliation.
+
+Such was Jane's love of gossip that the next time she was alone with
+Esther she asked for the history of Mrs. White, thus teaching her
+maid disrespect to her pastor, indirectly complaining of his
+unkindness, and going far to annul the effect of what she had learnt
+at school. Perhaps during her hysterics Jane's conduct was not under
+control, but subsequent silence was in her power, and could she be
+free from blame if Esther's faults gained greater ascendency?
+
+The next day Mr. Mohun attempted to speak to Jane, but being both
+frightened and unhappy, she found it very easy and natural, as well
+as very convenient, to fall into hysterics again, and her father was
+obliged to desist, regretting that, at the only time she was subdued
+enough to listen to reproof, she was too weak to bear it without
+injury. Rachel, who was nearly as despotic among the young ladies as
+she had been in former times in the nursery, now insisted on Emily's
+going into the schoolroom, and when there, she made rapid progress.
+Alethea was amused to see how Jane's decided will and lively spirit
+would induce Emily to make exertions, which no persuasions of hers
+could make her think other than impossible.
+
+A few days more, and they were nearly well again; and Lilias so far
+recovered as to be able to spare her kind friend, who returned home
+with a double portion of Lily's love, and of deep gratitude from Mr.
+Mohun; but these feelings were scarcely expressed in words. Emily
+gave her some graceful thanks, and Jane disliked her more than ever.
+
+It was rather a dreary time that now commenced with the young ladies;
+they were tired of seeing the same faces continually, and dispirited
+by hearing that the fever was spreading in the village. The autumn
+was far advanced, the weather was damp and gloomy, and the sisters
+sat round the fire shivering with cold, feeling the large room dreary
+and deserted, missing the merry voices of the children, and much
+tormented by want of occupation. They could not go out, their hands
+were not steady enough to draw, they felt every letter which they had
+to write a heavy burden; neither Emily nor Lily could like
+needlework; they could have no music, for the piano at the other end
+of the room seemed to be in an Arctic Region, and they did little but
+read novels and childish stories, and play at chess or backgammon.
+Jane was the best off. Mrs. Weston sent her a little sock, with a
+request that she would make out the way in which it was knit, in a
+complicated feathery pattern, and in puzzling over her cotton, taking
+stitches up and letting them down, she made the time pass a little
+less heavily with her than with her sisters.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII--A CURIOSITY MAP
+
+
+
+'Keek into the draw-well,
+ Janet, Janet,
+There ye'll see your bonny sell,
+ My jo Janet.'
+
+It was at this time that Lady Rotherwood and her daughter arrived at
+Devereux Castle, and Mr. Mohun was obliged to go to meet her there,
+leaving his three daughters to spend a long winter evening by
+themselves, in their doleful and dismal way, as Lily called it.
+
+The evening had closed in, but they did not ring for candles, lest
+they should make it seem longer; and Jane was just beginning to laugh
+at Emily for the deplorable state of her frock and collar, tumbled
+with lying on the sofa, when the three girls all started at the
+unexpected sound of a ring at the front door.
+
+With a rapid and joyful suspicion who it might be, Emily and Lilias
+sprang to the door, Jane thrust the poker into the fire, in a
+desperate attempt to produce a flame, drove an arm-chair off the
+hearth-rug, whisked an old shawl out of sight, and flew after them
+into the hall, just as the deep tones of a well-known voice were
+heard greeting old Joseph.
+
+'William!' cried the girls. 'Oh! is it you? Are you not afraid of
+the scarlet fever?'
+
+'No, who has it?'
+
+'We have had it, but we are quite well now. How cold you are!'
+
+'But where is my father?'
+
+'Gone to Hetherington with Robert, to meet Aunt Rotherwood. Come
+into the drawing-room.'
+
+Here Emily glided off to perform a hurried toilette.
+
+'And the little ones?'
+
+'At Broomhill. Mrs. Weston was so kind as to take them out of the
+way of the infection,' said Lily.
+
+'Oh! William, those Westons!'
+
+'Westons, what Westons? Not those I knew at Brighton?'
+
+'The very same,' said Lily. 'They have taken the house at Broomhill.
+Oh! they have been so very kind, I do not know what would have become
+of us without Alethea.'
+
+'Why did you not tell me they were living here? And you like them?'
+
+'Like them! No one can tell the comfort Alethea has been. She came
+to us and nursed us, and has been my great support.'
+
+'And Phyllis and Ada are with them?'
+
+'Yes, they have been at Broomhill these six weeks, and more.'
+
+Here Emily came in and told William that his room was ready, and
+Rachel on the stairs wishing to see the Captain.
+
+'How well he looks!' cried Lily, as he closed the door; 'it is quite
+refreshing to see any one looking so strong and bright.'
+
+'And more like Sir Maurice than ever,' said Emily.
+
+'Ah! but Claude is more like,' said Lily, 'because he is pale.'
+
+'Well,' said Jane, 'do let us in the meantime make the room look more
+fit to be seen before he comes down.'
+
+The alacrity which had long been wanting to Lilias and Jane had
+suddenly returned, and they succeeded in making the room look
+surprisingly comfortable, compared with its former desolate aspect,
+before William came down, and renewed his inquiries after all the
+family.
+
+'And how is my father's deafness?' was one of his questions.
+
+'Worse,' said Emily. 'I am afraid all the younger ones will learn to
+vociferate. He hears no one well but ourselves.'
+
+'Oh! and Alethea Weston,' said Lily. 'Her voice is so clear and
+distinct, that she hardly ever raises it to make him hear. And have
+you ever heard her sing?'
+
+'Yes, she sings very well. I cannot think why you never told me they
+were living here.'
+
+'Because you never honour us with your correspondence,' said Emily;
+'if you had vouchsafed to write to your sisters you could not have
+escaped hearing of the Westons.'
+
+'And has Mr. Weston given up the law?'
+
+'No, he only came home in the vacation,' said Emily. 'Did you know
+they had lost two daughters?'
+
+'I saw it in the paper. Emma and Lucy were nice girls, but not equal
+to Miss Weston. What a shock to Mrs. Weston!'
+
+'Yes, she quite lost her health, and the doctors said she must move
+into the country directly. Mrs. Carrington, who is some distant
+connection, told them of this place, and they took it rather
+hastily.'
+
+'Do they like it?'
+
+'Oh yes, very much!' said Emily. 'Mrs. Weston is very fond of the
+garden, and drives about in the pony-carriage, and it is quite
+pleasant to see how she admires the views.'
+
+'And,' added Lily, 'Alethea walks with us, and sings with me, and
+teaches at school, and knows all the poor people.'
+
+'I must go and see those children to-morrow,' said William.
+
+The evening passed very pleasantly; and perhaps, in truth, Captain
+Mohun and his sisters were surprised to find each other so agreeable;
+for, in the eyes of the young ladies, he was by far the most awful
+person in the family.
+
+When he had been last at home Harry's recent death had thrown a gloom
+over the whole family, and he had especially missed him. Himself
+quick, sensible, clever, and active, he was intolerant of opposite
+qualities, and the principal effect of that visit to Beechcroft was
+to make all the younger ones afraid of him, to discourage poor
+Claude, and to give to himself a gloomy remembrance of that home
+which had lost its principal charms in his mother and Harry.
+
+He had now come home rather from a sense of duty than an expectation
+of pleasure, and he was quite surprised to find how much more
+attractive the New Court had become. Emily and Lilias were now
+conversible and intelligent companions, better suited to him than
+Eleanor had ever been, and he had himself in these four years
+acquired a degree of gentleness and consideration which prevented him
+from appearing so unapproachable as in days of old. This was
+especially the case with regard to Claude, whose sensitive and rather
+timid nature had in his childhood suffered much from William's boyish
+attempts to make him manly, and as he grew older, had almost felt
+himself despised; but now William appreciated his noble qualities,
+and was anxious to make amends for his former unkindness.
+
+Claude came home from Oxford, not actually ill, but in the ailing
+condition in which he often was, just weak enough to give his sisters
+a fair excuse for waiting upon him, and petting him all day long.
+About the same time Phyllis and Adeline came back from Broomhill, and
+there was great joy at the New Court at the news that Mrs.
+Hawkesworth was the happy mother of a little boy.
+
+Claude was much pleased by being asked by Eleanor to be godfather to
+his little nephew, whose name was to be Henry. Perhaps he hoped,
+what Lilias was quite sure of, that Eleanor did not think him
+unworthy to stand in Harry's place.
+
+The choice of the other sponsors did not meet with universal
+approbation. Emily thought it rather hard that Mr. Hawkesworth's
+sister, Mrs. Ridley, should have been chosen before herself, and both
+she and Ada would have greatly preferred either Lord Rotherwood, Mr.
+Devereux, or William, to Mr. Ridley, while Phyllis had wanderings of
+her own how Claude could be godfather without being present at the
+christening.
+
+One evening Claude was writing his answer to Eleanor, sitting at the
+sofa table where a small lamp was burning. Jane, attracted by its
+bright and soft radiance, came and sat down opposite to him with her
+work.
+
+'What a silence!' said Lily, after about a quarter of an hour.
+
+'What made you start, Jane?' said William.
+
+'Did I?' said Jane.
+
+'My speaking, I suppose,' said Lily, 'breaking the awful spell of
+silence.'
+
+'How red you look, Jane. What is the matter?' said William.
+
+'Do I?' asked Jane, becoming still redder.
+
+'It is holding your face down over that baby's hood,' said Emily,
+'you will sacrifice the colour of your nose to your nephew.'
+
+Claude now asked Jane for the sealing-wax, folded up his letter,
+sealed it, put on a stamp, and as Jane was leaving the room at
+bedtime, said, 'Jenny, my dear, as you go by, just put that letter in
+the post-bag.'
+
+Jane obeyed, and left the room. Claude soon after took the letter
+out of the bag, went to Emily's door, listened to ascertain that Jane
+was not there, and then knocked and was admitted.
+
+'I could not help coming,' said he, 'to tell you of the trap in which
+Brownie has been caught.'
+
+'Ah!' said Lily, 'I fancied I saw her peeping slyly at your letter.'
+
+'Just so,' said Claude, 'and I hope she has experienced the truth of
+an old proverb.'
+
+'Oh! tell us what you have said,' cried the sisters.
+
+Claude read, 'Jane desires me to say that a hood for the baby shall
+be sent in the course of a week, and she hopes that it may be worn at
+the christening. I should rather say I hope it may be lost in the
+transit, for assuredly the head that it covers must be infected with
+something far worse than the scarlet fever--the fever of curiosity,
+the last quality which I should like my godson to possess. My only
+consolation is, that he will see the full deformity of the vice, as,
+poor little fellow, he becomes acquainted with "that worst of
+plagues, a prying maiden aunt." If Jane was simply curious, I should
+not complain, but her love of investigation is not directed to what
+ought to be known, but rather to find out some wretched subject for
+petty scandal, to blacken every action, and to add to the weight of
+every misdeed, and all for the sake of detailing her discoveries in
+exchange for similar information with Mrs. Appleton, or some equally
+suitable confidante.'
+
+'Is that all?' said Lily.
+
+'And enough, too, I hope,' said Claude.
+
+'It ought to cure her!' cried Emily.
+
+'Cure her!' said Claude, 'no such thing; cures are not wrought in
+this way; this is only a joke, and to keep it up, I will tell you a
+piece of news, which Jane must have spied out in my letter, as I had
+just written it when I saw her eyes in a suspicious direction. It
+was settled that Messieurs Maurice and Redgie are to go for two hours
+a day, three times a week, to Mr. Stevens, during the holidays.'
+
+'The new Stoney Bridge curate?' said Emily.
+
+'I am very glad you are not to be bored by them,' said Lily, 'but how
+they will dislike it!'
+
+'It is very hard upon them,' said Claude, 'and I tried to prevent it,
+but the Baron was quite determined. Now I will begin to talk about
+this plan, and see whether Jenny betrays any knowledge of it.'
+
+'Oh! it will be rare!' cried Lily; 'but do not speak of it before the
+Baron or William.'
+
+'Let it be at luncheon,' said Emily, 'you know they never appear. Do
+you mean to send the letter?'
+
+'Not that part of it,' said Claude, 'you see I can tear off the last
+page, and it is only to add a new conclusion. Good-night.'
+
+Jane had certainly not spent the evening in an agreeable manner; she
+had not taken her seat at Claude's table with any evil designs
+towards his letter, but his writing was clear and legible, and her
+eye caught the word 'Maurice;' she wished to know what Claude could
+be saying about him, and having once begun, she could not leave off,
+especially when she saw her own name. When aware of the compliments
+he was paying her, she looked at him, but his eyes were fixed on his
+pen, and no smile, no significant expression betrayed that he was
+aware of her observations; and even when he gave her the letter to
+put into the post-bag he looked quite innocent and unconcerned. On
+the other hand, she did not like to think that he had been sending
+such a character of her to Eleanor in sober sadness; it was
+impossible to find out whether he had sent the letter; she could not
+venture to beg him to keep it back, she could only trust to his good-
+nature.
+
+At luncheon, as they had agreed, Lily began by asking where her papa
+and William were gone? Claude answered, 'To Stoney Bridge, to call
+upon Mr. Stevens; they mean to ask him to dine one day next week, to
+be introduced to his pupils.'
+
+'Is he an Oxford or Cambridge man?' asked Lily.
+
+'Oxford,' exclaimed Jane, quite forgetting whence she had derived her
+information, 'he is a fellow of--'
+
+'Indeed?' said Lily; 'how do you know that?'
+
+'Why, we have all been talking of him lately,' said Jane.
+
+'Not I,' said Emily, 'why should he interest us?'
+
+'Because he is to tutor the boys,' said Jane.
+
+'When did you hear that he is to tutor the boys?' asked Lily.
+
+'When you did, I suppose,' said Jane, blushing.
+
+'You did, did you?' said Claude. 'I feel convinced, if so, that you
+must really be what you are so often called, a changeling. I heard
+it, or rather read it first at Oxford, where the Baron desired me to
+make inquiries about him. You were, doubtless, looking over my
+shoulder at the moment. This is quite a discovery. We shall have to
+perform a brewery of egg-shells this evening, and put the elf to
+flight with a red-hot poker, and what a different sister Jane we
+shall recover, instead of this little mischief-making sprite, so
+quiet, so reserved, never intruding her opinion, showing constant
+deference to all her superiors--yes, and to her inferiors, shutting
+her eyes to the faults of others, and when they come before her,
+trying to shield the offender from those who regard them as merely
+exciting news.'
+
+Claude's speech had become much more serious than he intended, and he
+felt quite guilty when he had finished, so that it was not at all an
+undesirable interruption when Phyllis and Adeline asked for the story
+of the brewery of egg-shells.
+
+Emily and Lilias kindly avoided looking at Jane, who, after fidgeting
+on her chair and turning very red, succeeded in regaining outward
+composure. She resolved to let the matter die away, and think no
+more about it.
+
+When Mr. Mohun and William came home, they brought the news that Lady
+Rotherwood had invited the whole party to dinner.
+
+'I am very glad we are allowed to see them,' said Emily, 'I am quite
+tired of being shut up.'
+
+'If it was not for the Westons we might as well live in Nova Zembla,'
+said Jane.
+
+'I am glad you damsels should know a little more of Florence,' said
+Mrs. Mohun.
+
+'Yes,' said Claude, 'cousins were made to be friends.'
+
+'In that case one ought to be able to choose them,' said William.
+
+'And know them,' said Emily. 'We have not seen Florence since she
+was eleven years old.'
+
+'Cousin or not,' said Lilias, 'Florence can hardly be so much my
+friend as Alethea.'
+
+'Right, Lily,' said William, 'stand up for old friends against all
+the cousins in the universe.'
+
+'Has Alethea a right to be called an old friend?' said Emily; 'does
+three quarters of a year make friendship venerable?'
+
+'No one can deny that she is a tried friend,' said Lilias.
+
+'But pray, good people,' said Claude, 'what called forth those vows
+of eternal constancy? why was my innocent general observation
+construed into an attack upon Miss Weston?'
+
+'Because there is something invidious in your tone,' said Lily.
+
+'What kind of girl is that Florence?' asked William.
+
+'Oh! a nice, lively, pleasant girl,' said Claude.
+
+'I cannot make out what her pursuits are,' said Lily; 'Rotherwood
+never talks of her reading anything.'
+
+'She has been governessed and crammed till she is half sick of all
+reading,' said Claude, 'of all study--ay, and all accomplishments.'
+
+'So that is the friend you recommend, Lily!' said William.
+
+'Well, Claude, that is what I call a great shame,' said Emily.
+
+'Stay,' said Claude, 'you have heard but half my story, I say that
+this is the reaction. Florence has no lack of sense, and if you
+young ladies are wise, you may help her to find the use of it.'
+
+Claude's further opinion did not transpire, as dinner was announced,
+and nothing more was said about Lady Florence till the girls had an
+opportunity of judging for themselves. She had a good deal of her
+brother's vivacity, with gentleness and grace, which made her very
+engaging, and her perfect recollection of the New Court, and of
+childish days, charmed her cousins. Lady Rotherwood was very kind
+and affectionate, and held out hopes of many future meetings. The
+next day Maurice and Reginald came home from school, bringing a
+better character for diligence than usual, on which they founded
+hopes that the holidays would be left to their own disposal. They
+were by no means pleased with the arrangement made with Mr. Stevens
+and most unwillingly did they undertake the expedition to Stony
+Bridge, performing the journey in a very unsociable manner. Maurice
+was no horseman, and chose to jog on foot through three miles of
+lane, while Reginald's pony cantered merrily along, its master's head
+being intent upon the various winter sports in which William and Lord
+Rotherwood allowed him to share. Little did Maurice care for such
+diversions; he was, as Adeline said, studying another 'apology.'
+This time it was phrenology, for which the cropped heads of Lilias
+and Jane afforded unusual facility. There was, however, but a
+limited supply of heads willing to be fingered, and Maurice returned
+to the most abiding of his tastes, and in an empty room at the Old
+Court laboured assiduously to find the secret of perpetual motion.
+
+A few days before Christmas Rachel Harvey again took leave of
+Beechcroft, with a promise that she would make them another visit
+when Eleanor came home. Before she went she gave Emily a useful
+caution, telling her it was not right to trust her keys out of her
+own possession. It was what Miss Mohun never would have done, she
+had never once committed them even to Rachel.
+
+'With due deference to Eleanor,' said Emily, with her winning smile,
+'we must allow that that was being over cautious.'
+
+Rachel smiled, but her lecture was not averted by the compliment.
+
+'It might have been very well since you have known me, Miss Emily,
+but I do not know what would have come of it, if I had been too much
+trusted when I was a giddy young thing like Esther; that girl comes
+of a bad lot, and if anything is to be made of her, it is by keeping
+temptation out of her way, and not letting her be with that mother of
+hers.'
+
+Rachel had rather injured the effect of her advice by behaving too
+like a mistress during her visit; Emily had more than once wished
+that all servants were not privileged people, and she was more
+offended than convinced by the remonstrance.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV--CHRISTMAS
+
+
+
+ 'Slee, sla, slud,
+ Stuck in the mud,
+O! it is pretty to wade through a flood,
+ Come, wheel round,
+ The dirt we have found,
+Would he an estate at a farthing a pound.'
+
+Lily's illness interrupted her teaching at the village school for
+many weeks, and she was in no great haste to resume it. Alethea
+Weston seemed to enjoy doing all that was required, and Lily left it
+in her hands, glad to shut her eyes as much as possible to the
+disheartening state the parish had been in ever since her former
+indiscretion.
+
+The approach of Christmas, however, made it necessary for her to
+exert herself a little more, and her interest in parish matters
+revived as she distributed the clothing-club goods, and in private
+conference with each good dame, learnt the wants of her family. But
+it was sad to miss several names struck out of the list for non-
+attendance at church; and when Mrs. Eden came for her child's
+clothing, Lily remarked that the articles she chose were unlike those
+of former years, the cheapest and coarsest she could find.
+
+St. Thomas's day was marked by the custom, called at Beechcroft
+'gooding.' Each mother of a family came to all the principal houses
+in the parish to receive sixpence, towards providing a Christmas
+dinner, and it was Lily's business to dispense this dole at the New
+Court. With a long list of names and a heap of silver before her,
+she sat at the oaken table by the open chimney in the hall, returning
+a nod or a smiling greeting to the thanks of the women as they came,
+one by one, to receive the little silver coins, and warm themselves
+by the glowing wood fire.
+
+Pleasant as the task was at first, it ended painfully. Agnes Eden
+appeared, in order to claim the double portion allotted to her
+mother, as a widow. This was the first time that Mrs. Eden had asked
+for the gooding-money, and Lily knew that it was a sign that she must
+be in great distress. Agnes made her a little courtesy, and crept
+away again as soon as she had received her shilling; but Mrs. Grey,
+who was Mrs. Eden's neighbour, had not quite settled her penny-club
+affairs, and remained a little longer. An unassuming and lightly-
+principled person was Mrs. Grey, and Lily enjoyed a talk with her,
+while she was waiting for the purple stuff frock which Jane was
+measuring off for Kezia. They spoke of the children, and of a few
+other little matters, and presently something was said about Mrs.
+Eden; Lily asked if the blacksmith helped her.
+
+'Oh! no, Miss Lilias, he will do nothing for her while she sends her
+child to school and to church. He will not speak to her even. Not a
+bit of butter, nor a morsel of bacon, has been in her house since
+Michaelmas, and what she would have done if it was not for Mr.
+Devereux and Mrs. Weston, I cannot think.'
+
+Lilias, much shocked by this account of the distress into which she
+and Jane had been the means of bringing the widow, reported it to her
+father and to the Rector; entreating the former to excuse her rent,
+which he willingly promised to do, and also desired his daughters to
+give her a blanket, and tell her to come to dine house whenever any
+broth was to be given away. Mr. Devereux, who already knew of her
+troubles, and allowed her a small sum weekly, now told his cousins
+how much the Greys had assisted her. Andrew Grey had dug up and
+housed her winter's store of potatoes, he had sought work for her,
+and little Agnes often shared the meals of his children. The Greys
+had a large family, very young, so that all that they did for her was
+the fruit of self-denial. Innumerable were the kindnesses which they
+performed unknown to any but the widow and her child. More, by a
+hundred times, did they assist her, than the thoughtless girls who
+had occasioned her sufferings, though Lily was not the only one who
+felt that nothing was too much for them to do. Nothing, perhaps,
+would have been too much, except to bear her in mind and steadily aid
+her in little things; but Lily took no account of little things,
+talked away her feelings, and thus all her grand resolutions produced
+almost nothing. Lord Rotherwood sent Mrs. Eden a sovereign, the
+girls newly clothed little Agnes, Phyllis sometimes carried her the
+scraps of her dinner, Mrs. Eden once came to work at the New Court,
+and a few messes of broth were given to her, but in general she was
+forgotten, and when remembered, indolence or carelessness too often
+prevented the Miss Mohuns from helping her. In Emily's favourite
+phrase, each individual thing was 'not worth while.'
+
+When Lilias did think it 'worth while,' she would do a great deal
+upon impulse, sometimes with more zeal than discretion, as she proved
+by an expedition which she took on Christmas Eve. Mr. Mohun did not
+allow the poor of the village to depend entirely on the gooding for
+their Christmas dinner, but on the 24th of December a large mess of
+excellent beef broth was prepared at the New Court, and distributed
+to all his own labourers, and the most respectable of the other
+cottagers.
+
+In the course of the afternoon Lily found that one portion had not
+been given out. It was that which was intended for the Martins, a
+poor old rheumatic couple, who lived at South End, the most distant
+part of the parish. Neither of them could walk as far as the New
+Court, and most of their neighbours had followed Farmer Gage, and had
+therefore been excluded from the distribution, so that there was no
+one to send. Lily, therefore, resolved herself to carry the broth to
+them, if she could find an escort, which was not an easy matter, as
+the frost had that morning broken up, and a good deal of snow and
+rain had been falling in the course of the day. In the hall she met
+Reginald, just turned out of Maurice's workshop, and much at a loss
+for employment.
+
+'Redgie,' said she, 'you can do me a great kindness.'
+
+'If it is not a bore,' returned Reginald.
+
+'I only want you to walk with me to South End.'
+
+'Eh?' said Reginald; 'I thought the little Misses were too delicate
+to put their dear little proboscises outside the door.'
+
+'That is the reason I ask you; I do not think Emily or Jane would
+like it, and it is too far for Claude. Those poor old Martins have
+not got their broth, and there is no one to fetch it for them.'
+
+'Then do not be half an hour putting on your things.'
+
+'Thank you; and do not run off, and make me spend an hour in hunting
+for you, and then say that I made you wait.'
+
+'I will wait fast enough. You are not so bad as Emily,' said
+Reginald, while Lily ran upstairs to equip herself. When she came
+down, she was glad to find her escort employed in singeing the end of
+the tail of the old rocking-horse at the fire in the hall, so that
+she was not obliged to seek him in the drawing-room, where her plans
+would probably have met with opposition. She had, however,
+objections to answer from an unexpected quarter. Reginald was much
+displeased when she took possession of the pitcher of broth.
+
+'I will not walk with such a thing as that,' said he, 'it makes you
+look like one of the dirty girls in the village.'
+
+'Then you ought, like the courteous Rinaldo, to carry it for me,'
+said Lily.
+
+'I touch the nasty thing! Faugh! Throw it into the gutter, Lily.'
+
+He made an attempt to dispose of it in that manner, which it required
+all Lily's strength to withstand, as well as an imploring 'Now,
+Redgie, think of the poor old people. Remember, you have promised.'
+
+'Promised! I never promised to walk with a greasy old pitcher. What
+am I to do if we meet Miss Weston?'
+
+Lily contrived to overcome Reginald's refined notions sufficiently to
+make him allow her to carry the pitcher; and when he had whistled up
+two of the dogs, they proceeded merrily along the road, dirty and wet
+though it was. Their walk was not entirely without adventures;
+first, they had to turn back in the path by the river side, which
+would have saved them half a mile, but was now flooded. Then, as
+they were passing through a long lane, which led them by Edward
+Gage's farm, a great dog rushed out of the yard, and fell upon the
+little terrier, Viper. Old Neptune flew to the rescue, and to the
+great alarm of Lily, Reginald ran up with a stick; happily, however,
+a labourer at the same time came out with a pitchfork, and beat off
+the enemy. These two delays, together with Reginald's propensity for
+cutting sticks, and for breaking ice, made it quite late when they
+arrived at South End. When there, they found that a kind neighbour
+had brought the old people their broth in the morning, and intended
+to go for her own when she came home from her work in the evening.
+It was not often that Lily went to South End; the old people were
+delighted to see her, and detained her for some time by a long story
+about their daughter at service, while Reginald looked the picture of
+impatience, drumming on his knee, switching the leg of the table, and
+tickling Neptune's ears. When they left the cottage it was much
+later and darker than they had expected; but Lily was unwilling again
+to encounter the perils of the lane, and consulted her brother
+whether there was not some other way. He gave notice of a cut across
+some fields, which would take them into the turnpike road, and Lily
+agreeing, they climbed over a gate into a pathless turnip field.
+Reginald strode along first, calling to the dogs, while Lily
+followed, abstaining from dwelling on the awkward circumstance that
+every step she took led her farther from home, and rejoicing that it
+was so dark that she could not see the mud which plastered the edge
+of her petticoats. After plodding through three very long fields,
+they found themselves shut in by a high hedge and tall ditch.
+
+'That fool of a farmer!' cried Reginald.
+
+'What is to be done?' said Lily, disconsolately.
+
+'There is the road,' said Reginald. 'How do you propose to get into
+it?'
+
+'There was a gap here last summer,' said the boy.
+
+'Very likely! Come back; try the next field; it must have a gate
+somewhere.'
+
+Back they went, after seeing the carrier's cart from Raynham pass by.
+
+'Redgie, it must be half-past five! We shall never be in time. Aunt
+Rotherwood coming too!'
+
+After a desperate plunge through a swamp of ice, water, and mud, they
+found themselves at a gate, and safely entered the turnpike road.
+
+'How it rains!' said Lily. 'One comfort is that it is too dark for
+any one to see us.'
+
+'Not very dark, either,' said Reginald; 'I believe there is a moon if
+one could see it. Ha! here comes some one on horseback. It is a
+gray horse; it is William.'
+
+'Come to look for us,' said Lily. 'Oh, Redgie!'
+
+'Coming home from Raynham,' said Reginald. 'Do not fancy yourself so
+important, Lily. William, is that you?'
+
+'Reginald!' exclaimed William, suddenly checking his horse. 'Lily,
+what is all this?'
+
+'We set out to South End, to take the broth to the old Martins, and
+we found the meadows flooded, which made us late; but we shall soon
+be at home,' said Lily, in a make-the-best-of-it tone.
+
+'Soon? You are a mile and a half from home now, and do you know how
+late it is?'
+
+'Half-past five,' said Lily.
+
+'Six, at least; how could you be so absurd?' William rode quickly
+on; Reginald laughed, and they plodded on; at length a tall dark
+figure was seen coming towards them, and Lily started, as it
+addressed her, 'Now what is the meaning of all this?'
+
+'Oh, William, have you come to meet us? Thank you; I am sorry--'
+
+'How were you to come through the village in the dark, without some
+one to take care of you?'
+
+'I am taking care of her,' said Reginald, affronted.
+
+'Make haste; my aunt is come. How could you make the people at home
+so anxious?'
+
+William gave Lily his arm, and on finding she was both tired and wet,
+again scolded her, walked so fast that she was out of breath, then
+complained of her folly, and blamed Reginald. It was very
+unpleasant, and yet she was very much obliged to him, and exceedingly
+sorry he had taken so much trouble.
+
+They came home at about seven o'clock. Jane met them in the hall,
+full of her own and Lady Rotherwood's wonderings; she hurried Lily
+upstairs, and--skilful, quick, and ready--she helped her to dress in
+a very short time. As they ran down Reginald overtook them, and they
+entered the drawing-room as the dinner-bell was ringing. William did
+not appear for some time, and his apologies were not such as to
+smooth matters for his sister.
+
+Perhaps it was for this very reason that Mr. Mohun allowed Lily to
+escape with no more than a jesting reproof. Lord Rotherwood wished
+to make his cousin's hardihood and enterprise an example to his
+sister, and, in his droll exaggerating way, represented such walks as
+every-day occurrences. This was just the contrary to what Emily
+wished her aunt to believe, and Claude was much diverted with the
+struggle between her politeness to Lord Rotherwood and her desire to
+maintain the credit of the family.
+
+Lady Florence, though liking Lilias, thought this walk extravagant.
+Emily feared Lilias had lost her aunt's good opinion, and prepared
+herself for some hints about a governess. It was untoward; but in
+the course of the evening she was a little comforted by a proposal
+from Lady Rotherwood to take her and Lilias to a ball at Raynham,
+which was to take place in January; and as soon as the gentlemen
+appeared, they submitted the invitation to their father, while Lady
+Rotherwood pressed William to accompany them, and he was refusing.
+
+'What are soldiers intended for but to dance!' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'I never dance,' said William, with a grave emphasis.
+
+'I am out of the scrape,' said the Marquis. 'I shall be gone before
+it takes place; I reserve all my dancing for July 30th. Well, young
+ladies, is the Baron propitious?'
+
+'He says he will consider of it,' said Emily.
+
+'Oh then, he will let you go,' said Florence, 'people never consider
+when they mean no.'
+
+'No, Florence,' said her brother, 'Uncle Mohun's "consider of it" is
+equivalent to Le Roi's "avisera."'
+
+'What is he saying?' asked Lily, turning to listen. 'Oh, that my wig
+is in no ball-going condition.'
+
+'A wreath would hide all deficiencies,' said Florence; 'I am
+determined to have you both.'
+
+'I give small hopes of both,' said Claude; 'you will only have
+Emily.'
+
+'Why do you think so, Claude?' cried both Florence and Lilias.
+
+'From my own observation,' Claude answered, gravely.
+
+'I am very angry with the Baron,' said Lord Rotherwood; 'he is grown
+inhospitable: he will not let me come here to-morrow--the first
+Christmas these five years that I have missed paying my respects to
+the New Court sirloin and turkey. It is too bad--and the Westons
+dining here too.'
+
+'Cousin Turkey-cock, well may you be in a passion,' muttered Claude,
+as if in soliloquy.
+
+Lord Rotherwood and Lilias both caught the sound, and laughed, but
+Emily, unwilling that Florence should see what liberties they took
+with her brother, asked quickly why he was not to come.
+
+'I think we are much obliged to him,' said Florence, 'it would be too
+bad to leave mamma and me to spend our Christmas alone, when we came
+to the castle on purpose to oblige him.'
+
+'Ay, and he says he will not let me come here, because I ought to
+give the Hetherington people ocular demonstration that I go to
+church,' said Lord Rotherwood.
+
+'Very right, as Eleanor would say,' observed Claude.
+
+'Very likely; but I don't care for the Hetherington folks; they do
+not know how to make the holly in the church fit to be seen, and they
+will not sing the good old Christmas carols. Andrew Grey is worth
+all the Hetherington choir put together.'
+
+'Possibly; but how are they to mend, if their Marquis contents
+himself with despising them?' said Claude.
+
+'That is too bad, Claude. When you heard how submissively I listened
+to the Baron, and know I mean to abide by what he said, you ought to
+condole with me a little, if you have not the grace to lament my
+absence on your own account. Why, I thought myself as regular a part
+of the feast as the mince-pies, and almost as necessary.'
+
+Here a request for some music put an end to his lamentations. Lilias
+was vexed by the uncertainty about the ball, and was, besides, too
+tired to play with spirit. She saw that Emily was annoyed, and she
+felt ready to cry before the evening was over; but still she was
+proud of her exploit, and when, after the party was gone, Emily began
+to represent to her the estimate that her aunt was likely to form of
+her character, she replied, 'If she thinks the worse of me for
+carrying the broth to those poor old people, I am sure I do not wish
+for her good opinion.'
+
+Mr. Mohun was not propitious when the question of Lily's going to the
+ball was pressed upon him. He said that he thought her too young for
+gaieties, and, besides, that late hours never agreed with her, and he
+advised her to wait for the 30th of July.
+
+Lilias knew that it was useless to say any more. She was much
+disappointed, and at the same time provoked with herself for caring
+about such a matter. Her temper was out of order on Christmas Day;
+and while she wondered why she could not enjoy the festival as
+formerly, with thoughts fitted to the day, she did not examine
+herself sufficiently to find out the real cause of her uncomfortable
+feelings.
+
+The clear frost was only cold; the bright sunshine did not rejoice
+her; the holly and the mistletoe seemed ill arranged; and none of the
+pleasant sights of the day could give her such blitheness as once she
+had known.
+
+She was almost angry when she saw that the Westons had left off their
+mourning, declaring that they did not look like themselves; and her
+vexation came to a height when she found that Alethea actually
+intended to go to the ball with Mrs. Carrington. The excited manner
+in which she spoke of it convinced Mr. Mohun that he had acted wisely
+in not allowing her to go, since the very idea seemed to turn her
+head.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV: MINOR MISFORTUNES
+
+
+
+'Loving she is, and tractable though wild.'
+
+In a day or two Lady Rotherwood and her daughter called at the New
+Court. On this occasion Lilias was employed in as rational and lady-
+like a manner as could be desired--in practising her music in the
+drawing-room; Emily was reading, and Ada threading beads.
+
+Lady Rotherwood greeted her nieces very affectionately, gave a double
+caress to Adeline, stroked her pretty curls, admired her beadwork,
+talked to her about her doll, and then proceeded to invite the whole
+family to a Twelfth-Day party, given for their especial benefit. The
+little Carringtons and the Weston girls were also to be asked. Emily
+and Lilias were eagerly expressing their delight when suddenly a
+trampling, like a charge of horse, was heard in the hall; the door
+was thrown back, and in rushed Reginald and Phyllis, shouting, 'Such
+fun!--the pigs are in the garden!'
+
+At the sight of their aunt they stopped short, looking aghast, and
+certainly those who beheld them partook of their consternation.
+Reginald was hot and gloveless; his shoes far from clean; his brown
+curls hanging in great disorder from his Scotch cap; his handkerchief
+loose; his jacket dusty--but this was no great matter, since, as
+Emily said, he was 'only a boy.' His bright open smile, the rough,
+yet gentleman-like courtesy of his advance to the Marchioness, his
+comical roguish glance at Emily, to see if she was very angry, and to
+defy her if she were, and his speedy exit, all greatly amused Lady
+Florence, and made up for what there might have been of the wild
+schoolboy in his entrance.
+
+Poor Phyllis had neither the excuse of being a schoolboy nor the
+good-humoured fearlessness that freed her brother from embarrassment,
+and she stood stock-still, awkward and dismayed, not daring to
+advance; longing to join in the pig-chase, yet afraid to run away,
+her eyes stretched wide open, her hair streaming into them, her
+bonnet awry, her tippet powdered with seeds of hay, her gloves torn
+and soiled, the colour of her brown holland apron scarcely
+discernible through its various stains, her frock tucked up, her
+stockings covered with mud, and without shoes, which she had taken
+off at the door.
+
+'Phyllis,' said Emily, 'what are you thinking of? What makes you
+such a figure? Come and speak to Aunt Rotherwood.'
+
+Phyllis drew off her left-hand glove, and held out her hand, making a
+few sidelong steps towards her aunt, who gave her a rather reluctant
+kiss. Lily bent her bonnet into shape, and pulled down her frock,
+while Florence laughed, patted her cheek, and asked what she had been
+doing.
+
+'Helping Redgie to chop turnips,' was the answer.
+
+Afraid of some further exposure, Emily hastily sent her away to be
+made fit to be seen, and Lady Rotherwood went on caressing Ada and
+talking of something else. Emily had no opportunity of explaining
+that this was not Phyllis's usual condition, and she was afraid that
+Lady Rotherwood would never believe that it was accidental. She was
+much annoyed, especially as the catastrophe only served to divert Mr.
+Mohun and Claude. Of all the family William and Adeline alone took
+her view of the case. Ada lectured Phyllis on her 'naughtiness,' and
+plumed herself on her aunt's evident preference, but William was not
+equally sympathetic. He was indeed as fastidious as Emily herself,
+and as much annoyed by such misadventures; but he maintained that she
+was to blame for them, saying that the state of things was not such
+as it should be, and that the exposure might be advantageous if it
+put her on her guard in future.
+
+It appeared as if poor Phyllis was to be punished for the vexation
+which she had caused, for in the course of her adventures with
+Reginald she caught a cold, which threatened to prevent her from
+being of the party on Twelfth-Day. She had a cough, which did not
+give her by any means as much inconvenience as the noise it
+occasioned did to other people. Every morning and every evening she
+anxiously asked her sisters whether they thought she would be allowed
+to go. Another of the party seemed likely to fail. On the 5th of
+January Claude came down to breakfast later even than usual; but he
+had no occasion to make excuses, for his heavy eyes, the dark lines
+under them, his pale cheeks, and the very sit of his hair, were sure
+signs that he had a violent headache. He soon betook himself to the
+sofa in the drawing-room, attended by Lily, with pillows, cushions,
+ether, and lavender. Late in the afternoon the pain diminished a
+little, and he fell asleep, to the great joy of his sister, who sat
+watching him, scarcely daring to move.
+
+Suddenly a frightful scream and loud crash was heard in the room
+above them. Claude started up, and Lily, exclaiming, 'Those tiresome
+children!' hurried to the room whence the noise had come.
+
+Reginald, Phyllis, and Ada, all stood there laughing. Reginald and
+Phyllis had been climbing to the top of a great wardrobe, by means of
+a ladder of chairs and tables. While Phyllis was descending her
+brother had made some demonstration that startled her, and she fell
+with all the chairs over her, but without hurting herself.
+
+'You naughty troublesome child,' cried Lily, in no gentle tone. 'How
+often have you been told to leave off such boyish tricks! And you
+choose the very place for disturbing poor Claude, with his bad
+headache, making it worse than ever.'
+
+Phyllis tried to speak, but only succeeded in giving a dismal howl.
+She went on screaming, sobbing, and roaring so loud that she could
+not hear Lily's attempts to quiet her. The next minute Claude
+appeared, looking half distracted. Reginald ran off, and as he
+dashed out of the room, came full against William, who caught hold of
+him, calling out to know what was the matter.
+
+'Only Phyllis screaming,' said Lily. 'Oh, Claude, I am very sorry!'
+
+'Is that all?' said Claude. 'I thought some one was half killed!'
+
+He sank into a chair, pressing his hand on his temples, and looking
+very faint. William supported him, and Lily stood by, repeating, 'I
+am very sorry--it was all my fault--my scolding--'
+
+'Hush,' said William, 'you have done mischief enough. Go away,
+children.'
+
+Phyllis had already gone, and the next moment thrust into Lily's hand
+the first of the medicaments which she had found in the drawing-room.
+The faintness soon went off, but Claude thought he had better not
+struggle against the headache any longer, but go to bed, in hopes of
+being better the next day. William went with him to his room, and
+Lilias lingered on the stairs, very humble, and very wretched.
+William soon came forth again, and asked the meaning of the uproar.
+
+'It was all my fault,' said she; 'I was vexed at Claude's being
+waked, and that made me speak sharply to Phyllis, and set her
+roaring.'
+
+'I do not know which is the most inconsiderate of you,' said William.
+
+'You cannot blame me more than I deserve,' said Lily. 'May I go to
+poor Claude?'
+
+'I suppose so; but I do not see what good you are to do. Quiet is
+the only thing for him.'
+
+Lily, however, went, and Claude gave her to understand that he liked
+her to stay with him. She arranged his blinds and curtains
+comfortably, and then sat down to watch him. William went to the
+drawing-room to write a letter. Just as he had sat down he heard a
+strange noise, a sound of sobbing, which seemed to come from the
+corner where the library steps stood. Looking behind them, he beheld
+Phyllis curled up, her head on her knees, crying bitterly.
+
+'You there! Come out. What is the matter now?'
+
+'I am so very sorry,' sighed she.
+
+'Well, leave off crying.' She would willingly have obeyed, but her
+sobs were beyond her own control; and he went on, 'If you are sorry,
+there is no more to be said. I hope it will be a lesson to you
+another time. You are quite old enough to have more consideration
+for other people.'
+
+'I am very sorry,' again said Phyllis, in a mournful note.
+
+'Be sorry, only do not roar. You make that noise from habit, I am
+convinced, and you may break yourself off it if you choose.'
+
+Phyllis crept out of the room, and in a few minutes more the door was
+softly opened by Emily, returning from her walk.
+
+'I thought Claude was here. Is he gone to bed? Is his head worse?'
+
+'Yes, the children have been doing their best to distract him.
+Emily, I want to know why it is that those children are for ever in
+mischief and yelling in all parts of the house.'
+
+'I wish I could help it,' said Emily, with a sigh; 'they are very
+troublesome.'
+
+'There must be great mismanagement,' said her brother.
+
+'Oh, William! Why do you think so?'
+
+'Other children do not go on in this way, and it was not so in
+Eleanor's time.'
+
+'It is only Phyllis,' said Emily.
+
+'Phyllis or not, it ought not to be. What will that child grow up,
+if you let her be always running wild with the boys?'
+
+'Consider, William, that you see us at a disadvantage; we are all
+unsettled by this illness, and the children have been from home.'
+
+'As if they learnt all these wild tricks at Broomhill! That excuse
+will not do, Emily.'
+
+'And then they are always worse in the holidays,' pleaded Emily.
+
+'Yes, there are reasons to be found for everything that goes wrong;
+but if you were wise you would look deeper. Now, Emily, I do not
+wish to be hard upon you, for I know you are in a very difficult
+position, and very young for such a charge, but I am sure you might
+manage better. I do not think you use your energies. There is no
+activity, nor regularity, nor method, about this household. I
+believe that my father sees that this is the case, but it is not his
+habit to find fault with little things. You may think that,
+therefore, I need not interfere, but--'
+
+'Oh, William! I am glad--'
+
+'But remember that comfort is made up of little things. And, Emily,
+when you consider how much my father has suffered, and how desolate
+his home must be at the best, I think you will be inclined to exert
+yourself to prevent him from being anxious about the children or
+harassed by your negligence.'
+
+'Indeed, William,' returned Emily, with many tears, 'it is my most
+earnest wish to make him comfortable. Thank you for what you have
+said. Now that I am stronger, I hope to do more, and I will really
+do my best.'
+
+At this moment Emily was sincere; but the good impulse of one instant
+was not likely to endure against long cherished habits of selfish
+apathy.
+
+Claude did not appear again till the middle of the next day. His
+headache was nearly gone, but he was so languid that he gave up all
+thoughts of Devereux Castle that evening. Lord Rotherwood, who
+always seemed to know what was going on at Beechcroft, came to
+inquire for him, and very unwillingly allowed that it would be better
+for him to stay at home. Lilias wished to remain with him; but this
+her cousin would not permit, saying that he could not consent to lose
+three of the party, and Florence would be disappointed in all her
+plans. Neither would Claude hear of keeping her at home, and she was
+obliged to satisfy herself with putting his arm-chair in his
+favourite corner by the fire, with the little table before it,
+supplied with books, newspaper, inkstand, paper-knife, and all the
+new periodicals, and he declared that he should enjoy the height of
+luxury.
+
+Phyllis considered it to be entirely her fault that he could not go,
+and was too much grieved on that account to have many regrets to
+spare for herself. She enjoyed seeing Adeline dressed, and hearing
+Esther's admiration of her. And having seen the party set off, she
+made her way into the drawing-room, opening the door as gently as
+possible, just wide enough to admit her little person, then shutting
+it as if she was afraid of hurting it, she crept across the room on
+tiptoe. She started when Claude looked up and said, 'Why, Phyl, I
+have not seen you to-day.'
+
+'Good morning,' she mumbled, advancing in her sidelong way.
+
+Claude suspected that she had been more blamed the day before than
+the occasion called for, and wishing to make amends he kissed her,
+and said something good-natured about spending the evening together.
+
+Phyllis, a little reassured, went to her own occupations. She took
+out a large heavy volume, laid it on the window-seat, and began to
+read. Claude was interested in his own book, and did not look up
+till the light failed him. He then, closing his book, gave a long
+yawn, and looked round for his little companion, almost thinking,
+from the stillness of the room, that she must have gone to seek for
+amusement in the nursery.
+
+She was, however, still kneeling against the window-seat, her elbows
+planted on the great folio, and her head between her hands, reading
+intently.
+
+'Little Madam,' said he, 'what great book have you got there?'
+
+'As You Like It,' said Phyllis.
+
+'What! are you promoted to reading Shakspeare?'
+
+'I have not read any but this,' said Phyllis. 'Ada and I have often
+looked at the pictures, and I liked the poor wounded stag coming down
+to the water so much, that I read about it, and then I went on. Was
+it wrong, Claude? no one ever told me not.'
+
+'You are welcome to read it,' said Claude, 'but not now--it is too
+dark. Come and sit in the great chair on the other side of the fire,
+and be sociable. And what do you think of 'As You Like It?''
+
+'I like it very much,' answered Phyllis, 'only I cannot think why
+Jacks did not go to the poor stag, and try to cure it, when he saw
+its tears running into the water.'
+
+To save the character of Jacks, Claude gravely suggested the
+difficulty of catching the stag, and then asked Phyllis her opinion
+of the heroines.
+
+'Oh! it was very funny about Rosalind dressing like a man, and then
+being ready to cry like a girl when she was tired, and then
+pretending to pretend to be herself; and Celia, it was very kind of
+her to go away with Rosalind; but I should have liked her better if
+she had stayed at home, and persuaded her father to let Rosalind stay
+too. I am sure she would if she had been like Ada. Then it is so
+nice about Old Adam and Orlando. Do not you think so, Claude? It is
+just what I am sure Wat Greenwood would do for Redgie, if he was to
+be turned out like Orlando.'
+
+'It is just what Wat Greenwood's ancestor did for Sir Maurice Mohun,'
+said Claude.
+
+'Yes, Dame Greenwood tells us that story.'
+
+'Well, Phyl, I think you show very good taste in liking the scene
+between Orlando and Adam.'
+
+'I am glad you like it, too, Claude. But I will tell you what I like
+best,' exclaimed the little girl, springing up, 'I do like it, when
+Orlando killed the lioness and the snake,--and saved Oliver; how glad
+he must have been.'
+
+'Glad to have done good to his enemy,' said Claude; 'yes, indeed.'
+
+'His enemy! he was his brother, you know. I meant it must be so very
+nice to save anybody--don't you think so, Claude?'
+
+'Certainly.'
+
+'Claude, do you know there is nothing I wish so much as to save
+somebody's life. It was very nice to save the dragon-fly; and it is
+very nice to let flies out of spiders' webs, only they always have
+their legs and wings torn, and look miserable; and it was very nice
+to put the poor little thrushes back into their nest when they
+tumbled out, and then to see their mother come to feed them; and it
+was very pleasant to help the poor goose that had put its head
+through the pales, and could not get it back. Mrs. Harrington said
+it would have been strangled if I had not helped it. That was very
+nice, but how delightful it would be to save some real human person's
+life.'
+
+Claude did not laugh at the odd medley in her speech, but answered,
+'Well, those little things train you in readiness and kindness.'
+
+'Will they?' said Phyllis, pressing on to express what had long been
+her earnest wish. 'If I could but save some one, I should not mind
+being killed myself--I think not--I hope it is not naughty to say so.
+I believe there is something in the Bible about it, about laying down
+one's life for one's friend.'
+
+'There is, Phyl, and I quite agree with you; it must be a great
+blessing to have saved some one.'
+
+'And little girls have sometimes done it, Claude. I know a story of
+one who saved her little brother from drowning, and another waked the
+people when the house was on fire. And when I was at Broomhill,
+Marianne showed me a story of a young lady who helped to save the
+Prince, that Prince Charlie that Miss Weston sings about. I wish the
+Prince of Wales would get into some misfortune--I should like to save
+him.'
+
+'I do not quite echo that loyal wish,' said Claude.
+
+'Well, but, Claude, Redgie wishes for a rebellion, like Sir
+Maurice's, for he says all the boys at his school would be one
+regiment, in green velvet coats, and white feathers in their hats.'
+
+'Indeed! and Redgie to be Field Marshal?'
+
+'No, he is to be Sir Reginald Mohun, a Knight of the Garter, and to
+ask the Queen to give William back the title of Baron of Beechcroft,
+and make papa a Duke.'
+
+'Well done! he is to take good care of the interests of the family.'
+
+'But it is not that that I should care about,' said Phyllis. 'I
+should like it better for the feeling in one's own self; I think all
+that fuss would rather spoil it--don't you, Claude?'
+
+'Indeed, I do; but Phyllis, if you only wish for that feeling, you
+need not look for dangers or rebellions to gain it.'
+
+'Oh! you mean the feeling that very good people indeed have--people
+like Harry--but that I shall never be.'
+
+'I hope you mean to try, though.'
+
+'I do try; I wish I was as good as Ada, but I am so naughty and so
+noisy that I do not know what to do. Every day when I say my prayers
+I think about being quiet, and not idling at my lessons, and
+sometimes I do stop in time, and behave better, but sometimes I
+forget, and I do not mind what I am about, and my voice gets loud,
+and I let the things tumble down and make a noise, and so it was
+yesterday.' Here she looked much disposed to cry.
+
+'No, no, we will not have any crying this evening,' said Claude. 'I
+do not think you did me much mischief, my head ached just as much
+before.'
+
+'That was a thing I wanted to ask you about: William says my crying
+loud is all habit, and that I must cure myself of it. How does he
+mean? Ought I to cry every day to practise doing it without
+roaring?'
+
+'Do you like to begin,' said Claude, laughing; 'shall I beat you or
+pinch you?'
+
+'Oh! it would make your head bad again,' said Phyllis; 'but I wish
+you would tell me what he means. When I cry I only think about what
+makes me unhappy.'
+
+'Try never to cry,' said Claude; 'I assure you it is not pleasant to
+hear you, even when I have no headache. If you wish to do anything
+right, you must learn self-control, and it will be a good beginning
+to check yourself when you are going to cry. Do not look melancholy
+now. Here comes the tea. Let me see how you will perform as tea-
+maker.'
+
+'I wish the evening would not go away so fast!'
+
+'And what are we to do after tea? You are queen of the evening.'
+
+'If you would but tell me a story, Claude.'
+
+They lingered long over the tea-table, talking and laughing, and when
+they had finished, Phyllis discovered with surprise that it was
+nearly bedtime. The promised story was not omitted, however, and
+Phyllis, sitting on a little footstool at her brother's feet, looked
+up eagerly for it.
+
+'Well, Phyl, I will tell you a true history that I heard from an
+officer who had served in the Peninsular War--the war in Spain, you
+know.'
+
+'Yes, with the French, who killed their king. Lily told me.'
+
+'And the Portuguese were helping us. Just after we had taken the
+town of Ciudad Rodrigo, some of the Portuguese soldiers went to find
+lodgings for themselves, and, entering a magazine of gunpowder, made
+a fire on the floor to dress their food. A most dangerous thing--do
+you know why?'
+
+'The book would be burnt,' said Phyllis.
+
+'What book, you wise child?'
+
+'The Magazine; I thought a magazine was one of the paper books that
+Maurice is always reading.'
+
+'Oh!' said Claude, laughing, 'a magazine is a store, and as many
+different things are stored in those books, they are called
+magazines. A powder magazine is a store of barrels of gunpowder.
+Now do you see why it was dangerous to light a fire?'
+
+'It blows up,' said Phyllis; 'that was the reason why Robinson Crusoe
+was afraid of the lightning.'
+
+'Right, Phyl, and therefore a candle is never allowed to be carried
+into a powder magazine, and even nailed shoes are never worn there,
+lest they should strike fire. One spark, lighting on a grain of
+gunpowder, scattered on the floor, might communicate with the rest,
+make it all explode, and spread destruction everywhere. Think in
+what fearful peril these reckless men had placed, not only
+themselves, but the whole town, and the army. An English officer
+chanced to discover them, and what do you think he did?'
+
+'Told all the people to run away.'
+
+'How could he have told every one, soldiers, inhabitants, and all?
+where could they have gone? No, he raised no alarm, but he ordered
+the Portuguese out of the building, and with the help of an English
+sergeant, he carried out, piece by piece, all the wood which they had
+set on fire. Now, imagine what that must have been. An explosion
+might happen at any moment, yet they had to walk steadily, slowly,
+and with the utmost caution, in and out of this place several times,
+lest one spark might fly back.'
+
+'Then they were saved?' cried Phyllis, breathlessly; 'and what became
+of them afterwards?'
+
+'They were both killed in battle, the officer, I believe, in Badajoz,
+and the sergeant sometime afterwards.'
+
+Phyllis gave a deep sigh, and sat silent for some minutes. Next,
+Claude began a droll Irish fairy-tale, which he told with spirit and
+humour, such as some people would have scorned to exert for the
+amusement of a mere child. Phyllis laughed, and was so happy, that
+when suddenly they heard the sound of wheels, she started up,
+wondering what brought the others home so soon, and was still more
+surprised when Claude told her it was past ten.
+
+'Oh dear! what will papa and Emily say to me for being up still? But
+I will stay now, it would not be fair to pretend to be gone to bed.'
+
+'Well said, honest Phyl; now for the news from the castle.'
+
+'Why, Claude,' said his eldest brother, entering, 'you are alive
+again.'
+
+'I doubt whether your evening could have been pleasanter than ours,'
+said Claude.
+
+'Phyl,' cried Ada, 'do you know, Mary Carrington's governess thought
+I was Florence's sister.'
+
+'You look so bright, Claude,' said Jane, 'I think you must have taken
+Cinderella's friend with the pumpkin to enliven you.'
+
+'My fairy was certainly sister to a Brownie,' said Claude, stroking
+Phyllis's hair.
+
+'Claude,' again began Ada, 'Miss Car--'
+
+'I wish Cinderella's fairy may be forthcoming the day of the ball,'
+said Lily, disconsolately.
+
+'And William is going after all,' said Emily.
+
+'Indeed! has the great Captain relented?'
+
+'Yes. Is it not good of him? Aunt Rotherwood is so much pleased
+that he consents to go entirely to oblige her.'
+
+'Sensible of his condescension,' said Claude. 'By the bye, what
+makes the Baron look so mischievous?'
+
+'Mischievous!' said Emily, looking round with a start, 'he is looking
+very comical, and so he has been all the evening.'
+
+'What? You thought mischievous was meant in Hannah's sense, when she
+complains of Master Reginald being very mischie-vi-ous.'
+
+Ada now succeeded in saying, 'The Carringtons' governess called me
+Lady Ada.'
+
+'How could she bring herself to utter so horrid a sound?' said
+Claude.
+
+'Ada is more cock-a-hoop than ever now,' said Reginald; 'she does not
+think Miss Weston good enough to speak to.'
+
+'But, Claude, she really did, she thought I was Florence's sister,
+and she said I was just like her.'
+
+'I wish you would hold your tongue, or go to bed,' said William, 'I
+have heard nothing but this nonsense all the way home.'
+
+While William was sending off Ada to bed, and Phyllis was departing
+with her, Lily told Claude that the Captain had been most agreeable.
+'I feared,' said she, 'that he would be too grand for this party, but
+he was particularly entertaining; Rotherwood was quite eclipsed.'
+
+'Rotherwood wants Claude to set him off,' said Mr. Mohun. 'Now,
+young ladies, reserve the rest of your adventures for the morning.'
+
+Adeline had full satisfaction in recounting the governess's mistake
+to the maids, and in hearing from Esther that it was no wonder, 'for
+that she looked more like a born lady than Lady Florence herself!'
+
+Lilias's fit of petulance about the ball had returned more strongly
+than ever; she partly excused herself to her own mind, by fancying
+she disliked the thought of the lonely evening she was to spend more
+than that of losing the pleasure of the ball. Mr. Mohun would be
+absent, conducting Maurice to a new school, and Claude and Reginald
+would also be gone.
+
+Her temper was affected in various ways; she wondered that William
+and Emily could like to go--she had thought that Miss Weston was
+wiser. Her daily occupations were irksome--she was cross to Phyllis.
+
+It made her very angry to be accused by the young brothers of making
+a fuss, and Claude's silence was equally offensive. It was upon
+principle that he said nothing. He knew it was nothing but a
+transient attack of silliness, of which she was herself ashamed; but
+he was sorry to leave her in that condition, and feared Lady
+Rotherwood's coming into the neighbourhood was doing her harm, as
+certainly as it was spoiling Ada. The ball day arrived, and it was
+marked by a great burst of fretfulness on the part of poor Lilias,
+occasioned by so small a matter as the being asked by Emily to write
+a letter to Eleanor. Emily was dressing to go to dine at Devereux
+Castle when she made the request.
+
+'What have I to say? I never could write a letter in my life, at
+least not to the Duenna--there is no news.'
+
+'About the boys going to school,' Emily suggested.
+
+'As if she did not know all about them as well as I can tell her.
+She does not care for my news, I see no one to hear gossip from. I
+thought you undertook all the formal correspondence, Emily?'
+
+'Do you call a letter to your sister formal correspondence!'
+
+'Everything is formal with her. All I can say is, that you and
+William are going to the ball, and she will say that is very silly.'
+
+'Eleanor once went to this Raynham ball; it was her first and last,'
+said Emily.
+
+'Yes, not long before they went to Italy; it will only make her
+melancholy to speak of it--I declare I cannot write.'
+
+'And I have no time,' said Emily, 'and you know how vexed she is if
+she does not get her letter every Saturday.'
+
+'All for the sake of punctuality, nothing else,' said Lily. 'I
+rather like to disappoint fidgety people--don't you, Emily?'
+
+'Well,' said Emily, 'only papa does not like that she should be
+disappointed.'
+
+'You might have written, if you had not dawdled away all the
+morning.'
+
+This was true, and it therefore stung Emily, who complained that Lily
+was very unkind. Lily defended herself sharply, and the dispute was
+growing vehement, when William happily cut it short by a summons to
+Emily to make haste.
+
+When they were gone Lily had time for reflection. Good-temper was so
+common a virtue, and generally cost her so little effort, that she
+took no pains to cultivate it, but she now felt she had lost all
+claim to be considered amiable under disappointment. It was too late
+to bear the privation with a good grace. She was heartily ashamed of
+having been so cross about a trifle, and ashamed of being
+discontented at Emily's having a pleasure in which she could not
+share. Would this have been the case a year ago? She was afraid to
+ask herself the question, and without going deep enough into the
+history of her own mind to make her sorrow and shame profitable, she
+tried to satisfy herself with a superficial compensation, by making
+herself particularly agreeable to her three younger sisters, and by
+writing a very long and entertaining letter to Eleanor.
+
+She met Emily with a cheerful face the next day, and listened with
+pleasure to her history of the ball; and when Mr. Mohun returned home
+he saw that the cloud had passed away. But, alas! Lilias neglected
+to take the only means of preventing its recurrence.
+
+The next week William departed. Before he went he gave his sisters
+great pleasure by desiring them to write to him, and not to let him
+fall into his ancient state of ignorance respecting the affairs of
+Beechcroft.
+
+'Mind,' was his farewell speech, 'I expect you to keep me au courant
+du jour. I will not be in the dark about your best friends and
+neighbours when I come home next July.'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI--VANITY AND VEXATION
+
+
+
+'And still I have to tell the same sad tale
+Of wasted energies, and idle dreams.'
+
+Devereux Castle now became the great resort of the Miss Mohuns. They
+were always sure of a welcome there. Lady Rotherwood liked to
+patronise them, and Florence was glad of their society.
+
+This was quite according to the wishes of Emily, who now had nothing
+left to desire, but that the style of dress suitable, in her opinion,
+to the granddaughter of the Marquis of Rotherwood, was more in
+accordance with the purse of the daughter of the Esquire of
+Beechcroft. It was no part of Emily's character to care for dress.
+She was at once too indolent and too sensible; she saw the vulgarity
+of finery, and only aimed at simplicity and elegance. During their
+girlhood Emily and Lilias had had no more concern with their clothes
+than with their food; Eleanor had carefully taught them plain
+needlework, and they had assisted in making more than one set of
+shirts; but they had nothing to do with the choice or fashion of
+their own apparel. They were always dressed alike, and in as plain
+and childish a manner as they could be, consistently with their
+station. On Eleanor's marriage a suitable allowance was given to
+each of them, in order that they might provide their own clothes, and
+until Rachel left them they easily kept themselves in very good trim.
+When Esther came Lily cheerfully took the trouble of her own small
+decorations, considering it as her payment for the pleasure of having
+Esther in the house. Emily, however, neglected the useful 'stitch in
+time,' till even 'nine' were unavailing. She soon found herself
+compelled to buy new ready-made articles, and expected Lilias to do
+the same. But Lilias demurred, for she was too wise to think it
+necessary to ruin herself in company with Emily, and thus the two
+sisters were no longer dressed alike. A constant fear tormented
+Emily lest she should disgrace Lady Rotherwood, or be considered by
+some stranger as merely a poor relation of the great people, and not
+as the daughter of the gentleman of the oldest family in the county.
+She was, therefore, anxious to be perfectly fashionable, and not to
+wear the same things too often, and in her disinterested desire to
+maintain the dignity of the family the allowance which she received
+at Christmas melted away in her hands.
+
+Lily, though exempt from this folly, was not in a satisfactory state
+of mind. She was drawn off from her duties by a kind of spell. It
+was not that she liked Florence's society better than her home
+pursuits.
+
+Florence was indeed a very sweet-tempered and engaging creature; but
+her mind was not equal to that of Lilias, and there was none of the
+pleasure of relying upon her, and looking up to her, which Lilias had
+learnt to enjoy in the company of her brother Claude, and of Alethea
+Weston. It was only that Lily's own mind had been turned away from
+her former occupations, and that she did not like to resume them.
+She had often promised herself to return to her really useful
+studies, and her positive duties, as soon as her brothers were gone;
+but day after day passed and nothing was done, though her visits to
+the cottages and her lessons to Phyllis were often neglected. Her
+calls at Devereux Castle took up many afternoons. Florence
+continually lent her amusing books, her aunt took great interest in
+her music, and she spent much time in practising. The mornings were
+cold and dark, and she could not rise early, and thus her time
+slipped away, she knew not how, uselessly and unsatisfactorily. The
+three younger ones were left more to themselves, and to the maids.
+Jane sought for amusement in village gossip, and the little ones,
+finding the nursery more agreeable than the deserted drawing-room,
+made Esther their companion.
+
+Mr. Mohun had, at this time, an unusual quantity of business on his
+hands; he saw that the girls were not going on well, but he had
+reasons for not interfering at present, and he looked forward to
+Eleanor's visit as the conclusion of their trial.
+
+'I cannot think,' said Marianne Weston one day to her sister, 'why
+Mr. Mohun comes here so often.'
+
+Alethea told her he had some business with their mamma, and she
+thought no more of the matter, till she was one day questioned by
+Jane. She was rather afraid of Jane, who, as she thought, disliked
+her, and wished to turn her into ridicule; so it was with no
+satisfaction that she found herself separated from the others in the
+course of a walk, and submitted to a cross-examination.
+
+Jane asked, in a mysterious manner, who had been at Broomhill that
+morning.
+
+'Mr. Mohun,' said Marianne.
+
+'What did he go there for?' said Jane.
+
+'Alethea says he has some business with mamma.'
+
+'Then you did not hear what it was?'
+
+'I was not in the room.'
+
+'Are you never there when he comes?'
+
+'Sometimes.'
+
+'And is Alethea there?'
+
+'Oh yes!'
+
+'His business must be with her too. Cannot you guess it?'
+
+'No,' said Marianne, looking amazed.
+
+'How can you be so slow?'
+
+'I am not sure that I would guess if I could,' said Marianne, 'for I
+do not think they wish me to know.'
+
+'Oh! nonsense, it is fine fun to find out secrets,' said Jane. 'You
+will know it at last, you may be sure, so there can be no harm in
+making it out beforehand, so as to have the pleasure of triumph when
+the wise people vouchsafe to admit you into their confidence; I am
+sure I know it all.'
+
+'Then please do not tell me, Jane, I ought not to hear it.'
+
+'Little Mrs. Propriety,' said Jane, 'you are already assuming all the
+dignity of my Aunt Marianne, and William's Aunt Marianne--oh! and of
+little Henry's Great-aunt Marianne. Now,' she added, laughing, 'can
+you guess the secret?'
+
+Marianne stood still in amazement for a moment, and then exclaimed,
+'Jane, Jane! you do not mean it, you are only trying to tease me.'
+
+'I am quite serious,' said Jane. 'You will see that I am right.'
+
+Here they were interrupted, and as soon as she returned from her walk
+Marianne, perplexed and amazed, went to her mother, and told her all
+that Jane had said.
+
+'How can she be so silly?' said Mrs. Weston.
+
+'Then it is all nonsense, as I thought,' said Marianne, joyfully. 'I
+should not like Alethea to marry an old man.'
+
+'Mr. Mohun is very unlikely to make himself ridiculous,' said Mrs.
+Weston. 'Do not say anything of it to Alethea; it would only make
+her uncomfortable.'
+
+'If it had been Captain Mohun, now --' Marianne stopped, and blushed,
+finding her speech unanswered.
+
+A few days after, Mr. Mohun overtook Marianne and her mother, as he
+was riding home from Raynham, and dismounting, led his horse, and
+walked on with them. Either not perceiving Marianne, or not caring
+whether she heard him, he said,
+
+'Has Miss Weston received the letter she expected?'
+
+'No,' said Mrs. Weston, 'she thinks, as there is no answer, the
+family must be gone abroad, and very probably they have taken Miss
+Aylmer with them; but she has written to another friend to ask about
+them.'
+
+'From all I hear,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I should prefer waiting to hear
+from her, before we make further inquiries; we shall not be ready
+before midsummer, as I should wish my eldest daughter to assist me in
+making this important decision.'
+
+'In that case,' said Mrs. Weston, 'there will be plenty of time to
+communicate with her. I can see some of the friends of the family
+when I go to London, for we must not leave Mr. Weston in solitude
+another spring.'
+
+'Perhaps I shall see you there,' said Mr. Mohun. 'I have some
+business in London, and I think I shall meet the Hawkesworths there
+in May or June.'
+
+After a little more conversation Mr. Mohun took his leave, and as
+soon as he had ridden on, Marianne said, 'Oh! mamma, I could not help
+hearing.'
+
+'My dear,' said Mrs. Weston, 'I know you may be trusted; but I should
+not have told you, as you may find such a secret embarrassing when
+you are with your young friends.'
+
+'And so they are to have a governess?'
+
+'Yes; and we are trying to find Miss Aylmer for them.'
+
+'Miss Aylmer! I am glad of it; how much Phyllis and Ada will like
+her!'
+
+'Yes, it will be very good for them; I wish I knew the Grants'
+direction.'
+
+'Well, I hope Jane will not question me any more; it will be very
+difficult to manage, now I know the truth.'
+
+But poor Marianne was not to escape. Jane was on the watch to find
+her alone, and as soon as an opportunity offered, she began:-
+
+'Well, auntie, any discoveries?'
+
+'Indeed, Jane, it is not right to fancy Mr. Mohun can do anything so
+absurd.'
+
+'That is as people may think,' said Jane.
+
+'I wish you would not talk in that way,' said Marianne.
+
+'Now, Marianne,' pursued the tormentor, 'if you can explain the
+mystery I will believe you, otherwise I know what to think.'
+
+'I am certain you are wrong, Jane; but I can tell you no more.'
+
+'Very well, my good aunt, I am satisfied.'
+
+Jane really almost persuaded herself that she was right, as she
+perceived that her father was always promoting intercourse with the
+Westons, and took pleasure in conversing with Alethea. She twisted
+everything into a confirmation of her idea; while the prospect of
+having Miss Weston for a stepmother increased her former dislike; but
+she kept her suspicions to herself for the present, triumphing in the
+idea that, when the time came, she could bring Marianne as a witness
+of her penetration.
+
+The intercourse between the elder Miss Mohuns and Miss Weston was,
+however, not so frequent as formerly; and Alethea herself could not
+but remark that, while Mr. Mohun seemed to desire to become more
+intimate, his daughters were more backward in making appointments
+with her. This was chiefly remarkable in Emily and Jane. Lilias was
+the same in openness, earnestness, and affection; but there was
+either a languor about her spirits or they were too much excited, and
+her talk was more of novels, and less of poor children than formerly.
+The constant visits to Devereux Castle prevented Emily and Lilias
+from being as often as before at church, and thus they lost many
+walks and talks that they used to enjoy in the way home. Marianne
+began to grow indignant, especially on one occasion, when Emily and
+Lily went out for a drive with Lady Rotherwood, forgetting that they
+had engaged to take a walk with the Westons that afternoon.
+
+'It is really a great deal too bad,' said she to Alethea; 'it is
+exactly what we have read of in books about grandeur making people
+cast off their old friends.'
+
+'Do not be unfair, Marianne,' said Alethea. 'Lady Florence has a
+better right to--'
+
+'Better right!' exclaimed Marianne. 'What, because she is a
+marquis's daughter?'
+
+'Because she is their cousin.'
+
+'I do not believe Lilias really cares for her half as much as for
+you,' said Marianne. 'It is all because they are fine people.'
+
+'Nay, Marianne, if our cousins were to come into this neighbourhood,
+we should not be as dependent on the Mohuns as we now feel.'
+
+'I hope we should not break our engagements with them.'
+
+'Perhaps they could not help it. When their aunt came to fetch them,
+knowing how seldom they can have the carriage, it would have been
+scarcely civil to say that they had rather take a walk with people
+they can see any day.'
+
+'Last year Lilias would have let Emily go by herself,' said Marianne.
+'Alethea, they are all different since that Lady Rotherwood came--all
+except Phyl. Ada is a great deal more conceited than she was when
+she was staying here; she pulls out her curls, and looks in the glass
+much more, and she is always talking about some one having taken her
+for Lady Florence's sister. And, Alethea, just fancy, she does not
+like me to go through a gate before her, because she says she has
+precedence!'
+
+Alethea was much amused, but she would not let Marianne condemn the
+whole family for Ada's folly. 'It will all come right,' said she,
+'let us be patient and good-humoured, and nothing can be really
+wrong.'
+
+Though Alethea made the best of it to her sister, she could not but
+feel hurt, and would have been much more so if her temper had been
+jealous or sentimental. Almost in spite of herself she had bestowed
+upon Lilias no small share of her affection, and she would have been
+more pained by her neglect if she had not partaken of that spirit
+which 'thinketh no evil, but beareth all things, believeth all
+things, hopeth all things, and endureth all things.'
+
+Lilias was not satisfied with either herself, her home, her sisters,
+or her school; she was far from being the fresh, happy creature that
+she had been the year before. She had seen the fallacy of her
+principle of love, but in her self-willed adherence to it she had
+lost the strong sense and habit of duty which had once ruled her; and
+in a vague and restless frame of mind, she merely sought from day to
+day for pleasure and idle occupation. Lent came, but she was not
+roused, she was only more uncomfortable when she saw the Rector, or
+Alethea, or went to church. Alethea's unfailing gentleness she felt
+almost as a rebuke; and Mr. Devereux, though always kind and good-
+natured, had ceased to speak to her of those small village matters in
+which she used to be prime counsellor.
+
+The school became a burthen instead of a delight, and her attendance
+there a fatigue. On going in one Sunday morning, very late, she
+found Alethea teaching her class as well as her own. With a look of
+vexation she inquired, as she took her place, if it was so very late,
+and on the way to church she said again, 'I thought I was quite in
+time; I do not like to hurry the children--the distant ones have not
+time to come. It was only half-past nine.'
+
+'Oh, Lilias,' said Marianne, 'it was twenty minutes to ten, I know,
+for I had just looked at the clock.'
+
+'That clock is always too fast,' said Lily.
+
+The next Sunday was very cold, and Lilias did not feel at all
+disposed to leave the fire when the others prepared to go to the
+afternoon school.
+
+'Is it time?' said she. 'I was chilled at church, and my feet are
+still like ice; I will follow you in five minutes.'
+
+Alethea went, and Lilias lingered by the fire. Mrs. Weston once
+asked her if she knew how late it was; but still she waited, until
+she was startled by the sound of the bell for evening service. As
+she went to church with Mrs. Weston and Emily she met Jane, who told
+her that her class had been unemployed all the afternoon.
+
+'I would have taken them,' said she, 'but that Robert does not like
+me to teach the great girls, and I do think Alethea might have heard
+them.'
+
+'It is very provoking,' said Lily, pettishly; 'I thought I might
+depend--' She turned and saw Miss Weston close to her. 'Oh,
+Alethea!' said she, 'I thought you would have heard those girls.'
+
+'I thought you were coming,' said Alethea.
+
+'So I was, but I am sure the bell rang too early. I do wish you had
+taken them, Alethea.'
+
+'I am sorry you are vexed,' said Alethea, simply.
+
+'What makes you think I am vexed? I only thought you liked hearing
+my class.'
+
+They were by this time at the church door, and as they entered
+Alethea blamed herself for feeling grieved, and Lily awoke to a sense
+of her unreasonableness. She longed to tell Alethea how sorry she
+felt, but she had no opportunity, and she resolved to go to Broomhill
+the next day to make her confession. In the night, however, snow
+began to fall, and the morning showed the February scene of thawing
+snow and pouring rain. Going out was impossible, both on that day
+and the next. Wednesday dawned fair and bright; but just after
+breakfast Lily received a little note, with the intelligence that Mr.
+Weston had arrived at Broomhill on Monday evening, and with his wife
+and daughters was to set off that very day to make a visit to some
+friends on the way to London. Had not the weather been so bad,
+Alethea said she should have come to take leave of her New Court
+friends on Tuesday, but she could now only send this note to tell
+them how sorry she was to go without seeing them, and to beg Emily to
+send back a piece of music which she had lent to her. The messenger
+was Faith Longley, who was to accompany them, and who now was going
+home to take leave of her mother, and would call again for the music
+in a quarter of an hour. Lily ran to ask her when they were to go.
+'At eleven,' was the answer; and Lily telling her she need not call
+again, as she herself would bring the music, went to look for it.
+High and low did she seek, and so did Jane, but it was not to be
+found in any nook, likely or unlikely; and when at last Lily, in
+despair, gave up the attempt to find it, it was already a quarter to
+eleven. Emily sent many apologies and civil messages, and Lily set
+out at a rapid pace to walk to Broomhill by the road, for the thaw
+had rendered the fields impassable. Fast as she walked, she was too
+late. She had the mortification of seeing the carriage turn out at
+the gates, and take the Raynham road; she was not even seen, nor had
+she a wave of the hand, or a smile to comfort her.
+
+Almost crying with vexation, she walked home, and sat down to write
+to Alethea, but, alas! she did not know where to direct a letter.
+Bitterly did she repent of the burst of ill-temper which had stained
+her last meeting with her friend, and she was scarcely comforted even
+by the long and affectionate letter which she received a week after
+their departure. Kindness from her was now forgiveness; never did
+she so strongly feel Florence's inferiority; and she wondered at
+herself for having sought her society so much as to neglect her
+patient and superior friend. She became careless and indifferent to
+Florence, and yet she went on in her former course, following Emily,
+and fancying that nothing at Beechcroft could interest her in the
+absence of her dear Alethea Weston.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII: LITTLE AGNES
+
+
+
+'O guide us when our faithless hearts
+ From Thee would start aloof,
+Where patience her sweet skill imparts,
+ Beneath some cottage roof.'
+
+Palm Sunday brought Lily many regrets. It was the day of the school
+prize giving, and she reflected with shame, how much less she knew
+about the children than last year, and how little they owed to her;
+she feared to think of the approach of Easter Day, a dread which she
+had never felt before, and which she knew to be a very bad sign; but
+her regret was not repentance--she talked, and laughed, and tried to
+feel at ease. Agnes Eden's happy face was the most pleasant sight on
+that day. The little girl received a Bible, and as it was given to
+her her pale face was coloured with bright pink, her blue eyes
+lighted up, her smile was radiant with the beauty of innocence, but
+Lily could not look at her without self-reproach. She resolved to
+make up for her former neglect by double kindness, and determined
+that, at any rate, Passion Week should be properly spent--she would
+not once miss going to church.
+
+But on Monday, when Emily proposed to ride to Devereux Castle, she
+assented, only saying that they would return for evening service.
+She took care to remind her sister when it was time to set out
+homewards; but Emily was, as usual, so long in taking her leave that
+it was too late to think of going to church when they set off.
+
+About two miles from Beechcroft Lily saw a little figure in a gray
+cloak trudging steadily along the road, and as she came nearer she
+recognised Kezia Grey. She stopped and asked the child what brought
+her so far from home.
+
+'I am going for the doctor, Miss,' said the child.
+
+'Is your mother worse?' asked Lily.
+
+'Mother is pretty well,' said Kezia; 'but it is for Agnes Eden, Miss-
+-she is terrible bad.'
+
+'Poor little Agnes!' exclaimed Lily. 'Why, she was at school
+yesterday.'
+
+'Yes, Miss, but she was taken bad last night.'
+
+After a moment's consultation between the sisters, Kezia was told
+that she might return home, and the servant who accompanied the Miss
+Mohuns was sent to Raynham for the doctor. The next afternoon Lily
+was just setting out to inquire for Agnes when Lord Rotherwood
+arrived at the New Court with his sister. He wanted to show Florence
+some of his favourite haunts at Beechcroft, and had brought her to
+join his cousins in their walk. A very pleasant expedition they
+made, but it led them so far from home that the church bell was heard
+pealing over the woods far in the distance. Lily could not go to
+Mrs. Eden's cottage, because she did not know the nature of Agnes's
+complaint, and her aunt could not bear that Florence should go into
+any house where there was illness. In the course of the walk,
+however, she met Kezia, on her way to the New Court, to ask for a
+blister for Agnes, the doctor having advised Mrs. Eden to apply to
+the Miss Mohuns for one, as it was wanted quickly, and it was too far
+to send to Raynham. Lily promised to send the blister as soon as
+possible, and desired the little messenger to return home, where she
+was much wanted, to help her mother, who had a baby of less than a
+week old.
+
+Alas! in the mirth and amusement of the evening Lily entirely forgot
+the blister, until just as she went to bed, when she made one of her
+feeble resolutions to take it, or send it early in the morning. She
+only awoke just in time to be ready for breakfast, went downstairs
+without one thought of the sick child, and never recollected her,
+until at church, just before the Litany, she heard these words: 'The
+prayers of the congregation are desired for Agnes Eden.'
+
+She felt as if she had been shot, and scarcely knew where she was for
+several moments. On coming out of church, she stood almost in a
+dream, while Emily and Jane were talking to the Rector, who told them
+how very ill the child was, and how little hope there was of her
+recovery. He took leave of them, and Lily walked home, scarcely
+hearing the soothing words with which Emily strove to comfort her.
+The meaning passed away mournfully; Lily sat over the fire without
+speaking, and without attempting to do anything. In the afternoon
+rain came on; but Lily, too unhappy not to be restless, put on her
+bonnet and cloak, and went out.
+
+She walked quickly up the hill, and entered the field where the
+cottage stood. There she paused. She did not dare to knock at the
+cottage door; she could not bear to speak to Mrs. Eden; she dreaded
+the sight of Mrs. Grey or Kezia, and she gazed wistfully at the
+house, longing, yet fearing, to know what was passing within it. She
+wandered up and down the field, and at last was trying to make up her
+mind to return home, when she heard footsteps behind her, and
+turning, saw Mr. Devereux advancing along the path at the other end
+of the field.
+
+'Have you been to inquire for Agnes?' said he.
+
+'I could not. I long to know, but I cannot bear to ask, I cannot
+venture in.'
+
+'Do you like to go in with me?' said her cousin. 'I do not think you
+will see anything dreadful.'
+
+'Thank you,' said Lily, 'I would give anything to know about her.'
+
+'How you tremble! but you need not be afraid.'
+
+He knocked at the door, but there was no answer; he opened it, and
+going to the foot of the stairs, gently called Mrs. Eden, who came
+down calm and quiet as ever, though very pale.
+
+'How is she?'
+
+'No better, sir, thank you, light-headed still.'
+
+'Oh! Mrs. Eden, I am so sorry,' sobbed Lily. 'Oh! can you forgive
+me?'
+
+'Pray do not take on so, Miss,' said Mrs. Eden. 'You have always
+been a very kind friend to her, Miss Lilias. Do not take on so,
+Miss. If it is His will, nothing could have made any difference.'
+
+Lily was going to speak again, but Mr. Devereux stopped her, saying,
+'We must not keep Mrs. Eden from her, Lily.'
+
+'Thank you, sir, her aunt is with her,' said Mrs. Eden, 'and no one
+is any good there now, she does not know any one. Will you walk up
+and see her, sir? will you walk up, Miss Lilias?'
+
+Lily silently followed her cousin up the narrow stairs to the upper
+room, where, in the white-curtained bed, lay the little child,
+tossing about and moaning, her cheeks flushed with fever, and her
+blue eyes wide open, but unconscious. A woman, whom Lily did not at
+first perceive to be Mrs. Naylor, rose and courtsied on their
+entrance. Agnes's new Bible was beside her, and her mother told them
+that she was not easy if it was out of sight for an instant.
+
+At this moment Agnes called out, 'Mother,' and Mrs. Eden bent down to
+her, but she only repeated, 'Mother' two or three times, and then
+began talking:
+
+'Kissy, I want my bag--where is my thimble--no, not that I can't
+remember--my catechism-book--my godfathers and godmothers in my
+baptism, wherein I was made a member--my Christian name--my name, it
+is my Christian name; no, that is not it -
+
+
+"It is a name by which I am
+ Writ in the hook of life,
+And here below a charm to keep,
+ Unharmed by sin and strife;
+As often as my name I hear,
+ I hear my Saviour's voice."'
+
+
+Then she began the Creed, but, breaking off, exclaimed, 'Where is my
+Bible, mother, I shall read it to-morrow--read that pretty verse
+about "I am the good Shepherd--the Lord is my Shepherd, therefore can
+I lack nothing--yea, though I walk through the valley of the shadow
+of death, I will fear no evil, for Thou art within me."
+
+
+"I now am of that little flock
+ Which Christ doth call His own,
+For all His sheep He knows by name,
+ And He of them is known."'
+
+
+'Let us call upon your good Shepherd, Agnes,' said the pastor, and
+the child turned her face towards him as if she understood him.
+Kneeling down, he repeated the Lord's Prayer, and the feeble voice
+followed his. He then read the prayer for a sick child, and left the
+room, for he saw that Lily would be quite overcome if she remained
+there any longer. Mrs. Eden followed them downstairs, and again
+stung poor Lily to the heart by thanks for all her kindness.
+
+They then left the house of mourning; Lily trembled violently, and
+clung to her cousin's arm for support. Her tears streamed fast, but
+her sobs were checked by awe at Mrs. Eden's calmness. She felt as if
+she had been among the angels.
+
+'How pale you are!' said her cousin, 'I would not have taken you
+there if I thought it would overset you so much. Come into Mrs.
+Grey's, and sit down and recover a little.'
+
+'No, no, do not let me see any one,' said Lily. 'Oh! that dear
+child! Robert, let me tell you the worst, for your kindness is more
+than I can bear. I promised Agnes a blister and forgot it!'
+
+She could say no more for some minutes, but her cousin did not speak.
+Recovering her voice, she added, 'Only speak to me, Robert.'
+
+'I am very sorry for you,' answered he, in a kind tone.
+
+'But tell me, what shall I do?'
+
+'What to do, you ask,' said the Rector; 'I am not sure that I know
+what you mean. If your neglect has added to her sufferings, you
+cannot remove them; and I would not add to your sorrow unless you
+wished me to do so for your good.'
+
+'I do not see how I could be more unhappy than I am now,' said Lily.
+
+'I think if you wish to turn your grief to good account you must go a
+little deeper than this omission.'
+
+'You mean that it is a result of general carelessness,' said Lily; 'I
+know I have been in an odd idle way for some time; I have often
+resolved, but I seem to have no power over myself.'
+
+'May I ask you one question, Lily? How have you been spending this
+Lent?'
+
+'Robert, you are right,' cried Lily; 'you may well ask. I know I
+have not gone to church properly, but how could you guess the
+terrible way in which I have been indulging myself, and excusing
+myself every unpleasant duty that came in my way? That was the very
+reason of this dreadful neglect; well do I deserve to be miserable at
+Easter, the proper time for joy. Oh! how different it will be.'
+
+'It will be, I hope, an Easter marked by repentance and amendment,'
+said the Rector.
+
+'No, Robert, do not begin to be kind to me yet, you do not know how
+very bad I have been,' said Lily; 'it all began from just after
+Eleanor's wedding. A mad notion came into my head and laid hold of
+me. I fancied Eleanor stern, and cold, and unlovable; I was
+ingratitude itself. I made a foolish theory, that regard for duty
+makes people cold and stern, and that feeling, which I confused with
+Christian love, was all that was worth having, and the more Claude
+tried to cure me, the more obstinate I grew; I drew Emily over to my
+side, and we set our follies above everything. Justified ourselves
+for idling, neglecting the children, indulging ourselves, calling it
+love, and so it was, self-love. So my temper has been spoiling, and
+my mind getting worse and worse, ever since we lost Eleanor. At last
+different things showed me the fallacy of my principle, but then I do
+believe I was beyond my own management. I felt wrong, and could not
+mend, and went on recklessly. You know but too well what mischief I
+have done in the village, but you can never know what harm I have
+done at home. I have seen more and more that I was going on badly,
+but a sleep, a spell was upon me.'
+
+'Perhaps the pain you now feel may be the means of breaking the
+spell.'
+
+'But is it not enough to drive me mad to think that improvement in me
+should be bought at such a price--the widow's only child?'
+
+'You forget that the loss is a blessing to her.'
+
+'Still I may pray that my punishment may not be through them,' said
+Lily.
+
+'Surely,' was the answer, 'it is grievous to see that dear child cut
+off; and her patient mother left desolate--yet how much more grievous
+it would be to see that spotless innocence defiled.'
+
+'If it was to fall on any one,' said Lilias, 'I should be thankful
+that it is on one so fit to die.'
+
+The church bell began to ring, and they quickened their steps in
+silence. Presently Lily said, 'Tell me of something to do, Robert,
+something that may be a pledge that my sorrow is not a passing
+shower, something unnecessary, but disagreeable, which may keep me in
+remembrance that my Lent was not one of self-denial.'
+
+'You must be able to find more opportunities of self-denial than I
+can devise,' said her cousin.
+
+'Of course,' said Lily; 'but some one thing, some punishment.'
+
+'I will answer you to-morrow,' said Mr. Devereux.
+
+'One thing more,' said Lily, looking down; 'after this great fall,
+ought I to come to next Sunday's feast? I would turn away if you
+thought fit.'
+
+'Lily, you can best judge,' said the Rector, kindly. 'I should think
+that you were now in a humble, contrite frame, and therefore better
+prepared than when self-confident.'
+
+'How many times! how shall I think of them! but I will,' said Lily;
+'and Robert, will you think of me when you say the Absolution now and
+next Sunday at the altar?'
+
+They were by this time at the church-porch. As Mr. Devereux
+uncovered his head, he turned to Lilias, and said in a low tone, 'God
+bless you, Lilias, and grant you true repentance and pardon.'
+
+Early the next morning the toll of the passing-bell informed Lily
+that the little lamb had been gathered into the heavenly fold.
+
+When she took her place in church she found in her Prayer-book a slip
+of paper in the handwriting of her cousin. It was thus: 'You had
+better find out in which duty you have most failed, and let the
+fulfilment of that be your proof of self-denial. R. D.'
+
+Afterwards Lily learnt that Agnes had been sensible for a short time
+before her peaceful death. She had spoken much of her baptism, had
+begged to be buried next to a little sister of Kezia's, and asked her
+mother to give her new Bible to Kezia.
+
+It was not till Sunday that Lilias felt as if she could ever be
+comforted. Her heart was indeed ready to break as she walked at the
+head of the school children behind the white-covered coffin, and she
+felt as if she did not deserve to dwell upon the child's present
+happiness; but afterwards she was relieved by joining in prayer for
+the pardon of our sins and negligences, and she felt as if she was
+forgiven, at least by man, when she joined with Mrs. Eden in the
+appointed feast of Easter Day.
+
+Mrs. Naylor was at church on that and several following Sundays; but
+though her husband now showed every kindness to his sister, he still
+obstinately refused to be reconciled to Mr. Devereux.
+
+For many weeks poor little Kezia looked very unhappy. Her blithe
+smiles were gone, her eyes filled with tears whenever she was
+reminded of her friend, she walked to school alone, she did not join
+the sports of the other children, but she kept close to the side of
+Mrs. Eden, and seemed to have no pleasure but with her, or in nursing
+her little sister, who, two Sundays after the funeral, was christened
+by the name of Agnes.
+
+It was agreed by Mr. Mohun and Lilias that the grave of the little
+girl should be marked by a stone cross, thus inscribed
+
+'AGNES EDEN,
+April 8th, 1846,
+Aged 7 years.
+"He shall gather the lambs in His arms."'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII: DOUBLE, DOUBLE TOIL AND TROUBLE
+
+
+
+'Truly the tender mercies of the weak,
+As of the wicked, are but cruel.'
+
+And how did Lilias show that she had been truly benefited by her
+sorrows? Did she fall back into her habits of self-indulgence, or
+did she run into ill-directed activity, selfish as her indolence,
+because only gratifying the passion of the moment?
+
+Those who lived with her saw but little change; kind-hearted and
+generous she had ever been, and many had been her good impulses, so
+that while she daily became more steady in well-doing, and exerting
+herself on principle, no one remarked it, and no one entered into the
+struggles which it cost her to tame her impetuosity, or force herself
+to do what was disagreeable to herself, and might offend Emily.
+
+However, Emily could forgive a great deal when she found that Lily
+was ready to take any part of the business of the household and
+schoolroom, which she chose to impose upon her, without the least
+objection, yet to leave her to assume as much of the credit of
+managing as she chose--to have no will or way of her own, and to help
+her to keep her wardrobe in order.
+
+The schoolroom was just now more of a labour than had ever been the
+case, at least to one who, like Lilias, if she did a thing at all,
+would not be satisfied with half doing it. Phyllis was not altered,
+except that she cried less, and had in a great measure cured herself
+of dawdling habits and tricks, by her honest efforts to obey well-
+remembered orders of Eleanor's; but still her slowness and dulness
+were trying to her teachers, and Lily had often to reproach herself
+for being angry with her 'when she was doing her best.'
+
+But Adeline was Lily's principal trouble; there was a change in her,
+for which her sister could not account. Last year, when Eleanor left
+them, Ada was a sweet-tempered, affectionate child, docile, gentle,
+and, excepting a little occasional affectation and carelessness, very
+free from faults; but now her attention could hardly be commanded for
+five minutes together; she had lost the habit of ready and implicit
+obedience, was petulant when reproved, and was far more eager to
+attract notice from strangers--more conceited, and, therefore, more
+affected, and, worse than all, Lily sometimes thought she perceived a
+little slyness, though she was never able to prove any one instance
+completely to herself, much less to bring one before her father.
+Thus, if Ada had done any mischief, she would indeed confess it on
+being examined; but when asked why she had not told of it directly,
+would say she had forgotten; she would avail herself of Phyllis's
+assistance in her lessons without acknowledging it, and Lilias found
+it was by no means safe to leave the Key to the French Exercises
+alone in the room with her.
+
+Emily's mismanagement had fostered Ada's carelessness and
+inattention. Lady Rotherwood's injudicious caresses helped to make
+her more affected; other faults had grown up for want of sufficient
+control, but this last was principally Esther's work. Esther had
+done well at school; she liked learning, was stimulated by notice,
+was really attached to Lilias, and tried to deserve her goodwill; but
+her training at school and at home were so different, that her
+conduct was, even at the best, far too much of eye-service, and she
+had very little idea of real truth and sincerity.
+
+On first coming to the New Court she flattered the children, because
+she did not know how to talk to them otherwise, and afterwards,
+because she found that Miss Ada's affections were to be gained by
+praise. Then, in her ignorant good-nature, she had no scruples about
+concealing mischief which the children had done, or procuring for Ada
+little forbidden indulgences on her promise of secrecy, a promise
+which Phyllis would not give, thus putting a stop to all those in
+which she would have participated. It was no wonder that Ada,
+sometimes helping Esther to deceive, sometimes deceived by her,
+should have learnt the same kind of cunning, and ceased to think it a
+matter of course to be true and just in all her dealings.
+
+But how was it that Phyllis remained the same 'honest Phyl' that she
+had ever been, not one word savouring of aught but strict truth
+having ever crossed her lips, her thoughts and deeds full of
+guileless simplicity? She met with the same temptations, the same
+neglect, the same bad example, as her sister; why had they no effect
+upon her? In the first place, flattery could not touch her, it was
+like water on a duck's back, she did not know that it was flattery,
+but so thoroughly humble was her mind that no words of Esther's would
+make her believe herself beautiful, agreeable, or clever. Yet she
+never found out that Esther over-praised her sister; she admired Ada
+so much that she never suspected that any commendation of her was
+more than she deserved. Again, Phyllis never thought of making
+herself appear to advantage, and her humility saved her from the
+habit of concealing small faults, for which she expected no
+punishment; and, when seriously to blame, punishment seemed so
+natural a consequence, that she never thought of avoiding it,
+otherwise than by expressing sorrow for her fault. She was
+uninfected by Esther's deceit, though she never suspected any want of
+truth; her singleness of mind was a shield from all evil; she knew
+she was no favourite in the nursery, but she never expected to be
+liked as much as Ada, her pride and glory. In the meantime Emily
+went on contriving opportunities and excuses for spending her time at
+Devereux Castle, letting everything fall into Lily's hands,
+everything that she had so eagerly undertaken little more than a year
+ago. And now all was confusion; the excellent order in which Eleanor
+had left the household affairs was quite destroyed. Attention to the
+storeroom was one of the ways in which Lilias thought that she could
+best follow the advice of Mr. Devereux, since Eleanor had always
+taught that great exactness in this point was most necessary. Great
+disorder now, however, prevailed there, and she found that her only
+chance of rectifying it was to measure everything she found there,
+and to beg Emily to allow her to keep the key; for, when several
+persons went to the storeroom, no one ever knew what was given out,
+and she was sure that the sweet things diminished much faster than
+they ought to do; but her sister treated the proposal as an attempt
+to deprive her of her dignity, and she was silenced.
+
+She was up almost with the light, to despatch whatever household
+affairs could be settled without Emily, before the time came for the
+children's lessons; many hours were spent on these, while she was
+continually harassed by Phyllis's dulness, Ada's inattention, and the
+interruption of work to do for Emily, and often was she baffled by
+interference from Jane or Emily. She was conscious of her unfitness
+to teach the children, and often saw that her impatience, ignorance,
+and inefficiency, were doing mischief; but much as this pained her,
+she could not speak to her father without compromising her sister,
+and to argue with Emily herself was quite in vain. Emily had taken
+up the principle of love, and defended herself with it on every
+occasion, so that poor Lily was continually punished by having her
+past follies quoted against herself.
+
+Each day Emily grew more selfish and indolent; now that Lily was
+willing to supply all that she neglected, and to do all that she
+asked, she proved how tyrannical the weak can be.
+
+The whole of her quarter's allowance was spent in dress, and Lily
+soon found that the only chance of keeping her out of debt was to
+spend her own time and labour in her behalf; and what an exertion of
+patience and kindness this required can hardly be imagined. Emily
+did indeed reward her skill with affectionate thanks and kind
+praises, but she interfered with her sleep and exercise, by her want
+of consideration, and hardened herself more and more in her apathetic
+selfishness.
+
+Some weeks after Easter Lilias was arranging some books on a shelf in
+the schoolroom, when she met with a crumpled piece of music-paper,
+squeezed in behind the books. It proved to be Miss Weston's lost
+song, creased, torn, dust-stained, and spoiled; she carried it to
+Emily, who decided that nothing could be done but to copy it for
+Alethea, and apologise for the disaster. Framing apologies was more
+in Emily's way than copying music; and the former task, therefore,
+devolved upon Lily, and occupied her all one afternoon, when she
+ought to have been seeking a cure for the headache in the fresh air.
+It was no cure to find the name of Emma Weston in the corner, and to
+perceive how great and irreparable the loss of the paper was to her
+friend. The thought of all her wrongs towards Alethea, caused more
+than one large tear to fall, to blot the heads of her crotchets and
+quavers, and thus give her all her work to do over again.
+
+The letter that she wrote was so melancholy and repentant, that it
+gave great pain to her kind friend, who thought illness alone could
+account for the dejection apparent in the general tone of all her
+expressions. In answer, she sent a very affectionate consoling
+letter, begging Lily to think no more of the matter; and though she
+had too much regard for truth to say that she had not been grieved by
+the loss of Emma's writing, she added that Lily's distress gave her
+far more pain, and that her copy would have great value in her eyes.
+
+The beginning of June now arrived, and brought with it the time for
+the return of Claude and Lord Rotherwood.
+
+The Marquis's carriage met him at Raynham, and he set down Claude at
+New Court, on his way to Hetherington, just coming in to exchange a
+hurried greeting with the young ladies.
+
+Their attention was principally taken up by their brother.
+
+'Claude, how well you look! How fat you are!' was their exclamation.
+
+'Is not he?' said Lord Rotherwood. 'I am quite proud of him. Not
+one headache since he went. He will have no excuse for not dancing
+the polka.'
+
+'I do not return the compliment to you, Lily,' said Claude, looking
+anxiously at his sister. 'What is the matter with you? Have you
+been ill?'
+
+'Oh, no! not at all!' said Lily, smiling.
+
+'I am sure there is enough to make any one ill,' said Emily, in her
+deplorable tone; 'I thought this poor parish had had its share of
+illness, with the scarlet fever, and now it has turned to a horrible
+typhus fever.'
+
+'Indeed!' said Claude. 'Where? Who?'
+
+'Oh! the Naylors, and the Rays, and the Walls. John Ray died this
+morning, and they do not think that Tom Naylor will live.'
+
+'Well,' interrupted Lord Rotherwood, 'I shall not stop to hear any
+more of this chapter of accidents. I am off, but mind, remember the
+30th, and do not any of you frighten yourselves into the fever.'
+
+He went, and Lily now spoke. 'There is one thing in all this,
+Claude, that is matter of joy, Tom Naylor has sent for Robert.'
+
+'Then, Lily, I do most heartily congratulate you.'
+
+'I hope things may go better,' said Lily, with tears in her eyes.
+'The poor baby is with its grandmother. Mrs. Naylor is ill too, and
+every one is so afraid of the fever that nobody goes near them but
+Robert, and Mrs. Eden, and old Dame Martin. Robert says Naylor is in
+a satisfactory frame--determined on having the baby christened--but,
+oh! I am afraid the christening is to be bought by something
+terrible.'
+
+'I do not think those fevers are often very infectious,' said Claude.
+
+'So papa says,' replied Emily; 'but Robert looks very ill. He is
+wearing himself out with sitting up. Making himself nurse as well as
+everything else.'
+
+This was very distressing, but still Claude scarcely thought it
+accounted for the change that had taken place in Lilias. Her cheek
+was pale, her eye heavy, her voice had lost its merry tone; Claude
+knew that she had had much to grieve her, but he was as yet far from
+suspecting how she was overworked and harassed. He spoke of
+Eleanor's return, and she did not brighten; she smiled sadly at his
+attempts to cheer her, and he became more and more anxious about her.
+He was not long in discovering what was the matter.
+
+The second day after his return Robert told them at the churchyard
+gate that Tom Naylor was beginning to mend, and this seemed to be a
+great comfort to Lily, who walked home with a blither step than
+usual. Claude betook himself to the study, and saw no more of his
+sisters till two o'clock, when Lily appeared, with the languid,
+dejected look which she had lately worn, and seemed to find it quite
+an effort to keep the tears out of her eyes. Ada and Phyllis were in
+very high spirits, because they were going to Raynham with Emily and
+Jane, and at every speech of Ada's Lily looked more grieved. After
+the Raynham party were gone Claude began to look for Lily. He found
+her in her room, an evening dress spread on the bed, a roll of ribbon
+in one hand, and with the other supporting her forehead, while tears
+were slowly rolling down her cheeks.
+
+'Lily, my dear, what is the matter?'
+
+'Oh! nothing, nothing, Claude,' said she, quickly.
+
+'Nothing! no, that is not true. Tell me, Lily. You have been
+disconsolate ever since I came home, and I will not let it go on so.
+No answer? Then am I to suppose that these new pearlins are the
+cause of her sorrow? Come, Lily, be like yourself, and speak. More
+tears! Here, drink this water, be yourself again, or I shall be
+angry and vexed. Now then, that is right: make an effort, and tell
+me.'
+
+'There is nothing to tell,' said Lily; 'only you are very kind--I do
+not know what is the matter with me--only I have been very foolish of
+late--and everything makes me cry.'
+
+'My poor child, I knew you had not been well. They do not know how
+to take care of you, Lily, and I shall take you in hand. I am going
+to order the horses, and we will have a gallop over the Downs, and
+put a little colour into your cheeks.'
+
+'No, no, thank you, Claude, I cannot come, indeed I cannot, I have
+this work, which must be done to-day.'
+
+'At work at your finery instead of coming out! You must be altered,
+indeed, Lily.'
+
+'It is not for myself,' said Lily, 'but I promised Emily she should
+have it ready to wear to-morrow.'
+
+'Emily, oh? So she is making a slave of you?'
+
+'No, no, it was a voluntary promise. She does not care about it,
+only she would be disappointed, and I have promised.'
+
+'I hate promises!' said Claude. 'Well, what must be, must be, so I
+will resign myself to this promise of yours, only do not make such
+another. Well, but that was not all; you were not crying about that
+fine green thing, were you?'
+
+'Oh, no!' said Lily, smiling, as now she could smile again.
+
+'What then? I will know, Lily.'
+
+'I was only vexed at something about the children.'
+
+'Then what was it?'
+
+'It was only that Ada was idle at her lessons; I told her to learn a
+verb as a punishment, she went to Emily, and, somehow or other, Emily
+did not find out the exact facts, excused her, and took her to
+Raynham. I was vexed, because I am sure it does Ada harm, and Emily
+did not understand what I said afterwards; I am sure she thought me
+unjust.'
+
+'How came she not to be present?'
+
+'Emily does not often sit in the schoolroom in the morning, since she
+has been about that large drawing.'
+
+'So you are governess as well as ladies'-maid, are you, Lily? What
+else? Housekeeper, I suppose, as I see you have all the weekly bills
+on your desk. Why, Lily, this is perfectly philanthropic of you.
+You are exemplifying the rule of love in a majestic manner. Crying
+again! Water lily once more?'
+
+Lily looked up, and smiled; 'Claude, how can you talk of that old,
+silly, nay, wicked nonsense of my principle. I was wise above what
+was written, and I have my punishment in the wreck which my "frenzy
+of spirit and folly of tongue" have wrought. The unchristened child,
+Agnes's death, the confusion of this house, all are owing to my
+hateful principle. I see the folly of it now, but Emily has taken it
+up, and acts upon it in everything. I do struggle against it a
+little; but I cannot blame any one, I can do no good, it is all owing
+to me. We have betrayed papa's confidence; if he does not see it now
+it will all come upon him when Eleanor comes home, and what is to
+become of us? How it will grieve him to see that we cannot be
+trusted!'
+
+'Poor Lily!' said Claude. 'It is a bad prospect, but I think you see
+the worst side of it. You are not well, and, therefore, doleful.
+This, Lily, I can tell you, that the Baron always considered Emily's
+government as a kind of experiment, and so perhaps he will not be so
+grievously disappointed as you expect. Besides, I have a strong
+suspicion that Emily's own nature has quite as much to do with her
+present conduct as your principle, which, after all, did not live
+very long.'
+
+'Just long enough to unsettle me, and make it more difficult for me
+to get any way right,' said Lily. 'Oh! dear, what would I give to
+force backward the wheels of time!'
+
+'But as you cannot, you had better try to brighten up your energies.
+Come, you know I cannot tell you not to look back, but I can tell you
+not to look forward. Nay, I do tell you literally, to look forward,
+out of the window, instead of back into this hot room. Do not you
+think the plane-tree there looks very inviting? Suppose we transport
+Emily's drapery there, and I want to refresh my memory with Spenser;
+I do not think I have touched him since plane-tree time last year.'
+
+'I believe Spenser and the plane-tree are inseparably woven together
+in your mind,' said Lily.
+
+'Yes, ever since the time when I first met with the book. I remember
+well roving over the bookcase, and meeting with it, and taking it out
+there, for fear Eleanor should see me and tell mama. Phyl, with As
+You Like It, put me much in mind of myself with that.'
+
+Claude talked in this manner, while Lily, listening with a smile,
+prepared her work. He read, and she listened. It was such a treat
+as she had not enjoyed for a long time, for she had begun to think
+that all her pleasant reading days were past. Her work prospered,
+and her face was bright when her sisters came home.
+
+But, alas! Emily was not pleased with her performance; she said that
+she intended something quite different, and by manner, rather than by
+words, indicated that she should not be satisfied unless Lily
+completely altered it. It was to be worn at the castle the next
+evening, and Lily knew she should have no time for it in the course
+of the day. Accordingly, at half-past twelve, as Claude was going up
+to bed, he saw a light under his sister's door, and knocked to ask
+the cause. Lily was still at work upon the trimming, and very angry
+he was, particularly when she begged him to take care not to disturb
+Emily. At last, by threatening to awake her, for the express purpose
+of giving her a scolding, he made Lily promise to go to bed
+immediately, a promise which she, poor weary creature, was very glad
+to make.
+
+Claude now resolved to tell his father the state of things, for he
+well knew that though it was easy to obtain a general promise from
+Emily, it was likely to be of little effect in preventing her from
+spurring her willing horse to death.
+
+The next morning he rose in time to join his father in the survey
+which he usually took of his fields before breakfast, and immediately
+beginning on the subject on which he was anxious, he gave a full
+account of his sister's proceedings. 'In short,' said he, 'Emily and
+Ada torment poor Lily every hour of her life; she bears it all as a
+sort of penance, and how it is to end I cannot tell.'
+
+'Unless,' said Mr. Mohun, smiling, 'as Rotherwood would say, Jupiter
+will interfere. Well, Jupiter has begun to take measures, and has
+asked Mrs. Weston to look out for a governess. Eh! Claude?' he
+continued, after a pause, 'you set up your eyebrows, do you? You
+think it will be a bore. Very likely, but there is nothing else to
+be done. Jane is under no control, Phyllis running wild, Ada worse
+managed than any child of my acquaintance--'
+
+'And poor Lily wearing herself to a shadow, in vain attempts to mend
+matters,' said Claude.
+
+'If Lily was the eldest, things would be very different,' said Mr.
+Mohun.
+
+'Or even if she had been as wise last year as she is now,' said
+Claude, 'she would have kept Emily in order then, but now it is too
+late.'
+
+'This year is, on many accounts, much to be regretted,' said Mr.
+Mohun, 'but I think it has brought out Lily's character.'
+
+'And a very fine character it is,' said Claude.
+
+'Very. She has been, and is, more childish than Eleanor ever was,
+but she is her superior in most points. She has been your pupil,
+Claude, and she does you credit.'
+
+'Thereby hangs a tale which does me no credit,' muttered Claude, as
+he remembered how foolishly he had roused her spirit of
+contradiction, besides the original mischief of naming Eleanor the
+duenna; 'but we will not enter into that now. I see this governess
+is their best chance. Have you heard of one?'
+
+'Of several; but the only one who seems likely to suit us is out of
+reach for the present, and I do not regret it, for I shall not decide
+till Eleanor comes.'
+
+'Emily will not be much pleased,' said Claude. 'It has long been her
+great dread that Aunt Rotherwood should recommend one.'
+
+'Ay, Emily's objections and your aunt's recommendations are what I
+would gladly avoid,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'But Lily!' said Claude, returning to the subject on which he was
+most anxious. 'She is already what Ada calls a monotony, and there
+will be nothing left of her by the time Eleanor comes, if matters go
+on in their present fashion.'
+
+'I have a plan for her. A little change will set her to rights, and
+we will take her to London when we go next week to meet Eleanor. She
+deserves a little extra pleasure; you must take her under your
+protection, and lionise her well.'
+
+'Trust me for that,' said Claude. 'It is the best news I have heard
+for a long time.'
+
+'Well, I am glad that one of my remedies meets with your
+approbation,' said his father, smiling. 'For the other, you are much
+inclined to pronounce the cure as bad as the disease.'
+
+'Not for Lily,' said Claude, laughing.
+
+'And,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I think I can promise you that a remedy will
+be found for all the other grievances by Michaelmas.'
+
+Claude looked surprised, but as Mr. Mohun explained no further, only
+observing upon the potatoes, through which they were walking, he only
+said, 'Then it is next week that you go to London.'
+
+'There is much to do, both for Rotherwood and for Eleanor; I shall go
+as soon as I can, but I do not think it will be while this fever is
+so prevalent. I had rather not be from home--I do not like Robert's
+looks.'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX: THE RECTOR'S ILLNESS
+
+
+
+'Thou drooping sick man, bless the guide
+That checked, or turned thy headstrong youth.'
+
+The thought of her brother's kindness, and the effect of his
+consolation, made Lilias awake that morning in more cheerful spirits;
+but it was not long before grief and anxiety again took possession of
+her.
+
+The first sound that she heard on opening the schoolroom window was
+the tolling of the church bell, giving notice of the death of another
+of those to whom she felt bound by the ties of neighbourhood.
+
+At church she saw that Mr. Devereux was looking more ill than he yet
+had done, and it was plainly with very great exertion that he
+succeeded in finishing the service. The Mohun party waited, as
+usual, to speak to him afterwards, for since his attendance upon
+Naylor had begun he had not thought it safe to come to the New Court
+as usual, lest he should bring the infection to them. He was very
+pale, and walked wearily, but he spoke cheerfully, as he told them
+that Naylor was now quite out of danger.
+
+'Then I hope you did not stay there all last night,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'No, I did not, I was so tired when I came back from poor John Ray's
+funeral, that I thought I would take a holiday, and sleep at home.'
+
+'I am afraid you have not profited by your night's rest,' said Emily,
+'you look as if you had a horrible headache.'
+
+'Now,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I prescribe for you that you go home and lie
+down. I am going to Raynham, and I will tell your friend there that
+you want help for the evening service. Do not think of moving again
+to-day. I shall send Claude home with you to see that you obey my
+prescription.'
+
+Claude went home with his cousin, and his sisters saw him no more
+till late in the day, when he came to tell them that Mr. Mohun had
+brought back Dr. Leslie from Raynham with him, that Dr. Leslie had
+seen Mr. Devereux, and had pronounced that he had certainly caught
+the fever.
+
+Lily had made up her mind to this for some time, but still it seemed
+almost as great a blow as if it had come without any preparation.
+The next day was the first Sunday that Mr. Devereux had not read the
+service since he had been Rector of Beechcroft. The villagers looked
+sadly at the stranger who appeared in his place, and many tears were
+shed when the prayers of the congregation were desired for Robert
+Devereux, and Thomas and Martha Naylor. It was announced that the
+daily service would be discontinued for the present, and Lily felt as
+if all the blessings which she had misused were to be taken from her.
+
+For some time Mr. Devereux continued very ill, and Dr. Leslie gave
+little hope of his improvement. Mr. Mohun and Claude were his
+constant attendants--an additional cause of anxiety to the Miss
+Mohuns. Emily was listless and melancholy, talking in a maundering,
+dismal way, not calculated to brace her spirits or those of her
+sisters. Jane was not without serious thoughts, but whether they
+would benefit her depended on herself; for, as we have seen by the
+events of the autumn, sorrow and suffering do not necessarily produce
+good effects, though some effects they always produce.
+
+Thus it was with Lilias. Grief and anxiety aided her in subduing her
+will and learning resignation. She did not neglect her daily duties,
+but was more exact in their fulfilment; and low as her spirits had
+been before, she now had an inward spring which enabled her to be the
+support of the rest. She was useful to her father, always ready to
+talk to Claude, or walk with him in the intervals when he was sent
+out of the sickroom to rest and breathe the fresh air. She was
+cheerful and patient with Emily, and devoid of petulance when annoyed
+by the spirits of the younger ones rising higher than accorded with
+the sad and anxious hearts of their elders. Her most painful feeling
+was, that it was possible that she might be punished through her
+cousin, as she had already been through Agnes; that her follies might
+have brought this distress upon every one, and that this was the
+price at which the child's baptism was to be bought. Yet Lily would
+not have changed her present thoughts for any of her varying frames
+of mind since that fatal Whitsuntide. Better feelings were springing
+up within her than she had then known; the church service and Sunday
+were infinitely more to her, and she was beginning to obtain peace of
+mind independent of external things.
+
+She could not help rejoicing to see how many evidences of affection
+to the Rector were called forth by this illness; presents of fruit
+poured in from all quarters, from Lord Rotherwood's choice hothouse
+grapes, to poor little Kezia Grey's wood-strawberries; inquiries were
+continual, and the stillness of the village was wonderful. There was
+no cricket on the hill, no talking in the street, no hallooing in the
+hay-field, and no burst of noise when the children were let out of
+school. Many of the people were themselves in grief for the loss of
+their own relations; and when on Sunday the Miss Mohuns saw how many
+were dressed in black, they thought with a pang how soon they
+themselves might be mourning for one whose influence they had
+crippled, and whose plans they had thwarted during the three short
+years of his ministry.
+
+During this time it was hard to say whether Lord Rotherwood was more
+of a comfort or a torment. He was attached to his cousin with all
+the ardour of his affectionate disposition, and not one day passed
+without his appearing at Beechcroft. At first it was always in the
+parlour at the parsonage that he took up his station, and waited till
+he could find some means of getting at Claude or his uncle, to hear
+the last report from them, and if possible to make Claude come out
+for a walk or ride with him. And once Mr. Mohun caught him standing
+just outside Mr. Devereux's door, waiting for an opportunity to make
+an entrance. He could not, or would not see why Mr. Mohun should
+allow Claude to run the risk of infection rather than himself, and
+thus he kept his mother in continual anxiety, and even his uncle
+could not feel by any means certain that he would not do something
+imprudent. At last a promise was extracted from him that he would
+not again enter the parsonage, but he would not gratify Lady
+Rotherwood so far as to abstain from going to Beechcroft, a place
+which she began to regard with horror. He now was almost constantly
+at the New Court, talking over the reports, and quite provoking Emily
+by never desponding, and never choosing to perceive how bad things
+really were. Every day which was worse than the last was supposed to
+be the crisis, and every restless sleep that they heard of he
+interpreted into the beginning of recovery. At last, however, after
+ten days of suspense, the report began to improve, and Claude came to
+the New Court with a more cheerful face, to say that his cousin was
+munch better. The world seemed immediately to grow brighter, people
+went about with joyful looks, Lord Rotherwood declared that from the
+first he had known all would be well, and Lily began to hope that now
+she had been spared so heavy a punishment, it was a kind of earnest
+that other things would mend, that she had suffered enough. The
+future no longer hung before her in such dark colours as before Mr.
+Devereux's illness, though still the New Court was in no satisfactory
+state, and still she had reason to expect that her father and Eleanor
+would be disappointed and grieved. Thankfulness that Mr. Devereux
+was recovering, and that Claude had escaped the infection, made her
+once more hopeful and cheerful; she let the morrow take thought for
+the things of itself, rejoicing that it was not her business to make
+arrangements.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX: THE LITTLE NEPHEW
+
+
+
+'You must be father, mother, both,
+ And uncle, all in one.'
+
+Mr. Mohun had much business to transact in London which he could not
+leave undone, and as soon as his nephew began to recover he thought
+of setting off to meet Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, who had already been
+a week at Lady Rotherwood's house in Grosvenor Square, which she had
+lent to them for the occasion. Claude had intended to stay at home,
+as his cousin was not yet well enough to leave the room; but just at
+this time a college friend of the Rector's, hearing of his illness,
+wrote to propose to come and stay with him for a month or six weeks,
+and help him in serving his church. Mr. Devereux was particularly
+glad to accept this kind offer, as it left him no longer dependent on
+Mr. Stephens and the Raynham curates, and set Claude at liberty for
+the London expedition. All was settled in the short space of one
+day. The very next they were to set off, and in great haste; Lily
+did all she could for the regulation of the house, packed up her
+goods, and received the commissions of her sisters.
+
+Ada gave her six shillings, with orders to buy either a doll or a
+book--the former if Eleanor did not say it was silly; and Phyllis put
+into her hands a weighty crown piece, begging for as many things as
+it could buy. Jane's wants and wishes were moderate and sensible,
+and she gave Lily the money for them. With Emily there was more
+difficulty. All Lily's efforts had not availed to prevent her from
+contracting two debts at Raynham. More than four pounds she owed to
+Lily, and this she offered to pay her, giving her at the same time a
+list of commissions sufficient to swallow up double her quarter's
+allowance. Lily, though really in want of the money for her own use,
+thought the debts at Raynham so serious, that she begged Emily to let
+her wait for payment till it was convenient, and to pay the shoemaker
+and dressmaker immediately.
+
+Emily thanked her, and promised to do so as soon as she could go to
+Raynham, and Lily next attempted to reduce her list of London
+commissions to something more reasonable. In part she succeeded, but
+it remained a matter of speculation how all the necessary articles
+which she had to buy for herself, and all Emily's various orders,
+were to come out of her own means, reduced as they were by former
+loans.
+
+The next day Lilias was on her way to London; feeling, as she left
+Beechcroft, that it was a great relief that the schoolroom and
+storeroom could not follow her. She was sorry that she should miss
+seeing Alethea Weston, who was to come home the next day, but she
+left various messages for her, and an affectionate note, and had
+received a promise from her sisters that the copy of the music should
+be given to her the first day that they saw her. Her journey
+afforded her much amusement, and it was not till towards the end of
+the day that she had much time for thinking, when, her companions
+being sleepily inclined, she was left to her own meditations and to a
+dull country. She began to revolve her own feelings towards Eleanor,
+and as she remembered the contempt and ingratitude she had once
+expressed, she shrank from the meeting with shame and dread, and knew
+that she should feel reproached by Eleanor's wonted calmness of
+manner. And as she mused upon all that Eleanor had endured, and all
+that she had done, such a reverence for suffering and sacrifice took
+possession of her mind that she was ready to look up to her sister
+with awe. She began to recollect old reproofs, and found herself
+sitting more upright, and examining the sit of the folds of her dress
+with some uneasiness at the thought of Eleanor's preciseness. In the
+midst of her meditations her two companions were roused by the
+slackening speed of the train, and starting up, informed her that
+they were arriving at their journey's end. The next minute she heard
+her father consigning her and the umbrellas to Mr. Hawkesworth's
+care, and all was bewilderment till she found herself in the hall of
+her aunt's house, receiving as warm and affectionate a greeting from
+Eleanor as Emily herself could have bestowed.
+
+'And the baby, Eleanor?'
+
+'Asleep, but you shall see him; and how is Ada? and all of them? why,
+Claude, how well you look! Papa, let me help you to take off your
+greatcoat--you are cold--will you have a fire?'
+
+Never had Lily heard Eleanor say so much in a breath, or seen her eye
+so bright, or her smile so ready, yet, when she entered the drawing-
+room, she saw that Mrs. Hawkesworth was still the Eleanor of old. In
+contrast with the splendid furniture of the apartments, a pile of
+shirts was on the table, Eleanor's well-known work-basket on the
+floor, and the ceaseless knitting close at hand.
+
+Much news was exchanged in the few minutes that elapsed before
+Eleanor carried off her sister to her room, indulging her by the way
+with a peep at little Harry, and one kiss to his round red cheek as
+he lay asleep in his little bed. It was not Eleanor's fault that she
+did not entirely dress Lily, and unpack her wardrobe; but Lilias
+liked to show that she could manage for herself; and Eleanor's praise
+of her neat arrangements gave her as much pleasure as in days of
+yore.
+
+The evening passed very happily. Eleanor's heart was open, she was
+full of enjoyment at meeting those she loved, and the two sisters sat
+long together in the twilight, talking over numerous subjects, all
+ending in Beechcroft or the baby.
+
+Yet when Lily awoke the next morning her awe of Eleanor began to
+return, and she felt like a child just returned to school. She was,
+however, mistaken; Eleanor assumed no authority, she treated Lily as
+her equal, and thus made her feel more like a woman than she had ever
+done before. Lily thought either that Eleanor was much altered, or
+that in her folly she must have fancied her far more cold and grave
+than she really was. She had, however, no time for studying her
+character; shopping and sight-seeing filled up most of her time, and
+the remainder was spent in resting, and in playing with little Henry.
+
+One evening, when Mr. Mohun and Claude were dining out, Lilias was
+left alone with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth. Lily was very tired, but
+she worked steadily at marking Eleanor's pocket-handkerchiefs, until
+her sister, seeing how weary she was, made her lie down on the sofa.
+
+'Here is a gentleman who is tired too,' said Eleanor, dancing the
+baby; 'we will carry you off, sir, and leave Aunt Lily to go to
+sleep.'
+
+'Aunt Lily is not so tired as that,' said Lily; 'pray keep him.'
+
+'It is quite bedtime,' said Eleanor, in her decided tone, and she
+carried him off.
+
+Lilias took up the knitting which she had laid down, and began to
+study the stitches. 'I should like this feathery pattern,' said she,
+'(if it did not remind me so much of the fever); but, by the bye,
+Frank, have you completed Master Henry's outfit? I looked forward to
+helping to choose his pretty little things, but I see no preparation
+but of stockings.'
+
+'Why, Lily, did not you know that he was to stay in England?'
+
+'To stay in England? No, I never thought of that--how sorry you must
+be.'
+
+At this moment Eleanor returned, and Mr. Hawkesworth told her he had
+been surprised to find Lily did not know their intentions with regard
+to the baby.
+
+'If we had any certain intentions we should have told her,' said
+Eleanor; 'I did not wish to speak to her about it till we had made up
+our minds.'
+
+'Well, I know no use in mysteries,' said Mr. Hawkesworth, 'especially
+when Lily may help us to decide.'
+
+'On his going or staying?' exclaimed Lily, eagerly looking to Mr.
+Hawkesworth, who was evidently more disposed to speak than his wife.
+
+'Not on his going or staying--I am sorry to say that point was
+settled long ago--but where we shall leave him.'
+
+Lily's heart beat high, but she did not speak.
+
+'The truth is,' proceeded Mr. Hawkesworth, 'that this young gentleman
+has, as perhaps you know, a grandpapa, a grandmamma, and also six or
+seven aunts. With his grandmamma he cannot be left, for sundry
+reasons, unnecessary to mention. Now, one of his aunts is a staid
+matronly lady, and his godmother besides, and in all respects the
+person to take charge of him,--only she lives in a small house in a
+town, and has plenty of babies of her own, without being troubled
+with other people's. Master Henry's other five aunts live in one
+great house, in a delightful country, with nothing to do but make
+much of him all day long, yet it is averred that these said aunts are
+a parcel of giddy young colts, amongst whom, if Henry escapes being
+demolished as a baby he will infallibly be spoilt as he grows up.
+Now, how are we to decide?'
+
+'You have heard the true state of the case, Lily,' said Mrs.
+Hawkesworth. 'I did not wish to harass papa by speaking to him till
+something was settled; you are certainly old enough to have an
+opinion.'
+
+'Yes, Lily,' said Frank; 'do you think that the hospitable New Court
+will open to receive our poor deserted child, and that these said
+aunts are not wild colts but discreet damsels?'
+
+Playful as Mr. Hawkesworth's manner was, Lily saw the earnestness
+that was veiled under it: she felt the solemnity of Eleanor's
+appeal, and knew that this was no time to let herself be swayed by
+her wishes. There was a silence. At last, after a great struggle,
+Lily's better judgment gained the mastery, and raising her head, she
+said, 'Oh! Frank, do not ask me--I wish--but, Eleanor, when you see
+how much harm we have done, how utterly we have failed--'
+
+Lily's newly-acquired habits of self-command enabled her to subdue a
+violent fit of sobbing, which she felt impending, but her tears
+flowed quietly down her cheeks.
+
+'Remember,' said Frank, 'those who mistrust themselves are the most
+trustworthy.'
+
+'No, Frank, it is not only the feeling of the greatness of the
+charge, it is the knowledge that we are not fit for it--that our own
+faults have forfeited such happiness.'
+
+Again Lily was choked with tears.
+
+'Well,' said Frank, 'we shall judge at Beechcroft. At all events,
+one of those aunts is to be respected.'
+
+Eleanor added her 'Very right.'
+
+This kindness on the part of her brother-in-law, which Lily felt to
+be undeserved, caused her tears to flow faster, and Eleanor, seeing
+her quite overcome, led her out of the room, helped her to undress,
+and put her to bed, with tenderness such as Lily had never
+experienced from her, excepting in illness.
+
+In spite of bitter regrets, when she thought of the happiness it
+would have been to keep her little nephew, and of importunate and
+disappointing hopes that Mrs. Ridley would find it impossible to
+receive him, Lily felt that she had done right, and had made a real
+sacrifice for duty's sake. No more was said on the subject, and Lily
+was very grateful to Eleanor for making no inquiries, which she could
+not have answered without blaming Emily.
+
+Sight-seeing prospered very well under Claude's guidance, and Lily's
+wonder and delight was a constant source of amusement to her friends.
+Her shopping was more of a care than a pleasure, for, in spite of the
+handsome equipments which Mr. Mohun presented to all his daughters,
+it was impossible to contract Emily's requirements within the limits
+of what ought to be her expenditure, and the different views of her
+brother and sister were rather troublesome in this matter. Claude
+hated the search for ladies' finery, and if drawn into it, insisted
+on always taking her to the grandest and most expensive shops; while,
+on the other hand, though Eleanor liked to hunt up cheap things and
+good bargains, she had such rigid ideas about plainness of dress,
+that there was little chance that what she approved would satisfy
+Emily.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI: CHARITY BEGINS AT HOME
+
+
+
+'Suddenly, a mighty jerk
+A mighty mischief did.'
+
+In the meantime Emily and Jane went on very prosperously at home,
+looking forward to the return of the rest of the party on Saturday,
+the 17th of July. In this, however, they were doomed to
+disappointment, for neither Mr. Mohun nor Mr. Hawkesworth could wind
+up their affairs so as to return before the 24th. Maurice's holidays
+commenced on Monday the 19th, and Claude offered to go home on the
+same day, and meet him, but in a general council it was determined to
+the contrary. Claude was wanted to stay for a concert on Thursday,
+and both Mr. Mohun and Eleanor thought Maurice, without Reginald,
+would not be formidable for a few days.
+
+At first he seemed to justify this opinion. He did not appear to
+have any peculiar pursuit, unless such might be called a very earnest
+attempt to make Phyllis desist from her favourite preface of 'I'll
+tell you what,' and to reform her habit of saying, 'Please for,'
+instead of 'If you please.' He walked with the sisters, carried
+messages for Mr. Devereux, performed some neat little bits of
+carpentry, and was very useful and agreeable.
+
+On Wednesday afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called, their
+heads the more full of the 30th because the Marquis had not once
+thought of it while Mr. Devereux was ill. Among the intended
+diversions fireworks were mentioned, and from that moment rockets,
+wheels, and serpents, commenced a wild career through Maurice's
+brain. Through the whole evening he searched for books on what he
+was pleased to call the art of pyrotechnics, studied them all
+Wednesday, and the next morning announced his intention of making
+some fireworks on a new plan.
+
+'No, you must not,' said Emily, 'you will be sure to do mischief.'
+
+'I am going to ask Wat for some powder,' was Maurice's reply, and he
+walked off.
+
+'Stop him, Jane, stop him,' cried Emily. 'Nothing can be so
+dangerous. Tell him how angry papa would be.'
+
+Though Jane highly esteemed her brother's discretion, she did not
+much like the idea of his touching powder, and she ran after him to
+suggest that he had better wait till papa's return.
+
+'Then Redgie will be at home,' said Maurice, 'and I could not be
+answerable for the consequence of such a careless fellow touching
+powder.'
+
+This great proof of caution quite satisfied Jane, but not so Wat
+Greenwood, who proved himself a faithful servant by refusing to let
+Master Maurice have one grain of gunpowder without express leave from
+the squire. Maurice then had recourse to Jane, and his power over
+her was such as to triumph over strong sense and weak notions of
+obedience, so that she was prevailed upon to supply him with the
+means of making the dangerous and forbidden purchase.
+
+Emily was both annoyed and alarmed when she found that the gunpowder
+was actually in the house, and she even thought of sending a note to
+the parsonage to beg Mr. Devereux to speak to Maurice; but Jane had
+gone over to the enemy, and Emily never could do anything
+unsupported. Besides, she neither liked to affront Maurice nor to
+confess herself unable to keep him in order; and she, therefore,
+tried to put the whole matter out of her head, in the thoughts of an
+expedition to Raynham, which she was about to make in the manner she
+best liked, with Jane in the close carriage, and the horses
+reluctantly spared from their farm work.
+
+As they were turning the corner of the lane they overtook Phyllis and
+Adeline on their way to the school with some work, and Emily stopped
+the carriage, to desire them to send off a letter which she had left
+on the chimney-piece in the schoolroom. Then proceeding to Raynham,
+they made their visits, paid Emily's debts, performed their
+commissions, and met the carriage again at the bookseller's shop, at
+the end of about two hours.
+
+'Look here, Emily!' exclaimed Jane. 'Read this! can it be Mrs.
+Aylmer?'
+
+'The truly charitable,' said Emily, contemptuously. 'Mrs. Aylmer is
+above--'
+
+'But read. It says "unbeneficed clergyman and deceased nobleman,"
+and who can that be but Uncle Rotherwood and Mr. Aylmer.'
+
+'Well, let us see,' said Emily, 'those things are always amusing.'
+
+It was an appeal to the 'truly charitable,' from the friends of the
+widow of an unbeneficed clergyman of the diocese, one of whose sons
+had, it was said, by the kindness of a deceased nobleman, received
+the promise of an appointment in India, of which he was unable to
+avail himself for want of the funds needful for his outfit. This
+appeal was, it added, made without the knowledge of the afflicted
+lady, but further particulars might be learnt by application to E.
+F., No. 5 West Street, Raynham.
+
+'E. F. is plainly that bustling, little, old Miss Fitchett, who wrote
+to papa for some subscription,' said Emily. 'You know she is a
+regular beggar, always doing these kind of things, but I can never
+believe that Mrs. Aylmer would consent to appear in this manner.'
+
+'Ah! but it says without her knowledge,' said Jane. 'Don't you
+remember Rotherwood's lamenting that they were forgotten?'
+
+'Yes, it is shocking,' said Emily; 'the clergyman that married papa
+and mamma!'
+
+'Ask Mr. Adam what he knows,' said Jane.
+
+Emily accordingly applied to the bookseller, and learnt that Mrs.
+Aylmer was indeed the person intended. 'Something must be done,'
+said she, returning to Jane. 'Our name will be a help.'
+
+'Speak to Aunt Rotherwood,' said Jane. 'Or suppose we apply to Miss
+Fitchett, we should have time to drive that way.'
+
+'I am sure I shall not go to Miss Fitchett,' said Emily, 'she only
+longs for an excuse to visit us. What can you be thinking of? Lend
+me your pencil, Jenny, if you please.'
+
+And Emily wrote down, 'Miss Mohun, 5 pounds,' and handed to the
+bookseller all that she possessed towards paying her just debts to
+Lilias. While she was writing, Jane had turned towards the window,
+and suddenly exclaiming, 'There is Ben! Oh! that gunpowder!' darted
+out of the shop. She had seen the groom on horseback, and the next
+moment she was asking breathlessly, 'Is it Maurice?'
+
+'No, Miss Jane; but Miss Ada is badly burnt, and Master Maurice sent
+me to fetch Mr. Saunders.'
+
+'How did it happen?'
+
+'I can't say, Miss; the schoolroom has been on fire, and Master
+Maurice said the young ladies had got at the gunpowder.'
+
+Emily had just arrived at the door, looking dreadfully pale, and
+followed by numerous kind offers of salts and glasses of water; but
+Jane, perceiving that at least she had strength to get into the
+carriage, refused them all, helped her in, and with instant decision,
+desired to be driven to the surgeon's. Emily obeyed like a child,
+and threw herself back in the carriage without a word; Jane trembled
+like an aspen leaf; but her higher spirit took the lead, and very
+sensibly she managed, stopping at Mr. Saunders's door to offer to
+take him to Beechcroft, and getting a glass of sal-volatile for Emily
+while they were waiting for him. His presence was a great relief,
+for Emily's natural courtesy made her exert herself, and thus warded
+off much that would have been very distressing.
+
+In the meantime we will return to Beechcroft, where Emily's request
+respecting her letter had occasioned some discussion between the
+little girls, as they returned from a walk with Marianne. Phyllis
+thought that Emily meant them to wafer the letter, since they were
+under strict orders never to touch fire or candle; but Ada argued
+that they were to seal it, and that permission to light a candle was
+implied in the order. At last, Phyllis hoped the matter might be
+settled by asking Maurice to seal the letter, and meeting him at the
+front door, she began, in fortunately, with 'Please, Maurice--'
+
+'I never listen to anything beginning with please,' said Maurice, who
+was in a great hurry, 'only don't touch my powder.'
+
+Away he went, deaf to all his sister's shouts of 'Maurice, Maurice,'
+and they went in, Ada not sorry to be unheard, as she was bent on the
+grand exploit of lighting a lucifer match, but Phyllis still pleading
+for the wafer. They found the schoolroom strewed with Maurice's
+preparations for fireworks, and Emily's letter on the chimney-piece.
+
+'Let us take the letter downstairs, and put on a wafer,' said
+Phyllis. 'Won't you come, Ada?'
+
+'No, the stamps are here, and so are the matches, I can do it
+easily.'
+
+'But Ada, Ada, it would be naughty. Only wait, and I will show you
+such a pretty wafer that I know of in the drawing-room. I will run
+and fetch it.'
+
+Phyllis went, and Ada stood a few moments in doubt, looking at the
+letter. The recollection of duty was not strong enough to balance
+the temptation, and she took up a match and drew it along the
+sandpaper. It did not light--a second pull, and the flame appeared
+more suddenly than she had expected, while at the same moment the
+lock of the door turned, and fancying it was Maurice, she started,
+and dropped the match. Phyllis opened the door, heard a loud
+explosion and a scream, saw a bright flash and a cloud of smoke. She
+started back, but the next moment again opened the door, and ran
+forward. Hannah rushed in at the same time, and caught up Ada, who
+had fallen to the ground. A light in the midst of the smoke made
+Phyllis turn, and she beheld the papers on the table on fire.
+Maurice's powder-horn was in the midst, but the flames had not yet
+reached it, and, mindful of Claude's story, she sprung forward,
+caught it up, and dashed it through the window; she felt the glow of
+the fire upon her cheek, and stood still as if stunned, till Hannah
+carried Ada out of the room, and screamed to her to come away, and
+call Joseph. The table was now one sheet of flame, and Phyllis flew
+to the pantry, where she gave the summons in almost inaudible tones.
+The servants hurried to the spot, and she was left alone and
+bewildered; she ran hither and thither in confusion, till she met
+Hannah, eagerly asking for Master Maurice, and saying that the
+surgeon must be instantly sent for, as Ada's face and neck were badly
+burnt. Phyllis ran down, calling Maurice, and at length met him at
+the front door, looking much frightened, and asking for Ada.
+
+'Oh! Maurice, her face and neck are burnt, and badly. She does
+scream?'
+
+'Did I not tell you not to meddle with the powder?' said Maurice.
+
+'Indeed, I could not help it,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Stuff and nonsense! It is very well that you have not killed Ada,
+and I think that would have made you sorry.'
+
+Phyllis with difficulty mentioned Hannah's desire that a surgeon
+should be sent for: Maurice went to look for Ben, and she followed
+him. Then he began asking how she had done the mischief.
+
+'I do not know,' said she, 'I do not much think I did it.'
+
+'Mind, you can't humbug me. Did you not say that you touched the
+powder?'
+
+'Yes, but--'
+
+'No buts,' said Maurice, making the most of his brief authority. 'I
+hate false excuses. What were you doing when it exploded?'
+
+'Coming into the room.'
+
+'Oh! that accounts for it,' said Maurice, 'the slightest vibration
+causes an explosion of that sort of rocket, and of course it was your
+bouncing into the room! You have had a lesson against rushing about
+the house. Come, though, cheer up, Phyl, it is a bad business, but
+it might have been worse; you will know better next time. Don't cry,
+Phyl, I will explain to you all about the patent rocket.'
+
+'But do you really think that I blew up Ada?'
+
+'Blew up Ada! caused the powder to ignite. The inflammable matter--'
+
+As he spoke he followed Phyllis to the nursery, and there was so much
+shocked, that he could no longer lord it over her, but shrinking
+back, shut himself up in his room, and bolted the door.
+
+Nearly an hour passed away before the arrival of Emily, Jane, and Mr.
+Saunders. Phyllis ran down, and meeting them at the door, exclaimed,
+'Oh! Emily, poor Ada! I am so sorry.'
+
+The sisters hurried past her to the nursery, where Ada was lying on
+the bed, half undressed, and her face, neck, and arm such a spectacle
+that Emily turned away, ready to faint. Mr. Saunders was summoned,
+and Phyllis thrust out of the room. She sat down on the step of the
+stairs, resting her forehead on her knees, and trembling, listened to
+the sounds of voices, and the screams which now and then reached her
+ears. After a time she was startled by hearing herself called from
+the stairs BY BELOW a voice which she had not heard for many weeks,
+and springing up, saw Mr. Devereux leaning on the banisters. The
+great change in his appearance frightened her almost as much as the
+accident itself, and she stood looking at him without speaking.
+'Phyllis,' said he, in a voice hoarse with agitation, 'what is it?
+tell me at once.'
+
+She could not speak, and her wild and frightened air might well give
+him great alarm. She pointed to the nursery, and put her finger to
+her lips, and he, beckoning to her to follow him, went downstairs,
+and turning into the drawing-room, said, as he sank down upon the
+sofa, 'Now, Phyllis, what has happened?'
+
+'The gunpowder--I made it go off, and it has burnt poor Ada's face!
+Mr. Saunders is there, and she screams--'
+
+Phyllis finding herself ready to roar, left off speaking, and laying
+her head on the table, burst into an agony of crying, while Mr.
+Devereux was too much exhausted to address her; at last she
+exclaimed: 'I hear the nursery door; he is going!'
+
+She flew to the door, and listened, and then called out, 'Emily,
+Jane, here is Cousin Robert!'
+
+Jane came down, leaving Emily to finish hearing Mr. Saunders's
+directions. She was even more shocked at her cousin's looks than
+Phyllis had been, and though she tried to speak cheerfully, her
+manner scarcely agreed with her words. 'It is all well, Robert, I am
+sorry you have been so frightened. It is but a slight affair, though
+it looks so shocking. There is no danger. But, oh, Robert! you
+ought not to be here. What shall we do for you? you are quite
+knocked up.'
+
+'Oh! no,' said Mr. Devereux, 'I am only a little out of breath. A
+terrible report came to me, and I set off to learn the truth. I
+should like to hear what Mr. Saunders says of her.'
+
+'I will call him in here before he goes,' said Jane; 'how tired you
+are; you have not been out before.'
+
+'Only to the gate to speak to Rotherwood yesterday, and prevent him
+from coming in,' said Mr. Devereux, 'but I have great designs for
+Sunday. They come home to-morrow, do not they?'
+
+Jane was much relieved by hearing her cousin talk in this manner, and
+answered, 'Yes, and a dismal coming home it will be; it is too late
+to let them know.'
+
+Mr. Saunders now entered, and gave a very favourable account of the
+patient, saying that even the scars would probably disappear in a few
+weeks. His gig had come from Raynham, and he offered to set Mr.
+Devereux down at the parsonage, a proposal which the latter was very
+glad to accept. Emily and Jane had leisure, when they were gone, to
+inquire into the manner of the accident. Phyllis answered that
+Maurice said that her banging the door had made the powder go off.
+Jane then asked where Maurice was, and Phyllis reporting that he was
+in his own room, she repaired thither, and knocked twice without
+receiving an answer. On her call, however, he opened the door; she
+saw that he had been in tears, and hastened to tell him Mr.
+Saunders's opinion. He fastened the door again as soon as she had
+entered. 'If I could have thought it!' sighed he. 'Fool that I was,
+not to lock the door!'
+
+'Then you were not there? Phyllis says that she did it by banging
+the door. Is not that nonsense?'
+
+'Not at all. Did I not read to you in the Year Book of Facts about
+the patent signal rockets, which explode with the least vibration,
+even when a carriage goes by? Now, mine was on the same principle.
+I was making an experiment on the ingredients; I did not expect to
+succeed the first time, and so I took no precautions. Well!
+Pyrotechnics are a dangerous science! Next time I study them it
+shall be at the workshop at the Old Court.'
+
+Maurice was sincerely sorry for the consequence of his disobedience,
+and would have been much to be pitied had it not been for his secret
+satisfaction in the success of his art. He called his sister into
+the schoolroom to explain how it happened. The room was a dismal
+sight, blackened with smoke, and flooded with water, the table and
+part of the floor charred, a mass of burnt paper in the midst, and a
+stifling smell of fire. A pane of glass was shattered, and Maurice
+ran down to the lawn to see if he could find anything there to
+account for it. The next moment he returned, the powder-horn in his
+hand. 'See, Jenny, how fortunate that this was driven through the
+window with the force of the explosion. The whole place might have
+been blown to atoms with such a quantity as this.'
+
+'Then what was it that blew up?' asked Jane.
+
+'What I had put out for my rocket, about two ounces. If this half-
+pound had gone there is no saying what might have happened.'
+
+'Now, Maurice,' said Jane, 'I must go back to Ada, and will you run
+down to the parsonage with a parcel, directed to Robert, that you
+will find in the hall?'
+
+This was a device to occupy Maurice, who, as Jane saw, was so
+restless and unhappy that she did not like to leave him, much as she
+was wanted elsewhere. He went, but afraid to see his cousin, only
+left the parcel at the door. As he was going back he heard a shout,
+and looking round saw Lord Rotherwood mounted on Cedric, his most
+spirited horse, galloping up the lane. 'Maurice!' cried he, 'what is
+all this? they say the New Court is blown up, and you and half the
+girls killed, but I hope one part is as true as the other.'
+
+'Nobody is hurt but Ada,' said Maurice, 'but her face is a good deal
+burnt.'
+
+'Eh? then she won't be fit for the 30th, poor child! tell me how it
+was, make haste. I heard it from Mr. Burnet as I came down to
+dinner. We have a dozen people at dinner. I told him not to mention
+it to my mother, and rode off to hear the truth. Make haste, half
+the people were come when I set off.'
+
+The horse's caperings so discomposed Maurice that he could scarcely
+collect his wits enough to answer: 'Some signal rocket on a new
+principle--detonating powder, composed of oxymuriate--Oh!
+Rotherwood, take care!'
+
+'Speak sense, and go on.'
+
+'Then Phyllis came in, banged the door, and the vibration caused the
+explosion,' said Maurice, scared into finishing promptly.
+
+'Eh! banging the door? You had better not tell that story at
+school.'
+
+'But, Rotherwood, the deton--Oh! that horse--you will be off!'
+
+'Not half so dangerous as patent rockets. Is Emily satisfied with
+such stuff?'
+
+'Don't you know that fulminating silver--'
+
+'What does Robert Devereux say?'
+
+'Really, Rotherwood, I could show you--'
+
+'Show me? No; if rockets are so perilous I shall have nothing to do
+with them. Stand still, Cedric! Just tell me about Ada. Is there
+much harm done?'
+
+'Her face is scorched a good deal, but they say it will soon be
+right.'
+
+'I am glad--we will send to inquire to-morrow, but I cannot come--ha,
+ha! a new infernal machine. Good-bye, Friar Bacon.'
+
+Away he went, and Maurice stood looking after him with complacent
+disdain. 'There they go, Cedric and Rotherwood, equally well
+provided with brains! What is the use of talking science to either?'
+
+It was late when he reached the house, and his two sisters shortly
+came down to tea, with news that Adeline was asleep and Phyllis was
+going to bed. The accident was again talked over.
+
+'Well,' said Emily, 'I do not understand it, but I suppose papa
+will.'
+
+'The telling papa is a bad part of the affair, with William and
+Eleanor there too,' said Jane.
+
+'I do not mean to speak to Phyllis about it again,' said Emily, 'it
+makes her cry so terribly.'
+
+'It will come out fast enough,' sighed Maurice. 'Good-night.'
+
+More than once in the course of the night did poor Phyllis wake and
+cry, and the next day was the most wretched she had ever spent; she
+was not allowed to stay in the nursery, and the schoolroom was
+uninhabitable, so she wandered listlessly about the garden, sometimes
+creeping down to the churchyard, where she looked up at the old
+tower, or pondered over the graves, and sometimes forgetting her
+troubles in converse with the dogs, in counting the rings in the
+inside of a foxglove flower, or in rescuing tadpoles stranded on the
+broad leaf of a water-lily.
+
+Her sisters and brothers were not less forlorn. Emily sighed and
+lamented; Adeline was feverish and petulant; and Jane toiled in vain
+to please and soothe both, and to comfort Maurice; but with all her
+good-temper and good-nature she had not the spirit which alone could
+enable her to be a comfort to any one. Ada whined, fretted, and was
+disobedient, and from Maurice she met with nothing but rebuffs; he
+was silent and sullen, and spent most of the day in the workshop,
+slowly planing scraps of deal board, and watching with a careless eye
+the curled shavings float to the ground.
+
+In the course of the afternoon Alethea and Marianne came to inquire
+after the patient. Jane came down to them and talked very fast, but
+when they asked for a further explanation of the cause of the
+accident, Jane declared that Maurice said it was impossible that any
+one who did not understand chemistry should know how it happened, and
+Alethea went away strongly reminded that it was no affair of hers.
+
+Notes passed between the New Court and the vicarage, but Mr. Devereux
+was feeling the effect of his yesterday's exertion too much to repeat
+it, and no persuasion of the sisters could induce Maurice to visit
+him.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII: THE BARONIAL COURT
+
+
+
+'Still in his eyes his soul revealing,
+He dreams not, knows not of concealing,
+Does all he does with single mind,
+And thinks of others that are kind.'
+
+The travellers were expected to arrive at about seven o'clock in the
+evening, and in accordance with a well-known taste of Eleanor's,
+Emily had ordered no dinner, but a substantial meal under the name of
+tea. When the sound of carriage wheels was heard, Jane was with
+Adeline, Maurice was in his retreat at the Old Court, and it was with
+no cheerful alacrity that Emily went alone into the hall. Phyllis
+was already at the front door, and the instant Mr. Mohun set foot on
+the threshold, her hand grasped his coat, and her shrill voice cried
+in his ear, 'Papa, I am very sorry I blew up the gunpowder and burnt
+Ada.'
+
+'What, my dear? where is Ada?'
+
+'In bed. I blew up the gunpowder and burnt her face,' repeated
+Phyllis.
+
+'We have had an accident,' said Emily, 'but I hope it is nothing very
+serious, only poor Ada is a sad figure.'
+
+In another moment Mr. Mohun and Eleanor were on the way to the
+nursery; Lilias was following, but she recollected that a general
+rush into a sickroom was not desirable, and therefore paused and came
+back to the hall. The worst was over with Phyllis when the
+confession had been made. She was in raptures at the sight of the
+baby, and was presently showing the nurse the way upstairs, but her
+brother William called her back: 'Phyllis, you have not spoken to
+any one.'
+
+Phyllis turned, and came down slowly in her most ungainly manner,
+believing herself in too great disgrace to be noticed by anybody, and
+she was quite surprised and comforted to be greeted by her brothers
+and Lily just as usual.
+
+'And how did you meet with this misfortune?' asked Mr. Hawkesworth.
+
+'I banged the door, and made it go off,' said Phyllis.
+
+'What can you mean?' said William, in a tone of surprise, which
+Phyllis took for anger, and she hid her face to stifle her sobs.
+
+'No, no, do not frighten her,' said Claude's kind voice.
+
+'Run and make friends with your nephew, Phyllis,' said Mr.
+Hawkesworth; 'do not greet us with crying.'
+
+'First tell me what is become of Maurice,' said Claude, 'is he blown
+up too?'
+
+'No, he is at the Old Court,' said Phyllis. 'Shall I tell him that
+you are come?'
+
+'I will look for him,' said Claude, and out he went.
+
+The others dispersed in different directions, and did not assemble
+again for nearly half an hour, when they all met in the drawing-room
+to drink tea; Claude and Maurice were the last to appear, and, on
+entering, the first thing the former said was, 'Where is Phyllis?'
+
+'In the nursery,' said Jane; 'she has had her supper, and chooses to
+stay with Ada.'
+
+'Has any one found out the history of the accident?' said William.
+
+'I have vainly been trying to make sense of Maurice's account,' said
+Claude.
+
+'Sense!' said William, 'there is none.'
+
+'I am perfectly bewildered,' said Lily; 'every one has a different
+story, only consenting in making Phyllis the victim.'
+
+'And,' added Claude, 'I strongly suspect she is not in fault.'
+
+'Why should you doubt what she says herself?' said Eleanor.
+
+'What does she say herself?' said William, 'nothing but that she shut
+the door, and what does that amount to?--Nothing.'
+
+'She says she touched the powder,' interposed Jane.
+
+'That is another matter,' said William; 'no one told me of her
+touching the powder. But why do you not ask her? She is publicly
+condemned without a hearing.'
+
+'Who accuses her?' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'I can hardly tell,' said Emily; 'she met us, saying she was very
+sorry. Yes, she accuses herself. Every one has believed it to be
+her.'
+
+'And why?'
+
+There was a pause, but at last Emily said, 'How would you account for
+it otherwise?'
+
+'I have not yet heard the circumstances. Maurice, I wish to hear
+your account. I will not now ask how you procured the powder.
+Whoever was the immediate cause of the accident, you are chiefly to
+blame. Where was the powder?'
+
+Maurice gave his theory and his facts, ending with the powder-horn
+being driven out of the window upon the green.
+
+'I hear,' said Mr. Mohun. 'But, Maurice, did you not say that
+Phyllis touched the powder? How do you reconcile that with this
+incomprehensible statement?'
+
+'She might have done that before,' said Maurice.
+
+'Now call Phyllis,' said his father.
+
+'Is it not very formidable for her to be examined before such an
+assembly?' said Emily.
+
+'The accusation has been public, and the investigation shall be the
+same,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'Then you do not think she did it, papa?' cried Lily.
+
+'Not by shutting the door,' said William.
+
+Phyllis entered, and Mr. Mohun, holding out both hands to her, drew
+her towards him, and placing her with her back to the others, still
+retained her hands, while he said, 'Phyllis, do not be frightened,
+but tell me where you were when the powder exploded?'
+
+'Coming into the room,' said Phyllis, in a trembling voice.
+
+'Where had you been?'
+
+'Fetching a wafer out of the drawing-room.'
+
+'What was the wafer for?'
+
+'To put on Emily's letter, which she told us to send.'
+
+'And where was Ada?'
+
+'In the schoolroom, reading the direction of the letter.'
+
+'Tell me exactly what happened when you came back.'
+
+'I opened the door, and there was a flash, and a bang, and a smoke,
+and Ada tumbled down.'
+
+'I have one more question to ask. When did you touch the powder?'
+
+'Then,' said Phyllis.
+
+'When it had exploded? Take care what you say.'
+
+'Was it naughty? I am very sorry,' said Phyllis, beginning to cry.
+
+'What powder did you touch? I do not understand you, tell me
+quietly.'
+
+'I touched the powder-horn. What went off was only a little in a
+paper on the table, and there was a great deal more. When the rocket
+blew up there was a great noise, and Ada and I both screamed, and
+Hannah ran in and took up Ada in her arms. Then I saw a great fire,
+and looked, and saw Emily's music-book, and all the papers blazing.
+So I thought if it got to the powder it would blow up again, and I
+laid hold of the horn and threw it out of the window. That is all I
+know, papa, only I hope you are not very angry with me.'
+
+She looked into his face, not knowing how to interpret the unusual
+expression she saw there.
+
+'Angry with you!' said he. 'No, my dear child, you have acted with
+great presence of mind. You have saved your sister and Hannah from
+great danger, and I am very sorry that you have been unjustly
+treated.'
+
+He then gave his little daughter a kiss, and putting his hand on her
+head, added, 'Whoever caused the explosion, Phyllis is quite free
+from blame, and I wish every one to understand this, because she has
+been unjustly accused, without examination, and because she has borne
+it patiently, and without attempting to justify herself.'
+
+'Very right,' observed Eleanor.
+
+'Shake hands, Phyllis,' said William.
+
+The others said more with their eyes than with their lips. Phyllis
+stood like one in a dream, and fixing her bewildered looks upon
+Claude, said, 'Did not I do it?'
+
+'No, Phyllis, you had nothing to do with it,' was the general
+exclamation.
+
+'Maurice said it was the door,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Maurice talked nonsense,' said Claude; 'you were only foolish in
+believing him.'
+
+Phyllis went up to Claude, and laid her head on his arm; Mr.
+Hawkesworth held out his hand to her, but she did not look up, and
+Claude withdrawing his arm, and raising her head, found that she was
+crying. Eleanor and Lilias both rose, and came towards her but
+Claude made them a sign, and led her away.
+
+'What a fine story this will be for Reginald,' said William.
+
+'And for Rotherwood,' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'I do not see how it happened,' said Eleanor.
+
+'Of course Ada did it herself,' said William.
+
+'Of course,' said Maurice. 'It was all from Emily's setting them to
+seal her letter, that is plain now.'
+
+'Would not Ada have said so?' asked Eleanor.
+
+Lily sighed at the thought of what Eleanor had yet to learn.
+
+'Did you tell them to seal your letter, Emily?' said Mr. Mohun.
+
+'I am sorry to say that I did tell them to send it,' said Emily, 'but
+I said nothing about sealing, as Jane remembers, and I forgot that
+Maurice's gunpowder was in the room.'
+
+Eleanor shook her head sorrowfully, and looked down at her knitting,
+and Lily knew that her mind was made up respecting little Henry's
+dwelling-place.
+
+It was some comfort to have raised no false expectations.
+
+'Ada must not be frightened and agitated to-night,' said Mr. Mohun,
+'but I hope you will talk to her to-morrow, Eleanor. Well, Claude,
+have you made Phyllis understand that she is acquitted?'
+
+'Scarcely,' said Claude; 'she is so overcome and worn out, that I
+thought she had better go to bed, and wake in her proper senses to-
+morrow.'
+
+'A very unconscious heroine,' said William. 'She is a wonder--I
+never thought her anything but an honest sort of romp.'
+
+'I have long thought her a wonderful specimen of obedience,' said Mr.
+Mohun.
+
+William and Claude now walked to the parsonage, and the council broke
+up; but it must not be supposed that this was the last that Emily and
+Maurice heard on the subject.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII: JOYS AND SORROWS
+
+
+
+'Complaint was heard on every part
+Of something disarranged.'
+
+The next day, Sunday, was one of the most marked in Lily's life. It
+was the first time she saw Mr. Devereux after his illness, and though
+Claude had told her he was going to church, it gave her a sudden
+thrill of joy to see him there once more, and perhaps she never felt
+more thankful than when his name was read before the Thanksgiving.
+After the service there was an exchange of greetings, but Lily spoke
+no word, she felt too happy and too awe-struck to say anything, and
+she walked back to the New Court in silence.
+
+In the afternoon she had hopes that a blessing would be granted to
+her, for which at one time she had scarcely dared to hope; and she
+felt convinced that so it would be when she saw that Mr. Devereux
+wore his surplice, although, as in the morning, his friend read the
+service. After the Second Lesson there was a pause, and then Mr.
+Devereux left the chair by the altar, walked along the aisle, and
+took his stand on the step of the font. Lily's heart beat high as
+she saw who were gathering round him--Mrs. Eden, Andrew Grey, James
+Harrington, and Mrs. Naylor, who held in her arms a healthy, rosy-
+checked boy of a year old.
+
+She could not have described the feelings which made her eyes
+overflow with tears, as she saw Mr. Devereux's thin hand sprinkle the
+drops over the brow of the child, and heard him say, 'Robert, I
+baptize thee'--words which she had heard in dreams, and then awakened
+to remember that the parish was at enmity with the pastor, the child
+unbaptized, and herself, in part, the cause.
+
+The name of the little boy was an additional pledge of
+reconciliation, and at the same time it made her feel again what had
+been the price of his baptism. When she looked back upon the dreary
+feelings which she had so lately experienced, it seemed to her as if
+she might believe that this christening was, as it were, a pledge of
+pardon, and an earnest of better things.
+
+Naylor, who had recovered much more slowly than Mr. Devereux, was at
+church for the first time, and after the service Mr. Mohun sought him
+out in the churchyard, and heartily shook hands with him. Lily would
+gladly have followed his example, but she only stood by Eleanor and
+Mrs. Weston, who were speaking to Mrs. Eden and Mrs. Naylor, admiring
+the little boy, and praising him for his good behaviour in church.
+
+Love of babies was a strong bond between Mrs. Weston and Mrs.
+Hawkesworth, who seemed to become well acquainted from the first
+moment that little Henry was mentioned; and Lily was well pleased to
+see that in Jane's phrase Eleanor 'took to her friends so well.'
+
+And yet this day brought with it some annoyances, which once would
+have fretted her so much as to interfere even with such joy as she
+now felt. The song, with which she had taken so much pains, ought to
+have been sent home a week before, but owing to the delay caused by
+Emily's carelessness, it had been burnt in the fire in the
+schoolroom, and Lily could not feel herself forgiven till she had
+talked the disaster over in private with her friend, and this was out
+of her power throughout the day, for something always prevented her
+from getting Alethea alone. In the morning Jane stuck close to her,
+and in the afternoon William walked to the school gate with them.
+But Alethea's manner was kinder towards her than ever, and she was
+quite satisfied about her.
+
+It gave her more pain to perceive that Emily in every possible manner
+avoided being alone with her. It was by her desire that Phyllis came
+to sleep in their room; she would keep Jane talking there, give
+Esther some employment which kept her in their presence, linger in
+the drawing-room while Lilias was dressing, and at bedtime be too
+sleepy to say anything but good-night.
+
+That Sunday was a sorrowful one to Eleanor; for in the course of the
+conversation with Ada, which Mr. Mohun had desired her to hold, she
+became conscious of the little girl's double-dealing ways. It was
+only by a very close cross-examination that she was able to extract
+from her a true account of the disaster, and though Ada never went so
+far as actually to tell a falsehood, it was evident that she was
+willing to conceal as much as possible, and to throw the blame on
+other people. And when the real facts were confessed she did not
+seem able to comprehend why she was regarded with displeasure; her
+instinct of truth and obedience was lost for the time, and Eleanor
+saw it with the utmost pain. Adeline had been her especial darling,
+and cold as her manner had often been towards the others, it ever was
+warm towards the motherless little one, whom she had tended and
+cherished with most anxious care from her earliest infancy. She had
+left her gentle, candid, and affectionate; a loving, engaging, little
+creature, and how did she find her now? Her fair bright face
+disfigured, her caresses affected, her mind turned to deceit and
+prevarication! Well might Eleanor feel it more than ever painful to
+leave her own little Henry to the care of others; and well it was for
+her that she had learned to find comfort in the consciousness that
+her duty was clear.
+
+The next morning Emily learned what was Henry's destination.
+
+'Oh! Eleanor,' said she, 'why do you not leave him here? We should
+be so rejoiced to have him.'
+
+'Thank you, I am afraid it is out of the question,' answered Eleanor,
+quietly.
+
+'Why, dear Eleanor? You know how glad we should be. I should have
+thought,' proceeded Emily, a little hurt, 'that you would have wished
+him to live in your own home.'
+
+Eleanor did not speak, and Emily, who had the little boy in her arms,
+went on talking to him: 'Come, baby, let us persuade mamma to let
+you stay with Aunt Emily. Ask papa, Henry, won't you? Seriously,
+Eleanor, has Frank considered how much better it would be to have him
+in the country?'
+
+'He has, Emily; he once wished much to leave him here.'
+
+'I am sure grandpapa would like it,' said Emily. 'Do you observe,
+Eleanor, how fond he is of baby, always calling him Harry too, as if
+he liked the sound of the name?'
+
+'It has all been talked over, Emily, and it cannot be.'
+
+'With papa?' asked Emily in surprise.
+
+'No, with Lily.'
+
+'With Lily!' exclaimed Emily. 'Did not Aunt Lily wish to keep you,
+Harry? I thought she was very fond of you.'
+
+'You had better inquire no further,' said Eleanor, 'except of your
+own conscience.'
+
+'Did Lily think us unfit to take care of him?' asked Emily, in
+surprise.
+
+As she spoke Lily herself came in, the key of the storeroom in her
+hand, and looks of consternation on her face. She came to announce a
+terrible deficiency in the preserved quinces, which she herself had
+carefully put aside on a shelf in the storeroom, and which Emily said
+she had not touched in her absence.
+
+'Let me see,' said Eleanor, rising, and setting off to the storeroom;
+Emily and Lily followed, with a sad suspicion of the truth. On the
+way they looked into the nursery, to give little Henry to his nurse,
+and to ask Jane, who was sitting with Ada, what she remembered about
+it. Jane knew nothing, and they went on to the storeroom, where
+Eleanor, quite in her element, began rummaging, arranging, and
+sighing over the confusion, while Lily lent a helping hand, and Emily
+stood by, wishing that her sister would not trouble herself.
+Presently Jane came running up with a saucer in her hand, containing
+a quarter of a quince and some syrup, which she said she had found in
+the nursery cupboard, in searching for a puzzle which Ada wanted.
+
+'And,' said Jane, 'I should guess that Miss Ada herself knew
+something about it, for when I could not find the puzzle in the
+right-hand cupboard, she was so very unwilling that I should look
+into that one; she said there was nothing there but the boys' old
+playthings and Esther's clothes. And I do not know whether you saw
+how she fidgeted when you were talking about the quinces, before you
+went up.'
+
+'It is much too plain,' sighed Lily. 'Oh! Rachel, why did we not
+listen to you?'
+
+'Do you suppose,' said Eleanor, 'that Ada has been in the habit of
+taking the key and helping herself?'
+
+'No,' said Emily, 'but that Esther has helped her.'
+
+'Ah!' said Eleanor, 'I never thought it wise to take her, but how
+could she get the key? You do not mean that you trusted it out of
+your own keeping.'
+
+'It began while we were ill,' faltered Emily, 'and afterwards it was
+difficult to bring matters into their former order.'
+
+'But oh, Eleanor, what is to be done?' sighed Lily.
+
+'Speak to papa, of course,' said Eleanor. 'He is gone to the castle,
+and in the meantime we had better take an exact account of everything
+here.'
+
+'And Esther? And Ada?' inquired the sisters.
+
+'I think it will be better to speak to him before making so grave an
+accusation,' said Eleanor.
+
+They now commenced that wearisome occupation--a complete setting-to-
+rights; Eleanor counted, weighed, and measured, and extended her
+cares from the stores to every other household matter. Emily made
+her escape, and went to sit with Ada; but Lily and Jane toiled for
+several hours with Eleanor, till Lily was so heated and wearied that
+she was obliged to give up a walk to Broomhill, and spend another day
+without a talk with Alethea. However, she was so patient, ready, and
+good-humoured, that Eleanor was well pleased with her. She could
+hardly think of the slight vexation, when her mind was full of sorrow
+and shame on Esther's account. It was she who, contrary to the
+advice of her elders, had insisted on bringing her into the house;
+she had allowed temptation to be set in her way, and had not taken
+sufficient pains to strengthen her principles; and how could she do
+otherwise than feel guilty of all Esther's faults, and of those into
+which she had led Adeline?
+
+On Mr. Mohun's return Ada was interrogated. She pitied herself--said
+she did not think papa would be angry--prevaricated--and tried to
+coax away his inquiries, but all in vain; and at length, by slow
+degrees, the confession was drawn from her that she had been used to
+asking Esther for morsels of sweet things when she was sent to the
+storeroom; that afterwards she had seen her packing up some tea and
+sugar to take to her mother, and that Esther on that occasion, and
+several others, purchased her silence by giving her a share of
+pilfered sweetmeats. Telling her that he only spared her a very
+severe punishment for the present, on account of her illness, Mr.
+Mohun left her, and on his way downstairs met Phyllis.
+
+'Phyl,' said he, 'did Esther ever give you sweet things out of the
+storeroom?'
+
+'Once, papa, when she had been putting out some currant jam, she
+offered me what had been left in the spoon.'
+
+'Did you take it?'
+
+'No, papa, for Eleanor used to say it was a bad trick to lick out
+spoons.'
+
+'Did you ever know that she took tea and sugar from the storeroom,
+for her mother?'
+
+'Took home tea and sugar to her mother! She could not have done it,
+papa. It would be stealing!'
+
+Esther, who was next called for, cried a great deal, and begged for
+pardon, pleading again and again that -
+
+'It was mother,' an answer which made her young mistresses again sigh
+over the remembrance of Rachel's disregarded advice. Her fate was
+left for consideration and consultation with Mr. Devereux, for Mr.
+Mohun, seeing himself to blame for having allowed her to be placed in
+a situation of so much trial, and thinking that there was much that
+was good about her, did not like to send her to her home, where she
+was likely to learn nothing but what was bad.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV: LOVE'S LABOUR LOST
+
+
+
+'And well, with ready hand and heart,
+ Each task of toilsome duty taking,
+Did one dear inmate take her part,
+ The last asleep, the earliest waking.'
+
+In the course of the afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called,
+to see Eleanor, inquire after Ada, and make the final arrangements
+for going to a morning concert at Raynham the next day. Lady
+Rotherwood was afraid of the fatigue, and Florence therefore wished
+to accompany her cousins, who, as Eleanor meant to stay at home, were
+to be under Mrs. Weston's protection. Lady Florence and her brother,
+therefore, agreed to ride home by Broomhill, and mention the plan to
+Mrs. Weston, and took their leave, appointing Adam's shop as the
+place of rendezvous.
+
+Next morning Emily, Lilias, and Jane happened to be together in the
+drawing-room, when Mr. Mohun and Claude came in, the former saying to
+Lily, 'Here is the mason's account for the gravestone which you
+wished to have put up to Agnes Eden; it comes to two pounds. You
+undertook half the expense, and as Claude is going to Raynham, he
+will pay for it if you will give him your sovereign.'
+
+'I will,' said Lily, 'but first I must ask Emily to pay me for the
+London commissions.'
+
+Emily repented not having had a private conference with Lily.
+
+'So you have not settled your accounts,' said Mr. Mohun. 'I hope
+Lily has not ruined you, Emily.'
+
+'I thought her a mirror of prudence,' said Claude.
+
+'Well, Emily, is the sovereign forthcoming? I am going directly, for
+Frank has something to do at Raynham, and William is going to try his
+gray in the phaeton.'
+
+'I am afraid you will think me very silly,' said Emily, after some
+deliberation, 'but I hope Lily will not be very angry when I confess
+that seven shillings is the sum total of my property.'
+
+'Oh, Emily,' cried Lily, in dismay, 'what has become of your five
+pounds?'
+
+'I gave them as a subscription for a clergyman's widow in distress,'
+said Emily; 'it was the impulse of a moment, I could not help it,
+and, dear Lily, I hope it will not inconvenience you.'
+
+'If papa will be kind enough to wait for this pound till Michaelmas,'
+said Lily.
+
+'I would wait willingly,' said Mr. Mohun, 'but I will not see you
+cheated. How much does she owe you?'
+
+'The commissions came to six pounds three,' said Lily, looking down.
+
+'But, Lily,' said Jane, 'you forget the old debt.'
+
+'Never mind,' whispered Lily; but Mr. Mohun asked what Jane had said,
+and Claude repeated her speech, upon which he inquired, 'What old
+debt?'
+
+'Papa,' said Emily, in her most candid tone, 'I do not know what I
+should have done but for Lily's kindness. Really, I cannot get on
+with my present allowance; being the eldest, so many expenses come
+upon me.'
+
+'Then am I to understand,' replied Mr. Mohun, 'that your foolish
+vanity has led you to encroach on your sister's kindness, and to
+borrow of her what you had no reasonable hope of repaying? Again,
+Lily, what does she owe you?'
+
+Emily felt the difference between the sharp, curious eyes with which
+Jane regarded her, and the sorrowful downcast looks of Lily, who
+replied, 'The old debt is four pounds, but that does not signify.'
+
+'Well,' resumed her father, 'I cannot blame you for your good-nature,
+though an older person might have acted otherwise. You must have
+managed wonderfully well, to look always so well dressed with only
+half your proper income. Here is the amount of the debt. Is it
+right? And, Lily, one thing more; I wish to thank you for what you
+have done towards keeping this house in order. You have worked hard,
+and endured much, and from all I can gather, you have prevented much
+mischief. Much has unfairly been thrown upon you, and you have well
+and steadily done your duty. For you, Emily, I have more to say to
+you, but I shall not enter on it at present, for it is late. You had
+better get ready, or you will keep the others waiting.'
+
+'I do not think I can go,' sighed Emily.
+
+'You are wanted,' said Mr. Mohun. 'I do not think your aunt would
+like Florence to go without you.'
+
+Lily had trembled as much under her father's praise as Emily under
+his blame. She did not feel as if his commendation was merited, and
+longed to tell him of her faults and follies, but this was no fit
+time, and she hastened to prepare for her expedition, her spirits
+scarcely in time for a party of pleasure. Jane talked about the
+30th, and asked questions about London, all the way to Raynham, and
+both Emily and Lily were glad to join in her chatter, in hopes of
+relieving their own embarrassment.
+
+On arriving at the place of meeting they found Lady Florence watching
+for them.
+
+'I am glad you are come,' said she, 'Rotherwood will always set out
+either too soon or too late, and this time it was too soon, so here
+we have been full a quarter of an hour, but he does not care. There
+he is, quite engrossed with his book.'
+
+Lord Rotherwood was standing by the counter, reading so intently that
+he did not see his cousins' arrival. When they entered he just
+looked up, shook hands, asked after Ada, and went on reading. Lily
+began looking for some books for the school, which she had long
+wished for, and was now able to purchase; Emily sat down in a
+melancholy, abstracted mood, and Florence and Jane stood together
+talking.
+
+'You know you are all to come early,' said the former, 'I do not know
+how we should manage without you. Rotherwood insists on having
+everything the same day--poor people first, and gentry and farmers
+altogether. Mamma does not like it, and I expect we shall be
+dreadfully tired; but he says he will not have the honest poor men
+put out for the fashionables; and you know we are all to dance with
+everybody. But Jenny, who is this crossing the street? Look, you
+have an eye for oddities.'
+
+'Miss Fitchett, the subscription-hunter,' said Jane.
+
+'She is actually coming to hunt us. I believe I have my purse. Oh!
+Emily is to be the first victim.'
+
+Miss Fitchett advanced to Emily, and saying that she believed she had
+the honour to address Miss Mohun, began to tell her that her friend
+having been prematurely informed of her small efforts, had with a
+noble spirit of independence begged that the subscription might not
+be continued, and that what had already been given might be returned,
+and she rejoiced in this opportunity of making the explanation. But
+Miss Fitchett could not bear to relinquish the five-pound note, and
+added, that perhaps Miss Mohun might not object to apply her
+subscription to some other object, the Dorcas Society for instance.
+
+'Thank you, I have no interest in the Dorcas Society,' said Emily; a
+reply which brought upon her a full account of all its aims and
+objects; and as still her polite looks spoke nothing of assent, Miss
+Fitchett went on with a string of other societies, speaking the
+louder and the more eagerly in the hope of attracting the attention
+of the young marquis and his sister. Emily was easily overwhelmed
+with words, and not thinking it lady-like to claim her money, yet
+feeling that none of these societies were fit objects for it, she
+stood confused and irresolute, unwilling either to consent or refuse.
+Jane, perceiving her difficulty, turned to Lord Rotherwood, and
+rousing him from his book, explained Emily's distress in a few words,
+and sent him to her rescue. He stepped forward just as Miss
+Fitchett, taking silence for consent, was proceeding to thank Emily;
+'I think you misunderstand Miss Mohun,' said he. 'Since her
+subscription is not needed by the person for whom it was intended,
+she would be glad to have it restored. She does not wish to
+encourage any unauthorised societies.'
+
+Boy as he was, in appearance still more than in age, there was a
+dignity in his manner which, together with the principle on which he
+spoke, overawed Miss Fitchett even more than his rank. She only
+said, 'Oh! my lord, I beg your pardon. Certainly, only--'
+
+The note was placed in Emily's hands, and with a bow from Lord
+Rotherwood, she retreated, murmuring to herself the remonstrance
+which she had not courage to bestow upon the Marquis.
+
+'Thank you, thank you, Rotherwood,' said Emily; 'you have done me a
+great service.'
+
+'Well done, Rotherwood,' said Florence; 'you have given the old lady
+something to reflect upon.'
+
+'Made a public announcement of principle,' said Lily.
+
+'I was determined to give her a reason,' said the Marquis, laughing,
+'but I assure you I felt like the stork with its head in the wolf's
+mouth, I thought she would give me a screed of doctrine. How came
+you to let your property get unto her clutches, Emily?'
+
+'It was a subscription for Mrs. Aylmer,' said Emily.
+
+'Our curate's wife!' cried he with a start; 'how was it? Florence,
+did you know anything? I thought she was in London. Why were we in
+the dark? Tell me all.'
+
+'All I know is that she is living somewhere in Raynham, and last week
+there was a paper here to say that she was in want of the means of
+fitting out her son for India.'
+
+'Yes, yes, Johnny, I know my father did get a promise for him--well!'
+
+'That is all I know, except that she does not choose to be a beggar.'
+
+'Poor Mrs. Aylmer! shameful neglect! she shall not be ill-used any
+longer, I will find her out this instant. Don't wait for me.'
+
+And after a few words to Mr. Adams, off he went, walking as fast as
+he could, and leaving the young ladies not without fear of another
+invasion. Soon, however, the brothers came in, and presently after
+Mrs. Weston appeared. It was agreed that Lord Rotherwood should be
+left to his own devices, and they set out for the concert-room. Poor
+Florence lost much pleasure in disappointment at his non-appearance,
+but when the concert was over they found him sitting in the carriage,
+reading. As soon as they appeared he sprang out, and came to meet
+them, pouring rapidly out a history of his adventures.
+
+'Then you have found them, and what can be done for them?'
+
+'Everything ought to be done, but Mrs. Aylmer has a spirit of
+independence. That foolish woman's advertisement was unknown to her
+till Emily's five pounds came in, so fine a nest-egg that she could
+not help cackling, whereupon Mrs. Aylmer insisted on having every
+farthing returned.'
+
+'Can she provide the boy's outfit?'
+
+'She says so, or rather that her daughter can, but I shall see about
+that. It is worth while to be of age. Imagine! That bank which
+failed was the end of my father's legacy. They must have lived on a
+fraction of nothing! Edward went to sea. Miss Aylmer went out as a
+governess. Now she is at home.'
+
+'Miss Aylmer!' exclaimed Miss Weston, 'I know she was a clergyman's
+daughter. Do you know the name of the family she lived with?'
+
+'Was it Grant?' said William. 'I remember hearing of her going to
+some Grants.'
+
+'It was,' said Alethea; 'she must be the same. Is she at home?'
+
+'Yes,' said Lord Rotherwood, 'and you may soon see her, for I mean to
+have them all to stay at the castle as soon as our present visitors
+are gone. My mother and Florence shall call upon them on Friday.'
+
+'Now,' said Claude, 'I have not found out what brought them back to
+Raynham.'
+
+'Have you lived at Beechcroft all your life, and never discovered
+that there is a grammar-school at Raynham, with special privileges
+for the sons of clergymen of the diocese?'
+
+A few more words, and the cousins parted; Emily by no means sorry
+that she had been obliged to go to Raynham. She tendered the five-
+pound note to her father, but he desired her to wait till Friday, and
+then to bring him a full account of her expenditure of the year. Her
+irregular ways made this almost impossible, especially as in the
+present state of affairs she wished to avoid a private conference
+with either Lily or Jane. She was glad that an invitation to dine
+and sleep at the castle on Wednesday would save her from the peril of
+having to talk to Lily in the evening. Reginald came home on
+Tuesday, to the great joy of all the party, and especially to that of
+Phyllis. This little maiden was more puzzled by the events that had
+taken place than conscious of the feeling which she had once thought
+must be so delightful. She could scarcely help perceiving that every
+one was much more kind to her than usual, especially Claude and Lily,
+and Lord Rotherwood said things which she could not at all
+understand. Her observation to Reginald was, 'Was it not lucky I had
+a cough on Twelfth Day, or Claude would not have told me what to do
+about gunpowder?'
+
+Reginald troubled Phyllis much by declaring that nothing should
+induce him to kiss his nephew, and she was terribly shocked by the
+indifference with which Eleanor treated his neglect, even when it
+branched out into abuse of babies in general, and in particular of
+Henry's bald head and turned-up nose.
+
+In the evening of Wednesday Phyllis was sitting with Ada in the
+nursery, when Reginald came up with the news that the party
+downstairs were going to practise country dances. Eleanor was to
+play, Claude was to dance with Lily, and Frank with Jane, and he
+himself wanted Phyllis for a partner.
+
+'Oh!' sighed Ada, 'I wish I was there to dance with you, Redgie!
+What are the others doing?'
+
+'Maurice is reading, and William went out as soon as dinner was over;
+make haste, Phyl.'
+
+'Don't go,' said Ada, 'I shall be alone all to-morrow, and I want
+you.'
+
+'Nonsense,' said Reginald, 'do you think she is to sit poking here
+all day, playing with those foolish London things of yours?'
+
+'But I am ill, Redgie. I wish you would not be cross. Everybody is
+cross to me now, I think.'
+
+'I will stay, Ada,' said Phyllis. 'You know, Redgie, I dance like a
+cow.'
+
+'You dance better than nothing,' said Reginald, 'I must have you.'
+
+'But you are not ill, Redgie,' said Phyllis.
+
+He went down in displeasure, and was forced to consider Sir Maurice's
+picture as his partner, until presently the door opened, and Phyllis
+appeared. 'So you have thought better of it,' cried he.
+
+'No,' said Phyllis, 'I cannot come to dance, but Ada wants you to
+leave off playing. She says the music makes her unhappy, for it
+makes her think about to-morrow.'
+
+'Rather selfish, Miss Ada,' said Claude.
+
+'Stay here, Phyllis, now you are come,' said Mr. Mohun, 'I will go
+and speak to Ada.'
+
+Phyllis was now captured, and made to take her place opposite to
+Reginald; but more than once she sighed under the apprehension that
+Ada was receiving a lecture. This was the case; and very little did
+poor Ada comprehend the change that had taken place in the conduct of
+almost every one towards her; she did not perceive that she was
+particularly naughty, and yet she had suddenly become an object of
+blame, instead of a spoiled pet. Formerly her little slynesses had
+been unnoticed, and her overbearing ways towards Phyllis scarcely
+remarked, but now they were continually mentioned as grievous faults.
+Esther, her especial friend and comforter, was scarcely allowed to
+come into the same room with her; Hannah treated her with a kind of
+grave, silent respect, far from the familiarity which she liked;
+little Henry's nurse never would talk to her, and if it had not been
+for Phyllis, she would have been very miserable. On Phyllis,
+however, she repaid herself for all the mortifications that she
+received, while the sweet-tempered little girl took all her
+fretfulness and exactions as results of her illness, and went on
+pitying her, and striving to please her.
+
+When Phyllis came up to wish her good-night, she was received with an
+exclamation at her lateness in a peevish tone: 'Yes, I am late,'
+said Phyllis, merrily, 'but we had not done dancing till tea-time,
+and then Eleanor was so kind as to say I might sit up to have some
+tea with them.'
+
+'Ah! and you quite forgot how tiresome it is up here, with nobody to
+speak to,' said Ada. 'How cross they were not to stop the music when
+I said it made me miserable!'
+
+'Claude said it was selfish to want to stop five people's pleasure
+for one,' said Phyllis.
+
+'But I am so ill,' said Ada. 'If Claude was as uncomfortable as I
+am, he would know how to be sorry for me. And only think--Phyl, what
+are you doing? Do not you know I do not like the moonlight to come
+on me. It is like a great face laughing at me.'
+
+'Well, I like the moon so much!' said Phyllis, creeping behind the
+curtain to look out, 'there is something so white and bright in it;
+when it comes on the bed-clothes, it makes me go to sleep, thinking
+about white robes, oh! and all sorts of nice things.'
+
+'I can't bear the moon,' said Ada; 'do not you know, Maurice says
+that the moon makes the people go mad, and that is the reason it is
+called lunacy, after la lune?'
+
+'I asked Miss Weston about that,' said Phyllis, 'because of the
+Psalm, and she said it was because it was dangerous to go to sleep in
+the open air in hot countries. Ada, I wish you could see now. There
+is the great round moon in the middle of the sky, and the sky such a
+beautiful colour, and a few such great bright stars, and the trees so
+dark, and the white lilies standing up on the black pond, and the
+lawn all white with dew! what a fine day it will be to-morrow!'
+
+'A fine day for you!' said Ada, 'but only think of poor me all alone
+by myself.'
+
+'You will have baby,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Baby--if he could talk it would be all very well. It is just like
+the cross people in books. Here I shall lie and cry all the time,
+while you are dancing about as merry as can be.'
+
+'No, no, Ada, you will not do that,' said Phyllis, with tears in her
+eyes. 'There is baby with all his pretty ways, and you may teach him
+to say Aunt Ada, and I will bring you in numbers of flowers, and
+there is your new doll, and all the pretty things that came from
+London, and the new book of Fairy Tales, and all sorts--oh! no, do
+not cry, Ada.'
+
+'But I shall, for I shall think of you dancing, and not caring for
+me.'
+
+'I do care, Ada--why do you say that I do not? I cannot bear it,
+Ada, dear Ada.'
+
+'You don't, or you would not go and leave me alone.'
+
+'Then, Ada, I will not go,' said Phyllis; 'I could not bear to leave
+you crying here all alone.'
+
+'Thank you, dear good Phyl, but I think you will not have much loss.
+You know you do not like dancing, and you cannot do it well, and they
+will be sure to laugh at you.'
+
+'And I daresay Redgie and Marianne will tell us all about it,' said
+Phyllis, sighing. 'I should rather like to have seen it, but they
+will tell us.'
+
+'Then do you promise to stay?--there's a dear,' said Ada.
+
+'Yes,' said Phyllis. 'Cousin Robert is coming in, and that will be
+very nice, and I hope he will not look as he did the day the
+gunpowder went off--oh, dear!' She went back to the window to get
+rid of her tears unperceived. 'Ah,' cried she, 'there is some one in
+the garden!'
+
+'A man!' screamed Ada--'a thief, a robber--call somebody!'
+
+'No, no,' said Phyllis, laughing, 'it is only William; he has been
+out all the evening, and now papa has come out to speak to him, and
+they are walking up and down together. I wonder whether he has been
+sitting with Cousin Robert or at Broomhill! Well, good-night, Ada.
+Here comes Hannah.'
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV: THE THIRTIETH OF JULY
+
+
+
+'The heir, with roses in his shoes,
+That night might village partner choose.'
+
+The 30th of July was bright and clear, and Phyllis was up early,
+gathering flowers, which, with the help of Jane's nimble fingers, she
+made into elegant little bouquets for each of her sisters, and for
+Claude.
+
+'How is this?' said Mr. Hawkesworth, pretending to look disconsolate,
+'am I to sing "Fair Phyllida flouts me," or why is my button-hole
+left destitute?'
+
+'Perhaps that is for you on the side-table,' said Lily.
+
+'Oh! no,' said Phyllis, 'those are some Provence roses for Miss
+Weston and Marianne, because Miss Weston likes those, and they have
+none at Broomhill. Redgie is going to take care of them. I will get
+you a nosegay, Frank. I did not know you liked it.'
+
+She started up. 'How prudent, Phyllis,' said Eleanor, 'not to have
+put on your muslin frock yet.'
+
+'Oh! I am not going,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Not going!' was the general outcry.
+
+'No, poor Ada cries so about being left at home with only baby, that
+I cannot bear it, and so I promised to stay.'
+
+Away went Phyllis, and Reginald exclaimed, 'Well, she shall not be
+served so. I will go and tell Ada so this instant.'
+
+Off he rushed, and putting in his head at the nursery door, shouted,
+'Ada, I am come to tell you that Phyl is not to be made your black-a-
+moor slave! She shall go, that is settled.'
+
+Down he went with equal speed, without waiting for an answer, and
+arrived while Eleanor was saying that she thought Ada was provided
+with amusement with the baby, her playthings, and books, and that Mr.
+Devereux had promised to make her a visit.
+
+'Anybody ought to stay at home rather than Phyllis,' said Lily; 'I
+think I had better stay.'
+
+'No, no, Lily,' said Jane, 'you are more wanted than I am; you are
+really worth talking to and dancing with; I had much better be at
+home.'
+
+'I forgot!' exclaimed William. 'Mrs. Weston desired me to say that
+she is not going, and she will take care of Ada. Mr. Weston will set
+her down at half-past ten, and take up one of us.'
+
+'I will be that one,' said Reginald, 'I have not seen Miss Weston
+since I came home. I meant to walk to Broomhill after dinner
+yesterday, only the Baron stopped me about that country-dance. Last
+Christmas I made her promise to dance with me to-day.'
+
+Lily had hoped to be that one, but she did not oppose Reginald, and
+turned to listen to Eleanor, who was saying, 'Let us clearly
+understand how every one is to go, it will save a great deal of
+confusion. You and Jane, and Maurice, go in the phaeton, do not you?
+And who drives you?'
+
+'William, I believe,' said Lily. 'Claude goes earlier, so he rides
+the gray. Then there is the chariot for you and Frank, and papa and
+Phyllis.'
+
+So it was proposed, but matters turned out otherwise. The phaeton,
+which, with a promoted cart-horse, was rather a slow conveyance, was
+to set out first, but the whole of the freight was not ready in time.
+The ladies were in the hall as soon as it came to the door, but
+neither of the gentlemen were forthcoming. Reginald, who was
+wandering in the hall, was sent to summon them; but down he came in
+great wrath. Maurice had declared that he was not ready, and they
+must wait for him till he had tied his neckcloth, which Reginald
+opined would take three quarters of an hour, as he was doing it
+scientifically, and William had said that he was not going in the gig
+at all, that he had told Wat Greenwood to drive, and that Reginald
+must go instead of Maurice.
+
+In confirmation of the startling fact Wat, who had had a special
+invitation from the Marquis, was sitting in the phaeton in his best
+black velvet coat. Jane only hoped that Emily would not look out of
+the window, or she would certainly go into fits on seeing them arrive
+with the old phaeton, the thick-legged cart-horse, and Wat Greenwood
+for a driver; and Reginald, after much growling at Maurice, much
+bawling at William's door, and, as Jane said, romping and roaring in
+all parts of the house, was forced to be resigned to his fate, and
+all the way to Hetherington held a very amusing conversation with his
+good-natured friend the keeper.
+
+They were overtaken, nodded to, and passed by the rest of their
+party. Maurice had been reduced to ride the pony, William came with
+the 'Westons, and the chariot load was just as had been before
+arranged.
+
+Claude came out to meet them at the door, saying, 'I need not have
+gone so early. What do you think has become of the hero of the day?
+Guess, I will just give you this hint,
+
+
+"Though on pleasure he was bent, he had no selfish mind."'
+
+
+'Oh! the Aylmers, I suppose,' said Lilias.
+
+'Right, Lily, he heard something at dinner yesterday about a school
+for clergymen's sons, which struck him as likely to suit young
+Devereux Aylmer, and off he set at seven o'clock this morning to
+Raynham, to breakfast with Mrs. Aylmer, and talk to her about it.
+Never let me hear again that he is engrossed with his own affairs!'
+
+'And why is he in such a hurry?' asked Lily.
+
+''Tis his nature,' said Claude, 'besides Travers, who mentioned this
+school, goes away to-morrow. My aunt is in a fine fright lest he
+should not come back in time. Did not you hear her telling papa so
+in the drawing-room?'
+
+'There he is, riding up to the door,' said Phyllis, who had joined
+them in the hall. Lord Rotherwood stopped for a few moments at the
+door to give some directions to the servants, and then came quickly
+in. 'Ah, there you are!--What time is it? It is all right, Claude--
+Devereux is just the right age. I asked him a few questions this
+morning, and he will stand a capital examination. Ha, Phyl, I am
+glad to see you.'
+
+'I wish you many happy returns of the day, Cousin Rotherwood.'
+
+'Thank you, Phyl, we had better see how we get through one such day
+before we wish it to return. Are the rest come?'
+
+He went on into the drawing-room, and hastily informing his mother
+that he had sent the carriage to fetch Miss Aylmer and her brothers
+to the feast, called Claude to come out on the lawn to look at the
+preparations. The bowling-green was to serve as drawing-room, and at
+one end was pitched an immense tent where the dinner was to be.
+
+'I say, Claude,' said he in his quickest and most confused way, 'I
+depend upon you for one thing. Do not let the Baron be too near me.'
+
+'The Baron of Beef?' said Claude.
+
+'No, the Baron of Beechcroft. If you wish my speech to be radara
+tadara, put him where I can imagine that he hears me.'
+
+'Very well,' said Claude, laughing; 'have you any other commands?'
+
+'No--yes, I have though. You know what we settled about the toasts.
+Hunt up old Farmer Elderfield as soon as he comes, and do not
+frighten him. If you could sit next to him and make him get up at
+the right time, it would be best. Tell him I will not let any one
+propose my health but my great-grandfather's tenant. You will manage
+it best. And tell Frank Hawkesworth, and Mr. Weston, or some of
+them, to manage so that the gentry may not sit together in a herd,
+two or three together would be best. Mind, Claude, I depend on you
+for being attentive to all the damsels. I cannot be everywhere at
+once, and I see your great Captain will be of no use to me.'
+
+Here news was brought that the labourers had begun to arrive, and the
+party went to the walnut avenue, where the feast was spread. It was
+pleasant to see so many poor families enjoying their excellent
+dinner; but perhaps the pleasantest sight was the lord of the feast
+speaking to each poor man with all his bright good-natured
+cordiality. Mr. Mohun was surprised to see how well he knew them
+all, considering how short a time he had been among them, and Lilias
+found Florence rise in her estimation, when she perceived that the
+inside of the Hetherington cottages were not unknown to her.
+
+'Do you know, Florence,' said she, as they walked back to the house
+together, 'I did you great injustice? I never expected you to know
+or care about poor people.'
+
+'No more I did till this winter,' said Florence; 'I could not do
+anything, you know, before. Indeed, I do not do much now, only
+Rotherwood has made me go into the school now and then; and when
+first we came, he made it his especial request that whenever a poor
+woman came to ask for anything I would go and speak to her. And so I
+could not help being interested about those I knew.'
+
+'How odd it is that we never talked about it,' said Lily.
+
+'I never talk of it,' said Florence, 'because mamma never likes to
+hear of my going into cottages with Rotherwood. Besides, somehow I
+thought you did it as a matter of duty, and not of pleasure. Oh!
+Rotherwood, is that you?'
+
+'The Aylmers are come,' said Lord Rotherwood, drawing her arm into
+his, 'and I want you to come and speak to them, Florence and Lily; I
+can't find any one; all the great elders have vanished. You know
+them of old, do not you, Lily?'
+
+'Of old? Yes; but of so old that I do not suppose they will know me.
+You must introduce me.'
+
+He hastened them to the drawing-room, where they found Miss Aylmer, a
+sensible, lady-like looking person, and two brothers, of about
+fifteen and thirteen.
+
+'Well, Miss Aylmer, I have brought you two old friends; so old, that
+they think you have forgotten them--my cousin Lilias, and my sister
+Florence.'
+
+'We have not forgotten you, Miss Aylmer,' said Florence, warmly
+shaking hands with her. 'You seem so entirely to belong to
+Hetherington that I scarcely knew the place without you.'
+
+There was something that particularly pleased Lily in the manner in
+which Miss Aylmer answered. Florence talked a little while, and then
+proposed to adjourn to the supplementary drawing-room--the lawn--
+where the company were already assembling.
+
+Florence was soon called off to receive some other guest, and Lilias
+spent a considerable time in sitting under a tree talking to Miss
+Aylmer, whom she found exceedingly pleasant and agreeable,
+remembering all that had happened during their former intercourse,
+and interested in everything that was going on. Lily was much amused
+when her companion asked her who that gentleman was--'that tall, thin
+young man, with dark hair, whom she had seen once or twice speaking
+to Lord Rotherwood?'
+
+The tall gentleman advanced, spoke to Miss Aylmer, told Lily that the
+world was verging towards the tent, and giving one arm to her and the
+other to Miss Aylmer, took that direction. In the meantime Phyllis
+had been walking about with her eldest sister, and wondering what had
+become of all the others. In process of time she found herself
+seated on a high bench in the tent, with a most beautiful pink-and-
+white sugar temple on the table before her. She was between Eleanor
+and Frank. All along one side of the table was a row of faces which
+she had never seen before, and she gazed at them in search of some
+well-known countenance. At last Mr. Weston caught her eye, and
+nodded to her. Next to him she saw Marianne, then Reginald; on the
+other side Alethea and William. A little tranquillised by seeing
+that every one was not lost, she had courage to eat some cold
+chicken, to talk to Frank about the sugar temple, and to make an
+inventory in her mind of the smartest bonnets for Ada's benefit. She
+was rather unhappy at not having found out when grace was said before
+dinner, and she made Eleanor promise to tell her in time to stand up
+after dinner. She could not, however, hear much, though warned in
+time, and by this time more at ease and rather enjoying herself than
+otherwise. Now Eleanor told her to listen, for Cousin Rotherwood was
+going to speak. She listened, but knew not what was said, until Mr.
+Hawkesworth told her it was Church and Queen. What Church and Queen
+had to do with Cousin Rotherwood's birthday she could not imagine,
+and she laid it up in her mind to ask Claude. The next time she was
+told to listen she managed to hear more. By the help of Eleanor's
+directions, she found out the speaker, an aged farmer, in a drab
+greatcoat, his head bald, excepting a little silky white hair, which
+fell over the collar of his coat. It was Mr. Elderfield, the oldest
+tenant on the estate, and he was saying in a slow deliberate tone
+that he was told he was to propose his lordship's health. It was a
+great honour for the like of him, and his lordship must excuse him if
+he did not make a fine speech. All he could say was, that he had
+lived eighty-three years on the estate, and held his farm nearly
+sixty years; he had seen three marquises of Rotherwood besides his
+present lordship, and he had always found them very good landlords.
+He hoped and believed his lordship was like his fathers, and he was
+sure he could do no better than tread in their steps. He proposed
+the health of Lord Rotherwood, and many happy returns of the day to
+him.
+
+The simplicity and earnestness of the old man's tones were
+appreciated by all, and the tremendous cheer, which almost terrified
+Phyllis, was a fit assent to the hearty good wishes of the old
+farmer.
+
+'Now comes the trial!' whispered Claude to Lilias, after he had
+vehemently contributed his proportion to the noise. Lilias saw that
+his colour had risen, as much as if he had to make a speech himself,
+and he earnestly examined the coronet on his fork, while every other
+eye was fixed on the Marquis. Eloquence was not to be expected; but,
+at least, Lord Rotherwood spoke clearly and distinctly.
+
+'My friends,' said he, 'you must not expect much of a speech from me;
+I can only thank you for your kindness, say how glad I am to see you
+here, and tell you of my earnest desire that I may not prove myself
+unworthy to be compared with my forefathers.' Here was a pause.
+Claude's hand shook, and Lily saw how anxious he was, but in another
+moment the Marquis went on smoothly. 'Now, I must ask you to drink
+the health of a gentleman who has done his utmost to compensate for
+the loss which we sustained nine years ago, and to whom I owe any
+good intentions which I may bring to the management of this property.
+I beg leave to propose the health of my uncle, Mr. Mohun, of
+Beechcroft.'
+
+Claude was much surprised, for his cousin had never given him a hint
+of his intention. It was a moment of great delight to all the young
+Mohuns when the cheer rose as loud and hearty as for the young lord
+himself, and Phyllis smiled, and wondered, when she saw her papa rise
+to make answer. He said that he could not attempt to answer Lord
+Rotherwood, as he had not heard what he said, but that he was much
+gratified by his having thought of him on this occasion, and by the
+goodwill which all had expressed. This was the last speech that was
+interesting; Lady Rotherwood's health and a few more toasts followed,
+and the party then left the tent for the lawn, where the cool air was
+most refreshing, and the last beams of the evening sun were lighting
+the tops of the trees.
+
+The dancing was now to begin, and this was the time for Claude to be
+useful. He had spent so much time at home, and had accompanied his
+father so often in his rides, that he knew every one, and he was
+inclined to make every exertion in the cause of his cousin, and on
+this occasion seemed to have laid aside his indolence and
+disinclination to speak to strangers.
+
+Lady Florence was also indefatigable, darting about, with a wonderful
+perception who everybody was, and with whom each would like to dance.
+She seized upon little Devereux Aylmer for her own partner before any
+one else had time to ask her, and carried him about the lawn, hunting
+up and pairing other shy people.
+
+'Why, Reginald, what are you about? You can manage a country-dance.
+Make haste; where is your partner?'
+
+'I meant to dance with Miss Weston,' said Reginald, piteously.
+
+'Miss Weston? Here she is.'
+
+'That is only Marianne,' said Reginald.
+
+'Oh! Miss Weston is dancing with William. Marianne, will you accept
+my apologies for this discourteous cousin of mine? I am perfectly
+horror-struck. There, Redgie, take her with a good grace; you will
+never have a better partner.'
+
+Marianne was only too glad to have Reginald presented to her,
+ungracious as he was, but the poor little couple met with numerous
+disasters. They neither of them knew the way through a country-
+dance, and were almost run over every time they went down the middle;
+Reginald's heels were very inconvenient to his neighbours; so much
+so, that once Claude thought it expedient to admonish him, that
+dancing was not merely an elegant name for football without a ball.
+Every now and then some of their friends gave them a hasty intimation
+that they were all wrong, but that they knew already but too well.
+At last, just when Marianne had turned scarlet with vexation, and
+Reginald was growing so desperate that he had thoughts of running a
+way, the dance came to an end, and Reginald, with very scanty
+politeness to his partner, rushed away to her sister, saying, in
+rather a reproachful tone, 'Miss Weston, you promised to dance with
+me.'
+
+'I have not forgotten my promise,' said Alethea, smiling.
+
+At the same moment Claude hurried up, saying, 'William, I want a
+partner for Miss Wilkins, of the Wold Farm. Miss Wilkins, let me
+introduce Captain Mohun.'
+
+'You see I have made the Captain available,' said Claude, presently
+after meeting Lord Rotherwood, as he speeded across the lawn.
+
+'Have you? I did not think him fair game,' said the Marquis. 'Where
+is your heroine, Claude? I have not seen her dancing.'
+
+'What heroine? What do you mean?'
+
+'Honest Phyl, of course. Did you think I meant Miss Weston?'
+
+'With Eleanor, somewhere. Is the next dance a quadrille?'
+
+Lord Rotherwood ran up the bank to the terraced walks, where the
+undancing part of the company sat or walked about. Soon he spied
+Phyllis standing by Eleanor, looking rather wearied. 'Phyllis, can
+you dance a quadrille?'
+
+Phyllis opened her eyes, and Eleanor desired her to answer.
+
+'Come, Phyllis, let me see what M. Le Roi has done for you.'
+
+He led her away, wondering greatly, and thinking how very good-
+natured Cousin Rotherwood was.
+
+Emily was much surprised to find Phyllis her vis a vis. Emily was
+very generally known and liked, and had no lack of grand partners,
+but she would have liked to dance with the Marquis. When the
+quadrille was over, she was glad to put herself in his way, by coming
+up to take charge of Phyllis.
+
+'Well done, Phyl,' said he; 'no mistakes. You must have another
+dance. Whom shall we find for you?'
+
+'Oh! Rotherwood,' said Emily, 'you cannot think how you gratified us
+all with your speech.'
+
+'Ah! I always set my heart on saying something of the kind; but I
+wished I could have dared to add the bride's health.'
+
+'The bride!'
+
+'Do not pretend to have no eyes,' said Lord Rotherwood, with a
+significant glance, which directed Emily's eyes to the terrace, where
+Mr. Mohun and Alethea were walking together in eager conversation.
+
+Emily was ready to sink into the earth. Jane's surmises, and the
+mysterious words of her father, left her no further doubt. At this
+moment some one asked her to dance, and scarcely knowing what she did
+or said, she walked to her place. Lord Rotherwood now found a
+partner for Phyllis, and a farmer's daughter for himself.
+
+This dance over, Phyllis's partner did not well know how to dispose
+of her, and she grew rather frightened on finding that none of her
+sisters were in sight. At last she perceived Reginald standing on
+the bank, and made her escape to him.
+
+'Redgie, did you see who I have been dancing with? Cousin Rotherwood
+and Claude's grand Oxford friend--Mr. Travers.'
+
+'It is all nonsense,' said Reginald. 'Come out of this mob of
+people.'
+
+'But where is Eleanor?'
+
+'Somewhere in the midst. They are all absurd together.'
+
+'What is the matter, Redgie?' asked Phyllis, unable to account for
+this extraordinary fit of misanthropy.
+
+'Papa and William both driving me about like a dog,' said Reginald;
+'first I danced with Miss Weston--then she saw that woman--that Miss
+Aylmer--shook hands--talked--and then nothing would serve her but to
+find papa. As soon as the Baron sees me he cries out, "Why are not
+you dancing, Redgie? We do not want you!" Up and down they walk,
+ever so long, and presently papa turns off, and begins talking to
+Miss Aylmer. Then, of course, I went back to Miss Weston, but then
+up comes William, as savage as one of his Canadian bears; he orders
+me off too, and so here I am! I am sure I am not going to ask any
+one else to dance. Come and walk with me in peace, Phyl. Do you see
+them?--Miss Weston and Marianne under that tulip-tree, and the
+Captain helping them to ice.'
+
+'Redgie, did you give Miss Weston her nosegay? Some one put such
+beautiful flowers in it, such as I never saw before.'
+
+'How could I? They sent me off with Lily and Jane. I told William I
+had the flowers in charge, and he said he would take care of them.
+By the bye, Phyl,' and Reginald gave a wondrous spring, 'I have it!
+I have it! I have it! If he is not in love with Miss Weston you may
+call me an ass for the rest of my life.'
+
+'I should not like to call you an ass, Redgie,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Very likely; but do not make me call you one. Hurrah! Now ask
+Marianne if it is not so. Marianne must know. How jolly! I say,
+Phyl, stay there, and I will fetch Marianne.'
+
+Away ran Reginald, and presently returned with Marianne, who was very
+glad to be invited to join Phyllis. She little knew what an
+examination awaited her.
+
+'Marianne,' began Phyllis, 'I'll tell you what--'
+
+'No, I will do it right,' said Reginald; 'you know nothing about it,
+Phyl. Marianne, is not something going on there?'
+
+'Going on?' said Marianne, 'Alethea is speaking to Mrs. Hawkesworth.'
+
+'Nonsense, I know better, Marianne. I have a suspicion that I could
+tell what the Captain was about yesterday when he walked off after
+dinner.'
+
+'How very wise you think you look, Reginald!' said Marianne, laughing
+heartily.
+
+'But tell us; do tell us, Marianne,' said Phyllis.
+
+'Tell you whet?'
+
+'Whether William is going to marry Miss Weston,' said the
+straightforward Phyllis. 'Redgie says so--only tell us. Oh! it
+would be so nice!'
+
+'How you blurt it out, Phyl,' said Reginald. 'You do not know how
+those things are managed. Mind, I found it out all myself. Just
+say, Marianne. Am not I right?'
+
+'I do not know whether I ought to tell,' said Marianne.
+
+'Oh! then it is all right,' said Reginald, 'and I found it out. Now,
+Marianne, there is a good girl, tell us all about it.'
+
+'You know I could not say "No" when you asked me,' said Marianne; 'I
+could not help it really; but pray do not tell anybody, or Captain
+Mohun will not like it.'
+
+'Does any one know?' said Reginald.
+
+'Only ourselves and Mr. Mohun; and I think Lord Rotherwood guesses,
+from something I heard him say to Jane.'
+
+'To Jane?' said Reginald. 'That is provoking; she will think she
+found it out all herself, and be so conceited!'
+
+'You need not be afraid,' said Marianne, laughing; 'Jane is on a
+wrong scent.'
+
+'Jane? Oh! I should like to see her out in her reckonings! I should
+like to have a laugh against her. What does she think, Marianne?'
+
+'Oh! I cannot tell you; it is too bad.'
+
+'Oh! do; do, pray. You may whisper it if it is too bad for Phyllis
+to hear.'
+
+'No, no,' said Marianne; 'it is nothing but nonsense. If you hear
+it, Phyllis shall too; but mind, you must promise not to say anything
+to anybody, or I do not know what will become of me.'
+
+'Well, we will not,' said Reginald; 'boys can always keep secrets,
+and I'll engage for Phyl. Now for it.'
+
+'She is in a terrible fright lest it should be Mr. Mohun. She got it
+into her head last autumn, and all I could say would not persuade her
+out of it. Why, she always calls me Aunt Marianne when we are alone.
+Now, Reginald, here comes Maurice. Do not say anything, I beg and
+entreat. It is my secret, you know. I daresay you will all be told
+to-morrow,--indeed, mamma said so,--but pray say nothing about me or
+Jane. It was only settled yesterday evening.'
+
+At this moment Maurice came up, with a message that Miss Weston and
+Eleanor were going away, and wanted the little girls. They followed
+him to the tent, which had been cleared of the tables, and lighted
+up, in order that the dancing might continue there. Most of their
+own party were collected at the entrance, watching for them. Lilias
+came up just as they did, and exclaimed in a tone of disappointment,
+on finding them preparing to depart. She had enjoyed herself
+exceedingly, found plenty of partners, and was not in the least
+tired.
+
+'Why should she not stay?' said William. 'Claude has engaged to stay
+to the end of everything, and he may as well drive her as ride the
+gray.'
+
+'And you, Jenny,' said Mr. Mohun, 'do you like to stay or go?
+Alethea will make room for you in the pony-carriage, or you may go
+with Eleanor.
+
+'With Eleanor, if you please,' said Jane.
+
+'Already, Jane?' said Lily. 'Are you tired?'
+
+Jane drew her aside. 'Tired of hearing that I was right about what
+you would not believe. Did you not hear what he called her? And
+Rotherwood has found it out.'
+
+'It is all gossip and mistake,' said Lily.
+
+Here Jane was called away by Eleanor, and departed with her; Lilias
+went to look for her aunt or Florence, but on the way was asked to
+dance by Mr. Carrington.
+
+'I suppose I may congratulate you,' said he in one of the pauses in
+the quadrille.
+
+Lily thought it best to misunderstand, and answered, 'Everything has
+gone off very well.'
+
+'Very. Lord Rotherwood will be a popular man; but my congratulations
+refer to something nearer home. I think you owe us some thanks for
+having brought them into the neighbourhood.'
+
+'Report is very kind in making arrangements,' said Lily, with
+something of Emily's haughty courtesy.
+
+'I hope this is something more than report,' said her partner.
+
+'Indeed, I believe not. I think I may safely say that it is at
+present quite unfounded,' said Lily,
+
+Mr. Carrington, much surprised, said no more.
+
+Lily did not believe the report sufficiently to be annoyed by it
+during the excitement and pleasure of the evening, and at present her
+principal vexation was caused by the rapid diminution of the company.
+She and her brother were the very last to depart, even Florence had
+gone to bed, and Lady Rotherwood, looking exceedingly tired, kissed
+Lily at the foot of the stairs, pitied her for going home in an open
+carriage, and wished her good-night in a very weary tone.
+
+'I should think you were the fiftieth lady I have handed across the
+hall,' said Lord Rotherwood, as he gave Lily his arm.
+
+'But where were the fireworks, Rotherwood?'
+
+'Countermanded long ago. We have had enough of them. Well, I am
+sorry it is over.'
+
+'I am very glad it is so well over,' said Claude.
+
+'Thanks to your exertions, Claude,' said the Marquis. 'You acted
+like a hero.'
+
+'Like a dancing dervish you mean,' said Claude. 'It will suffice for
+my whole life.'
+
+'I hope you are not quite exhausted.'
+
+'No, thank you. I have turned over a new leaf.'
+
+'Talking of new leaves,' said the Marquis, 'I always had a
+presentiment that Emily's government would come to a crisis to-day.'
+
+'Do you think it has?' said Claude.
+
+'Trust my word, you will hear great news to-morrow. And that reminds
+me--can you come here to-morrow morning? Travers is going--I drive
+him to meet the coach at the town, and you were talking of wanting to
+see the new windows in the cathedral: it will be a good opportunity.
+And dine here afterwards to talk over the adventures.'
+
+'Thank you--that last I cannot do. The Baron was saying it would be
+the first time of having us all together.'
+
+'Very well, besides the great news. I wish I was going back with
+you; it is a tame conclusion, only to go to bed. If I was but to be
+on the scene of action to-morrow. Tell the Baron that--no, use your
+influence to get me invited to dinner on Saturday--I really want to
+speak to him.'
+
+'Very well,' said Claude, 'I'll do my best. Good-night.'
+
+'Good-night,' said the Marquis. 'You have both done wonders. Still,
+I wish it was to come over again.'
+
+'Few people would say so,' said Lily, as they drove off.
+
+'Few would say so if they thought so,' said Claude. 'I have been
+quite admiring the way Rotherwood has gone on--enjoying the fun as if
+he was nobody--just as Reginald might, making other people happy, and
+making no secret of his satisfaction in it all.'
+
+'Very free from affectation and nonsense,' said Lily, 'as William
+said of him last Christmas. You were in a fine fright about his
+speech, Claude.'
+
+'More than I ought to have been. I should have known that he is too
+simple-minded and straightforward to say anything but just what he
+ought. What a nice person that Miss Aylmer is.'
+
+'Is not she, Claude? I was very glad you had her for a neighbour.
+Happy the children who have her for a governess. How sensible and
+gentle she seems. The Westons--But oh! Claude, tell me one thing,
+did you hear--'
+
+'Well, what?'
+
+'I am ashamed to say. That preposterous report about papa. Why,
+Rotherwood himself seems to believe it, and Mr. Carrington began to
+congratulate--'
+
+'The public has bestowed so many ladies on the Baron, that I wonder
+it is not tired,' said Claude. 'It is time it should patronise
+William instead.'
+
+'Rotherwood is not the public,' said Lily, 'and he is the last person
+to say anything impertinent of papa. And I myself heard papa call
+her Alethea, which he never used to do. Claude, what do you think?'
+
+After a long pause Claude slowly replied, 'Think? Why, I think Miss
+Weston must be a person of great courage. She begins the world as a
+grandmother, to say nothing of her eldest daughter and son being
+considerably her seniors.'
+
+'I do not believe it,' said Lily. 'Do you, Claude?'
+
+'I cannot make up my mind--it is too amazing. My hair is still
+standing on end. When it comes down I may be able to tell you
+something.'
+
+Such were the only answers that Lily could extract from him. He did
+not sufficiently disbelieve the report to treat it with scorn, yet he
+did not sufficiently credit it to resign himself to such a state of
+things.
+
+On coming home Lily found Emily and Jane in her room, eagerly
+discussing the circumstances which, to their prejudiced eyes, seemed
+strong confirmation. While their tongues were in full career the
+door opened and Eleanor appeared. She told them it was twelve
+o'clock, turned Jane out of the room, and made Emily and Lily promise
+not to utter another syllable that night.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI: THE CRISIS
+
+
+
+'"Is this your care of the nest?" cried he,
+"It comes of your gadding abroad," said she.'
+
+To the consternation of the disconsolate damsels, the first news they
+heard the next morning was that Mr. Mohun was gone to breakfast at
+Broomhill, and the intelligence was received by Frank Hawkesworth
+with a smile which they thought perfectly malicious. Frank, William,
+and Reginald talked a little at breakfast about the fete, but no one
+joined them, and Claude looked so grave that Eleanor was convinced
+that he had a headache, and vainly tried to persuade him to stay at
+home, instead of setting off to Devereux Castle immediately after
+breakfast.
+
+The past day had not been spent in vain by Ada. Mrs. Weston had led
+her by degrees to open her heart to her, had made her perceive the
+real cause of her father's displeasure, see her faults, and promise
+to confess them, a promise which she performed with many tears, as
+soon as she saw Eleanor in the morning.
+
+On telling this to Emily Eleanor was surprised to find that she was
+not listened to with much satisfaction. Emily seemed to think it a
+piece of interference on the part of Mrs. Weston, and would not allow
+that it was likely to be the beginning of improvement in Ada.
+
+'The words were put into her mouth,' said she; 'and they were an easy
+way of escaping from her present state of disgrace.'
+
+'On the contrary,' said Eleanor, 'she seemed to think that she justly
+deserved to be in disgrace.'
+
+'Did you think so?' said Emily, in a careless tone.
+
+'You are in a strange mood to-day, Emily,' said Eleanor.
+
+'Am I? I did not know it. I wonder where Lily is.'
+
+Lily was in her own room, teaching Phyllis. Phyllis was rather wild
+and flighty that morning, scarcely able to command her attention, and
+every now and then bursting into an irrepressible fit of laughter.
+Reginald and Phyllis found it most difficult to avoid betraying
+Marianne, and as soon as luncheon was over, they agreed to set out on
+a long expedition into the woods, where they might enjoy their
+wonderful secret together. Just at this time Mr. Mohun returned. He
+came into the drawing-room, and Lilias, perceiving that the
+threatened conversation with Emily was about to take place, made her
+escape to her own room, whither she was presently followed by Jane,
+who could not help running after her to report the great news that
+Emily was to be deposed.
+
+'I am sure of it,' said she. 'They sent me out of the room, but not
+before I had seen certain symptoms.'
+
+'It is very hard that poor Emily should bear all the blame,' said
+Lily.
+
+'You have managed to escape it very well,' said Jane, laughing. 'You
+have all the thanks and praise. I suppose it is because the intimacy
+with Miss Weston was your work.'
+
+'I will not believe that nonsense,' said Lily.
+
+'Seeing is believing, they say,' said Jane. 'Remember, it is not
+only me. Think of Rotherwood. And Maurice guesses it too, and
+Redgie told him great things were going on.'
+
+While Jane was speaking they heard the drawing-room door open, and in
+another moment Emily came in.
+
+It was true that, as Jane said, she had been deposed. Mr. Mohun had
+begun by saying, 'Emily, can you bring me such an account of your
+expenditure as I desired?'
+
+'I scarcely think I can, papa,' said Emily. 'I am sorry to say that
+my accounts are rather in confusion.'
+
+'That is to say, that you have been as irregular in the management of
+your own affairs as you have in mine. Well, I have paid your debt to
+Lilias, and from this time forward I require of you to reduce your
+expenses to the sum which I consider suitable, and which both Eleanor
+and Lilias have found perfectly sufficient. And now, Emily, what
+have you to say for the management of my affairs? Can you offer any
+excuse for your utter failure?'
+
+'Indeed, papa, I am very sorry I vexed you,' said Emily. 'Our
+illness last autumn--different things--I know all has not been quite
+as it should be; but I hope that in future I shall profit by past
+experience.'
+
+'I hope so,' said Mr. Mohun, 'but I am afraid to trust the management
+of the family to you any longer. Your trial is over, and you have
+failed, merely because you would not exert yourself from wilful
+indolence and negligence. You have not attended to any one thing
+committed to your charge--you have placed temptation in Esther's way-
+-and allowed Ada to take up habits which will not be easily
+corrected. I should not think myself justified in leaving you in
+charge any longer, lest worse mischief should ensue. I wish you to
+give up the keys to Eleanor for the present.'
+
+Mr. Mohun would perhaps have added something if Emily had shown signs
+of repentance, or even of sorrow. The moment was at least as painful
+to him as to her, and he had prepared himself to expect either
+hysterical tears, with vows of amendment, or else an argument on her
+side that she was right and everybody else wrong. But there was
+nothing of the kind; Emily neither spoke nor looked; she only carried
+the tokens of her authority to Eleanor, and left the room. She
+thought she knew well enough the cause of her deposition, considered
+it quite as a matter of course, and departed on purpose to avoid
+hearing the announcement which she expected to follow.
+
+She was annoyed by finding her sisters in her room, and especially
+irritated by Jane's tone, as she eagerly asked, 'Well, what did he
+say?'
+
+'Never mind,' replied Emily, pettishly.
+
+'Was it about Miss Weston?' persisted Jane.
+
+'Not actually, but I saw it was coming,' said Emily.
+
+'Ah!' said Jane, 'I was just telling Lily that she owes all her
+present favour to her having been Alethea's bosom friend.'
+
+'I confess I thought Miss Weston was assuming authority long ago,'
+said Emily.
+
+'Emily, how can you say so?' cried Lily. 'How can you be so unjust
+and ungrateful? I do not believe this report; but if it should be
+true, are not these foolish expressions of dislike so many attempts
+to make yourself undutiful?'
+
+'I have rather more sincerity, more dignity, more attachment to my
+own mother, than to try to gain favour by affecting what I do not
+feel,' said Emily.
+
+'Rather cutting, Emily,' said Jane.
+
+'Do not give that speech an application which Emily did not intend,'
+said Lily, sadly.
+
+'What makes you think I did not intend it?' said Emily, coldly.
+
+'Emily!' exclaimed Lily, starting up, and colouring violently, 'are
+you thinking what you are saying?'
+
+'I do not know what you mean,' replied Emily quietly, in her soft,
+unchanging voice; 'I only mean that if you can feel satisfied with
+the new arrangement you are more easily pleased than I am.'
+
+'Only tell me, Emily, do you accuse me of attempting to gain favour
+in an unworthy manner?'
+
+'I only congratulate you on standing so well with every one.'
+
+Lily hid her face in her hands. At this moment Eleanor opened the
+door, saying, 'Can you come down? Mrs. Burnet is here.' Eleanor
+went without observing Lily, and Emily was obliged to follow. Jane
+lingered in order to comfort Lily.
+
+'You know she did not quite mean it,' said she; 'she is only very
+much provoked.'
+
+'I know, I know,' said Lily; 'she is very sorry herself by this time.
+Of course she did not mean it, but it is the first unkind thing she
+ever said to me. It is very silly, and very unjust to take it
+seriously, but I cannot help it.'
+
+'It is a very abominable shame,' said Jane, 'and so I shall tell
+Emily.'
+
+'No, do not, Jenny, I beg. I know she thinks so herself, and grieves
+too much over it. No wonder she is vexed. All my faults have come
+upon her. You had better go down, Jane; Mrs. Burnet is always vexed
+if she does not see a good many of us, and I am sure I cannot go.
+Besides, Emily dislikes having that girl to entertain.'
+
+'Lily, you are so very gentle and forgiving, that I wonder how any
+one can say what grieves you,' said Jane, for once struck with
+admiration.
+
+She went, and Lily remained, weeping over the injustice which she had
+forgiven, and feeling as if, all the time, it was fair that the rule
+of 'love' should, as it were, recoil upon her. Her tears flowed
+fast, as she went over the long line of faults and follies which lay
+heavy on her conscience. And Emily against her! That sister who,
+from her infancy, had soothed her in every trouble, of whose sympathy
+she had always felt sure, whose gentleness had been her admiration in
+her days of sharp answers and violent temper, who had seemed her own
+beyond all the others; this wound from her gave Lily a bitter feeling
+of desertion and loneliness. It was like a completion of her
+punishment--the broken reed on which she leant had pierced her
+deeply.
+
+She was still sitting on the side of her bed, weeping, when a slight
+tap at the door made her start--a gentle tap, the sound of which she
+had learned to love in her illness. The next moment Alethea stood
+before her, with outstretched arms. This was a time to feel the
+value of such a friend, and every suspicion passing from her mind,
+she flew to Alethea, kissed her again and again, and laid her head on
+her shoulder. Her caress was returned with equal warmth.
+
+'But how is this?' said Alethea, now perceiving that her face was
+pale, and marked by tears. 'How is this, my dear Lily?'
+
+'Oh, Alethea! I cannot tell you, but it is all misery. The full
+effect of my baneful principle has appeared!'
+
+'Has anything happened?' exclaimed Alethea.
+
+'No,' said Lily. 'There is nothing new, except the--Oh! I cannot
+tell you.'
+
+'I wish I could do anything for you, my poor Lily,' said Alethea.
+
+'You can look kind,' said Lily, 'and that is a great comfort. Oh!
+Alethea, it was very kind of you to come and speak to me. I shall do
+now--I can bear it all better. You have a comforting face and voice
+like nobody else. When did you come? Have you been in the drawing-
+room?'
+
+'No,' said Alethea. 'I walked here with Marianne, and finding there
+were visitors in the drawing-room we went to Ada, and she told me
+where to find you. I had something to tell you--but perhaps you know
+already.'
+
+The colour on her cheek recalled all Lily's fears, and to hear the
+news from herself was an unexpected trial. She felt as if what she
+had said justified Emily's reproach, and turning away her head,
+replied, 'Yes, I know.'
+
+Alethea was a little hurt by her coldness, but she ascribed it to
+dejection and embarrassment, and blamed herself for hurrying on what
+she had to tell without sufficient regard for Lily's distress. There
+was an awkward pause, which Alethea broke, by saying, 'Your brother
+thought you would like to hear it from me.'
+
+'My brother!' cried Lily, with a most sudden change of tone.
+'William? Oh, Alethea! dearest Alethea; I beg your pardon. They
+almost made me believe it was papa. Oh! I am so very glad!'
+
+Alethea could not help laughing, and Lily joined her heartily. It
+was one of the brightest hours of her life, as she sat with her hand
+in her friend's, pouring out her eager expressions of delight and
+affection. All her troubles were forgotten--how should they not,
+when Alethea was to be her sister! It seemed as if but a few minutes
+had passed, when the sound of the great clock warned Alethea that it
+was time to return to Broomhill, and she asked Lilias to walk back
+with her. After summoning Marianne, they set out through the garden,
+where, on being joined by William, Lily thought it expedient to
+betake herself to Marianne, who was but too glad to be able freely to
+communicate many interesting particulars. At Broomhill she had a
+very enjoyable talk with Mrs. Weston, but her chief delight was in
+her walk home with her brother. She was high in his favour, as
+Alethea's chief friend. Though usually reserved, he was now open,
+and Lily wondered to find herself honoured with confidence. His
+attachment had begun in very early days, when first he knew the
+Westons in Brighton. Harry's death had suddenly called him away, and
+a few guarded expressions of his wishes in the course of the next
+winter had been cut short by his father. He then went to Canada, and
+had had no opportunity of renewing his acquaintance till the last
+winter, when, on coming home, to his great joy and surprise he found
+the Westons on the most intimate terms with his family.
+
+He then spoke to his father, who wished him to take a little more
+time for consideration, and he had accordingly waited till the
+summer. Lily longed to know his plans for the future, and presently
+he went on to say that his father wished him to leave the army, live
+at home, and let Alethea be the head of the household.
+
+'Oh, William! it is perfect. There is an end of all our troubles.
+It is as if a great black curtain was drawn up.'
+
+'They say such plans never succeed,' said William; 'but we mean to
+prove the contrary.'
+
+'How good it will be for the children!' said Lily.
+
+'Oh! why had we not such a guide at first?'
+
+'She has all that Eleanor wants,' said William.
+
+'My follies were not Eleanor's fault,' said Lily; 'but I do think I
+should not have been quite so silly if I had known Alethea from the
+first.'
+
+It was not in the power of William himself to say more in her praise
+than Lily. In the eagerness of their conversation they walked
+slowly, and as they were crossing the last field the dinner-bell
+rang. As they quickened their steps they saw Mr. Mohun looking at
+his wheat. Lily told him how late it was.
+
+'There,' said he, 'I am always looking after other people's affairs.
+Between Rotherwood and William I have not a moment for my own crops.
+However, my turn is coming. William will have it all on his hands,
+and the old deaf useless Baron will sit in his great chair and take
+his ease.'
+
+'Not a bit, papa,' said Lily, 'the Baron will grow young, and take to
+dancing. He is talking nonsense already.'
+
+'Eh! Miss Lily turned saucy? Mrs. William Mohun must take her in
+hand. Well, Lily, has he your consent and approbation?'
+
+'I only wish this was eighteen months ago, papa.'
+
+'We shall soon come into order, Lily. With Miss Aylmer for the
+little ones, and Mrs. Mohun for the great ones, I have little fear.'
+
+'Miss Aylmer, papa!'
+
+'Yes, if all turns out well. We propose to find a house for her
+mother in the village, and let her come every day to teach the little
+ones.'
+
+'Oh! I am very glad. We liked her so much.'
+
+'I hope,' said Mr. Mohun, 'that this plan will please Claude better
+than my proposal of a governess last month. He looked as if he
+expected Minerva with helmet, and AEgis and all. Now make haste and
+dress. Do not let us shock Eleanor by keeping dinner waiting longer
+than we can help.'
+
+Lilias found that her sisters had long been dressed and gone down.
+She dressed alone, every now and then smiling at her own happy looks
+reflected in the glass. Just as she had finished, Claude knocked at
+the door, and putting in his head, said, 'Well, Lily, has the
+wonderful news come forth? I see it has, by your face.'
+
+'And do you know what it is, Claude?' said Lily.
+
+'I know what Rotherwood meant, and I cannot think where all our
+senses were.'
+
+'And, Claude, only say that you like her.'
+
+'I think it is a very good thing indeed.'
+
+'Only say that you cordially like her.'
+
+'I do. I admire her sense and her gentleness very much, and I think
+you owe a great deal to her.'
+
+'Then you allow that you were unjust last summer?'
+
+'I do; but it was owing to you. You were somewhat foolish, and I
+thought it was her fault. Besides, I was quite tired of hearing that
+extraordinary name of hers for ever repeated.'
+
+Here they were summoned to dinner, and hurried down. The dinner
+passed very strangely; some were in very high spirits, others in a
+very melancholy mood; Eleanor and Maurice alone preserved the golden
+mean; and the behaviour of the merry ones was perfectly
+unintelligible to the rest. Reginald, still bound by his promise to
+Marianne, was wild to make his discovery known, and behaved in such a
+strange and comical manner as to call forth various reproofs from
+Eleanor, which provoked double mirth from the others. The cause of
+their amusement was ostensibly the talking over of yesterday's fete,
+but the laughing was more than adequate, even to the wonderful
+collection of odd speeches and adventures which were detailed. Emily
+and Jane could not guess what had come to Lily, and thought her
+merriment very ill-placed. Yet, in justice to Lily, it must be said
+that her joy no longer made her wild and thoughtless. There was
+something guarded and subdued about her, which made Claude reflect
+how different she was from the untamed girl of last summer, who could
+not be happy without a sort of intoxication.
+
+The ladies returned to the drawing-room, where Ada now appeared for
+the first time, and while they were congratulating her Mr. Mohun
+summoned Eleanor away. Jane followed at a safe distance to see where
+they went. They shut themselves into the study, and Jane, now
+meeting Maurice, went into the garden with him. 'It must be coming
+now,' said she; 'oh! there are William and Claude talking under the
+plane-tree.'
+
+'Claude has his cunning smile on,' said Maurice.
+
+'No wonder,' said Jane, 'it is very absurd. I daresay William will
+hardly ever come home now. One comfort is, they will see I was right
+from the first.'
+
+Jane and Maurice remained in the garden till teatime, and thus missed
+hearing the whole affair discussed in the drawing-room between Emily,
+Lilias, and Frank. This was the first news that Emily heard of it,
+and a very great relief it was, for she could imagine liking, and
+even loving, Alethea as a sister-in-law. Her chief annoyance was at
+present from the perception of the difference between her own
+position and that of Lilias. Last year how was Lily regarded in the
+family, and what was her opinion worth? Almost nothing; she was only
+a clever, romantic, silly girl, while Emily had credit at least for
+discretion. Now Lily was consulted and sought out by father,
+brothers, Eleanor--no longer treated as a child. And what was Emily?
+Blamed or pitied on every side, and left to hear this important news
+from the chance mention of her brother-in-law, himself not fully
+informed. She had become nobody, and had even lost the satisfaction,
+such as it was, of fancying that her father only made her bad
+management an excuse for his marriage. She heard many particulars
+from Lily in the course of the evening, as they were going to bed;
+and the sisters talked with all their wonted affection, although
+Emily had not thought it worth while to revive an old grievance, by
+asking Lily's pardon for her unkind speech, and rested satisfied with
+the knowledge that her sister knew her heart too well to care for
+what she said in a moment of irritation. On the other hand, Lily did
+not think that she had a right to mention the plan of Alethea's
+government, and the next day she was glad of her reserve, for her
+father called her to share his early walk for the purpose of talking
+over the scheme, telling her that he thought she understood the state
+of things better than Eleanor could, and that he considered that she
+had sufficient influence with Emily to prevent her from making
+Alethea uncomfortable. The conclusion of the conversation was, that
+they thought they might depend upon Emily's amiability, her courtesy,
+and her dislike of trouble, to balance her love of importance and
+dignity. And that Alethea would do nothing to hurt her feelings, and
+would assume no authority that she could help, they felt convinced.
+
+After breakfast Mr. Mohun called Emily into his study, informed her
+of his resolution, to which she listened with her usual submissive
+manner, and told her that he trusted to her good sense and right
+feeling to obviate any collisions of authority which might be
+unpleasant to Alethea and hurtful to the younger ones. She promised
+all that was desired, and though at the moment she felt hurt and
+grieved, she almost immediately recovered her usual spirits, never
+high, but always serene, and only seeking for easy amusement and
+comfort in whatever happened. There was no public disgrace in her
+deposition; it would not seem unnatural to the neighbours that her
+brother's wife should be at the head of the house. She would gain
+credit for her amiability, and she would no longer be responsible or
+obliged to exert herself; and as to Alethea herself, she could not
+help respecting and almost loving her. It was very well it was no
+worse.
+
+In the meantime Lily, struck by a sudden thought, had hastened to her
+mother's little deserted morning-room, to see if it could not be made
+a delightful abode for Alethea; and she was considering of its
+capabilities when she started at the sound of an approaching step.
+It was the rapid and measured tread of the Captain, and in a few
+moments he entered. 'Thank you,' said he, smiling, 'you are on the
+same errand as myself.'
+
+'Exactly so,' said Lily; 'it will do capitally; how pretty Long Acre
+looks, and what a beautiful view of the church!'
+
+'This room used once to be pretty,' said William, looking round,
+disappointed; 'it is very forlorn.'
+
+'Ah! but it will look very different when the chairs do not stand
+with their backs to the wall. I do not think Alethea knows of this
+room, for nobody has sat in it for years, and we will make it a
+surprise. And here is your own picture, at ten years old, over the
+fireplace! I have such a vision, you will not know the room when I
+have set it to rights.'
+
+They went on talking eagerly of the improvements that might be made,
+and from thence came to other subjects--Alethea herself, and the
+future plans. At last William asked if Lily knew what made Jane look
+as deplorable as she had done for the last two days, and Lily was
+obliged to tell him, with the addition that Eleanor had begun to
+inform her of the real fact, but that she had stopped her by
+declaring that she had known it all from the first. Just as they had
+mentioned her, Jane, attracted by the unusual sound of voices in Lady
+Emily's room, came in, asking what they could be doing there. Lily
+would scarcely have dared to reply, but William said in a grave,
+matter-of-fact way, 'We are thinking of having this room newly fitted
+up.'
+
+'For Alethea Weston?' said Jane; 'how can you, Lily? I should have
+thought, at least, it was no laughing matter.'
+
+'I advise you to follow Lily's example and make the best of it,' said
+William.
+
+'I do, but it is another thing to stand laughing here. I see one
+thing that I shall do--I shall take away your picture and hang it in
+my room.'
+
+'We shall see,' said William, following Lilias, who had left the room
+to hide her laughter.
+
+To mystify Jane was the great amusement of the day; Reginald, finding
+Maurice possessed with the same notion, did more to maintain it than
+the others would have thought right, and Maurice reporting his
+speeches to Jane, she had not the least doubt that her idea was
+correct. Lord Rotherwood came to dinner, and no sooner had he
+entered the drawing-room than Reginald, rejoicing in the absence of
+the parties concerned, informed him of the joke, much to his
+diversion, though rather to the discomfiture of the more prudent
+spectators, who might have wished it confined to themselves.
+
+'It has gone far enough,' said Claude; 'she will say something she
+will repent if we do not take care.'
+
+'I should like to reduce her to humble herself to ask an explanation
+from Marianne,' said Lily.
+
+'And pray don't spoil the joke before I have enjoyed it,' said Lord
+Rotherwood. 'My years of discretion are not such centuries of wisdom
+as those of that gentleman who looks as grim as his namesake the
+Emperor on a coin.'
+
+The entrance of Eleanor and Jane here put an end to the conversation,
+which was not renewed till the evening, when the younger, or as
+Claude called it, the middle-aged part of the company were sitting on
+the lawn, leaving the drawing-room to the elder and more prudent, and
+the terrace to the wilder and more active. Emily was talking of Mrs.
+Burnet's visit of the day before, and her opinion of the Hetherington
+festivities. 'And what an interminable visit it was,' said Jane; 'I
+thought they would never go!'
+
+'People always inflict themselves in a most merciless manner when
+there is anything going on,' said Emily.
+
+'I wonder if they guessed anything,' said Lily.
+
+'To be sure they did, and stayed out of curiosity,' said Lord
+Rotherwood. 'In spite of Emily's dignified contradictions of the
+report, every one knew it the other evening. It was all in vain that
+she behaved as if I was speaking treason--people have eyes.'
+
+'Ah! I am very sorry for that contradiction,' said Lily; 'I hope
+people will not fancy we do not like it.'
+
+'No, it will only prove my greatness,' said Lord Rotherwood. 'Your
+Marques, was China in the map, so absorbing all beholders that the
+magnanimous Mohuns themselves--'
+
+'What nonsense, Rotherwood,' said Jane, sharply; 'can't you suppose
+that one may shut one's eyes to what one does not wish to see.'
+
+The singular inappropriateness of this answer occasioned a general
+roar of laughter, and she looked in perplexity. Every one whom she
+asked why they laughed replied by saying, 'Ask Marianne Weston;' and
+at length, after much puzzling and guessing, and being more laughed
+at than had ever before happened to her in her life, she was obliged
+to seek an explanation from Marianne, who might well have triumphed
+had she been so disposed. Jane's character for penetration was
+entirely destroyed, and the next morning she received, as a present
+from Claude, an old book, which had long belonged to the nursery,
+entitled, A Puzzle for a Curious Girl.
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII: CONCLUSION
+
+
+
+'There let Hymen oft appear
+In saffron robe, with taper clear,
+And pomp, and feast, and revelry,
+And mask, and antique pageantry;
+Such sights as useful poets dream
+On summer eves, by haunted stream.'
+
+On the morning of a fine day, late in September, the Beechcroft bells
+were ringing merrily, and a wedding procession was entering the gate
+of the churchyard.
+
+In the afternoon there was a great feast on the top of the hill,
+attended by all the Mohuns, who were forced, to Lily's great
+satisfaction, to give it there, as there was no space in the grounds
+at the New Court. All was wonderfully suitable to old times,
+inasmuch as the Baron was actually persuaded to sit for five minutes
+under the yew-tree where 'Mohun's chair' ought to have been, and the
+cricketers were of all ranks, from the Marquis of Rotherwood to
+little Dick Grey.
+
+The wedding had been hurried on, and the wedding tour was shortened,
+in order that Mrs. William Mohun might be installed as mistress of
+the New Court before Eleanor's departure, which took place early in
+October; and shortly after Mrs. Ridley, who had come on a visit to
+Beechcroft, to take leave of her brother, returned to the north,
+taking with her the little Harry. He was nearly a year old, and it
+gave great pain to his young aunts to part with him, now that he had
+endeared himself to them by many engaging ways, but Lily felt herself
+too unequal to the task of training him up to make any objection, and
+there were many promises that he should not be a stranger to his
+grandfather's home.
+
+Mrs. and Miss Aylmer had been about a month settled at a superior
+sort of cottage, near the New Court, with Mrs. Eden for their
+servant. Lord Rotherwood had fitted out the second son, who sailed
+for India with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, had sent Devereux to school,
+and was lying in wait to see what could be done for the two others,
+and Jane was congratulated far more than she wished, on having been
+the means of discovering such an excellent governess. Jane was now a
+regular inhabitant of the schoolroom, as much tied down to lessons
+and schoolroom hours as her two little sisters, with the prospect of
+so continuing for two years, if not for three. She made one attempt
+to be pert to Miss Aylmer; but something in the manner of her
+governess quite baffled her, and she was obliged to be more obedient
+than she had ever been. The mischief which Emily and Lilias had done
+to her, by throwing off their allegiance to Eleanor, and thus
+unconsciously leading her to set her at nought, was, at her age, not
+to be so easily repaired; yet with no opportunity for gossiping, and
+with involuntary respect for her governess, there were hopes that she
+would lose the habit of her two great faults. There certainly was an
+improvement in her general tone and manner, which made Mr. Devereux
+hope that he might soon resume with her the preparation for
+confirmation which had been cut short the year before.
+
+Phyllis and Adeline had been possessed by Reginald with a great dread
+of governesses; and they were agreeably surprised in Miss Aylmer,
+whom they found neither cross nor strict, and always willing to
+forward their amusements, and let them go out with their papa and
+sisters whenever they were asked. Phyllis, without much annoyance to
+one so obedient, was trained into more civilisation, and Ada's more
+serious faults were duly watched and guarded against. The removal of
+Esther was a great advantage to Ada; an older and more steady person
+was taken in her place; while to the great relief of Mr. Mohun and
+Lilias, Rachel Harvey took Esther to her brother's farmhouse, where
+she promised to watch and teach her, and hoped in time to make her a
+good servant.
+
+Of Emily there is little to say. She ate, drank, and slept, talked
+agreeably, read idle books, and looked nice in the drawing-room,
+wasting time, throwing away talents, weakening the powers of her
+mind, and laying up a store of sad reflections for herself against
+the time when she must awake from her selfish apathy.
+
+As to Lilias Mohun, the heroine of this tale, the history of the
+formation of her character has been told, and all that remains to be
+said of her is, that the memory of her faults and her sorrows did not
+fleet away like a morning cloud, though followed by many happy and
+prosperous days, and though the effects of many were repaired.
+Agnes's death, Esther's theft, Ada's accident, the schism in the
+parish, and her own numerous mistakes, were constantly recalled, and
+never without a thought of the danger of being wise above her elders,
+and taking mere feeling for Christian charity.
+
+
+
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, SCENES AND CHARACTERS ***
+
+This file should be named scch10.txt or scch10.zip
+Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, scch11.txt
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, scch10a.txt
+
+Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our Web sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
+files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
+We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):
+
+eBooks Year Month
+
+ 1 1971 July
+ 10 1991 January
+ 100 1994 January
+ 1000 1997 August
+ 1500 1998 October
+ 2000 1999 December
+ 2500 2000 December
+ 3000 2001 November
+ 4000 2001 October/November
+ 6000 2002 December*
+ 9000 2003 November*
+10000 2004 January*
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
+Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
+Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
+Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
+Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
+Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
+Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.
+
+We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+Donations by check or money order may be sent to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information online at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
+when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
+Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
+used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
+they hardware or software or any other related product without
+express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*
+
diff --git a/old/scch10.zip b/old/scch10.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b1d3248
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/scch10.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/scch10h.htm b/old/scch10h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..833b827
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/scch10h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,11096 @@
+<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01//EN">
+<html>
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=US-ASCII">
+<title>Scenes and Characters</title>
+</head>
+<body>
+<h2>
+<a href="#startoftext">Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge</a>
+</h2>
+<pre>
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of Scenes and Characters, by Charlotte M. Yonge
+(#25 in our series by Charlotte M. Yonge)
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
+this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
+Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
+header without written permission.
+
+Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
+eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
+important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
+how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
+donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+
+Title: Scenes and Characters
+
+Author: Charlotte M. Yonge
+
+Release Date: January, 2004 [EBook #4944]
+[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
+[This file was first posted on April 2, 2002]
+[Most recently updated: April 2, 2002]
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+</pre>
+<p>
+<a name="startoftext"></a>
+Transcribed from the 1889 Macmillan and Co. edition by David Price,
+email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk<br>
+<br>
+SCENES AND CHARACTERS, OR, EIGHTEEN MONTHS AT BEECHCROFT<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+PREFACE<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+Of those who are invited to pay a visit to Beechcroft, there are some
+who, honestly acknowledging that amusement is their object, will be
+content to feel with Lilias, conjecture with Jane, and get into scrapes
+with Phyllis, without troubling themselves to extract any moral from
+their proceedings; and to these the Mohun family would only apologise
+for having led a very humdrum life during the eighteen months spent
+in their company.<br>
+<br>
+There may, however, be more unreasonable visitors, who, professing only
+to come as parents and guardians, expect entertainment for themselves,
+as well as instruction for those who had rather it was out of sight,
+- look for antiques in carved cherry-stones, - and require plot, incident,
+and catastrophe in a chronicle of small beer.<br>
+<br>
+To these the Mohuns beg respectfully to observe, that they hope their
+examples may not be altogether devoid of indirect instruction; and lest
+it should be supposed that they lived without object, aim, or principle,
+they would observe that the maxim which has influenced the delineation
+of the different <i>Scenes and Characters </i>is, that feeling, unguided
+and unrestrained, soon becomes mere selfishness; while the simple endeavour
+to fulfil each immediate claim of duty may lead to the highest acts
+of self-devotion.<br>
+<br>
+NEW COURT, BEECHCROFT,<br>
+18th <i>January.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+</i>PREFACE (1886)<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+Perhaps this book is an instance to be adduced in support of the advice
+I have often given to young authors - not to print before they themselves
+are old enough to do justice to their freshest ideas.<br>
+<br>
+Not that I can lay claim to its being a production of tender and interesting
+youth.&nbsp; It was my second actual publication, and I believe I was
+of age before it appeared - but I see now the failures that more experience
+might have enabled me to avoid; and I would not again have given it
+to the world if the same characters recurring in another story had not
+excited a certain desire to see their first start.<br>
+<br>
+In fact they have been more or less my life-long companions.&nbsp; An
+almost solitary child, with periodical visits to the Elysium of a large
+family, it was natural to dream of other children and their ways and
+sports till they became almost realities.&nbsp; They took shape when
+my French master set me to write letters for him.&nbsp; The letters
+gradually became conversation and narrative, and the adventures of the
+family sweetened the toils of French composition.&nbsp; In the exigencies
+of village school building in those days gone by, before in every place<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&ldquo;It there behoved him to set up the standard of her Grace,&rdquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+the tale was actually printed for private sale, as a link between translations
+of short stories.<br>
+<br>
+This process only stifled the family in my imagination for a time.&nbsp;
+They awoke once more with new names, but substantially the same, and
+were my companions in many a solitary walk, the results of which were
+scribbled down in leisure moments to be poured into my mother&rsquo;s
+ever patient and sympathetic ears.<br>
+<br>
+And then came the impulse to literature for young people given by the
+example of that memorable book the <i>Fairy Bower, </i>and followed
+up by <i>Amy Herbert</i>.&nbsp; It was felt that elder children needed
+something of a deeper tone than the Edgeworthian style, yet less directly
+religious than the Sherwood class of books; and on that wave of opinion,
+my little craft floated out into the great sea of the public.<br>
+<br>
+Friends, whose kindness astonished me, and fills me with gratitude when
+I look back on it, gave me seasonable criticism and pruning, and finally
+launched me.&nbsp; My heroes and heroines had arranged themselves so
+as to work out a definite principle, and this was enough for us all.<br>
+<br>
+Children&rsquo;s books had not been supposed to require a plot.&nbsp;
+Miss Edgeworth&rsquo;s, which I still continue to think gems in their
+own line, are made chronicles, or, more truly, illustrations of various
+truths worked out upon the same personages.&nbsp; Moreover, the skill
+of a Jane Austen or a Mrs. Gaskell is required to produce a perfect
+plot without doing violence to the ordinary events of an every-day life.&nbsp;
+It is all a matter of arrangement.&nbsp; Mrs. Gaskell can make a perfect
+little plot out of a sick lad and a canary bird; and another can do
+nothing with half a dozen murders and an explosion; and of arranging
+my materials so as to build up a story, I was quite incapable.&nbsp;
+It is still my great deficiency; but in those days I did not even understand
+that the attempt was desirable.&nbsp; Criticism was a more thorough
+thing in those times than it has since become through the multiplicity
+of books to be hurried over, and it was often very useful, as when it
+taught that such arrangement of incident was the means of developing
+the leading idea.<br>
+<br>
+Yet, with all its faults, the children, who had been real to me, caught,
+chiefly by the youthful sense of fun and enjoyment, the attention of
+other children; and the curious semi-belief one has in the phantoms
+of one&rsquo;s brain made me dwell on their after life and share my
+discoveries with my friends, not, however, writing them down till after
+the lapse of all these years the tenderness inspired by associations
+of early days led to taking up once more the old characters in <i>The
+Two Sides of the Shield; </i>and the kind welcome this has met with
+has led to the resuscitation of the crude and inexperienced tale which
+never pretended to be more than a mere family chronicle.<br>
+<br>
+C. M. YONGE.<br>
+<i>6th October </i>1886.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER I - THE ELDER SISTER<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Return, and in the daily round<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Of duty and of love,<br>
+Thou best wilt find that patient faith<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;That lifts the soul above.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Eleanor Mohun was the eldest child of a gentleman of old family, and
+good property, who had married the sister of his friend and neighbour,
+the Marquis of Rotherwood.&nbsp; The first years of her life were marked
+by few events.&nbsp; She was a quiet, steady, useful girl, finding her
+chief pleasure in nursing and teaching her brothers and sisters, and
+her chief annoyance in her mamma&rsquo;s attempts to make her a fine
+lady; but before she had reached her nineteenth year she had learnt
+to know real anxiety and sorrow.&nbsp; Her mother, after suffering much
+from grief at the loss of her two brothers, fell into so alarming a
+state of health, that her husband was obliged immediately to hurry her
+away to Italy, leaving the younger children under the care of a governess,
+and the elder boys at school, while Eleanor alone accompanied them.<br>
+<br>
+Their absence lasted nearly three years, and during the last winter,
+an engagement commenced between Eleanor and Mr. Francis Hawkesworth,
+rather to the surprise of Lady Emily, who wondered that he had been
+able to discover the real worth veiled beneath a formal and retiring
+manner, and to admire features which, though regular, had a want of
+light and animation, which diminished their beauty even more than the
+thinness and compression of the lips, and the very pale gray of the
+eyes.<br>
+<br>
+The family were about to return to England, where the marriage was to
+take place, when Lady Emily was attacked with a sudden illness, which
+her weakened frame was unable to resist, and in a very few days she
+died, leaving the little Adeline, about eight months old, to accompany
+her father and sister on their melancholy journey homewards.&nbsp; This
+loss made a great change in the views of Eleanor, who, as she considered
+the cares and annoyances which would fall on her father, when left to
+bear the whole burthen of the management of the children and household,
+felt it was her duty to give up her own prospects of happiness, and
+to remain at home.&nbsp; How could she leave the tender little ones
+to the care of servants - trust her sisters to a governess, and make
+her brothers&rsquo; home yet more dreary?&nbsp; She knew her father
+to be strong in sense and firm in judgment, but indolent, indulgent,
+and inattentive to details, and she could not bear to leave him to be
+harassed by the petty cares of a numerous family, especially when broken
+in spirits and weighed down with sorrow.&nbsp; She thought her duty
+was plain, and, accordingly, she wrote to Mr. Hawkesworth, to beg him
+to allow her to withdraw her promise.<br>
+<br>
+Her brother Henry was the only person who knew what she had done, and
+he alone perceived something of tremulousness about her in the midst
+of the even cheerfulness with which she had from the first supported
+her father&rsquo;s spirits.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun, however, did not long remain
+in ignorance, for Frank Hawkesworth himself arrived at Beechcroft to
+plead his cause with Eleanor.&nbsp; He knew her value too well to give
+her up, and Mr. Mohun would not hear of her making such a sacrifice
+for his sake.&nbsp; But Eleanor was also firm, and after weeks of unhappiness
+and uncertainty, it was at length arranged that she should remain at
+home till Emily was old enough to take her place, and that Frank should
+then return from India and claim his bride.<br>
+<br>
+Well did she discharge the duties which she had undertaken; she kept
+her father&rsquo;s mind at ease, followed out his views, managed the
+boys with discretion and gentleness, and made her sisters well-informed
+and accomplished girls; but, for want of fully understanding the characters
+of her two next sisters, Emily and Lilias, she made some mistakes with
+regard to them.&nbsp; The clouds of sorrow, to her so dark and heavy,
+had been to them but morning mists, and the four years which had changed
+her from a happy girl into a thoughtful, anxious woman, had brought
+them to an age which, if it is full of the follies of childhood, also
+partakes of the earnestness of youth; an age when deep foundations of
+enduring confidence may be laid by one who can enter into and direct
+the deeper flow of mind and feeling which lurks hid beneath the freaks
+and fancies of the early years of girlhood.&nbsp; But Eleanor had little
+sympathy for freaks and fancies.&nbsp; She knew the realities of life
+too well to build airy castles with younger and gayer spirits; her sisters&rsquo;
+romance seemed to her dangerous folly, and their lively nonsense levity
+and frivolity.&nbsp; They were too childish to share in her confidence,
+and she was too busy and too much preoccupied to have ear or mind for
+visionary trifles, though to trifles of real life she paid no small
+degree of attention.<br>
+<br>
+It might have been otherwise had Henry Mohun lived; but in the midst
+of the affection of all who knew him, honour from those who could appreciate
+his noble character, and triumphs gained by his uncommon talents, he
+was cut off by a short illness, when not quite nineteen, a most grievous
+loss to his family, and above all, to Eleanor.&nbsp; Unlike her, as
+he was joyous, high-spirited, full of fun, and overflowing with imagination
+and poetry, there was a very close bond of union between them, in the
+strong sense of duty, the firmness of purpose, and energy of mind which
+both possessed, and which made Eleanor feel perfect reliance on him,
+and look up to him with earnest admiration.&nbsp; With him alone she
+was unreserved; he was the only person who could ever make her show
+a spark of liveliness, and on his death, it was only with the most painful
+efforts that she could maintain her composed demeanour and fulfil her
+daily duties.&nbsp; Years passed on, and still she felt the blank which
+Harry had left, almost as much as the first day that she heard of his
+death, but she never spoke of him, and to her sisters it seemed as if
+he was forgotten.&nbsp; The reserve which had begun to thaw under his
+influence, again returning, placed her a still greater distance from
+the younger girls, and unconsciously she became still more of a governess
+and less of a sister.&nbsp; Little did she know of the &lsquo;blissful
+dreams in secret shared&rsquo; between Emily, Lilias, and their brother
+Claude, and little did she perceive the danger that Lilias would be
+run away with by a lively imagination, repressed and starved, but entirely
+untrained.<br>
+<br>
+Whatever influenced Lilias, had, through her, nearly the same effect
+upon Emily, a gentle girl, easily led, especially by Lilias, whom she
+regarded with the fondest affection and admiration.&nbsp; The perils
+of fancy and romance were not, however, to be dreaded for Jane, the
+fourth sister, a strong resemblance of Eleanor in her clear common sense,
+love of neatness, and active usefulness; but there were other dangers
+for her, in her tendency to faults, which, under wise training, had
+not yet developed themselves.<br>
+<br>
+Such were the three girls who were now left to assist each other in
+the management of the household, and who looked forward to their new
+offices with the various sensations of pleasure, anxiety, self-importance,
+and self-mistrust, suited to their differing characters, and to the
+ages of eighteen, sixteen, and fourteen.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER II - THE NEW COURT<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Just at the age &rsquo;twixt boy and youth,<br>
+When thought is speech, and speech is truth.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The long-delayed wedding took place on the 13th of January, 1845, and
+the bride and bridegroom immediately departed for a year&rsquo;s visit
+among Mr. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s relations in Northumberland, whence they
+were to return to Beechcroft, merely for a farewell, before sailing
+for India.<br>
+<br>
+It was half-past nine in the evening, and the wedding over - Mr. and
+Mrs. Hawkesworth gone, and the guests departed, the drawing-room had
+returned to its usual state.&nbsp; It was a very large room, so spacious
+that it would have been waste and desolate, had it not been well filled
+with handsome, but heavy old-fashioned furniture, covered with crimson
+damask, and one side of the room fitted up with a bookcase, so high
+that there was a spiral flight of library steps to give access to the
+upper shelves.&nbsp; Opposite were four large windows, now hidden by
+their ample curtains; and near them was at one end of the room a piano,
+at the other a drawing-desk.&nbsp; The walls were wainscoted with polished
+black oak, the panels reflecting the red fire-light like mirrors.&nbsp;
+Over the chimney-piece hung a portrait, by Vandyke, of a pale, dark
+cavalier, of noble mien, and with arched eyebrows, called by Lilias,
+in defiance of dates, by the name of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the hero
+of the family, and allowed by every one to be a striking likeness of
+Claude, the youth who at that moment lay, extending a somewhat superfluous
+length of limb upon the sofa, which was placed commodiously at right
+angles to the fire.<br>
+<br>
+The other side of the fire was Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s special domain, and
+there he sat at his writing-table, abstracted by deafness and letter
+writing, from the various sounds of mirth and nonsense, which proceeded
+from the party round the long narrow sofa table, which they had drawn
+across the front of the fire, leaving the large round centre table in
+darkness and oblivion.<br>
+<br>
+This party had within the last half hour been somewhat thinned; the
+three younger girls had gone to bed, the Rector of Beechcroft, Mr. Robert
+Devereux, had been called home to attend some parish business, and there
+remained Emily and Lilias - tall graceful girls, with soft hazel eyes,
+clear dark complexions, and a quantity of long brown curls.&nbsp; The
+latter was busily completing a guard for the watch, which Mr. Hawkesworth
+had presented to Reginald, a fine handsome boy of eleven, who, with
+his elbows on the table, sat contemplating her progress, and sometimes
+teasing his brother Maurice, who was earnestly engaged in constructing
+a model with some cards, which he had pilfered from the heap before
+Emily.&nbsp; She was putting her sister&rsquo;s wedding cards into their
+shining envelopes, and directing them in readiness for the post the
+next morning, while they were sealed by a youth of the same age as Claude,
+a small slim figure, with light complexion and hair, and dark gray eyes
+full of brightness and vivacity.<br>
+<br>
+He was standing, so as to be more on a level with the high candle, and
+as Emily&rsquo;s writing was not quite so rapid as his sealing, he amused
+himself in the intervals with burning his own fingers, by twisting the
+wax into odd shapes.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why do you not seal up his eyes?&rsquo; inquired Reginald, with
+an arch glance towards his brother on the sofa.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do it yourself, you rogue,&rsquo; was the answer, at the same
+time approaching with the hot sealing-wax in his hand - a demonstration
+which occasioned Claude to open his eyes very wide, without giving himself
+any further trouble about the matter.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;now they try to look innocent, as
+if no one could hear them plotting mischief.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Them! it was not! - Redgie there - young ladies - I appeal -
+was not I as innocent?&rsquo; - was the very rapid, incoherent, and
+indistinct answer.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;After so lucid and connected a justification, no more can be
+said,&rsquo; replied Claude, in a kind of &lsquo;leave me, leave me
+to repose&rsquo; tone, which occasioned Lilias to say, &lsquo;I am afraid
+you are very tired.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Tired! what has he done to tire him?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure a wedding is a terrible wear of spirits!&rsquo; said
+Emily - &lsquo;such excitement.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well - when I give a spectacle to the family next year, I mean
+to tire you to some purpose.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, looking up, &lsquo;is Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+wedding to be the next?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You ought to understand, uncle,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood,
+making two stops towards him, and speaking a little more clearly, &lsquo;I
+thought you longed to get rid of your nephew and his concerns.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You idle boy!&rsquo; returned Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;you do not mean
+to have the impertinence to come of age next year.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;As much as having been born on the 30th of July, 1825, can make
+me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But what good will your coming of age do us?&rsquo; said Lilias,
+&lsquo;you will be in London or Brighton, or some such stupid place.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not be senseless, Lily,&rsquo; returned her cousin.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Devereux Castle is to be in splendour - Hetherington in amazement
+- the county&rsquo;s hair shall stand on end - illuminations, bonfires,
+feasts, balls, colours flying, bands playing, tenants dining, fireworks
+- &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Hurrah! jolly! jolly!&rsquo; shouted Reginald, dancing on the
+ottoman, &lsquo;and mind there are lots of squibs.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And that Master Reginald Mohun has a new cap and bells for the
+occasion,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me make some fireworks,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will begin like a noble baron of the hospitable olden time,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It will be like the old days, when every birthday of yours was
+a happy day for the people at Hetherington,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! those were happy old days,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, in
+a graver tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;These are happy days, are not they?&rsquo; said Lily, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+Her cousin answered with a sigh, &lsquo;Yes, but you do not remember
+the old ones, Lily;&rsquo; then, after a pause, he added, &lsquo;It
+was a grievous mistake to shut up the castle all these years.&nbsp;
+We have lost sight of everybody.&nbsp; I do not even know what has become
+of the Aylmers.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They went to live in London,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;Aunt Robert
+used to write to them there.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I know, I know, but where are they now?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In London, I should think,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Some
+one said Miss Aylmer was gone out as a governess.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed!&nbsp; I wish I could hear more!&nbsp; Poor Mr. Aylmer!&nbsp;
+He was the first man who tried to teach me Latin.&nbsp; I wonder what
+has become of that mad fellow Edward, and Devereux, my father&rsquo;s
+godson!&nbsp; Was not Mrs. Aylmer badly off?&nbsp; I cannot bear that
+people should be forgotten!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is not so very long that we have lost sight of them,&rsquo;
+said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eight years,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;He died
+six weeks after my father.&nbsp; Well!&nbsp; I have made my mother promise
+to come home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Really?&rsquo; said Lilias, &lsquo;she has been coming so often.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Aye - but she is coming this time.&nbsp; She is to spend the
+winter at the castle, and make acquaintance with all the neighbourhood.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;His lordship is romancing,&rsquo; said Claude to Lily in a confidential
+tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll punish you for suspecting me of talking hyperborean
+language - hyperbolical, I mean,&rsquo; cried Lord Rotherwood; &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll
+make you dance the Polka with all the beauty and fashion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I shall stay at Oxford till it is over,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You do not know what a treasure you will be,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis, &lsquo;ladies like nothing so well as dancing with a fellow
+twice the height he should be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Beware of putting me forward,&rsquo; said Claude, rising, and,
+as he leant against the chimney-piece, looking down from his height
+of six feet three, with a patronising air upon his cousin, &lsquo;I
+shall be taken for the hero, and you for my little brother.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish I was,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;it would be
+much better fun.&nbsp; I should escape the speechifying, the worst part
+of it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;for one whose speeches will be
+scraps of three words each, strung together with the burthen of the
+apprentices&rsquo; song, Radara tadara, tandore.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Radaratade,&rsquo; said the Marquis, laughing.&nbsp; &lsquo;By
+the bye, if Eleanor and Frank Hawkesworth manage well, they may be here
+in time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because they are so devoted to gaiety?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;You will say next that William is coming from Canada, on purpose.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That tall captain!&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;He
+used to be a very awful person.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! he used to keep the spoilt Marquis in order,&rsquo; said
+Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To say nothing of the spoilt Claude,&rsquo; returned Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude never was spoilt,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was not Eleanor&rsquo;s way,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;At least she cannot be accused of spoiling me,&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;I shall never dare to write at that round table
+again - her figure will occupy the chair like Banquo&rsquo;s ghost,
+and wave me off with a knitting needle.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! that stain of ink was a worse blot on your character than
+on the new table cover,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She was rigidly impartial,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;she made exceptions in favour
+of Ada and me.&nbsp; She left the spoiling of the rest to Emily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And well Emily will perform it!&nbsp; A pretty state you will
+be in by the 30th of July, 1846,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why should not Emily make as good a duenna as Eleanor?&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why should she not?&nbsp; She will not - that is all,&rsquo;
+said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Such slow people you all are!&nbsp; You
+would all go to sleep if I did not sometimes rouse you up a little -
+grow stagnant.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not an elegant comparison,&rsquo; said Lilias; &lsquo;besides,
+you must remember that your hasty brawling streams do not reflect like
+tranquil lakes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;One of Lily&rsquo;s poetical hits, I declare!&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood, &lsquo;but she need not have taken offence - I did not refer
+to her - only Claude and Emily, and perhaps - no, I will not say who
+else.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then, Rotherwood, I will tell you what I am - the Lily that derives
+all its support from the calm lake.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well done, Lily, worthy of yourself,&rsquo; cried Lord Rotherwood,
+laughing, &lsquo;but you know I am always off when you talk poetry.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I suspect it is time for us all to be off,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;did I not hear it strike the quarter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And to-morrow I shall be off in earnest,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Half way to London before Claude has given one turn to &ldquo;his
+sides, and his shoulders, and his heavy head.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shall we see you at Easter?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, I do not think you will.&nbsp; I am engaged to stay with
+somebody somewhere, I forget the name of place and man; besides, Grosvenor
+Square is more tolerable then than at any other time of the year, and
+I shall spend a fortnight with my mother and Florence.&nbsp; It is after
+Easter that you come to Oxford, is it not, Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, my year of idleness will be over.&nbsp; And there is the
+Baron looking at his watch.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The &lsquo;Baron&rsquo; was the title by which the young people were
+wont to distinguish Mr. Mohun, who, as Lily believed, had a right to
+the title of Baron of Beechcroft.&nbsp; It was certain that he was the
+representative of a family which had been settled at Beechcroft ever
+since the Norman Conquest, and Lily was very proud of the name of Sir
+William de Moune in the battle roll, and of Sir John among the first
+Knights of the Garter.&nbsp; Her favourite was Sir Maurice, who had
+held out Beechcroft Court for six weeks against the Roundheads, and
+had seen the greater part of the walls battered down.&nbsp; Witnesses
+of the strength of the old castle yet remained in the massive walls
+and broad green ramparts, which enclosed what was now orchard and farm-yard,
+and was called the Old Court, while the dwelling-house, built by Sir
+Maurice after the Restoration, was named the New Court.&nbsp; Sir Maurice
+had lost many an acre in the cause of King Charles, and his new mansion
+was better suited to the honest squires who succeeded him, than to the
+mighty barons his ancestors.&nbsp; It was substantial and well built,
+with a square gravelled court in front, and great, solid, folding gates
+opening into a lane, bordered with very tall well-clipped holly hedges,
+forming a polished, green, prickly wall.&nbsp; There was a little door
+in one of these gates, which was scarcely ever shut, from whence a well-worn
+path led to the porch, where generally reposed a huge Newfoundland dog,
+guardian of the hoops and walkingsticks that occupied the corners.&nbsp;
+The front door was of heavy substantial oak, studded with nails, and
+never closed in the daytime, and the hall, wainscoted and floored with
+slippery oak, had a noble open fireplace, with a wood fire burning on
+the hearth.<br>
+<br>
+On the other side of the house was a terrace sloping down to a lawn
+and bowling-green, hedged in by a formal row of evergreens.&nbsp; A
+noble plane-tree was in the middle of the lawn, and beyond it a pond
+renowned for water-lilies.&nbsp; To the left was the kitchen garden,
+terminating in an orchard, planted on the ramparts and moat of the Old
+Court; then came the farm buildings, and beyond them a field, sloping
+upwards to an extensive wood called Beechcroft Park.&nbsp; In the wood
+was the cottage of Walter Greenwood, gamekeeper and woodman by hereditary
+succession, but able and willing to turn his hand to anything, and,
+in fact, as Adeline once elegantly termed him, the &lsquo;family tee
+totum.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+To the right of the house there was a field, called Long Acre, bounded
+on the other side by the turnpike road to Raynham, which led up the
+hill to the village green, surrounded by well-kept cottages and gardens.&nbsp;
+The principal part of the village was, however, at the foot of the hill,
+where the Court lane crossed the road, led to the old church, the school,
+and parsonage, in its little garden, shut in by thick yew hedges.&nbsp;
+Beyond was the blacksmith&rsquo;s shop, more cottages, and Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s
+wondrous village warehouse; and the lane, after passing by the handsome
+old farmhouse of Mr. Harrington, Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s principal tenant,
+led to a bridge across a clear trout stream, the boundary of the parish
+of Beechcroft.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER III - THE NEW PRINCIPLE<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And wilt thou show no more, quoth he,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;Than doth thy duty bind?<br>
+I well perceive thy love is small.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+On the Sunday evening which followed Eleanor&rsquo;s wedding, Lilias
+was sitting next to Emily, and talking in very earnest tones, which
+after a time occasioned Claude to look up and say, &lsquo;What is all
+this about?&nbsp; Something remarkably absurd I suspect.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only a new principle,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;New!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;only what must be the feeling
+of every person of any warmth of character?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now for it then,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Claude, I really mean it (and Lily sincerely thought
+she did).&nbsp; I will not tell you if you are going to laugh.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That depends upon what your principle may chance to be,&rsquo;
+said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is it, Emily?&nbsp; She will be much
+obliged to you for telling.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She only says she cannot bear people to do their duty, and not
+to act from a feeling of love,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is not fair,&rsquo; returned Lily, &lsquo;all I say is,
+that it is better that people should act upon love for its own sake,
+than upon duty for its own sake.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What comes in rhyme with Lily?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t be tiresome, Claude, I really want you to understand
+me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Wait till you understand yourself,&rsquo; said the provoking
+brother, &lsquo;and let me finish what I am reading.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+For about a quarter of an hour he was left in peace, while Lily was
+busily employed with a pencil and paper, under the shadow of a book,
+and at length laid before him the following verses:-<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is the source of gentleness,<br>
+The spring of human blessedness,<br>
+Bringing the wounded spirit healing,<br>
+The comforts high of heaven revealing,<br>
+The lightener of each daily care,<br>
+The wing of hope, the life of prayer,<br>
+The zest of joy, the balm of sorrow,<br>
+Bliss of to-day, hope of to-morrow,<br>
+The glory of the sun&rsquo;s bright beam,<br>
+The softness of the pale moon stream,<br>
+The flow&rsquo;ret&rsquo;s grace, the river&rsquo;s voice,<br>
+The tune to which the birds rejoice;<br>
+Without it, vain each learned page,<br>
+Cold and unfelt each council sage,<br>
+Heavy and dull each human feature,<br>
+Lifeless and wretched every creature;<br>
+In which alone the glory lies,<br>
+Which value gives to sacrifice?<br>
+&lsquo;Tis that which formed the whole creation,<br>
+Which rests on every generation.<br>
+Of Paradise the only token<br>
+Just left us, &lsquo;mid our treasures broken,<br>
+Which never can from us be riven,<br>
+Sure earnest of the joys of Heaven.<br>
+And which, when earth shall pass away,<br>
+Shall be our rest on the last day,<br>
+When tongues shall fail and knowledge cease,<br>
+And throbbing hearts be all at peace:<br>
+When faith is sight, and hope is sure,<br>
+That which alone shall still endure<br>
+Of earthly joys in heaven above,<br>
+&lsquo;Tis that best gift, eternal Love!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What have you there?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, who had come towards
+them while Claude was reading the lines.&nbsp; Taking the paper from
+Claude&rsquo;s hand, he read it to himself, and then saying, &lsquo;Tolerable,
+Lily; there are some things to alter, but you may easily make it passable,&rsquo;
+he went on to his own place, leaving Lilias triumphant.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Claude, you see I have the great Baron on my side.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am of the Baron&rsquo;s opinion,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;the
+only wonder is that you doubted it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You seemed to say that love was good for nothing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I said nothing but that Lily has a rhyme.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And saying that I was silly, was equivalent to saying that love
+was nothing,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;O Lily, I hope not,&rsquo; said Claude, with a comical air.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I know I often am foolish, but not in this,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;I do say that mere duty is not lovable.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Say it if you will then,&rsquo; said Claude, yawning, &lsquo;only
+let me finish this sermon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily set herself to reconsider some of her lines: but presently Emily
+left the room, Claude looked up, and Lily exclaimed, &lsquo;Now, Claude,
+let us make a trial of it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Claude, yawning again, and looking resigned.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Think how Eleanor went on telling us of duty, duty, duty - never
+making allowances - never relaxing her stiff rules about trifles - never
+unbending from her duenna-like dignity - never showing one spark of
+enthusiasm - making great sacrifices, but only because she thought them
+her duty - because it was right - good for herself - only a higher kind
+of selfishness - not because her feeling prompted her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly, feeling does not usually prompt people to give up
+their lovers for the sake of their brothers and sisters.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She did it because it was her duty,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;quite
+as if she did not care.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wonder whether Frank thought so,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;At any rate you will confess that Emily is a much more engaging
+person,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly, I had rather talk nonsense to her,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You feel it, though you will not allow it,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Now think of Emily&rsquo;s sympathy, and gentleness, and sweet
+smile, and tell me if she is not a complete personification of love.&nbsp;
+And then Eleanor, unpoetical - never thrown off her balance by grief
+or joy, with no ups and downs - no enthusiasm - no appreciation of the
+beautiful - her highest praise &ldquo;very right,&rdquo; and tell me
+if there can be a better image of duty.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude might have had some chance of bringing Lily to her senses, if
+he had allowed that there was some truth in what she had said; but he
+thought the accusation so unjust in general, that he would not agree
+to any part of it, and only answered, &lsquo;You have very strange views
+of duty and of Eleanor.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well!&rsquo; replied Lily, &lsquo;I only ask you to watch; Emily
+and I are determined to act on the principle of love, and you will see
+if her government is not more successful than that of duty.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Such was the principle upon which Lily intended her sister to govern
+the household, and to which Emily listened without knowing what she
+meant much better than she did herself.&nbsp; Emily&rsquo;s own views,
+as far as she possessed any, were to get on as smoothly as she could,
+and make everybody pleased and happy, without much trouble to herself,
+and also to make the establishment look a little more as if a Lady Emily
+had lately been its mistress, than had been the case in Eleanor&rsquo;s
+time.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s property was good, but he wished to avoid
+unnecessary display and expense, and he expected his daughters to follow
+out these views, keeping a wise check upon Emily, by looking over her
+accounts every Saturday, and turning a deaf ear when she talked of the
+age of the drawing-room carpet, and the ugliness of the old chariot.&nbsp;
+Emily had a good deal on her hands, requiring sense and activity, but
+Lilias and Jane were now quite old enough to assist her.&nbsp; Lily
+however, thought fit to despise all household affairs, and bestowed
+the chief of her attention on her own department - the village school
+and poor people; and she was also much engrossed by her music and drawing,
+her German and Italian, and her verse writing.<br>
+<br>
+Claude had more power over her than any one else.&nbsp; He was a gentle,
+amiable boy, of high talent, but disposed to indolence by ill health.&nbsp;
+In most matters he was, however, victorious over this propensity, which
+was chiefly visible in his love of easy chairs, and his dislike of active
+sports, which made him the especial companion of his sisters.&nbsp;
+A dangerous illness had occasioned his removal from Eton, and he had
+since been at home, reading with his cousin Mr. Devereux, and sharing
+his sisters&rsquo; amusements.<br>
+<br>
+Jane was in her own estimation an important member of the administration,
+and in fact, was Emily&rsquo;s chief assistant and deputy.&nbsp; She
+was very small and trimly made, everything fitted her precisely, and
+she had tiny dexterous fingers, and active little feet, on which she
+darted about noiselessly and swiftly as an arrow; an oval brown face,
+bright colour, straight features, and smooth dark hair, bright sparkling
+black eyes, a little mouth, wearing an arch subdued smile, very white
+teeth, and altogether the air of a woman in miniature.&nbsp; Brisk,
+bold, and blithe - ever busy and ever restless, she was generally known
+by the names of Brownie and Changeling, which were not inappropriate
+to her active and prying disposition.<br>
+<br>
+Excepting Claude and Emily, the young party were early risers, and Lily
+especially had generally despatched a good deal of business before the
+eight o&rsquo;clock breakfast.<br>
+<br>
+At nine they went to church, Mr. Devereux having restored the custom
+of daily service, and after this, Mr. Mohun attended to his multitudinous
+affairs; Claude went to the parsonage, - Emily to the storeroom, Lily
+to the village, the younger girls to the schoolroom, where they were
+presently joined by Emily.&nbsp; Lily remained in her own room till
+one o&rsquo;clock, when she joined the others in the schoolroom, and
+they read aloud some book of history till two, the hour of dinner for
+the younger, and of luncheon for the elder.&nbsp; They then went out,
+and on their return from evening service, which began at half-past four,
+the little ones had their lessons to learn, and the others were variously
+employed till dinner, the time of which was rather uncertain but always
+late.&nbsp; The evening passed pleasantly and quickly away in reading,
+work, music, and chatter.<br>
+<br>
+As Emily had expected, her first troubles were with Phyllis; called,
+not the neat handed, by her sisters; Master Phyl, by her brothers; and
+Miss Tomboy, by the maids.&nbsp; She seemed born to be a trial of patience
+to all concerned with her; yet without many actual faults, except giddiness,
+restlessness, and unrestrained spirits.&nbsp; In the drawing-room, schoolroom,
+and nursery she was continually in scrapes, and so often reproved and
+repentant, that her loud roaring fits of crying were amongst the ordinary
+noises of the New Court.&nbsp; She was terribly awkward when under constraint,
+or in learning any female accomplishment, but swift and ready when at
+her ease, and glorying in the boyish achievements of leaping ditches
+and climbing trees.&nbsp; Her voice was rather highly pitched, and she
+had an inveterate habit of saying, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,&rsquo;
+at the beginning of all her speeches.&nbsp; She was not tall, but strong,
+square, firm, and active; she had a round merry face, a broad forehead,
+and large bright laughing eyes, of a doubtful shade between gray and
+brown.&nbsp; Her mouth was wide, her nose turned up, her complexion
+healthy, but not rosy, and her stiff straight brown hair was more apt
+to hang over her eyes, than to remain in its proper place behind her
+ears.<br>
+<br>
+Adeline was very different; her fair and brilliant complexion, her deep
+blue eyes and golden ringlets, made her a very lovely little creature;
+her quietness was a relief after her sister&rsquo;s boisterous merriment,
+and her dislike of dirt and brambles, continually contrasted with poor
+Phyllis&rsquo;s recklessness of such impediments.&nbsp; Ada readily
+learnt lessons, which cost Phyllis and her teacher hours of toil; Ada
+worked deftly when Phyllis&rsquo;s stiff fingers never willingly touched
+a needle; Ada played with a doll, drew on scraps of paper, or put up
+dissected maps, while Phyllis was in mischief or in the way.&nbsp; A
+book was the only chance of interesting her; but very few books took
+her fancy enough to occupy her long; - those few, however, she read
+over and over again, and when unusual tranquillity reigned in the drawing-room,
+she was sure to be found curled up at the top of the library steps,
+reading one of three books - <i>Robinson Crusoe, Little Jack, </i>or
+<i>German Popular Tales</i>.&nbsp; Then Emily blamed her ungraceful
+position, Jane laughed at her uniform taste, and Lily proposed some
+story about modern children, such as Phyllis never could like, and the
+constant speech was repeated, &lsquo;Only look at Ada!&rsquo; till Phyllis
+considered her sister as a perfect model, and sighed over her own naughtiness.<br>
+<br>
+<i>German Popular Tales </i>were a recent introduction of Claude&rsquo;s,
+for Eleanor had carefully excluded all fairy tales from her sisters&rsquo;
+library; so great was her dread of works of fiction, that Emily and
+Lilias had never been allowed to read any of the Waverley Novels, excepting
+<i>Guy Mannering, </i>which their brother Henry had insisted upon reading
+aloud to them the last time he was at home, and that had taken so strong
+a hold on their imagination, that Eleanor was quite alarmed.<br>
+<br>
+One day Mr. Mohun chanced to refer to some passage in <i>Waverley, </i>and
+on finding that his daughters did not understand him, he expressed great
+surprise at their want of taste.<br>
+<br>
+Poor things,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;they cannot help it; do not
+you know that Eleanor thinks the Waverley Novels a sort of slow poison?&nbsp;
+They know no more of them than their outsides.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, the sooner they know the inside the better.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then may we really read them, papa?&rsquo; cried Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And welcome,&rsquo; said her father.<br>
+<br>
+This permission once given, the young ladies had no idea of moderation;
+Lily&rsquo;s heart and soul were wrapped up in whatever tale she chanced
+to be reading - she talked of little else, she neglected her daily occupations,
+and was in a kind of trance for about three weeks.&nbsp; At length she
+was recalled to her senses by her father&rsquo;s asking her why she
+had shown him no drawings lately.&nbsp; Lily hesitated for a moment,
+and then said, &lsquo;Papa, I am sorry I was so idle.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;let us be able to give
+a good account of ourselves when Eleanor comes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am afraid, papa,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the truth is, that
+my head has been so full of <i>Woodstock </i>for the last few days,
+that I could do nothing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And before that?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;<i>The Bride of Lammermoor.</i>&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And last week?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;<i>Waverley</i>.&nbsp; Oh! papa, I am afraid you must be very
+angry with me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Lily, not yet,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I do not
+think you quite knew what an intoxicating draught you had got hold of;
+I should have cautioned you.&nbsp; Your negligence has not yet been
+a serious fault, though remember, that it becomes so after warning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I will just finish <i>Peveril
+</i>at once, and get it out of my head, and then read no more of the
+dear books,&rsquo; and she gave a deep sigh.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily would take the temperance pledge, on condition that she
+might finish her bottle at a draught,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+Lily laughed, and looked down, feeling quite unable to offer to give
+up <i>Peveril </i>before she had finished it, but her father relieved
+her, by saying in his kind voice, &lsquo;No, no, Lily, take my advice,
+read those books, for most of them are very good reading, and very pretty
+reading, and very useful reading, and you can hardly be called a well-educated
+person if you do not know them; but read them only after the duties
+of the day are done - make them your pleasure, but do not make yourself
+their slave.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily,&rsquo; said Claude the next morning, as he saw her prepare
+her drawing-desk, &lsquo;why are you not reading <i>Peveril</i>?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know what papa said yesterday,&rsquo; was the answer.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! but I thought your feelings were with poor Julian in the
+Tower,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My feelings prompt me to sacrifice my pleasure in reading about
+him to please papa, after he spoke so kindly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If that is always the effect of your principle, I shall think
+better of it,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+Lily, whether from her new principle, or her old habits of obedience,
+never ventured to touch one of her tempters till after five o&rsquo;clock,
+but, as she was a very rapid reader, she generally contrived to devour
+more than a sufficient quantity every evening, so that she did not enjoy
+them as much as she would, had she been less voracious in her appetite,
+and they made her complain grievously of the dulness of the latter part
+of Russell&rsquo;s <i>Modern Europe, </i>which was being read in the
+schoolroom, and yawn nearly as much as Phyllis over the &lsquo;Pragmatic
+Sanction.&rsquo;&nbsp; However, when that book was concluded, and they
+began Palgrave&rsquo;s <i>Anglo Saxons, </i>Lily was seized within a
+sudden historical fever.&nbsp; She could hardly wait till one o&rsquo;clock,
+before she settled herself at the schoolroom table with her work, and
+summoned every one, however occupied, to listen to the reading.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER IV - HONEST PHYL<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Multiplication<br>
+Is a vexation.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was a bright and beautiful afternoon in March, the song of the blackbird
+and thrush, and the loud chirp of the titmouse, came merrily through
+the schoolroom window, mixed with the sounds of happy voices in the
+garden; the western sun shone brightly in, and tinged the white wainscoted
+wall with yellow light; the cat sat in the window-seat, winking at the
+sun, and sleepily whisking her tail for the amusement of her kitten,
+which was darting to and fro, and patting her on the head, in the hope
+of rousing her to some more active sport.<br>
+<br>
+But in the midst of all these joyous sights and sounds, was heard a
+dolorous voice repeating, &lsquo;three and four are - three and four
+are - oh dear! they are - seven, no, but I do not think it is a four
+after all, is it not a one?&nbsp; Oh dear!&rsquo;&nbsp; And on the floor
+lay Phyllis, her back to the window, kicking her feet slowly up and
+down, and yawning and groaning over her slate.<br>
+<br>
+Presently the door opened, and Claude looked in, and very nearly departed
+again instantly, for Phyllis at that moment made a horrible squeaking
+with her slate-pencil, the sound above all others that he disliked.&nbsp;
+He, however, stopped, and asked where Emily was.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Out in the garden,&rsquo; answered Phyllis, with a tremendous
+yawn.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What are you doing here, looking so piteous?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My sum,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is this your time of day for arithmetic?&rsquo; asked he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;only I had not done it by one
+o&rsquo;clock to-day, and Lily said I must finish after learning my
+lessons for to-morrow, but I do not think I shall ever have done, it
+is so hard.&nbsp; Oh!&rsquo; (another stretch and a yawn, verging on
+a howl), &lsquo;and Jane and Ada are sowing the flower-seeds.&nbsp;
+Oh dear!&nbsp; Oh dear!&rsquo; and Phyllis&rsquo;s face contracted,
+in readiness to cry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And is that the best position for doing sums?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was obliged to lie down here to get out of the way of Ada&rsquo;s
+sum,&rsquo; said Phyllis, getting up.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Get out of the way of Ada&rsquo;s sum?&rsquo; repeated Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, she left it on the table where I was sitting, where I could
+see it, and it is this very one, so I must not look at it; I wish I
+could do sums as fast as she can.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Could you not have turned the other side of the slate upwards?&rsquo;
+said Claude, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So I could!&rsquo; said Phyllis, as if a new light had broken
+in upon her.&nbsp; &lsquo;But then I wanted to be out of sight of pussy,
+for I could not think a bit, while the kitten was at play so prettily,
+and I kicked my heels to keep from hearing the voices in the garden,
+for it does make me so unhappy!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Some good-natured brothers would have told the little girl not to mind,
+and sent her out to enjoy herself, but Claude respected Phyllis&rsquo;s
+honesty too much to do so, and he said, &lsquo;Well, Phyl, let me see
+the sum, and we will try if we cannot conquer it between us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis&rsquo;s face cleared up in an instant, as she brought the slate
+to her brother.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is this?&rsquo; said he; &lsquo;I do not understand.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Compound Addition,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I did one with
+Emily yesterday, and this is the second.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! these are marks between the pounds, shillings, and pence,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;I took them for elevens; well, I do not wonder at
+your troubles, I could not do this sum as it is set.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Could not you, indeed?&rsquo; cried Phyllis, quite delighted.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, indeed,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Suppose we set it
+again, more clearly; but how is this?&nbsp; When I was in the schoolroom
+we always had a sponge fastened to the slate.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I had one before Eleanor went,
+but my string broke, and I lost it, and Emily always forgets to give
+me another.&nbsp; I will run and wash the slate in the nursery; but
+how shall we know what the sum is?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, I suppose I may look at Ada&rsquo;s slate, though you must
+not,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing to himself at poor little honest simplicity,
+as he applied himself to cut a new point to her very stumpy slate-pencil,
+and she scampered away, and returned in a moment with her clean slate.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, how nice and fresh it all looks!&rsquo; said she as he set
+down the clear large figures.&nbsp; &lsquo;I cannot think how you can
+do it so evenly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Phyl, do not let the pencil scream if you can help it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude found that Phyllis&rsquo;s great difficulty was with the farthings.&nbsp;
+She could not understand the fractional figures, and only knew thus
+far, that &lsquo;Emily said it never meant four.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude began explaining, but his first attempt was far too scientific.&nbsp;
+Phyllis gave a desponding sigh, looking so mystified, that he began
+to believe that she was hopelessly dull, and to repent of having offered
+to help her; but at last, by means of dividing a card into four pieces,
+he succeeded in making her comprehend him, and her eyes grew bright
+with the pleasure of understanding.<br>
+<br>
+Even then the difficulties were not conquered, her addition was very
+slow, and dividing by twelve and twenty seemed endless work; at length
+the last figure of the pounds was set down, the slate was compared with
+Adeline&rsquo;s, and the sum pronounced to be right.&nbsp; Phyllis capered
+up to the kitten and tossed it up in the air in her joy, then coming
+slowly back to her brother, she said with a strange, awkward air, hanging
+down her head, &lsquo;Claude, I&rsquo;ll tell you what - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, what?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should like to kiss you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Then away she bounded, clattered down stairs, and flew across the lawn
+to tell every one she met that Claude had helped her to do her sum,
+and that it was quite right.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you expect that it would be too hard for him, Phyl?&rsquo;
+said Jane, laughing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;but he said he could not do it
+as it was set.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And whose fault was that?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! but he showed me how to set it better,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+&lsquo;and he said that when he learnt the beginning of fractions, he
+thought them as hard as I do.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Fractions!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you do not fancy you have
+come to fractions yet!&nbsp; Fine work you will make of them when you
+do!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In the evening, as soon as the children were gone to bed, Jane took
+a paper out of her work-basket, saying, &lsquo;There, Emily, is my account
+of Phyl&rsquo;s scrapes through this whole week; I told you I should
+write them all down.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How kind!&rsquo; muttered Claude.<br>
+<br>
+Regardless of her brother, who had not looked up from his book, Jane
+began reading her list of poor Phyllis&rsquo;s misadventures.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;On Monday she tore her frock by climbing a laurel-tree, to look
+at a blackbird&rsquo;s nest.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I gave her leave,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Rachel had
+ordered her not to climb; and she was crying because she could not see
+the nest that Wat Greenwood had found.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;On Tuesday she cried over her French grammar, and tore a leaf
+out of the old spelling-book.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That was nearly out before,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;Maurice
+and Redgie spoilt that long ago.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know of anything on Wednesday, but on Thursday she threw
+Ada down the steps out of the nursery.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! that accounts for the dreadful screaming that I heard,&rsquo;
+said Claude; &lsquo;I forgot to ask the meaning of it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure it was Phyl that was the most dismayed, and cried the
+loudest,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That she always does,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;On Friday
+we had an uproar in the schoolroom about her hemming, and on Saturday
+she tumbled into a wet ditch, and tore her bonnet in the brambles; on
+Sunday, she twisted her ancles together at church.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, there I did chance to observe her,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;there
+seemed to be a constant struggle between her ancles and herself, they
+were continually coming lovingly together, but were separated the next
+moment.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And to-day this sum,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;seven scrapes in
+one week!&nbsp; I really am of opinion, as Rachel says when she is angry,
+that school is the best place for her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think so too,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;she is very troublesome,
+but - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Claude!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;you do not mean that you
+would have that poor dear merry Master Phyl sent to school, she would
+pine away like a wild bird in a cage; but papa will never think of such
+a thing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If I thought of her being sent to school,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;it would be to shield her from - the rule of love.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! you think we are too indulgent,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;perhaps
+we are, but you know we cannot torment a poor child all day long.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If you call the way you treat her indulgent, I should like to
+know what you call severe.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What do you mean, Claude?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I call your indulgence something like the tender mercies of the
+wicked,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;On a fine day, when every one
+is taking their pleasure in the garden, to shut an unhappy child up
+in the schoolroom, with a hard sum that you have not taken the trouble
+to teach her how to do, and late in the day, when no one&rsquo;s head
+is clear for difficult arithmetic - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Hard sum do you call it?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed I explained it to her,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And well she understood you,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She might have learnt if she had attended,&rsquo; said Emily;
+&lsquo;Ada understood clearly, with the same explanation.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And do not you be too proud of the effect of your instructions,
+Claude,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;for when honest Phyl came into the
+garden, she did not know farthings from fractions.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And pray, Mrs. Senior Wrangler,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;will
+you tell me where is the difference between a half-penny and half a
+penny?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a good laugh at Jane&rsquo;s expense, Emily went on, &lsquo;Now,
+Claude, I will tell you how it happened; Phyllis is so slow, and dawdles
+over her lessons so long, that it is quite a labour to hear her; Ada
+is quick enough, but if you were to hear Phyllis say one column of spelling,
+you would know what misery is.&nbsp; Then before she has half finished,
+the clock strikes one, it is time to read, and the lessons are put off
+till the afternoon.&nbsp; I certainly did not know that she was about
+her sum all that time, or I would have sent her out as I did on Saturday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And the reading at one is as fixed as fate,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, no!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;when we were about old &ldquo;Russell,&rdquo;
+we did not begin till nearly two, but since we have been reading this
+book, Lily will never let us rest till we begin; she walks up and down,
+and hurries and worries and - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Emily, in a murmuring voice, &lsquo;we should
+do better if Lily would not make such a point of that one thing; but
+she never minds what else is cut short, and she never thinks of helping
+me.&nbsp; It never seems to enter her head how much I have on my hands,
+and no one does anything to help me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Emily! you never asked me,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I knew you would not like it,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;No,
+it is not my way to complain, people may see how to help me if they
+choose to do it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily, Lily, take care,&rsquo; said Claude, in a low voice; &lsquo;is
+not the rule you admire, the rule of love of yourself?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Claude!&rsquo; returned Lily, &lsquo;do not say so, you know
+it was Emily that I called an example of it, not myself, and see how
+forbearing she has been.&nbsp; Now I see that I am really wanted, I
+will help.&nbsp; It must be love, not duty, that calls me to the schoolroom,
+for no one ever said that was my province.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Poor duty! you give it a very narrow boundary.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias, who, to say the truth, had been made more careful of her own
+conduct, by the wish to establish her principle, really betook herself
+to the schoolroom for an hour every morning, with a desire to be useful.&nbsp;
+She thought she did great things in undertaking those tasks of Phyllis&rsquo;s
+which Emily most disliked.&nbsp; But Lilias was neither patient nor
+humble enough to be a good teacher, though she could explain difficult
+rules in a sensible way.&nbsp; She could not, or would not, understand
+the difference between dulness and inattention; her sharp hasty manner
+would frighten away all her pupil&rsquo;s powers of comprehension; she
+sometimes fell into the great error of scolding, when Phyllis was doing
+her best, and the poor child&rsquo;s tears flowed more frequently than
+ever.<br>
+<br>
+Emily&rsquo;s gentle manner made her instructions far more agreeable,
+though she was often neither clear nor correct in her explanations;
+she was contented if the lessons were droned through in any manner,
+so long as she could say they were done; she disliked a disturbance,
+and overlooked or half corrected mistakes rather than cause a cry.&nbsp;
+Phyllis naturally preferred being taught by her, and Lily was vexed
+and unwilling to persevere.&nbsp; She went to the schoolroom expecting
+to be annoyed, created vexation for herself, and taught in anything
+but a loving spirit.&nbsp; Still, however, the thought of Claude, and
+the wish to do more than her duty, kept her constant to her promise,
+and her love of seeing things well done was useful, though sadly counterbalanced
+by her deficiency in temper and patience.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER V - VILLAGE GOSSIP<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The deeds we do, the words we say,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Into still air they seem to fleet;<br>
+We count them past,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;But they shall last.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Soon after Easter, Claude went to Oxford.&nbsp; He was much missed by
+his sisters, who wanted him to carve for them at luncheon, to escort
+them when they rode or walked, to hear their music, talk over their
+books, advise respecting their drawings, and criticise Lily&rsquo;s
+verses.&nbsp; A new subject of interest was, however, arising for them
+in the neighbours who were shortly expected to arrive at Broom Hill,
+a house which had lately been built in a hamlet about a mile and a half
+from the New Court.<br>
+<br>
+These new comers were the family of a barrister of the name of Weston,
+who had taken the house for the sake of his wife, her health having
+been much injured by her grief at the loss of two daughters in the scarlet
+fever.&nbsp; Two still remained, a grown-up young lady, and a girl of
+eleven years old, and the Miss Mohuns learnt with great delight that
+they should have near neighbours of their own age.&nbsp; They had never
+had any young companions as young ladies were scarce among their acquaintance,
+and they had not seen their cousin, Lady Florence Devereux, since they
+were children.<br>
+<br>
+It was with great satisfaction that Emily and Lilias set out with their
+father to make the first visit, and they augured well from their first
+sight of Mrs. Weston and her daughters.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston was alone,
+her daughters being out walking, and Lily spent the greater part of
+the visit in silence, though her mind was made up in the first ten minutes,
+as she told Emily on leaving the house, &lsquo;that Miss Weston&rsquo;s
+tastes were in complete accordance with her own.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rapid judgment,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Love before first
+sight.&nbsp; But Mrs. Weston is a very sweet person.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And, Emily, did you see the music-book open at &ldquo;Angels
+ever bright and fair?&rdquo;&nbsp; If Miss Weston sings that as I imagine
+it!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How could you see what was in the music-book at the other end
+of the room?&nbsp; I only saw it was a beautiful piano.&nbsp; And what
+handsome furniture! it made me doubly ashamed of our faded carpet and
+chairs, almost as old as the house itself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily!&rsquo; said Lily, in her most earnest tones, &lsquo;I
+would not change one of those dear old chairs for a king&rsquo;s ransom!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The visit was in a short time returned, and though it was but a formal
+morning call, Lilias found her bright expectations realised by the sweetness
+of Alethea Weston&rsquo;s manners, and the next time they met it was
+a determined thing in her mind that, as Claude would have said, they
+had sworn an eternal friendship.<br>
+<br>
+She had the pleasure of lionising the two sisters over the Old Court,
+telling all she knew and all she imagined about the siege, Sir Maurice
+Mohun, and his faithful servant, Walter Greenwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;Miss
+Weston,&rsquo; said she in conclusion, &lsquo;have you read <i>Old Mortality</i>?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Alethea, amused at the question.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because they say I am as bad as Lady Margaret about the king&rsquo;s
+visit.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have not heard the story often enough to think so,&rsquo; said
+Miss Weston, &lsquo;I will warn you if I do.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In the meantime Phyllis and Adeline were equally charmed with Marianne,
+though shocked at her ignorance of country manners, and, indeed, Alethea
+was quite diverted with Lily&rsquo;s pity at the discovery that she
+had never before been in the country in the spring.&nbsp; &lsquo;What,&rsquo;
+she cried, &lsquo;have you never seen the tufts of red on the hazel,
+nor the fragrant golden palms, and never heard the blackbird rush twittering
+out of the hedge, nor the first nightingale&rsquo;s note, nor the nightjar&rsquo;s
+low chirr, nor the chattering of the rooks?&nbsp; O what a store of
+sweet memories you have lost!&nbsp; Why, how can you understand the
+beginning of the Allegro?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Both the Miss Westons had so much pleasure in making acquaintance with
+&lsquo;these delights,&rsquo; as quite to compensate for their former
+ignorance, and soon the New Court rang with their praises.&nbsp; Mr.
+Mohun thought very highly of the whole family, and rejoiced in such
+society for his daughters, and they speedily became so well acquainted,
+that it was the ordinary custom of the Westons to take luncheon at the
+New Court on Sunday.&nbsp; On her side, however, Alethea Weston felt
+some reluctance to become intimate with the young ladies of the New
+Court.&nbsp; She was pleased with Emily&rsquo;s manners, interested
+by Lily&rsquo;s earnestness and simplicity, and thought Jane a clever
+and amusing little creature, but even their engaging qualities gave
+her pain, by reminding her of the sisters she had lost, or by making
+her think how they would have liked them.&nbsp; A country house and
+neighbours like these had been the objects of many visions of their
+childhood, and now all the sweet sights and sounds around her only made
+her think how she should have enjoyed them a year ago.&nbsp; She felt
+almost jealous of Marianne&rsquo;s liking for her new friends, lest
+they should steal her heart from Emma and Lucy; but knowing that these
+were morbid and unthankful feelings, she struggled against them, and
+though she missed her sisters even more than when her mother and Marianne
+were in greater need of her attention, she let no sign of her sorrowful
+feeling appear, and seeing that Marianne was benefited in health and
+spirits, by intercourse with young companions, she gave no hint of her
+disinclination to join in the walks and other amusements of the Miss
+Mohuns.<br>
+<br>
+She also began to take interest in the poor people.&nbsp; By Mrs. Weston&rsquo;s
+request, Mr. Devereux had pointed out the families which were most in
+need of assistance, and Alethea made it her business to find out the
+best way of helping them.&nbsp; She visited the village school with
+Lilias, and when requested by her and by the Rector to give her aid
+in teaching, she did not like to refuse what might be a duty, though
+she felt very diffident of her powers of instruction.&nbsp; Marianne,
+like Phyllis and Adeline, became a Sunday scholar, and was catechised
+with the others in church.&nbsp; Both Mr. Mohun and his nephew thought
+very highly of the family, and the latter was particularly glad that
+Lily should have some older person to assist her in those parish matters
+which he left partly in her charge.<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Devereux had been Rector of Beechcroft about a year and a half,
+and had hitherto been much liked.&nbsp; His parishioners had known him
+from a boy, and were interested about him, and though very young, there
+was something about him that gained their respect.&nbsp; Almost all
+his plans were going on well, and things were, on the whole, in a satisfactory
+state, though no one but Lilias expected even Cousin Robert to make
+a Dreamland of Beechcroft, and there were days when he looked worn and
+anxious, and the girls suspected that some one was behaving ill.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you a headache, Robert?&rsquo; asked Emily, a few evenings
+before Whit-Sunday, &lsquo;you have not spoken three words this evening.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not at all, thank you,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, smiling, &lsquo;you
+need not think to make me your victim, now you have no Claude to nurse.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then if it is not bodily, it is mental,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am in a difficulty about the christening of Mrs. Naylor&rsquo;s
+child.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Naylor the blacksmith?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+thought it was high time for it to be christened.&nbsp; It must be six
+weeks old.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is it not to be on Whit-Sunday?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Lily, disconsolately.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh no!&nbsp; Mrs. Naylor will not hear of bringing the child
+on a Sunday, and I could hardly make her think it possible to bring
+it on Whit-Tuesday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why did you not insist?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps I might, if there was no other holy day at hand, or if
+there was not another difficulty, a point on which I cannot give way.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! the godfathers and godmothers,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;does
+she want that charming brother of hers, Edward Gage?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, and what is worse, Edward Gage&rsquo;s dissenting wife,
+and Dick Rodd, who shows less sense of religion than any one in the
+parish, and has never been confirmed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Could you make them hear reason?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They were inclined to be rather impertinent,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;Old Mrs. Gage - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; interrupted Jane, &lsquo;there is no hope for you
+if the sour Gage is in the pie.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The sour Gage told me people were not so particular in her younger
+days, and perhaps they should not have the child christened at all,
+since I was such a <i>contrary </i>gentleman.&nbsp; Tom Naylor was not
+at home, I am to see him to-morrow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I do not think Tom Naylor is as bad as the rest,&rsquo;
+said Lily; &lsquo;he would have been tolerable, if he had married any
+one but Martha Gage.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, he is an open good-natured fellow, and I have hopes of making
+an impression on him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I hope papa will take away his
+custom.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, who always heard any mention of
+himself.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux repeated his history, and discussed the
+matter with his uncle, only once interrupted by an inquiry from Jane
+about the child&rsquo;s name, a point on which she could gain no intelligence.&nbsp;
+His report the next day was not decidedly unfavourable, though he scarcely
+hoped the christening would be so soon as Tuesday.&nbsp; He had not
+seen the father, and suspected he had purposely kept out of the way.<br>
+<br>
+Jane, disappointed that the baby&rsquo;s name remained a mystery, resolved
+to set out on a voyage of discovery.&nbsp; Accordingly, as soon as her
+cousin was gone, she asked Emily if she had not been saying that Ada
+wanted some more cotton for her sampler.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but I am not going to walk all
+the way to Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s this afternoon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shall I go?&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ada, run and fetch
+your pattern.&rsquo;&nbsp; Emily and Ada were much obliged by Jane&rsquo;s
+disinterested offer, and in a quarter of an hour Ada&rsquo;s thoughts
+and hands were busy in Mrs. Appleton&rsquo;s drawer of many-coloured
+cotton.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What a pity this is about Mrs. Naylor&rsquo;s baby,&rsquo; began
+Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is a sad story indeed, Miss Jane, I am sure it must be grievous
+to Mr. Devereux,&rsquo; said Mrs. Appleton.&nbsp; &lsquo;Betsy Wall
+said he had been there three times about it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! we all know that Walls have ears,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;how
+that Betsy does run about gossiping!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss Jane, there she bides all day long at the stile gaping;
+not a stitch does she do for her mother; I cannot tell what is to be
+the end of it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And do you know what the child&rsquo;s name is to be, Mrs. Appleton?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Miss Jane,&rsquo; answered Mrs. Appleton.&nbsp; &lsquo;Betsy
+did say they talked of naming him after his uncle, Edward Gage, only
+Mr. Devereux would not let him stand.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Since he married that dissenting
+wife he never comes near the church; he is too much like the sour Gage,
+as we call his mother, to be good for much.&nbsp; But, after all, he
+is not so bad as Dick Rodd, who has never been confirmed, and has never
+shown any sense of religion in his life.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss, Dick Rodd is a sad fellow: did you hear what a row
+there was at the Mohun Arms last week, Miss Jane?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Aye,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;and papa says he shall certainly
+turn Dick Rodd out of the house as soon as the lease is out, and it
+is only till next Michaelmas twelve-months.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss, as I said to Betsy Wall, it would be more for their
+interest to behave well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed it would,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Robert and papa
+were talking of having their horses shod at Stoney Bridge, if Tom Naylor
+will be so obstinate, only papa does not like to give Tom up if he can
+help it, because his father was so good, and Tom would not be half so
+bad if he had not married one of the Gages.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Here is Cousin Robert coming down the lane,&rsquo; said Ada,
+who had chosen her cotton, and was gazing from the door.&nbsp; Jane
+gave a violent start, took a hurried leave of Mrs. Appleton, and set
+out towards home; she could not avoid meeting her cousin.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Jenny! have you been enjoying a gossip with your great ally?&rsquo;
+said he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We have only been buying pink cotton,&rsquo; said Ada, whose
+conscience was clear.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;Beechcroft affairs would
+soon stand still, without those useful people, Mrs. Appleton, Miss Wall,
+and Miss Jane Mohun,&rsquo; and he passed on.&nbsp; Jane felt her face
+colouring, his freedom from suspicion made her feel very guilty, but
+the matter soon passed out of her mind.<br>
+<br>
+Blithe Whit-Sunday came, the five Miss Mohuns appeared in white frocks,
+new bonnets were plenty, the white tippets of the children, and the
+bright shawls of the mothers, made the village look gay; Wat Greenwood
+stuck a pink between his lips, and the green boughs of hazel and birch
+decked the dark oak carvings in the church.<br>
+<br>
+And Whit-Monday came.&nbsp; At half-past ten the rude music of the band
+of the Friendly Society came pealing from the top of the hill, then
+appeared two tall flags, crowned with guelder roses and peonies, then
+the great blue drum, the clarionet blown by red-waist-coated and red-faced
+Mr. Appleton, the three flutes and the triangle, all at their loudest,
+causing some of the spectators to start, and others to dance.&nbsp;
+Then behold the whole procession of labourers, in white round frocks,
+blue ribbons in their hats, and tall blue staves in their hands.&nbsp;
+In the rear, the confused mob, women and children, cheerful faces and
+mirthful sounds everywhere.&nbsp; These were hushed as the flags were
+lowered to pass under the low-roofed gateway of the churchyard, and
+all was still, except the trampling of feet on the stone floor.&nbsp;
+Then the service began, the responses were made in full and hearty tones,
+almost running into a chant, the old 133rd Psalm was sung as loudly
+and as badly as usual, a very short but very earnest sermon was preached,
+and forth came the troop again.<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Devereux always dined with the club in a tent, at the top of the
+hill, but his uncle made him promise to come to a second dinner at the
+New Court in the evening.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Robert looks anxious,&rsquo; said Lily, as she parted with him
+after the evening service; &lsquo;I am afraid something is going wrong.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Trust me for finding out what it is,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Jenny, do not ask him,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;if he
+tells us to relieve his mind, I am very glad he should make friends
+of us, but do not ask.&nbsp; Let us talk of other things to put it out
+of his head, whatever it may be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane soon heard more of the cause of the depression of her cousin&rsquo;s
+spirits than even she had any desire to do.&nbsp; After dinner, the
+girls were walking in the garden, enjoying the warmth of the evening,
+when Mr. Devereux came up to her and drew her aside from the rest, telling
+her that he wished to speak to her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;when am I to meet you at school
+again?&nbsp; You never told me which chapter I was to prepare; I cannot
+think what would become of your examinations if it was not for me, you
+could not get an answer to one question in three.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That was not what I wished to speak to you about,&rsquo; said
+Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;What had you been saying to Mrs. Appleton
+when I met you at her door on Saturday?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The colour rushed into Jane&rsquo;s cheeks, but she replied without
+hesitation, &lsquo;Oh! different things, <i>La pluie et le beau temps,
+</i>just as usual.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Cannot you remember anything more distinctly?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I always make a point of forgetting what I talk about,&rsquo;
+said Jane, trying to laugh.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Jane, let me tell you what has happened in the village -
+as I came down the hill from the club-dinner - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh,&rsquo; said Jane, hoping to make a diversion, &lsquo;Wat
+Greenwood came back about a quarter of an hour ago, and he - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Devereux proceeded without attending to her, &lsquo;As I came down
+the hill from the club-dinner, old Mrs. Gage came out of Naylor&rsquo;s
+house, and her daughter with her, in great anger, calling me to account
+for having spoken of her in a most unbecoming way, calling her the sour
+Gage, and trying to set the Squire against them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, that abominable chattering woman!&rsquo; Jane exclaimed;
+&lsquo;and Betsy Wall too, I saw her all alive about something.&nbsp;
+What a nuisance such people are!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In short,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I heard an exaggerated
+account of all that passed here on the subject the other day.&nbsp;
+Now, Jane, am I doing you any injustice in thinking that it must have
+been through you that this history went abroad into the village?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I am sure you never told us that
+it was any secret.&nbsp; When a story is openly told to half a dozen
+people they cannot be expected to keep it to themselves.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I spoke uncharitably and incautiously,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;I
+am willing to confess, but it is nevertheless my duty to set before
+you the great matter that this little fire has kindled.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, it cannot have done any great harm, can it?&rsquo; asked
+Jane, the agitation of her voice and laugh betraying that she was not
+quite so careless as she wished to appear.&nbsp; &lsquo;Only the sour
+Gage will ferment a little.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Jane!&nbsp; I did not expect that you would treat this matter
+so lightly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But tell me, what harm has it done?&rsquo; asked she.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you consider it nothing that the poor child should remain
+unbaptized, that discord should be brought into the parish, that anger
+should be on the conscience of your neighbour, that he should be driven
+from the church?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is it as bad as that?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We do not yet see the full extent of the mischief our idle words
+may have done,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But it is their own fault, if they will do wrong,&rsquo; said
+Jane; &lsquo;they ought not to be in a rage, we said nothing but the
+truth.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish I was clear of the sin,&rsquo; said her cousin.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And after all,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I cannot see that I was
+much to blame; I only talked to Mrs. Appleton, as I have done scores
+of times, and no one minded it.&nbsp; You only laughed at me on Saturday,
+and papa and Eleanor never scolded me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You cannot say that no one has ever tried to check you,&rsquo;
+said the Rector.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And how was I to know that that mischief-maker would repeat it?&rsquo;
+said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not mean to say,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;that you
+actually committed a greater sin than you may often have done, by talking
+in a way which you knew would displease your father.&nbsp; I know we
+are too apt to treat lightly the beginnings of evil, until some sudden
+sting makes us feel what a serpent we have been fostering.&nbsp; Think
+this a warning, pray that the evil we dread may be averted; but should
+it ensue, consider it as a punishment sent in mercy.&nbsp; It will be
+better for you not to come to school to-morrow; instead of the references
+you were to have looked out, I had rather you read over in a humble
+spirit the Epistle of St. James.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane&rsquo;s tears by this time were flowing fast, and finding that
+she no longer attempted to defend herself, her cousin said no more.&nbsp;
+He joined the others, and Jane, escaping to her own room, gave way to
+a passionate fit of crying.&nbsp; Whether her tears were of true sorrow
+or of anger she could not have told herself; she was still sobbing on
+her bed when the darkness came on, and her two little sisters came in
+on their way to bed to wish her good-night.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Jane, Jane! what is the matter? have you been naughty?&rsquo;<i>
+</i>asked the little girls in great amazement.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; said Jane, shortly; &lsquo;good-night,&rsquo;
+and she sat up and wiped away her tears.&nbsp; The children still lingered.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Go away, do,&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;Is Robert gone?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;he is reading the newspaper.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis and Adeline left the room, and Jane walked up and down, considering
+whether she should venture to go down to tea; perhaps her cousin had
+waited till the little girls had gone before he spoke to Mr. Mohun,
+or perhaps her red eyes might cause questions on her troubles; she was
+still in doubt when Lily opened the door, a lamp in her hand.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My dear Jenny, are you here?&nbsp; Ada told me you were crying,
+what is the matter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you have not heard?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only Robert began just now, &ldquo;Poor Jenny, she has been the
+cause of getting us into a very awkward scrape,&rdquo; but then Ada
+came to tell me about you, and I came away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, angrily, &lsquo;he will throw all the
+blame upon me, when I am sure it was quite as much the fault of that
+horrible Mrs. Appleton, and papa will be as angry as possible.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But what has happened?&rsquo; asked Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! that chatterer, that worst of gossipers, has gone and told
+the Naylors and Mrs. Gage all we said about them the other day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So you told Mrs. Appleton?&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;so that was
+the reason you were so obliging about the marking thread.&nbsp; Oh,
+Jane, you had better say no more about Mrs. Appleton!&nbsp; And has
+it done much mischief?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Mrs. Gage &ldquo;pitched&rdquo; into Robert, as Wat
+Greenwood would say, and the christening is off again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jane, this is frightful,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;I do not wonder
+that you are unhappy.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I daresay it will all come right again,&rsquo; said Jane;
+&lsquo;there will only be a little delay, papa and Robert will bring
+them to their senses in time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Suppose the baby was to die,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, it will not die,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;a great fat healthy
+thing like that likely to die indeed!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot make you out, Jane,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;If
+I had done such a thing, I do not think I could have a happy minute
+till it was set right.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I told you I was very sorry,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;only
+I wish they would not all be so hard upon me.&nbsp; Robert owns that
+he should not have said such things if he did not wish them to be repeated.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Does he?&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;How exactly like Robert
+that is, to own himself in fault when he is obliged to blame others.&nbsp;
+Jane, how could you hear him say such things and not be overcome with
+shame?&nbsp; And then to turn it against him!&nbsp; Oh, Jane, I do not
+think I can talk to you any more.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not mean to say it was not very good of him,&rsquo; said
+Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Good of him - what a word!&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Well,
+good-night, I cannot bear to talk to you now.&nbsp; Shall I say anything
+for you downstairs?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, tell papa and Robert I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I shall not come down again, you may leave the lamp.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+On her way downstairs in the dark Lilias was led, by the example of
+her cousin, to reflect that she was not without some share in the mischief
+that had been done; the words which report imputed to Mr. Devereux were
+mostly her own or Jane&rsquo;s.&nbsp; There was no want of candour in
+Lily, and as soon as she entered the drawing-room she went straight
+up to her father and cousin, and began, &lsquo;Poor Jenny is very unhappy;
+she desired me to tell you how sorry she is.&nbsp; But I really believe
+that I did the mischief, Robert.&nbsp; It was I who said those foolish
+things that were repeated as if you had said them.&nbsp; It is a grievous
+affair, but who could have thought that we were doing so much harm?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps it may not do any,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;The
+Naylors have a great deal of good about them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They must have more than I suppose, if they can endure what Robert
+is reported to have said of them,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What did you say, Robert,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;did you not
+tell them all was said by your foolish young cousins?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I agreed with you too much to venture on contradicting the report;
+you know I could not even deny having called Mrs. Gage by that name.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, if I could do anything to mend it!&rsquo; cried Lily.<br>
+<br>
+But wishes had no effect.&nbsp; Lilias and Jane had to mourn over the
+full extent of harm done by hasty words.&nbsp; After the more respectable
+men had left the Mohun Arms on the evening of Whit-Monday, the rest
+gave way to unrestrained drunkenness, not so much out of reckless self-indulgence,
+as to defy the clergyman and the squire.&nbsp; They came to the front
+of the parsonage, yelled and groaned for some time, and ended by breaking
+down the gate.<br>
+<br>
+This conduct was repeated on Tuesday, and on many Saturdays following;
+some young trees in the churchyard were cut, and abuse of the parson
+written on the walls the idle young men taking this opportunity to revenge
+their own quarrels, caused by Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s former efforts for
+their reformation.<br>
+<br>
+On Sunday several children were absent from school; all those belonging
+to Farmer Gage&rsquo;s labourers were taken away, and one man was turned
+off by the farmers for refusing to remove his child.<br>
+<br>
+Now that the war was carried on so openly, Mr. Mohun considered it his
+duty to withdraw his custom from one who chose to set his pastor at
+defiance.&nbsp; He went to the forge, and had a long conversation with
+the blacksmith, but though he was listened to with respect, it was not
+easy to make much impression on an ignorant, hot-tempered man, who had
+been greatly offended, and prided himself on showing that he would support
+the quarrel of his wife and her relations against both squire and parson;
+and though Mr. Mohun did persuade him to own that it was wrong to be
+at war with the clergyman, the effect of his arguments was soon done
+away with by the Gages, and no ground was gained.<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Gage&rsquo;s farm was unhappily at no great distance from a dissenting
+chapel and school, in the adjoining parish of Stoney Bridge, and thither
+the farmer and blacksmith betook themselves, with many of the cottagers
+of Broom Hill.<br>
+<br>
+One alone of the family of Tom Naylor refused to join him in his dissent,
+and that was his sister, Mrs. Eden, a widow, with one little girl about
+seven years old, who, though in great measure dependent upon him for
+subsistence, knew her duty too well to desert the church, or to take
+her child from school, and continued her even course, toiling hard for
+bread, and uncomplaining, though often munch distressed.&nbsp; All the
+rest of the parish who were not immediately under Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s
+influence were in a sad state of confusion.<br>
+<br>
+Jane was grieved at heart, but would not confess it, and Lilias was
+so restless and unhappy, that Emily was quite weary of her lamentations.&nbsp;
+Her best comforter was Miss Weston, who patiently listened to her, sighed
+with her over the evident sorrow of the Rector, and the mischief in
+the parish, and proved herself a true friend, by never attempting to
+extenuate her fault.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER VI - THE NEW FRIEND<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maidens should be mild and meek,<br>
+Swift to hear, and slow to speak.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Miss Weston had been much interested by what she heard respecting Mrs.
+Eden, and gladly discovered that she was just the person who could assist
+in some needlework which was required at Broom Hill.&nbsp; She asked
+Lilias to tell her where to find her cottage, and Lily replied by an
+offer to show her the way; Miss Weston hesitated, thinking that perhaps
+in the present state of things Lily had rather not see her; but her
+doubts were quickly removed by this speech, &lsquo;I want to see her
+particularly.&nbsp; I have been there three times without finding her.&nbsp;
+I think I can set this terrible matter right by speaking to her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Accordingly, Lilias and Phyllis set out with Alethea and Marianne one
+afternoon to Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s cottage, which stood at the edge of a
+long field at the top of the hill.&nbsp; Very fast did Lily talk all
+the way, but she grew more silent as she came to the cottage, and knocked
+at the door; it was opened by Mrs. Eden herself, a pale, but rather
+pretty young woman, with a remarkable gentle and pleasing face, and
+a manner which was almost ladylike, although her hands were freshly
+taken out of the wash-tub.&nbsp; She curtsied low, and coloured at the
+sight of Lilias, set chairs for the visitors, and then returned to her
+work.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Mrs. Eden,&rsquo; Lily began, intending to make her explanation,
+but feeling confused, thought it better to wait till her friend&rsquo;s
+business was settled, and altered her speech into &lsquo;Miss Weston
+is come to speak to you about some work.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mrs. Eden looked quite relieved, and Alethea proceeded to appoint the
+day for her coming to Broom Hill, and arrange some small matters, during
+which Lily not only settled what to say, but worked herself into a fit
+of impatience at the length of Alethea&rsquo;s instructions.&nbsp; When
+they were concluded, however, and there was a pause, her words failed
+her, and she wished that she was miles from the cottage, or that she
+had never mentioned her intentions.&nbsp; At last she stammered out,
+&lsquo;Oh! Mrs. Eden - I wanted to speak to you about - about Mr. Devereux
+and your brother.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mrs. Eden bent over her wash-tub, Miss Weston examined the shells on
+the chimney-piece, Marianne and Phyllis listened with all their ears,
+and poor Lily was exceedingly uncomfortable.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wished to tell you - I do not think - I do not mean - It was
+not his saying.&nbsp; Indeed, he did not say those things about the
+Gages.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I told my brother I did not think Mr. Devereux would go for to
+say such a thing,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden, as much confused as Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! that was right, Mrs. Eden.&nbsp; The mischief was all my
+making and Jane&rsquo;s.&nbsp; We said those foolish things, and they
+were repeated as if it was he.&nbsp; Oh! do tell your brother so, Mrs.
+Eden.&nbsp; It was very good of you to think it was not Cousin Robert.&nbsp;
+Pray tell Tom Naylor.&nbsp; I cannot bear that things should go on in
+this dreadful way.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, Miss, I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Mrs Eden, I am sure that would set it right again,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;are not you?&nbsp; I would do anything to have that
+poor baby christened.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily&rsquo;s confidence melted away as she saw that Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s
+tears were falling fast, and she ended with, &lsquo;Only tell them,
+and we shall see what will happen.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very well, Miss Lilias,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+am very sorry.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let us hope that time and patience will set things right,&rsquo;
+said Miss Weston, to relieve the embarrassment of both parties.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Your brother must soon see that Mr. Devereux only wishes to do
+his duty.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea skilfully covered Lily&rsquo;s retreat, and the party took leave
+of Mrs. Eden, and turned into their homeward path.<br>
+<br>
+Lily at first seemed disposed to be silent, and Miss Weston therefore
+amused herself with listening to the chatter of the little girls as
+they walked on before them.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There are only thirty-six days to the holidays,&rsquo; said Phyllis;
+&lsquo;Ada and I keep a paper in the nursery with the account of the
+number of days.&nbsp; We shall be so glad when Claude, and Maurice,
+and Redgie come home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are they not very boisterous?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not Maurice,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, indeed,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;Maurice is like nobody else.&nbsp;
+He takes up some scientific pursuit each time he comes home, and cares
+for nothing else for some time, and then quite forgets it.&nbsp; He
+is an odd-looking boy too, thick and sturdy, with light flaxen hair,
+and dark, overhanging eyebrows, and he makes the most extraordinary
+grimaces.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And Reginald?&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Redgie is a noble-looking fellow.&nbsp; But just eleven,
+and taller than Jane.&nbsp; His complexion so fair, yet fresh and boyish,
+and his eyes that beautiful blue that Ada&rsquo;s are - real blue.&nbsp;
+Then his hair, in dark brown waves, with a rich auburn shine.&nbsp;
+The old knights must have been just like Redgie.&nbsp; And Claude -
+Oh! Miss Weston, have you ever seen Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, but I have seen your eldest brother.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;William?&nbsp; Why, he has been in Canada these three years.&nbsp;
+Where could you have seen him?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;At Brighton, about four years ago.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! the year before he went.&nbsp; I remember that his regiment
+was there.&nbsp; Well, it is curious that you should know him; and did
+you ever hear of Harry, the brother that we lost?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I remember Captain Mohun&rsquo;s being called away to Oxford
+by his illness,&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah, yes!&nbsp; William was the only one of us who was with him,
+even papa was not there.&nbsp; His illness was so short.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;I think it was on a Tuesday
+that Captain Mohun left Brighton, and we saw his death in the paper
+on Saturday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;William only arrived the evening that he died.&nbsp; Papa was
+gone to Ireland to see about Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s property.&nbsp;
+Robert, not knowing that, wrote to him at Beechcroft; Eleanor forwarded
+the letter without opening it, and so we knew nothing till Robert came
+to tell us that all was over.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Without any preparation?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With none.&nbsp; Harry had left home about ten days before, quite
+well, and looking so handsome.&nbsp; You know what a fine-looking person
+William is.&nbsp; Well, Harry was very like him, only not so tall and
+strong, with the same clear hazel eyes, and more pink in his cheeks
+- fairer altogether.&nbsp; Then Harry wrote, saying that he had caught
+one of his bad colds.&nbsp; We did not think much of it, for he was
+always having coughs.&nbsp; We heard no more for a week, and then one
+morning Eleanor was sent for out of the schoolroom, and there was Robert
+come to tell us.&nbsp; Oh! it was such a thunderbolt.&nbsp; This was
+what did the mischief.&nbsp; You know papa and mamma being from home
+so long, the elder boys had no settled place for the holidays; sometimes
+they stayed with one friend, sometimes with another, and so no one saw
+enough of them to find out how delicate poor Harry really was.&nbsp;
+I think papa had been anxious the only winter they were at home together,
+and Harry had been talked to and advised to take care; but in the summer
+and autumn he was well, and did not think about it.&nbsp; He went to
+Oxford by the coach - it was a bitterly cold frosty day - there was
+a poor woman outside, shivering and looking very ill, and Harry changed
+places with her.&nbsp; He was horribly chilled, but thinking he had
+only a common cold, he took no care.&nbsp; Robert, coming to Oxford
+about a week after, found him very ill, and wrote to papa and William,
+but William scarcely came in time.&nbsp; Harry just knew him, and that
+was all.&nbsp; He could not speak, and died that night.&nbsp; Then William
+stayed at Oxford to receive papa, and Robert came to tell us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It must have been a terrible shock.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Such a loss - he was so very good and clever.&nbsp; Every one
+looked up to him - William almost as much as the younger ones.&nbsp;
+He never was in any scrape, had all sorts of prizes at Eton, besides
+getting his scholarship before he was seventeen.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Whenever Lily could get Miss Weston alone, it was her way to talk in
+this manner.&nbsp; She loved the sound of her own voice so well, that
+she was never better satisfied than when engrossing the whole conversation.&nbsp;
+Having nothing to talk of but her books, her poor people, and her family,
+she gave her friend the full benefit of all she could say on each subject,
+while Alethea had kindness enough to listen with real interest to her
+long rambling discourses, well pleased to see her happy.<br>
+<br>
+The next time they met, Lilias told her all she knew or imagined respecting
+Eleanor, and of her own debate with Claude, and ended, &lsquo;Now, Miss
+Weston, tell me your opinion, which would you choose for a sister, Eleanor
+or Emily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have some experience of Miss Mohun&rsquo;s delightful manners,
+and none of Mrs. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s, so I am no fair judge,&rsquo;
+said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I really have done justice to Eleanor&rsquo;s sterling goodness,&rsquo;
+said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now what should you think?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I can hardly imagine greater proofs of affection than Mrs. Hawkesworth
+has given you,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was because it was her duty,&rsquo; said Lilias.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+have only heard the facts, but you cannot judge of her ways and looks.&nbsp;
+Now only think, when Frank came home, after seven years of perils by
+field and flood - there she rose up to receive him as if he had been
+Mr. Nobody making a morning call.&nbsp; And all the time before they
+were married, I do believe she thought more of showing Emily how much
+tea we were to use in a week than anything else.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps some people might have admired her self-command,&rsquo;
+said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Self-command, the refuge of the insensible?&nbsp; And now, I
+told you about dear Harry the other day.&nbsp; He was Eleanor&rsquo;s
+especial brother, yet his death never seemed to make any difference
+to her.&nbsp; She scarcely cried: she heard our lessons as usual, talked
+in her quiet voice - showed no tokens of feeling.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was her health as good as before?&rsquo; asked Miss Weston.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She was not ill,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;if she had, I should
+have been satisfied.&nbsp; She certainly could not take long walks that
+winter, but she never likes walking.&nbsp; People said she looked ill,
+but I do not know.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shall I tell you what I gather from your history?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Pray do.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then do not think me very perverse, if I say that perhaps the
+grief she then repressed may have weighed down her spirits ever since,
+so that you can hardly remember any alteration.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That I cannot,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;She is always the
+same, but then she ought to have been more cheerful before his death.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did not you lose him soon after your mother?&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Two whole years,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! and aunt,
+Robert too, and Frank went to India the beginning of that year; yes,
+there was enough to depress her, but I never thought of grief going
+on in that quiet dull way for so many years.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You would prefer one violent burst, and then forgetfulness?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not exactly,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but I should like a little
+evidence of it.&nbsp; If it is really strong, it cannot be hid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Little did Lily think of the grief that sat heavy upon the spirit of
+Alethea, who answered - &lsquo;Some people can do anything that they
+consider their duty.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Duty: what, are you a duty lover?&rsquo; exclaimed Lilias.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I never suspected it, because you are not disagreeable.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Alethea, laughing, &lsquo;your compliment
+rather surprises me, for I thought you told me that your brother Claude
+was on the duty side of the question.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He thinks he is,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but love is his real
+motive of action, as I can prove to you.&nbsp; Poor Claude had a very
+bad illness when he was about three years old; and ever since he has
+been liable to terrible headaches, and he is not at all strong.&nbsp;
+Of course he cannot always study hard, and when first he went to school,
+every one scolded him for being idle.&nbsp; I really believe he might
+have done more, but then he was so clever that he could keep up without
+any trouble, and, as Robert says, that was a great temptation; but still
+papa was not satisfied, because he said Claude could do better.&nbsp;
+So said Harry.&nbsp; Oh! you cannot think what a person Harry was, as
+high-spirited as William, and as gentle as Claude; and in his kind way
+he used to try hard to make Claude exert himself, but it never would
+do - he was never in mischief, but he never took pains.&nbsp; Then Harry
+died, and when Claude came home, and saw how changed things were, how
+gray papa&rsquo;s hair had turned, and how silent and melancholy William
+had grown, he set himself with all his might to make up to papa as far
+as he could.&nbsp; He thought only of doing what Harry would have wished,
+and papa himself says that he has done wonders.&nbsp; I cannot see that
+Henry himself could have been more than Claude is now; he has not spared
+himself in the least, his tutor says, and he would have had the Newcastle
+Scholarship last year, if he had not worked so hard that he brought
+on one of his bad illnesses, and was obliged to come home.&nbsp; Now
+I am sure that he has acted from love, for it was as much his duty to
+take pains while Harry was alive as afterwards.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, &lsquo;but what does he say
+himself?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! he never will talk of himself,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you not overlooked one thing which may be the truth,&rsquo;
+said Alethea, as if she was asking for information, &lsquo;that duty
+and love may be identical?&nbsp; Is not St. Paul&rsquo;s description
+of charity very like the duty to our neighbour?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The practice is the same, but not the theory,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, what is called duty, seems to me to be love doing unpleasant
+work,&rsquo; said Miss Weston; &lsquo;love disguised under another name,
+when obliged to act in a way which seems, only seems, out of accordance
+with its real title.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is all very well for those who have love,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Some have not who do their duty conscientiously - another word
+which I hate, by the bye.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They have love in a rough coat, perhaps,&rsquo; said Alethea,
+&lsquo;and I should expect it soon to put on a smoother one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER VII - SIR MAURICE<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shall thought was his, in after time,<br>
+Thus to be hitched into a rhyme;<br>
+The simple sire could only boast<br>
+That he was loyal to his cost,<br>
+The banished race of kings revered,<br>
+And lost his land.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The holidays arrived, and with them the three brothers, for during the
+first few weeks of the Oxford vacation Claude accompanied Lord Rotherwood
+on visits to some college friends, and only came home the same day as
+the younger ones.<br>
+<br>
+Maurice did not long leave his sisters in doubt as to what was to be
+his reigning taste, for as soon as dinner was over, he made Jane find
+the volume of the Encyclopaedia containing Entomology, and with his
+elbows on the table, proceeded to study it so intently, that the young
+ladies gave up all hopes of rousing him from it.&nbsp; Claude threw
+himself down on the sofa to enjoy the luxury of a desultory talk with
+his sisters; and Reginald, his head on the floor, and his heels on a
+chair, talked loud and fast enough for all three, with very little regard
+to what the damsels might be saying.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Claude,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;you cannot think how much
+we like Miss Weston, she lets us call her Alethea, and - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here came an interruption from Mr. Mohun, who perceiving the position
+of Reginald&rsquo;s dusty shoes, gave a loud &lsquo;Ah - h!&rsquo; as
+if he was scolding a dog, and ordered him to change them directly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Here, Phyl!&rsquo; said Reginald, kicking off his shoes, &lsquo;just
+step up and bring my shippers, Rachel will give them to you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away went Phyllis, well pleased to be her brother&rsquo;s fag.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&nbsp; Redgie does not know the misfortune that hangs over
+him,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;will not the Baron let Viper
+come to the house?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Worse,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;Rachel is going away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rachel?&rsquo; cried Claude, starting up from the sofa.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rachel?&rsquo; said Maurice, without raising his eyes.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rachel!&nbsp; Rachel! botheration!&rsquo;<i> </i>roared Reginald,
+with a wondrous caper.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Rachel,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;Rachel, who makes so much
+of you, for no reason that I could ever discover, but because you are
+the most troublesome.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will never find any one to mend your jackets, and dress your
+wounds like Rachel,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and make a baby of you
+instead of a great schoolboy.&nbsp; What will become of you, Redgie?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What will become of any of us?&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I thought
+Rachel was the mainspring of the house.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you quarrelled with her, Emily?&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;it is only that her brother
+has lost his wife, and wants her to take care of his children.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;her master has lost his wife,
+and wants her to take care of his children.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot think what I shall do,&rsquo; said Ada; &lsquo;I cry
+about it every night when I go to bed.&nbsp; What is to be done?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Send her brother a new wife,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Send him Emily,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;we could spare her
+much better.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only I don&rsquo;t wish him joy,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I hope you wish me joy of my substitute,&rsquo; said Emily;
+&lsquo;I do not think you would ever guess, but Lily, after being in
+what Rachel calls quite a way, has persuaded every one to let us have
+Esther Bateman.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What, the Baron?&rsquo; said Claude, in surprise.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;is it not delightful?&nbsp; He
+said at first, Emily was too inexperienced to teach a young servant;
+but then we settled that Hannah should be upper servant, and Esther
+will only have to wait upon Phyl and Ada.&nbsp; Then he said Faith Longley
+was of a better set of people, but I am sure it would give one the nightmare
+to see her lumbering about the house, and then he talked it over with
+Robert and with Rachel.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And was not Rachel against it, or was she too kind to her young
+ladies?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! she was cross when she talked it over with us,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;but we coaxed her over, and she told the Baron it would
+do very well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And Robert?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He was quite with us, for he likes Esther as much as I do,&rsquo;
+said lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;how can you say he was quite
+with you, when he said he thought it would be better if she was farther
+from home, and under some older person?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, but he allowed that she would be much safer here than at
+home,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But I thought she used to be the head of all the ill behaviour
+in school,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! that was in Eleanor&rsquo;s time,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;there
+was nothing to draw her out, she never was encouraged; but since she
+has been in my class, and has found that her wishes to do right are
+appreciated and met by affection, she has been quite a new creature.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Since she has been in MY class,&rsquo; Claude repeated.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Lily, with a slight blush, &lsquo;it is just
+what Robert says.&nbsp; He told her, when he gave her her prize Bible
+on Palm Sunday, that she had been going on very well, but she must take
+great care when removed from those whose influence now guided her, and
+who could he have meant but me?&nbsp; And now she is to go on with me
+always.&nbsp; She will be quite one of the old sort of faithful servants,
+who feel that they owe everything to their masters, and will it not
+be pleasant to have so sweet and expressive a face about the house?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do I know her face?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh yes!&nbsp;
+I do.&nbsp; She has black eyes, I think, and would be pretty if she
+did not look pert.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You provoking Claude!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;you are as bad
+as Alethea, who never will say that Esther is the best person for us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was going to inquire for the all-for-love principle,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;but I see it is in full force.&nbsp; And how are
+the verses, Lily?&nbsp; Have you made a poem upon Michael Moone, or
+Mohun, the actor, our uncle, whom I discovered for you in Pepys&rsquo;s
+Memoirs?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but I have been writing something
+about Sir Maurice, which you shall hear whenever you are not in this
+horrid temper.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The next afternoon, as soon as luncheon was over, Lily drew Claude out
+to his favourite place under the plane-tree, where she proceeded to
+inflict her poem upon his patient ears, while he lay flat upon the grass
+looking up to the sky; Emily and Jane had promised to join them there
+in process of time, and the four younger ones were, as usual, diverting
+themselves among the farm buildings at the Old Court.<br>
+<br>
+Lily began: &lsquo;I meant to have two parts about Sir Maurice going
+out to fight when he was very young, and then about his brothers being
+killed, and King Charles knighting him, and his betrothed, Phyllis Crossthwayte,
+embroidering his black engrailed cross on his banner, and then the taking
+the castle, and his being wounded, and escaping, and Phyllis not thinking
+it right to leave her father; but I have not finished that, so now you
+must hear about his return home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A romaunt in six<i> </i>cantos, entitled Woe woe,<br>
+By Miss Fanny F. known more commonly so,&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+muttered Claude to himself; but as Lily did not understand or know whence
+his quotation came, it did not hurt her feelings, and she went merrily
+on:-<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;&rsquo;Tis the twenty-ninth of merry May;<br>
+Full cheerily shine the sunbeams to-day,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Their joyous light revealing<br>
+Full many a troop in garments gay,<br>
+With cheerful steps who take their way<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;By the green hill and shady lane,<br>
+While merry bells are pealing;<br>
+And soon in Beechcroft&rsquo;s holy fane<br>
+The villagers are kneeling.<br>
+Dreary and mournful seems the shrine<br>
+Where sound their prayers and hymns divine;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;For every mystic ornament<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;By the rude spoiler&rsquo;s hand is rent;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Scarce is its ancient beauty traced<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;In wood-work broken and defaced,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Reft of each quaint device and rare,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Of foliage rich and mouldings fair;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Yet happy is each spirit there;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The simple peasantry rejoice<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;To see the altar decked with care,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;To hear their ancient Pastor&rsquo;s
+voice<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Reciting o&rsquo;er each well-known prayer,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;To view again his robe of white,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And hear the services aright;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Once more to chant their glorious Creed,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And thankful own their nation freed<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;From those who cast her glories down,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And rent away her Cross and Crown.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;A stranger knelt among the crowd,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And joined his voice in praises loud,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And when the holy rites had ceased,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Held converse with the aged Priest,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Then turned to join the village feast,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Where, raised on the hill&rsquo;s summit green,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The Maypole&rsquo;s flowery wreaths were seen;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Beneath the venerable yew<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The stranger stood the sports to view,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Unmarked by all, for each was bent<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;On his own scheme of merriment,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;On talking, laughing, dancing, playing -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;There never was so blithe a Maying.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;So thought each laughing maiden gay,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Whose head-gear bore the oaken spray;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;So thought that hand of shouting boys,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Unchecked in their best joy - in noise;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;But gray-haired men, whose deep-marked scars<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Bore token of the civil wars,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And hooded dames in cloaks of red,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;At the blithe youngsters shook the head,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Gathering in eager clusters told<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;How joyous were the days of old,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;When Beechcroft&rsquo;s lords, those Barons bold,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Came forth to join their vassals&rsquo; sport,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And here to hold their rustic court,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Throned in the ancient chair you see<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Beneath our noble old yew tree.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Alas! all empty stands the throne,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Reserved for Mohun&rsquo;s race alone,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And the old folks can only tell<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Of the good lords who ruled so well.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;Ah!&nbsp; I bethink me of the time,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The last before those years of crime,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;When with his open hearty cheer,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The good old squire was sitting here.&rdquo;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;&rsquo;Twas then,&rdquo; another voice replied,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;That brave young Master Maurice tried<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;To pitch the ball with Andrew Grey -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;We ne&rsquo;er shall see so blithe a day -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;All the young squires have long
+been dead.&rdquo;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;No, Master Webb,&rdquo; quoth Andrew Grey,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;Young Master Maurice safely
+fled,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;At least so all the Greenwoods say,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And Walter Greenwood with him went<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;To share his master&rsquo;s banishment;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And now King Charles is ruling here,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Our own good landlord may be near.&rdquo;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;Small hope of that,&rdquo; the old man said,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And sadly shook his hoary head,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;Sir Maurice died beyond the sea,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Last of his noble line was he.&rdquo;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&ldquo;Look, Master Webb!&rdquo; he turned, and there<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The stranger sat in Mohun&rsquo;s chair;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;At ease he sat, and smiled to scan<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The face of each astonished man;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Then on the ground he laid aside<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;His plumed hat and mantle wide.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;One moment, Andrew deemed he knew<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Those glancing eyes of hazel hue,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;But the sunk cheek, the figure spare,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The lines of white that streak the hair -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;How can this he the stripling gay,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Erst, victor in the sports of May?<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Full twenty years of cheerful toil,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And labour on his native soil,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;On Andrew&rsquo;s head had left no trace -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The summer&rsquo;s sun, the winter&rsquo;s
+storm,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;They had but ruddier made his face,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;More hard his hand, more strong
+his form.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Forth from the wandering, whispering crowd,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;A farmer came, and spoke aloud,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;With rustic bow and welcome fair,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;But with a hesitating air -<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;He told how custom well preserved<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The throne for Mohun&rsquo;s race reserved;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The stranger laughed, &ldquo;What, Harrington,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Hast thou forgot thy landlord&rsquo;s son?&rdquo;<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Loud was the cry, and blithe the shout,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;On Beechcroft hill that now rang out,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And still remembered is the day,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;That merry twenty-ninth of May,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;When to his father&rsquo;s home returned<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;That knight, whose glory well was earned.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;In poverty and banishment,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;His prime of manhood had been spent,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;A wanderer, scorned by Charles&rsquo;s court,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;One faithful servant his support.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And now, he seeks his home forlorn,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Broken in health, with sorrow worn.<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And two short years just passed away,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Between that joyous meeting-day,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And the sad eve when Beechcroft&rsquo;s bell<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Tolled forth Sir Maurice&rsquo;s funeral knell;<br>
+And Phyllis, whose love was so constant and tried,<br>
+Was a widow the year she was Maurice&rsquo;s bride;<br>
+Yet the path of the noble and true-hearted knight,<br>
+Was brilliant with honour, and glory, and light,<br>
+And still his descendants shall sing of the fame<br>
+Of Sir Maurice de Mohun, the pride of his name.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is a pity they should sing of it in such lines as those last
+four,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Let me see, I like your bringing
+in the real names, though I doubt whether any but Greenwood could have
+been found here.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! here come Emily and Jane,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;let me
+put it away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are very much afraid of Jane,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Jane has no feeling for poetry,&rsquo; said Lily, with simplicity,
+which made her brother smile.<br>
+<br>
+Jane and Emily now came up, the former with her work, the latter with
+a camp-stool and a book.&nbsp; &lsquo;I wonder,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;where
+those boys are!&nbsp; By the bye, what character did they bring home
+from school?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The same as usual,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Maurice&rsquo;s
+mind only half given to his work, and Redgie&rsquo;s whole mind to his
+play.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maurice&rsquo;s talent does not lie in the direction of Latin
+and Greek,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;it is nonsense to make him learn
+it, and so he says.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps he would say the same of mathematics and mechanics, if
+as great a point were made of them,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think not,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;he has more notion of
+them than of Latin verses.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you are on my side,&rsquo; said Jane, triumphantly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did I say so?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why not?&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is the use of his
+knowing those stupid languages?&nbsp; I am sure it is wasting time not
+to improve such a genius as he has for mechanics and natural history.&nbsp;
+Now, Claude, I wish you would answer.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was waiting till you had done,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why do you not think it nonsense?&rsquo; persisted Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because I respect my father&rsquo;s opinion,&rsquo; said Claude,
+letting himself fall on the grass, as if he had done with the subject.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Pooh!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;that sounds like a good little
+boy of five years old!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very likely,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But you have some opinion of your own,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I wish you would give it,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Come, Emily,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;have you brought anything
+to read?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But your opinion, Claude,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am
+sure you think with me, only you are too grand, and too correct to say
+so.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude made no answer, but Jane saw she was wrong by his countenance;
+before she could say anything more, however, they were interrupted by
+a great outcry from the Old Court regions.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I thought it was a long time since
+we had heard anything of those uproarious mortals.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope there is nothing the matter,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh no,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I hear Redgie&rsquo;s laugh.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Aye, but among that party,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;Redgie&rsquo;s
+laugh is not always a proof of peace: they are too much in the habit
+of acting the boys and the frogs.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We were better off,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;with the gentle
+Claude, as Miss Middleton used to call him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Molly, as William used to call him with more propriety,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;not half so well worth playing with as such a fellow
+as Redgie.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not even for young ladies?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Phyllis and Ada are much the better for being teased,&rsquo;
+said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am convinced that I never did my duty by
+you in that respect.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There were others to do it for you,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Harry never teased,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;and William scorned
+us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;His teasing was all performed upon Claude,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;and a great shame it was.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not at all,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;only an injudicious attempt
+to put a little life into a tortoise.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A bad comparison,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but what is all this?&nbsp;
+Here come the children in dismay!&nbsp; What is the matter, my dear
+child?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This was addressed to Phyllis, who was the first to come up at full
+speed, sobbing, and out of breath, &lsquo;Oh, the dragon-fly!&nbsp;
+Oh, do not let him kill it!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The dragon-fly, the poor dear blue dragon-fly!&rsquo; screamed
+Adeline, hiding her face in Emily&rsquo;s lap, &lsquo;Oh, do not let
+him kill it! he is holding it; he is hurting it!&nbsp; Oh, tell him
+not!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I caught it,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;but not to have it killed.&nbsp;
+Oh, take it away!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A fine rout, indeed, you chicken,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;I
+know a fellow who ate up five horse-stingers one morning before breakfast.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stingers!&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;they do not sting anything,
+pretty creatures.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I told you I would catch the old pony and put it on him to try,&rsquo;
+said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+In the meantime, Maurice came up at his leisure, holding his prize by
+the wings.&nbsp; &lsquo;Look what a beautiful Libellulla Puella,&rsquo;
+said he to Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A demoiselle dragon-fly,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;what a beauty!
+what are you going to do with it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Put it into my museum,&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;Here,
+Jane, put it under this flower-pot, and take care of it, while I fetch
+something to kill it with.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Maurice, do not!&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;One good squeeze,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;I will do
+it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How came you be so cruel?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, a squeeze will not do,&rsquo; said Maurice; &lsquo;it would
+spoil its beauty; I must put it ever the fumes of carbonic acid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maurice, you really must not,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now do not, dear Maurice,&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;there&rsquo;s
+a dear boy; I will give you such a kiss.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense; get out of the way,&rsquo; said Maurice, turning away.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Maurice, this is most horrid cruelty,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;what right have you to shorten the brief, happy life which -
+&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; interrupted Maurice, &lsquo;if you make such a fuss
+about killing it, I will stick a pin through it into a cork, and let
+it shift for itself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Poor Phyllis ran away to the other end of the garden, sat down and sobbed,
+Ada screamed and argued, Emily complained, Lily exhorted Claude to interfere,
+while Reginald stood laughing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Such useless cruelty,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Useless!&rsquo;<i> </i>said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;Pray how is
+any one to make a collection of natural objects without killing things?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not see the use of a collection,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;you
+can examine the creatures and let them go.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Such a young lady&rsquo;s tender-hearted notion,&rsquo; said
+Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Who ever heard of a man of science managing in such a ridiculous
+way?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Man of science!&rsquo;<i> </i>exclaimed Lily, &lsquo;when he
+will have forgotten by next Christmas that insects ever existed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was not convenient to hear this speech, so Maurice turned an empty
+flower-pot over his prisoner, and left it in Jane&rsquo;s care while
+he went to fetch the means of destruction, probably choosing the lawn
+for the place of execution, in order to show his contempt for his sisters.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Fair damsel in boddice blue,&rsquo; said Lily, peeping in at
+the hole at the top of the flower-pot, &lsquo;I wish I could avert your
+melancholy fate.&nbsp; I am very sorry for you, but I cannot help it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You might help it now, at any rate,&rsquo; muttered Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I know Monsieur Maurice too well
+to arouse his wrath so justly.&nbsp; If you choose to release the pretty
+creature, I shall be charmed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You forget that I am in charge,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is a carriage coming to the front gate,&rsquo; cried Ada.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Emily, may I go into the drawing-room?&nbsp; Oh, Jenny, will
+you undo my brown holland apron?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is right, little mincing Miss,&rsquo; said Reginald, with
+a low bow; &lsquo;how fine we are to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How visitors break into the afternoon,&rsquo; said Emily, with
+a languid turn of her head.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jenny, brownie,&rsquo; called Maurice from his bedroom window,
+&lsquo;I want the sulphuric acid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane sprang up and ran into the house, though her sisters called after
+her, that she would come full upon the company in the hall.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They shall not catch me here,&rsquo; cried Reginald, rushing
+off into the shrubbery.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are you coming in, Claude?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Send Ada to call me, if there is any one worth seeing,&rsquo;
+said Claude<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They will see you from the window,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;no one ever found me out last
+summer, under these friendly branches.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The old butler, Joseph, now showed himself on the terrace; and the young
+ladies, knowing that he had no intention of crossing the lawn, hastened
+to learn from him who their visitors were, and entered the house.&nbsp;
+Just then Phyllis came running back from the kitchen garden, and without
+looking round, or perceiving Claude, she took up the flower-pot and
+released the captive, which, unconscious of its peril, rested on a blade
+of grass, vibrating its gauzy wings and rejoicing in the restored sunbeams.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Fly away, fly away, you pretty creature,&rsquo; said Phyllis;
+&lsquo;make haste, or Maurice will come and catch you again.&nbsp; I
+wish I had not given you such a fright.&nbsp; I thought you would have
+been killed, and a pin stuck all through that pretty blue and black
+body of yours.&nbsp; Oh! that would be dreadful.&nbsp; Make haste and
+go away!&nbsp; I would not have caught you, you beautiful thing, if
+I had known what he wanted to do.&nbsp; I thought he only wanted to
+look at your beautiful body, like a little bit of the sky come down
+to look at the flowers, and your delicate wings, and great shining eyes.&nbsp;
+Oh! I am very glad God made you so beautiful.&nbsp; Oh! there is Maurice
+coming.&nbsp; I must blow upon you to make you go.&nbsp; Oh, that is
+right - up quite high in the air - quite safe,&rsquo; and she clapped
+her hands as the dragon-fly rose in the air, and disappeared behind
+the laurels, just as Maurice and Reginald emerged from the shrubbery,
+the former with a bottle in his hand.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, where is the Libellulla?&rsquo;<i> </i>said he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The dragon-fly?&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I let it out.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Sold, Maurice!&rsquo; cried Reginald, laughing at his brother&rsquo;s
+disaster.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Upon my word, Phyl, you are very kind!&rsquo; said Maurice, angrily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;If I had known you were such an ill-natured crab - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice dear, don&rsquo;t say so,&rsquo; exclaimed
+Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I thought I might let it out because I caught
+it myself; and I told you I did not catch it for you to kill; Maurice,
+indeed, I am sorry I vexed you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What else did you do it for?&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+is horrid not to be able to leave one&rsquo;s things a minute - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But I did not know the dragon-fly belonged to you, Maurice,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is a puzzler, Mohun senior,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Redgie, do get Maurice to leave off being angry with me,&rsquo;
+implored his sister.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will leave off being angry,&rsquo; said Maurice, seeing his
+advantage, &lsquo;if you will promise never to let out my things again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think I can promise,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;O yes, you can,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;you know they are
+not his.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Promise you will not let out any insects I may get,&rsquo; said
+Maurice, &lsquo;or I shall say you are as cross as two sticks.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what, Maurice,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I
+do wish you would not make me promise, for I do not think I <i>can </i>keep
+it, for I cannot bear to see the beautiful live things killed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Maurice, fiercely, &lsquo;I am very angry
+indeed, you naughty child; promise - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot,&rsquo; said Phyllis, beginning to cry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I will not speak to you all
+day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; shouted Reginald, &lsquo;we will only treat her
+like the horse-stinger; you wanted a puella, Maurice - here is one for
+you, here, give her a dose of the turpentine.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Maurice, advancing with his bottle; &lsquo;and
+do you take the poker down to Naylor&rsquo;s to be sharpened, it will
+just do to stick through her back.&nbsp; Oh! no, not Naylor&rsquo;s
+- the girls have made a hash there, as they do everything else; but
+we will settle her before they come out again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis screamed and begged for mercy - her last ally had deserted her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Promise!&rsquo; cried the boys.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, don&rsquo;t!&rsquo; was all her answer.<br>
+<br>
+Reginald caught her and held her fast, Maurice advanced upon her, she
+struggled, and gave a scream of real terror.&nbsp; The matter was no
+joke to any one but Reginald, for Maurice was very angry and really
+meant to frighten her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Hands off, boys, I will not have her bullied,&rsquo; said Claude,
+half rising.<br>
+<br>
+Maurice gave a violent start, Reginald looked round laughing, and exclaimed,
+&lsquo;Who would have thought of Claude sneaking there?&rsquo; and Phyllis
+ran to the protecting arm, which he stretched out.&nbsp; To her great
+surprise, he drew her to him, and kissed her forehead, saying, &lsquo;Well
+done, Phyl!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, I knew he was not going to hurt me,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+still panting from the struggle.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To be sure not,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I only meant to have
+a little fun.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude, with his arm still round his sister&rsquo;s waist, gave Maurice
+a look, expressing, &lsquo;Is that the truth?&rsquo;<i> </i>and Reginald
+tumbled head over heels, exclaiming, &lsquo;I would not have been Phyl
+just them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Ada now came running up to them, saying, &lsquo;Maurice and Redgie,
+you are to come in; Mr. and Mrs. Burnet heard your voices, and begged
+to see you, because they never saw you last holidays.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;More&rsquo;s the pity they should see us now,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I shall not go,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Papa is there, and he sent for you,&rsquo; said Ada.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Plague,&rsquo; was the answer.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;See what you get by making such a row,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;If you had been as orderly members of society as I am - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, but Claude,&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;papa told me to see if
+I could find you.&nbsp; Dear Claude, I wish,&rsquo; she proceeded, taking
+his hand, and looking engaging, &lsquo;I wish you would put your arm
+round me as you do round Phyl.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are not worth it, Ada,&rsquo; said Reginald, and Claude did
+not contradict him.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER VIII - THE BROTHERS<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But smiled to hear the creatures he had known<br>
+So long were now in class and order shown -<br>
+Genus and species.&nbsp; &ldquo;Is it meet,&rdquo; said he,<br>
+&ldquo;This creature&rsquo;s name should one so sounding be -<br>
+&lsquo;Tis but a fly, though first-born of the spring,<br>
+Bombylius Majus, dost thou call the thing?&rdquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was not till Sunday, that Lily&rsquo;s eager wish was fulfilled,
+of introducing her friend and her brothers; but, as she might have foreseen,
+their first meeting did not make the perfections of either party very
+clear to the other.&nbsp; Claude never spoke to strangers more than
+he could help, Maurice and Reginald were in the room only a short time;
+so that the result of Miss Weston&rsquo;s observations, when communicated
+in reply to Lily&rsquo;s eager inquiries, was only that Claude was very
+like his father and eldest brother, Reginald very handsome, and Maurice
+looked like a very funny fellow.<br>
+<br>
+On Monday, Reginald and Maurice were required to learn what they had
+always refused to acknowledge, that the holidays were not intended to
+be spent in idleness.&nbsp; A portion of each morning was to be devoted
+to study, Claude having undertaken the task of tutor - and hard work
+he found it; and much did Lily pity him, when, as not unfrequently happened,
+the summons to the children&rsquo;s dinner would bring him from the
+study, looking thoroughly fagged - Maurice in so sulky a mood that he
+would hardly deign to open his lips - Reginald talking fast enough,
+indeed, but only to murmur at his duties in terms, which, though they
+made every one laugh, were painful to hear.&nbsp; Then Claude would
+take his brothers back to the study, and not appear for an hour or more,
+and when he did come forth, it was with a bad headache.&nbsp; Sometimes,
+as if to show that it was only through their own fault that their tasks
+were wearisome, one or both boys would finish quite early, when Reginald
+would betake himself to the schoolroom and employ his idle time in making
+it nearly impossible for Ada and Phyllis to learn, by talking, laughing,
+teasing the canary, overturning everything in pursuing wasps, making
+Emily fretful by his disobedience, and then laughing at her, and, in
+short, proving his right to the title he had given himself at the end
+of the only letter he had written since he first went to school, and
+which he had subscribed, &lsquo;Your affectionate bother, R. Mohun.&rsquo;&nbsp;
+So that, for their own sake, all would have preferred the inattentive
+mornings.<br>
+<br>
+Lily often tried to persuade Claude to allow her to tell her father
+how troublesome the boys were, but never with any effect.&nbsp; He once
+took up a book he had been using with them, and pointing to the name
+in the first page, in writing, which Lily knew full well, &lsquo;Henry
+Mohun,&rsquo; she perceived that he meant to convince her that it was
+useless to try to dissuade him, as he thought the patience and forbearance
+his brother had shown to him must be repaid by his not shrinking from
+the task he had imposed upon himself with his young brothers, though
+he was often obliged to sit up part of the night to pursue his own studies.<br>
+<br>
+If Claude had rather injudiciously talked too much to Lilias of &lsquo;her
+principle,&rsquo; and thus kept it alive in her mind, yet his example
+might have made its fallacy evident.&nbsp; She believed that what she
+called love had been the turning point in his character, that it had
+been his earnest desire to follow in Henry&rsquo;s steps, and so try
+to comfort his father for his loss, that had roused him from his indolence;
+but she was beginning to see that nothing but a sense of duty could
+have kept up the power of that first impulse for six years.&nbsp; Lily
+began to enter a little into his principle, and many things that occurred
+during these holidays made her mistrust her former judgment.&nbsp; She
+saw that without the unvarying principle of right and wrong, fraternal
+love itself would fail in outward acts and words.&nbsp; Forbearance,
+though undeniably a branch of love, could not exist without constant
+remembrance of duty; and which of them did not sometimes fail in kindness,
+meekness, and patience?&nbsp; Did Emily show that softness, which was
+her most agreeable characteristic, in her whining reproofs - in her
+complaints that &lsquo;no one listened to a word she said&rsquo; - in
+her refusal to do justice even to those who had vainly been seeking
+for peace?&nbsp; Did Lily herself show any of her much valued love,
+by the sharp manner in which she scolded the boys for roughness towards
+herself? or for language often used by them on purpose to make her displeasure
+a matter of amusement?&nbsp; She saw that her want of command of temper
+was a failure both in love and duty, and when irritated, the thought
+of duty came sooner to her aid than the feeling of love.<br>
+<br>
+And Maurice and Reginald were really very provoking.&nbsp; Maurice loved
+no amusement better than teasing his sisters, and this was almost the
+only thing in which Reginald agreed with him.&nbsp; Reginald was affectionate,
+but too reckless and violent not to be very troublesome, and he too
+often flew into a passion if Maurice attempted to laugh at him; the
+little girls were often frightened and made unhappy; Phyllis would scream
+and roar, and Ada would come sobbing to Emily, to be comforted after
+some rudeness of Reginald&rsquo;s.&nbsp; It was not very often that
+quarrels went so far, but many a time in thought, word, and deed was
+the rule of love transgressed, and more than once did Emily feel ready
+to give up all her dignity, to have Eleanor&rsquo;s hand over the boys
+once more.&nbsp; Claude, finding that he could do much to prevent mischief,
+took care not to leave the two boys long together with the elder girls.&nbsp;
+They were far more inoffensive when separate, as Maurice never practised
+his tormenting tricks when no one was present to laugh with him, and
+Reginald was very kind to Phyllis and Ada, although somewhat rude.<br>
+<br>
+It was a day or two after they returned that Phyllis was leaning on
+the window-sill in the drawing-room, watching a passing shower, and
+admiring the soft bright tints of a rainbow upon the dark gray mass
+of cloud.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do set my bow in the cloud,&rsquo; repeated
+she to herself over and over again, until Adeline entering the room,
+she eagerly exclaimed, &lsquo;Oh Ada, come and look at this beautiful
+rainbow, green, and pink, and purple.&nbsp; A double one, with so many
+stripes, Ada.&nbsp; See, there is a little bit more green.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is no green in a rainbow,&rsquo; said Ada.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But look, Ada, that is green.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is not real green.&nbsp; Blue, red, and yellow are the pragmatic
+colours,&rsquo; said Ada, with a most triumphant air.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now
+are not they, Maurice?&rsquo;<i> </i>said she, turning to her brother,
+who was, as usual, deep in entomology.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Pragmatic, you foolish child,&rsquo; said he.&nbsp; &lsquo;Prismatic
+you mean.&nbsp; I am glad you remember what I tell you, however; I think
+I might teach you some science in time.&nbsp; You are right in saying
+that blue, red, and yellow are the prismatic colours.&nbsp; Now do you
+know what causes a rainbow?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is to show there is never to be another flood,&rsquo; said
+Phyllis, gravely.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, I did not mean that,&rsquo; said Maurice, addressing himself
+to Ada, whose love of hard words made him deem her a promising pupil,
+and whom he could lecture without interruption.&nbsp; &lsquo;The rainbow
+is caused by - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Maurice!&rsquo; exclaimed Phyllis, remaining with mouth
+wide open.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The rainbow is occasioned by the refraction of the rays of the
+sun in the drops of water of which a cloud is composed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Maurice!&rsquo; again said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, what do you keep on &ldquo;but, Mauricing,&rdquo; about?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Maurice, I thought it said, &ldquo;I do set my bow in the
+cloud.&rdquo;&nbsp; Is not that right?&nbsp; I will look.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I know that, but I know the iris, or rainbow, is a natural phenomenon
+occasioned by the refraction.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Maurice, I can&rsquo;t bear you to say that;&rsquo; and
+poor Phyllis sat down and began to cry.<br>
+<br>
+Ada interfered.&nbsp; &lsquo;Why, Maurice, you believe the Bible, don&rsquo;t
+you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This last speech was heard by Lilias, who just now entered the room,
+and greatly surprised her.&nbsp; &lsquo;What can you be talking of?&rsquo;
+said she.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only some nonsense of the children&rsquo;s,&rsquo; said Maurice,
+shortly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But only hear what he says,&rsquo; cried Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;He
+says the rainbow was not put there to show there is never to be another
+flood!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Lily,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I do not think there is
+much use in talking to you, but I wish you to understand that all I
+said was, that the rainbow, or iris, is a natural phenomenon occasioned
+by the refraction of the solar - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will certainly bewilder yourself into something dreadful
+with that horrid science,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is the
+matter with Phyl?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only crying because of what I said,&rsquo; answered Maurice.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;So childish, and you are just as bad.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But do you mean to say,&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, &lsquo;that you
+set this human theory above the authority of the Bible?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is common sense,&rsquo; said Maurice; &lsquo;I could make
+a rainbow any day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Whereupon Phyllis cried the more, and Lily looked infinitely shocked.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;This is philosophy and vain deceit,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;the
+very thing that tends to infidelity.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t help it - it is universally allowed,&rsquo; said
+the boy doggedly.<br>
+<br>
+It was fortunate that the next person who entered the room was Claude,
+and all at once he was appealed to by the four disputants, Lily the
+loudest and most vehement.&nbsp; &lsquo;Claude, listen to him, and tell
+him to throw away these hateful new lights, which lead to everything
+that is shocking!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Listen to him, with three ladies talking at once?&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;No, not Phyl - her tears only are eloquent; but
+it is a mighty war about the token of peace and <i>love, </i>Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The love would be in driving these horrible philosophical speculations
+out of Maurice&rsquo;s mind,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No one can ever drive out the truth,&rsquo; said Maurice, with
+provoking coolness.&nbsp; &lsquo;Don&rsquo;t let her scratch out my
+eyes, Claude.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am not so sure of that maxim,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Truth
+is chiefly injured - I mean, her force weakened, by her own supporters.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you agree with me,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;as, in fact,
+every rational person must.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you are with me,&rsquo; said Lily, in the same breath; &lsquo;and
+you will convince Maurice of the danger of this nonsense.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Umph,&rsquo; sighed Claude, throwing himself into his father&rsquo;s
+arm-chair, &lsquo;&rsquo;tis a Herculean labour!&nbsp; It seems I agree
+with you both.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, every Christian must be with me, who has not lost his way
+in a mist of his own raising,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you mean to say,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;that these colours
+are not produced by refraction?&nbsp; Look at them on those prisms;&rsquo;
+and he pointed to an old-fashioned lustre on the chimney-piece.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I hope this is not a part of the Christian faith.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care, Maurice,&rsquo; and Claude&rsquo;s eyes were bent
+upon him in a manner that made him shrink.&nbsp; And he added, &lsquo;Of
+course I do believe that chapter about Noah.&nbsp; I only meant that
+the immediate cause of the rainbow is the refraction of light.&nbsp;
+I did not mean to be irreverent, only the girls took me up in such a
+way.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And I know well enough that you can make those colours by light
+on drops of water,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So you agreed all the time,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But,&rsquo; added Lily, &lsquo;I never liked to know it; for
+it always seemed to be explaining away the Bible, and I cannot bear
+not to regard that lovely bow as a constant miracle.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will remember,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;that some commentators
+say it should be, &ldquo;I <i>have </i>set my bow in the cloud,&rdquo;
+which would make what already existed become a token for the future.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I don&rsquo;t like that explanation,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Others say,&rsquo; added Claude, &lsquo;that there might have
+been no rain at all till the windows of heaven were opened at the flood,
+and, in that case, the first recurrence of rain must have greatly alarmed
+Noah&rsquo;s family, if they had not been supported and cheered by the
+sight of the rainbow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is reasonable,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hate reason applied to revelation,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is a happier state of mind which does not seek to apply it,&rsquo;
+said Claude, looking at Phyllis, who had dried her tears, and stood
+in the window gazing at him, in the happy certainty that he was setting
+all right.&nbsp; Maurice respected Claude for his science as much as
+his character, and did not make game of this observation as he would
+if it had been made by one of his sisters, but he looked at him with
+an odd expression of perplexity.&nbsp; &lsquo;You do not think ignorant
+credulity better than reasonable belief?&rsquo; said he at length.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is not I only who think most highly of child-like unquestioning
+faith, Maurice,&rsquo; said Claude - &lsquo;faith, that is based upon
+love and reverence,&rsquo; added he to Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;But come,
+the shower is over, and philosophers, or no philosophers, I invite you
+to walk in the wood.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Aye,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;I daresay I can find some of
+the Arachne species there.&nbsp; By the bye, Claude, do you think papa
+would let me have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen by twenty, to cover
+my case of insects?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ask, and you will discover,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+Accordingly, Maurice began the next morning at breakfast, &lsquo;Papa,
+may I have a piece of plate-glass, eighteen by - ?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+But no one heard, for Emily was at the moment saying, &lsquo;The Westons
+are to dine here to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude and Maurice both looked blank.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I persuaded papa to ask the Westons,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;because
+I am determined that Claude shall like Alethea.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You must expect that I shall not, you have given me so many orders
+on the subject,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care it has not the same effect as to tell Maurice to like
+a book,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;nothing makes his aversion so certain.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Except when he takes it up by mistake, and forgets that it has
+been recommended to him,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care, Redgie, with your knife; don&rsquo;t put out my eyes
+in your ardour against that wretched wasp.&nbsp; Wat Greenwood may well
+say &ldquo;there is a terrible sight of waspses this year.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I killed twenty-nine yesterday,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And I will tell you what I saw,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;I
+was picking up apples, and the wasps were flying all round, and there
+came a hornet.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Vespa Crabro!&rsquo;<i> </i>cried Maurice; &lsquo;oh, I must
+have one!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, what of the hornet?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what,&rsquo; resumed Phyllis, &lsquo;he saw
+a wasp flying, and so he went up in the air, and pounced on the poor
+wasp as the hawk did on Jane&rsquo;s bantam.&nbsp; So then he hung himself
+up to the branch of a tree by one of his legs, and held the wasp with
+the other five, and began to pack it up.&nbsp; First he bit off the
+yellow tail, then the legs, and threw them away, and then there was
+nothing left but the head, and so he flew away with it to his nest.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Which way did he go?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To the Old Court,&rsquo; answered Phyllis; &lsquo;I think the
+nest is in the roof of the old cow-house, for they were flying in and
+out there yesterday, and one was eating out the wood from the old rails.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;you must show me a hornet
+hawking for wasps before the nest is taken, Phyllis; I suppose you have
+seen the wasps catching flies?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh yes, papa! but they pack them up quite differently.&nbsp;
+They do not hang by one leg, but they sit down quite comfortably on
+a branch while they bite off the wings and legs.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There, Maurice,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I had rather hear
+of one such well-observed fact than of a dozen of your hard names and
+impaled insects.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis looked quite radiant with delight at his approbation.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, papa,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;may I have a piece of
+plate-glass, eighteen by twenty?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;When you observe facts in natural history, perhaps I may say
+something to your entomology,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, papa, all my insects will be spoilt if I may not have a
+piece of glass, eighteen by - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He was interrupted by the arrival of the post-bag, which Jane, as usual,
+opened.&nbsp; &lsquo;A letter from Rotherwood,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;I
+hope he is coming at last.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He is,&rsquo; said Claude, reading the letter, &lsquo;but only
+from Saturday till Wednesday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He never gave us so little of his good company as he has this
+summer,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will have them all in the autumn, to comfort you,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;for he hereby announces the marvellous fact, that
+the Marchioness sends him to see if the castle is fit to receive her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are you sure he is not only believing what he wishes?&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think he will gain his point at last,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How stupid of him to stay no longer!&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think he has some scheme for this vacation,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;and I suppose he means to crowd all the Beechcroft diversions
+of a whole summer into those few days.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I wish him to know the Carringtons;
+invite them and the Westons to dinner on Tuesday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh don&rsquo;t!&rsquo; cried Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;It will be
+so jolly to have him to take wasps&rsquo; nests; and may I go out rabbit-shooting
+with him?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If he goes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And may I carry a gun?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If it is not loaded,&rsquo; said his father.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I would do no mischief,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me give you one piece of advice, Reginald,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun, with a mysterious air - &lsquo;never make rash promises.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias was rather disappointed in her hopes that Miss Weston and Claude
+would become better acquainted.&nbsp; At dinner the conversation was
+almost entirely between the elder gentlemen; Claude scarcely spoke,
+except when referred to by his father or Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; Miss Weston
+never liked to incur the danger of having to repeat her insignificant
+speeches to a deaf ear, and being interested in the discussion that
+was going on, she by no means seconded Lily&rsquo;s attempt to get up
+an under-current of talk.&nbsp; In general, Lily liked to listen to
+conversation in silence, but she was now in very high spirits, and could
+not be quiet; fortunately, she had no interest in the subject the gentlemen
+were discussing, so that she could not meddle with that, and finding
+Alethea silent and Claude out of reach, she turned to Reginald, and
+talked and tittered with him all dinner-time.<br>
+<br>
+In the drawing-room she had it all her own way, and talked enough for
+all the sisters.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you heard that Cousin Rotherwood is coming?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, you said so before dinner.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We hope,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;that you and Mr. Weston will
+dine here on Tuesday.&nbsp; The Carringtons are coming, and a few others.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Alethea; &lsquo;I daresay papa will be
+very glad to come.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you ever seen Rotherwood?&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never,&rsquo; was the reply.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not expect much,&rsquo; said Lily, laughing, though she knew
+not why; &lsquo;he is a very little fellow; no one would suppose him
+to be twenty, he has such a boyish look.&nbsp; Then he never sits down
+- &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Literally?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Literally,&rsquo; persisted Lily; &lsquo;such a quick person
+you never did see.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is he at Oxford?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh yes! it was all papa&rsquo;s doing that he was sent to Eton.&nbsp;
+Papa is his guardian.&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood never would have parted
+with him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He is the only son,&rsquo; interposed Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Uncle Rotherwood put him quite in papa&rsquo;s power; Aunt Rotherwood
+wanted to keep him at home with a tutor, and what she would have made
+of him I cannot think,&rsquo; said Lily; and regardless of Emily&rsquo;s
+warning frowns, and Alethea&rsquo;s attempt to change the subject, she
+went on: &lsquo;When he was quite a child he used to seem a realisation
+of all the naughty Dicks and Toms in story-books.&nbsp; Miss Middleton
+had a perfect horror of his coming here, for he would mind no one, and
+played tricks and drew Claude into mischief; but he is quite altered
+since papa had the management of him - Oh! such talks as papa has had
+with Aunt Rotherwood - do you know, papa says no one knows what it is
+to lose a father but those who have the care of his children, and Aunt
+Rotherwood is so provoking.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here Alethea determined to put an end to this oration, and to Emily&rsquo;s
+great relief, she cut short the detail of Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s offences
+by saying, &lsquo;Do you think Faith Longley likely to suit us, if we
+took her to help the housemaid?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are you thinking of taking her?&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Yes,
+for steady, stupid household work, Faith would do very well; she is
+just the stuff to make a servant of - &ldquo;for dulness ever must be
+regular&rdquo; - I mean for those who like mere steadiness better than
+anything more lovable.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+As Alethea said, laughing, &lsquo;I must confess my respect for that
+quality,&rsquo; Mr. Devereux and Claude entered the room.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Robert!&rsquo; cried Lily, &lsquo;Mrs. Weston is going to
+take Faith Longley to help the housemaid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are travelling too fast, Lily,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;she
+is only going to think about it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should be very glad,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;that
+Faith should have a good place; the Longleys are very respectable people,
+and they behaved particularly well in refusing to let this girl go and
+live with some dissenters at Stoney Bridge.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I like what I have seen of the girl very much,&rsquo; said Miss
+Weston.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In spite of her sad want of feeling,&rsquo; said Robert, smiling,
+as he looked at Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! she is a good work-a-day sort of person,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;like all other poor people, hard and passive.&nbsp; Now, do not
+set up your eyebrows, Claude, I am quite serious, there is no warmth
+about any except - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So this is what Lily is come to!&rsquo; cried Emily; &lsquo;the
+grand supporter of the poor on poetical principles.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The poor not affectionate!&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not, compared within people whose minds and affections have been
+cultivated,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Now just hear what Mrs. Wall
+said to me only yesterday; she asked for a black stuff gown out of the
+clothing club, &ldquo;for,&rdquo; said she, &ldquo;I had a misfortune,
+Miss;&rdquo; I thought it would be, &ldquo;and tore my gown,&rdquo;
+but it was, &ldquo;I had a misfortune, Miss, and lost my brother.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A very harsh conclusion on very slight grounds,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Prove the contrary,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Facts would scarcely demonstrate it either way,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;They would only prove what was the case with
+individuals who chanced to come in our way, and if we are seldom able
+to judge of the depth of feeling of those with whom we are familiar,
+how much less of those who feel our presence a restraint.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Intense feeling mocks restraint,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Violent, not intense,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; &lsquo;Besides,
+you talk of cultivating the affections.&nbsp; Now what do you mean?&nbsp;
+Exercising them, or talking about them?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;the affection of a poor person
+is more tried; we blame a poor man for letting his old mother go to
+the workhouse, without considering how many of us would do the same,
+if we had as little to live upon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Still,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;the same man who would refuse
+to maintain her if poor, would not bear with her infirmities if rich.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are the poor never infirm and peevish?&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! how much worse it must be to bear with ill-temper in poverty,&rsquo;
+said Emily, &lsquo;when we think it quite wonderful to see a young lady
+kind and patient with a cross old relation; what must it be when she
+is denying herself, not only her pleasure, but her food for her sake;
+not merely sitting quietly with her all day, and calling a servant to
+wait upon her, but toiling all day to maintain her, and keeping awake
+half the night to nurse her?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Those are realities, indeed,&rsquo; said Alethea; &lsquo;our
+greatest efforts seem but child&rsquo;s play in comparison.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias could hardly have helped being sobered by this conversation if
+she had attended to it, but she had turned away to repeat the story
+of Mrs. Walls to Jane, and then, fancying that the others were still
+remarking upon it, she said in a light, laughing tone, &lsquo;Well,
+so far I agree with you.&nbsp; I know of a person who may well be called
+one of ourselves, who I could quite fancy making such a speech.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Whom do you mean?&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.&nbsp; Alethea wished
+she did not know.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No very distant relation,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not talk nonsense, Jane,&rsquo; said Claude, gravely.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No nonsense at all, Claude,&rsquo; cried Jane in her very very
+pertest tone, &lsquo;it is exactly like Eleanor; I am sure I can see
+her with her hands before her, saying in her prim voice, &ldquo;I must
+turn my old black silk and trim it with crape, for I have had a misfortune,
+and lost my brother.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lilias,&rsquo; said Miss Weston, somewhat abruptly, &lsquo;did
+you not wish to sing with me this evening?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And thus she kept Lilias from any further public mischief that evening.<br>
+<br>
+Claude, exceedingly vexed by what had passed, with great injustice,
+laid the blame upon Miss Weston, and instead of rendering her the honour
+which she really deserved for the tact with which she had put an end
+to the embarrassment of all parties, he fancied she was anxious to display
+her talents for music, and thus only felt fretted by the sounds.<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Weston and his daughter intended to walk home that evening, as it
+was a beautiful moonlight night.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, let us convoy you!&rsquo; exclaimed Lilias; &lsquo;I do long
+to show Alethea a glow-worm.&nbsp; Will you come, Claude?&nbsp; May
+we, papa?&nbsp; Feel how still and warm it is.&nbsp; A perfect summer
+night, not a breath stirring.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Mohun consented, and Lily almost hurried Alethea upstairs, to put
+on her bonnet and shawl.&nbsp; When she came down she found that the
+walking party had increased.&nbsp; Jane and Reginald would both have
+been in despair to have missed such a frolic; Maurice hoped to fall
+in with the droning beetle, or to lay violent hands on a glow-worm;
+Emily did not like to be left behind, and even Mr. Mohun was going,
+being in the midst of an interesting conversation with Mr. Weston.&nbsp;
+Lily, with an absurd tragic gesture, told Alethea that amongst so many,
+such a crowd, all the grace and sweet influence of the walk was ruined.&nbsp;
+The &lsquo;sweet influence&rsquo; was ruined as far as Lily was concerned,
+but not by the number of her companions.&nbsp; It was the uneasy feeling
+caused by her over-strained spirits and foolish chattering that prevented
+her from really entering into the charm of the soft air, the clear moon,
+the solemn deep blue sky, the few stars, the white lilies on the dark
+pond, the long shadows of the trees, the freshness of the dewy fields.&nbsp;
+Her simplicity, and her genuine delight in the loveliness of the scene,
+was gone for the time, and though she spoke much of her enjoyment, it
+was in a high-flown affected style.<br>
+<br>
+When the last good-night had been exchanged, and Lily had turned homeward,
+she felt the stillness which succeeded their farewells almost oppressive;
+she started at the dark shadow of a tree which lay across the path,
+and to shake off a sensation of fear which was coming over her, she
+put her arm within Claude&rsquo;s, exclaiming, &lsquo;You naughty boy,
+you will be stupid and silent, say what I will.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I heard enough to-night to strike me dumb,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+For one moment Lily thought he was in jest, but the gravity of his manner
+showed her that he was both grieved and displeased, and she changed
+her tone as she said, &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Claude, what do you mean?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you not know?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What, you mean about Eleanor?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Lily; &lsquo;you
+must fall upon Miss Jenny there - it was her doing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jane&rsquo;s tongue is a pest,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;but
+she was not the first to speak evil falsely of one to whom you owe everything.&nbsp;
+Oh!&nbsp; Lily, I cannot tell you how that allusion of yours sounded.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What allusion?&rsquo; asked Lily in alarm, for she had never
+seen her gentle brother so angry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know,&rsquo; said he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I do not,&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, munch frightened.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Claude, Claude, you must mistake, I never could have said anything
+so very shocking.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope I do,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I could hardly believe
+that one of the little ones who cannot remember him, could have referred
+to him in that way - but for you!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Him?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not like to mention his name to one who regards him so lightly,&rsquo;
+said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Think over what passed, if you are sufficiently
+come to yourself to remember it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a little pause Lily said in a subdued voice, &lsquo;Claude, I
+hope you do not believe that I was thinking of what really happened
+when I said that.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Pray what were you thinking of?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The abstract view of Eleanor&rsquo;s character.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Abstract nonsense!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;A fine demonstration
+of the rule of love, to go about the world slandering your sister!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To go about the world!&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp; Claude, it was only Robert,
+one of ourselves, and Alethea, to whom I tell everything.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So much the worse.&nbsp; I always rejoiced that you had no foolish
+young lady friend to make missish confidences to.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She is no foolish young lady friend,&rsquo; said Lilias, indignant
+in her turn; &lsquo;she is five years older than I am, and papa wishes
+us to be intimate with her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then the fault is in yourself,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+ought not to have told such things if they were true, and being utterly
+false - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Claude, I cannot see that they are false.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not false, that Eleanor cared not a farthing for Harry!&rsquo;
+cried Claude, shaking off Lily&rsquo;s arm, and stopping short.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! - she cared, she really did care,&rsquo; said Lily, as fast
+as she could speak.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Claude, how could you think
+that?&nbsp; I told you I did not mean what really happened, only that
+- Eleanor is cold - not as warm as some people - she did care for him,
+of course she did - I know that - I believe she loved him with all her
+heart - but yet - I mean she did not - she went on as usual - said nothing
+- scarcely cried - looked the same - taught us - never - Oh! it did
+not make half the difference in her that it did in William.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot tell how she behaved at the time,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;I only know I never had any idea what a loss Harry was till I
+came home and saw her face.&nbsp; I used never to trouble myself to
+think whether people looked ill or well, but the change in her did strike
+me.&nbsp; She was bearing up to comfort papa, and to cheer William,
+and to do her duty by all of us, and you could take such noble resignation
+for want of feeling!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias looked down and tried to speak, but she was choked by her tears;
+she could not bear Claude&rsquo;s displeasure, and she wept in silence.&nbsp;
+At last she said in a voice broken by sobs, &lsquo;I was unjust - I
+know Eleanor was all kindness - all self-sacrifice - I have been very
+ungrateful - I wish I could help it - and you know well, Claude, how
+far I am from regarding dear Harry with indifference - how the thought
+of him is a star in my mind - how happy it makes me to think of him
+at the end of the Church Militant Prayer; do not believe I was dreaming
+of him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And pray,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing in his own good-humoured
+way, &lsquo;which of us is it that she is so willing to lose?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Claude, no such thing,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;you know
+what I meant, or did not mean.&nbsp; It was nonsense - I hope nothing
+worse.&rsquo;&nbsp; Lily felt that she might take his arm again.&nbsp;
+There was a little silence, and then Lily resumed in a timid voice,
+&lsquo;I do not know whether you will be angry, Claude, but honestly,
+I do not think that if - that Eleanor would be so wretched about you
+as I should.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eleanor knew Harry better than you did; no, Lily, I never could
+have been what Harry was, even if I had never wasted my time, and if
+my headaches had not interfered with my best efforts.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not believe that, say what you will,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ask William, then,&rsquo; said Claude, sighing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure papa does not think so,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;no,
+I cannot feel that Harry is such a loss when we still have you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Lily, it is plain that you never knew Harry,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not believe you ever did - that is one ting
+to be said for you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not as you did,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;remember, he was six
+years older.&nbsp; Then think how little we saw of him whilst they were
+abroad; he was always at school, or spending the holidays with Aunt
+Robert, and latterly even farther off, and only coming sometimes for
+an hour or two to see us.&nbsp; Then he used to kiss us all round, we
+went into the garden with him, looked at him, and were rather afraid
+of him; then he walked off to Wat Greenwood, came back, wished us good-bye,
+and away he went.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;but after they came home?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then he was a tall youth, and we were silly girls,&rsquo; said
+Lilias; &lsquo;he avoided Miss Middleton, and we were always with her.&nbsp;
+He was good-natured, but he could not get on with us; he did very well
+with the little ones, but we were of the wrong age.&nbsp; He and William
+and Eleanor were one faction, we were another, and you were between
+both - he was too old, too sublime, too good, too grave for us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Too grave!&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I never heard a laugh so
+full of glee, except, perhaps, Phyllis&rsquo;s.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The last time he was at home,&rsquo; continued Lily, &lsquo;we
+began to know him better; there was no Miss Middleton in the way, and
+after you and William were gone, he used to walk with us, and read to
+us.&nbsp; He read <i>Guy</i> <i>Mannering </i>to us, and told us the
+story of Sir Maurice de Mohun; but the loss was not the same to us as
+to you elder ones; and then sorrow was almost lost in admiration, and
+in pleasure at the terms in which every one spoke of him.&nbsp; Claude,
+I have no difficulty in not wishing it otherwise; he is still my brother,
+and I would not change the feeling which the thought of his death gives
+me - no, not for himself in life and health.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; sighed Claude, &lsquo;you have no cause for self-reproach
+- no reason to lament over &ldquo;wasted hours and love misspent.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will always talk of your old indolence, as if it was a great
+crime,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was my chief temptation,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;As
+long as we know we are out of the path of duty it does not make much
+difference whether we have turned to the right hand or to the left.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was it Harry&rsquo;s death that made you look upon it in this
+light?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I knew it well enough before,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;it was
+what he had often set before me.&nbsp; Indeed, till I came home, and
+saw this place without him, I never really knew what a loss he was.&nbsp;
+At Eton I did not miss him more than when he went to Oxford, and I did
+not dwell on what he was to papa, or what I ought to be; and even when
+I saw what home was without him, I should have contented myself with
+miserable excuses about my health, if it had not been for my confirmation;
+then I awoke, I saw my duty, and the wretched way in which I had been
+spending my time.&nbsp; Thoughts of Harry and of my father came afterwards;
+I had not vigour enough for them before.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here they reached the house, and parted - Claude, ashamed of having
+talked of himself for the first time in his life, and Lily divided between
+shame at her own folly and pleasure at Claude&rsquo;s having thus opened
+his mind.<br>
+<br>
+Jane, who was most in fault, escaped censure.&nbsp; Her father was ignorant
+of her improper speech.&nbsp; Emily forgot it, and it was not Claude&rsquo;s
+place to reprove his sisters, though to Lily he spoke as a friend.&nbsp;
+It passed away from her mind like other idle words, which, however,
+could not but leave an impression on those who heard her.<br>
+<br>
+An unlooked-for result of the folly of this evening was, that Claude
+was prevented from appreciating Miss Weston He could not learn to like
+her, nor shake off an idea, that she was prying into their family concerns;
+he thought her over-praised, and would not even give just admiration
+to her singing, because he had once fancied her eager to exhibit it.&nbsp;
+It was unreasonable to dislike his sister&rsquo;s friend for his sister&rsquo;s
+folly, but Claude&rsquo;s wisdom was not yet arrived at its full growth,
+and he deserved credit for keeping his opinion to himself.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER IX - THE WASP<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Whom He hath blessed and called His own,<br>
+He tries them early, look and tone,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Bent brow and throbbing heart,<br>
+Tries them with pain.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The next week Lily had the pleasure of fitting out Faith Longley for
+her place at Mrs. Weston&rsquo;s.&nbsp; She rejoiced at this opportunity
+of patronising her, because in her secret soul she felt that she might
+have done her a little injustice in choosing her own favourite Esther
+in her stead.&nbsp; Esther&rsquo;s popularity at the New Court, however,
+made Lilias confident in her own judgment; the servants liked her because
+she was quick and obliging, Mr. Mohun said she looked very neat, Phyllis
+liked her because a mischance to her frock was not so brave an offence
+with her as with Rachel, and Ada was growing very fond of her, because
+she was in the habit of bestowing great admiration on her golden curls
+as she arranged them, and both little girls were glad not to be compelled
+to put away the playthings they took out.<br>
+<br>
+Maurice and Reginald had agreed to defer their onslaught on the wasps
+till Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s arrival, and the war was now limited to
+attacks on foraging parties.&nbsp; Reginald most carefully marked every
+nest about the garden and farm, and, on his cousin&rsquo;s arrival on
+Saturday evening, began eagerly to give him a list of their localities.&nbsp;
+Lord Rotherwood was as ardent in the cause as even Reginald could desire,
+and would have instantly set out with him to reconnoitre had not the
+evening been rainy.<br>
+<br>
+Then turning to Claude, he said, &lsquo;But I have not told you what
+brought me here; I came to persuade you to make an expedition with me
+up the Rhine; I set off next week; I would not write about it, because
+I knew you would only say you should like it very much, but - some but,
+that meant it was a great deal too much trouble.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How fast the plan has risen up,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I
+heard nothing of it when I was with you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! it only came into my head last week, but I do not see what
+there is to wait for, second thoughts are never best.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Claude, how delightful,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+Claude stirred his tea meditatively, and did not speak.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is too much trouble, I perceive,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood;
+&lsquo;just as I told you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not exactly,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood now detailed his plan to his uncle, who said with a
+propitious smile, &lsquo;Well, Claude, what do you think of it?<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mind you catch a firefly for me,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why don&rsquo;t you answer, Claude?&rsquo; said Lilias; &lsquo;only
+imagine seeing Undine&rsquo;s Castle!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh, Claude?&rsquo;<i> </i>said his father.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It would be very pleasant,&rsquo; said Claude, slowly, &lsquo;but
+- &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only a but,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I hope he will
+have disposed of it by the morning; I start next Tuesday week; I would
+not go later for the universe; we shall be just in time for the summer
+in its beauty, and to have a peep at Switzerland.&nbsp; We shall not
+have time for Mont Blanc, without rattling faster than any man in his
+senses would do.&nbsp; I do not mean to leave any place till I have
+thoroughly seen twice over everything worth seeing that it contains.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then perhaps you will get as far as Antwerp, and spend the rest
+of the holidays between the Cathedral and Paul Potter&rsquo;s bull.&nbsp;
+No, I shall have nothing to say to you at that rate,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Depend upon it, it will be you that will wish to stand still
+when I had rather be on the move,&rsquo; said the Marquis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you had better leave me behind.&nbsp; I have no intention
+of being hurried over the world, and never having my own way,&rsquo;
+said Claude, trying to look surly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure I should not mind travelling twice over the world to
+see Cologne Cathedral, or the field of Waterloo,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me only show him my route,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Redgie, look in my greatcoat pocket in the hall for Murray&rsquo;s
+Handbook, will you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Go and get it, Phyl,&rsquo; said Reginald, who was astride on
+the window-sill, peeling a stick.<br>
+<br>
+Away darted Lord Rotherwood to fetch it himself, but Phyllis was before
+him; her merry laugh was heard, as he chased her round the hall to get
+possession of his book, throwing down two or three cloaks to intercept
+her path.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun took the opportunity of his absence to tell
+Claude that he need not refuse on the score of expense.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; was all Claude&rsquo;s answer.<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood returned, and after punishing the discourteous Reginald
+by raising him up by his ears, he proceeded to give a full description
+of the delights of his expedition, the girls joining heartily with him
+in declaring it as well arranged as possible, and bringing all their
+knowledge of German travels to bear upon it.&nbsp; Claude sometimes
+put in a word, but never as if he cared much about the matter, and he
+was not to be persuaded to give any decided answer as to whether he
+would accompany the Marquis.<br>
+<br>
+The next morning at breakfast Lord Rotherwood returned to the charge,
+but Claude seemed even more inclined to refuse than the day before.&nbsp;
+Lilias could not divine what was the matter with him, and lingered long
+after her sisters had gone to school, to hear what answer he would make;
+and when Mr. Mohun looked at his watch, and asked her if she knew how
+late it was, she rose from the breakfast-table with a sigh, and thought
+while she was putting on her bonnet how much less agreeable the school
+had been since the schism in the parish.&nbsp; And besides, now that
+Faith and Esther, and one or two others of her best scholars, had gone
+away from school, there seemed to be no one of any intelligence or knowledge
+left in the class, except Marianne Weston, who knew too much for the
+others, and one or two clever inattentive little girls: Lily almost
+disliked teaching them.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis and Adeline were in Miss Weston&rsquo;s class, and much did
+they delight in her teaching.&nbsp; There was a quiet earnestness in
+her manner which attracted her pupils, and fixed their attention, so
+as scarcely to allow the careless room for irreverence, while mere cleverness
+seemed almost to lose its advantage in learning what can only truly
+be entered into by those whose conduct agrees with their knowledge.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis never dreamt that she could be happy while standing still and
+learning, till Miss Weston began to teach at the Sunday school.&nbsp;
+Obedience at school taught her to acquire habits of reverent attention,
+which gradually conquered the idleness and weariness which had once
+possessed her at church.&nbsp; First, she learnt to be interested in
+the Historical Lessons, then never to lose her place in the Psalms,
+then to think about and follow some of the Prayers; by this time she
+was far from feeling any fatigue at all on week-days; she had succeeded
+in restraining any contortions to relieve herself from the irksomeness
+of sitting still, and had her thoughts in tolerable order through the
+greater part of the Sunday service, and now it was her great wish, unknown
+to any one, to abstain from a single yawn through the whole service,
+including the sermon!<br>
+<br>
+Her place (chosen for her by Eleanor when first she had begun to go
+to Church, as far as possible from Reginald) was at the end of the seat,
+between her papa and the wall.&nbsp; This morning, as she put her arm
+on the book-board, while rising from kneeling, she felt a sudden thrill
+of sharp pain smear her left elbow, which made her start violently,
+and would have caused a scream, had she not been in church.&nbsp; She
+saw a wasp fall on the ground, and was just about to put her foot on
+it, when she recollected where she was.&nbsp; She had never in her life
+intentionally killed anything, and this was no time to begin in that
+place, and when she was angry.&nbsp; The pain was severe - more so perhaps
+than any she had felt before - and very much frightened, she pulled
+her papa&rsquo;s coat to draw his attention.&nbsp; But her first pull
+was so slight that he did not feel it, and before she gave a second
+she remembered that she could not make him hear what was the matter,
+without more noise than was proper.&nbsp; No, she must stay where she
+was, and try to bear the pain, and she knew that if she did try, help
+would be given her.&nbsp; She proceeded to find out the Psalm and join
+her voice with the others, though her heart was beating very fast, her
+forehead was contracted, and she could not help keeping her right hand
+clasped round her arm, and sometimes shifting from one foot to the other.&nbsp;
+The sharpness of the pain soon went off; she was able to attend to the
+Lessons, and hoped it would soon be quite well; but as soon as she began
+to think about it, it began to ache and throb, and seemed each moment
+to be growing hotter.&nbsp; The sermon especially tried her patience,
+her cheeks were burning, she felt sick and hardly able to hold up her
+head, yet she would not lean it against the wall, because she had often
+been told not to do so.&nbsp; She was exceedingly alarmed to find that
+her arm had swelled so much that she could hardly bend it, and it had
+received the impression of the gathers of her sleeve; she thought no
+sermon had ever been so long, but she sat quite still and upright, as
+she could not have done, had she not trained herself unconsciously by
+her efforts to leave off the trick of kicking her heels together.&nbsp;
+She did not speak till she was in the churchyard, and then she made
+Emily look at her arm.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My poor child, it is frightful,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what
+is the matter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A wasp stung me just before the Psalms,&rsquo; said Phyllis,
+&lsquo;and it goes on swelling and swelling, and it does pant!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is the matter?&rsquo; asked Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Papa, just look,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;a wasp stung this
+dear child quite early in the service, and she has been bearing it all
+this time in silence.&nbsp; Why did you not show me, Phyl?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because it was in church,&rsquo; said the little girl.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, Phyllis, you are a very Spartan,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Something better than a Spartan,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Does it give you much pain now, my dear?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not so bad as in church,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;only I am
+very tired, and it is so hot.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We will help you home, then,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; As
+he took her up in his arms, Phyllis laughed, thanked him, replied to
+various inquiries from her sisters and the Westons - laughed again at
+sundry jokes from her brothers, then became silent, and was almost asleep,
+with her head on her papa&rsquo;s shoulder, by the time they reached
+the hall-door.&nbsp; She thought it very strange to be laid down on
+the sofa in the drawing-room, and to find every one attending to her.&nbsp;
+Mrs. Weston bathed her forehead with lavender-water, and Lily cut open
+the sleeve of her frock; Jane fetched all manner of remedies, and Emily
+pitied her.&nbsp; She was rather frightened: she thought such a fuss
+would not be made about her unless she was very ill; she was faint and
+tired, and was glad when Mrs. Weston proposed that they should all come
+away, and leave her to go to sleep quietly.<br>
+<br>
+Marianne was so absorbed in admiration of Phyllis that she did not speak
+one word all the way from church to the New Court, and stood in silence
+watching the operations upon her friend, till Mrs. Weston sent every
+one away.<br>
+<br>
+Adeline rather envied Phyllis; she would willingly have endured the
+pain to be made of so much importance, and said to be better than a
+Spartan, which must doubtless be something very fine indeed!<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis was waked by the bells ringing for the afternoon service; Mrs.
+Weston was sitting by her, reading, Claude came to inquire for her,
+and to tell her that as she had lost her early dinner, she was to join
+the rest of the party at six.&nbsp; To her great surprise she felt quite
+well and fresh, and her arm was much better; Mrs. Weston pinned up her
+sleeve, and she set off with her to church, wondering whether Ada would
+remember to tell her what she had missed that afternoon at school.&nbsp;
+Those whose approbation was valuable, honoured Phyllis for her conduct,
+but she did not perceive it, or seek for it; she did not look like a
+heroine while running about and playing with Reginald and the dogs in
+the evening, but her papa had told her she was a good child, Claude
+had given her one of his kindest smiles, and she was happy.&nbsp; Even
+when Esther was looking at the mark left by the sting, and telling her
+that she was sure Miss Marianne Weston would have not been half so good,
+her simple, humble spirit came to her aid, and she answered, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll
+tell you what, Esther, Marianne would have behaved much better, for
+she is older, and never fidgets, and she would not have been angry like
+me, and just going to kill the wasp.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER X - COUSIN ROTHERWOOD<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We care not who says<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And intends it dispraise,<br>
+That an Angler to a fool is next neighbour.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In the evening Lord Rotherwood renewed his entreaties to Claude to join
+him on his travels.&nbsp; He was very much bent on taking him, for his
+own pleasure depended not a little on his cousin&rsquo;s company.&nbsp;
+Claude lay on the glassy slope of the terrace, while Lord Rotherwood
+paced rapidly up and down before him, persuading him with all the allurements
+he could think of, and looking the picture of impatience.&nbsp; Lily
+sat by, adding her weight to all his arguments.&nbsp; But Claude was
+almost contemptuous to all the beauties of Germany, and all the promised
+sights; he scarcely gave himself the trouble to answer his tormentors,
+only vouchsafing sometimes to open his lips to say that he never meant
+to go to a country where people spoke a language that sounded like cracking
+walnuts; that he hated steamers; had no fancy for tumble-down castles;
+that it was so common to travel; there was more distinction in staying
+at home; that the field of Waterloo had been spoilt, and was not worth
+seeing; his ideas of glaciers would be ruined by the reality; and he
+did not care to see Cologne Cathedral till it was finished.<br>
+<br>
+On this Lily set up an outcry of horror.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;One comfort is, Lily,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;he
+does not mean it; he did not say it from the bottom of his heart.&nbsp;
+Now, confess you did not, Claude.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude pretended to be asleep.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I see plainly enough,&rsquo; said the Marquis to Lily, &lsquo;it
+is as Wat Greenwood says, &ldquo;Mr. Reynold and the grapes.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But it is not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and that is what provokes
+me; papa says he is quite welcome to go if he likes, and that he thinks
+it will do him a great deal of good, but that foolish boy will say nothing
+but &ldquo;I will think about it,&rdquo; and &ldquo;thank you&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I give him up as regularly dense.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is the most delightful plan ever thought of,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;so easily done, and just bringing within his compass all he ever
+wished to see.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! his sole ambition is to stretch those long legs of his on
+the grass, like a great vegetable marrow,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;It is vegetating like a plant that makes him so much taller than
+any rational creature with a little animal life.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think Jane has his share of curiosity,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I
+am sure I had no idea that anything belonging to us could be so stupid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said the Marquis, &lsquo;I shall not go.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, I shall certainly not go.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Claude, waking from his pretended sleep,
+&lsquo;why do you not ask Travers to go with you?&nbsp; He would like
+nothing better.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He is a botanist, and would bore me with looking for weeds.&nbsp;
+No, I will have you, or stay at home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude proposed several others as companions, but Lord Rotherwood treated
+them all with as much disdain as Claude had shown for Germany, and ended
+with &lsquo;Now, Claude, you know my determination, only tell me why
+you will not go?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I do tell you, Rotherwood, the truth is, that those boys,
+Maurice and Reginald, are perfectly unmanageable when they are left
+alone with the girls.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have a tutor for them,&rsquo; said the Marquis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very much obliged to you they would be for the suggestion,&rsquo;
+said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! but Claude,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I really cannot go.&nbsp; They mind no one but the Baron and
+me, and besides that, it would be no small annoyance to the house; ten
+tutors could not keep them from indescribable bits of mischief.&nbsp;
+I undertook them these holidays, and I mean to keep them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias was just flying off to her father, when Claude caught hold of
+her, saying, &lsquo;I desire you will not,&rsquo; and she stood still,
+looking at her cousin in dismay.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is all right,&rsquo; cried the Marquis, joyfully, &lsquo;it
+is only to set off three weeks later.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! I thought you would not go a week later for the universe,&rsquo;
+said Claude, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not for the Universe, but for U-,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Worthy of a companion true, of the University of Gottingen,&rsquo;
+said Claude; &lsquo;but, Rotherwood, do you really mean that it will
+make no difference to you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;None whatever; I meant to spend three weeks with my mother at
+the end of the tour, and I shall spend them now instead.&nbsp; I only
+talked of going immediately, because nothing is done at all that is
+not done quickly, and I hate delays, but it is all the same, and now
+it stands for Tuesday three weeks.&nbsp; Now we shall see what he says
+to Cologne, Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude sprung up, and began talking over arrangements and possibilities
+with zest, which showed what his wishes had been from the first.&nbsp;
+All was quickly settled, and as soon as his father had given his cordial
+approbation to the scheme, it was amusing to see how animated and active
+Claude became, and in how different a style he talked of the once slighted
+Rhine.<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood told the boys that their brother was a great deal too
+good for them, but they never troubled themselves to ask in what respect;
+Lilias took very great delight in telling Emily of the sacrifice which
+he had been willing to make, and looked forward to talking it over with
+Alethea, but she refrained, as long as he was at home, as she knew it
+would greatly displease him, and she had heard enough about missish
+confidences.<br>
+<br>
+The Marquis of Rotherwood was certainly the very reverse of his chosen
+travelling companion, in the matter of activity.&nbsp; He made an appointment
+with the two boys to get up at half-past four on Monday morning for
+some fishing, before the sun was too high - Maurice not caring for the
+sport, but intending to make prize of any of the &lsquo;insect youth&rsquo;
+which might prefer the sunrise for their gambols; and Reginald, in high
+delight at the prospect of real fishing, something beyond his own performances
+with a stick and a string, in pursuit of minnows in the ditches.&nbsp;
+Reginald was making contrivances for tying a string round his wrist
+and hanging the end of it from the window, that Andrew Grey might give
+it a pull as he went by to his work, to wake him, when Lord Rotherwood
+exclaimed, &lsquo;What! cannot you wake yourself at any time you please?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;I never heard of any one that
+could.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I advise you to learn the art; in the meantime I will call
+you to-morrow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Loud voices and laughter in the hall, and the front door creaking on
+its hinges at sunrise, convinced the household that this was no vain
+boast; before breakfast was quite over the fishermen were seen approaching
+the house.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood was an extraordinary figure, in an
+old shooting jacket of his uncle&rsquo;s, an enormous pair of fishing-boots
+of William&rsquo;s, and the broad-brimmed straw hat, which always hung
+up in the hall, and was not claimed by any particular owner.<br>
+<br>
+Maurice displayed to Jane the contents of two phials, strange little
+creatures, with stranger names, of which he was as proud as Reginald
+of his three fine trout.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood did not appear till he
+had made himself look like other people, which he did in a surprisingly
+short time.&nbsp; He began estimating the weight of the fish, and talking
+at his most rapid rate, till at last Claude said, &lsquo;Phyllis told
+us just now that you were coming back, for that she heard Cousin Rotherwood
+talking, and it proved to be Jane&rsquo;s old turkey cock gobbling.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No bad compliment,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;for Phyllis was
+once known to say, on hearing a turkey cock, &ldquo;How melodiously
+that nightingale sings.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no! that was Ada,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I could answer for that,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Phyllis
+is too familiar with both parties to mistake their notes.&nbsp; Besides,
+she never was known to use such a word as melodiously.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you remember,&rsquo; said the Marquis, &lsquo;that there was
+some great lawyer who had three kinds of handwriting, one that the public
+could read, one that only his clerk could read, and one that nobody
+could read?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I suppose I am the clerk,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;unless I
+divide the honour with Florence.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think I am unintelligible anywhere but here,&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is nothing sufficiently exciting
+at home, if Grosvenor Square is to be called home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Sometimes you do it without knowing it,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;when you do not exactly know
+what you are going to say.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then it is no bad plan,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;People
+are satisfied, and you don&rsquo;t commit yourself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what, Cousin Rotherwood,&rsquo; exclaimed
+Phyllis, &lsquo;your hand is bleeding.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is it?&nbsp; Thank you, Phyllis, I thought I had washed it off:
+now do find me some sealing-wax - India-rub her - sticking-plaster,
+I mean.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what a bad cut,
+how did it happen?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only, I am the victim to Maurice&rsquo;s first essay in fishing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Just fancy what an awkward fellow Maurice is,&rsquo; said Reginald,
+&lsquo;he had but one throw, and he managed to stick the hook into Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+hand.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;One of those barbed hooks?&nbsp; Oh! Rotherwood, how horrid!&rsquo;
+said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And he cut it out with his knife, and caught that great trout
+with it directly,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And neither half drowned Maurice, nor sent him home again?&rsquo;<i>
+</i>asked Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I contented myself with taking away his weapon,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis; &lsquo;and he wished for nothing better than to poke about
+in the gutters for insects; it was only Redgie that teased him into
+the nobler sport.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Emily was inclined to make a serious matter of the accident, but her
+cousin said ten words while she said one, and by the time her first
+sentence was uttered, she found him talking about his ride to Devereux
+Castle.<br>
+<br>
+He and Claude set out as soon as breakfast was over, and came back about
+three o&rsquo;clock; Claude was tired with the heat, and betook himself
+to the sofa, where he fell asleep, under pretence of reading, but the
+indefatigable Marquis was ready and willing to set out with Reginald
+and Wat Greenwood to shoot rabbits.<br>
+<br>
+Dinner-time came, and Emily sat at the drawing-room window with Claude
+and Lilias, lamenting her cousin&rsquo;s bad habits.&nbsp; &lsquo;Nothing
+will ever make him punctual,&rsquo; said she.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am in duty bound to let you say nothing against him,&rsquo;
+said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is very good-natured in him to wait for you,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;but it would be horribly selfish to leave you behind.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Delay is his great horror,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;and the
+wonder of his character is, that he is not selfish.&nbsp; No one had
+ever better training for it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He does like his own way very much,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Who does not?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nothing shows his sense so much,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;as
+his great attachment to papa - the only person who ever controlled him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And to Claude - his opposite in everything,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think he will tire you to death in Germany,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never fear,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;my <i>vis inertiae </i>is
+enough to counterbalance any amount of restlessness.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Here they come,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;how Wat Greenwood is
+grinning at Rotherwood&rsquo;s jokes!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A happy day for Wat,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;He will
+be quite dejected if William is not at home next shooting season.&nbsp;
+He thinks you a degenerate Mohun, Claude.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He must comfort himself with Redgie,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rotherwood is only eager about shooting in common with everything
+else,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but Redgie, I fear, will care for nothing
+else.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood came in, accounting for being late, as, in passing through
+a harvest field, he could not help attempting to reap.&nbsp; The Beechcroft
+farming operations had been his especial amusement from very early days,
+and his plans were numerous for farming on a grand scale as soon as
+he should be of age.&nbsp; His talk during dinner was of turnips and
+wheat, till at length Mr. Mohun asked him what he thought of the appearance
+of the castle.&nbsp; He said it was very forlorn; the rooms looked so
+dreary and deserted that he could not bear to be in them, and had been
+out of doors almost all the time.&nbsp; Indeed, he was afraid he had
+disappointed the housekeeper by not complimenting her as she deserved,
+for the freezing dismal order in which she kept everything.&nbsp; &lsquo;And
+really,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;I must go again to-morrow and make up
+for it, and Emily, you must come with me and try to devise something
+to make the unhappy place less like the abode of the Prince of the Black
+Islands.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Emily willingly promised to go, and she went on talking to him, and
+telling him whom he was to meet on the next day, when an unusual silence
+making her look up, she beheld him more than half asleep.<br>
+<br>
+Reginald fidgeted and sighed, and Maurice grew graver and graver as
+they thought of the wasps.&nbsp; Maurice wanted to take a nest entire,
+and began explaining his plan to Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You see, Claude, burning some straw and then digging, spoils
+the combs, as Wat does it; now I have got some puff-balls and sulphur
+to put into the hole, and set fire to them with a lucifer match, so
+as to stifle the wasps, and then dig them out quietly to-morrow morning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is all of no use, if that Rotherwood will do nothing but sleep,&rsquo;
+said Reginald, in a disconsolate tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You should not have made him get up at four,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Who!&nbsp; I?&rsquo; exclaimed the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I never
+was wider awake.&nbsp; What are you waiting for, Reginald?&nbsp; I thought
+you were going to take wasps&rsquo; nests.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are much too tired, I am sure,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Tired! not in the least, I have done nothing to-day to tire me,&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood, walking up and down the room to keep himself awake.<br>
+<br>
+The whole party went out, and found Wat Greenwood waiting for them with
+a bundle of straw, a spade, and a little gunpowder.&nbsp; Maurice carried
+a basket containing all his preparations, on which Wat looked with supreme
+contempt, telling him that his puffs were too green to make a smeech.&nbsp;
+Maurice, not condescending to argue the point, ran on to a nest which
+Reginald had marked on one of the green banks of the ancient moat.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care that the wasps are all come in; mind what you are about,
+Maurice,&rsquo; called his father.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Master Maurice,&rsquo; shouted Wat, &lsquo;you had better take
+a green bough.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never mind, Wat,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;he would
+not stay long enough to use it if he had it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Reginald ran after Maurice, who had just reached the nest.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is one coming in, the evening is so warm they are not quiet
+yet.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I&rsquo;ll quiet them,&rsquo; said Maurice, kneeling down, and
+putting his first puff-ball into the hole.<br>
+<br>
+Reginald stood by with a sly smile, as he pulled a branch off a neighbouring
+filbert-tree.&nbsp; The next moment Maurice gave a sudden yell, &lsquo;The
+wasps! the wasps!&rsquo; and jumping up, and tripping at his first step,
+rolled down the bank, and landed safely at Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s feet.&nbsp;
+The shouts of laughter were loud, but he regarded them not, and as soon
+as he recovered his feet, rushed past his sisters, and never stopped
+till he reached the house.&nbsp; Redgie stood alone, in the midst of
+a cloud of wasps, beating them off with a bough, roaring with laughter,
+and calling Wat to bring the straw to burn them.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Redgie, come away, leave them for Maurice to try again,&rsquo;
+said his father.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The brute, he stung me,&rsquo; cried Reginald, knocking down
+a wasp or two as he came down.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is this?&rsquo; added
+he, as he stumbled over something at the bottom of the slope.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s basket; look here - laudanum - did
+he mean to poison the wasps?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;to cure their stings.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The poor unhappy quiz!&rsquo; cried Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+While the others were busy over a nest, Mr. Mohun asked Emily how the
+boy got at the medicine chest.&nbsp; Emily looked confused, and said
+she supposed Jane had given him a bottle.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jane is too young to be trusted there,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun,
+&lsquo;I thought you knew better; do not let the key be out of your
+possession again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a few more nests had been taken in the usual manner, they returned
+to the house.&nbsp; Maurice was lying on the sofa reading the <i>Penny
+Magazine, </i>from which he raised his eyes no more that evening, in
+spite of all the jokes which flew about respecting wounded knights,
+courage, and the balsam of Fierabras.&nbsp; He called Jane to teach
+her how flies were made, and as soon as tea was over he went to bed.&nbsp;
+Reginald, after many yawns, prepared to follow his example, and as he
+was wishing his sisters good-night, Emily said, &lsquo;Now, Redgie,
+do not go out at such a preposterous hour to-morrow morning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is that to you?&rsquo; was Reginald&rsquo;s courteous inquiry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not wish to see every one fast asleep to-morrow evening,&rsquo;
+said Emily, and she looked at her cousin, whose head was far back over
+his chair.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He is a Trojan,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is a Trojan better than a Spartan?&rsquo; asked Ada, meditatively.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Helen thought so,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;&ldquo;When Greek meets Greek, then comes the tug of war,&rdquo;&rsquo;
+muttered the Marquis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are all talking Greek,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Arabic,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+As far as it could be comprehended, Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s answer related
+to Maurice and the wasps.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what is to be done if he is
+in that condition to-morrow?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am not asleep; what makes you think I am?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish you would sit in that great chair,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;I am afraid you will break your neck; you look so uncomfortable,
+I cannot bear to see you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I never was more comfortable in my life,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood,
+asleep while finishing the sentence; but this time, happily with his
+elbows on the table, and his head in a safer position.<br>
+<br>
+The next day was spent rather more rationally.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood
+met with a book of Irish Tales, with which he became so engrossed that
+he did not like to leave it when Emily and Claude were ready to ride
+to Devereux Castle with him.&nbsp; When there he was equally eager and
+vehement about each matter that came under consideration, and so many
+presented themselves, that Emily began to be in agonies lest she should
+not be at home in time to dress and receive her guests.&nbsp; They did,
+however, reach the house before Lilias, who had been walking with Miss
+Weston, came in, and when she went upstairs, she found Emily full of
+complaints at the inconvenience of having no Rachel to assist her in
+dressing, and to see that everything was in order, and that Phyllis
+was fit to appear when she came down in the evening; but, by the assistance
+of Lily and Jane, she got over her troubles, and when she went into
+the drawing-room, she was much relieved to find her two gentlemen quite
+safe and dressed.&nbsp; She had been in great fear of Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+straying away to join in some of Reginald&rsquo;s sports, and was grateful
+to the Irish book for keeping him out of mischief.<br>
+<br>
+Emily was in her glory; it was the first large dinner-party since Eleanor
+had gone, and though she pitied herself for having the trouble of entertaining
+the people, she really enjoyed the feeling that she now appeared as
+the mistress of New Court, with her cousin, the Marquis, by her side,
+to show how highly she was connected.&nbsp; And everything went off
+just as could be wished.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood talked intelligibly and
+sensibly, and Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s neighbour at dinner had a voice which
+he could hear.&nbsp; Lily&rsquo;s pleasure was not less than her sister&rsquo;s,
+though of a different kind.&nbsp; She delighted in thinking how well
+Emily did the honours, in watching the varied expression of Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+animated countenance, in imagining Claude&rsquo;s forehead to be finer
+than that of any one else, and in thinking how people must admire Reginald&rsquo;s
+tall, active figure, and very handsome face.&nbsp; She was asked to
+play, and did tolerably well, but was too shy to sing, nor, indeed,
+was Reginald encouraging.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is the use of your singing,
+Lily?&nbsp; If it was like Miss Weston&rsquo;s, now - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Reginald had taken a great fancy to Miss Weston; he stood by her all
+the evening, and afterwards let her talk to him, and then began to chatter
+himself, at last becoming so confidential as to impart to her the grand
+object of his ambition, which was to be taller than Claude!<br>
+<br>
+The next morning Lord Rotherwood left Beechcroft, somewhat to Emily&rsquo;s
+relief; for though she was very proud of him, and much enjoyed the dignity
+of being seen to talk familiarly with him, yet, when no strangers were
+present, and he became no more than an ordinary cousin, she was worried
+by his incessant activity, and desire to see, know, and do everything
+as fast and as thoroughly as possible.&nbsp; She could not see the use
+of such vehemence; she liked to take things in a moderate way, and as
+Claude said, much preferred the passive to the active voice.&nbsp; Claude,
+on the contrary, was ashamed of his constitutional indolence, looked
+on it as a temptation, and struggled against it, almost envying his
+cousin his unabated eagerness and untiring energy, and liking to be
+with him, because no one else so effectually roused him from his habitual
+languor.&nbsp; His indolence was, however, so much the effect of ill
+health, that exertion was sometimes scarcely in his power, especially
+in hot weather, and by the time his brothers&rsquo; studies were finished
+each day, he was unfit for anything but to lie on the grass under the
+plane-tree.<br>
+<br>
+The days glided on, and the holidays came to an end; Maurice spent them
+in adding to his collection of insects, which, with Jane&rsquo;s assistance,
+he arranged very neatly; and Reginald and Phyllis performed several
+exploits, more agreeable to themselves than satisfactory to the more
+rational part of the New Court community.&nbsp; At the same time, Reginald&rsquo;s
+devotion to Miss Weston increased; he never moved from her side when
+she sang, did not fail to be of the party when she walked with his sisters,
+offered her one of his own puppies, named his little ship &lsquo;Alethea,&rsquo;
+and was even tolerably civil to Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+At length the day of departure came; the boys returned to school, Claude
+joined Lord Rotherwood, and the New Court was again in a state of tranquillity.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XI - DANCING<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Prescribe us not our duties.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Phyllis,&rsquo; said her father, as he passed through the
+hall to mount his horse, &lsquo;how do you like the prospect of Monsieur
+le Roi&rsquo;s instructions?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not at all, papa,&rsquo; answered Phyllis, running out to the
+hall door to pat the horse, and give it a piece of bread.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Take care you turn out your toes,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;You must learn to dance like a dragon before Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+birthday next year.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Papa, how do dragons dance?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is a question I must decide at my leisure,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun, mounting.&nbsp; &lsquo;Stand out of the way, Phyl, or you will
+feel how horses dance.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away he rode, while Phyllis turned with unwilling steps to the nursery,
+to be dressed for her first dancing lesson; Marianne Weston was to learn
+with her, and this was some consolation, but Phyllis could not share
+in the satisfaction Adeline felt in the arrival of Monsieur le Roi.&nbsp;
+Jane was also a pupil, but Lily, whose recollections of her own dancing
+days were not agreeable, absented herself entirely from the dancing-room,
+even though Alethea Weston had come with her sister.<br>
+<br>
+Poor Phyllis danced as awkwardly as was expected, but Adeline seemed
+likely to be a pupil in whom a master might rejoice; Marianne was very
+attentive and not ungraceful, but Alethea soon saw reason to regret
+the arrangement that had been made, for she perceived that Jane considered
+the master a fair subject for derision, and her &lsquo;nods and becks,
+and wreathed smiles,&rsquo; called up corresponding looks in Marianne&rsquo;s
+face.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh Brownie, you are a naughty thing!&rsquo; said Emily, as soon
+as M. le Roi had departed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He really was irresistible!&rsquo;<i> </i>said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I suppose ridicule is one of the disagreeables to which a dancing-master
+makes up his mind,&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;one can have no compunction in
+quizzing that species.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think I can quite say that, Jane,&rsquo; said Miss Weston.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;This man especially lays himself open to ridicule,&rsquo; said
+Jane; &lsquo;do you know, Alethea, that he is an Englishman, and his
+name is King, only he calls himself Le Roi, and speaks broken English!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Though Alethea joined in the general laugh, she did not feel quite satisfied;
+she feared that if not checked in time, Jane would proceed to actual
+impertinence, and that Marianne would be tempted to follow her example,
+but she did not like to interfere, and only advised Marianne to be on
+her guard, hoping that Emily would also speak seriously to her sister.<br>
+<br>
+On the next occasion, however, Jane ventured still farther; her grimaces
+were almost irresistible, and she had a most comical manner of imitating
+the master&rsquo;s attitudes when his eye was not upon her, and putting
+on a demure countenance when he turned towards her, which sorely tried
+Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What shall I do, Alethea?&rsquo; said the little girl, as the
+sisters walked home together; &lsquo;I do not know how to help laughing,
+if Jane will be so very funny.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am afraid we must ask mamma to let us give up the dancing,&rsquo;
+replied Alethea; &lsquo;the temptation is almost too strong, and I do
+not think she would wish to expose you to it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Alethea, why do not you speak to Jane?&rsquo; asked Marianne;
+&lsquo;no one seems to tell her it is wrong; Miss Mohun was almost laughing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think Jane would consider that I ought to find fault
+with her,&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But you would not scold her,&rsquo; urged Marianne; &lsquo;only
+put her in mind that it is not right, not kind; that Monsieur le Roi
+is in authority over her for the time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will speak to mamma,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;perhaps it
+will be better next time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And it was better, for Mr. Mohun happening to be at home, was dragged
+into the dancing-room by Emily and Ada.&nbsp; Once, when she thought
+he was looking another way, Jane tried to raise a smile, but a stern
+&lsquo;Jane, what are you thinking of?&rsquo; recalled her to order,
+and when the lesson was over her father spoke gravely to her, telling
+her that he thought few things more disgusting in a young lady than
+impertinence towards her teachers; and then added, &lsquo;Miss Weston,
+I hope you keep strict watch over these giddy young things.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Awed by her father, Jane behaved tolerably well at that time and the
+next, and Miss Weston hoped her interference would not be needed, but
+as if to make up for this restraint, her conduct a fortnight after was
+quite beyond bearing.&nbsp; She used every means to make Marianne laugh,
+and at last went so far as to pretend to think that M. le Roi had not
+understood what she said in English, and to translate it into French.&nbsp;
+Poor Marianne looked imploringly at her sister, and Alethea hoped that
+Emily would interpose, but Emily was turning away her head to conceal
+a laugh, and Miss Weston was obliged to give Jane a very grave look,
+which she perfectly understood, though she pretended not to see it.&nbsp;
+When the exercise was over Miss Weston made her a sign to approach,
+and said, &lsquo;Jane, do you think your papa would have liked - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What do you mean?&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I have not been laughing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know what I mean,&rsquo; said Alethea, &lsquo;and pray do
+not be displeased if I ask you not to make it difficult for Marianne
+to behave properly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane drew up her head and went back to her place.&nbsp; She played no
+more tricks that day, but as soon as the guests were gone, began telling
+Lilias how Miss Weston had been meddling and scolding her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And well you must have deserved it,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not say that Jenny was right,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but
+I think Miss Weston might allow me to correct my own sister in my own
+house.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You correct Jane!&rsquo; cried Lily, and Jane laughed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I only mean,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;that it was not very polite,
+and papa says the closest friendship is no reason for dispensing with
+the rules of politeness.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly not,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the rules of politeness
+are rules of love, and it was in love that Alethea spoke; she sees how
+sadly we are left to ourselves, and is kind enough to speak a word in
+season.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;since it was in love that she
+spoke, you would like to have her for our reprover for ever, and I can
+assure you more unlikely things have happened.&nbsp; I have heard it
+from one who can judge.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me hear no more of this,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;it is
+preposterous and ridiculous, and very disrespectful to papa.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane for once, rather shocked at her own words, went back to what had
+been said just before.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then, perhaps, you would like to have Eleanor back again?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure you want some one to put you in mind of your duty,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eleanor and duty!&rsquo; cried Emily; &lsquo;you who thought
+so much of the power of love!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of Emily and love, she would say, if it sounded well,&rsquo;
+said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot see what true love you or Jane are showing now,&rsquo;
+said Lily, &lsquo;it is no kindness to encourage her pertness, or to
+throw away a friendly reproof because it offends your pride.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nobody reproved me,&rsquo; replied Emily; &lsquo;besides, I know
+love will prevail; for my sake Jane will not expose herself and me to
+a stranger&rsquo;s interference.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If you depend upon that, I wish you joy,&rsquo; said Lilias,
+as she left the room.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What a weathercock Lily is!&rsquo; cried Jane, &lsquo;she has
+fallen in love with Alethea Weston, and echoes all she says.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not considering her own inconsistency,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That Alethea Weston,&rsquo; exclaimed Jane, in an angry tone;
+- but Emily, beginning to recover some sense of propriety, said, &lsquo;Jenny,
+you know you were very ill-bred, and you made it difficult for the little
+ones to behave well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not our own little ones,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;honest Phyl
+did not understand the joke, and Ada was thinking of her attitudes;
+one comfort is, that I shall be confirmed in three weeks&rsquo; time,
+and then people cannot treat me as a mere child - little as I am.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Jane,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I do not like to hear
+you talk of confirmation in that light way.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I do not mean it - of course
+I do not mean it - don&rsquo;t look shocked - it was only by the bye
+- and another by the bye, Emily, you know I must have a cap and white
+ribbons, and I am afraid I must make it myself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ay, that is the worst of having Esther,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;she
+and Hannah have no notion of anything but the plainest work; I am sure
+if I had thought of all the trouble of that kind which having a young
+girl would entail, I would never have consented to Esther&rsquo;s coming.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That was entirely Lily&rsquo;s scheme,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes; it is impossible to resist Lily, she is so eager and anxious,
+and it would have vexed her very much if I had opposed her, and that
+I cannot bear; besides, Esther is a very nice girl, and will learn.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is Robert talking to papa on the green,&rsquo; said Jane;
+&lsquo;what a deep conference; what can it be about?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+If Jane had heard that conversation she might have perceived that she
+could not wilfully offend, even in what she thought a trifling matter,
+without making it evident, even to others, that there was something
+very wrong about her.&nbsp; At that moment the Rector was saying to
+his uncle, &lsquo;I am in doubt about Jane, I cannot but fear she is
+not in a satisfactory state for confirmation, and I wished to ask you
+what you think?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Act just as you would with any of the village girls,&rsquo; said
+Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should be very sorry to do otherwise,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux;
+&lsquo;but I thought you might like, since every one knows that she
+is a candidate, that she should not be at home at the time of the confirmation,
+if it is necessary to refuse her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I should not wish to shield
+her from the disgrace.&nbsp; It may be useful to her, and besides, it
+will establish your character for impartiality.&nbsp; I have not been
+satisfied with all I saw of little Jane for some time past, and I am
+afraid that much passes amongst my poor girls which never comes to my
+knowledge.&nbsp; Her pertness especially is probably restrained in my
+presence.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is not so much the pertness that I complain of,&rsquo; said
+Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;for that might be merely exuberance of spirits,
+but there is a sort of habitual irreverence, which makes one dread to
+bring her nearer to sacred tings.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I know what you mean,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;and I think
+the pertness is a branch of it, more noticed because more inconvenient
+to others.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I think the fault I speak
+of is most evident; when there is occasion to reprove her, I am always
+baffled by a kind of levity which makes every warning glance aside.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I should decidedly say refuse her,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;It would be a warning that she could not disregard, and the best
+chance of improving her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yet,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;if she is eager for confirmation,
+and regards it in its proper light, it is hard to say whether it is
+right to deny it to her; it may give her the depth and earnestness which
+she needs.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Poor child,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;she has great disadvantages;
+I am quite sure our present system is not fit for her.&nbsp; Things
+shall be placed on a different footing, and in another year or two I
+hope she may be fitter for confirmation.&nbsp; However, before you finally
+decide, I should wish to have some conversation with her, and speak
+to you again.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is just what I wish,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XII - THE FEVER<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jane borrowed maxims from a doubting school,<br>
+And took for truth the test of ridicule.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The question of Jane&rsquo;s confirmation was decided in an unexpected
+manner; for the day after Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s conversation with his nephew
+she was attacked by a headache and sore throat, spent a feverish night,
+and in the morning was so unwell that a medical man was sent for from
+Raynham.&nbsp; On his arrival he pronounced that she was suffering from
+scarlet fever, and Emily began to feel the approach of the same complaint.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis and Adeline were shut up in the drawing-room, and a system of
+quarantine established, which was happily brought to a conclusion by
+a note from Mrs. Weston, who kindly begged that they might be sent to
+her at Broomhill, and Mr. Mohun gladly availing himself of the offer,
+the little girls set off, so well pleased to make a visit alone, as
+almost to forget the occasion of it.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston had extended
+her invitation to Lilias, but she begged to be allowed to remain with
+her sisters, and Mr. Mohun thought that she had been already so much
+exposed to the infection that it was useless for her to take any precautions.<br>
+<br>
+She was therefore declared head nurse; and it was well that she had
+an energetic spirit, and so sweet a temper, that she was ready to sympathise
+with all Emily&rsquo;s petulant complaints, and even to find fault with
+herself for not being in two places at once.&nbsp; Two of the maids
+were ill, and the whole care of Emily and Jane devolved upon her, with
+only the assistance of Esther.<br>
+<br>
+Emily was not very seriously ill, but Jane&rsquo;s fever was very high,
+and Lily thought that her father was more anxious than he chose to appear.&nbsp;
+Of Jane&rsquo;s own thoughts little could be guessed; she was often
+delirious, and at all times speaking was so painful that she said as
+little as possible.<br>
+<br>
+Lily&rsquo;s troubles seemed at their height one Sunday afternoon, while
+her father was at church.&nbsp; She had been reading the Psalms and
+Lessons to Emily, and she then rose to return to Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not go,&rsquo; entreated Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will send Esther.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Esther is of no use.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And therefore I do not like to leave her so long alone with Jane.&nbsp;
+Pray spare me a little smile.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then come back soon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily was glad to escape with no more objections.&nbsp; She found Jane
+complaining of thirst, but to swallow gave her great pain, and she required
+so much attendance for some little time, that Emily&rsquo;s bell was
+twice rung before Esther could be spared to go to her.<br>
+<br>
+She soon came back, saying, &lsquo;Miss Mohun wants you directly, Miss
+Lilias.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Tell her I will come presently,&rsquo; said Lily, who had one
+hand pressed on Jane&rsquo;s burning temples, while the other was sprinkling
+her with ether.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stay,&rsquo; said Jane, faintly, and Esther left the room.<br>
+<br>
+Jane drew her breath with so much difficulty that a dreadful terror
+seized upon Lily, lest she should be suffocated.&nbsp; She raised her
+head, and supported her till Esther could bring more pillows.&nbsp;
+Esther brought a message from Emily to hasten her return; but Jane could
+not be left, and the grateful look she gave her as she arranged the
+pillows repaid her for all her toils.&nbsp; After a little time Jane
+became more comfortable, and said in a whisper, &lsquo;Dear Lily, I
+wish I was not so troublesome.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Back came Esther at this moment, saying, &lsquo;Miss Emily says she
+is worse, and wants you directly, Miss Lilias.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily hurried away to Emily&rsquo;s room, and found what might well have
+tried her temper.&nbsp; Emily was flushed indeed, and feverish, but
+her breathing was smooth and even, and her hand and pulse cool and slow,
+compared with the parched burning hands, and throbbings, too quick to
+count, which Lily had just been watching.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, my dear Emily, I am sorry you do not feel better; what
+can I do for you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How can I be better while I am left so long, and Esther not coming
+when I ring?&nbsp; What would happen if I were to faint away?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but when you
+rang, poor Jenny could spare neither of us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How is poor Jenny?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Her throat is very bad, but she is quite sensible now, and wishes
+to have me there.&nbsp; What did you want, Emily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I wish you would draw the curtain, the light hurts
+me; that will do - no - now it is worse, pray put it as it was before.&nbsp;
+Oh!&nbsp; Lily, if you knew how ill I am you would not leave me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Can I do anything for you - will you have some coffee?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! no, it has a bad taste, I am sure it is carelessly made.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shall I make you some fresh, with the spirit lamp?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, I am tired of it.&nbsp; I wonder if I might have some tamarinds?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will ask as soon as papa comes from church.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is he gone to church? how could he go when we are all so ill?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps he was doing us more good at church than he could at
+home.&nbsp; You will be glad to hear, Emily, that he has sent for Rachel
+to come and help us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! has he? but she lives so far off, and gets her letters so
+seldom, I don&rsquo;t reckon at all upon her coming.&nbsp; If she could
+come directly it would be a comfort.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It would, indeed,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;she would know what
+to do for Jane.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily, where is the ether?&nbsp; You are always taking it away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In Jane&rsquo;s room; I will fetch it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, if you once get into Jane&rsquo;s room I shall never
+see you back again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Now Emily knew that Jane was very ill, and Lily&rsquo;s pale cheeks,
+heavy eyes, and failing voice, might have reminded her that two sick
+persons were a heavy charge upon a girl of seventeen, without the addition
+of her caprices and fretfulness.&nbsp; And how was it that the kind-hearted,
+affectionate Emily never thought of all this?&nbsp; It was because she
+had been giving way to selfishness for nineteen years; and now the contemplation
+of her own sufferings was quite enough to hide from her that others
+had much to bear; and illness, instead of teaching her patience and
+consideration, only made her more exacting and querulous.<br>
+<br>
+To Lily&rsquo;s unspeakable relief, Miss Weston accompanied Mr. Mohun
+from church, and offered to share her attendance.&nbsp; No one knew
+what it cost Alethea to come into the midst of a scene which constantly
+reminded her of the sisters she had lost, but she did not shrink from
+it, and was glad that her parents saw no objection to her offering to
+share Lily&rsquo;s toils.&nbsp; Her experience was most valuable, and
+relieved Lilias of the fear that was continually haunting her, lest
+her ignorance might lead to some fatal mistake.&nbsp; The next day brought
+Rachel, and both patients began to mend.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s recovery
+was quicker than Emily&rsquo;s, for her constitution was not so languid,
+and having no pleasure in the importance of being an invalid, she was
+willing to exert herself, and make the best of everything, while Emily
+did not much like to be told that she was better, and thought it cruel
+to hint that exertion would benefit her.&nbsp; Both were convalescent
+before the fever attacked Lily, who was severely ill, but not alarmingly
+so, and her gentleness and patience made Alethea delight in having the
+care of her.&nbsp; Lily was full of gratitude to her kind friend, and
+felt quite happy when Alethea chanced one day to call her by the name
+of Emma; she almost hoped she was taking the place of that sister, and
+the thought cheered her through many languid hours, and gave double
+value to all Alethea&rsquo;s kindness.&nbsp; She did not feel disposed
+to repine at an illness which brought out such affection from her friend,
+and still more from her father, who, when he came to see her, would
+say things which gave her a thrill of pleasure whenever she thought
+of them.<br>
+<br>
+It happened one day that Jane, having finished her book, looked round
+for some other occupation; she knew that Miss Weston had walked to Broomhill;
+Rachael was with Lilias, and there was no amusement at hand.&nbsp; At
+last she recollected that her papa had said in the morning, that he
+hoped to see her and Emily in the schoolroom in the course of the day,
+and hoping to meet her sister, she resolved to try and get there.&nbsp;
+The room had been Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s sitting-room since the beginning
+of their illness, and it looked so very comfortable that she was glad
+she had come, though she was so tired she wondered how she should get
+back again.&nbsp; Emily was not there, so she lay down on the sofa and
+took up a little book from the table.&nbsp; The title was <i>Susan Harvey,
+or Confirmation, </i>and she read it with more interest as she remembered
+with a pang that this was the day of the confirmation, to which she
+had been invited; she soon found herself shedding tears over the book,
+she who had never yet been known to cry at any story, however affecting.&nbsp;
+She had not finished when Mr. Devereux came in to look for Mr. Mohun,
+and finding her there, was going away as soon as he had congratulated
+her on having left her room, but she begged him to stay, and began asking
+questions about the confirmation.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Were there many people?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Three hundred.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did the Stoney Bridge people make a disturbance?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How many of our people?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Twenty-seven.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did all the girls wear caps?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Most of them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane was rather surprised at the shortness of her cousin&rsquo;s answers,
+but she went on, as he stood before the fire, apparently in deep thought.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was Miss Burnet confirmed?&nbsp; She is the dullest girl I ever
+knew, and she is older than I am.&nbsp; Was she confused?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She was.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you give Mary Wright a ticket?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then, of course, you did not give one to Ned Long.&nbsp; I thought
+you would never succeed in making him remember which is the ninth commandment.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I did not refuse him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed! did he improve in a portentous manner?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not particularly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, you must have been more merciful than I expected.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Robert, you must have lost the use of your tongue, for want of
+us to talk to.&nbsp; I shall be affronted if you go into a brown study
+the first day of seeing me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He smiled in a constrained manner, and after a few minutes said, &lsquo;I
+have been considering whether this is a fit time to tell you what will
+give you pain.&nbsp; You must tell me if you can bear it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;About Lily, or the little ones?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no! only about yourself.&nbsp; Your father wished me to speak
+to you, but I would not have done so on this first meeting, but what
+you have just been saying makes me think this is the best occasion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me know; I do not like suspense,&rsquo; said Jane, sharply.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think it right to tell you, Jane, that neither your father
+nor I thought it would be desirable for you to be confirmed at this
+time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you really mean it?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Look back on the past year, and say if you sincerely think you
+are fit for confirmation.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;As to that,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;the best people are always
+saying that they are not fit for these things.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;None can call themselves worthy of them; but I think the conscience
+of some would bear them witness that they had profited so far by their
+present means of grace as to give grounds for hoping that they would
+derive benefit from further assistance.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I suppose I must be very bad, since you see it,&rsquo;
+said Jane, in a manner rather more subdued; &lsquo;but I did not think
+myself worse than other people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is a Christian called, only to be no worse than others?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh no!&nbsp; I see, I mean - pray tell me my great fault.&nbsp;
+Pertness, I suppose - love of gossip?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There must be a deeper root of evil, of which these are but the
+visible effects, Jane.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What do you mean, Robert?&rsquo; said Jane, now seeming really
+impressed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think, Jane, that the greatest and most dangerous fault of
+your character is want of reverence.&nbsp; I think it is want of reverence
+which makes you press forward to that for which you confess yourself
+unfit; it is want of reverence for holiness which makes you not care
+to attain it; want of reverence for the Holy Word that makes you treat
+it as a mere lesson; and in smaller matters your pertness is want of
+reverence for your superiors; you would not be ready to believe and
+to say the worst of others, if you reverenced what good there may be
+in them.&nbsp; Take care that your want of reverence is not in reality
+want of faith.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane&rsquo;s spirits were weak and subdued.&nbsp; It was a great shock
+to her to hear that she was not thought worthy of confirmation; her
+faults had never been called by so hard a name; she was in part humbled,
+and in part grieved, and what she thought harshness in her cousin; she
+turned away her face, and did not speak.&nbsp; He continued, &lsquo;Jane,
+you must not think me unkind, your father desired me to talk to you,
+and, indeed, the time of recovery from sickness is too precious to be
+trifled away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane wept bitterly.&nbsp; Presently he said, &lsquo;It grieves me to
+have been obliged to speak harshly to you, you must forgive me if I
+have talked too much to you, Jane.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane tried to speak, but sobs prevented her, and she gave way to a violent
+fit of crying.&nbsp; Her cousin feared he had been unwise in saying
+so much, and had weakened the effect of his own words.&nbsp; He would
+have been glad to see tears of repentance, but he was afraid that she
+was weeping over fancied unkindness, and that he might have done what
+might be hurtful to her in her weak state.&nbsp; He said a few kind
+words, and tried to console her, but this change of tone rather added
+to her distress, and she became hysterical.&nbsp; He was much vexed
+and alarmed, and, ringing the bell, hastened to call assistance.&nbsp;
+He found Esther, and sent her to Jane, and on returning to the schoolroom
+with some water, he found her lying exhausted on the sofa; he therefore
+went in search of his uncle, who was overlooking some farming work,
+and many were the apologies made, and many the assurances he received,
+that it would be better for her in the end, as the impression would
+be more lasting.<br>
+<br>
+Jane was scarcely conscious of her cousin&rsquo;s departure, or of Esther&rsquo;s
+arrival, but after drinking some water, and lying still for a few moments,
+she exclaimed, &lsquo;Oh, Robert! oh, Esther! the confirmation!&rsquo;
+and gasped and sobbed again.&nbsp; Esther thought she had guessed the
+cause of her tears, and tried to comfort her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! Miss Jane, there will be another confirmation some day; it
+was a sad thing you were too ill, to be sure, but - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! if I had - if he would not say - if he had thought me fit.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Esther was amazed, and asked if she should call Miss Weston, who was
+now with Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no!&rsquo; cried Jane, nearly relapsing into hysterics.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;She shall not see me in this state.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Esther hardly knew what to do, but she tried to soothe and comfort her
+by following what was evidently the feeling predominating in Jane&rsquo;s
+mind, as indicated by her broken sentences, and said, &lsquo;It was
+a pity, to be sure, that Mr. Devereux came and talked so long, he could
+not know of your being so very weak, Miss Jane.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Jane, faintly, &lsquo;I could have borne it
+better if he had waited a few days.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss, when you had not been so very ill.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux
+is a very good gentleman, but they do say he is very sharp.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He means to be kind,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;but I do not think
+he has much consideration, always.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss Jane, that is just what Mrs. White said, when - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Esther&rsquo;s speech was cut short by the entrance of Miss Weston.&nbsp;
+Jane started up, dashed off her tears, and tried to look as usual, but
+the paleness of her face, and the redness of her eyes, made this impossible,
+and she was obliged to lie down again.&nbsp; Esther left the room, and
+Miss Weston did not feel intimate enough with Jane to ask any questions;
+she gave her some <i>sal volatile, </i>talked kindly to her of her weakness,
+and offered to read to her; all the time leaving an opening for confidence,
+if Jane wished to relieve her mind.&nbsp; The book which lay near her
+accounted, as she thought, for her agitation, and she blamed herself
+for having judged her harshly as deficient in feeling, now that she
+found her so much distressed, because illness had prevented her confirmation.&nbsp;
+Under this impression she honoured her reserve, while she thought with
+more affection of Lily&rsquo;s open heart.&nbsp; Jane, who never took,
+or expected others to take, the most favourable view of people&rsquo;s
+motives, thought Alethea knew the cause of her distress, and disliked
+her the more, as having witnessed her humiliation.<br>
+<br>
+Such was Jane&rsquo;s love of gossip that the next time she was alone
+with Esther she asked for the history of Mrs. White, thus teaching her
+maid disrespect to her pastor, indirectly complaining of his unkindness,
+and going far to annul the effect of what she had learnt at school.&nbsp;
+Perhaps during her hysterics Jane&rsquo;s conduct was not under control,
+but subsequent silence was in her power, and could she be free from
+blame if Esther&rsquo;s faults gained greater ascendency?<br>
+<br>
+The next day Mr. Mohun attempted to speak to Jane, but being both frightened
+and unhappy, she found it very easy and natural, as well as very convenient,
+to fall into hysterics again, and her father was obliged to desist,
+regretting that, at the only time she was subdued enough to listen to
+reproof, she was too weak to bear it without injury.&nbsp; Rachel, who
+was nearly as despotic among the young ladies as she had been in former
+times in the nursery, now insisted on Emily&rsquo;s going into the schoolroom,
+and when there, she made rapid progress.&nbsp; Alethea was amused to
+see how Jane&rsquo;s decided will and lively spirit would induce Emily
+to make exertions, which no persuasions of hers could make her think
+other than impossible.<br>
+<br>
+A few days more, and they were nearly well again; and Lilias so far
+recovered as to be able to spare her kind friend, who returned home
+with a double portion of Lily&rsquo;s love, and of deep gratitude from
+Mr. Mohun; but these feelings were scarcely expressed in words.&nbsp;
+Emily gave her some graceful thanks, and Jane disliked her more than
+ever.<br>
+<br>
+It was rather a dreary time that now commenced with the young ladies;
+they were tired of seeing the same faces continually, and dispirited
+by hearing that the fever was spreading in the village.&nbsp; The autumn
+was far advanced, the weather was damp and gloomy, and the sisters sat
+round the fire shivering with cold, feeling the large room dreary and
+deserted, missing the merry voices of the children, and much tormented
+by want of occupation.&nbsp; They could not go out, their hands were
+not steady enough to draw, they felt every letter which they had to
+write a heavy burden; neither Emily nor Lily could like needlework;
+they could have no music, for the piano at the other end of the room
+seemed to be in an Arctic Region, and they did little but read novels
+and childish stories, and play at chess or backgammon.&nbsp; Jane was
+the best off.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston sent her a little sock, with a request
+that she would make out the way in which it was knit, in a complicated
+feathery pattern, and in puzzling over her cotton, taking stitches up
+and letting them down, she made the time pass a little less heavily
+with her than with her sisters.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XIII - A CURIOSITY MAP<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Keek into the draw-well,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Janet, Janet,<br>
+There ye&rsquo;ll see your bonny sell,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;My jo Janet.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was at this time that Lady Rotherwood and her daughter arrived at
+Devereux Castle, and Mr. Mohun was obliged to go to meet her there,
+leaving his three daughters to spend a long winter evening by themselves,
+in their doleful and dismal way, as Lily called it.<br>
+<br>
+The evening had closed in, but they did not ring for candles, lest they
+should make it seem longer; and Jane was just beginning to laugh at
+Emily for the deplorable state of her frock and collar, tumbled with
+lying on the sofa, when the three girls all started at the unexpected
+sound of a ring at the front door.<br>
+<br>
+With a rapid and joyful suspicion who it might be, Emily and Lilias
+sprang to the door, Jane thrust the poker into the fire, in a desperate
+attempt to produce a flame, drove an arm-chair off the hearth-rug, whisked
+an old shawl out of sight, and flew after them into the hall, just as
+the deep tones of a well-known voice were heard greeting old Joseph.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;William!&rsquo; cried the girls.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! is it you?&nbsp;
+Are you not afraid of the scarlet fever?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, who has it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We have had it, but we are quite well now.&nbsp; How cold you
+are!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But where is my father?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Gone to Hetherington with Robert, to meet Aunt Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+Come into the drawing-room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here Emily glided off to perform a hurried toilette.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And the little ones?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;At Broomhill.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston was so kind as to take them out
+of the way of the infection,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; William, those Westons!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Westons, what Westons?&nbsp; Not those I knew at Brighton?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The very same,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;They have taken
+the house at Broomhill.&nbsp; Oh! they have been so very kind, I do
+not know what would have become of us without Alethea.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why did you not tell me they were living here?&nbsp; And you
+like them?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Like them!&nbsp; No one can tell the comfort Alethea has been.&nbsp;
+She came to us and nursed us, and has been my great support.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And Phyllis and Ada are with them?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, they have been at Broomhill these six weeks, and more.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here Emily came in and told William that his room was ready, and Rachel
+on the stairs wishing to see the Captain.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How well he looks!&rsquo; cried Lily, as he closed the door;
+&lsquo;it is quite refreshing to see any one looking so strong and bright.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And more like Sir Maurice than ever,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! but Claude is more like,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;because
+he is pale.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;do let us in the meantime make
+the room look more fit to be seen before he comes down.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The alacrity which had long been wanting to Lilias and Jane had suddenly
+returned, and they succeeded in making the room look surprisingly comfortable,
+compared with its former desolate aspect, before William came down,
+and renewed his inquiries after all the family.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And how is my father&rsquo;s deafness?&rsquo;<i> </i>was one
+of his questions.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Worse,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am afraid all the younger
+ones will learn to vociferate.&nbsp; He hears no one well but ourselves.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! and Alethea Weston,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Her voice
+is so clear and distinct, that she hardly ever raises it to make him
+hear.&nbsp; And have you ever heard her sing?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, she sings very well.&nbsp; I cannot think why you never
+told me they were living here.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because you never honour us with your correspondence,&rsquo;
+said Emily; &lsquo;if you had vouchsafed to write to your sisters you
+could not have escaped hearing of the Westons.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And has Mr. Weston given up the law?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, he only came home in the vacation,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Did you know they had lost two daughters?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I saw it in the paper.&nbsp; Emma and Lucy were nice girls, but
+not equal to Miss Weston.&nbsp; What a shock to Mrs. Weston!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, she quite lost her health, and the doctors said she must
+move into the country directly.&nbsp; Mrs. Carrington, who is some distant
+connection, told them of this place, and they took it rather hastily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do they like it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh yes, very much!&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Mrs. Weston
+is very fond of the garden, and drives about in the pony-carriage, and
+it is quite pleasant to see how she admires the views.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And,&rsquo; added Lily, &lsquo;Alethea walks with us, and sings
+with me, and teaches at school, and knows all the poor people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I must go and see those children to-morrow,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+The evening passed very pleasantly; and perhaps, in truth, Captain Mohun
+and his sisters were surprised to find each other so agreeable; for,
+in the eyes of the young ladies, he was by far the most awful person
+in the family.<br>
+<br>
+When he had been last at home Harry&rsquo;s recent death had thrown
+a gloom over the whole family, and he had especially missed him.&nbsp;
+Himself quick, sensible, clever, and active, he was intolerant of opposite
+qualities, and the principal effect of that visit to Beechcroft was
+to make all the younger ones afraid of him, to discourage poor Claude,
+and to give to himself a gloomy remembrance of that home which had lost
+its principal charms in his mother and Harry.<br>
+<br>
+He had now come home rather from a sense of duty than an expectation
+of pleasure, and he was quite surprised to find how much more attractive
+the New Court had become.&nbsp; Emily and Lilias were now conversible
+and intelligent companions, better suited to him than Eleanor had ever
+been, and he had himself in these four years acquired a degree of gentleness
+and consideration which prevented him from appearing so unapproachable
+as in days of old.&nbsp; This was especially the case with regard to
+Claude, whose sensitive and rather timid nature had in his childhood
+suffered much from William&rsquo;s boyish attempts to make him manly,
+and as he grew older, had almost felt himself despised; but now William
+appreciated his noble qualities, and was anxious to make amends for
+his former unkindness.<br>
+<br>
+Claude came home from Oxford, not actually ill, but in the ailing condition
+in which he often was, just weak enough to give his sisters a fair excuse
+for waiting upon him, and petting him all day long.&nbsp; About the
+same time Phyllis and Adeline came back from Broomhill, and there was
+great joy at the New Court at the news that Mrs. Hawkesworth was the
+happy mother of a little boy.<br>
+<br>
+Claude was much pleased by being asked by Eleanor to be godfather to
+his little nephew, whose name was to be Henry.&nbsp; Perhaps he hoped,
+what Lilias was quite sure of, that Eleanor did not think him unworthy
+to stand in Harry&rsquo;s place.<br>
+<br>
+The choice of the other sponsors did not meet with universal approbation.&nbsp;
+Emily thought it rather hard that Mr. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s sister, Mrs.
+Ridley, should have been chosen before herself, and both she and Ada
+would have greatly preferred either Lord Rotherwood, Mr. Devereux, or
+William, to Mr. Ridley, while Phyllis had wanderings of her own how
+Claude could be godfather without being present at the christening.<br>
+<br>
+One evening Claude was writing his answer to Eleanor, sitting at the
+sofa table where a small lamp was burning.&nbsp; Jane, attracted by
+its bright and soft radiance, came and sat down opposite to him with
+her work.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What a silence!&rsquo; said Lily, after about a quarter of an
+hour.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What made you start, Jane?&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did I?&rsquo;<i> </i>said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My speaking, I suppose,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;breaking the
+awful spell of silence.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How red you look, Jane.&nbsp; What is the matter?&rsquo; said
+William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do I?&rsquo; asked Jane, becoming still redder.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is holding your face down over that baby&rsquo;s hood,&rsquo;
+said Emily, &lsquo;you will sacrifice the colour of your nose to your
+nephew.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude now asked Jane for the sealing-wax, folded up his letter, sealed
+it, put on a stamp, and as Jane was leaving the room at bedtime, said,
+&lsquo;Jenny, my dear, as you go by, just put that letter in the post-bag.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane obeyed, and left the room.&nbsp; Claude soon after took the letter
+out of the bag, went to Emily&rsquo;s door, listened to ascertain that
+Jane was not there, and then knocked and was admitted.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I could not help coming,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;to tell you of
+the trap in which Brownie has been caught.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I fancied I saw her peeping slyly
+at your letter.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Just so,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;and I hope she has experienced
+the truth of an old proverb.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! tell us what you have said,&rsquo; cried the sisters.<br>
+<br>
+Claude read, &lsquo;Jane desires me to say that a hood for the baby
+shall be sent in the course of a week, and she hopes that it may be
+worn at the christening.&nbsp; I should rather say I hope it may be
+lost in the transit, for assuredly the head that it covers must be infected
+with something far worse than the scarlet fever - the fever of curiosity,
+the last quality which I should like my godson to possess.&nbsp; My
+only consolation is, that he will see the full deformity of the vice,
+as, poor little fellow, he becomes acquainted with &ldquo;that worst
+of plagues, a prying maiden aunt.&rdquo;&nbsp; If Jane was simply curious,
+I should not complain, but her love of investigation is not directed
+to what ought to be known, but rather to find out some wretched subject
+for petty scandal, to blacken every action, and to add to the weight
+of every misdeed, and all for the sake of detailing her discoveries
+in exchange for similar information with Mrs. Appleton, or some equally
+suitable confidante.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is that all?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And enough, too, I hope,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It ought to cure her!&rsquo;<i> </i>cried Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Cure her!&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;no such thing; cures are
+not wrought in this way; this is only a joke, and to keep it up, I will
+tell you a piece of news, which Jane must have spied out in my letter,
+as I had just written it when I saw her eyes in a suspicious direction.&nbsp;
+It was settled that Messieurs Maurice and Redgie are to go for two hours
+a day, three times a week, to Mr. Stevens, during the holidays.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The new Stoney Bridge curate?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very glad you are not to be bored by them,&rsquo; said Lily,
+&lsquo;but how they will dislike it!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is very hard upon them,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;and I tried
+to prevent it, but the Baron was quite determined.&nbsp; Now I will
+begin to talk about this plan, and see whether Jenny betrays any knowledge
+of it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! it will be rare!&rsquo;<i> </i>cried Lily; &lsquo;but do
+not speak of it before the Baron or William.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let it be at luncheon,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you know they
+never appear.&nbsp; Do you mean to send the letter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not that part of it,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;you see I can
+tear off the last page, and it is only to add a new conclusion.&nbsp;
+Good-night.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane had certainly not spent the evening in an agreeable manner; she
+had not taken her seat at Claude&rsquo;s table with any evil designs
+towards his letter, but his writing was clear and legible, and her eye
+caught the word &lsquo;Maurice;&rsquo; she wished to know what Claude
+could be saying about him, and having once begun, she could not leave
+off, especially when she saw her own name.&nbsp; When aware of the compliments
+he was paying her, she looked at him, but his eyes were fixed on his
+pen, and no smile, no significant expression betrayed that he was aware
+of her observations; and even when he gave her the letter to put into
+the post-bag he looked quite innocent and unconcerned.&nbsp; On the
+other hand, she did not like to think that he had been sending such
+a character of her to Eleanor in sober sadness; it was impossible to
+find out whether he had sent the letter; she could not venture to beg
+him to keep it back, she could only trust to his good-nature.<br>
+<br>
+At luncheon, as they had agreed, Lily began by asking where her papa
+and William were gone?&nbsp; Claude answered, &lsquo;To Stoney Bridge,
+to call upon Mr. Stevens; they mean to ask him to dine one day next
+week, to be introduced to his pupils.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is he an Oxford or Cambridge man?&rsquo; asked Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oxford,&rsquo; exclaimed Jane, quite forgetting whence she had
+derived her information, &lsquo;he is a fellow of - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed?&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;how do you know that?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, we have all been talking of him lately,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not I,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;why should he interest us?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because he is to tutor the boys,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;When did you hear that he is to tutor the boys?&rsquo; asked
+Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;When you did, I suppose,&rsquo; said Jane, blushing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You did, did you?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I feel convinced,
+if so, that you must really be what you are so often called, a changeling.&nbsp;
+I heard it, or rather read it first at Oxford, where the Baron desired
+me to make inquiries about him.&nbsp; You were, doubtless, looking over
+my shoulder at the moment.&nbsp; This is quite a discovery.&nbsp; We
+shall have to perform a brewery of egg-shells this evening, and put
+the elf to flight with a red-hot poker, and what a different sister
+Jane we shall recover, instead of this little mischief-making sprite,
+so quiet, so reserved, never intruding her opinion, showing constant
+deference to all her superiors - yes, and to her inferiors, shutting
+her eyes to the faults of others, and when they come before her, trying
+to shield the offender from those who regard them as merely exciting
+news.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude&rsquo;s speech had become much more serious than he intended,
+and he felt quite guilty when he had finished, so that it was not at
+all an undesirable interruption when Phyllis and Adeline asked for the
+story of the brewery of egg-shells.<br>
+<br>
+Emily and Lilias kindly avoided looking at Jane, who, after fidgeting
+on her chair and turning very red, succeeded in regaining outward composure.&nbsp;
+She resolved to let the matter die away, and think no more about it.<br>
+<br>
+When Mr. Mohun and William came home, they brought the news that Lady
+Rotherwood had invited the whole party to dinner.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very glad we are allowed to see them,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;I am quite tired of being shut up.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If it was not for the Westons we might as well live in Nova Zembla,&rsquo;
+said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am glad you damsels should know a little more of Florence,&rsquo;
+said Mrs. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;cousins were made to be friends.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In that case one ought to be able to choose them,&rsquo; said
+William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And know them,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;We have not seen
+Florence since she was eleven years old.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Cousin or not,&rsquo; said Lilias, &lsquo;Florence can hardly
+be so much my friend as Alethea.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Right, Lily,&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;stand up for old friends
+against all the cousins in the universe.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Has Alethea a right to be called an old friend?&rsquo; said Emily;
+&lsquo;does three quarters of a year make friendship venerable?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No one can deny that she is a tried friend,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But pray, good people,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;what called
+forth those vows of eternal constancy? why was my innocent general observation
+construed into an attack upon Miss Weston?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because there is something invidious in your tone,&rsquo; said
+Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What kind of girl is that Florence?&rsquo;<i> </i>asked William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! a nice, lively, pleasant girl,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot make out what her pursuits are,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;Rotherwood
+never talks of her reading anything.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She has been governessed and crammed till she is half sick of
+all reading,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;of all study - ay, and all accomplishments.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So that is the friend you recommend, Lily!&rsquo;<i> </i>said
+William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Claude, that is what I call a great shame,&rsquo; said
+Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stay,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;you have heard but half my story,
+I say that this is the reaction.&nbsp; Florence has no lack of sense,
+and if you young ladies are wise, you may help her to find the use of
+it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude&rsquo;s further opinion did not transpire, as dinner was announced,
+and nothing more was said about Lady Florence till the girls had an
+opportunity of judging for themselves.&nbsp; She had a good deal of
+her brother&rsquo;s vivacity, with gentleness and grace, which made
+her very engaging, and her perfect recollection of the New Court, and
+of childish days, charmed her cousins.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood was very
+kind and affectionate, and held out hopes of many future meetings.&nbsp;
+The next day Maurice and Reginald came home from school, bringing a
+better character for diligence than usual, on which they founded hopes
+that the holidays would be left to their own disposal.&nbsp; They were
+by no means pleased with the arrangement made with Mr. Stevens and most
+unwillingly did they undertake the expedition to Stony Bridge, performing
+the journey in a very unsociable manner.&nbsp; Maurice was no horseman,
+and chose to jog on foot through three miles of lane, while Reginald&rsquo;s
+pony cantered merrily along, its master&rsquo;s head being intent upon
+the various winter sports in which William and Lord Rotherwood allowed
+him to share.&nbsp; Little did Maurice care for such diversions; he
+was, as Adeline said, studying another &lsquo;apology.&rsquo;&nbsp;
+This time it was phrenology, for which the cropped heads of Lilias and
+Jane afforded unusual facility.&nbsp; There was, however, but a limited
+supply of heads willing to be fingered, and Maurice returned to the
+most abiding of his tastes, and in an empty room at the Old Court laboured
+assiduously to find the secret of perpetual motion.<br>
+<br>
+A few days before Christmas Rachel Harvey again took leave of Beechcroft,
+with a promise that she would make them another visit when Eleanor came
+home.&nbsp; Before she went she gave Emily a useful caution, telling
+her it was not right to trust her keys out of her own possession.&nbsp;
+It was what Miss Mohun never would have done, she had never once committed
+them even to Rachel.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With due deference to Eleanor,&rsquo; said Emily, with her winning
+smile, &lsquo;we must allow that that was being over cautious.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Rachel smiled, but her lecture was not averted by the compliment.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It might have been very well since you have known me, Miss Emily,
+but I do not know what would have come of it, if I had been too much
+trusted when I was a giddy young thing like Esther; that girl comes
+of a bad lot, and if anything is to be made of her, it is by keeping
+temptation out of her way, and not letting her be with that mother of
+hers.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Rachel had rather injured the effect of her advice by behaving too like
+a mistress during her visit; Emily had more than once wished that all
+servants were not privileged people, and she was more offended than
+convinced by the remonstrance.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XIV - CHRISTMAS<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&lsquo;Slee, sla, slud,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Stuck in the mud,<br>
+O! it is pretty to wade through a flood,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Come, wheel round,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The dirt we have found,<br>
+Would he an estate at a farthing a pound.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily&rsquo;s illness interrupted her teaching at the village school
+for many weeks, and she was in no great haste to resume it.&nbsp; Alethea
+Weston seemed to enjoy doing all that was required, and Lily left it
+in her hands, glad to shut her eyes as much as possible to the disheartening
+state the parish had been in ever since her former indiscretion.<br>
+<br>
+The approach of Christmas, however, made it necessary for her to exert
+herself a little more, and her interest in parish matters revived as
+she distributed the clothing-club goods, and in private conference with
+each good dame, learnt the wants of her family.&nbsp; But it was sad
+to miss several names struck out of the list for non-attendance at church;
+and when Mrs. Eden came for her child&rsquo;s clothing, Lily remarked
+that the articles she chose were unlike those of former years, the cheapest
+and coarsest she could find.<br>
+<br>
+St. Thomas&rsquo;s day was marked by the custom, called at Beechcroft
+&lsquo;gooding.&rsquo;&nbsp; Each mother of a family came to all the
+principal houses in the parish to receive sixpence, towards providing
+a Christmas dinner, and it was Lily&rsquo;s business to dispense this
+dole at the New Court.&nbsp; With a long list of names and a heap of
+silver before her, she sat at the oaken table by the open chimney in
+the hall, returning a nod or a smiling greeting to the thanks of the
+women as they came, one by one, to receive the little silver coins,
+and warm themselves by the glowing wood fire.<br>
+<br>
+Pleasant as the task was at first, it ended painfully.&nbsp; Agnes Eden
+appeared, in order to claim the double portion allotted to her mother,
+as a widow.&nbsp; This was the first time that Mrs. Eden had asked for
+the gooding-money, and Lily knew that it was a sign that she must be
+in great distress.&nbsp; Agnes made her a little courtesy, and crept
+away again as soon as she had received her shilling; but Mrs. Grey,
+who was Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s neighbour, had not quite settled her penny-club
+affairs, and remained a little longer.&nbsp; An unassuming and lightly-principled
+person was Mrs. Grey, and Lily enjoyed a talk with her, while she was
+waiting for the purple stuff frock which Jane was measuring off for
+Kezia.&nbsp; They spoke of the children, and of a few other little matters,
+and presently something was said about Mrs. Eden; Lily asked if the
+blacksmith helped her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! no, Miss Lilias, he will do nothing for her while she sends
+her child to school and to church.&nbsp; He will not speak to her even.&nbsp;
+Not a bit of butter, nor a morsel of bacon, has been in her house since
+Michaelmas, and what she would have done if it was not for Mr. Devereux
+and Mrs. Weston, I cannot think.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias, much shocked by this account of the distress into which she
+and Jane had been the means of bringing the widow, reported it to her
+father and to the Rector; entreating the former to excuse her rent,
+which he willingly promised to do, and also desired his daughters to
+give her a blanket, and tell her to come to dine house whenever any
+broth was to be given away.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux, who already knew of
+her troubles, and allowed her a small sum weekly, now told his cousins
+how much the Greys had assisted her.&nbsp; Andrew Grey had dug up and
+housed her winter&rsquo;s store of potatoes, he had sought work for
+her, and little Agnes often shared the meals of his children.&nbsp;
+The Greys had a large family, very young, so that all that they did
+for her was the fruit of self-denial.&nbsp; Innumerable were the kindnesses
+which they performed unknown to any but the widow and her child.&nbsp;
+More, by a hundred times, did they assist her, than the thoughtless
+girls who had occasioned her sufferings, though Lily was not the only
+one who felt that nothing was too much for them to do.&nbsp; Nothing,
+perhaps, would have been too much, except to bear her in mind and steadily
+aid her in little things; but Lily took no account of little things,
+talked away her feelings, and thus all her grand resolutions produced
+almost nothing.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood sent Mrs. Eden a sovereign, the
+girls newly clothed little Agnes, Phyllis sometimes carried her the
+scraps of her dinner, Mrs. Eden once came to work at the New Court,
+and a few messes of broth were given to her, but in general she was
+forgotten, and when remembered, indolence or carelessness too often
+prevented the Miss Mohuns from helping her.&nbsp; In Emily&rsquo;s favourite
+phrase, each individual thing was &lsquo;not worth while.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+When Lilias did think it &lsquo;worth while,&rsquo; she would do a great
+deal upon impulse, sometimes with more zeal than discretion, as she
+proved by an expedition which she took on Christmas Eve.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun
+did not allow the poor of the village to depend entirely on the gooding
+for their Christmas dinner, but on the 24th of December a large mess
+of excellent beef broth was prepared at the New Court, and distributed
+to all his own labourers, and the most respectable of the other cottagers.<br>
+<br>
+In the course of the afternoon Lily found that one portion had not been
+given out.&nbsp; It was that which was intended for the Martins, a poor
+old rheumatic couple, who lived at South End, the most distant part
+of the parish.&nbsp; Neither of them could walk as far as the New Court,
+and most of their neighbours had followed Farmer Gage, and had therefore
+been excluded from the distribution, so that there was no one to send.&nbsp;
+Lily, therefore, resolved herself to carry the broth to them, if she
+could find an escort, which was not an easy matter, as the frost had
+that morning broken up, and a good deal of snow and rain had been falling
+in the course of the day.&nbsp; In the hall she met Reginald, just turned
+out of Maurice&rsquo;s workshop, and much at a loss for employment.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Redgie,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;you can do me a great kindness.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If it is not a bore,&rsquo; returned Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I only want you to walk with me to South End.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh?&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;I thought the little Misses
+were too delicate to put their dear little proboscises outside the door.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is the reason I ask you; I do not think Emily or Jane would
+like it, and it is too far for Claude.&nbsp; Those poor old Martins
+have not got their broth, and there is no one to fetch it for them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then do not be half an hour putting on your things.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you; and do not run off, and make me spend an hour in hunting
+for you, and then say that I made you wait.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will wait fast enough.&nbsp; You are not so bad as Emily,&rsquo;
+said Reginald, while Lily ran upstairs to equip herself.&nbsp; When
+she came down, she was glad to find her escort employed in singeing
+the end of the tail of the old rocking-horse at the fire in the hall,
+so that she was not obliged to seek him in the drawing-room, where her
+plans would probably have met with opposition.&nbsp; She had, however,
+objections to answer from an unexpected quarter.&nbsp; Reginald was
+much displeased when she took possession of the pitcher of broth.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will not walk with such a thing as that,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;it
+makes you look like one of the dirty girls in the village.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you ought, like the courteous Rinaldo, to carry it for me,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I touch the nasty thing!&nbsp; Faugh!&nbsp; Throw it into the
+gutter, Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He made an attempt to dispose of it in that manner, which it required
+all Lily&rsquo;s strength to withstand, as well as an imploring &lsquo;Now,
+Redgie, think of the poor old people.&nbsp; Remember, you have promised.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Promised!&nbsp; I never promised to walk with a greasy old pitcher.&nbsp;
+What am I to do if we meet Miss Weston?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily contrived to overcome Reginald&rsquo;s refined notions sufficiently
+to make him allow her to carry the pitcher; and when he had whistled
+up two of the dogs, they proceeded merrily along the road, dirty and
+wet though it was.&nbsp; Their walk was not entirely without adventures;
+first, they had to turn back in the path by the river side, which would
+have saved them half a mile, but was now flooded.&nbsp; Then, as they
+were passing through a long lane, which led them by Edward Gage&rsquo;s
+farm, a great dog rushed out of the yard, and fell upon the little terrier,
+Viper.&nbsp; Old Neptune flew to the rescue, and to the great alarm
+of Lily, Reginald ran up with a stick; happily, however, a labourer
+at the same time came out with a pitchfork, and beat off the enemy.&nbsp;
+These two delays, together with Reginald&rsquo;s propensity for cutting
+sticks, and for breaking ice, made it quite late when they arrived at
+South End.&nbsp; When there, they found that a kind neighbour had brought
+the old people their broth in the morning, and intended to go for her
+own when she came home from her work in the evening.&nbsp; It was not
+often that Lily went to South End; the old people were delighted to
+see her, and detained her for some time by a long story about their
+daughter at service, while Reginald looked the picture of impatience,
+drumming on his knee, switching the leg of the table, and tickling Neptune&rsquo;s
+ears.&nbsp; When they left the cottage it was much later and darker
+than they had expected; but Lily was unwilling again to encounter the
+perils of the lane, and consulted her brother whether there was not
+some other way.&nbsp; He gave notice of a cut across some fields, which
+would take them into the turnpike road, and Lily agreeing, they climbed
+over a gate into a pathless turnip field.&nbsp; Reginald strode along
+first, calling to the dogs, while Lily followed, abstaining from dwelling
+on the awkward circumstance that every step she took led her farther
+from home, and rejoicing that it was so dark that she could not see
+the mud which plastered the edge of her petticoats.&nbsp; After plodding
+through three very long fields, they found themselves shut in by a high
+hedge and tall ditch.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That fool of a farmer!&rsquo; cried Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is to be done?&rsquo; said Lily, disconsolately.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is the road,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;How do
+you propose to get into it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There was a gap here last summer,&rsquo; said the boy.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very likely!&nbsp; Come back; try the next field; it must have
+a gate somewhere.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Back they went, after seeing the carrier&rsquo;s cart from Raynham pass
+by.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Redgie, it must be half-past five!&nbsp; We shall never be in
+time.&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood coming too!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a desperate plunge through a swamp of ice, water, and mud, they
+found themselves at a gate, and safely entered the turnpike road.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How it rains!&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;One comfort is that
+it is too dark for any one to see us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not very dark, either,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;I believe
+there is a moon if one could see it.&nbsp; Ha! here comes some one on
+horseback.&nbsp; It is a gray horse; it is William.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Come to look for us,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh, Redgie!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Coming home from Raynham,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do
+not fancy yourself so important, Lily.&nbsp; William, is that you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Reginald!&rsquo; exclaimed William, suddenly checking his horse.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Lily, what is all this?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We set out to South End, to take the broth to the old Martins,
+and we found the meadows flooded, which made us late; but we shall soon
+be at home,&rsquo; said Lily, in a make-the-best-of-it tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Soon?&nbsp; You are a mile and a half from home now, and do you
+know how late it is?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Half-past five,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Six, at least; how could you be so absurd?&rsquo;&nbsp; William
+rode quickly on; Reginald laughed, and they plodded on; at length a
+tall dark figure was seen coming towards them, and Lily started, as
+it addressed her, &lsquo;Now what is the meaning of all this?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, William, have you come to meet us?&nbsp; Thank you; I am
+sorry - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How were you to come through the village in the dark, without
+some one to take care of you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am taking care of her,&rsquo; said Reginald, affronted.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Make haste; my aunt is come.&nbsp; How could you make the people
+at home so anxious?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+William gave Lily his arm, and on finding she was both tired and wet,
+again scolded her, walked so fast that she was out of breath, then complained
+of her folly, and blamed Reginald.&nbsp; It was very unpleasant, and
+yet she was very much obliged to him, and exceedingly sorry he had taken
+so much trouble.<br>
+<br>
+They came home at about seven o&rsquo;clock.&nbsp; Jane met them in
+the hall, full of her own and Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s wonderings; she
+hurried Lily upstairs, and - skilful, quick, and ready - she helped
+her to dress in a very short time.&nbsp; As they ran down Reginald overtook
+them, and they entered the drawing-room as the dinner-bell was ringing.&nbsp;
+William did not appear for some time, and his apologies were not such
+as to smooth matters for his sister.<br>
+<br>
+Perhaps it was for this very reason that Mr. Mohun allowed Lily to escape
+with no more than a jesting reproof.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood wished to
+make his cousin&rsquo;s hardihood and enterprise an example to his sister,
+and, in his droll exaggerating way, represented such walks as every-day
+occurrences.&nbsp; This was just the contrary to what Emily wished her
+aunt to believe, and Claude was much diverted with the struggle between
+her politeness to Lord Rotherwood and her desire to maintain the credit
+of the family.<br>
+<br>
+Lady Florence, though liking Lilias, thought this walk extravagant.&nbsp;
+Emily feared Lilias had lost her aunt&rsquo;s good opinion, and prepared
+herself for some hints about a governess.&nbsp; It was untoward; but
+in the course of the evening she was a little comforted by a proposal
+from Lady Rotherwood to take her and Lilias to a ball at Raynham, which
+was to take place in January; and as soon as the gentlemen appeared,
+they submitted the invitation to their father, while Lady Rotherwood
+pressed William to accompany them, and he was refusing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What are soldiers intended for but to dance!&rsquo; said Lord
+Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I never dance,&rsquo; said William, with a grave emphasis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am out of the scrape,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+shall be gone before it takes place; I reserve all my dancing for July
+30th.&nbsp; Well, young ladies, is the Baron propitious?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He says he will consider of it,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh then, he will let you go,&rsquo; said Florence, &lsquo;people
+never consider when they mean no.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Florence,&rsquo; said her brother, &lsquo;Uncle Mohun&rsquo;s
+&ldquo;consider of it&rdquo; is equivalent to Le Roi&rsquo;s &ldquo;avisera.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is he saying?&rsquo; asked Lily, turning to listen.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh, that my wig is in no ball-going condition.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A wreath would hide all deficiencies,&rsquo; said Florence; &lsquo;I
+am determined to have you both.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I give small hopes of both,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;you will
+only have Emily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why do you think so, Claude?&rsquo; cried both Florence and Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;From my own observation,&rsquo; Claude answered, gravely.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very angry with the Baron,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood;
+&lsquo;he is grown inhospitable: he will not let me come here to-morrow
+- the first Christmas these five years that I have missed paying my
+respects to the New Court sirloin and turkey.&nbsp; It is too bad -
+and the Westons dining here too.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Cousin Turkey-cock, well may you be in a passion,&rsquo; muttered
+Claude, as if in soliloquy.<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood and Lilias both caught the sound, and laughed, but Emily,
+unwilling that Florence should see what liberties they took with her
+brother, asked quickly why he was not to come.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think we are much obliged to him,&rsquo; said Florence, &lsquo;it
+would be too bad to leave mamma and me to spend our Christmas alone,
+when we came to the castle on purpose to oblige him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ay, and he says he will not let me come here, because I ought
+to give the Hetherington people ocular demonstration that I go to church,&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very right, as Eleanor would say,&rsquo; observed Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very likely; but I don&rsquo;t care for the Hetherington folks;
+they do not know how to make the holly in the church fit to be seen,
+and they will not sing the good old Christmas carols.&nbsp; Andrew Grey
+is worth all the Hetherington choir put together.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Possibly; but how are they to mend, if their Marquis contents
+himself with despising them?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is too bad, Claude.&nbsp; When you heard how submissively
+I listened to the Baron, and know I mean to abide by what he said, you
+ought to condole with me a little, if you have not the grace to lament
+my absence on your own account.&nbsp; Why, I thought myself as regular
+a part of the feast as the mince-pies, and almost as necessary.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here a request for some music put an end to his lamentations.&nbsp;
+Lilias was vexed by the uncertainty about the ball, and was, besides,
+too tired to play with spirit.&nbsp; She saw that Emily was annoyed,
+and she felt ready to cry before the evening was over; but still she
+was proud of her exploit, and when, after the party was gone, Emily
+began to represent to her the estimate that her aunt was likely to form
+of her character, she replied, &lsquo;If she thinks the worse of me
+for carrying the broth to those poor old people, I am sure I do not
+wish for her good opinion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Mohun was not propitious when the question of Lily&rsquo;s going
+to the ball was pressed upon him.&nbsp; He said that he thought her
+too young for gaieties, and, besides, that late hours never agreed with
+her, and he advised her to wait for the 30th of July.<br>
+<br>
+Lilias knew that it was useless to say any more.&nbsp; She was much
+disappointed, and at the same time provoked with herself for caring
+about such a matter.&nbsp; Her temper was out of order on Christmas
+Day; and while she wondered why she could not enjoy the festival as
+formerly, with thoughts fitted to the day, she did not examine herself
+sufficiently to find out the real cause of her uncomfortable feelings.<br>
+<br>
+The clear frost was only cold; the bright sunshine did not rejoice her;
+the holly and the mistletoe seemed ill arranged; and none of the pleasant
+sights of the day could give her such blitheness as once she had known.<br>
+<br>
+She was almost angry when she saw that the Westons had left off their
+mourning, declaring that they did not look like themselves; and her
+vexation came to a height when she found that Alethea actually intended
+to go to the ball with Mrs. Carrington.&nbsp; The excited manner in
+which she spoke of it convinced Mr. Mohun that he had acted wisely in
+not allowing her to go, since the very idea seemed to turn her head.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XV: MINOR MISFORTUNES<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Loving she is, and tractable though wild.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In a day or two Lady Rotherwood and her daughter called at the New Court.&nbsp;
+On this occasion Lilias was employed in as rational and lady-like a
+manner as could be desired - in practising her music in the drawing-room;
+Emily was reading, and Ada threading beads.<br>
+<br>
+Lady Rotherwood greeted her nieces very affectionately, gave a double
+caress to Adeline, stroked her pretty curls, admired her beadwork, talked
+to her about her doll, and then proceeded to invite the whole family
+to a Twelfth-Day party, given for their especial benefit.&nbsp; The
+little Carringtons and the Weston girls were also to be asked.&nbsp;
+Emily and Lilias were eagerly expressing their delight when suddenly
+a trampling, like a charge of horse, was heard in the hall; the door
+was thrown back, and in rushed Reginald and Phyllis, shouting, &lsquo;Such
+fun! - the pigs are in the garden!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+At the sight of their aunt they stopped short, looking aghast, and certainly
+those who beheld them partook of their consternation.&nbsp; Reginald
+was hot and gloveless; his shoes far from clean; his brown curls hanging
+in great disorder from his Scotch cap; his handkerchief loose; his jacket
+dusty - but this was no great matter, since, as Emily said, he was &lsquo;only
+a boy.&rsquo;&nbsp; His bright open smile, the rough, yet gentleman-like
+courtesy of his advance to the Marchioness, his comical roguish glance
+at Emily, to see if she was very angry, and to defy her if she were,
+and his speedy exit, all greatly amused Lady Florence, and made up for
+what there might have been of the wild schoolboy in his entrance.<br>
+<br>
+Poor Phyllis had neither the excuse of being a schoolboy nor the good-humoured
+fearlessness that freed her brother from embarrassment, and she stood
+stock-still, awkward and dismayed, not daring to advance; longing to
+join in the pig-chase, yet afraid to run away, her eyes stretched wide
+open, her hair streaming into them, her bonnet awry, her tippet powdered
+with seeds of hay, her gloves torn and soiled, the colour of her brown
+holland apron scarcely discernible through its various stains, her frock
+tucked up, her stockings covered with mud, and without shoes, which
+she had taken off at the door.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Phyllis,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;what are you thinking of?&nbsp;
+What makes you such a figure?&nbsp; Come and speak to Aunt Rotherwood.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis drew off her left-hand glove, and held out her hand, making
+a few sidelong steps towards her aunt, who gave her a rather reluctant
+kiss.&nbsp; Lily bent her bonnet into shape, and pulled down her frock,
+while Florence laughed, patted her cheek, and asked what she had been
+doing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Helping Redgie to chop turnips,&rsquo; was the answer.<br>
+<br>
+Afraid of some further exposure, Emily hastily sent her away to be made
+fit to be seen, and Lady Rotherwood went on caressing Ada and talking
+of something else.&nbsp; Emily had no opportunity of explaining that
+this was not Phyllis&rsquo;s usual condition, and she was afraid that
+Lady Rotherwood would never believe that it was accidental.&nbsp; She
+was much annoyed, especially as the catastrophe only served to divert
+Mr. Mohun and Claude.&nbsp; Of all the family William and Adeline alone
+took her view of the case.&nbsp; Ada lectured Phyllis on her &lsquo;naughtiness,&rsquo;
+and plumed herself on her aunt&rsquo;s evident preference, but William
+was not equally sympathetic.&nbsp; He was indeed as fastidious as Emily
+herself, and as much annoyed by such misadventures; but he maintained
+that she was to blame for them, saying that the state of things was
+not such as it should be, and that the exposure might be advantageous
+if it put her on her guard in future.<br>
+<br>
+It appeared as if poor Phyllis was to be punished for the vexation which
+she had caused, for in the course of her adventures with Reginald she
+caught a cold, which threatened to prevent her from being of the party
+on Twelfth-Day.&nbsp; She had a cough, which did not give her by any
+means as much inconvenience as the noise it occasioned did to other
+people.&nbsp; Every morning and every evening she anxiously asked her
+sisters whether they thought she would be allowed to go.&nbsp; Another
+of the party seemed likely to fail.&nbsp; On the 5th of January Claude
+came down to breakfast later even than usual; but he had no occasion
+to make excuses, for his heavy eyes, the dark lines under them, his
+pale cheeks, and the very sit of his hair, were sure signs that he had
+a violent headache.&nbsp; He soon betook himself to the sofa in the
+drawing-room, attended by Lily, with pillows, cushions, ether, and lavender.&nbsp;
+Late in the afternoon the pain diminished a little, and he fell asleep,
+to the great joy of his sister, who sat watching him, scarcely daring
+to move.<br>
+<br>
+Suddenly a frightful scream and loud crash was heard in the room above
+them.&nbsp; Claude started up, and Lily, exclaiming, &lsquo;Those tiresome
+children!&rsquo; hurried to the room whence the noise had come.<br>
+<br>
+Reginald, Phyllis, and Ada, all stood there laughing.&nbsp; Reginald
+and Phyllis had been climbing to the top of a great wardrobe, by means
+of a ladder of chairs and tables.&nbsp; While Phyllis was descending
+her brother had made some demonstration that startled her, and she fell
+with all the chairs over her, but without hurting herself.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You naughty troublesome child,&rsquo; cried Lily, in no gentle
+tone.&nbsp; &lsquo;How often have you been told to leave off such boyish
+tricks!&nbsp; And you choose the very place for disturbing poor Claude,
+with his bad headache, making it worse than ever.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis tried to speak, but only succeeded in giving a dismal howl.&nbsp;
+She went on screaming, sobbing, and roaring so loud that she could not
+hear Lily&rsquo;s attempts to quiet her.&nbsp; The next minute Claude
+appeared, looking half distracted.&nbsp; Reginald ran off, and as he
+dashed out of the room, came full against William, who caught hold of
+him, calling out to know what was the matter.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only Phyllis screaming,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh, Claude,
+I am very sorry!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is that all?&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I thought some
+one was half killed!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He sank into a chair, pressing his hand on his temples, and looking
+very faint.&nbsp; William supported him, and Lily stood by, repeating,
+&lsquo;I am very sorry - it was all my fault - my scolding - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Hush,&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;you have done mischief enough.&nbsp;
+Go away, children.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis had already gone, and the next moment thrust into Lily&rsquo;s
+hand the first of the medicaments which she had found in the drawing-room.&nbsp;
+The faintness soon went off, but Claude thought he had better not struggle
+against the headache any longer, but go to bed, in hopes of being better
+the next day.&nbsp; William went with him to his room, and Lilias lingered
+on the stairs, very humble, and very wretched.&nbsp; William soon came
+forth again, and asked the meaning of the uproar.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was all my fault,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;I was vexed at Claude&rsquo;s
+being waked, and that made me speak sharply to Phyllis, and set her
+roaring.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know which is the most inconsiderate of you,&rsquo;
+said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You cannot blame me more than I deserve,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;May I go to poor Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I suppose so; but I do not see what good you are to do.&nbsp;
+Quiet is the only thing for him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily, however, went, and Claude gave her to understand that he liked
+her to stay with him.&nbsp; She arranged his blinds and curtains comfortably,
+and then sat down to watch him.&nbsp; William went to the drawing-room
+to write a letter.&nbsp; Just as he had sat down he heard a strange
+noise, a sound of sobbing, which seemed to come from the corner where
+the library steps stood.&nbsp; Looking behind them, he beheld Phyllis
+curled up, her head on her knees, crying bitterly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You there!&nbsp; Come out.&nbsp; What is the matter now?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am so very sorry,&rsquo; sighed she.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, leave off crying.&rsquo;&nbsp; She would willingly have
+obeyed, but her sobs were beyond her own control; and he went on, &lsquo;If
+you are sorry, there is no more to be said.&nbsp; I hope it will be
+a lesson to you another time.&nbsp; You are quite old enough to have
+more consideration for other people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very sorry,&rsquo; again said Phyllis, in a mournful note.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Be sorry, only do not roar.&nbsp; You make that noise from habit,
+I am convinced, and you may break yourself off it if you choose.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis crept out of the room, and in a few minutes more the door was
+softly opened by Emily, returning from her walk.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I thought Claude was here.&nbsp; Is he gone to bed?&nbsp; Is
+his head worse?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, the children have been doing their best to distract him.&nbsp;
+Emily, I want to know why it is that those children are for ever in
+mischief and yelling in all parts of the house.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish I could help it,&rsquo; said Emily, with a sigh; &lsquo;they
+are very troublesome.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There must be great mismanagement,&rsquo; said her brother.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, William!&nbsp; Why do you think so?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Other children do not go on in this way, and it was not so in
+Eleanor&rsquo;s time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is only Phyllis,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Phyllis or not, it ought not to be.&nbsp; What will that child
+grow up, if you let her be always running wild with the boys?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Consider, William, that you see us at a disadvantage; we are
+all unsettled by this illness, and the children have been from home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;As if they learnt all these wild tricks at Broomhill!&nbsp; That
+excuse will not do, Emily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And then they are always worse in the holidays,&rsquo; pleaded
+Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, there are reasons to be found for everything that goes wrong;
+but if you were wise you would look deeper.&nbsp; Now, Emily, I do not
+wish to be hard upon you, for I know you are in a very difficult position,
+and very young for such a charge, but I am sure you might manage better.&nbsp;
+I do not think you use your energies.&nbsp; There is no activity, nor
+regularity, nor method, about this household.&nbsp; I believe that my
+father sees that this is the case, but it is not his habit to find fault
+with little things.&nbsp; You may think that, therefore, I need not
+interfere, but - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, William!&nbsp; I am glad - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But remember that comfort is made up of little things.&nbsp;
+And, Emily, when you consider how much my father has suffered, and how
+desolate his home must be at the best, I think you will be inclined
+to exert yourself to prevent him from being anxious about the children
+or harassed by your negligence.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, William,&rsquo; returned Emily, with many tears, &lsquo;it
+is my most earnest wish to make him comfortable.&nbsp; Thank you for
+what you have said.&nbsp; Now that I am stronger, I hope to do more,
+and I will really do my best.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+At this moment Emily was sincere; but the good impulse of one instant
+was not likely to endure against long cherished habits of selfish apathy.<br>
+<br>
+Claude did not appear again till the middle of the next day.&nbsp; His
+headache was nearly gone, but he was so languid that he gave up all
+thoughts of Devereux Castle that evening.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood, who
+always seemed to know what was going on at Beechcroft, came to inquire
+for him, and very unwillingly allowed that it would be better for him
+to stay at home.&nbsp; Lilias wished to remain with him; but this her
+cousin would not permit, saying that he could not consent to lose three
+of the party, and Florence would be disappointed in all her plans.&nbsp;
+Neither would Claude hear of keeping her at home, and she was obliged
+to satisfy herself with putting his arm-chair in his favourite corner
+by the fire, with the little table before it, supplied with books, newspaper,
+inkstand, paper-knife, and all the new periodicals, and he declared
+that he should enjoy the height of luxury.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis considered it to be entirely her fault that he could not go,
+and was too much grieved on that account to have many regrets to spare
+for herself.&nbsp; She enjoyed seeing Adeline dressed, and hearing Esther&rsquo;s
+admiration of her.&nbsp; And having seen the party set off, she made
+her way into the drawing-room, opening the door as gently as possible,
+just wide enough to admit her little person, then shutting it as if
+she was afraid of hurting it, she crept across the room on tiptoe.&nbsp;
+She started when Claude looked up and said, &lsquo;Why, Phyl, I have
+not seen you to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Good morning,&rsquo; she mumbled, advancing in her sidelong way.<br>
+<br>
+Claude suspected that she had been more blamed the day before than the
+occasion called for, and wishing to make amends he kissed her, and said
+something good-natured about spending the evening together.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis, a little reassured, went to her own occupations.&nbsp; She
+took out a large heavy volume, laid it on the window-seat, and began
+to read.&nbsp; Claude was interested in his own book, and did not look
+up till the light failed him.&nbsp; He then, closing his book, gave
+a long yawn, and looked round for his little companion, almost thinking,
+from the stillness of the room, that she must have gone to seek for
+amusement in the nursery.<br>
+<br>
+She was, however, still kneeling against the window-seat, her elbows
+planted on the great folio, and her head between her hands, reading
+intently.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Little Madam,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;what great book have you
+got there?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<i>&lsquo;As You Like It,&rsquo; </i>said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What! are you promoted to reading Shakspeare?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have not read any but this,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ada
+and I have often looked at the pictures, and I liked the poor wounded
+stag coming down to the water so much, that I read about it, and then
+I went on.&nbsp; Was it wrong, Claude? no one ever told me not.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are welcome to read it,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;but not
+now - it is too dark.&nbsp; Come and sit in the great chair on the other
+side of the fire, and be sociable.&nbsp; And what do you think of &lsquo;<i>As
+You Like It</i>?&rsquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I like it very much,&rsquo; answered Phyllis, &lsquo;only I cannot
+think why <i>Jacks </i>did not go to the poor stag, and try to cure
+it, when he saw its tears running into the water.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+To save the character of <i>Jacks, </i>Claude gravely suggested the
+difficulty of catching the stag, and then asked Phyllis her opinion
+of the heroines.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! it was very funny about Rosalind dressing like a man, and
+then being ready to cry like a girl when she was tired, and then pretending
+to pretend to be herself; and Celia, it was very kind of her to go away
+with Rosalind; but I should have liked her better if she had stayed
+at home, and persuaded her father to let Rosalind stay too.&nbsp; I
+am sure she would if she had been like Ada.&nbsp; Then it is so nice
+about Old Adam and Orlando.&nbsp; Do not you think so, Claude?&nbsp;
+It is just what I am sure Wat Greenwood would do for Redgie, if he was
+to be turned out like Orlando.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is just what Wat Greenwood&rsquo;s ancestor did for Sir Maurice
+Mohun,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Dame Greenwood tells us that story.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Phyl, I think you show very good taste in liking the scene
+between Orlando and Adam.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am glad you like it, too, Claude.&nbsp; But I will tell you
+what I like best,&rsquo; exclaimed the little girl, springing up, &lsquo;I
+do like it, when Orlando killed the lioness and the snake, - and saved
+Oliver; how glad he must have been.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Glad to have done good to his enemy,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;yes,
+indeed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;His enemy! he was his brother, you know.&nbsp; I meant it must
+be so very nice to save anybody - don&rsquo;t you think so, Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Certainly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude, do you know there is nothing I wish so much as to save
+somebody&rsquo;s life.&nbsp; It was very nice to save the dragon-fly;
+and it is very nice to let flies out of spiders&rsquo; webs, only they
+always have their legs and wings torn, and look miserable; and it was
+very nice to put the poor little thrushes back into their nest when
+they tumbled out, and then to see their mother come to feed them; and
+it was very pleasant to help the poor goose that had put its head through
+the pales, and could not get it back.&nbsp; Mrs. Harrington said it
+would have been strangled if I had not helped it.&nbsp; That was very
+nice, but how delightful it would be to save some real human person&rsquo;s
+life.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude did not laugh at the odd medley in her speech, but answered,
+&lsquo;Well, those little things train you in readiness and kindness.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Will they?&rsquo; said Phyllis, pressing on to express what had
+long been her earnest wish.&nbsp; &lsquo;If I could but save some one,
+I should not mind being killed myself - I think not - I hope it is not
+naughty to say so.&nbsp; I believe there is something in the Bible about
+it, about laying down one&rsquo;s life for one&rsquo;s friend.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is, Phyl, and I quite agree with you; it must be a great
+blessing to have saved some one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And little girls have sometimes done it, Claude.&nbsp; I know
+a story of one who saved her little brother from drowning, and another
+waked the people when the house was on fire.&nbsp; And when I was at
+Broomhill, Marianne showed me a story of a young lady who helped to
+save the Prince, that Prince Charlie that Miss Weston sings about.&nbsp;
+I wish the Prince of Wales would get into some misfortune - I should
+like to save him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not quite echo that loyal wish,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, but, Claude, Redgie wishes for a rebellion, like Sir Maurice&rsquo;s,
+for he says all the boys at his school would be one regiment, in green
+velvet coats, and white feathers in their hats.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed! and Redgie to be Field Marshal?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, he is to be Sir Reginald Mohun, a Knight of the Garter, and
+to ask the Queen to give William back the title of Baron of Beechcroft,
+and make papa a Duke.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well done! he is to take good care of the interests of the family.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But it is not that that I should care about,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I should like it better for the feeling in one&rsquo;s own self;
+I think all that fuss would rather spoil it - don&rsquo;t you, Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I do; but Phyllis, if you only wish for that feeling,
+you need not look for dangers or rebellions to gain it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! you mean the feeling that very good people indeed have -
+people like Harry - but that I shall never be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope you mean to try, though.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do try; I wish I was as good as Ada, but I am so naughty and
+so noisy that I do not know what to do.&nbsp; Every day when I say my
+prayers I think about being quiet, and not idling at my lessons, and
+sometimes I do stop in time, and behave better, but sometimes I forget,
+and I do not mind what I am about, and my voice gets loud, and I let
+the things tumble down and make a noise, and so it was yesterday.&rsquo;&nbsp;
+Here she looked much disposed to cry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, we will not have any crying this evening,&rsquo; said
+Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not think you did me much mischief, my head
+ached just as much before.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That was a thing I wanted to ask you about: William says my crying
+loud is all habit, and that I must cure myself of it.&nbsp; How does
+he mean?&nbsp; Ought I to cry every day to practise doing it without
+roaring?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you like to begin,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing; &lsquo;shall
+I beat you or pinch you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! it would make your head bad again,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;but
+I wish you would tell me what he means.&nbsp; When I cry I only think
+about what makes me unhappy.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Try never to cry,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;I assure you it
+is not pleasant to hear you, even when I have no headache.&nbsp; If
+you wish to do anything right, you must learn self-control, and it will
+be a good beginning to check yourself when you are going to cry.&nbsp;
+Do not look melancholy now.&nbsp; Here comes the tea.&nbsp; Let me see
+how you will perform as tea-maker.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish the evening would not go away so fast!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And what are we to do after tea?&nbsp; You are queen of the evening.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If you would but tell me a story, Claude.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+They lingered long over the tea-table, talking and laughing, and when
+they had finished, Phyllis discovered with surprise that it was nearly
+bedtime.&nbsp; The promised story was not omitted, however, and Phyllis,
+sitting on a little footstool at her brother&rsquo;s feet, looked up
+eagerly for it.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Phyl, I will tell you a true history that I heard from
+an officer who had served in the Peninsular War - the war in Spain,
+you know.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, with the French, who killed their king.&nbsp; Lily told
+me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And the Portuguese were helping us.&nbsp; Just after we had taken
+the town of Ciudad Rodrigo, some of the Portuguese soldiers went to
+find lodgings for themselves, and, entering a magazine of gunpowder,
+made a fire on the floor to dress their food.&nbsp; A most dangerous
+thing - do you know why?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The book would be burnt,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What book, you wise child?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The Magazine; I thought a magazine was one of the paper books
+that Maurice is always reading.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; said Claude, laughing, &lsquo;a magazine is a store,
+and as many different things are stored in those books, they are called
+magazines.&nbsp; A powder magazine is a store of barrels of gunpowder.&nbsp;
+Now do you see why it was dangerous to light a fire?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It blows up,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;that was the reason
+why Robinson Crusoe was afraid of the lightning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Right, Phyl, and therefore a candle is never allowed to be carried
+into a powder magazine, and even nailed shoes are never worn there,
+lest they should strike fire.&nbsp; One spark, lighting on a grain of
+gunpowder, scattered on the floor, might communicate with the rest,
+make it all explode, and spread destruction everywhere.&nbsp; Think
+in what fearful peril these reckless men had placed, not only themselves,
+but the whole town, and the army.&nbsp; An English officer chanced to
+discover them, and what do you think he did?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Told all the people to run away.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How could he have told every one, soldiers, inhabitants, and
+all? where could they have gone?&nbsp; No, he raised no alarm, but he
+ordered the Portuguese out of the building, and with the help of an
+English sergeant, he carried out, piece by piece, all the wood which
+they had set on fire.&nbsp; Now, imagine what that must have been.&nbsp;
+An explosion might happen at any moment, yet they had to walk steadily,
+slowly, and with the utmost caution, in and out of this place several
+times, lest one spark might fly back.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then they were saved?&rsquo; cried Phyllis, breathlessly; &lsquo;and
+what became of them afterwards?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They were both killed in battle, the officer, I believe, in Badajoz,
+and the sergeant sometime afterwards.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis gave a deep sigh, and sat silent for some minutes.&nbsp; Next,
+Claude began a droll Irish fairy-tale, which he told with spirit and
+humour, such as some people would have scorned to exert for the amusement
+of a mere child.&nbsp; Phyllis laughed, and was so happy, that when
+suddenly they heard the sound of wheels, she started up, wondering what
+brought the others home so soon, and was still more surprised when Claude
+told her it was past ten.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh dear! what will papa and Emily say to me for being up still?&nbsp;
+But I will stay now, it would not be fair to pretend to be gone to bed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well said, honest Phyl; now for the news from the castle.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, Claude,&rsquo; said his eldest brother, entering, &lsquo;you
+are alive again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I doubt whether your evening could have been pleasanter than
+ours,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Phyl,&rsquo; cried Ada, &lsquo;do you know, Mary Carrington&rsquo;s
+governess thought I was Florence&rsquo;s sister.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You look so bright, Claude,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I think
+you must have taken Cinderella&rsquo;s friend with the pumpkin to enliven
+you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My fairy was certainly sister to a Brownie,&rsquo; said Claude,
+stroking Phyllis&rsquo;s hair.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude,&rsquo; again began Ada, &lsquo;Miss Car - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish Cinderella&rsquo;s fairy may be forthcoming the day of
+the ball,&rsquo; said Lily, disconsolately.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And William is going after all,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed! has the great Captain relented?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes.&nbsp; Is it not good of him?&nbsp; Aunt Rotherwood is so
+much pleased that he consents to go entirely to oblige her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Sensible of his condescension,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;By
+the bye, what makes the Baron look so mischievous?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mischievous!&rsquo; said Emily, looking round with a start, &lsquo;he
+is looking very comical, and so he has been all the evening.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What?&nbsp; You thought mischievous was meant in Hannah&rsquo;s
+sense, when she complains of Master Reginald being very mischie-vi-ous.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Ada now succeeded in saying, &lsquo;The Carringtons&rsquo; governess
+called me Lady Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How could she bring herself to utter so horrid a sound?&rsquo;
+said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ada is more cock-a-hoop than ever now,&rsquo; said Reginald;
+&lsquo;she does not think Miss Weston good enough to speak to.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Claude, she really did, she thought I was Florence&rsquo;s
+sister, and she said I was just like her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish you would hold your tongue, or go to bed,&rsquo; said
+William, &lsquo;I have heard nothing but this nonsense all the way home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+While William was sending off Ada to bed, and Phyllis was departing
+with her, Lily told Claude that the Captain had been most agreeable.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I feared,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;that he would be too grand
+for this party, but he was particularly entertaining; Rotherwood was
+quite eclipsed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rotherwood wants Claude to set him off,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Now, young ladies, reserve the rest of your adventures for the
+morning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Adeline had full satisfaction in recounting the governess&rsquo;s mistake
+to the maids, and in hearing from Esther that it was no wonder, &lsquo;for
+that she looked more like a born lady than Lady Florence herself!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias&rsquo;s fit of petulance about the ball had returned more strongly
+than ever; she partly excused herself to her own mind, by fancying she
+disliked the thought of the lonely evening she was to spend more than
+that of losing the pleasure of the ball.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun would be absent,
+conducting Maurice to a new school, and Claude and Reginald would also
+be gone.<br>
+<br>
+Her temper was affected in various ways; she wondered that William and
+Emily could like to go - she had thought that Miss Weston was wiser.&nbsp;
+Her daily occupations were irksome - she was cross to Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+It made her very angry to be accused by the young brothers of making
+a fuss, and Claude&rsquo;s silence was equally offensive.&nbsp; It was
+upon principle that he said nothing.&nbsp; He knew it was nothing but
+a transient attack of silliness, of which she was herself ashamed; but
+he was sorry to leave her in that condition, and feared Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s
+coming into the neighbourhood was doing her harm, as certainly as it
+was spoiling Ada.&nbsp; The ball day arrived, and it was marked by a
+great burst of fretfulness on the part of poor Lilias, occasioned by
+so small a matter as the being asked by Emily to write a letter to Eleanor.&nbsp;
+Emily was dressing to go to dine at Devereux Castle when she made the
+request.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What have I to say?&nbsp; I never could write a letter in my
+life, at least not to the Duenna - there is no news.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;About the boys going to school,&rsquo; Emily suggested.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;As if she did not know all about them as well as I can tell her.&nbsp;
+She does not care for my news, I see no one to hear gossip from.&nbsp;
+I thought you undertook all the formal correspondence, Emily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you call a letter to your sister formal correspondence!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Everything is formal with her.&nbsp; All I can say is, that you
+and William are going to the ball, and she will say that is very silly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eleanor once went to this Raynham ball; it was her first and
+last,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, not long before they went to Italy; it will only make her
+melancholy to speak of it - I declare I cannot write.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And I have no time,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;and you know how
+vexed she is if she does not get her letter every Saturday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;All for the sake of punctuality, nothing else,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I rather like to disappoint fidgety people - don&rsquo;t you,
+Emily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;only papa does not like that
+she should be disappointed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You might have written, if you had not dawdled away all the morning.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This was true, and it therefore stung Emily, who complained that Lily
+was very unkind.&nbsp; Lily defended herself sharply, and the dispute
+was growing vehement, when William happily cut it short by a summons
+to Emily to make haste.<br>
+<br>
+When they were gone Lily had time for reflection.&nbsp; Good-temper
+was so common a virtue, and generally cost her so little effort, that
+she took no pains to cultivate it, but she now felt she had lost all
+claim to be considered amiable under disappointment.&nbsp; It was too
+late to bear the privation with a good grace.&nbsp; She was heartily
+ashamed of having been so cross about a trifle, and ashamed of being
+discontented at Emily&rsquo;s having a pleasure in which she could not
+share.&nbsp; Would this have been the case a year ago?&nbsp; She was
+afraid to ask herself the question, and without going deep enough into
+the history of her own mind to make her sorrow and shame profitable,
+she tried to satisfy herself with a superficial compensation, by making
+herself particularly agreeable to her three younger sisters, and by
+writing a very long and entertaining letter to Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+She met Emily with a cheerful face the next day, and listened with pleasure
+to her history of the ball; and when Mr. Mohun returned home he saw
+that the cloud had passed away.&nbsp; But, alas!&nbsp; Lilias neglected
+to take the only means of preventing its recurrence.<br>
+<br>
+The next week William departed.&nbsp; Before he went he gave his sisters
+great pleasure by desiring them to write to him, and not to let him
+fall into his ancient state of ignorance respecting the affairs of Beechcroft.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mind,&rsquo; was his farewell speech, &lsquo;I expect you to
+keep me <i>au courant du jour</i>.&nbsp; I will not be in the dark about
+your best friends and neighbours when I come home next July.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XVI - VANITY AND VEXATION<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And still I have to tell the same sad tale<br>
+Of wasted energies, and idle dreams.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Devereux Castle now became the great resort of the Miss Mohuns.&nbsp;
+They were always sure of a welcome there.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood liked
+to patronise them, and Florence was glad of their society.<br>
+<br>
+This was quite according to the wishes of Emily, who now had nothing
+left to desire, but that the style of dress suitable, in her opinion,
+to the granddaughter of the Marquis of Rotherwood, was more in accordance
+with the purse of the daughter of the Esquire of Beechcroft.&nbsp; It
+was no part of Emily&rsquo;s character to care for dress.&nbsp; She
+was at once too indolent and too sensible; she saw the vulgarity of
+finery, and only aimed at simplicity and elegance.&nbsp; During their
+girlhood Emily and Lilias had had no more concern with their clothes
+than with their food; Eleanor had carefully taught them plain needlework,
+and they had assisted in making more than one set of shirts; but they
+had nothing to do with the choice or fashion of their own apparel.&nbsp;
+They were always dressed alike, and in as plain and childish a manner
+as they could be, consistently with their station.&nbsp; On Eleanor&rsquo;s
+marriage a suitable allowance was given to each of them, in order that
+they might provide their own clothes, and until Rachel left them they
+easily kept themselves in very good trim.&nbsp; When Esther came Lily
+cheerfully took the trouble of her own small decorations, considering
+it as her payment for the pleasure of having Esther in the house.&nbsp;
+Emily, however, neglected the useful &lsquo;stitch in time,&rsquo; till
+even &lsquo;nine&rsquo; were unavailing.&nbsp; She soon found herself
+compelled to buy new ready-made articles, and expected Lilias to do
+the same.&nbsp; But Lilias demurred, for she was too wise to think it
+necessary to ruin herself in company with Emily, and thus the two sisters
+were no longer dressed alike.&nbsp; A constant fear tormented Emily
+lest she should disgrace Lady Rotherwood, or be considered by some stranger
+as merely a poor relation of the great people, and not as the daughter
+of the gentleman of the oldest family in the county.&nbsp; She was,
+therefore, anxious to be perfectly fashionable, and not to wear the
+same things too often, and in her disinterested desire to maintain the
+dignity of the family the allowance which she received at Christmas
+melted away in her hands.<br>
+<br>
+Lily, though exempt from this folly, was not in a satisfactory state
+of mind.&nbsp; She was drawn off from her duties by a kind of spell.&nbsp;
+It was not that she liked Florence&rsquo;s society better than her home
+pursuits.<br>
+<br>
+Florence was indeed a very sweet-tempered and engaging creature; but
+her mind was not equal to that of Lilias, and there was none of the
+pleasure of relying upon her, and looking up to her, which Lilias had
+learnt to enjoy in the company of her brother Claude, and of Alethea
+Weston.&nbsp; It was only that Lily&rsquo;s own mind had been turned
+away from her former occupations, and that she did not like to resume
+them.&nbsp; She had often promised herself to return to her really useful
+studies, and her positive duties, as soon as her brothers were gone;
+but day after day passed and nothing was done, though her visits to
+the cottages and her lessons to Phyllis were often neglected.&nbsp;
+Her calls at Devereux Castle took up many afternoons.&nbsp; Florence
+continually lent her amusing books, her aunt took great interest in
+her music, and she spent much time in practising.&nbsp; The mornings
+were cold and dark, and she could not rise early, and thus her time
+slipped away, she knew not how, uselessly and unsatisfactorily.&nbsp;
+The three younger ones were left more to themselves, and to the maids.&nbsp;
+Jane sought for amusement in village gossip, and the little ones, finding
+the nursery more agreeable than the deserted drawing-room, made Esther
+their companion.<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Mohun had, at this time, an unusual quantity of business on his
+hands; he saw that the girls were not going on well, but he had reasons
+for not interfering at present, and he looked forward to Eleanor&rsquo;s
+visit as the conclusion of their trial.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot think,&rsquo; said Marianne Weston one day to her sister,
+&lsquo;why Mr. Mohun comes here so often.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea told her he had some business with their mamma, and she thought
+no more of the matter, till she was one day questioned by Jane.&nbsp;
+She was rather afraid of Jane, who, as she thought, disliked her, and
+wished to turn her into ridicule; so it was with no satisfaction that
+she found herself separated from the others in the course of a walk,
+and submitted to a cross-examination.<br>
+<br>
+Jane asked, in a mysterious manner, who had been at Broomhill that morning.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mr. Mohun,&rsquo; said Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What did he go there for?&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Alethea says he has some business with mamma.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you did not hear what it was?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was not in the room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Are you never there when he comes?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Sometimes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And is Alethea there?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh yes!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;His business must be with her too.&nbsp; Cannot you guess it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Marianne, looking amazed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How can you be so slow?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am not sure that I would guess if I could,&rsquo; said Marianne,
+&lsquo;for I do not think they wish me to know.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! nonsense, it is fine fun to find out secrets,&rsquo; said
+Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;You will know it at last, you may be sure, so there
+can be no harm in making it out beforehand, so as to have the pleasure
+of triumph when the wise people vouchsafe to admit you into their confidence;
+I am sure I know it all.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then please do not tell me, Jane, I ought not to hear it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Little Mrs. Propriety,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you are already
+assuming all the dignity of my Aunt Marianne, and William&rsquo;s Aunt
+Marianne - oh! and of little Henry&rsquo;s Great-aunt Marianne.&nbsp;
+Now,&rsquo; she added, laughing, &lsquo;can you guess the secret?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Marianne stood still in amazement for a moment, and then exclaimed,
+&lsquo;Jane, Jane! you do not mean it, you are only trying to tease
+me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am quite serious,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;You will see
+that I am right.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here they were interrupted, and as soon as she returned from her walk
+Marianne, perplexed and amazed, went to her mother, and told her all
+that Jane had said.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How can she be so silly?&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then it is all nonsense, as I thought,&rsquo; said Marianne,
+joyfully.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should not like Alethea to marry an old man.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mr. Mohun is very unlikely to make himself ridiculous,&rsquo;
+said Mrs. Weston.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do not say anything of it to Alethea;
+it would only make her uncomfortable.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If it had been Captain Mohun, now&nbsp; - &rsquo; Marianne stopped,
+and blushed, finding her speech unanswered.<br>
+<br>
+A few days after, Mr. Mohun overtook Marianne and her mother, as he
+was riding home from Raynham, and dismounting, led his horse, and walked
+on with them.&nbsp; Either not perceiving Marianne, or not caring whether
+she heard him, he said,<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Has Miss Weston received the letter she expected?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;she thinks, as there is no
+answer, the family must be gone abroad, and very probably they have
+taken Miss Aylmer with them; but she has written to another friend to
+ask about them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;From all I hear,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I should prefer
+waiting to hear from her, before we make further inquiries; we shall
+not be ready before midsummer, as I should wish my eldest daughter to
+assist me in making this important decision.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In that case,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;there will be plenty
+of time to communicate with her.&nbsp; I can see some of the friends
+of the family when I go to London, for we must not leave Mr. Weston
+in solitude another spring.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps I shall see you there,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+have some business in London, and I think I shall meet the Hawkesworths
+there in May or June.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a little more conversation Mr. Mohun took his leave, and as soon
+as he had ridden on, Marianne said, &lsquo;Oh! mamma, I could not help
+hearing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My dear,&rsquo; said Mrs. Weston, &lsquo;I know you may be trusted;
+but I should not have told you, as you may find such a secret embarrassing
+when you are with your young friends.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And so they are to have a governess?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes; and we are trying to find Miss Aylmer for them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Aylmer!&nbsp; I am glad of it; how much Phyllis and Ada
+will like her!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, it will be very good for them; I wish I knew the Grants&rsquo;
+direction.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I hope Jane will not question me any more; it will be very
+difficult to manage, now I know the truth.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+But poor Marianne was not to escape.&nbsp; Jane was on the watch to
+find her alone, and as soon as an opportunity offered, she began:-<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, auntie, any discoveries?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, Jane, it is not right to fancy Mr. Mohun can do anything
+so absurd.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is as people may think,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish you would not talk in that way,&rsquo; said Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Marianne,&rsquo; pursued the tormentor, &lsquo;if you can
+explain the mystery I will believe you, otherwise I know what to think.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am certain you are wrong, Jane; but I can tell you no more.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very well, my good aunt, I am satisfied.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane really almost persuaded herself that she was right, as she perceived
+that her father was always promoting intercourse with the Westons, and
+took pleasure in conversing with Alethea.&nbsp; She twisted everything
+into a confirmation of her idea; while the prospect of having Miss Weston
+for a stepmother increased her former dislike; but she kept her suspicions
+to herself for the present, triumphing in the idea that, when the time
+came, she could bring Marianne as a witness of her penetration.<br>
+<br>
+The intercourse between the elder Miss Mohuns and Miss Weston was, however,
+not so frequent as formerly; and Alethea herself could not but remark
+that, while Mr. Mohun seemed to desire to become more intimate, his
+daughters were more backward in making appointments with her.&nbsp;
+This was chiefly remarkable in Emily and Jane.&nbsp; Lilias was the
+same in openness, earnestness, and affection; but there was either a
+languor about her spirits or they were too much excited, and her talk
+was more of novels, and less of poor children than formerly.&nbsp; The
+constant visits to Devereux Castle prevented Emily and Lilias from being
+as often as before at church, and thus they lost many walks and talks
+that they used to enjoy in the way home.&nbsp; Marianne began to grow
+indignant, especially on one occasion, when Emily and Lily went out
+for a drive with Lady Rotherwood, forgetting that they had engaged to
+take a walk with the Westons that afternoon.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is really a great deal too bad,&rsquo; said she to Alethea;
+&lsquo;it is exactly what we have read of in books about grandeur making
+people cast off their old friends.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not be unfair, Marianne,&rsquo; said Alethea.&nbsp; &lsquo;Lady
+Florence has a better right to - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Better right!&rsquo; exclaimed Marianne.&nbsp; &lsquo;What, because
+she is a marquis&rsquo;s daughter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Because she is their cousin.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not believe Lilias really cares for her half as much as
+for you,&rsquo; said Marianne.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is all because they are
+fine people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nay, Marianne, if our cousins were to come into this neighbourhood,
+we should not be as dependent on the Mohuns as we now feel.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope we should not break our engagements with them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps they could not help it.&nbsp; When their aunt came to
+fetch them, knowing how seldom they can have the carriage, it would
+have been scarcely civil to say that they had rather take a walk with
+people they can see any day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Last year Lilias would have let Emily go by herself,&rsquo; said
+Marianne.&nbsp; &lsquo;Alethea, they are all different since that Lady
+Rotherwood came - all except Phyl.&nbsp; Ada is a great deal more conceited
+than she was when she was staying here; she pulls out her curls, and
+looks in the glass much more, and she is always talking about some one
+having taken her for Lady Florence&rsquo;s sister.&nbsp; And, Alethea,
+just fancy, she does not like me to go through a gate before her, because
+she says she has precedence!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea was much amused, but she would not let Marianne condemn the
+whole family for Ada&rsquo;s folly.&nbsp; &lsquo;It will all come right,&rsquo;
+said she, &lsquo;let us be patient and good-humoured, and nothing can
+be really wrong.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Though Alethea made the best of it to her sister, she could not but
+feel hurt, and would have been much more so if her temper had been jealous
+or sentimental.&nbsp; Almost in spite of herself she had bestowed upon
+Lilias no small share of her affection, and she would have been more
+pained by her neglect if she had not partaken of that spirit which &lsquo;thinketh
+no evil, but beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things,
+and endureth all things.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias was not satisfied with either herself, her home, her sisters,
+or her school; she was far from being the fresh, happy creature that
+she had been the year before.&nbsp; She had seen the fallacy of her
+principle of love, but in her self-willed adherence to it she had lost
+the strong sense and habit of duty which had once ruled her; and in
+a vague and restless frame of mind, she merely sought from day to day
+for pleasure and idle occupation.&nbsp; Lent came, but she was not roused,
+she was only more uncomfortable when she saw the Rector, or Alethea,
+or went to church.&nbsp; Alethea&rsquo;s unfailing gentleness she felt
+almost as a rebuke; and Mr. Devereux, though always kind and good-natured,
+had ceased to speak to her of those small village matters in which she
+used to be prime counsellor.<br>
+<br>
+The school became a burthen instead of a delight, and her attendance
+there a fatigue.&nbsp; On going in one Sunday morning, very late, she
+found Alethea teaching her class as well as her own.&nbsp; With a look
+of vexation she inquired, as she took her place, if it was so very late,
+and on the way to church she said again, &lsquo;I thought I was quite
+in time; I do not like to hurry the children - the distant ones have
+not time to come.&nbsp; It was only half-past nine.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Lilias,&rsquo; said Marianne, &lsquo;it was twenty minutes
+to ten, I know, for I had just looked at the clock.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That clock is always too fast,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+The next Sunday was very cold, and Lilias did not feel at all disposed
+to leave the fire when the others prepared to go to the afternoon school.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is it time?&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;I was chilled at church,
+and my feet are still like ice; I will follow you in five minutes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea went, and Lilias lingered by the fire.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston once
+asked her if she knew how late it was; but still she waited, until she
+was startled by the sound of the bell for evening service.&nbsp; As
+she went to church with Mrs. Weston and Emily she met Jane, who told
+her that her class had been unemployed all the afternoon.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I would have taken them,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;but that Robert
+does not like me to teach the great girls, and I do think Alethea might
+have heard them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is very provoking,&rsquo; said Lily, pettishly; &lsquo;I thought
+I might depend - &rsquo;&nbsp; She turned and saw Miss Weston close
+to her.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh, Alethea!&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;I thought
+you would have heard those girls.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I thought you were coming,&rsquo; said Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So I was, but I am sure the bell rang too early.&nbsp; I do wish
+you had taken them, Alethea.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sorry you are vexed,&rsquo; said Alethea, simply.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What makes you think I am vexed?&nbsp; I only thought you liked
+hearing my class.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+They were by this time at the church door, and as they entered Alethea
+blamed herself for feeling grieved, and Lily awoke to a sense of her
+unreasonableness.&nbsp; She longed to tell Alethea how sorry she felt,
+but she had no opportunity, and she resolved to go to Broomhill the
+next day to make her confession.&nbsp; In the night, however, snow began
+to fall, and the morning showed the February scene of thawing snow and
+pouring rain.&nbsp; Going out was impossible, both on that day and the
+next.&nbsp; Wednesday dawned fair and bright; but just after breakfast
+Lily received a little note, with the intelligence that Mr. Weston had
+arrived at Broomhill on Monday evening, and with his wife and daughters
+was to set off that very day to make a visit to some friends on the
+way to London.&nbsp; Had not the weather been so bad, Alethea said she
+should have come to take leave of her New Court friends on Tuesday,
+but she could now only send this note to tell them how sorry she was
+to go without seeing them, and to beg Emily to send back a piece of
+music which she had lent to her.&nbsp; The messenger was Faith Longley,
+who was to accompany them, and who now was going home to take leave
+of her mother, and would call again for the music in a quarter of an
+hour.&nbsp; Lily ran to ask her when they were to go.&nbsp; &lsquo;At
+eleven,&rsquo; was the answer; and Lily telling her she need not call
+again, as she herself would bring the music, went to look for it.&nbsp;
+High and low did she seek, and so did Jane, but it was not to be found
+in any nook, likely or unlikely; and when at last Lily, in despair,
+gave up the attempt to find it, it was already a quarter to eleven.&nbsp;
+Emily sent many apologies and civil messages, and Lily set out at a
+rapid pace to walk to Broomhill by the road, for the thaw had rendered
+the fields impassable.&nbsp; Fast as she walked, she was too late.&nbsp;
+She had the mortification of seeing the carriage turn out at the gates,
+and take the Raynham road; she was not even seen, nor had she a wave
+of the hand, or a smile to comfort her.<br>
+<br>
+Almost crying with vexation, she walked home, and sat down to write
+to Alethea, but, alas! she did not know where to direct a letter.&nbsp;
+Bitterly did she repent of the burst of ill-temper which had stained
+her last meeting with her friend, and she was scarcely comforted even
+by the long and affectionate letter which she received a week after
+their departure.&nbsp; Kindness from her was now forgiveness; never
+did she so strongly feel Florence&rsquo;s inferiority; and she wondered
+at herself for having sought her society so much as to neglect her patient
+and superior friend.&nbsp; She became careless and indifferent to Florence,
+and yet she went on in her former course, following Emily, and fancying
+that nothing at Beechcroft could interest her in the absence of her
+dear Alethea Weston.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XVII: LITTLE AGNES<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;O guide us when our faithless hearts<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;From Thee would start aloof,<br>
+Where patience her sweet skill imparts,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Beneath some cottage roof.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Palm Sunday brought Lily many regrets.&nbsp; It was the day of the school
+prize giving, and she reflected with shame, how much less she knew about
+the children than last year, and how little they owed to her; she feared
+to think of the approach of Easter Day, a dread which she had never
+felt before, and which she knew to be a very bad sign; but her regret
+was not repentance - she talked, and laughed, and tried to feel at ease.&nbsp;
+Agnes Eden&rsquo;s happy face was the most pleasant sight on that day.&nbsp;
+The little girl received a Bible, and as it was given to her her pale
+face was coloured with bright pink, her blue eyes lighted up, her smile
+was radiant with the beauty of innocence, but Lily could not look at
+her without self-reproach.&nbsp; She resolved to make up for her former
+neglect by double kindness, and determined that, at any rate, Passion
+Week should be properly spent - she would not once miss going to church.<br>
+<br>
+But on Monday, when Emily proposed to ride to Devereux Castle, she assented,
+only saying that they would return for evening service.&nbsp; She took
+care to remind her sister when it was time to set out homewards; but
+Emily was, as usual, so long in taking her leave that it was too late
+to think of going to church when they set off.<br>
+<br>
+About two miles from Beechcroft Lily saw a little figure in a gray cloak
+trudging steadily along the road, and as she came nearer she recognised
+Kezia Grey.&nbsp; She stopped and asked the child what brought her so
+far from home.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am going for the doctor, Miss,&rsquo; said the child.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is your mother worse?&rsquo; asked Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mother is pretty well,&rsquo; said Kezia; &lsquo;but it is for
+Agnes Eden, Miss - she is terrible bad.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Poor little Agnes!&rsquo; exclaimed Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Why, she
+was at school yesterday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Miss, but she was taken bad last night.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a moment&rsquo;s consultation between the sisters, Kezia was told
+that she might return home, and the servant who accompanied the Miss
+Mohuns was sent to Raynham for the doctor.&nbsp; The next afternoon
+Lily was just setting out to inquire for Agnes when Lord Rotherwood
+arrived at the New Court with his sister.&nbsp; He wanted to show Florence
+some of his favourite haunts at Beechcroft, and had brought her to join
+his cousins in their walk.&nbsp; A very pleasant expedition they made,
+but it led them so far from home that the church bell was heard pealing
+over the woods far in the distance.&nbsp; Lily could not go to Mrs.
+Eden&rsquo;s cottage, because she did not know the nature of Agnes&rsquo;s
+complaint, and her aunt could not bear that Florence should go into
+any house where there was illness.&nbsp; In the course of the walk,
+however, she met Kezia, on her way to the New Court, to ask for a blister
+for Agnes, the doctor having advised Mrs. Eden to apply to the Miss
+Mohuns for one, as it was wanted quickly, and it was too far to send
+to Raynham.&nbsp; Lily promised to send the blister as soon as possible,
+and desired the little messenger to return home, where she was much
+wanted, to help her mother, who had a baby of less than a week old.<br>
+<br>
+Alas! in the mirth and amusement of the evening Lily entirely forgot
+the blister, until just as she went to bed, when she made one of her
+feeble resolutions to take it, or send it early in the morning.&nbsp;
+She only awoke just in time to be ready for breakfast, went downstairs
+without one thought of the sick child, and never recollected her, until
+at church, just before the Litany, she heard these words: &lsquo;The
+prayers of the congregation are desired for Agnes Eden.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She felt as if she had been shot, and scarcely knew where she was for
+several moments.&nbsp; On coming out of church, she stood almost in
+a dream, while Emily and Jane were talking to the Rector, who told them
+how very ill the child was, and how little hope there was of her recovery.&nbsp;
+He took leave of them, and Lily walked home, scarcely hearing the soothing
+words with which Emily strove to comfort her.&nbsp; The meaning passed
+away mournfully; Lily sat over the fire without speaking, and without
+attempting to do anything.&nbsp; In the afternoon rain came on; but
+Lily, too unhappy not to be restless, put on her bonnet and cloak, and
+went out.<br>
+<br>
+She walked quickly up the hill, and entered the field where the cottage
+stood.&nbsp; There she paused.&nbsp; She did not dare to knock at the
+cottage door; she could not bear to speak to Mrs. Eden; she dreaded
+the sight of Mrs. Grey or Kezia, and she gazed wistfully at the house,
+longing, yet fearing, to know what was passing within it.&nbsp; She
+wandered up and down the field, and at last was trying to make up her
+mind to return home, when she heard footsteps behind her, and turning,
+saw Mr. Devereux advancing along the path at the other end of the field.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you been to inquire for Agnes?&rsquo; said he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I could not.&nbsp; I long to know, but I cannot bear to ask,
+I cannot venture in.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you like to go in with me?&rsquo; said her cousin.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+do not think you will see anything dreadful.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;I would give anything to
+know about her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How you tremble! but you need not be afraid.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He knocked at the door, but there was no answer; he opened it, and going
+to the foot of the stairs, gently called Mrs. Eden, who came down calm
+and quiet as ever, though very pale.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How is she?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No better, sir, thank you, light-headed still.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Mrs. Eden, I am so sorry,&rsquo; sobbed Lily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Oh! can you forgive me?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Pray do not take on so, Miss,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+have always been a very kind friend to her, Miss Lilias.&nbsp; Do not
+take on so, Miss.&nbsp; If it is His will, nothing could have made any
+difference.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily was going to speak again, but Mr. Devereux stopped her, saying,
+&lsquo;We must not keep Mrs. Eden from her, Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, sir, her aunt is with her,&rsquo; said Mrs. Eden,
+&lsquo;and no one is any good there now, she does not know any one.&nbsp;
+Will you walk up and see her, sir? will you walk up, Miss Lilias?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily silently followed her cousin up the narrow stairs to the upper
+room, where, in the white-curtained bed, lay the little child, tossing
+about and moaning, her cheeks flushed with fever, and her blue eyes
+wide open, but unconscious.&nbsp; A woman, whom Lily did not at first
+perceive to be Mrs. Naylor, rose and courtsied on their entrance.&nbsp;
+Agnes&rsquo;s new Bible was beside her, and her mother told them that
+she was not easy if it was out of sight for an instant.<br>
+<br>
+At this moment Agnes called out, &lsquo;Mother,&rsquo; and Mrs. Eden
+bent down to her, but she only repeated, &lsquo;Mother&rsquo; two or
+three times, and then began talking:<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Kissy, I want my bag - where is my thimble - no, not that I can&rsquo;t
+remember - my catechism-book - my godfathers and godmothers in my baptism,
+wherein I was made a member - my Christian name - my name, it is my
+Christian name; no, that is not it -<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&ldquo;It is a name by which I am<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Writ in the hook of life,<br>
+And here below a charm to keep,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Unharmed by sin and strife;<br>
+As often as my name I hear,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;I hear my Saviour&rsquo;s voice.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+Then she began the Creed, but, breaking off, exclaimed, &lsquo;Where
+is my Bible, mother, I shall read it to-morrow - read that pretty verse
+about &ldquo;I am the good Shepherd - the Lord is my Shepherd, therefore
+can I lack nothing - yea, though I walk through the valley of the shadow
+of death, I will fear no evil, for Thou art within me.&rdquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&ldquo;I now am of that little flock<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Which Christ doth call His own,<br>
+For all His sheep He knows by name,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And He of them is known.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let us call upon your good Shepherd, Agnes,&rsquo; said the pastor,
+and the child turned her face towards him as if she understood him.&nbsp;
+Kneeling down, he repeated the Lord&rsquo;s Prayer, and the feeble voice
+followed his.&nbsp; He then read the prayer for a sick child, and left
+the room, for he saw that Lily would be quite overcome if she remained
+there any longer.&nbsp; Mrs. Eden followed them downstairs, and again
+stung poor Lily to the heart by thanks for all her kindness.<br>
+<br>
+They then left the house of mourning; Lily trembled violently, and clung
+to her cousin&rsquo;s arm for support.&nbsp; Her tears streamed fast,
+but her sobs were checked by awe at Mrs. Eden&rsquo;s calmness.&nbsp;
+She felt as if she had been among the angels.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How pale you are!&rsquo; said her cousin, &lsquo;I would not
+have taken you there if I thought it would overset you so much.&nbsp;
+Come into Mrs. Grey&rsquo;s, and sit down and recover a little.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, do not let me see any one,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh!
+that dear child!&nbsp; Robert, let me tell you the worst, for your kindness
+is more than I can bear.&nbsp; I promised Agnes a blister and forgot
+it!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She could say no more for some minutes, but her cousin did not speak.&nbsp;
+Recovering her voice, she added, &lsquo;Only speak to me, Robert.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very sorry for you,&rsquo; answered he, in a kind tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But tell me, what shall I do?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What to do, you ask,&rsquo; said the Rector; &lsquo;I am not
+sure that I know what you mean.&nbsp; If your neglect has added to her
+sufferings, you cannot remove them; and I would not add to your sorrow
+unless you wished me to do so for your good.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not see how I could be more unhappy than I am now,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think if you wish to turn your grief to good account you must
+go a little deeper than this omission.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You mean that it is a result of general carelessness,&rsquo;
+said Lily; &lsquo;I know I have been in an odd idle way for some time;
+I have often resolved, but I seem to have no power over myself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;May I ask you one question, Lily?&nbsp; How have you been spending
+this Lent?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Robert, you are right,&rsquo; cried Lily; &lsquo;you may well
+ask.&nbsp; I know I have not gone to church properly, but how could
+you guess the terrible way in which I have been indulging myself, and
+excusing myself every unpleasant duty that came in my way?&nbsp; That
+was the very reason of this dreadful neglect; well do I deserve to be
+miserable at Easter, the proper time for joy.&nbsp; Oh! how different
+it will be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It will be, I hope, an Easter marked by repentance and amendment,&rsquo;
+said the Rector.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Robert, do not begin to be kind to me yet, you do not know
+how very bad I have been,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;it all began from
+just after Eleanor&rsquo;s wedding.&nbsp; A mad notion came into my
+head and laid hold of me.&nbsp; I fancied Eleanor stern, and cold, and
+unlovable; I was ingratitude itself.&nbsp; I made a foolish theory,
+that regard for duty makes people cold and stern, and that feeling,
+which I confused with Christian love, was all that was worth having,
+and the more Claude tried to cure me, the more obstinate I grew; I drew
+Emily over to my side, and we set our follies above everything.&nbsp;
+Justified ourselves for idling, neglecting the children, indulging ourselves,
+calling it love, and so it was, self-love.&nbsp; So my temper has been
+spoiling, and my mind getting worse and worse, ever since we lost Eleanor.&nbsp;
+At last different things showed me the fallacy of my principle, but
+then I do believe I was beyond my own management.&nbsp; I felt wrong,
+and could not mend, and went on recklessly.&nbsp; You know but too well
+what mischief I have done in the village, but you can never know what
+harm I have done at home.&nbsp; I have seen more and more that I was
+going on badly, but a sleep, a spell was upon me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps the pain you now feel may be the means of breaking the
+spell.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But is it not enough to drive me mad to think that improvement
+in me should be bought at such a price - the widow&rsquo;s only child?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You forget that the loss is a blessing to her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Still I may pray that my punishment may not be through them,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Surely,&rsquo; was the answer, &lsquo;it is grievous to see that
+dear child cut off; and her patient mother left desolate - yet how much
+more grievous it would be to see that spotless innocence defiled.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If it was to fall on any one,&rsquo; said Lilias, &lsquo;I should
+be thankful that it is on one so fit to die.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The church bell began to ring, and they quickened their steps in silence.&nbsp;
+Presently Lily said, &lsquo;Tell me of something to do, Robert, something
+that may be a pledge that my sorrow is not a passing shower, something
+unnecessary, but disagreeable, which may keep me in remembrance that
+my Lent was not one of self-denial.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You must be able to find more opportunities of self-denial than
+I can devise,&rsquo; said her cousin.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of course,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;but some one thing, some
+punishment.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will answer you to-morrow,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;One thing more,&rsquo; said Lily, looking down; &lsquo;after
+this great fall, ought I to come to next Sunday&rsquo;s feast?&nbsp;
+I would turn away if you thought fit.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily, you can best judge,&rsquo; said the Rector, kindly.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I should think that you were now in a humble, contrite frame,
+and therefore better prepared than when self-confident.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How many times! how shall I think of them! but I will,&rsquo;
+said Lily; &lsquo;and Robert, will you think of me when you say the
+Absolution now and next Sunday at the altar?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+They were by this time at the church-porch.&nbsp; As Mr. Devereux uncovered
+his head, he turned to Lilias, and said in a low tone, &lsquo;God bless
+you, Lilias, and grant you true repentance and pardon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Early the next morning the toll of the passing-bell informed Lily that
+the little lamb had been gathered into the heavenly fold.<br>
+<br>
+When she took her place in church she found in her Prayer-book a slip
+of paper in the handwriting of her cousin.&nbsp; It was thus: &lsquo;You
+had better find out in which duty you have most failed, and let the
+fulfilment of that be your proof of self-denial.&nbsp; R. D.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Afterwards Lily learnt that Agnes had been sensible for a short time
+before her peaceful death.&nbsp; She had spoken much of her baptism,
+had begged to be buried next to a little sister of Kezia&rsquo;s, and
+asked her mother to give her new Bible to Kezia.<br>
+<br>
+It was not till Sunday that Lilias felt as if she could ever be comforted.&nbsp;
+Her heart was indeed ready to break as she walked at the head of the
+school children behind the white-covered coffin, and she felt as if
+she did not deserve to dwell upon the child&rsquo;s present happiness;
+but afterwards she was relieved by joining in prayer for the pardon
+of our sins and negligences, and she felt as if she was forgiven, at
+least by man, when she joined with Mrs. Eden in the appointed feast
+of Easter Day.<br>
+<br>
+Mrs. Naylor was at church on that and several following Sundays; but
+though her husband now showed every kindness to his sister, he still
+obstinately refused to be reconciled to Mr. Devereux.<br>
+<br>
+For many weeks poor little Kezia looked very unhappy.&nbsp; Her blithe
+smiles were gone, her eyes filled with tears whenever she was reminded
+of her friend, she walked to school alone, she did not join the sports
+of the other children, but she kept close to the side of Mrs. Eden,
+and seemed to have no pleasure but with her, or in nursing her little
+sister, who, two Sundays after the funeral, was christened by the name
+of Agnes.<br>
+<br>
+It was agreed by Mr. Mohun and Lilias that the grave of the little girl
+should be marked by a stone cross, thus inscribed<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;AGNES EDEN,<br>
+April 8th, 1846,<br>
+Aged 7 years.<br>
+&ldquo;He shall gather the lambs in His arms.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XVIII: DOUBLE, DOUBLE TOIL AND TROUBLE<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Truly the tender mercies of the weak,<br>
+As of the wicked, are but cruel.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And how did Lilias show that she had been truly benefited by her sorrows?&nbsp;
+Did she fall back into her habits of self-indulgence, or did she run
+into ill-directed activity, selfish as her indolence, because only gratifying
+the passion of the moment?<br>
+<br>
+Those who lived with her saw but little change; kind-hearted and generous
+she had ever been, and many had been her good impulses, so that while
+she daily became more steady in well-doing, and exerting herself on
+principle, no one remarked it, and no one entered into the struggles
+which it cost her to tame her impetuosity, or force herself to do what
+was disagreeable to herself, and might offend Emily.<br>
+<br>
+However, Emily could forgive a great deal when she found that Lily was
+ready to take any part of the business of the household and schoolroom,
+which she chose to impose upon her, without the least objection, yet
+to leave her to assume as much of the credit of managing as she chose
+- to have no will or way of her own, and to help her to keep her wardrobe
+in order.<br>
+<br>
+The schoolroom was just now more of a labour than had ever been the
+case, at least to one who, like Lilias, if she did a thing at all, would
+not be satisfied with half doing it.&nbsp; Phyllis was not altered,
+except that she cried less, and had in a great measure cured herself
+of dawdling habits and tricks, by her honest efforts to obey well-remembered
+orders of Eleanor&rsquo;s; but still her slowness and dulness were trying
+to her teachers, and Lily had often to reproach herself for being angry
+with her &lsquo;when she was doing her best.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+But Adeline was Lily&rsquo;s principal trouble; there was a change in
+her, for which her sister could not account.&nbsp; Last year, when Eleanor
+left them, Ada was a sweet-tempered, affectionate child, docile, gentle,
+and, excepting a little occasional affectation and carelessness, very
+free from faults; but now her attention could hardly be commanded for
+five minutes together; she had lost the habit of ready and implicit
+obedience, was petulant when reproved, and was far more eager to attract
+notice from strangers - more conceited, and, therefore, more affected,
+and, worse than all, Lily sometimes thought she perceived a little slyness,
+though she was never able to prove any one instance completely to herself,
+much less to bring one before her father.&nbsp; Thus, if Ada had done
+any mischief, she would indeed confess it on being examined; but when
+asked why she had not told of it directly, would say she had forgotten;
+she would avail herself of Phyllis&rsquo;s assistance in her lessons
+without acknowledging it, and Lilias found it was by no means safe to
+leave the Key to the French Exercises alone in the room with her.<br>
+<br>
+Emily&rsquo;s mismanagement had fostered Ada&rsquo;s carelessness and
+inattention.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s injudicious caresses helped
+to make her more affected; other faults had grown up for want of sufficient
+control, but this last was principally Esther&rsquo;s work.&nbsp; Esther
+had done well at school; she liked learning, was stimulated by notice,
+was really attached to Lilias, and tried to deserve her goodwill; but
+her training at school and at home were so different, that her conduct
+was, even at the best, far too much of eye-service, and she had very
+little idea of real truth and sincerity.<br>
+<br>
+On first coming to the New Court she flattered the children, because
+she did not know how to talk to them otherwise, and afterwards, because
+she found that Miss Ada&rsquo;s affections were to be gained by praise.&nbsp;
+Then, in her ignorant good-nature, she had no scruples about concealing
+mischief which the children had done, or procuring for Ada little forbidden
+indulgences on her promise of secrecy, a promise which Phyllis would
+not give, thus putting a stop to all those in which she would have participated.&nbsp;
+It was no wonder that Ada, sometimes helping Esther to deceive, sometimes
+deceived by her, should have learnt the same kind of cunning, and ceased
+to think it a matter of course to be true and just in all her dealings.<br>
+<br>
+But how was it that Phyllis remained the same &lsquo;honest Phyl&rsquo;
+that she had ever been, not one word savouring of aught but strict truth
+having ever crossed her lips, her thoughts and deeds full of guileless
+simplicity?&nbsp; She met with the same temptations, the same neglect,
+the same bad example, as her sister; why had they no effect upon her?&nbsp;
+In the first place, flattery could not touch her, it was like water
+on a duck&rsquo;s back, she did not know that it was flattery, but so
+thoroughly humble was her mind that no words of Esther&rsquo;s would
+make her believe herself beautiful, agreeable, or clever.&nbsp; Yet
+she never found out that Esther over-praised her sister; she admired
+Ada so much that she never suspected that any commendation of her was
+more than she deserved.&nbsp; Again, Phyllis never thought of making
+herself appear to advantage, and her humility saved her from the habit
+of concealing small faults, for which she expected no punishment; and,
+when seriously to blame, punishment seemed so natural a consequence,
+that she never thought of avoiding it, otherwise than by expressing
+sorrow for her fault.&nbsp; She was uninfected by Esther&rsquo;s deceit,
+though she never suspected any want of truth; her singleness of mind
+was a shield from all evil; she knew she was no favourite in the nursery,
+but she never expected to be liked as much as Ada, her pride and glory.&nbsp;
+In the meantime Emily went on contriving opportunities and excuses for
+spending her time at Devereux Castle, letting everything fall into Lily&rsquo;s
+hands, everything that she had so eagerly undertaken little more than
+a year ago.&nbsp; And now all was confusion; the excellent order in
+which Eleanor had left the household affairs was quite destroyed.&nbsp;
+Attention to the storeroom was one of the ways in which Lilias thought
+that she could best follow the advice of Mr. Devereux, since Eleanor
+had always taught that great exactness in this point was most necessary.&nbsp;
+Great disorder now, however, prevailed there, and she found that her
+only chance of rectifying it was to measure everything she found there,
+and to beg Emily to allow her to keep the key; for, when several persons
+went to the storeroom, no one ever knew what was given out, and she
+was sure that the sweet things diminished much faster than they ought
+to do; but her sister treated the proposal as an attempt to deprive
+her of her dignity, and she was silenced.<br>
+<br>
+She was up almost with the light, to despatch whatever household affairs
+could be settled without Emily, before the time came for the children&rsquo;s
+lessons; many hours were spent on these, while she was continually harassed
+by Phyllis&rsquo;s dulness, Ada&rsquo;s inattention, and the interruption
+of work to do for Emily, and often was she baffled by interference from
+Jane or Emily.&nbsp; She was conscious of her unfitness to teach the
+children, and often saw that her impatience, ignorance, and inefficiency,
+were doing mischief; but much as this pained her, she could not speak
+to her father without compromising her sister, and to argue with Emily
+herself was quite in vain.&nbsp; Emily had taken up the principle of
+love, and defended herself with it on every occasion, so that poor Lily
+was continually punished by having her past follies quoted against herself.<br>
+<br>
+Each day Emily grew more selfish and indolent; now that Lily was willing
+to supply all that she neglected, and to do all that she asked, she
+proved how tyrannical the weak can be.<br>
+<br>
+The whole of her quarter&rsquo;s allowance was spent in dress, and Lily
+soon found that the only chance of keeping her out of debt was to spend
+her own time and labour in her behalf; and what an exertion of patience
+and kindness this required can hardly be imagined.&nbsp; Emily did indeed
+reward her skill with affectionate thanks and kind praises, but she
+interfered with her sleep and exercise, by her want of consideration,
+and hardened herself more and more in her apathetic selfishness.<br>
+<br>
+Some weeks after Easter Lilias was arranging some books on a shelf in
+the schoolroom, when she met with a crumpled piece of music-paper, squeezed
+in behind the books.&nbsp; It proved to be Miss Weston&rsquo;s lost
+song, creased, torn, dust-stained, and spoiled; she carried it to Emily,
+who decided that nothing could be done but to copy it for Alethea, and
+apologise for the disaster.&nbsp; Framing apologies was more in Emily&rsquo;s
+way than copying music; and the former task, therefore, devolved upon
+Lily, and occupied her all one afternoon, when she ought to have been
+seeking a cure for the headache in the fresh air.&nbsp; It was no cure
+to find the name of Emma Weston in the corner, and to perceive how great
+and irreparable the loss of the paper was to her friend.&nbsp; The thought
+of all her wrongs towards Alethea, caused more than one large tear to
+fall, to blot the heads of her crotchets and quavers, and thus give
+her all her work to do over again.<br>
+<br>
+The letter that she wrote was so melancholy and repentant, that it gave
+great pain to her kind friend, who thought illness alone could account
+for the dejection apparent in the general tone of all her expressions.&nbsp;
+In answer, she sent a very affectionate consoling letter, begging Lily
+to think no more of the matter; and though she had too much regard for
+truth to say that she had not been grieved by the loss of Emma&rsquo;s
+writing, she added that Lily&rsquo;s distress gave her far more pain,
+and that her copy would have great value in her eyes.<br>
+<br>
+The beginning of June now arrived, and brought with it the time for
+the return of Claude and Lord Rotherwood.<br>
+<br>
+The Marquis&rsquo;s carriage met him at Raynham, and he set down Claude
+at New Court, on his way to Hetherington, just coming in to exchange
+a hurried greeting with the young ladies.<br>
+<br>
+Their attention was principally taken up by their brother.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude, how well you look!&nbsp; How fat you are!&rsquo; was
+their exclamation.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is not he?&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;I am quite
+proud of him.&nbsp; Not one headache since he went.&nbsp; He will have
+no excuse for not dancing the polka.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not return the compliment to you, Lily,&rsquo; said Claude,
+looking anxiously at his sister.&nbsp; &lsquo;What is the matter with
+you?&nbsp; Have you been ill?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, no! not at all!&rsquo; said Lily, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure there is enough to make any one ill,&rsquo; said Emily,
+in her deplorable tone; &lsquo;I thought this poor parish had had its
+share of illness, with the scarlet fever, and now it has turned to a
+horrible typhus fever.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Where?&nbsp; Who?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! the Naylors, and the Rays, and the Walls.&nbsp; John Ray
+died this morning, and they do not think that Tom Naylor will live.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; interrupted Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;I shall not
+stop to hear any more of this chapter of accidents.&nbsp; I am off,
+but mind, remember the 30th, and do not any of you frighten yourselves
+into the fever.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He went, and Lily now spoke.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is one thing in all
+this, Claude, that is matter of joy, Tom Naylor has sent for Robert.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then, Lily, I do most heartily congratulate you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope things may go better,&rsquo; said Lily, with tears in
+her eyes.&nbsp; &lsquo;The poor baby is with its grandmother.&nbsp;
+Mrs. Naylor is ill too, and every one is so afraid of the fever that
+nobody goes near them but Robert, and Mrs. Eden, and old Dame Martin.&nbsp;
+Robert says Naylor is in a satisfactory frame - determined on having
+the baby christened - but, oh! I am afraid the christening is to be
+bought by something terrible.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think those fevers are often very infectious,&rsquo;
+said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So papa says,&rsquo; replied Emily; &lsquo;but Robert looks very
+ill.&nbsp; He is wearing himself out with sitting up.&nbsp; Making himself
+nurse as well as everything else.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This was very distressing, but still Claude scarcely thought it accounted
+for the change that had taken place in Lilias.&nbsp; Her cheek was pale,
+her eye heavy, her voice had lost its merry tone; Claude knew that she
+had had much to grieve her, but he was as yet far from suspecting how
+she was overworked and harassed.&nbsp; He spoke of Eleanor&rsquo;s return,
+and she did not brighten; she smiled sadly at his attempts to cheer
+her, and he became more and more anxious about her.&nbsp; He was not
+long in discovering what was the matter.<br>
+<br>
+The second day after his return Robert told them at the churchyard gate
+that Tom Naylor was beginning to mend, and this seemed to be a great
+comfort to Lily, who walked home with a blither step than usual.&nbsp;
+Claude betook himself to the study, and saw no more of his sisters till
+two o&rsquo;clock, when Lily appeared, with the languid, dejected look
+which she had lately worn, and seemed to find it quite an effort to
+keep the tears out of her eyes.&nbsp; Ada and Phyllis were in very high
+spirits, because they were going to Raynham with Emily and Jane, and
+at every speech of Ada&rsquo;s Lily looked more grieved.&nbsp; After
+the Raynham party were gone Claude began to look for Lily.&nbsp; He
+found her in her room, an evening dress spread on the bed, a roll of
+ribbon in one hand, and with the other supporting her forehead, while
+tears were slowly rolling down her cheeks.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily, my dear, what is the matter?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! nothing, nothing, Claude,&rsquo; said she, quickly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nothing! no, that is not true.&nbsp; Tell me, Lily.&nbsp; You
+have been disconsolate ever since I came home, and I will not let it
+go on so.&nbsp; No answer?&nbsp; Then am I to suppose that these new
+pearlins are the cause of her sorrow?&nbsp; Come, Lily, be like yourself,
+and speak.&nbsp; More tears!&nbsp; Here, drink this water, be yourself
+again, or I shall be angry and vexed.&nbsp; Now then, that is right:
+make an effort, and tell me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is nothing to tell,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;only you are
+very kind - I do not know what is the matter with me - only I have been
+very foolish of late - and everything makes me cry.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My poor child, I knew you had not been well.&nbsp; They do not
+know how to take care of you, Lily, and I shall take you in hand.&nbsp;
+I am going to order the horses, and we will have a gallop over the Downs,
+and put a little colour into your cheeks.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, thank you, Claude, I cannot come, indeed I cannot, I
+have this work, which must be done to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;At work at your finery instead of coming out!&nbsp; You must
+be altered, indeed, Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is not for myself,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but I promised
+Emily she should have it ready to wear to-morrow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily, oh?&nbsp; So she is making a slave of you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, it was a voluntary promise.&nbsp; She does not care about
+it, only she would be disappointed, and I have promised.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hate promises!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;Well, what
+must be, must be, so I will resign myself to this promise of yours,
+only do not make such another.&nbsp; Well, but that was not all; you
+were not crying about that fine green thing, were you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, no!&rsquo; said Lily, smiling, as now she could smile again.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What then?&nbsp; I will know, Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was only vexed at something about the children.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then what was it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was only that Ada was idle at her lessons; I told her to learn
+a verb as a punishment, she went to Emily, and, somehow or other, Emily
+did not find out the exact facts, excused her, and took her to Raynham.&nbsp;
+I was vexed, because I am sure it does Ada harm, and Emily did not understand
+what I said afterwards; I am sure she thought me unjust.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How came she not to be present?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily does not often sit in the schoolroom in the morning, since
+she has been about that large drawing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So you are governess as well as ladies&rsquo;-maid, are you,
+Lily?&nbsp; What else?&nbsp; Housekeeper, I suppose, as I see you have
+all the weekly bills on your desk.&nbsp; Why, Lily, this is perfectly
+philanthropic of you.&nbsp; You are exemplifying the rule of love in
+a majestic manner.&nbsp; Crying again!&nbsp; Water lily once more?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily looked up, and smiled; &lsquo;Claude, how can you talk of that
+old, silly, nay, wicked nonsense of my principle.&nbsp; I was wise above
+what was written, and I have my punishment in the wreck which my &ldquo;frenzy
+of spirit and folly of tongue&rdquo; have wrought.&nbsp; The unchristened
+child, Agnes&rsquo;s death, the confusion of this house, all are owing
+to my hateful principle.&nbsp; I see the folly of it now, but Emily
+has taken it up, and acts upon it in everything.&nbsp; I do struggle
+against it a little; but I cannot blame any one, I can do no good, it
+is all owing to me.&nbsp; We have betrayed papa&rsquo;s confidence;
+if he does not see it now it will all come upon him when Eleanor comes
+home, and what is to become of us?&nbsp; How it will grieve him to see
+that we cannot be trusted!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Poor Lily!&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is a bad prospect,
+but I think you see the worst side of it.&nbsp; You are not well, and,
+therefore, doleful.&nbsp; This, Lily, I can tell you, that the Baron
+always considered Emily&rsquo;s government as a kind of experiment,
+and so perhaps he will not be so grievously disappointed as you expect.&nbsp;
+Besides, I have a strong suspicion that Emily&rsquo;s own nature has
+quite as much to do with her present conduct as your principle, which,
+after all, did not live very long.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Just long enough to unsettle me, and make it more difficult for
+me to get any way right,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! dear, what
+would I give to force backward the wheels of time!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But as you cannot, you had better try to brighten up your energies.&nbsp;
+Come, you know I cannot tell you not to look back, but I can tell you
+not to look forward.&nbsp; Nay, I do tell you literally, to look forward,
+out of the window, instead of back into this hot room.&nbsp; Do not
+you think the plane-tree there looks very inviting?&nbsp; Suppose we
+transport Emily&rsquo;s drapery there, and I want to refresh my memory
+with Spenser; I do not think I have touched him since plane-tree time
+last year.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I believe Spenser and the plane-tree are inseparably woven together
+in your mind,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, ever since the time when I first met with the book.&nbsp;
+I remember well roving over the bookcase, and meeting with it, and taking
+it out there, for fear Eleanor should see me and tell mama.&nbsp; Phyl,
+with <i>As You Like It, </i>put me much in mind of myself with that.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude talked in this manner, while Lily, listening with a smile, prepared
+her work.&nbsp; He read, and she listened.&nbsp; It was such a treat
+as she had not enjoyed for a long time, for she had begun to think that
+all her pleasant reading days were past.&nbsp; Her work prospered, and
+her face was bright when her sisters came home.<br>
+<br>
+But, alas!&nbsp; Emily was not pleased with her performance; she said
+that she intended something quite different, and by manner, rather than
+by words, indicated that she should not be satisfied unless Lily completely
+altered it.&nbsp; It was to be worn at the castle the next evening,
+and Lily knew she should have no time for it in the course of the day.&nbsp;
+Accordingly, at half-past twelve, as Claude was going up to bed, he
+saw a light under his sister&rsquo;s door, and knocked to ask the cause.&nbsp;
+Lily was still at work upon the trimming, and very angry he was, particularly
+when she begged him to take care not to disturb Emily.&nbsp; At last,
+by threatening to awake her, for the express purpose of giving her a
+scolding, he made Lily promise to go to bed immediately, a promise which
+she, poor weary creature, was very glad to make.<br>
+<br>
+Claude now resolved to tell his father the state of things, for he well
+knew that though it was easy to obtain a general promise from Emily,
+it was likely to be of little effect in preventing her from spurring
+her willing horse to death.<br>
+<br>
+The next morning he rose in time to join his father in the survey which
+he usually took of his fields before breakfast, and immediately beginning
+on the subject on which he was anxious, he gave a full account of his
+sister&rsquo;s proceedings.&nbsp; &lsquo;In short,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;Emily
+and Ada torment poor Lily every hour of her life; she bears it all as
+a sort of penance, and how it is to end I cannot tell.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Unless,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, smiling, &lsquo;as Rotherwood
+would say, Jupiter will interfere.&nbsp; Well, Jupiter has begun to
+take measures, and has asked Mrs. Weston to look out for a governess.&nbsp;
+Eh!&nbsp; Claude?&rsquo; he continued, after a pause, &lsquo;you set
+up your eyebrows, do you?&nbsp; You think it will be a bore.&nbsp; Very
+likely, but there is nothing else to be done.&nbsp; Jane is under no
+control, Phyllis running wild, Ada worse managed than any child of my
+acquaintance - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And poor Lily wearing herself to a shadow, in vain attempts to
+mend matters,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If Lily was the eldest, things would be very different,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Or even if she had been as wise last year as she is now,&rsquo;
+said Claude, &lsquo;she would have kept Emily in order then, but now
+it is too late.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;This year is, on many accounts, much to be regretted,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I think it has brought out Lily&rsquo;s character.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And a very fine character it is,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very.&nbsp; She has been, and is, more childish than Eleanor
+ever was, but she is her superior in most points.&nbsp; She has been
+your pupil, Claude, and she does you credit.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thereby hangs a tale which does me no credit,&rsquo; muttered
+Claude, as he remembered how foolishly he had roused her spirit of contradiction,
+besides the original mischief of naming Eleanor the duenna; &lsquo;but
+we will not enter into that now.&nbsp; I see this governess is their
+best chance.&nbsp; Have you heard of one?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of several; but the only one who seems likely to suit us is out
+of reach for the present, and I do not regret it, for I shall not decide
+till Eleanor comes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily will not be much pleased,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+has long been her great dread that Aunt Rotherwood should recommend
+one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ay, Emily&rsquo;s objections and your aunt&rsquo;s recommendations
+are what I would gladly avoid,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But Lily!&rsquo; said Claude, returning to the subject on which
+he was most anxious.&nbsp; &lsquo;She is already what Ada calls a monotony,
+and there will be nothing left of her by the time Eleanor comes, if
+matters go on in their present fashion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have a plan for her.&nbsp; A little change will set her to
+rights, and we will take her to London when we go next week to meet
+Eleanor.&nbsp; She deserves a little extra pleasure; you must take her
+under your protection, and lionise her well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Trust me for that,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is the
+best news I have heard for a long time.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I am glad that one of my remedies meets with your approbation,&rsquo;
+said his father, smiling.&nbsp; &lsquo;For the other, you are much inclined
+to pronounce the cure as bad as the disease.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not for Lily,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I think I can promise you
+that a remedy will be found for all the other grievances by Michaelmas.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude looked surprised, but as Mr. Mohun explained no further, only
+observing upon the potatoes, through which they were walking, he only
+said, &lsquo;Then it is next week that you go to London.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There is much to do, both for Rotherwood and for Eleanor; I shall
+go as soon as I can, but I do not think it will be while this fever
+is so prevalent.&nbsp; I had rather not be from home - I do not like
+Robert&rsquo;s looks.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XIX: THE RECTOR&rsquo;S ILLNESS<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thou drooping sick man, bless the guide<br>
+That checked, or turned thy headstrong youth.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The thought of her brother&rsquo;s kindness, and the effect of his consolation,
+made Lilias awake that morning in more cheerful spirits; but it was
+not long before grief and anxiety again took possession of her.<br>
+<br>
+The first sound that she heard on opening the schoolroom window was
+the tolling of the church bell, giving notice of the death of another
+of those to whom she felt bound by the ties of neighbourhood.<br>
+<br>
+At church she saw that Mr. Devereux was looking more ill than he yet
+had done, and it was plainly with very great exertion that he succeeded
+in finishing the service.&nbsp; The Mohun party waited, as usual, to
+speak to him afterwards, for since his attendance upon Naylor had begun
+he had not thought it safe to come to the New Court as usual, lest he
+should bring the infection to them.&nbsp; He was very pale, and walked
+wearily, but he spoke cheerfully, as he told them that Naylor was now
+quite out of danger.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then I hope you did not stay there all last night,&rsquo; said
+Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, I did not, I was so tired when I came back from poor John
+Ray&rsquo;s funeral, that I thought I would take a holiday, and sleep
+at home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am afraid you have not profited by your night&rsquo;s rest,&rsquo;
+said Emily, &lsquo;you look as if you had a horrible headache.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;I prescribe for you that you
+go home and lie down.&nbsp; I am going to Raynham, and I will tell your
+friend there that you want help for the evening service.&nbsp; Do not
+think of moving again to-day.&nbsp; I shall send Claude home with you
+to see that you obey my prescription.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude went home with his cousin, and his sisters saw him no more till
+late in the day, when he came to tell them that Mr. Mohun had brought
+back Dr. Leslie from Raynham with him, that Dr. Leslie had seen Mr.
+Devereux, and had pronounced that he had certainly caught the fever.<br>
+<br>
+Lily had made up her mind to this for some time, but still it seemed
+almost as great a blow as if it had come without any preparation.&nbsp;
+The next day was the first Sunday that Mr. Devereux had not read the
+service since he had been Rector of Beechcroft.&nbsp; The villagers
+looked sadly at the stranger who appeared in his place, and many tears
+were shed when the prayers of the congregation were desired for Robert
+Devereux, and Thomas and Martha Naylor.&nbsp; It was announced that
+the daily service would be discontinued for the present, and Lily felt
+as if all the blessings which she had misused were to be taken from
+her.<br>
+<br>
+For some time Mr. Devereux continued very ill, and Dr. Leslie gave little
+hope of his improvement.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun and Claude were his constant
+attendants - an additional cause of anxiety to the Miss Mohuns.&nbsp;
+Emily was listless and melancholy, talking in a maundering, dismal way,
+not calculated to brace her spirits or those of her sisters.&nbsp; Jane
+was not without serious thoughts, but whether they would benefit her
+depended on herself; for, as we have seen by the events of the autumn,
+sorrow and suffering do not necessarily produce good effects, though
+some effects they always produce.<br>
+<br>
+Thus it was with Lilias.&nbsp; Grief and anxiety aided her in subduing
+her will and learning resignation.&nbsp; She did not neglect her daily
+duties, but was more exact in their fulfilment; and low as her spirits
+had been before, she now had an inward spring which enabled her to be
+the support of the rest.&nbsp; She was useful to her father, always
+ready to talk to Claude, or walk with him in the intervals when he was
+sent out of the sickroom to rest and breathe the fresh air.&nbsp; She
+was cheerful and patient with Emily, and devoid of petulance when annoyed
+by the spirits of the younger ones rising higher than accorded with
+the sad and anxious hearts of their elders.&nbsp; Her most painful feeling
+was, that it was possible that she might be punished through her cousin,
+as she had already been through Agnes; that her follies might have brought
+this distress upon every one, and that this was the price at which the
+child&rsquo;s baptism was to be bought.&nbsp; Yet Lily would not have
+changed her present thoughts for any of her varying frames of mind since
+that fatal Whitsuntide.&nbsp; Better feelings were springing up within
+her than she had then known; the church service and Sunday were infinitely
+more to her, and she was beginning to obtain peace of mind independent
+of external things.<br>
+<br>
+She could not help rejoicing to see how many evidences of affection
+to the Rector were called forth by this illness; presents of fruit poured
+in from all quarters, from Lord Rotherwood&rsquo;s choice hothouse grapes,
+to poor little Kezia Grey&rsquo;s wood-strawberries; inquiries were
+continual, and the stillness of the village was wonderful.&nbsp; There
+was no cricket on the hill, no talking in the street, no hallooing in
+the hay-field, and no burst of noise when the children were let out
+of school.&nbsp; Many of the people were themselves in grief for the
+loss of their own relations; and when on Sunday the Miss Mohuns saw
+how many were dressed in black, they thought with a pang how soon they
+themselves might be mourning for one whose influence they had crippled,
+and whose plans they had thwarted during the three short years of his
+ministry.<br>
+<br>
+During this time it was hard to say whether Lord Rotherwood was more
+of a comfort or a torment.&nbsp; He was attached to his cousin with
+all the ardour of his affectionate disposition, and not one day passed
+without his appearing at Beechcroft.&nbsp; At first it was always in
+the parlour at the parsonage that he took up his station, and waited
+till he could find some means of getting at Claude or his uncle, to
+hear the last report from them, and if possible to make Claude come
+out for a walk or ride with him.&nbsp; And once Mr. Mohun caught him
+standing just outside Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s door, waiting for an opportunity
+to make an entrance.&nbsp; He could not, or would not see why Mr. Mohun
+should allow Claude to run the risk of infection rather than himself,
+and thus he kept his mother in continual anxiety, and even his uncle
+could not feel by any means certain that he would not do something imprudent.&nbsp;
+At last a promise was extracted from him that he would not again enter
+the parsonage, but he would not gratify Lady Rotherwood so far as to
+abstain from going to Beechcroft, a place which she began to regard
+with horror.&nbsp; He now was almost constantly at the New Court, talking
+over the reports, and quite provoking Emily by never desponding, and
+never choosing to perceive how bad things really were.&nbsp; Every day
+which was worse than the last was supposed to be the crisis, and every
+restless sleep that they heard of he interpreted into the beginning
+of recovery.&nbsp; At last, however, after ten days of suspense, the
+report began to improve, and Claude came to the New Court with a more
+cheerful face, to say that his cousin was munch better.&nbsp; The world
+seemed immediately to grow brighter, people went about with joyful looks,
+Lord Rotherwood declared that from the first he had known all would
+be well, and Lily began to hope that now she had been spared so heavy
+a punishment, it was a kind of earnest that other things would mend,
+that she had suffered enough.&nbsp; The future no longer hung before
+her in such dark colours as before Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s illness, though
+still the New Court was in no satisfactory state, and still she had
+reason to expect that her father and Eleanor would be disappointed and
+grieved.&nbsp; Thankfulness that Mr. Devereux was recovering, and that
+Claude had escaped the infection, made her once more hopeful and cheerful;
+she let the morrow take thought for the things of itself, rejoicing
+that it was not her business to make arrangements.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XX: THE LITTLE NEPHEW<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You must be father, mother, both,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;And uncle, all in one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Mohun had much business to transact in London which he could not
+leave undone, and as soon as his nephew began to recover he thought
+of setting off to meet Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, who had already been
+a week at Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s house in Grosvenor Square, which she
+had lent to them for the occasion.&nbsp; Claude had intended to stay
+at home, as his cousin was not yet well enough to leave the room; but
+just at this time a college friend of the Rector&rsquo;s, hearing of
+his illness, wrote to propose to come and stay with him for a month
+or six weeks, and help him in serving his church.&nbsp; Mr. Devereux
+was particularly glad to accept this kind offer, as it left him no longer
+dependent on Mr. Stephens and the Raynham curates, and set Claude at
+liberty for the London expedition.&nbsp; All was settled in the short
+space of one day.&nbsp; The very next they were to set off, and in great
+haste; Lily did all she could for the regulation of the house, packed
+up her goods, and received the commissions of her sisters.<br>
+<br>
+Ada gave her six shillings, with orders to buy either a doll or a book
+- the former if Eleanor did not say it was silly; and Phyllis put into
+her hands a weighty crown piece, begging for as many things as it could
+buy.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s wants and wishes were moderate and sensible,
+and she gave Lily the money for them.&nbsp; With Emily there was more
+difficulty.&nbsp; All Lily&rsquo;s efforts had not availed to prevent
+her from contracting two debts at Raynham.&nbsp; More than four pounds
+she owed to Lily, and this she offered to pay her, giving her at the
+same time a list of commissions sufficient to swallow up double her
+quarter&rsquo;s allowance.&nbsp; Lily, though really in want of the
+money for her own use, thought the debts at Raynham so serious, that
+she begged Emily to let her wait for payment till it was convenient,
+and to pay the shoemaker and dressmaker immediately.<br>
+<br>
+Emily thanked her, and promised to do so as soon as she could go to
+Raynham, and Lily next attempted to reduce her list of London commissions
+to something more reasonable.&nbsp; In part she succeeded, but it remained
+a matter of speculation how all the necessary articles which she had
+to buy for herself, and all Emily&rsquo;s various orders, were to come
+out of her own means, reduced as they were by former loans.<br>
+<br>
+The next day Lilias was on her way to London; feeling, as she left Beechcroft,
+that it was a great relief that the schoolroom and storeroom could not
+follow her.&nbsp; She was sorry that she should miss seeing Alethea
+Weston, who was to come home the next day, but she left various messages
+for her, and an affectionate note, and had received a promise from her
+sisters that the copy of the music should be given to her the first
+day that they saw her.&nbsp; Her journey afforded her much amusement,
+and it was not till towards the end of the day that she had much time
+for thinking, when, her companions being sleepily inclined, she was
+left to her own meditations and to a dull country.&nbsp; She began to
+revolve her own feelings towards Eleanor, and as she remembered the
+contempt and ingratitude she had once expressed, she shrank from the
+meeting with shame and dread, and knew that she should feel reproached
+by Eleanor&rsquo;s wonted calmness of manner.&nbsp; And as she mused
+upon all that Eleanor had endured, and all that she had done, such a
+reverence for suffering and sacrifice took possession of her mind that
+she was ready to look up to her sister with awe.&nbsp; She began to
+recollect old reproofs, and found herself sitting more upright, and
+examining the sit of the folds of her dress with some uneasiness at
+the thought of Eleanor&rsquo;s preciseness.&nbsp; In the midst of her
+meditations her two companions were roused by the slackening speed of
+the train, and starting up, informed her that they were arriving at
+their journey&rsquo;s end.&nbsp; The next minute she heard her father
+consigning her and the umbrellas to Mr. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s care, and
+all was bewilderment till she found herself in the hall of her aunt&rsquo;s
+house, receiving as warm and affectionate a greeting from Eleanor as
+Emily herself could have bestowed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And the baby, Eleanor?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Asleep, but you shall see him; and how is Ada? and all of them?
+why, Claude, how well you look!&nbsp; Papa, let me help you to take
+off your greatcoat - you are cold - will you have a fire?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Never had Lily heard Eleanor say so much in a breath, or seen her eye
+so bright, or her smile so ready, yet, when she entered the drawing-room,
+she saw that Mrs. Hawkesworth was still the Eleanor of old.&nbsp; In
+contrast with the splendid furniture of the apartments, a pile of shirts
+was on the table, Eleanor&rsquo;s well-known work-basket on the floor,
+and the ceaseless knitting close at hand.<br>
+<br>
+Much news was exchanged in the few minutes that elapsed before Eleanor
+carried off her sister to her room, indulging her by the way with a
+peep at little Harry, and one kiss to his round red cheek as he lay
+asleep in his little bed.&nbsp; It was not Eleanor&rsquo;s fault that
+she did not entirely dress Lily, and unpack her wardrobe; but Lilias
+liked to show that she could manage for herself; and Eleanor&rsquo;s
+praise of her neat arrangements gave her as much pleasure as in days
+of yore.<br>
+<br>
+The evening passed very happily.&nbsp; Eleanor&rsquo;s heart was open,
+she was full of enjoyment at meeting those she loved, and the two sisters
+sat long together in the twilight, talking over numerous subjects, all
+ending in Beechcroft or the baby.<br>
+<br>
+Yet when Lily awoke the next morning her awe of Eleanor began to return,
+and she felt like a child just returned to school.&nbsp; She was, however,
+mistaken; Eleanor assumed no authority, she treated Lily as her equal,
+and thus made her feel more like a woman than she had ever done before.&nbsp;
+Lily thought either that Eleanor was much altered, or that in her folly
+she must have fancied her far more cold and grave than she really was.&nbsp;
+She had, however, no time for studying her character; shopping and sight-seeing
+filled up most of her time, and the remainder was spent in resting,
+and in playing with little Henry.<br>
+<br>
+One evening, when Mr. Mohun and Claude were dining out, Lilias was left
+alone with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth.&nbsp; Lily was very tired, but
+she worked steadily at marking Eleanor&rsquo;s pocket-handkerchiefs,
+until her sister, seeing how weary she was, made her lie down on the
+sofa.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Here is a gentleman who is tired too,&rsquo; said Eleanor, dancing
+the baby; &lsquo;we will carry you off, sir, and leave Aunt Lily to
+go to sleep.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Aunt Lily is not so tired as that,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;pray
+keep him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is quite bedtime,&rsquo; said Eleanor, in her decided tone,
+and she carried him off.<br>
+<br>
+Lilias took up the knitting which she had laid down, and began to study
+the stitches.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should like this feathery pattern,&rsquo;
+said she, &lsquo;(if it did not remind me so much of the fever); but,
+by the bye, Frank, have you completed Master Henry&rsquo;s outfit?&nbsp;
+I looked forward to helping to choose his pretty little things, but
+I see no preparation but of stockings.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, Lily, did not you know that he was to stay in England?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To stay in England?&nbsp; No, I never thought of that - how sorry
+you must be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+At this moment Eleanor returned, and Mr. Hawkesworth told her he had
+been surprised to find Lily did not know their intentions with regard
+to the baby.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If we had any certain intentions we should have told her,&rsquo;
+said Eleanor; &lsquo;I did not wish to speak to her about it till we
+had made up our minds.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I know no use in mysteries,&rsquo; said Mr. Hawkesworth,
+&lsquo;especially when Lily may help us to decide.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;On his going or staying?&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, eagerly looking
+to Mr. Hawkesworth, who was evidently more disposed to speak than his
+wife.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not on his going or staying - I am sorry to say that point was
+settled long ago - but where we shall leave him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily&rsquo;s heart beat high, but she did not speak.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The truth is,&rsquo; proceeded Mr. Hawkesworth, &lsquo;that this
+young gentleman has, as perhaps you know, a grandpapa, a grandmamma,
+and also six or seven aunts.&nbsp; With his grandmamma he cannot be
+left, for sundry reasons, unnecessary to mention.&nbsp; Now, one of
+his aunts is a staid matronly lady, and his godmother besides, and in
+all respects the person to take charge of him, - only she lives in a
+small house in a town, and has plenty of babies of her own, without
+being troubled with other people&rsquo;s.&nbsp; Master Henry&rsquo;s
+other five aunts live in one great house, in a delightful country, with
+nothing to do but make much of him all day long, yet it is averred that
+these said aunts are a parcel of giddy young colts, amongst whom, if
+Henry escapes being demolished as a baby he will infallibly be spoilt
+as he grows up.&nbsp; Now, how are we to decide?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You have heard the true state of the case, Lily,&rsquo; said
+Mrs. Hawkesworth.&nbsp; &lsquo;I did not wish to harass papa by speaking
+to him till something was settled; you are certainly old enough to have
+an opinion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, Lily,&rsquo; said Frank; &lsquo;do you think that the hospitable
+New Court will open to receive our poor deserted child, and that these
+said aunts are not wild colts but discreet damsels?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Playful as Mr. Hawkesworth&rsquo;s manner was, Lily saw the earnestness
+that was veiled under it: she felt the solemnity of Eleanor&rsquo;s
+appeal, and knew that this was no time to let herself be swayed by her
+wishes.&nbsp; There was a silence.&nbsp; At last, after a great struggle,
+Lily&rsquo;s better judgment gained the mastery, and raising her head,
+she said, &lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Frank, do not ask me - I wish - but, Eleanor,
+when you see how much harm we have done, how utterly we have failed
+- &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily&rsquo;s newly-acquired habits of self-command enabled her to subdue
+a violent fit of sobbing, which she felt impending, but her tears flowed
+quietly down her cheeks.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Remember,&rsquo; said Frank, &lsquo;those who mistrust themselves
+are the most trustworthy.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Frank, it is not only the feeling of the greatness of the
+charge, it is the knowledge that we are not fit for it - that our own
+faults have forfeited such happiness.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Again Lily was choked with tears.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Frank, &lsquo;we shall judge at Beechcroft.&nbsp;
+At all events, one of those aunts is to be respected.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Eleanor added her &lsquo;Very right.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This kindness on the part of her brother-in-law, which Lily felt to
+be undeserved, caused her tears to flow faster, and Eleanor, seeing
+her quite overcome, led her out of the room, helped her to undress,
+and put her to bed, with tenderness such as Lily had never experienced
+from her, excepting in illness.<br>
+<br>
+In spite of bitter regrets, when she thought of the happiness it would
+have been to keep her little nephew, and of importunate and disappointing
+hopes that Mrs. Ridley would find it impossible to receive him, Lily
+felt that she had done right, and had made a real sacrifice for duty&rsquo;s
+sake.&nbsp; No more was said on the subject, and Lily was very grateful
+to Eleanor for making no inquiries, which she could not have answered
+without blaming Emily.<br>
+<br>
+Sight-seeing prospered very well under Claude&rsquo;s guidance, and
+Lily&rsquo;s wonder and delight was a constant source of amusement to
+her friends.&nbsp; Her shopping was more of a care than a pleasure,
+for, in spite of the handsome equipments which Mr. Mohun presented to
+all his daughters, it was impossible to contract Emily&rsquo;s requirements
+within the limits of what ought to be her expenditure, and the different
+views of her brother and sister were rather troublesome in this matter.&nbsp;
+Claude hated the search for ladies&rsquo; finery, and if drawn into
+it, insisted on always taking her to the grandest and most expensive
+shops; while, on the other hand, though Eleanor liked to hunt up cheap
+things and good bargains, she had such rigid ideas about plainness of
+dress, that there was little chance that what she approved would satisfy
+Emily.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXI: CHARITY BEGINS AT HOME<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Suddenly, a mighty jerk<br>
+A mighty mischief did.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In the meantime Emily and Jane went on very prosperously at home, looking
+forward to the return of the rest of the party on Saturday, the 17th
+of July.&nbsp; In this, however, they were doomed to disappointment,
+for neither Mr. Mohun nor Mr. Hawkesworth could wind up their affairs
+so as to return before the 24th.&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s holidays commenced
+on Monday the 19th, and Claude offered to go home on the same day, and
+meet him, but in a general council it was determined to the contrary.&nbsp;
+Claude was wanted to stay for a concert on Thursday, and both Mr. Mohun
+and Eleanor thought Maurice, without Reginald, would not be formidable
+for a few days.<br>
+<br>
+At first he seemed to justify this opinion.&nbsp; He did not appear
+to have any peculiar pursuit, unless such might be called a very earnest
+attempt to make Phyllis desist from her favourite preface of &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll
+tell you what,&rsquo; and to reform her habit of saying, &lsquo;Please
+for,&rsquo; instead of &lsquo;If you please.&rsquo;&nbsp; He walked
+with the sisters, carried messages for Mr. Devereux, performed some
+neat little bits of carpentry, and was very useful and agreeable.<br>
+<br>
+On Wednesday afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called, their heads
+the more full of the 30th because the Marquis had not once thought of
+it while Mr. Devereux was ill.&nbsp; Among the intended diversions fireworks
+were mentioned, and from that moment rockets, wheels, and serpents,
+commenced a wild career through Maurice&rsquo;s brain.&nbsp; Through
+the whole evening he searched for books on what he was pleased to call
+the art of pyrotechnics, studied them all Wednesday, and the next morning
+announced his intention of making some fireworks on a new plan.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, you must not,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you will be sure
+to do mischief.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am going to ask Wat for some powder,&rsquo; was Maurice&rsquo;s
+reply, and he walked off.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stop him, Jane, stop him,&rsquo; cried Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Nothing
+can be so dangerous.&nbsp; Tell him how angry papa would be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Though Jane highly esteemed her brother&rsquo;s discretion, she did
+not much like the idea of his touching powder, and she ran after him
+to suggest that he had better wait till papa&rsquo;s return.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then Redgie will be at home,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;and
+I could not be answerable for the consequence of such a careless fellow
+touching powder.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This great proof of caution quite satisfied Jane, but not so Wat Greenwood,
+who proved himself a faithful servant by refusing to let Master Maurice
+have one grain of gunpowder without express leave from the squire.&nbsp;
+Maurice then had recourse to Jane, and his power over her was such as
+to triumph over strong sense and weak notions of obedience, so that
+she was prevailed upon to supply him with the means of making the dangerous
+and forbidden purchase.<br>
+<br>
+Emily was both annoyed and alarmed when she found that the gunpowder
+was actually in the house, and she even thought of sending a note to
+the parsonage to beg Mr. Devereux to speak to Maurice; but Jane had
+gone over to the enemy, and Emily never could do anything unsupported.&nbsp;
+Besides, she neither liked to affront Maurice nor to confess herself
+unable to keep him in order; and she, therefore, tried to put the whole
+matter out of her head, in the thoughts of an expedition to Raynham,
+which she was about to make in the manner she best liked, with Jane
+in the close carriage, and the horses reluctantly spared from their
+farm work.<br>
+<br>
+As they were turning the corner of the lane they overtook Phyllis and
+Adeline on their way to the school with some work, and Emily stopped
+the carriage, to desire them to send off a letter which she had left
+on the chimney-piece in the schoolroom.&nbsp; Then proceeding to Raynham,
+they made their visits, paid Emily&rsquo;s debts, performed their commissions,
+and met the carriage again at the bookseller&rsquo;s shop, at the end
+of about two hours.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Look here, Emily!&rsquo; exclaimed Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Read this!
+can it be Mrs. Aylmer?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The truly charitable,&rsquo; said Emily, contemptuously.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Mrs. Aylmer is above - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But read.&nbsp; It says &ldquo;unbeneficed clergyman and deceased
+nobleman,&rdquo; and who can that be but Uncle Rotherwood and Mr. Aylmer.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, let us see,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;those things are
+always amusing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was an appeal to the &lsquo;truly charitable,&rsquo; from the friends
+of the widow of an unbeneficed clergyman of the diocese, one of whose
+sons had, it was said, by the kindness of a deceased nobleman, received
+the promise of an appointment in India, of which he was unable to avail
+himself for want of the funds needful for his outfit.&nbsp; This appeal
+was, it added, made without the knowledge of the afflicted lady, but
+further particulars might be learnt by application to E. F., No. 5 West
+Street, Raynham.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;E. F. is plainly that bustling, little, old Miss Fitchett, who
+wrote to papa for some subscription,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+know she is a regular beggar, always doing these kind of things, but
+I can never believe that Mrs. Aylmer would consent to appear in this
+manner.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! but it says without her knowledge,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t you remember Rotherwood&rsquo;s lamenting that they
+were forgotten?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, it is shocking,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;the clergyman
+that married papa and mamma!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ask Mr. Adam what he knows,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+Emily accordingly applied to the bookseller, and learnt that Mrs. Aylmer
+was indeed the person intended.&nbsp; &lsquo;Something must be done,&rsquo;
+said she, returning to Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Our name will be a help.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Speak to Aunt Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Or suppose
+we apply to Miss Fitchett, we should have time to drive that way.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure I shall not go to Miss Fitchett,&rsquo; said Emily,
+&lsquo;she only longs for an excuse to visit us.&nbsp; What can you
+be thinking of?&nbsp; Lend me your pencil, Jenny, if you please.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And Emily wrote down, &lsquo;Miss Mohun, &pound;5,&rsquo; and handed
+to the bookseller all that she possessed towards paying her just debts
+to Lilias.&nbsp; While she was writing, Jane had turned towards the
+window, and suddenly exclaiming, &lsquo;There is Ben!&nbsp; Oh! that
+gunpowder!&rsquo; darted out of the shop.&nbsp; She had seen the groom
+on horseback, and the next moment she was asking breathlessly, &lsquo;Is
+it Maurice?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Miss Jane; but Miss Ada is badly burnt, and Master Maurice
+sent me to fetch Mr. Saunders.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How did it happen?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t say, Miss; the schoolroom has been on fire, and
+Master Maurice said the young ladies had got at the gunpowder.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Emily had just arrived at the door, looking dreadfully pale, and followed
+by numerous kind offers of salts and glasses of water; but Jane, perceiving
+that at least she had strength to get into the carriage, refused them
+all, helped her in, and with instant decision, desired to be driven
+to the surgeon&rsquo;s.&nbsp; Emily obeyed like a child, and threw herself
+back in the carriage without a word; Jane trembled like an aspen leaf;
+but her higher spirit took the lead, and very sensibly she managed,
+stopping at Mr. Saunders&rsquo;s door to offer to take him to Beechcroft,
+and getting a glass of sal-volatile for Emily while they were waiting
+for him.&nbsp; His presence was a great relief, for Emily&rsquo;s natural
+courtesy made her exert herself, and thus warded off much that would
+have been very distressing.<br>
+<br>
+In the meantime we will return to Beechcroft, where Emily&rsquo;s request
+respecting her letter had occasioned some discussion between the little
+girls, as they returned from a walk with Marianne.&nbsp; Phyllis thought
+that Emily meant them to wafer the letter, since they were under strict
+orders never to touch fire or candle; but Ada argued that they were
+to seal it, and that permission to light a candle was implied in the
+order.&nbsp; At last, Phyllis hoped the matter might be settled by asking
+Maurice to seal the letter, and meeting him at the front door, she began,
+in fortunately, with &lsquo;Please, Maurice - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I never listen to anything beginning with please,&rsquo; said
+Maurice, who was in a great hurry, &lsquo;only don&rsquo;t touch my
+powder.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away he went, deaf to all his sister&rsquo;s shouts of &lsquo;Maurice,
+Maurice,&rsquo; and they went in, Ada not sorry to be unheard, as she
+was bent on the grand exploit of lighting a lucifer match, but Phyllis
+still pleading for the wafer.&nbsp; They found the schoolroom strewed
+with Maurice&rsquo;s preparations for fireworks, and Emily&rsquo;s letter
+on the chimney-piece.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let us take the letter downstairs, and put on a wafer,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Won&rsquo;t you come, Ada?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, the stamps are here, and so are the matches, I can do it
+easily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But Ada, Ada, it would be naughty.&nbsp; Only wait, and I will
+show you such a pretty wafer that I know of in the drawing-room.&nbsp;
+I will run and fetch it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis went, and Ada stood a few moments in doubt, looking at the letter.&nbsp;
+The recollection of duty was not strong enough to balance the temptation,
+and she took up a match and drew it along the sandpaper.&nbsp; It did
+not light - a second pull, and the flame appeared more suddenly than
+she had expected, while at the same moment the lock of the door turned,
+and fancying it was Maurice, she started, and dropped the match.&nbsp;
+Phyllis opened the door, heard a loud explosion and a scream, saw a
+bright flash and a cloud of smoke.&nbsp; She started back, but the next
+moment again opened the door, and ran forward.&nbsp; Hannah rushed in
+at the same time, and caught up Ada, who had fallen to the ground.&nbsp;
+A light in the midst of the smoke made Phyllis turn, and she beheld
+the papers on the table on fire.&nbsp; Maurice&rsquo;s powder-horn was
+in the midst, but the flames had not yet reached it, and, mindful of
+Claude&rsquo;s story, she sprung forward, caught it up, and dashed it
+through the window; she felt the glow of the fire upon her cheek, and
+stood still as if stunned, till Hannah carried Ada out of the room,
+and screamed to her to come away, and call Joseph.&nbsp; The table was
+now one sheet of flame, and Phyllis flew to the pantry, where she gave
+the summons in almost inaudible tones.&nbsp; The servants hurried to
+the spot, and she was left alone and bewildered; she ran hither and
+thither in confusion, till she met Hannah, eagerly asking for Master
+Maurice, and saying that the surgeon must be instantly sent for, as
+Ada&rsquo;s face and neck were badly burnt.&nbsp; Phyllis ran down,
+calling Maurice, and at length met him at the front door, looking much
+frightened, and asking for Ada.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Maurice, her face and neck are burnt, and badly.&nbsp;
+She does scream?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did I not tell you not to meddle with the powder?&rsquo; said
+Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I could not help it,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stuff and nonsense!&nbsp; It is very well that you have not killed
+Ada, and I think that would have made you sorry.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis with difficulty mentioned Hannah&rsquo;s desire that a surgeon
+should be sent for: Maurice went to look for Ben, and she followed him.&nbsp;
+Then he began asking how she had done the mischief.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;I do not much think I
+did it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Mind, you can&rsquo;t humbug me.&nbsp; Did you not say that you
+touched the powder?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, but - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No buts,&rsquo; said Maurice, making the most of his brief authority.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I hate false excuses.&nbsp; What were you doing when it exploded?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Coming into the room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! that accounts for it,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;the slightest
+vibration causes an explosion of that sort of rocket, and of course
+it was your bouncing into the room!&nbsp; You have had a lesson against
+rushing about the house.&nbsp; Come, though, cheer up, Phyl, it is a
+bad business, but it might have been worse; you will know better next
+time.&nbsp; Don&rsquo;t cry, Phyl, I will explain to you all about the
+patent rocket.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But do you really think that I blew up Ada?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Blew up Ada! caused the powder to ignite.&nbsp; The inflammable
+matter - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+As he spoke he followed Phyllis to the nursery, and there was so much
+shocked, that he could no longer lord it over her, but shrinking back,
+shut himself up in his room, and bolted the door.<br>
+<br>
+Nearly an hour passed away before the arrival of Emily, Jane, and Mr.
+Saunders.&nbsp; Phyllis ran down, and meeting them at the door, exclaimed,
+&lsquo;Oh! Emily, poor Ada!&nbsp; I am so sorry.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The sisters hurried past her to the nursery, where Ada was lying on
+the bed, half undressed, and her face, neck, and arm such a spectacle
+that Emily turned away, ready to faint.&nbsp; Mr. Saunders was summoned,
+and Phyllis thrust out of the room.&nbsp; She sat down on the step of
+the stairs, resting her forehead on her knees, and trembling, listened
+to the sounds of voices, and the screams which now and then reached
+her ears.&nbsp; After a time she was startled by hearing herself called
+from the stairs <i>by below</i> a voice which she had not heard for
+many weeks, and springing up, saw Mr. Devereux leaning on the banisters.&nbsp;
+The great change in his appearance frightened her almost as much as
+the accident itself, and she stood looking at him without speaking.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Phyllis,&rsquo; said he, in a voice hoarse with agitation, &lsquo;what
+is it? tell me at once.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She could not speak, and her wild and frightened air might well give
+him great alarm.&nbsp; She pointed to the nursery, and put her finger
+to her lips, and he, beckoning to her to follow him, went downstairs,
+and turning into the drawing-room, said, as he sank down upon the sofa,
+&lsquo;Now, Phyllis, what has happened?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The gunpowder - I made it go off, and it has burnt poor Ada&rsquo;s
+face!&nbsp; Mr. Saunders is there, and she screams - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis finding herself ready to roar, left off speaking, and laying
+her head on the table, burst into an agony of crying, while Mr. Devereux
+was too much exhausted to address her; at last she exclaimed: &lsquo;I
+hear the nursery door; he is going!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She flew to the door, and listened, and then called out, &lsquo;Emily,
+Jane, here is Cousin Robert!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane came down, leaving Emily to finish hearing Mr. Saunders&rsquo;s
+directions.&nbsp; She was even more shocked at her cousin&rsquo;s looks
+than Phyllis had been, and though she tried to speak cheerfully, her
+manner scarcely agreed with her words.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is all well,
+Robert, I am sorry you have been so frightened.&nbsp; It is but a slight
+affair, though it looks so shocking.&nbsp; There is no danger.&nbsp;
+But, oh, Robert! you ought not to be here.&nbsp; What shall we do for
+you? you are quite knocked up.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! no,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;I am only a little out
+of breath.&nbsp; A terrible report came to me, and I set off to learn
+the truth.&nbsp; I should like to hear what Mr. Saunders says of her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will call him in here before he goes,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;how
+tired you are; you have not been out before.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only to the gate to speak to Rotherwood yesterday, and prevent
+him from coming in,&rsquo; said Mr. Devereux, &lsquo;but I have great
+designs for Sunday.&nbsp; They come home to-morrow, do not they?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane was much relieved by hearing her cousin talk in this manner, and
+answered, &lsquo;Yes, and a dismal coming home it will be; it is too
+late to let them know.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Saunders now entered, and gave a very favourable account of the
+patient, saying that even the scars would probably disappear in a few
+weeks.&nbsp; His gig had come from Raynham, and he offered to set Mr.
+Devereux down at the parsonage, a proposal which the latter was very
+glad to accept.&nbsp; Emily and Jane had leisure, when they were gone,
+to inquire into the manner of the accident.&nbsp; Phyllis answered that
+Maurice said that her banging the door had made the powder go off.&nbsp;
+Jane then asked where Maurice was, and Phyllis reporting that he was
+in his own room, she repaired thither, and knocked twice without receiving
+an answer.&nbsp; On her call, however, he opened the door; she saw that
+he had been in tears, and hastened to tell him Mr. Saunders&rsquo;s
+opinion.&nbsp; He fastened the door again as soon as she had entered.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;If I could have thought it!&rsquo; sighed he.&nbsp; &lsquo;Fool
+that I was, not to lock the door!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you were not there?&nbsp; Phyllis says that she did it by
+banging the door.&nbsp; Is not that nonsense?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not at all.&nbsp; Did I not read to you in the <i>Year Book of
+Facts </i>about the patent signal rockets, which explode with the least
+vibration, even when a carriage goes by?&nbsp; Now, mine was on the
+same principle.&nbsp; I was making an experiment on the ingredients;
+I did not expect to succeed the first time, and so I took no precautions.&nbsp;
+Well! Pyrotechnics are a dangerous science!&nbsp; Next time I study
+them it shall be at the workshop at the Old Court.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Maurice was sincerely sorry for the consequence of his disobedience,
+and would have been much to be pitied had it not been for his secret
+satisfaction in the success of his art.&nbsp; He called his sister into
+the schoolroom to explain how it happened.&nbsp; The room was a dismal
+sight, blackened with smoke, and flooded with water, the table and part
+of the floor charred, a mass of burnt paper in the midst, and a stifling
+smell of fire.&nbsp; A pane of glass was shattered, and Maurice ran
+down to the lawn to see if he could find anything there to account for
+it.&nbsp; The next moment he returned, the powder-horn in his hand.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;See, Jenny, how fortunate that this was driven through the window
+with the force of the explosion.&nbsp; The whole place might have been
+blown to atoms with such a quantity as this.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then what was it that blew up?&rsquo; asked Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What I had put out for my rocket, about two ounces.&nbsp; If
+this half-pound had gone there is no saying what might have happened.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now, Maurice,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I must go back to Ada,
+and will you run down to the parsonage with a parcel, directed to Robert,
+that you will find in the hall?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+This was a device to occupy Maurice, who, as Jane saw, was so restless
+and unhappy that she did not like to leave him, much as she was wanted
+elsewhere.&nbsp; He went, but afraid to see his cousin, only left the
+parcel at the door.&nbsp; As he was going back he heard a shout, and
+looking round saw Lord Rotherwood mounted on Cedric, his most spirited
+horse, galloping up the lane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Maurice!&rsquo; cried he,
+&lsquo;what is all this? they say the New Court is blown up, and you
+and half the girls killed, but I hope one part is as true as the other.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nobody is hurt but Ada,&rsquo; said Maurice, &lsquo;but her face
+is a good deal burnt.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh? then she won&rsquo;t be fit for the 30th, poor child! tell
+me how it was, make haste.&nbsp; I heard it from Mr. Burnet as I came
+down to dinner.&nbsp; We have a dozen people at dinner.&nbsp; I told
+him not to mention it to my mother, and rode off to hear the truth.&nbsp;
+Make haste, half the people were come when I set off.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The horse&rsquo;s caperings so discomposed Maurice that he could scarcely
+collect his wits enough to answer: &lsquo;Some signal rocket on a new
+principle - detonating powder, composed of oxymuriate - Oh!&nbsp; Rotherwood,
+take care!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Speak sense, and go on.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then Phyllis came in, banged the door, and the vibration caused
+the explosion,&rsquo; said Maurice, scared into finishing promptly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh! banging the door?&nbsp; You had better not tell that story
+at school.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Rotherwood, the deton - Oh! that horse - you will be off!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not half so dangerous as patent rockets.&nbsp; Is Emily satisfied
+with such stuff?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t you know that fulminating silver - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What does Robert Devereux say?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Really, Rotherwood, I could show you - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Show me?&nbsp; No; if rockets are so perilous I shall have nothing
+to do with them.&nbsp; Stand still, Cedric!&nbsp; Just tell me about
+Ada.&nbsp; Is there much harm done?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Her face is scorched a good deal, but they say it will soon be
+right.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am glad - we will send to inquire to-morrow, but I cannot come
+- ha, ha! a new infernal machine.&nbsp; Good-bye, Friar Bacon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away he went, and Maurice stood looking after him with complacent disdain.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;There they go, Cedric and Rotherwood, equally well provided with
+brains!&nbsp; What is the use of talking science to either?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was late when he reached the house, and his two sisters shortly came
+down to tea, with news that Adeline was asleep and Phyllis was going
+to bed.&nbsp; The accident was again talked over.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;I do not understand it, but I
+suppose papa will.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The telling papa is a bad part of the affair, with William and
+Eleanor there too,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not mean to speak to Phyllis about it again,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;it makes her cry so terribly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It will come out fast enough,&rsquo; sighed Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;Good-night.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+More than once in the course of the night did poor Phyllis wake and
+cry, and the next day was the most wretched she had ever spent; she
+was not allowed to stay in the nursery, and the schoolroom was uninhabitable,
+so she wandered listlessly about the garden, sometimes creeping down
+to the churchyard, where she looked up at the old tower, or pondered
+over the graves, and sometimes forgetting her troubles in converse with
+the dogs, in counting the rings in the inside of a foxglove flower,
+or in rescuing tadpoles stranded on the broad leaf of a water-lily.<br>
+<br>
+Her sisters and brothers were not less forlorn.&nbsp; Emily sighed and
+lamented; Adeline was feverish and petulant; and Jane toiled in vain
+to please and soothe both, and to comfort Maurice; but with all her
+good-temper and good-nature she had not the spirit which alone could
+enable her to be a comfort to any one.&nbsp; Ada whined, fretted, and
+was disobedient, and from Maurice she met with nothing but rebuffs;
+he was silent and sullen, and spent most of the day in the workshop,
+slowly planing scraps of deal board, and watching with a careless eye
+the curled shavings float to the ground.<br>
+<br>
+In the course of the afternoon Alethea and Marianne came to inquire
+after the patient.&nbsp; Jane came down to them and talked very fast,
+but when they asked for a further explanation of the cause of the accident,
+Jane declared that Maurice said it was impossible that any one who did
+not understand chemistry should know how it happened, and Alethea went
+away strongly reminded that it was no affair of hers.<br>
+<br>
+Notes passed between the New Court and the vicarage, but Mr. Devereux
+was feeling the effect of his yesterday&rsquo;s exertion too much to
+repeat it, and no persuasion of the sisters could induce Maurice to
+visit him.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXII: THE BARONIAL COURT<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Still in his eyes his soul revealing,<br>
+He dreams not, knows not of concealing,<br>
+Does all he does with single mind,<br>
+And thinks of others that are kind.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The travellers were expected to arrive at about seven o&rsquo;clock
+in the evening, and in accordance with a well-known taste of Eleanor&rsquo;s,
+Emily had ordered no dinner, but a substantial meal under the name of
+tea.&nbsp; When the sound of carriage wheels was heard, Jane was with
+Adeline, Maurice was in his retreat at the Old Court, and it was with
+no cheerful alacrity that Emily went alone into the hall.&nbsp; Phyllis
+was already at the front door, and the instant Mr. Mohun set foot on
+the threshold, her hand grasped his coat, and her shrill voice cried
+in his ear, &lsquo;Papa, I am very sorry I blew up the gunpowder and
+burnt Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What, my dear? where is Ada?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In bed.&nbsp; I blew up the gunpowder and burnt her face,&rsquo;
+repeated Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We have had an accident,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but I hope
+it is nothing very serious, only poor Ada is a sad figure.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In another moment Mr. Mohun and Eleanor were on the way to the nursery;
+Lilias was following, but she recollected that a general rush into a
+sickroom was not desirable, and therefore paused and came back to the
+hall.&nbsp; The worst was over with Phyllis when the confession had
+been made.&nbsp; She was in raptures at the sight of the baby, and was
+presently showing the nurse the way upstairs, but her brother William
+called her back: &lsquo;Phyllis, you have not spoken to any one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis turned, and came down slowly in her most ungainly manner, believing
+herself in too great disgrace to be noticed by anybody, and she was
+quite surprised and comforted to be greeted by her brothers and Lily
+just as usual.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And how did you meet with this misfortune?&rsquo; asked Mr. Hawkesworth.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I banged the door, and made it go off,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What can you mean?&rsquo; said William, in a tone of surprise,
+which Phyllis took for anger, and she hid her face to stifle her sobs.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, do not frighten her,&rsquo; said Claude&rsquo;s kind
+voice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Run and make friends with your nephew, Phyllis,&rsquo; said Mr.
+Hawkesworth; &lsquo;do not greet us with crying.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;First tell me what is become of Maurice,&rsquo; said Claude,
+&lsquo;is he blown up too?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, he is at the Old Court,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Shall
+I tell him that you are come?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will look for him,&rsquo; said Claude, and out he went.<br>
+<br>
+The others dispersed in different directions, and did not assemble again
+for nearly half an hour, when they all met in the drawing-room to drink
+tea; Claude and Maurice were the last to appear, and, on entering, the
+first thing the former said was, &lsquo;Where is Phyllis?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In the nursery,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;she has had her supper,
+and chooses to stay with Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Has any one found out the history of the accident?&rsquo; said
+William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have vainly been trying to make sense of Maurice&rsquo;s account,&rsquo;
+said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Sense!&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;there is none.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am perfectly bewildered,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;every one
+has a different story, only consenting in making Phyllis the victim.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And,&rsquo; added Claude, &lsquo;I strongly suspect she is not
+in fault.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why should you doubt what she says herself?&rsquo; said Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What does she say herself?&rsquo; said William, &lsquo;nothing
+but that she shut the door, and what does that amount to? - Nothing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She says she touched the powder,&rsquo; interposed Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is another matter,&rsquo; said William; &lsquo;no one told
+me of her touching the powder.&nbsp; But why do you not ask her?&nbsp;
+She is publicly condemned without a hearing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Who accuses her?&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I can hardly tell,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;she met us, saying
+she was very sorry.&nbsp; Yes, she accuses herself.&nbsp; Every one
+has believed it to be her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And why?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+There was a pause, but at last Emily said, &lsquo;How would you account
+for it otherwise?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have not yet heard the circumstances.&nbsp; Maurice, I wish
+to hear your account.&nbsp; I will not now ask how you procured the
+powder.&nbsp; Whoever was the immediate cause of the accident, you are
+chiefly to blame.&nbsp; Where was the powder?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Maurice gave his theory and his facts, ending with the powder-horn being
+driven out of the window upon the green.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hear,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;But, Maurice, did
+you not say that Phyllis touched the powder?&nbsp; How do you reconcile
+that with this incomprehensible statement?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She might have done that before,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now call Phyllis,&rsquo; said his father.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is it not very formidable for her to be examined before such
+an assembly?&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The accusation has been public, and the investigation shall be
+the same,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you do not think she did it, papa?&rsquo; cried Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not by shutting the door,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis entered, and Mr. Mohun, holding out both hands to her, drew
+her towards him, and placing her with her back to the others, still
+retained her hands, while he said, &lsquo;Phyllis, do not be frightened,
+but tell me where you were when the powder exploded?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Coming into the room,&rsquo; said Phyllis, in a trembling voice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Where had you been?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Fetching a wafer out of the drawing-room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What was the wafer for?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To put on Emily&rsquo;s letter, which she told us to send.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And where was Ada?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;In the schoolroom, reading the direction of the letter.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Tell me exactly what happened when you came back.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I opened the door, and there was a flash, and a bang, and a smoke,
+and Ada tumbled down.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have one more question to ask.&nbsp; When did you touch the
+powder?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;When it had exploded?&nbsp; Take care what you say.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was it naughty?&nbsp; I am very sorry,&rsquo; said Phyllis, beginning
+to cry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What powder did you touch?&nbsp; I do not understand you, tell
+me quietly.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I touched the powder-horn.&nbsp; What went off was only a little
+in a paper on the table, and there was a great deal more.&nbsp; When
+the rocket blew up there was a great noise, and Ada and I both screamed,
+and Hannah ran in and took up Ada in her arms.&nbsp; Then I saw a great
+fire, and looked, and saw Emily&rsquo;s music-book, and all the papers
+blazing.&nbsp; So I thought if it got to the powder it would blow up
+again, and I laid hold of the horn and threw it out of the window.&nbsp;
+That is all I know, papa, only I hope you are not very angry with me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She looked into his face, not knowing how to interpret the unusual expression
+she saw there.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Angry with you!&rsquo; said he.&nbsp; &lsquo;No, my dear child,
+you have acted with great presence of mind.&nbsp; You have saved your
+sister and Hannah from great danger, and I am very sorry that you have
+been unjustly treated.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He then gave his little daughter a kiss, and putting his hand on her
+head, added, &lsquo;Whoever caused the explosion, Phyllis is quite free
+from blame, and I wish every one to understand this, because she has
+been unjustly accused, without examination, and because she has borne
+it patiently, and without attempting to justify herself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very right,&rsquo; observed Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Shake hands, Phyllis,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+The others said more with their eyes than with their lips.&nbsp; Phyllis
+stood like one in a dream, and fixing her bewildered looks upon Claude,
+said, &lsquo;Did not I do it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, Phyllis, you had nothing to do with it,&rsquo; was the general
+exclamation.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maurice said it was the door,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maurice talked nonsense,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;you were
+only foolish in believing him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis went up to Claude, and laid her head on his arm; Mr. Hawkesworth
+held out his hand to her, but she did not look up, and Claude withdrawing
+his arm, and raising her head, found that she was crying.&nbsp; Eleanor
+and Lilias both rose, and came towards her but Claude made them a sign,
+and led her away.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What a fine story this will be for Reginald,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And for Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not see how it happened,&rsquo; said Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of course Ada did it herself,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of course,&rsquo; said Maurice.&nbsp; &lsquo;It was all from
+Emily&rsquo;s setting them to seal her letter, that is plain now.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Would not Ada have said so?&rsquo; asked Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+Lily sighed at the thought of what Eleanor had yet to learn.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you tell them to seal your letter, Emily?&rsquo; said Mr.
+Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sorry to say that I did tell them to send it,&rsquo; said
+Emily, &lsquo;but I said nothing about sealing, as Jane remembers, and
+I forgot that Maurice&rsquo;s gunpowder was in the room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Eleanor shook her head sorrowfully, and looked down at her knitting,
+and Lily knew that her mind was made up respecting little Henry&rsquo;s
+dwelling-place.<br>
+<br>
+It was some comfort to have raised no false expectations.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ada must not be frightened and agitated to-night,&rsquo; said
+Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I hope you will talk to her to-morrow, Eleanor.&nbsp;
+Well, Claude, have you made Phyllis understand that she is acquitted?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Scarcely,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;she is so overcome and worn
+out, that I thought she had better go to bed, and wake in her proper
+senses to-morrow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A very unconscious heroine,&rsquo; said William.&nbsp; &lsquo;She
+is a wonder - I never thought her anything but an honest sort of romp.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have long thought her a wonderful specimen of obedience,&rsquo;
+said Mr. Mohun.<br>
+<br>
+William and Claude now walked to the parsonage, and the council broke
+up; but it must not be supposed that this was the last that Emily and
+Maurice heard on the subject.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXIII: JOYS AND SORROWS<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Complaint was heard on every part<br>
+Of something disarranged.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The next day, Sunday, was one of the most marked in Lily&rsquo;s life.&nbsp;
+It was the first time she saw Mr. Devereux after his illness, and though
+Claude had told her he was going to church, it gave her a sudden thrill
+of joy to see him there once more, and perhaps she never felt more thankful
+than when his name was read before the Thanksgiving.&nbsp; After the
+service there was an exchange of greetings, but Lily spoke no word,
+she felt too happy and too awe-struck to say anything, and she walked
+back to the New Court in silence.<br>
+<br>
+In the afternoon she had hopes that a blessing would be granted to her,
+for which at one time she had scarcely dared to hope; and she felt convinced
+that so it would be when she saw that Mr. Devereux wore his surplice,
+although, as in the morning, his friend read the service.&nbsp; After
+the Second Lesson there was a pause, and then Mr. Devereux left the
+chair by the altar, walked along the aisle, and took his stand on the
+step of the font.&nbsp; Lily&rsquo;s heart beat high as she saw who
+were gathering round him - Mrs. Eden, Andrew Grey, James Harrington,
+and Mrs. Naylor, who held in her arms a healthy, rosy-checked boy of
+a year old.<br>
+<br>
+She could not have described the feelings which made her eyes overflow
+with tears, as she saw Mr. Devereux&rsquo;s thin hand sprinkle the drops
+over the brow of the child, and heard him say, &lsquo;Robert, I baptize
+thee&rsquo; - words which she had heard in dreams, and then awakened
+to remember that the parish was at enmity with the pastor, the child
+unbaptized, and herself, in part, the cause.<br>
+<br>
+The name of the little boy was an additional pledge of reconciliation,
+and at the same time it made her feel again what had been the price
+of his baptism.&nbsp; When she looked back upon the dreary feelings
+which she had so lately experienced, it seemed to her as if she might
+believe that this christening was, as it were, a pledge of pardon, and
+an earnest of better things.<br>
+<br>
+Naylor, who had recovered much more slowly than Mr. Devereux, was at
+church for the first time, and after the service Mr. Mohun sought him
+out in the churchyard, and heartily shook hands with him.&nbsp; Lily
+would gladly have followed his example, but she only stood by Eleanor
+and Mrs. Weston, who were speaking to Mrs. Eden and Mrs. Naylor, admiring
+the little boy, and praising him for his good behaviour in church.<br>
+<br>
+Love of babies was a strong bond between Mrs. Weston and Mrs. Hawkesworth,
+who seemed to become well acquainted from the first moment that little
+Henry was mentioned; and Lily was well pleased to see that in Jane&rsquo;s
+phrase Eleanor &lsquo;took to her friends so well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And yet this day brought with it some annoyances, which once would have
+fretted her so much as to interfere even with such joy as she now felt.&nbsp;
+The song, with which she had taken so much pains, ought to have been
+sent home a week before, but owing to the delay caused by Emily&rsquo;s
+carelessness, it had been burnt in the fire in the schoolroom, and Lily
+could not feel herself forgiven till she had talked the disaster over
+in private with her friend, and this was out of her power throughout
+the day, for something always prevented her from getting Alethea alone.&nbsp;
+In the morning Jane stuck close to her, and in the afternoon William
+walked to the school gate with them.&nbsp; But Alethea&rsquo;s manner
+was kinder towards her than ever, and she was quite satisfied about
+her.<br>
+<br>
+It gave her more pain to perceive that Emily in every possible manner
+avoided being alone with her.&nbsp; It was by her desire that Phyllis
+came to sleep in their room; she would keep Jane talking there, give
+Esther some employment which kept her in their presence, linger in the
+drawing-room while Lilias was dressing, and at bedtime be too sleepy
+to say anything but good-night.<br>
+<br>
+That Sunday was a sorrowful one to Eleanor; for in the course of the
+conversation with Ada, which Mr. Mohun had desired her to hold, she
+became conscious of the little girl&rsquo;s double-dealing ways.&nbsp;
+It was only by a very close cross-examination that she was able to extract
+from her a true account of the disaster, and though Ada never went so
+far as actually to tell a falsehood, it was evident that she was willing
+to conceal as much as possible, and to throw the blame on other people.&nbsp;
+And when the real facts were confessed she did not seem able to comprehend
+why she was regarded with displeasure; her instinct of truth and obedience
+was lost for the time, and Eleanor saw it with the utmost pain.&nbsp;
+Adeline had been her especial darling, and cold as her manner had often
+been towards the others, it ever was warm towards the motherless little
+one, whom she had tended and cherished with most anxious care from her
+earliest infancy.&nbsp; She had left her gentle, candid, and affectionate;
+a loving, engaging, little creature, and how did she find her now?&nbsp;
+Her fair bright face disfigured, her caresses affected, her mind turned
+to deceit and prevarication!&nbsp; Well might Eleanor feel it more than
+ever painful to leave her own little Henry to the care of others; and
+well it was for her that she had learned to find comfort in the consciousness
+that her duty was clear.<br>
+<br>
+The next morning Emily learned what was Henry&rsquo;s destination.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Eleanor,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;why do you not leave him
+here?&nbsp; We should be so rejoiced to have him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, I am afraid it is out of the question,&rsquo; answered
+Eleanor, quietly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, dear Eleanor?&nbsp; You know how glad we should be.&nbsp;
+I should have thought,&rsquo; proceeded Emily, a little hurt, &lsquo;that
+you would have wished him to live in your own home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Eleanor did not speak, and Emily, who had the little boy in her arms,
+went on talking to him: &lsquo;Come, baby, let us persuade mamma to
+let you stay with Aunt Emily.&nbsp; Ask papa, Henry, won&rsquo;t you?&nbsp;
+Seriously, Eleanor, has Frank considered how much better it would be
+to have him in the country?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;He has, Emily; he once wished much to leave him here.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure grandpapa would like it,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do
+you observe, Eleanor, how fond he is of baby, always calling him Harry
+too, as if he liked the sound of the name?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It has all been talked over, Emily, and it cannot be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With papa?&rsquo; asked Emily in surprise.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, with Lily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With Lily!&rsquo; exclaimed Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Did not Aunt
+Lily wish to keep you, Harry?&nbsp; I thought she was very fond of you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You had better inquire no further,&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;except
+of your own conscience.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did Lily think us unfit to take care of him?&rsquo; asked Emily,
+in surprise.<br>
+<br>
+As she spoke Lily herself came in, the key of the storeroom in her hand,
+and looks of consternation on her face.&nbsp; She came to announce a
+terrible deficiency in the preserved quinces, which she herself had
+carefully put aside on a shelf in the storeroom, and which Emily said
+she had not touched in her absence.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Let me see,&rsquo; said Eleanor, rising, and setting off to the
+storeroom; Emily and Lily followed, with a sad suspicion of the truth.&nbsp;
+On the way they looked into the nursery, to give little Henry to his
+nurse, and to ask Jane, who was sitting with Ada, what she remembered
+about it.&nbsp; Jane knew nothing, and they went on to the storeroom,
+where Eleanor, quite in her element, began rummaging, arranging, and
+sighing over the confusion, while Lily lent a helping hand, and Emily
+stood by, wishing that her sister would not trouble herself.&nbsp; Presently
+Jane came running up with a saucer in her hand, containing a quarter
+of a quince and some syrup, which she said she had found in the nursery
+cupboard, in searching for a puzzle which Ada wanted.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I should guess that Miss Ada herself
+knew something about it, for when I could not find the puzzle in the
+right-hand cupboard, she was so very unwilling that I should look into
+that one; she said there was nothing there but the boys&rsquo; old playthings
+and Esther&rsquo;s clothes.&nbsp; And I do not know whether you saw
+how she fidgeted when you were talking about the quinces, before you
+went up.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is much too plain,&rsquo; sighed Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Oh! Rachel,
+why did we not listen to you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you suppose,&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;that Ada has been
+in the habit of taking the key and helping herself?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;but that Esther has helped her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;I never thought it wise to take
+her, but how could she get the key?&nbsp; You do not mean that you trusted
+it out of your own keeping.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It began while we were ill,&rsquo; faltered Emily, &lsquo;and
+afterwards it was difficult to bring matters into their former order.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But oh, Eleanor, what is to be done?&rsquo; sighed Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Speak to papa, of course,&rsquo; said Eleanor.&nbsp; &lsquo;He
+is gone to the castle, and in the meantime we had better take an exact
+account of everything here.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And Esther?&nbsp; And Ada?&rsquo; inquired the sisters.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think it will be better to speak to him before making so grave
+an accusation,&rsquo; said Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+They now commenced that wearisome occupation - a complete setting-to-rights;
+Eleanor counted, weighed, and measured, and extended her cares from
+the stores to every other household matter.&nbsp; Emily made her escape,
+and went to sit with Ada; but Lily and Jane toiled for several hours
+with Eleanor, till Lily was so heated and wearied that she was obliged
+to give up a walk to Broomhill, and spend another day without a talk
+with Alethea.&nbsp; However, she was so patient, ready, and good-humoured,
+that Eleanor was well pleased with her.&nbsp; She could hardly think
+of the slight vexation, when her mind was full of sorrow and shame on
+Esther&rsquo;s account.&nbsp; It was she who, contrary to the advice
+of her elders, had insisted on bringing her into the house; she had
+allowed temptation to be set in her way, and had not taken sufficient
+pains to strengthen her principles; and how could she do otherwise than
+feel guilty of all Esther&rsquo;s faults, and of those into which she
+had led Adeline?<br>
+<br>
+On Mr. Mohun&rsquo;s return Ada was interrogated.&nbsp; She pitied herself
+- said she did not think papa would be angry - prevaricated - and tried
+to coax away his inquiries, but all in vain; and at length, by slow
+degrees, the confession was drawn from her that she had been used to
+asking Esther for morsels of sweet things when she was sent to the storeroom;
+that afterwards she had seen her packing up some tea and sugar to take
+to her mother, and that Esther on that occasion, and several others,
+purchased her silence by giving her a share of pilfered sweetmeats.&nbsp;
+Telling her that he only spared her a very severe punishment for the
+present, on account of her illness, Mr. Mohun left her, and on his way
+downstairs met Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Phyl,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;did Esther ever give you sweet things
+out of the storeroom?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Once, papa, when she had been putting out some currant jam, she
+offered me what had been left in the spoon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you take it?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, papa, for Eleanor used to say it was a bad trick to lick
+out spoons.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you ever know that she took tea and sugar from the storeroom,
+for her mother?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Took home tea and sugar to her mother!&nbsp; She could not have
+done it, papa.&nbsp; It would be stealing!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Esther, who was next called for, cried a great deal, and begged for
+pardon, pleading again and again that -<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was mother,&rsquo; an answer which made her young mistresses
+again sigh over the remembrance of Rachel&rsquo;s disregarded advice.&nbsp;
+Her fate was left for consideration and consultation with Mr. Devereux,
+for Mr. Mohun, seeing himself to blame for having allowed her to be
+placed in a situation of so much trial, and thinking that there was
+much that was good about her, did not like to send her to her home,
+where she was likely to learn nothing but what was bad.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXIV: LOVE&rsquo;S LABOUR LOST<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And well, with ready hand and heart,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Each task of toilsome duty taking,<br>
+Did one dear inmate take her part,<br>
+&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;The last asleep, the earliest waking.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+In the course of the afternoon Lord Rotherwood and Florence called,
+to see Eleanor, inquire after Ada, and make the final arrangements for
+going to a morning concert at Raynham the next day.&nbsp; Lady Rotherwood
+was afraid of the fatigue, and Florence therefore wished to accompany
+her cousins, who, as Eleanor meant to stay at home, were to be under
+Mrs. Weston&rsquo;s protection.&nbsp; Lady Florence and her brother,
+therefore, agreed to ride home by Broomhill, and mention the plan to
+Mrs. Weston, and took their leave, appointing Adam&rsquo;s shop as the
+place of rendezvous.<br>
+<br>
+Next morning Emily, Lilias, and Jane happened to be together in the
+drawing-room, when Mr. Mohun and Claude came in, the former saying to
+Lily, &lsquo;Here is the mason&rsquo;s account for the gravestone which
+you wished to have put up to Agnes Eden; it comes to two pounds.&nbsp;
+You undertook half the expense, and as Claude is going to Raynham, he
+will pay for it if you will give him your sovereign.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;but first I must ask Emily to
+pay me for the London commissions.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Emily repented not having had a private conference with Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;So you have not settled your accounts,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I hope Lily has not ruined you, Emily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I thought her a mirror of prudence,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Emily, is the sovereign forthcoming?&nbsp; I am going directly,
+for Frank has something to do at Raynham, and William is going to try
+his gray in the phaeton.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am afraid you will think me very silly,&rsquo; said Emily,
+after some deliberation, &lsquo;but I hope Lily will not be very angry
+when I confess that seven shillings is the sum total of my property.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Emily,&rsquo; cried Lily, in dismay, &lsquo;what has become
+of your five pounds?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I gave them as a subscription for a clergyman&rsquo;s widow in
+distress,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;it was the impulse of a moment,
+I could not help it, and, dear Lily, I hope it will not inconvenience
+you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;If papa will be kind enough to wait for this pound till Michaelmas,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I would wait willingly,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I will
+not see you cheated.&nbsp; How much does she owe you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The commissions came to six pounds three,&rsquo; said Lily, looking
+down.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you forget the old debt.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; whispered Lily; but Mr. Mohun asked what Jane
+had said, and Claude repeated her speech, upon which he inquired, &lsquo;What
+old debt?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Papa,&rsquo; said Emily, in her most candid tone, &lsquo;I do
+not know what I should have done but for Lily&rsquo;s kindness.&nbsp;
+Really, I cannot get on with my present allowance; being the eldest,
+so many expenses come upon me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then am I to understand,&rsquo; replied Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;that
+your foolish vanity has led you to encroach on your sister&rsquo;s kindness,
+and to borrow of her what you had no reasonable hope of repaying?&nbsp;
+Again, Lily, what does she owe you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Emily felt the difference between the sharp, curious eyes with which
+Jane regarded her, and the sorrowful downcast looks of Lily, who replied,
+&lsquo;The old debt is four pounds, but that does not signify.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well,&rsquo; resumed her father, &lsquo;I cannot blame you for
+your good-nature, though an older person might have acted otherwise.&nbsp;
+You must have managed wonderfully well, to look always so well dressed
+with only half your proper income.&nbsp; Here is the amount of the debt.&nbsp;
+Is it right?&nbsp; And, Lily, one thing more; I wish to thank you for
+what you have done towards keeping this house in order.&nbsp; You have
+worked hard, and endured much, and from all I can gather, you have prevented
+much mischief.&nbsp; Much has unfairly been thrown upon you, and you
+have well and steadily done your duty.&nbsp; For you, Emily, I have
+more to say to you, but I shall not enter on it at present, for it is
+late.&nbsp; You had better get ready, or you will keep the others waiting.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not think I can go,&rsquo; sighed Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are wanted,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun.&nbsp; &lsquo;I do not
+think your aunt would like Florence to go without you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily had trembled as much under her father&rsquo;s praise as Emily under
+his blame.&nbsp; She did not feel as if his commendation was merited,
+and longed to tell him of her faults and follies, but this was no fit
+time, and she hastened to prepare for her expedition, her spirits scarcely
+in time for a party of pleasure.&nbsp; Jane talked about the 30th, and
+asked questions about London, all the way to Raynham, and both Emily
+and Lily were glad to join in her chatter, in hopes of relieving their
+own embarrassment.<br>
+<br>
+On arriving at the place of meeting they found Lady Florence watching
+for them.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am glad you are come,&rsquo; said she, &lsquo;Rotherwood will
+always set out either too soon or too late, and this time it was too
+soon, so here we have been full a quarter of an hour, but he does not
+care.&nbsp; There he is, quite engrossed with his book.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood was standing by the counter, reading so intently that
+he did not see his cousins&rsquo; arrival.&nbsp; When they entered he
+just looked up, shook hands, asked after Ada, and went on reading.&nbsp;
+Lily began looking for some books for the school, which she had long
+wished for, and was now able to purchase; Emily sat down in a melancholy,
+abstracted mood, and Florence and Jane stood together talking.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know you are all to come early,&rsquo; said the former, &lsquo;I
+do not know how we should manage without you.&nbsp; Rotherwood insists
+on having everything the same day - poor people first, and gentry and
+farmers altogether.&nbsp; Mamma does not like it, and I expect we shall
+be dreadfully tired; but he says he will not have the honest poor men
+put out for the fashionables; and you know we are all to dance with
+everybody.&nbsp; But Jenny, who is this crossing the street?&nbsp; Look,
+you have an eye for oddities.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Fitchett, the subscription-hunter,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She is actually coming to hunt us.&nbsp; I believe I have my
+purse.&nbsp; Oh! Emily is to be the first victim.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Miss Fitchett advanced to Emily, and saying that she believed she had
+the honour to address Miss Mohun, began to tell her that her friend
+having been prematurely informed of her small efforts, had with a noble
+spirit of independence begged that the subscription might not be continued,
+and that what had already been given might be returned, and she rejoiced
+in this opportunity of making the explanation.&nbsp; But Miss Fitchett
+could not bear to relinquish the five-pound note, and added, that perhaps
+Miss Mohun might not object to apply her subscription to some other
+object, the Dorcas Society for instance.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, I have no interest in the Dorcas Society,&rsquo; said
+Emily; a reply which brought upon her a full account of all its aims
+and objects; and as still her polite looks spoke nothing of assent,
+Miss Fitchett went on with a string of other societies, speaking the
+louder and the more eagerly in the hope of attracting the attention
+of the young marquis and his sister.&nbsp; Emily was easily overwhelmed
+with words, and not thinking it lady-like to claim her money, yet feeling
+that none of these societies were fit objects for it, she stood confused
+and irresolute, unwilling either to consent or refuse.&nbsp; Jane, perceiving
+her difficulty, turned to Lord Rotherwood, and rousing him from his
+book, explained Emily&rsquo;s distress in a few words, and sent him
+to her rescue.&nbsp; He stepped forward just as Miss Fitchett, taking
+silence for consent, was proceeding to thank Emily; &lsquo;I think you
+misunderstand Miss Mohun,&rsquo; said he.&nbsp; &lsquo;Since her subscription
+is not needed by the person for whom it was intended, she would be glad
+to have it restored.&nbsp; She does not wish to encourage any unauthorised
+societies.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Boy as he was, in appearance still more than in age, there was a dignity
+in his manner which, together with the principle on which he spoke,
+overawed Miss Fitchett even more than his rank.&nbsp; She only said,
+&lsquo;Oh! my lord, I beg your pardon.&nbsp; Certainly, only - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The note was placed in Emily&rsquo;s hands, and with a bow from Lord
+Rotherwood, she retreated, murmuring to herself the remonstrance which
+she had not courage to bestow upon the Marquis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, thank you, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily; &lsquo;you
+have done me a great service.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well done, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Florence; &lsquo;you have
+given the old lady something to reflect upon.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Made a public announcement of principle,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I was determined to give her a reason,&rsquo; said the Marquis,
+laughing, &lsquo;but I assure you I felt like the stork with its head
+in the wolf&rsquo;s mouth, I thought she would give me a screed of doctrine.&nbsp;
+How came you to let your property get unto her clutches, Emily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was a subscription for Mrs. Aylmer,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Our curate&rsquo;s wife!&rsquo; cried he with a start; &lsquo;how
+was it?&nbsp; Florence, did you know anything?&nbsp; I thought she was
+in London.&nbsp; Why were we in the dark?&nbsp; Tell me all.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;All I know is that she is living somewhere in Raynham, and last
+week there was a paper here to say that she was in want of the means
+of fitting out her son for India.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, yes, Johnny, I know my father did get a promise for him
+- well!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is all I know, except that she does not choose to be a beggar.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Poor Mrs. Aylmer! shameful neglect! she shall not be ill-used
+any longer, I will find her out this instant.&nbsp; Don&rsquo;t wait
+for me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+And after a few words to Mr. Adams, off he went, walking as fast as
+he could, and leaving the young ladies not without fear of another invasion.&nbsp;
+Soon, however, the brothers came in, and presently after Mrs. Weston
+appeared.&nbsp; It was agreed that Lord Rotherwood should be left to
+his own devices, and they set out for the concert-room.&nbsp; Poor Florence
+lost much pleasure in disappointment at his non-appearance, but when
+the concert was over they found him sitting in the carriage, reading.&nbsp;
+As soon as they appeared he sprang out, and came to meet them, pouring
+rapidly out a history of his adventures.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you have found them, and what can be done for them?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Everything ought to be done, but Mrs. Aylmer has a spirit of
+independence.&nbsp; That foolish woman&rsquo;s advertisement was unknown
+to her till Emily&rsquo;s five pounds came in, so fine a nest-egg that
+she could not help cackling, whereupon Mrs. Aylmer insisted on having
+every farthing returned.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Can she provide the boy&rsquo;s outfit?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She says so, or rather that her daughter can, but I shall see
+about that.&nbsp; It is worth while to be of age.&nbsp; Imagine!&nbsp;
+That bank which failed was the end of my father&rsquo;s legacy.&nbsp;
+They must have lived on a fraction of nothing!&nbsp; Edward went to
+sea.&nbsp; Miss Aylmer went out as a governess.&nbsp; Now she is at
+home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Aylmer!&rsquo; exclaimed Miss Weston, &lsquo;I know she
+was a clergyman&rsquo;s daughter.&nbsp; Do you know the name of the
+family she lived with?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was it Grant?&rsquo; said William.&nbsp; &lsquo;I remember hearing
+of her going to some Grants.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It was,&rsquo; said Alethea; &lsquo;she must be the same.&nbsp;
+Is she at home?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, &lsquo;and you may soon see
+her, for I mean to have them all to stay at the castle as soon as our
+present visitors are gone.&nbsp; My mother and Florence shall call upon
+them on Friday.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I have not found out what brought
+them back to Raynham.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you lived at Beechcroft all your life, and never discovered
+that there is a grammar-school at Raynham, with special privileges for
+the sons of clergymen of the diocese?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+A few more words, and the cousins parted; Emily by no means sorry that
+she had been obliged to go to Raynham.&nbsp; She tendered the five-pound
+note to her father, but he desired her to wait till Friday, and then
+to bring him a full account of her expenditure of the year.&nbsp; Her
+irregular ways made this almost impossible, especially as in the present
+state of affairs she wished to avoid a private conference with either
+Lily or Jane.&nbsp; She was glad that an invitation to dine and sleep
+at the castle on Wednesday would save her from the peril of having to
+talk to Lily in the evening.&nbsp; Reginald came home on Tuesday, to
+the great joy of all the party, and especially to that of Phyllis.&nbsp;
+This little maiden was more puzzled by the events that had taken place
+than conscious of the feeling which she had once thought must be so
+delightful.&nbsp; She could scarcely help perceiving that every one
+was much more kind to her than usual, especially Claude and Lily, and
+Lord Rotherwood said things which she could not at all understand.&nbsp;
+Her observation to Reginald was, &lsquo;Was it not lucky I had a cough
+on Twelfth Day, or Claude would not have told me what to do about gunpowder?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Reginald troubled Phyllis much by declaring that nothing should induce
+him to kiss his nephew, and she was terribly shocked by the indifference
+with which Eleanor treated his neglect, even when it branched out into
+abuse of babies in general, and in particular of Henry&rsquo;s bald
+head and turned-up nose.<br>
+<br>
+In the evening of Wednesday Phyllis was sitting with Ada in the nursery,
+when Reginald came up with the news that the party downstairs were going
+to practise country dances.&nbsp; Eleanor was to play, Claude was to
+dance with Lily, and Frank with Jane, and he himself wanted Phyllis
+for a partner.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&rsquo; sighed Ada, &lsquo;I wish I was there to dance with
+you, Redgie!&nbsp; What are the others doing?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Maurice is reading, and William went out as soon as dinner was
+over; make haste, Phyl.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Don&rsquo;t go,&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;I shall be alone all
+to-morrow, and I want you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;do you think she is to
+sit poking here all day, playing with those foolish London things of
+yours?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But I am ill, Redgie.&nbsp; I wish you would not be cross.&nbsp;
+Everybody is cross to me now, I think.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will stay, Ada,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;You know,
+Redgie, I dance like a cow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You dance better than nothing,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;I
+must have you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But you are not ill, Redgie,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+He went down in displeasure, and was forced to consider Sir Maurice&rsquo;s
+picture as his partner, until presently the door opened, and Phyllis
+appeared.&nbsp; &lsquo;So you have thought better of it,&rsquo; cried
+he.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;I cannot come to dance, but Ada
+wants you to leave off playing.&nbsp; She says the music makes her unhappy,
+for it makes her think about to-morrow.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rather selfish, Miss Ada,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Stay here, Phyllis, now you are come,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun,
+&lsquo;I will go and speak to Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis was now captured, and made to take her place opposite to Reginald;
+but more than once she sighed under the apprehension that Ada was receiving
+a lecture.&nbsp; This was the case; and very little did poor Ada comprehend
+the change that had taken place in the conduct of almost every one towards
+her; she did not perceive that she was particularly naughty, and yet
+she had suddenly become an object of blame, instead of a spoiled pet.&nbsp;
+Formerly her little slynesses had been unnoticed, and her overbearing
+ways towards Phyllis scarcely remarked, but now they were continually
+mentioned as grievous faults.&nbsp; Esther, her especial friend and
+comforter, was scarcely allowed to come into the same room with her;
+Hannah treated her with a kind of grave, silent respect, far from the
+familiarity which she liked; little Henry&rsquo;s nurse never would
+talk to her, and if it had not been for Phyllis, she would have been
+very miserable.&nbsp; On Phyllis, however, she repaid herself for all
+the mortifications that she received, while the sweet-tempered little
+girl took all her fretfulness and exactions as results of her illness,
+and went on pitying her, and striving to please her.<br>
+<br>
+When Phyllis came up to wish her good-night, she was received with an
+exclamation at her lateness in a peevish tone: &lsquo;Yes, I am late,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis, merrily, &lsquo;but we had not done dancing till tea-time,
+and then Eleanor was so kind as to say I might sit up to have some tea
+with them.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! and you quite forgot how tiresome it is up here, with nobody
+to speak to,&rsquo; said Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;How cross they were not to
+stop the music when I said it made me miserable!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude said it was selfish to want to stop five people&rsquo;s
+pleasure for one,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But I am so ill,&rsquo; said Ada.&nbsp; &lsquo;If Claude was
+as uncomfortable as I am, he would know how to be sorry for me.&nbsp;
+And only think - Phyl, what are you doing?&nbsp; Do not you know I do
+not like the moonlight to come on me.&nbsp; It is like a great face
+laughing at me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, I like the moon so much!&rsquo; said Phyllis, creeping
+behind the curtain to look out, &lsquo;there is something so white and
+bright in it; when it comes on the bed-clothes, it makes me go to sleep,
+thinking about white robes, oh! and all sorts of nice things.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I can&rsquo;t bear the moon,&rsquo; said Ada; &lsquo;do not you
+know, Maurice says that the moon makes the people go mad, and that is
+the reason it is called lunacy, after <i>la lune</i>?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I asked Miss Weston about that,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;because
+of the Psalm, and she said it was because it was dangerous to go to
+sleep in the open air in hot countries.&nbsp; Ada, I wish you could
+see now.&nbsp; There is the great round moon in the middle of the sky,
+and the sky such a beautiful colour, and a few such great bright stars,
+and the trees so dark, and the white lilies standing up on the black
+pond, and the lawn all white with dew! what a fine day it will be to-morrow!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A fine day for you!&rsquo; said Ada, &lsquo;but only think of
+poor me all alone by myself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You will have baby,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Baby - if he could talk it would be all very well.&nbsp; It is
+just like the cross people in books.&nbsp; Here I shall lie and cry
+all the time, while you are dancing about as merry as can be.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Ada, you will not do that,&rsquo; said Phyllis, with
+tears in her eyes.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is baby with all his pretty ways,
+and you may teach him to say Aunt Ada, and I will bring you in numbers
+of flowers, and there is your new doll, and all the pretty things that
+came from London, and the new book of Fairy Tales, and all sorts - oh!
+no, do not cry, Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But I shall, for I shall think of you dancing, and not caring
+for me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do care, Ada - why do you say that I do not?&nbsp; I cannot
+bear it, Ada, dear Ada.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You don&rsquo;t, or you would not go and leave me alone.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then, Ada, I will not go,&rsquo; said Phyllis; &lsquo;I could
+not bear to leave you crying here all alone.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, dear good Phyl, but I think you will not have much
+loss.&nbsp; You know you do not like dancing, and you cannot do it well,
+and they will be sure to laugh at you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And I daresay Redgie and Marianne will tell us all about it,&rsquo;
+said Phyllis, sighing.&nbsp; &lsquo;I should rather like to have seen
+it, but they will tell us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then do you promise to stay? - there&rsquo;s a dear,&rsquo; said
+Ada.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes,&rsquo; said Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Cousin Robert is coming
+in, and that will be very nice, and I hope he will not look as he did
+the day the gunpowder went off - oh, dear!&rsquo;&nbsp; She went back
+to the window to get rid of her tears unperceived.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ah,&rsquo;
+cried she, &lsquo;there is some one in the garden!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;A man!&rsquo; screamed Ada - &lsquo;a thief, a robber - call
+somebody!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Phyllis, laughing, &lsquo;it is only William;
+he has been out all the evening, and now papa has come out to speak
+to him, and they are walking up and down together.&nbsp; I wonder whether
+he has been sitting with Cousin Robert or at Broomhill!&nbsp; Well,
+good-night, Ada.&nbsp; Here comes Hannah.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXV: THE THIRTIETH OF JULY<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The heir, with roses in his shoes,<br>
+That night might village partner choose.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The 30th of July was bright and clear, and Phyllis was up early, gathering
+flowers, which, with the help of Jane&rsquo;s nimble fingers, she made
+into elegant little bouquets for each of her sisters, and for Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How is this?&rsquo; said Mr. Hawkesworth, pretending to look
+disconsolate, &lsquo;am I to sing &ldquo;Fair Phyllida flouts me,&rdquo;
+or why is my button-hole left destitute?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Perhaps that is for you on the side-table,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! no,&rsquo; said Phyllis, &lsquo;those are some Provence roses
+for Miss Weston and Marianne, because Miss Weston likes those, and they
+have none at Broomhill.&nbsp; Redgie is going to take care of them.&nbsp;
+I will get you a nosegay, Frank.&nbsp; I did not know you liked it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+She started up.&nbsp; &lsquo;How prudent, Phyllis,&rsquo; said Eleanor,
+&lsquo;not to have put on your muslin frock yet.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I am not going,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not going!&rsquo; was the general outcry.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, poor Ada cries so about being left at home with only baby,
+that I cannot bear it, and so I promised to stay.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away went Phyllis, and Reginald exclaimed, &lsquo;Well, she shall not
+be served so.&nbsp; I will go and tell Ada so this instant.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Off he rushed, and putting in his head at the nursery door, shouted,
+&lsquo;Ada, I am come to tell you that Phyl is not to be made your black-a-moor
+slave!&nbsp; She shall go, that is settled.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Down he went with equal speed, without waiting for an answer, and arrived
+while Eleanor was saying that she thought Ada was provided with amusement
+with the baby, her playthings, and books, and that Mr. Devereux had
+promised to make her a visit.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Anybody ought to stay at home rather than Phyllis,&rsquo; said
+Lily; &lsquo;I think I had better stay.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no, Lily,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;you are more wanted than
+I am; you are really worth talking to and dancing with; I had much better
+be at home.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I forgot!&rsquo; exclaimed William.&nbsp; &lsquo;Mrs. Weston
+desired me to say that she is not going, and she will take care of Ada.&nbsp;
+Mr. Weston will set her down at half-past ten, and take up one of us.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will be that one,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;I have not seen
+Miss Weston since I came home.&nbsp; I meant to walk to Broomhill after
+dinner yesterday, only the Baron stopped me about that country-dance.&nbsp;
+Last Christmas I made her promise to dance with me to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily had hoped to be that one, but she did not oppose Reginald, and
+turned to listen to Eleanor, who was saying, &lsquo;Let us clearly understand
+how every one is to go, it will save a great deal of confusion.&nbsp;
+You and Jane, and Maurice, go in the phaeton, do not you?&nbsp; And
+who drives you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;William, I believe,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Claude goes
+earlier, so he rides the gray.&nbsp; Then there is the chariot for you
+and Frank, and papa and Phyllis.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+So it was proposed, but matters turned out otherwise.&nbsp; The phaeton,
+which, with a promoted cart-horse, was rather a slow conveyance, was
+to set out first, but the whole of the freight was not ready in time.&nbsp;
+The ladies were in the hall as soon as it came to the door, but neither
+of the gentlemen were forthcoming.&nbsp; Reginald, who was wandering
+in the hall, was sent to summon them; but down he came in great wrath.&nbsp;
+Maurice had declared that he was not ready, and they must wait for him
+till he had tied his neckcloth, which Reginald opined would take three
+quarters of an hour, as he was doing it scientifically, and William
+had said that he was not going in the gig at all, that he had told Wat
+Greenwood to drive, and that Reginald must go instead of Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+In confirmation of the startling fact Wat, who had had a special invitation
+from the Marquis, was sitting in the phaeton in his best black velvet
+coat.&nbsp; Jane only hoped that Emily would not look out of the window,
+or she would certainly go into fits on seeing them arrive with the old
+phaeton, the thick-legged cart-horse, and Wat Greenwood for a driver;
+and Reginald, after much growling at Maurice, much bawling at William&rsquo;s
+door, and, as Jane said, romping and roaring in all parts of the house,
+was forced to be resigned to his fate, and all the way to Hetherington
+held a very amusing conversation with his good-natured friend the keeper.<br>
+<br>
+They were overtaken, nodded to, and passed by the rest of their party.&nbsp;
+Maurice had been reduced to ride the pony, William came with the &lsquo;Westons,
+and the chariot load was just as had been before arranged.<br>
+<br>
+Claude came out to meet them at the door, saying, &lsquo;I need not
+have gone so early.&nbsp; What do you think has become of the hero of
+the day?&nbsp; Guess, I will just give you this hint,<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&ldquo;Though on pleasure he was bent, he had no selfish mind.&rdquo;&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! the Aylmers, I suppose,&rsquo; said Lilias.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Right, Lily, he heard something at dinner yesterday about a school
+for clergymen&rsquo;s sons, which struck him as likely to suit young
+Devereux Aylmer, and off he set at seven o&rsquo;clock this morning
+to Raynham, to breakfast with Mrs. Aylmer, and talk to her about it.&nbsp;
+Never let me hear again that he is engrossed with his own affairs!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And why is he in such a hurry?&rsquo; asked Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;&rsquo;Tis his nature,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;besides Travers,
+who mentioned this school, goes away to-morrow.&nbsp; My aunt is in
+a fine fright lest he should not come back in time.&nbsp; Did not you
+hear her telling papa so in the drawing-room?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There he is, riding up to the door,&rsquo; said Phyllis, who
+had joined them in the hall.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood stopped for a few
+moments at the door to give some directions to the servants, and then
+came quickly in.&nbsp; &lsquo;Ah, there you are! - What time is it?&nbsp;
+It is all right, Claude - Devereux is just the right age.&nbsp; I asked
+him a few questions this morning, and he will stand a capital examination.&nbsp;
+Ha, Phyl, I am glad to see you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish you many happy returns of the day, Cousin Rotherwood.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you, Phyl, we had better see how we get through one such
+day before we wish it to return.&nbsp; Are the rest come?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He went on into the drawing-room, and hastily informing his mother that
+he had sent the carriage to fetch Miss Aylmer and her brothers to the
+feast, called Claude to come out on the lawn to look at the preparations.&nbsp;
+The bowling-green was to serve as drawing-room, and at one end was pitched
+an immense tent where the dinner was to be.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I say, Claude,&rsquo; said he in his quickest and most confused
+way, &lsquo;I depend upon you for one thing.&nbsp; Do not let the Baron
+be too near me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The Baron of Beef?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, the Baron of Beechcroft.&nbsp; If you wish my speech to be
+<i>radara tadara, </i>put him where I can imagine that he hears me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very well,&rsquo; said Claude, laughing; &lsquo;have you any
+other commands?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No - yes, I have though.&nbsp; You know what we settled about
+the toasts.&nbsp; Hunt up old Farmer Elderfield as soon as he comes,
+and do not frighten him.&nbsp; If you could sit next to him and make
+him get up at the right time, it would be best.&nbsp; Tell him I will
+not let any one propose my health but my great-grandfather&rsquo;s tenant.&nbsp;
+You will manage it best.&nbsp; And tell Frank Hawkesworth, and Mr. Weston,
+or some of them, to manage so that the gentry may not sit together in
+a herd, two or three together would be best.&nbsp; Mind, Claude, I depend
+on you for being attentive to all the damsels.&nbsp; I cannot be everywhere
+at once, and I see your great Captain will be of no use to me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here news was brought that the labourers had begun to arrive, and the
+party went to the walnut avenue, where the feast was spread.&nbsp; It
+was pleasant to see so many poor families enjoying their excellent dinner;
+but perhaps the pleasantest sight was the lord of the feast speaking
+to each poor man with all his bright good-natured cordiality.&nbsp;
+Mr. Mohun was surprised to see how well he knew them all, considering
+how short a time he had been among them, and Lilias found Florence rise
+in her estimation, when she perceived that the inside of the Hetherington
+cottages were not unknown to her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you know, Florence,&rsquo; said she, as they walked back to
+the house together, &lsquo;I did you great injustice?&nbsp; I never
+expected you to know or care about poor people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No more I did till this winter,&rsquo; said Florence; &lsquo;I
+could not do anything, you know, before.&nbsp; Indeed, I do not do much
+now, only Rotherwood has made me go into the school now and then; and
+when first we came, he made it his especial request that whenever a
+poor woman came to ask for anything I would go and speak to her.&nbsp;
+And so I could not help being interested about those I knew.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How odd it is that we never talked about it,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I never talk of it,&rsquo; said Florence, &lsquo;because mamma
+never likes to hear of my going into cottages with Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+Besides, somehow I thought you did it as a matter of duty, and not of
+pleasure.&nbsp; Oh!&nbsp; Rotherwood, is that you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The Aylmers are come,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, drawing her
+arm into his, &lsquo;and I want you to come and speak to them, Florence
+and Lily; I can&rsquo;t find any one; all the great elders have vanished.&nbsp;
+You know them of old, do not you, Lily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Of old?&nbsp; Yes; but of so old that I do not suppose they will
+know me.&nbsp; You must introduce me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He hastened them to the drawing-room, where they found Miss Aylmer,
+a sensible, lady-like looking person, and two brothers, of about fifteen
+and thirteen.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, Miss Aylmer, I have brought you two old friends; so old,
+that they think you have forgotten them - my cousin Lilias, and my sister
+Florence.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We have not forgotten you, Miss Aylmer,&rsquo; said Florence,
+warmly shaking hands with her.&nbsp; &lsquo;You seem so entirely to
+belong to Hetherington that I scarcely knew the place without you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+There was something that particularly pleased Lily in the manner in
+which Miss Aylmer answered.&nbsp; Florence talked a little while, and
+then proposed to adjourn to the supplementary drawing-room - the lawn
+- where the company were already assembling.<br>
+<br>
+Florence was soon called off to receive some other guest, and Lilias
+spent a considerable time in sitting under a tree talking to Miss Aylmer,
+whom she found exceedingly pleasant and agreeable, remembering all that
+had happened during their former intercourse, and interested in everything
+that was going on.&nbsp; Lily was much amused when her companion asked
+her who that gentleman was - &lsquo;that tall, thin young man, with
+dark hair, whom she had seen once or twice speaking to Lord Rotherwood?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The tall gentleman advanced, spoke to Miss Aylmer, told Lily that the
+world was verging towards the tent, and giving one arm to her and the
+other to Miss Aylmer, took that direction.&nbsp; In the meantime Phyllis
+had been walking about with her eldest sister, and wondering what had
+become of all the others.&nbsp; In process of time she found herself
+seated on a high bench in the tent, with a most beautiful pink-and-white
+sugar temple on the table before her.&nbsp; She was between Eleanor
+and Frank.&nbsp; All along one side of the table was a row of faces
+which she had never seen before, and she gazed at them in search of
+some well-known countenance.&nbsp; At last Mr. Weston caught her eye,
+and nodded to her.&nbsp; Next to him she saw Marianne, then Reginald;
+on the other side Alethea and William.&nbsp; A little tranquillised
+by seeing that every one was not lost, she had courage to eat some cold
+chicken, to talk to Frank about the sugar temple, and to make an inventory
+in her mind of the smartest bonnets for Ada&rsquo;s benefit.&nbsp; She
+was rather unhappy at not having found out when grace was said before
+dinner, and she made Eleanor promise to tell her in time to stand up
+after dinner.&nbsp; She could not, however, hear much, though warned
+in time, and by this time more at ease and rather enjoying herself than
+otherwise.&nbsp; Now Eleanor told her to listen, for Cousin Rotherwood
+was going to speak.&nbsp; She listened, but knew not what was said,
+until Mr. Hawkesworth told her it was Church and Queen.&nbsp; What Church
+and Queen had to do with Cousin Rotherwood&rsquo;s birthday she could
+not imagine, and she laid it up in her mind to ask Claude.&nbsp; The
+next time she was told to listen she managed to hear more.&nbsp; By
+the help of Eleanor&rsquo;s directions, she found out the speaker, an
+aged farmer, in a drab greatcoat, his head bald, excepting a little
+silky white hair, which fell over the collar of his coat.&nbsp; It was
+Mr. Elderfield, the oldest tenant on the estate, and he was saying in
+a slow deliberate tone that he was told he was to propose his lordship&rsquo;s
+health.&nbsp; It was a great honour for the like of him, and his lordship
+must excuse him if he did not make a fine speech.&nbsp; All he could
+say was, that he had lived eighty-three years on the estate, and held
+his farm nearly sixty years; he had seen three marquises of Rotherwood
+besides his present lordship, and he had always found them very good
+landlords.&nbsp; He hoped and believed his lordship was like his fathers,
+and he was sure he could do no better than tread in their steps.&nbsp;
+He proposed the health of Lord Rotherwood, and many happy returns of
+the day to him.<br>
+<br>
+The simplicity and earnestness of the old man&rsquo;s tones were appreciated
+by all, and the tremendous cheer, which almost terrified Phyllis, was
+a fit assent to the hearty good wishes of the old farmer.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Now comes the trial!&rsquo; whispered Claude to Lilias, after
+he had vehemently contributed his proportion to the noise.&nbsp; Lilias
+saw that his colour had risen, as much as if he had to make a speech
+himself, and he earnestly examined the coronet on his fork, while every
+other eye was fixed on the Marquis.&nbsp; Eloquence was not to be expected;
+but, at least, Lord Rotherwood spoke clearly and distinctly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My friends,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;you must not expect much of
+a speech from me; I can only thank you for your kindness, say how glad
+I am to see you here, and tell you of my earnest desire that I may not
+prove myself unworthy to be compared with my forefathers.&rsquo;&nbsp;
+Here was a pause.&nbsp; Claude&rsquo;s hand shook, and Lily saw how
+anxious he was, but in another moment the Marquis went on smoothly.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Now, I must ask you to drink the health of a gentleman who has
+done his utmost to compensate for the loss which we sustained nine years
+ago, and to whom I owe any good intentions which I may bring to the
+management of this property.&nbsp; I beg leave to propose the health
+of my uncle, Mr. Mohun, of Beechcroft.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Claude was much surprised, for his cousin had never given him a hint
+of his intention.&nbsp; It was a moment of great delight to all the
+young Mohuns when the cheer rose as loud and hearty as for the young
+lord himself, and Phyllis smiled, and wondered, when she saw her papa
+rise to make answer.&nbsp; He said that he could not attempt to answer
+Lord Rotherwood, as he had not heard what he said, but that he was much
+gratified by his having thought of him on this occasion, and by the
+goodwill which all had expressed.&nbsp; This was the last speech that
+was interesting; Lady Rotherwood&rsquo;s health and a few more toasts
+followed, and the party then left the tent for the lawn, where the cool
+air was most refreshing, and the last beams of the evening sun were
+lighting the tops of the trees.<br>
+<br>
+The dancing was now to begin, and this was the time for Claude to be
+useful.&nbsp; He had spent so much time at home, and had accompanied
+his father so often in his rides, that he knew every one, and he was
+inclined to make every exertion in the cause of his cousin, and on this
+occasion seemed to have laid aside his indolence and disinclination
+to speak to strangers.<br>
+<br>
+Lady Florence was also indefatigable, darting about, with a wonderful
+perception who everybody was, and with whom each would like to dance.&nbsp;
+She seized upon little Devereux Aylmer for her own partner before any
+one else had time to ask her, and carried him about the lawn, hunting
+up and pairing other shy people.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why, Reginald, what are you about?&nbsp; You can manage a country-dance.&nbsp;
+Make haste; where is your partner?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I meant to dance with Miss Weston,&rsquo; said Reginald, piteously.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Weston?&nbsp; Here she is.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is only Marianne,&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; Miss Weston is dancing with William.&nbsp; Marianne,
+will you accept my apologies for this discourteous cousin of mine?&nbsp;
+I am perfectly horror-struck.&nbsp; There, Redgie, take her with a good
+grace; you will never have a better partner.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Marianne was only too glad to have Reginald presented to her, ungracious
+as he was, but the poor little couple met with numerous disasters.&nbsp;
+They neither of them knew the way through a country-dance, and were
+almost run over every time they went down the middle; Reginald&rsquo;s
+heels were very inconvenient to his neighbours; so much so, that once
+Claude thought it expedient to admonish him, that dancing was not merely
+an elegant name for football without a ball.&nbsp; Every now and then
+some of their friends gave them a hasty intimation that they were all
+wrong, but that they knew already but too well.&nbsp; At last, just
+when Marianne had turned scarlet with vexation, and Reginald was growing
+so desperate that he had thoughts of running a way, the dance came to
+an end, and Reginald, with very scanty politeness to his partner, rushed
+away to her sister, saying, in rather a reproachful tone, &lsquo;Miss
+Weston, you promised to dance with me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have not forgotten my promise,&rsquo; said Alethea, smiling.<br>
+<br>
+At the same moment Claude hurried up, saying, &lsquo;William, I want
+a partner for Miss Wilkins, of the Wold Farm.&nbsp; Miss Wilkins, let
+me introduce Captain Mohun.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You see I have made the Captain available,&rsquo; said Claude,
+presently after meeting Lord Rotherwood, as he speeded across the lawn.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Have you?&nbsp; I did not think him fair game,&rsquo; said the
+Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Where is your heroine, Claude?&nbsp; I have not
+seen her dancing.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What heroine?&nbsp; What do you mean?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Honest Phyl, of course.&nbsp; Did you think I meant Miss Weston?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With Eleanor, somewhere.&nbsp; Is the next dance a quadrille?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lord Rotherwood ran up the bank to the terraced walks, where the undancing
+part of the company sat or walked about.&nbsp; Soon he spied Phyllis
+standing by Eleanor, looking rather wearied.&nbsp; &lsquo;Phyllis, can
+you dance a quadrille?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis opened her eyes, and Eleanor desired her to answer.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Come, Phyllis, let me see what M. Le Roi has done for you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+He led her away, wondering greatly, and thinking how very good-natured
+Cousin Rotherwood was.<br>
+<br>
+Emily was much surprised to find Phyllis her <i>vis &agrave; vis</i>.&nbsp;
+Emily was very generally known and liked, and had no lack of grand partners,
+but she would have liked to dance with the Marquis.&nbsp; When the quadrille
+was over, she was glad to put herself in his way, by coming up to take
+charge of Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well done, Phyl,&rsquo; said he; &lsquo;no mistakes.&nbsp; You
+must have another dance.&nbsp; Whom shall we find for you?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Emily, &lsquo;you cannot think how
+you gratified us all with your speech.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! I always set my heart on saying something of the kind; but
+I wished I could have dared to add the bride&rsquo;s health.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The bride!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not pretend to have no eyes,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood,
+with a significant glance, which directed Emily&rsquo;s eyes to the
+terrace, where Mr. Mohun and Alethea were walking together in eager
+conversation.<br>
+<br>
+Emily was ready to sink into the earth.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s surmises,
+and the mysterious words of her father, left her no further doubt.&nbsp;
+At this moment some one asked her to dance, and scarcely knowing what
+she did or said, she walked to her place.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood now
+found a partner for Phyllis, and a farmer&rsquo;s daughter for himself.<br>
+<br>
+This dance over, Phyllis&rsquo;s partner did not well know how to dispose
+of her, and she grew rather frightened on finding that none of her sisters
+were in sight.&nbsp; At last she perceived Reginald standing on the
+bank, and made her escape to him.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Redgie, did you see who I have been dancing with?&nbsp; Cousin
+Rotherwood and Claude&rsquo;s grand Oxford friend - Mr. Travers.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is all nonsense,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;Come out
+of this mob of people.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But where is Eleanor?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Somewhere in the midst.&nbsp; They are all absurd together.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What is the matter, Redgie?&rsquo; asked Phyllis, unable to account
+for this extraordinary fit of misanthropy.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Papa and William both driving me about like a dog,&rsquo; said
+Reginald; &lsquo;first I danced with Miss Weston - then she saw that
+woman - that Miss Aylmer - shook hands - talked - and then nothing would
+serve her but to find papa.&nbsp; As soon as the Baron sees me he cries
+out, &ldquo;Why are not you dancing, Redgie?&nbsp; We do not want you!&rdquo;&nbsp;
+Up and down they walk, ever so long, and presently papa turns off, and
+begins talking to Miss Aylmer.&nbsp; Then, of course, I went back to
+Miss Weston, but then up comes William, as savage as one of his Canadian
+bears; he orders me off too, and so here I am!&nbsp; I am sure I am
+not going to ask any one else to dance.&nbsp; Come and walk with me
+in peace, Phyl.&nbsp; Do you see them? - Miss Weston and Marianne under
+that tulip-tree, and the Captain helping them to ice.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Redgie, did you give Miss Weston her nosegay?&nbsp; Some one
+put such beautiful flowers in it, such as I never saw before.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How could I?&nbsp; They sent me off with Lily and Jane.&nbsp;
+I told William I had the flowers in charge, and he said he would take
+care of them.&nbsp; By the bye, Phyl,&rsquo; and Reginald gave a wondrous
+spring, &lsquo;I have it!&nbsp; I have it!&nbsp; I have it!&nbsp; If
+he is not in love with Miss Weston you may call me an ass for the rest
+of my life.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should not like to call you an ass, Redgie,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very likely; but do not make me call you one.&nbsp; Hurrah!&nbsp;
+Now ask Marianne if it is not so.&nbsp; Marianne must know.&nbsp; How
+jolly!&nbsp; I say, Phyl, stay there, and I will fetch Marianne.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Away ran Reginald, and presently returned with Marianne, who was very
+glad to be invited to join Phyllis.&nbsp; She little knew what an examination
+awaited her.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Marianne,&rsquo; began Phyllis, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll tell you what
+- &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, I will do it right,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;you know
+nothing about it, Phyl.&nbsp; Marianne, is not something going on there?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Going on?&rsquo; said Marianne, &lsquo;Alethea is speaking to
+Mrs. Hawkesworth.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Nonsense, I know better, Marianne.&nbsp; I have a suspicion that
+I could tell what the Captain was about yesterday when he walked off
+after dinner.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How very wise you think you look, Reginald!&rsquo; said Marianne,
+laughing heartily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But tell us; do tell us, Marianne,&rsquo; said Phyllis.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Tell you whet?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Whether William is going to marry Miss Weston,&rsquo; said the
+straightforward Phyllis.&nbsp; &lsquo;Redgie says so - only tell us.&nbsp;
+Oh! it would be so nice!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How you blurt it out, Phyl,&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;You
+do not know how those things are managed.&nbsp; Mind, I found it out
+all myself.&nbsp; Just say, Marianne.&nbsp; Am not I right?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know whether I ought to tell,&rsquo; said Marianne.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! then it is all right,&rsquo; said Reginald, &lsquo;and I
+found it out.&nbsp; Now, Marianne, there is a good girl, tell us all
+about it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know I could not say &ldquo;No&rdquo; when you asked me,&rsquo;
+said Marianne; &lsquo;I could not help it really; but pray do not tell
+anybody, or Captain Mohun will not like it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Does any one know?&rsquo; said Reginald.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only ourselves and Mr. Mohun; and I think Lord Rotherwood guesses,
+from something I heard him say to Jane.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To Jane?&rsquo; said Reginald.&nbsp; &lsquo;That is provoking;
+she will think she found it out all herself, and be so conceited!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You need not be afraid,&rsquo; said Marianne, laughing; &lsquo;Jane
+is on a wrong scent.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Jane?&nbsp; Oh! I should like to see her out in her reckonings!&nbsp;
+I should like to have a laugh against her.&nbsp; What does she think,
+Marianne?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! I cannot tell you; it is too bad.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! do; do, pray.&nbsp; You may whisper it if it is too bad for
+Phyllis to hear.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, no,&rsquo; said Marianne; &lsquo;it is nothing but nonsense.&nbsp;
+If you hear it, Phyllis shall too; but mind, you must promise not to
+say anything to anybody, or I do not know what will become of me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, we will not,&rsquo; said Reginald; &lsquo;boys can always
+keep secrets, and I&rsquo;ll engage for Phyl.&nbsp; Now for it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She is in a terrible fright lest it should be Mr. Mohun.&nbsp;
+She got it into her head last autumn, and all I could say would not
+persuade her out of it.&nbsp; Why, she always calls me Aunt Marianne
+when we are alone.&nbsp; Now, Reginald, here comes Maurice.&nbsp; Do
+not say anything, I beg and entreat.&nbsp; It is my secret, you know.&nbsp;
+I daresay you will all be told to-morrow, - indeed, mamma said so, -
+but pray say nothing about me or Jane.&nbsp; It was only settled yesterday
+evening.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+At this moment Maurice came up, with a message that Miss Weston and
+Eleanor were going away, and wanted the little girls.&nbsp; They followed
+him to the tent, which had been cleared of the tables, and lighted up,
+in order that the dancing might continue there.&nbsp; Most of their
+own party were collected at the entrance, watching for them.&nbsp; Lilias
+came up just as they did, and exclaimed in a tone of disappointment,
+on finding them preparing to depart.&nbsp; She had enjoyed herself exceedingly,
+found plenty of partners, and was not in the least tired.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Why should she not stay?&rsquo; said William.&nbsp; &lsquo;Claude
+has engaged to stay to the end of everything, and he may as well drive
+her as ride the gray.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And you, Jenny,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;do you like to
+stay or go?&nbsp; Alethea will make room for you in the pony-carriage,
+or you may go with Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;With Eleanor, if you please,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Already, Jane?&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Are you tired?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane drew her aside.&nbsp; &lsquo;Tired of hearing that I was right
+about what you would not believe.&nbsp; Did you not hear what he called
+her?&nbsp; And Rotherwood has found it out.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is all gossip and mistake,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+Here Jane was called away by Eleanor, and departed with her; Lilias
+went to look for her aunt or Florence, but on the way was asked to dance
+by Mr. Carrington.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I suppose I may congratulate you,&rsquo; said he in one of the
+pauses in the quadrille.<br>
+<br>
+Lily thought it best to misunderstand, and answered, &lsquo;Everything
+has gone off very well.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very.&nbsp; Lord Rotherwood will be a popular man; but my congratulations
+refer to something nearer home.&nbsp; I think you owe us some thanks
+for having brought them into the neighbourhood.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Report is very kind in making arrangements,&rsquo; said Lily,
+with something of Emily&rsquo;s haughty courtesy.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope this is something more than report,&rsquo; said her partner.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, I believe not.&nbsp; I think I may safely say that it
+is at present quite unfounded,&rsquo; said Lily,<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Carrington, much surprised, said no more.<br>
+<br>
+Lily did not believe the report sufficiently to be annoyed by it during
+the excitement and pleasure of the evening, and at present her principal
+vexation was caused by the rapid diminution of the company.&nbsp; She
+and her brother were the very last to depart, even Florence had gone
+to bed, and Lady Rotherwood, looking exceedingly tired, kissed Lily
+at the foot of the stairs, pitied her for going home in an open carriage,
+and wished her good-night in a very weary tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should think you were the fiftieth lady I have handed across
+the hall,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood, as he gave Lily his arm.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But where were the fireworks, Rotherwood?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Countermanded long ago.&nbsp; We have had enough of them.&nbsp;
+Well, I am sorry it is over.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am very glad it is so well over,&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thanks to your exertions, Claude,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;You acted like a hero.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Like a dancing dervish you mean,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It
+will suffice for my whole life.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope you are not quite exhausted.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, thank you.&nbsp; I have turned over a new leaf.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Talking of new leaves,&rsquo; said the Marquis, &lsquo;I always
+had a presentiment that Emily&rsquo;s government would come to a crisis
+to-day.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do you think it has?&rsquo; said Claude.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Trust my word, you will hear great news to-morrow.&nbsp; And
+that reminds me - can you come here to-morrow morning?&nbsp; Travers
+is going - I drive him to meet the coach at the town, and you were talking
+of wanting to see the new windows in the cathedral: it will be a good
+opportunity.&nbsp; And dine here afterwards to talk over the adventures.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Thank you - that last I cannot do.&nbsp; The Baron was saying
+it would be the first time of having us all together.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very well, besides the great news.&nbsp; I wish I was going back
+with you; it is a tame conclusion, only to go to bed.&nbsp; If I was
+but to be on the scene of action to-morrow.&nbsp; Tell the Baron that
+- no, use your influence to get me invited to dinner on Saturday - I
+really want to speak to him.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very well,&rsquo; said Claude, &lsquo;I&rsquo;ll do my best.&nbsp;
+Good-night.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Good-night,&rsquo; said the Marquis.&nbsp; &lsquo;You have both
+done wonders.&nbsp; Still, I wish it was to come over again.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Few people would say so,&rsquo; said Lily, as they drove off.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Few would say so if they thought so,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;I have been quite admiring the way Rotherwood has gone on - enjoying
+the fun as if he was nobody - just as Reginald might, making other people
+happy, and making no secret of his satisfaction in it all.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Very free from affectation and nonsense,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;as
+William said of him last Christmas.&nbsp; You were in a fine fright
+about his speech, Claude.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;More than I ought to have been.&nbsp; I should have known that
+he is too simple-minded and straightforward to say anything but just
+what he ought.&nbsp; What a nice person that Miss Aylmer is.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Is not she, Claude?&nbsp; I was very glad you had her for a neighbour.&nbsp;
+Happy the children who have her for a governess.&nbsp; How sensible
+and gentle she seems.&nbsp; The Westons - But oh!&nbsp; Claude, tell
+me one thing, did you hear - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Well, what?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am ashamed to say.&nbsp; That preposterous report about papa.&nbsp;
+Why, Rotherwood himself seems to believe it, and Mr. Carrington began
+to congratulate - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The public has bestowed so many ladies on the Baron, that I wonder
+it is not tired,&rsquo; said Claude.&nbsp; &lsquo;It is time it should
+patronise William instead.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rotherwood is not the public,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and he
+is the last person to say anything impertinent of papa.&nbsp; And I
+myself heard papa call her Alethea, which he never used to do.&nbsp;
+Claude, what do you think?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+After a long pause Claude slowly replied, &lsquo;Think?&nbsp; Why, I
+think Miss Weston must be a person of great courage.&nbsp; She begins
+the world as a grandmother, to say nothing of her eldest daughter and
+son being considerably her seniors.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not believe it,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;Do you, Claude?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I cannot make up my mind - it is too amazing.&nbsp; My hair is
+still standing on end.&nbsp; When it comes down I may be able to tell
+you something.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Such were the only answers that Lily could extract from him.&nbsp; He
+did not sufficiently disbelieve the report to treat it with scorn, yet
+he did not sufficiently credit it to resign himself to such a state
+of things.<br>
+<br>
+On coming home Lily found Emily and Jane in her room, eagerly discussing
+the circumstances which, to their prejudiced eyes, seemed strong confirmation.&nbsp;
+While their tongues were in full career the door opened and Eleanor
+appeared.&nbsp; She told them it was twelve o&rsquo;clock, turned Jane
+out of the room, and made Emily and Lily promise not to utter another
+syllable that night.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+CHAPTER XXVI: THE CRISIS<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;&ldquo;Is this your care of the nest?&rdquo; cried he,<br>
+&ldquo;It comes of your gadding abroad,&rdquo; said she.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+To the consternation of the disconsolate damsels, the first news they
+heard the next morning was that Mr. Mohun was gone to breakfast at Broomhill,
+and the intelligence was received by Frank Hawkesworth with a smile
+which they thought perfectly malicious.&nbsp; Frank, William, and Reginald
+talked a little at breakfast about the <i>f&ecirc;te</i>, but no one
+joined them, and Claude looked so grave that Eleanor was convinced that
+he had a headache, and vainly tried to persuade him to stay at home,
+instead of setting off to Devereux Castle immediately after breakfast.<br>
+<br>
+The past day had not been spent in vain by Ada.&nbsp; Mrs. Weston had
+led her by degrees to open her heart to her, had made her perceive the
+real cause of her father&rsquo;s displeasure, see her faults, and promise
+to confess them, a promise which she performed with many tears, as soon
+as she saw Eleanor in the morning.<br>
+<br>
+On telling this to Emily Eleanor was surprised to find that she was
+not listened to with much satisfaction.&nbsp; Emily seemed to think
+it a piece of interference on the part of Mrs. Weston, and would not
+allow that it was likely to be the beginning of improvement in Ada.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;The words were put into her mouth,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;and
+they were an easy way of escaping from her present state of disgrace.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;On the contrary,&rsquo; said Eleanor, &lsquo;she seemed to think
+that she justly deserved to be in disgrace.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Did you think so?&rsquo; said Emily, in a careless tone.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You are in a strange mood to-day, Emily,&rsquo; said Eleanor.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Am I?&nbsp; I did not know it.&nbsp; I wonder where Lily is.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily was in her own room, teaching Phyllis.&nbsp; Phyllis was rather
+wild and flighty that morning, scarcely able to command her attention,
+and every now and then bursting into an irrepressible fit of laughter.&nbsp;
+Reginald and Phyllis found it most difficult to avoid betraying Marianne,
+and as soon as luncheon was over, they agreed to set out on a long expedition
+into the woods, where they might enjoy their wonderful secret together.&nbsp;
+Just at this time Mr. Mohun returned.&nbsp; He came into the drawing-room,
+and Lilias, perceiving that the threatened conversation with Emily was
+about to take place, made her escape to her own room, whither she was
+presently followed by Jane, who could not help running after her to
+report the great news that Emily was to be deposed.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I am sure of it,&rsquo; said she.&nbsp; &lsquo;They sent me out
+of the room, but not before I had seen certain symptoms.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is very hard that poor Emily should bear all the blame,&rsquo;
+said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You have managed to escape it very well,&rsquo; said Jane, laughing.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;You have all the thanks and praise.&nbsp; I suppose it is because
+the intimacy with Miss Weston was your work.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I will not believe that nonsense,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Seeing is believing, they say,&rsquo; said Jane.&nbsp; &lsquo;Remember,
+it is not only me.&nbsp; Think of Rotherwood.&nbsp; And Maurice guesses
+it too, and Redgie told him great things were going on.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+While Jane was speaking they heard the drawing-room door open, and in
+another moment Emily came in.<br>
+<br>
+It was true that, as Jane said, she had been deposed.&nbsp; Mr. Mohun
+had begun by saying, &lsquo;Emily, can you bring me such an account
+of your expenditure as I desired?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I scarcely think I can, papa,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp; &lsquo;I
+am sorry to say that my accounts are rather in confusion.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;That is to say, that you have been as irregular in the management
+of your own affairs as you have in mine.&nbsp; Well, I have paid your
+debt to Lilias, and from this time forward I require of you to reduce
+your expenses to the sum which I consider suitable, and which both Eleanor
+and Lilias have found perfectly sufficient.&nbsp; And now, Emily, what
+have you to say for the management of my affairs?&nbsp; Can you offer
+any excuse for your utter failure?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Indeed, papa, I am very sorry I vexed you,&rsquo; said Emily.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Our illness last autumn - different things - I know all has not
+been quite as it should be; but I hope that in future I shall profit
+by past experience.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope so,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;but I am afraid to trust
+the management of the family to you any longer.&nbsp; Your trial is
+over, and you have failed, merely because you would not exert yourself
+from wilful indolence and negligence.&nbsp; You have not attended to
+any one thing committed to your charge - you have placed temptation
+in Esther&rsquo;s way - and allowed Ada to take up habits which will
+not be easily corrected.&nbsp; I should not think myself justified in
+leaving you in charge any longer, lest worse mischief should ensue.&nbsp;
+I wish you to give up the keys to Eleanor for the present.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Mr. Mohun would perhaps have added something if Emily had shown signs
+of repentance, or even of sorrow.&nbsp; The moment was at least as painful
+to him as to her, and he had prepared himself to expect either hysterical
+tears, with vows of amendment, or else an argument on her side that
+she was right and everybody else wrong.&nbsp; But there was nothing
+of the kind; Emily neither spoke nor looked; she only carried the tokens
+of her authority to Eleanor, and left the room.&nbsp; She thought she
+knew well enough the cause of her deposition, considered it quite as
+a matter of course, and departed on purpose to avoid hearing the announcement
+which she expected to follow.<br>
+<br>
+She was annoyed by finding her sisters in her room, and especially irritated
+by Jane&rsquo;s tone, as she eagerly asked, &lsquo;Well, what did he
+say?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Never mind,&rsquo; replied Emily, pettishly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Was it about Miss Weston?&rsquo; persisted Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not actually, but I saw it was coming,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah!&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;I was just telling Lily that she
+owes all her present favour to her having been Alethea&rsquo;s bosom
+friend.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I confess I thought Miss Weston was assuming authority long ago,&rsquo;
+said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily, how can you say so?&rsquo; cried Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;How
+can you be so unjust and ungrateful?&nbsp; I do not believe this report;
+but if it should be true, are not these foolish expressions of dislike
+so many attempts to make yourself undutiful?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I have rather more sincerity, more dignity, more attachment to
+my own mother, than to try to gain favour by affecting what I do not
+feel,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Rather cutting, Emily,&rsquo; said Jane.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Do not give that speech an application which Emily did not intend,&rsquo;
+said Lily, sadly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What makes you think I did not intend it?&rsquo; said Emily,
+coldly.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Emily!&rsquo; exclaimed Lily, starting up, and colouring violently,
+&lsquo;are you thinking what you are saying?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do not know what you mean,&rsquo; replied Emily quietly, in
+her soft, unchanging voice; &lsquo;I only mean that if you can feel
+satisfied with the new arrangement you are more easily pleased than
+I am.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only tell me, Emily, do you accuse me of attempting to gain favour
+in an unworthy manner?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I only congratulate you on standing so well with every one.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lily hid her face in her hands.&nbsp; At this moment Eleanor opened
+the door, saying, &lsquo;Can you come down?&nbsp; Mrs. Burnet is here.&rsquo;&nbsp;
+Eleanor went without observing Lily, and Emily was obliged to follow.&nbsp;
+Jane lingered in order to comfort Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You know she did not quite mean it,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;she
+is only very much provoked.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I know, I know,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;she is very sorry herself
+by this time.&nbsp; Of course she did not mean it, but it is the first
+unkind thing she ever said to me.&nbsp; It is very silly, and very unjust
+to take it seriously, but I cannot help it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It is a very abominable shame,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;and so
+I shall tell Emily.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, do not, Jenny, I beg.&nbsp; I know she thinks so<i> </i>herself,
+and grieves too much over it.&nbsp; No wonder she is vexed.&nbsp; All
+my faults have come upon her.&nbsp; You had better go down, Jane; Mrs.
+Burnet is always vexed if she does not see a good many of us, and I
+am sure I cannot go.&nbsp; Besides, Emily dislikes having that girl
+to entertain.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Lily, you are so very gentle and forgiving, that I wonder how
+any one can say what grieves you,&rsquo; said Jane, for once struck
+with admiration.<br>
+<br>
+She went, and Lily remained, weeping over the injustice which she had
+forgiven, and feeling as if, all the time, it was fair that the rule
+of &lsquo;love&rsquo; should, as it were, recoil upon her.&nbsp; Her
+tears flowed fast, as she went over the long line of faults and follies
+which lay heavy on her conscience.&nbsp; And Emily against her!&nbsp;
+That sister who, from her infancy, had soothed her in every trouble,
+of whose sympathy she had always felt sure, whose gentleness had been
+her admiration in her days of sharp answers and violent temper, who
+had seemed her own beyond all the others; this wound from her gave Lily
+a bitter feeling of desertion and loneliness.&nbsp; It was like a completion
+of her punishment - the broken reed on which she leant had pierced her
+deeply.<br>
+<br>
+She was still sitting on the side of her bed, weeping, when a slight
+tap at the door made her start - a gentle tap, the sound of which she
+had learned to love in her illness.&nbsp; The next moment Alethea stood
+before her, with outstretched arms.&nbsp; This was a time to feel the
+value of such a friend, and every suspicion passing from her mind, she
+flew to Alethea, kissed her again and again, and laid her head on her
+shoulder.&nbsp; Her caress was returned with equal warmth.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;But how is this?&rsquo; said Alethea, now perceiving that her
+face was pale, and marked by tears.&nbsp; &lsquo;How is this, my dear
+Lily?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, Alethea!&nbsp; I cannot tell you, but it is all misery.&nbsp;
+The full effect of my baneful principle has appeared!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Has anything happened?&rsquo; exclaimed Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Lily.&nbsp; &lsquo;There is nothing new, except
+the - Oh!&nbsp; I cannot tell you.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wish I could do anything for you, my poor Lily,&rsquo; said
+Alethea.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;You can look kind,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;and that is a great
+comfort.&nbsp; Oh! Alethea, it was very kind of you to come and speak
+to me.&nbsp; I shall do now - I can bear it all better.&nbsp; You have
+a comforting face and voice like nobody else.&nbsp; When did you come?&nbsp;
+Have you been in the drawing-room?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No,&rsquo; said Alethea.&nbsp; &lsquo;I walked here with Marianne,
+and finding there were visitors in the drawing-room we went to Ada,
+and she told me where to find you.&nbsp; I had something to tell you
+- but perhaps you know already.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The colour on her cheek recalled all Lily&rsquo;s fears, and to hear
+the news from herself was an unexpected trial.&nbsp; She felt as if
+what she had said justified Emily&rsquo;s reproach, and turning away
+her head, replied, &lsquo;Yes, I know.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea was a little hurt by her coldness, but she ascribed it to dejection
+and embarrassment, and blamed herself for hurrying on what she had to
+tell without sufficient regard for Lily&rsquo;s distress.&nbsp; There
+was an awkward pause, which Alethea broke, by saying, &lsquo;Your brother
+thought you would like to hear it from me.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My brother!&rsquo; cried Lily, with a most sudden change of tone.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;William?&nbsp; Oh, Alethea! dearest Alethea; I beg your pardon.&nbsp;
+They almost made me believe it was papa.&nbsp; Oh! I am so very glad!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Alethea could not help laughing, and Lily joined her heartily.&nbsp;
+It was one of the brightest hours of her life, as she sat with her hand
+in her friend&rsquo;s, pouring out her eager expressions of delight
+and affection.&nbsp; All her troubles were forgotten - how should they
+not, when Alethea was to be her sister!&nbsp; It seemed as if but a
+few minutes had passed, when the sound of the great clock warned Alethea
+that it was time to return to Broomhill, and she asked Lilias to walk
+back with her.&nbsp; After summoning Marianne, they set out through
+the garden, where, on being joined by William, Lily thought it expedient
+to betake herself to Marianne, who was but too glad to be able freely
+to communicate many interesting particulars.&nbsp; At Broomhill she
+had a very enjoyable talk with Mrs. Weston, but her chief delight was
+in her walk home with her brother.&nbsp; She was high in his favour,
+as Alethea&rsquo;s chief friend.&nbsp; Though usually reserved, he was
+now open, and Lily wondered to find herself honoured with confidence.&nbsp;
+His attachment had begun in very early days, when first he knew the
+Westons in Brighton.&nbsp; Harry&rsquo;s death had suddenly called him
+away, and a few guarded expressions of his wishes in the course of the
+next winter had been cut short by his father.&nbsp; He then went to
+Canada, and had had no opportunity of renewing his acquaintance till
+the last winter, when, on coming home, to his great joy and surprise
+he found the Westons on the most intimate terms with his family.<br>
+<br>
+He then spoke to his father, who wished him to take a little more time
+for consideration, and he had accordingly waited till the summer.&nbsp;
+Lily longed to know his plans for the future, and presently he went
+on to say that his father wished him to leave the army, live at home,
+and let Alethea be the head of the household.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh, William! it is perfect.&nbsp; There is an end of all our
+troubles.&nbsp; It is as if a great black curtain was drawn up.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;They say such plans never succeed,&rsquo; said William; &lsquo;but
+we mean to prove the contrary.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;How good it will be for the children!&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh! why had we not such a guide at first?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;She has all that Eleanor wants,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;My follies were not Eleanor&rsquo;s fault,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;but I do think I should not have been quite so silly if I had
+known Alethea from the first.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+It was not in the power of William himself to say more in her praise
+than Lily.&nbsp; In the eagerness of their conversation they walked
+slowly, and as they were crossing the last field the dinner-bell rang.&nbsp;
+As they quickened their steps they saw Mr. Mohun looking at his wheat.&nbsp;
+Lily told him how late it was.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There,&rsquo; said he, &lsquo;I am always looking after other
+people&rsquo;s affairs.&nbsp; Between Rotherwood and William I have
+not a moment for my own crops.&nbsp; However, my turn is coming.&nbsp;
+William will have it all on his hands, and the old deaf useless Baron
+will sit in his great chair and take his ease.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Not a bit, papa,&rsquo; said Lily, &lsquo;the Baron will grow
+young, and take to dancing.&nbsp; He is talking nonsense already.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Eh!&nbsp; Miss Lily turned saucy?&nbsp; Mrs. William Mohun must
+take her in hand.&nbsp; Well, Lily, has he your consent and approbation?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I only wish this was eighteen months ago, papa.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We shall soon come into order, Lily.&nbsp; With Miss Aylmer for
+the little ones, and Mrs. Mohun for the great ones, I have little fear.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Miss Aylmer, papa!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Yes, if all turns out well.&nbsp; We propose to find a house
+for her mother in the village, and let her come every day to teach the
+little ones.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Oh!&nbsp; I am very glad.&nbsp; We liked her so much.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I hope,&rsquo; said Mr. Mohun, &lsquo;that this plan will please
+Claude better than my proposal of a governess last month.&nbsp; He looked
+as if he expected Minerva with helmet, and &AElig;gis and all.&nbsp;
+Now make haste and dress.&nbsp; Do not let us shock Eleanor by keeping
+dinner waiting longer than we can help.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Lilias found that her sisters had long been dressed and gone down.&nbsp;
+She dressed alone, every now and then smiling at her own happy looks
+reflected in the glass.&nbsp; Just as she had finished, Claude knocked
+at the door, and putting in his head, said, &lsquo;Well, Lily, has the
+wonderful news come forth?&nbsp; I see it has, by your face.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And do you know what it is, Claude?&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I know what Rotherwood meant, and I cannot think where all our
+senses were.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And, Claude, only say that you like her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I think it is a very good thing indeed.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Only say that you cordially like her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do.&nbsp; I admire her sense and her gentleness very much,
+and I think you owe a great deal to her.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Then you allow that you were unjust last summer?&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do; but it was owing to you.&nbsp; You were somewhat foolish,
+and I thought it was her fault.&nbsp; Besides, I was quite tired of
+hearing that extraordinary name of hers for ever repeated.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Here they were summoned to dinner, and hurried down.&nbsp; The dinner
+passed very strangely; some were in very high spirits, others in a very
+melancholy mood; Eleanor and Maurice alone preserved the golden mean;
+and the behaviour of the merry ones was perfectly unintelligible to
+the rest.&nbsp; Reginald, still bound by his promise to Marianne, was
+wild to make his discovery known, and behaved in such a strange and
+comical manner as to call forth various reproofs from Eleanor, which
+provoked double mirth from the others.&nbsp; The cause of their amusement
+was ostensibly the talking over of yesterday&rsquo;s <i>f&ecirc;te</i>,
+but the laughing was more than adequate, even to the wonderful collection
+of odd speeches and adventures which were detailed.&nbsp; Emily and
+Jane could not guess what had come to Lily, and thought her merriment
+very ill-placed.&nbsp; Yet, in justice to Lily, it must be said that
+her joy no longer made her wild and thoughtless.&nbsp; There was something
+guarded and subdued about her, which made Claude reflect how different
+she was from the untamed girl of last summer, who could not be happy
+without a sort of intoxication.<br>
+<br>
+The ladies returned to the drawing-room, where Ada now appeared for
+the first time, and while they were congratulating her Mr. Mohun summoned
+Eleanor away.&nbsp; Jane followed at a safe distance to see where they
+went.&nbsp; They shut themselves into the study, and Jane, now meeting
+Maurice, went into the garden with him.&nbsp; &lsquo;It must be coming
+now,&rsquo; said she; &lsquo;oh! there are William and Claude talking
+under the plane-tree.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Claude has his cunning smile on,&rsquo; said Maurice.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No wonder,&rsquo; said Jane, &lsquo;it is very absurd.&nbsp;
+I daresay William will hardly ever come home now.&nbsp; One comfort
+is, they will see I was right from the first.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+Jane and Maurice remained in the garden till teatime, and thus missed
+hearing the whole affair discussed in the drawing-room between Emily,
+Lilias, and Frank.&nbsp; This was the first news that Emily heard of
+it, and a very great relief it was, for she could imagine liking, and
+even loving, Alethea as a sister-in-law.&nbsp; Her chief annoyance was
+at present from the perception of the difference between her own position
+and that of Lilias.&nbsp; Last year how was Lily regarded in the family,
+and what was her opinion worth?&nbsp; Almost nothing; she was only a
+clever, romantic, silly girl, while Emily had credit at least for discretion.&nbsp;
+Now Lily was consulted and sought out by father, brothers, Eleanor -
+no longer treated as a child.&nbsp; And what was Emily?&nbsp; Blamed
+or pitied on every side, and left to hear this important news from the
+chance mention of her brother-in-law, himself not fully informed.&nbsp;
+She had become nobody, and had even lost the satisfaction, such as it
+was, of fancying that her father only made her bad management an excuse
+for his marriage.&nbsp; She heard many particulars from Lily in the
+course of the evening, as they were going to bed; and the sisters talked
+with all their wonted affection, although Emily had not thought it worth
+while to revive an old grievance, by asking Lily&rsquo;s pardon for
+her unkind speech, and rested satisfied with the knowledge that her
+sister knew her heart too well to care for what she said in a moment
+of irritation.&nbsp; On the other hand, Lily did not think that she
+had a right to mention the plan of Alethea&rsquo;s government, and the
+next day she was glad of her reserve, for her father called her to share
+his early walk for the purpose of talking over the scheme, telling her
+that he thought she understood the state of things better than Eleanor
+could, and that he considered that she had sufficient influence with
+Emily to prevent her from making Alethea uncomfortable.&nbsp; The conclusion
+of the conversation was, that they thought they might depend upon Emily&rsquo;s
+amiability, her courtesy, and her dislike of trouble, to balance her
+love of importance and dignity.&nbsp; And that Alethea would do nothing
+to hurt her feelings, and would assume no authority that she could help,
+they felt convinced.<br>
+<br>
+After breakfast Mr. Mohun called Emily into his study, informed her
+of his resolution, to which she listened with her usual submissive manner,
+and told her that he trusted to her good sense and right feeling to
+obviate any collisions of authority which might be unpleasant to Alethea
+and hurtful to the younger ones.&nbsp; She promised all that was desired,
+and though at the moment she felt hurt and grieved, she almost immediately
+recovered her usual spirits, never high, but always serene, and only
+seeking for easy amusement and comfort in whatever happened.&nbsp; There
+was no public disgrace in her deposition; it would not seem unnatural
+to the neighbours that her brother&rsquo;s wife should be at the head
+of the house.&nbsp; She would gain credit for her amiability, and she
+would no longer be responsible or obliged to exert herself; and as to
+Alethea herself, she could not help respecting and almost loving her.&nbsp;
+It was very well it was no worse.<br>
+<br>
+In the meantime Lily, struck by a sudden thought, had hastened to her
+mother&rsquo;s little deserted morning-room, to see if it could not
+be made a delightful abode for Alethea; and she was considering of its
+capabilities when she started at the sound of an approaching step.&nbsp;
+It was the rapid and measured tread of the Captain, and in a few moments
+he entered.&nbsp; &lsquo;Thank you,&rsquo; said he, smiling, &lsquo;you
+are on the same errand as myself.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Exactly so,&rsquo; said Lily; &lsquo;it will do capitally; how
+pretty Long Acre looks, and what a beautiful view of the church!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;This room used once to be pretty,&rsquo; said William, looking
+round, disappointed; &lsquo;it is very forlorn.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! but it will look very different when the chairs do not stand
+with their backs to the wall.&nbsp; I do not think Alethea knows of
+this room, for nobody has sat in it for years, and we will make it a
+surprise.&nbsp; And here is your own picture, at ten years old, over
+the fireplace!&nbsp; I have such a vision, you will not know the room
+when I have set it to rights.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+They went on talking eagerly of the improvements that might be made,
+and from thence came to other subjects - Alethea herself, and the future
+plans.&nbsp; At last William asked if Lily knew what made Jane look
+as deplorable as she had done for the last two days, and Lily was obliged
+to tell him, with the addition that Eleanor had begun to inform her
+of the real fact, but that she had stopped her by declaring that she
+had known it all from the first.&nbsp; Just as they had mentioned her,
+Jane, attracted by the unusual sound of voices in Lady Emily&rsquo;s
+room, came in, asking what they could be doing there.&nbsp; Lily would
+scarcely have dared to reply, but William said in a grave, matter-of-fact
+way, &lsquo;We are thinking of having this room newly fitted up.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;For Alethea Weston?&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;how can you, Lily?&nbsp;
+I should have thought, at least, it was no laughing matter.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I advise you to follow Lily&rsquo;s example and make the best
+of it,&rsquo; said William.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I do, but it is another thing to stand laughing here.&nbsp; I
+see one thing that I shall do - I shall take away your picture and hang
+it in my room.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;We shall see,&rsquo; said William, following Lilias, who had
+left the room to hide her laughter.<br>
+<br>
+To mystify Jane was the great amusement of the day; Reginald, finding
+Maurice possessed with the same notion, did more to maintain it than
+the others would have thought right, and Maurice reporting his speeches
+to Jane, she had not the least doubt that her idea was correct.&nbsp;
+Lord Rotherwood came to dinner, and no sooner had he entered the drawing-room
+than Reginald, rejoicing in the absence of the parties concerned, informed
+him of the joke, much to his diversion, though rather to the discomfiture
+of the more prudent spectators, who might have wished it confined to
+themselves.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;It has gone far enough,&rsquo; said Claude; &lsquo;she will say
+something she will repent if we do not take care.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I should like to reduce her to humble herself to ask an explanation
+from Marianne,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;And pray don&rsquo;t spoil the joke before I have enjoyed it,&rsquo;
+said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;My years of discretion are not such
+centuries of wisdom as those of that gentleman who looks as grim as
+his namesake the Emperor on a coin.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The entrance of Eleanor and Jane here put an end to the conversation,
+which was not renewed till the evening, when the younger, or as Claude
+called it, the middle-aged part of the company were sitting on the lawn,
+leaving the drawing-room to the elder and more prudent, and the terrace
+to the wilder and more active.&nbsp; Emily was talking of Mrs. Burnet&rsquo;s
+visit of the day before, and her opinion of the Hetherington festivities.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;And what an interminable visit it was,&rsquo; said Jane; &lsquo;I
+thought they would never go!&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;People always inflict themselves in a most merciless manner when
+there is anything going on,&rsquo; said Emily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;I wonder if they guessed anything,&rsquo; said Lily.<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;To be sure they did, and stayed out of curiosity,&rsquo; said
+Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp; &lsquo;In spite of Emily&rsquo;s dignified contradictions
+of the report, every one knew it the other evening.&nbsp; It was all
+in vain that she behaved as if I was speaking treason - people have
+eyes.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;Ah! I am very sorry for that contradiction,&rsquo; said Lily;
+&lsquo;I hope people will not fancy we do not like it.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;No, it will only prove my greatness,&rsquo; said Lord Rotherwood.&nbsp;
+&lsquo;Your Marques, was China in the map, so absorbing all beholders
+that the magnanimous Mohuns themselves - &rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;What nonsense, Rotherwood,&rsquo; said Jane, sharply; &lsquo;can&rsquo;t
+you suppose that one may shut one&rsquo;s eyes to what one does not
+wish to see.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+The singular inappropriateness of this answer occasioned a general roar
+of laughter, and she looked in perplexity.&nbsp; Every one whom she
+asked why they laughed replied by saying, &lsquo;Ask Marianne Weston;&rsquo;
+and at length, after much puzzling and guessing, and being more laughed
+at than had ever before happened to her in her life, she was obliged
+to seek an explanation from Marianne, who might well have triumphed
+had she been so disposed.&nbsp; Jane&rsquo;s character for penetration
+was entirely destroyed, and the next morning she received, as a present
+from Claude, an old book, which had long belonged to the nursery, entitled,
+<i>A Puzzle for a Curious Girl.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+</i>CHAPTER XXVII: CONCLUSION<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+&lsquo;There let Hymen oft appear<br>
+In saffron robe, with taper clear,<br>
+And pomp, and feast, and revelry,<br>
+And mask, and antique pageantry;<br>
+Such sights as useful poets dream<br>
+On summer eves, by haunted stream.&rsquo;<br>
+<br>
+On the morning of a fine day, late in September, the Beechcroft bells
+were ringing merrily, and a wedding procession was entering the gate
+of the churchyard.<br>
+<br>
+In the afternoon there was a great feast on the top of the hill, attended
+by all the Mohuns, who were forced, to Lily&rsquo;s great satisfaction,
+to give it there, as there was no space in the grounds at the New Court.&nbsp;
+All was wonderfully suitable to old times, inasmuch as the Baron was
+actually persuaded to sit for five minutes under the yew-tree where
+&lsquo;Mohun&rsquo;s chair&rsquo; ought to have been, and the cricketers
+were of all ranks, from the Marquis of Rotherwood to little Dick Grey.<br>
+<br>
+The wedding had been hurried on, and the wedding tour was shortened,
+in order that Mrs. William Mohun might be installed as mistress of the
+New Court before Eleanor&rsquo;s departure, which took place early in
+October; and shortly after Mrs. Ridley, who had come on a visit to Beechcroft,
+to take leave of her brother, returned to the north, taking with her
+the little Harry.&nbsp; He was nearly a year old, and it gave great
+pain to his young aunts to part with him, now that he had endeared himself
+to them by many engaging ways, but Lily felt herself too unequal to
+the task of training him up to make any objection, and there were many
+promises that he should not be a stranger to his grandfather&rsquo;s
+home.<br>
+<br>
+Mrs. and Miss Aylmer had been about a month settled at a superior sort
+of cottage, near the New Court, with Mrs. Eden for their servant.&nbsp;
+Lord Rotherwood had fitted out the second son, who sailed for India
+with Mr. and Mrs. Hawkesworth, had sent Devereux to school, and was
+lying in wait to see what could be done for the two others, and Jane
+was congratulated far more than she wished, on having been the means
+of discovering such an excellent governess.&nbsp; Jane was now a regular
+inhabitant of the schoolroom, as much tied down to lessons and schoolroom
+hours as her two little sisters, with the prospect of so continuing
+for two years, if not for three.&nbsp; She made one attempt to be pert
+to Miss Aylmer; but something in the manner of her governess quite baffled
+her, and she was obliged to be more obedient than she had ever been.&nbsp;
+The mischief which Emily and Lilias had done to her, by throwing off
+their allegiance to Eleanor, and thus unconsciously leading her to set
+her at nought, was, at her age, not to be so easily repaired; yet with
+no opportunity for gossiping, and with involuntary respect for her governess,
+there were hopes that she would lose the habit of her two great faults.&nbsp;
+There certainly was an improvement in her general tone and manner, which
+made Mr. Devereux hope that he might soon resume with her the preparation
+for confirmation which had been cut short the year before.<br>
+<br>
+Phyllis and Adeline had been possessed by Reginald with a great dread
+of governesses; and they were agreeably surprised in Miss Aylmer, whom
+they found neither cross nor strict, and always willing to forward their
+amusements, and let them go out with their papa and sisters whenever
+they were asked.&nbsp; Phyllis, without much annoyance to one so obedient,
+was trained into more civilisation, and Ada&rsquo;s more serious faults
+were duly watched and guarded against.&nbsp; The removal of Esther was
+a great advantage to Ada; an older and more steady person was taken
+in her place; while to the great relief of Mr. Mohun and Lilias, Rachel
+Harvey took Esther to her brother&rsquo;s farmhouse, where she promised
+to watch and teach her, and hoped in time to make her a good servant.<br>
+<br>
+Of Emily there is little to say.&nbsp; She ate, drank, and slept, talked
+agreeably, read idle books, and looked nice in the drawing-room, wasting
+time, throwing away talents, weakening the powers of her mind, and laying
+up a store of sad reflections for herself against the time when she
+must awake from her selfish apathy.<br>
+<br>
+As to Lilias Mohun, the heroine of this tale, the history of the formation
+of her character has been told, and all that remains to be said of her
+is, that the memory of her faults and her sorrows did not fleet away
+like a morning cloud, though followed by many happy and prosperous days,
+and though the effects of many were repaired.&nbsp; Agnes&rsquo;s death,
+Esther&rsquo;s theft, Ada&rsquo;s accident, the schism in the parish,
+and her own numerous mistakes, were constantly recalled, and never without
+a thought of the danger of being wise above her elders, and taking mere
+feeling for Christian charity.<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, SCENES AND CHARACTERS ***<br>
+<pre>
+
+******This file should be named scch10h.htm or scch10h.zip******
+Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, scch11h.htm
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, scch10ah.htm
+
+Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our Web sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
+files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
+We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):
+
+eBooks Year Month
+
+ 1 1971 July
+ 10 1991 January
+ 100 1994 January
+ 1000 1997 August
+ 1500 1998 October
+ 2000 1999 December
+ 2500 2000 December
+ 3000 2001 November
+ 4000 2001 October/November
+ 6000 2002 December*
+ 9000 2003 November*
+10000 2004 January*
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
+Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
+Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
+Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
+Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
+Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
+Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.
+
+We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+Donations by check or money order may be sent to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information online at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart hart@pobox.com
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
+when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
+Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
+used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
+they hardware or software or any other related product without
+express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*
+</pre></body>
+</html>
diff --git a/old/scch10h.zip b/old/scch10h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3ac68bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/scch10h.zip
Binary files differ